THE DESIRE OF AGES by ELLEN G.WHITE

This is a public domain book, published in 1898. The raw etext was provided
by the Trustees of Ellen G. White Publications, 12501 Old Columbia Pike,
Silver Springs, Maryland 20904.

May 3, 1994.
contact: [email protected] (See-Wei Toh)

This text is in the public domain, posted to wiretap MAY 1994.



                             The DESIRE of AGES
                             PREFACE


IN THE HEARTS OF ALL MANKIND, OF WHATEVER RACE OR STATION IN LIFE, THERE ARE
INEXPRESSIBLE LONGINGS FOR SOMETHING THEY DO NOT NOW POSSESS. THIS LONGING
IS IMPLANTED IN THE VERY CONSTITUTION OF MAN BY A MERCIFUL GOD, THAT MAN MAY
NOT BE SATISFIED WITH HIS PRESENT CONDITIONS OR ATTAINMENTS, WHETHER BAD, OR
GOOD, OR BETTER. GOD DESIRES THAT THE HUMAN SHALL SEEK THE BEST, AND FIND IT
TO THE ETERNAL BLESSING OF HIS SOUL.

SATAN, BY WILY SCHEME AND CRAFT, HAS PERVERTED THESE LONGINGS OF THE HUMAN
HEART. HE MAKES MEN BELIEVE THAT THIS DESIRE MAY BE SATISFIED BY PLEASURE,
BY WEALTH, BY EASE, BY FAME, BY POWER; BUT THOSE WHO HAVE BEEN THUS DECEIVED
BY HIM (AND THEY NUMBER MYRIADS) FIND ALL THESE THINGS PALL UPON THE SENSE,
LEAVING THE SOUL AS BARREN AND UNSATISFIED AS BEFORE.

IT IS GOD'S DESIGN THAT THIS LONGING OF THE HUMAN HEART SHOULD LEAD TO THE
ONE WHO ALONE IS ABLE TO SATISFY IT. THE DESIRE IS OF HIM THAT IT MAY LEAD
TO HIM, THE FULLNESS AND FULFILLMENT OF THAT DESIRE. THAT FULLNESS IS FOUND
IN JESUS THE CHRIST, THE SON OF THE ETERNAL GOD. "FOR IT WAS THE GOOD
PLEASURE OF THE FATHER THAT IN HIM SHOULD ALL THE FULLNESS DWELL;" "FOR IN
HIM DWELLETH ALL THE FULLNESS OF THE GODHEAD BODILY." AND IT IS ALSO TRUE
THAT "IN HIM YE ARE MADE FULL" WITH RESPECT TO EVERY DESIRE DIVINELY
IMPLANTED AND NORMALLY FOLLOWED.

HAGGAI CALLS HIM "THE DESIRE OF ALL NATIONS," AND WE MAY WELL CALL HIM "THE
DESIRE OF ALL AGES," EVEN AS HE IS "THE KING OF AGES."

IT IS THE PURPOSE OF THIS BOOK TO SET FORTH JESUS CHRIST AS THE ONE IN WHOM
EVERY LONGING MAY BE SATISFIED. THERE IS MANY A "LIFE OF CHRIST" WRITTEN,
EXCELLENT BOOKS, LARGE FUNDS OF INFORMATION, ELABORATE ESSAYS ON CHRONOLOGY
AND CONTEMPORANEOUS HISTORY, CUSTOMS, AND EVENTS, WITH MUCH OF THE TEACHING
AND MANY GLIMPSES OF THE MANY-SIDED LIFE OF JESUS OF NAZARETH. YET IT MAY BE
TRULY SAID, "THE HALF HAS NEVER BEEN TOLD."

IT IS NOT, HOWEVER, THE PURPOSE OF THIS WORK TO SET FORTH A HARMONY OF THE
GOSPELS, OR EVEN TO GIVE IN STRICTLY CHRONOLOGICAL ORDER THE IMPORTANT
EVENTS AND WONDERFUL LESSONS OF THE LIFE OF CHRIST; ITS PURPOSE IS TO
PRESENT THE LOVE OF GOD AS REVEALED IN HIS SON, THE DIVINE BEAUTY OF THE
LIFE OF CHRIST, OF WHICH ALL MAY PARTAKE, AND NOT TO SATISFY THE DESIRES OF
THE MERELY CURIOUS NOR THE QUESTIONINGS OF CRITICS. BUT EVEN AS BY THE
ATTRACTION OF HIS OWN GOODNESS OF CHARACTER JESUS DREW HIS DISCIPLES UNTO
HIMSELF, AND BY HIS PERSONAL PRESENCE, BY HIS SYMPATHETIC TOUCH AND FEELING
IN ALL THEIR INFIRMITIES AND NEEDS, AND BY HIS CONSTANT ASSOCIATION,
TRANSFORMED THEIR CHARACTERS FROM THE EARTHLY TO THE HEAVENLY, FROM THE
SELFISH TO THE SACRIFICING, FROM SMALLHEARTED IGNORANCE AND PREJUDICE TO
LARGEHEARTED KNOWLEDGE AND PROFOUND LOVE FOR SOULS OF ALL NATIONS AND RACES,
EVEN SO IT IS THE PURPOSE OF THIS BOOK SO TO PRESENT THE BLESSED REDEEMER AS
TO HELP THE READER TO COME TO HIM FACE TO FACE, HEART TO HEART, AND FIND IN
HIM, EVEN AS DID THE DISCIPLES OF OLD, JESUS THE MIGHTY ONE, WHO SAVES "TO
THE UTTERMOST," AND TRANSFORMS TO HIS OWN DIVINE IMAGE ALL THOSE WHO COME
UNTO GOD BY HIM. YET HOW IMPOSSIBLE IT IS TO REVEAL HIS LIFE! IT IS LIKE
ATTEMPTING TO PUT UPON CANVAS THE LIVING RAINBOW; INTO CHARACTERS OF BLACK
AND WHITE THE SWEETEST MUSIC.

IN THE FOLLOWING PAGES THE AUTHOR, A WOMAN OF LARGE AND DEEP AND LONG
EXPERIENCE IN THE THINGS OF GOD, HAS SET FORTH NEW BEAUTIES FROM THE LIFE OF
JESUS. SHE HAS BROUGHT MANY NEW GEMS FROM THE PRECIOUS CASKET. SHE OPENS
BEFORE THE READER UNDREAMED-OF RICHES FROM THIS INFINITE TREASURE HOUSE. NEW
AND GLORIOUS LIGHT FLASHES FORTH FROM MANY A FAMILIAR PASSAGE, THE DEPTH OF
WHICH THE READER SUPPOSED HE HAD LONG BEFORE FATHOMED. TO STATE IT IN BRIEF,
JESUS CHRIST IS REVEALED AS THE FULLNESS OF THE GODHEAD, THE INFINITELY
MERCIFUL SAVIOUR OF SINNERS, THE SUN OF RIGHTEOUSNESS, THE MERCIFUL HIGH
PRIEST, THE HEALER OF ALL HUMAN MALADIES AND DISEASES, THE TENDER,
COMPASSIONATE FRIEND, THE CONSTANT, EVER-PRESENT AND HELPFUL COMPANION, THE
PRINCE OF THE HOUSE OF DAVID, THE SHIELD OF HIS PEOPLE, THE PRINCE OF PEACE,
THE COMING KING, THE EVERLASTING FATHER, THE CULMINATION AND FRUITION OF THE
DESIRES AND HOPES OF ALL THE AGES.

UNDER THE BLESSING OF GOD THIS BOOK IS GIVEN TO THE WORLD WITH THE PRAYER
THAT THE LORD BY HIS SPIRIT WILL MAKE THE WORDS OF THIS BOOK WORDS OF LIFE
TO MANY SOULS WHOSE LONGINGS AND DESIRES ARE YET UNSATISFIED; THAT THEY "MAY
KNOW HIM, AND THE POWER OF HIS RESURRECTION, AND THE FELLOWSHIP OF HIS
SUFFERINGS," AND FINALLY, THROUGHOUT A BLESSED ETERNITY, AT HIS RIGHT HAND,
SHARE IN "THAT FULLNESS OF JOY," AND "PLEASURES FOREVERMORE," WHICH WILL BE
THE RIPENED FRUITAGE OF ALL THOSE WHO FIND IN HIM THE ALL IN ALL, "THE
CHIEFEST AMONG TEN THOUSAND," AND "THE ONE ALTOGETHER LOVELY."
                                                              PUBLISHERS.
                             Contents

1. "God With Us"  . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .   19
2. The Chosen People  . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .   27
3. "The Fullness of the Time" . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .   31
4. Unto You a Saviour . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .   43
5. The Dedication . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .   50
6. "We Have Seen His Star"  . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .   59
7. As a Child . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .   68
8. The Passover Visit . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .   75
9. Days of Conflict . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .   84
10. The Voice in the Wilderness  . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .   97
11. The Baptism  . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  109
12. The Temptation . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  114
13. The Victory  . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  124
14. "We Have Found the Messias"  . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  132
15. At the Marriage Feast  . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  144
16. In His Temple  . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  154
17. Nicodemus  . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  167
18. "He Must Increase" . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  178
19. At Jacob's Well  . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  183
20. "Except Ye See Signs and Wonders"  . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  196
21. Bethesda and the Sanhedrin . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  201
22. Imprisonment and Death of John . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  214
23. "The Kingdom of God Is at Hand"  . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  231
24. "Is Not This the Carpenter's Son?" . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  236
25. The Call by the Sea  . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  244
26. At Capernaum   . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  252
27. "Thou Canst Make Me Clean" . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  262
28. Levi-Matthew . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  272
29. The Sabbath  . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  281
30. "He Ordained Twelve" . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  290
31. The Sermon on the Mount  . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  298
32. The Centurion  . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  315
33. Who Are My Brethren? . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  321
34. The Invitation   . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  328
35. "Peace, Be Still"  . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  333
36. The Touch of Faith . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  342
37. The First Evangelists  . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  349
38. Come Rest Awhile . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  359
39. "Give Ye Them to Eat"  . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  364
40. A Night on the Lake  . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  377
41. The Crisis in Galilee  . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  383
42. Tradition  . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  395
43. Barriers Broken Down . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  399
44. The True Sign  . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  404
45. The Foreshadowing of the Cross . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  410
46. He Was Transfigured  . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  419
47. Ministry . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  426
48. Who Is the Greatest? . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  432
49. At the Feast of Tabernacles  . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  447
50. Among Snares . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  455
51. "The Light of Life"  . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  463
52. The Divine Shepherd  . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  476
53. The Last Journey From Galilee  . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  485
54. The Good Samaritan . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  497
55. Not With Outward Show  . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  506
56. Blessing the Children  . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  511
57. "One Thing Thou Lackest" . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  518
58. "Lazarus, Come Forth"  . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  524
59. Priestly Plottings . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  537
60. The Law of the New Kingdom . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  547
61. Zacchaeus  . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  552
62. The Feast at Simon's House . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  557
63. "Thy King Cometh"  . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  569
64. A Doomed People  . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  580
65. The Temple Cleansed Again  . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  589
66. Controversy  . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  601
67. Woes on the Pharisees  . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  610
68. In the Outer Court . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  621
69. On the Mount of Olives . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  627
70. "The Least of These My Brethren" . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  637
71. A Servant of Servants  . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  642
72. "In Remembrance of Me" . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  652
73. "Let Not Your Heart Be Troubled" . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  662
74. Gethsemane . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  685
75. Before Annas and the Court of Caiaphas . . . . . . . . . . . . .  698
76. Judas  . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  716
77. In Pilate's Judgment Hall  . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  723
78. Calvary  . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  741
79. "It Is Finished" . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  758
80. In Joseph's Tomb . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  769
81. "The Lord Is Risen"  . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  779
82. "Why Weepest Thou?"  . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  788
83. The Walk to Emmaus . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  795
84. "Peace Be Unto You"  . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  802
85. By the Sea Once More . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  809
86. Go Teach All Nations . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  818
87. "To My Father, and Your Father"  . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  829
   Scriptural Index   . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  837
   General Index  . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .  843




                                                                     (19)

                             Chapter 1

                             "God With Us"


"His name shall be called Immanuel, . . . God with us." "The light of the
knowledge of the glory of God" is seen "in the face of Jesus Christ." From
the days of eternity the Lord Jesus Christ was one with the Father; He was
"the image of God," the image of His greatness and majesty, "the outshining
of His glory." It was to manifest this glory that He came to our world. To
this sin-darkened earth He came to reveal the light of God's love,--to be
"God with us." Therefore it was prophesied of Him, "His name shall be called
Immanuel."

By coming to dwell with us, Jesus was to reveal God both to men and to
angels. He was the Word of God,--God's thought made audible. In His prayer
for His disciples He says, "I have declared unto them Thy name,"--"merciful
and gracious, long-suffering, and abundant in goodness and truth,"--"that
the love wherewith Thou hast loved Me may be in them, and I in them." But
not alone for His earthborn children was this revelation given. Our little
world is the lesson book of the universe. God's wonderful purpose of grace,
the mystery of redeeming love, is the theme into which "angels desire to
look," and it will be their study throughout endless ages. Both the redeemed

20

and the unfallen beings will find in the cross of Christ their science and
their song. It will be seen that the glory shining in the face of Jesus is
the glory of self-sacrificing love. In the light from Calvary it will be
seen that the law of self-renouncing love is the law of life for earth and
heaven; that the love which "seeketh not her own" has its source in the
heart of God; and that in the meek and lowly One is manifested the character
of Him who dwelleth in the light which no man can approach unto.

In the beginning, God was revealed in all the works of creation. It was
Christ that spread the heavens, and laid the foundations of the earth. It
was His hand that hung the worlds in space, and fashioned the flowers of the
field. "His strength setteth fast the mountains." "The sea is His, and He
made it." Ps. 65:6; 95:5. It was He that filled the earth with beauty, and
the air with song. And upon all things in earth, and air, and sky, He wrote
the message of the Father's love.

Now sin has marred God's perfect work, yet that handwriting remains. Even
now all created things declare the glory of His excellence. There is
nothing, save the selfish heart of man, that lives unto itself. No bird that
cleaves the air, no animal that moves upon the ground, but ministers to some
other life. There is no leaf of the forest, or lowly blade of grass, but has
its ministry. Every tree and shrub and leaf pours forth that element of life
without which neither man nor animal could live; and man and animal, in
turn, minister to the life of tree and shrub and leaf. The flowers breathe
fragrance and unfold their beauty in blessing

                                                                     21

to the world. The sun sheds its light to gladden a thousand worlds. The
ocean, itself the source of all our springs and fountains, receives the
streams from every land, but takes to give. The mists ascending from its
bosom fall in showers to water the earth, that it may bring forth and bud.

The angels of glory find their joy in giving,--giving love and tireless
watchcare to souls that are fallen and unholy. Heavenly beings woo the
hearts of men; they bring to this dark world light from the courts above; by
gentle and patient ministry they move upon the human spirit, to bring the
lost into a fellowship with Christ which is even closer than they themselves
can know.

But turning from all lesser representations, we behold God in Jesus. Looking
unto Jesus we see that it is the glory of our God to give. "I do nothing of
Myself," said Christ; "the living Father hath sent Me, and I live by the
Father." "I seek not Mine own glory," but the glory of Him that sent Me.
John 8:28; 6:57; 8:50; 7:18. In these words is set forth the great principle
which is the law of life for the universe. All things Christ received from
God, but He took to give. So in the heavenly courts, in His ministry for all
created beings: through the beloved Son, the Father's life flows out to all;
through the Son it returns, in praise and joyous service, a tide of love, to
the great Source of all. And thus through Christ the circuit of beneficence
is complete, representing the character of the great Giver, the law of life.

In heaven itself this law was broken. Sin originated in self-seeking.
Lucifer, the covering cherub, desired to be first in heaven. He sought to
gain control of heavenly beings, to draw them away from their Creator, and
to win their homage to himself. Therefore he misrepresented God,

22

attributing to Him the desire for self-exaltation. With his own evil
characteristics he sought to invest the loving Creator. Thus he deceived
angels. Thus he deceived men. He led them to doubt the word of God, and to
distrust His goodness. Because God is a God of justice and terrible majesty,
Satan caused them to look upon Him as severe and unforgiving. Thus he drew
men to join him in rebellion against God, and the night of woe settled down
upon the world.

The earth was dark through misapprehension of God. That the gloomy shadows
might be lightened, that the world might be brought back to God, Satan's
deceptive power was to be broken. This could not be done by force. The
exercise of force is contrary to the principles of God's government; He
desires only the service of love; and love cannot be commanded; it cannot be
won by force or authority. Only by love is love awakened. To know God is to
love Him; His character must be manifested in contrast to the character of
Satan. This work only one Being in all the universe could do. Only He who
knew the height and depth of the love of God could make it known. Upon the
world's dark night the Sun of Righteousness must rise, "with healing in His
wings." Mal. 4:2.

The plan for our redemption was not an afterthought, a plan formulated after
the fall of Adam. It was a revelation of "the mystery which hath been kept
in silence through times eternal." Rom. 16:25, R. V. It was an unfolding of
the principles that from eternal ages have been the foundation of God's
throne. From the beginning, God and Christ knew of the apostasy of Satan,
and of the fall of man through the deceptive power of the apostate. God did
not ordain that sin should exist, but He foresaw its existence, and made
provision to meet the terrible emergency. So great was His love for the
world, that He covenanted to give His only-begotten Son, "that whosoever
believeth in Him should not perish, but have everlasting life." John 3:16.

Lucifer had said, "I will exalt my throne above the stars of God; . . . I
will be like the Most High." Isa. 14:13, 14. But Christ, "being in the form
of God, counted it not a thing to be grasped to be on an equality with God,
but emptied Himself, taking the form of a servant, being made in the
likeness of men." Phil. 2:6, 7, R. V., margin.

This was a voluntary sacrifice. Jesus might have remained at the Father's
side. He might have retained the glory of heaven, and the homage of the
angels. But He chose to give back the scepter into

                                                                     23

the Father's hands, and to step down from the throne of the universe, that
He might bring light to the benighted, and life to the perishing.

Nearly two thousand years ago, a voice of mysterious import was heard in
heaven, from the throne of God, "Lo, I come." "Sacrifice and offering Thou
wouldest not, but a body hast Thou prepared Me. . . . Lo, I come (in the
volume of the Book it is written of Me,) to do Thy will, O God." Heb.
10:5-7. In these words is announced the fulfillment of the purpose that had
been hidden from eternal ages. Christ was about to visit our world, and to
become incarnate. He says, "A body hast Thou prepared Me." Had He appeared
with the glory that was His with the Father before the world was, we could
not have endured the light of His presence. That we might behold it and not
be destroyed, the manifestation of His glory was shrouded. His divinity was
veiled with humanity,--the invisible glory in the visible human form.

This great purpose had been shadowed forth in types and symbols. The burning
bush, in which Christ appeared to Moses, revealed God. The symbol chosen for
the representation of the Deity was a lowly shrub, that seemingly had no
attractions. This enshrined the Infinite. The all-merciful God shrouded His
glory in a most humble type, that Moses could look upon it and live. So in
the pillar of cloud by day and the pillar of fire by night, God communicated
with Israel, revealing to men His will, and imparting to them His grace.
God's glory was subdued, and His majesty veiled, that the weak vision of
finite men might behold it. So Christ was to come in "the body of our
humiliation" (Phil. 3:21, R. V.), "in the likeness of men." In the eyes of
the world He possessed no beauty that they should desire Him; yet He was the
incarnate God, the light of heaven and earth. His glory was veiled, His
greatness and majesty were hidden, that He might draw near to sorrowful,
tempted men.

God commanded Moses for Israel, "Let them make Me a sanctuary; that I may
dwell among them" (Ex. 25:8), and He abode in the sanctuary, in the midst of
His people. Through all their weary wandering in the desert, the symbol of
His presence was with them. So Christ set up His tabernacle in the midst of
our human encampment. He pitched His tent by the side of the tents of men,
that He might dwell among us, and make us familiar with His divine character
and life. "The Word became flesh, and tabernacled among us (and we beheld
His glory, glory as of

24

the Only Begotten from the Father), full of grace and truth." John 1:14, R.
V., margin.

Since Jesus came to dwell with us, we know that God is acquainted with our
trials, and sympathizes with our griefs. Every son and daughter of Adam may
understand that our Creator is the friend of sinners. For in every doctrine
of grace, every promise of joy, every deed of love, every divine attraction
presented in the Saviour's life on earth, we see "God with us."

Satan represents God's law of love as a law of selfishness. He declares that
it is impossible for us to obey its precepts. The fall of our first parents,
with all the woe that has resulted, he charges upon the Creator, leading men
to look upon God as the author of sin, and suffering, and death. Jesus was
to unveil this deception. As one of us He was to give an example of
obedience. For this He took upon Himself our nature, and passed through our
experiences. "In all things it behooved Him to be made like unto His
brethren." Heb. 2:17. If we had to bear anything which Jesus did not endure,
then upon this point Satan would represent the power of God as insufficient
for us. Therefore Jesus was "in all points tempted like as we are." Heb.
4:15. He endured every trial to which we are subject. And He exercised in
His own behalf no power that is not freely offered to us. As man, He met
temptation, and overcame in the strength given Him from God. He says, "I
delight to do Thy will, O My God: yea, Thy law is within My heart." Ps.
40:8. As He went about doing good, and healing all who were afflicted by
Satan, He made plain to men the character of God's law and the nature of His
service. His life testifies that it is possible for us also to obey the law
of God.

By His humanity, Christ touched humanity; by His divinity, He lays hold upon
the throne of God. As the Son of man, He gave us an example of obedience; as
the Son of God, He gives us power to obey. It was Christ who from the bush
on Mount Horeb spoke to Moses saying, "I Am That I Am. . . . Thus shalt thou
say unto the children of Israel, I Am hath sent me unto you." Ex. 3:14. This
was the pledge of Israel's deliverance. So when He came "in the likeness of
men," He declared Himself the I Am. The Child of Bethlehem, the meek and
lowly Saviour, is God "manifest in the flesh." 1 Tim. 3:16. And to us He
says: "I Am the Good Shepherd." "I Am the living Bread." "I Am the Way, the
Truth, and the Life." "All power is given

                                                                     25

unto Me in heaven and in earth." John 10:11; 6:51; 14:6; Matt. 28:18. I Am
the assurance of every promise. I Am; be not afraid. "God with us" is the
surety of our deliverance from sin, the assurance of our power to obey the
law of heaven.

In stooping to take upon Himself humanity, Christ revealed a character the
opposite of the character of Satan. But He stepped still lower in the path
of humiliation. "Being found in fashion as a man, He humbled Himself, and
became obedient unto death, even the death of the cross." Phil. 2:8. As the
high priest laid aside his gorgeous pontifical robes, and officiated in the
white linen dress of the common priest, so Christ took the form of a
servant, and offered sacrifice, Himself the priest, Himself the victim. "He
was wounded for our transgressions, He was bruised for our iniquities: the
chastisement of our peace was upon Him." Isa. 53:5.

Christ was treated as we deserve, that we might be treated as He deserves.
He was condemned for our sins, in which He had no share, that we might be
justified by His righteousness, in which we had no share. He suffered the
death which was ours, that we might receive the life which was His. "With
His stripes we are healed."

By His life and His death, Christ has achieved even more than recovery from
the ruin wrought through sin. It was Satan's purpose to bring about an
eternal separation between God and man; but in Christ we become more closely
united to God than if we had never fallen. In taking our nature, the Saviour
has bound Himself to humanity by a tie that is never to be broken. Through
the eternal ages He is linked with us. "God so loved the world, that He gave
His only-begotten Son." John 3:16. He gave Him not only to bear our sins,
and to die as our sacrifice; He gave Him to the fallen race. To assure us of
His immutable counsel of peace, God gave His only-begotten Son to become one
of the human family, forever to retain His human nature. This is the pledge
that God will fulfill His word. "Unto us a child is born, unto us a son is
given: and the government shall be upon His shoulder." God has adopted human
nature in the person of His Son, and has carried the same into the highest
heaven. It is the "Son of man" who shares the throne of the universe. It is
the "Son of man" whose name shall be called, "Wonderful, Counselor, The
mighty God, The everlasting Father, The Prince of Peace." Isa. 9:6. The I Am
is the Daysman between God and humanity, laying His hand upon both. He who
is "holy, harmless, undefiled, separate from sinners," is not ashamed to
call us brethren. Heb. 7:26; 2:11. In Christ the family of earth and the
family of heaven are

26

bound together. Christ glorified is our brother. Heaven is enshrined in
humanity, and humanity is enfolded in the bosom of Infinite Love.

Of His people God says, "They shall be as the stones of a crown, lifted up
as an ensign upon His land. For how great is His goodness, and how great is
His beauty!" Zech. 9:16, 17. The exaltation of the redeemed will be an
eternal testimony to God's mercy. "In the ages to come," He will "show the
exceeding riches of His grace in His kindness toward us through Christ
Jesus." "To the intent that . . . unto the principalities and the powers in
the heavenly places might be made known . . . the manifold wisdom of God,
according to the eternal purpose which He purposed in Christ Jesus our
Lord." Eph. 2:7; 3:10, 11, R. V.

Through Christ's redeeming work the government of God stands justified. The
Omnipotent One is made known as the God of love. Satan's charges are
refuted, and his character unveiled. Rebellion can never again arise. Sin
can never again enter the universe. Through eternal ages all are secure from
apostasy. By love's self-sacrifice, the inhabitants of earth and heaven are
bound to their Creator in bonds of indissoluble union.

The work of redemption will be complete. In the place where sin abounded,
God's grace much more abounds. The earth itself, the very field that Satan
claims as his, is to be not only ransomed but exalted. Our little world,
under the curse of sin the one dark blot in His glorious creation, will be
honored above all other worlds in the universe of God. Here, where the Son
of God tabernacled in humanity; where the King of glory lived and suffered
and died,--here, when He shall make all things new, the tabernacle of God
shall be with men, "and He will dwell with them, and they shall be His
people, and God Himself shall be with them, and be their God." And through
endless ages as the redeemed walk in the light of the Lord, they will praise
Him for His unspeakable Gift,--

                             Immanuel, "God with us."




                                                                     (27)

                             Chapter 2

                             The Chosen People


For more than a thousand years the Jewish people had awaited the Saviour's
coming. Upon this event they had rested their brightest hopes. In song and
prophecy, in temple rite and household prayer, they had enshrined His name.
And yet at His coming they knew Him not. The Beloved of heaven was to them
"as a root out of a dry ground;" He had "no form nor comeliness;" and they
saw in Him no beauty that they should desire Him. "He came unto His own, and
His own received Him not." Isa. 53:2; John 1:11.

Yet God had chosen Israel. He had called them to preserve among men the
knowledge of His law, and of the symbols and prophecies that pointed to the
Saviour. He desired them to be as wells of salvation to the world. What
Abraham was in the land of his sojourn, what Joseph was in Egypt, and Daniel
in the courts of Babylon, the Hebrew people were to be among the nations.
They were to reveal God to men.

In the call of Abraham the Lord had said, "I will bless thee; . . . and thou
shalt be a blessing: . . . and in thee shall all families of the earth be
blessed." Gen. 12:2, 3. The same teaching was repeated through the prophets.
Even after Israel had been wasted by war and captivity, the promise was
theirs, "The remnant of Jacob shall be in the midst of many people as a dew
from the Lord, as the showers upon the grass, that tarrieth not for man, nor
waiteth for the sons of men." Micah 5:7. Concerning the temple at Jerusalem,
the Lord declared through Isaiah, "Mine house shall be called an house of
prayer for all peoples." Isa. 56:7, R. V.

28


But the Israelites fixed their hopes upon worldly greatness. From the time
of their entrance to the land of Canaan, they departed from the commandments
of God, and followed the ways of the heathen. It was in vain that God sent
them warning by His prophets. In vain they suffered the chastisement of
heathen oppression. Every reformation was followed by deeper apostasy.

Had Israel been true to God, He could have accomplished His purpose through
their honor and exaltation. If they had walked in the ways of obedience, He
would have made them "high above all nations which He hath made, in praise,
and in name, and in honor." "All people of the earth," said Moses, "shall
see that thou art called by the name of the Lord; and they shall be afraid
of thee." "The nations which shall hear all these statutes" shall say,
"Surely this great nation is a wise and understanding people." Deut. 26:19;
28:10; 4:6. But because of their unfaithfulness, God's purpose could be
wrought out only through continued adversity and humiliation.

They were brought into subjection to Babylon, and scattered through the
lands of the heathen. In affliction many renewed their faithfulness to His
covenant. While they hung their harps upon the willows, and mourned for the
holy temple that was laid waste, the light of truth shone out through them,
and a knowledge of God was spread among the nations. The heathen systems of
sacrifice were a perversion of the system that God had appointed; and many a
sincere observer of heathen rites learned from the Hebrews the meaning of
the service divinely ordained, and in faith grasped the promise of a
Redeemer.

Many of the exiles suffered persecution. Not a few lost their lives because
of their refusal to disregard the Sabbath and to observe the heathen
festivals. As idolaters were roused to crush out the truth, the Lord brought
His servants face to face with kings and rulers, that they and their people
might receive the light. Time after time the greatest monarchs were led to
proclaim the supremacy of the God whom their Hebrew captives worshiped.

By the Babylonish captivity the Israelites were effectually cured of the
worship of graven images. During the centuries that followed, they suffered
from the oppression of heathen foes, until the conviction became fixed that
their prosperity depended upon their obedience to the law of God. But with
too many of the people obedience was not prompted by love. The motive was
selfish. They rendered outward service to God

                                                                     29

as the means of attaining to national greatness. They did not become the
light of the world, but shut themselves away from the world in order to
escape temptation to idolatry. In the instruction given through Moses, God
had placed restrictions upon their association with idolaters; but this
teaching had been misinterpreted. It was intended to prevent them from
conforming to the practices of the heathen. But it was used to build up a
wall of separation between Israel and all other nations. The Jews looked
upon Jerusalem as their heaven, and they were actually jealous lest the Lord
should show mercy to the Gentiles.

After the return from Babylon, much attention was given to religious
instruction. All over the country, synagogues were erected, where the law
was expounded by the priests and scribes. And schools were established,
which, together with the arts and sciences, professed to teach the
principles of righteousness. But these agencies became corrupted. During the
captivity, many of the people had received heathen ideas and customs, and
these were brought into their religious service. In many things they
conformed to the practices of idolaters.

As they departed from God, the Jews in a great degree lost sight of the
teaching of the ritual service. That service had been instituted by Christ
Himself. In every part it was a symbol of Him; and it had been full of
vitality and spiritual beauty. But the Jews lost the spiritual life from
their ceremonies, and clung to the dead forms. They trusted to the
sacrifices and ordinances themselves, instead of resting upon Him to whom
they pointed. In order to supply the place of that which they had lost, the
priests and rabbis multiplied requirements of their own; and the more rigid
they grew, the less of the love of God was manifested. They measured their
holiness by the multitude of their ceremonies, while their hearts were
filled with pride and hypocrisy.

With all their minute and burdensome injunctions, it was an impossibility to
keep the law. Those who desired to serve God, and who tried to observe the
rabbinical precepts, toiled under a heavy burden. They could find no rest
from the accusings of a troubled conscience. Thus Satan worked to discourage
the people, to lower their conception of the character of God, and to bring
the faith of Israel into contempt. He hoped to establish the claim put forth
when he rebelled in heaven,--that the requirements of God were unjust, and
could not be obeyed. Even Israel, he declared, did not keep the law.

While the Jews desired the advent of the Messiah, they had no true

30

conception of His mission. They did not seek redemption from sin, but
deliverance from the Romans. They looked for the Messiah to come as a
conqueror, to break the oppressor's power, and exalt Israel to universal
dominion. Thus the way was prepared for them to reject the Saviour.

At the time of the birth of Christ the nation was chafing under the rule of
her foreign masters, and racked with internal strife. The Jews had been
permitted to maintain the form of a separate government; but nothing could
disguise the fact that they were under the Roman yoke, or reconcile them to
the restriction of their power. The Romans claimed the right of appointing
and removing the high priest, and the office was often secured by fraud,
bribery, and even murder. Thus the priesthood became more and more corrupt.
Yet the priests still possessed great power, and they employed it for
selfish and mercenary ends. The people were subjected to their merciless
demands, and were also heavily taxed by the Romans. This state of affairs
caused widespread discontent. Popular outbreaks were frequent. Greed and
violence, distrust and spiritual apathy, were eating out the very heart of
the nation.

Hatred of the Romans, and national and spiritual pride, led the Jews still
to adhere rigorously to their forms of worship. The priests tried to
maintain a reputation for sanctity by scrupulous attention to the ceremonies
of religion. The people, in their darkness and oppression, and the rulers,
thirsting for power, longed for the coming of One who would vanquish their
enemies and restore the kingdom to Israel. They had studied the prophecies,
but without spiritual insight. Thus they overlooked those scriptures that
point to the humiliation of Christ's first advent, and misapplied those that
speak of the glory of His second coming. Pride obscured their vision. They
interpreted prophecy in accordance with their selfish desires.




                                                                     (31)

                             Chapter 3

                             "The Fullness of the Time"


"When the fullness of the time was come, God sent forth His Son, . . . to
redeem them that were under the law, that we might receive the adoption of
sons." Gal. 4:4, 5.

The Saviour's coming was foretold in Eden. When Adam and Eve first heard the
promise, they looked for its speedy fulfillment. They joyfully welcomed
their first-born son, hoping that he might be the Deliverer. But the
fulfillment of the promise tarried. Those who first received it died without
the sight. From the days of Enoch the promise was repeated through
patriarchs and prophets, keeping alive the hope of His appearing, and yet He
came not. The prophecy of Daniel revealed the time of His advent, but not
all rightly interpreted the message. Century after century passed away; the
voices of the prophets ceased. The hand of the oppressor was heavy upon
Israel, and many were ready to exclaim, "The days are prolonged, and every
vision faileth." Ezek. 12:22.

32


But like the stars in the vast circuit of their appointed path, God's
purposes know no haste and no delay. Through the symbols of the great
darkness and the smoking furnace, God had revealed to Abraham the bondage of
Israel in Egypt, and had declared that the time of their sojourning should
be four hundred years. "Afterward," He said, "shall they come out with great
substance." Gen. 15:14. Against that word, all the power of Pharaoh's proud
empire battled in vain. On "the self-same day" appointed in the divine
promise, "it came to pass, that all the hosts of the Lord went out from the
land of Egypt." Ex. 12:41. So in heaven's council the hour for the coming of
Christ had been determined. When the great clock of time pointed to that
hour, Jesus was born in Bethlehem.

"When the fullness of the time was come, God sent forth His Son." Providence
had directed the movements of nations, and the tide of human impulse and
influence, until the world was ripe for the coming of the Deliverer. The
nations were united under one government. One language was widely spoken,
and was everywhere recognized as the language of literature. From all lands
the Jews of the dispersion gathered to Jerusalem to the annual feasts. As
these returned to the places of their sojourn, they could spread throughout
the world the tidings of the Messiah's coming.

At this time the systems of heathenism were losing their hold upon the
people. Men were weary of pageant and fable. They longed for a religion that
could satisfy the heart. While the light of truth seemed to have departed
from among men, there were souls who were looking for light, and who were
filled with perplexity and sorrow. They were thirsting for a knowledge of
the living God, for some assurance of a life beyond the grave.

As the Jews had departed from God, faith had grown dim, and hope had
well-nigh ceased to illuminate the future. The words of the prophets were
uncomprehended. To the masses of the people, death was a dread mystery;
beyond was uncertainty and gloom. It was not alone the wailing of the
mothers of Bethlehem, but the cry from the great heart of humanity, that was
borne to the prophet across the centuries,--the voice heard in Ramah,
"lamentation, and weeping, and great mourning, Rachel weeping for her
children, and would not be comforted, because they are not." Matt. 2:18. In
"the region and shadow of death," men sat unsolaced. With longing eyes they
looked for the

                                                                     33

coming of the Deliverer, when the darkness should be dispelled, and the
mystery of the future should be made plain.

Outside of the Jewish nation there were men who foretold the appearance of a
divine instructor. These men were seeking for truth, and to them the Spirit
of Inspiration was imparted. One after another, like stars in the darkened
heavens, such teachers had arisen. Their words of prophecy had kindled hope
in the hearts of thousands of the Gentile world.

For hundreds of years the Scriptures had been translated into the Greek
language, then widely spoken throughout the Roman Empire. The Jews were
scattered everywhere, and their expectation of the Messiah's coming was to
some extent shared by the Gentiles. Among those whom the Jews styled heathen
were men who had a better understanding of the Scripture prophecies
concerning the Messiah than had the teachers in Israel. There were some who
hoped for His coming as a deliverer from sin. Philosophers endeavored to
study into the mystery of the Hebrew economy. But the bigotry of the Jews
hindered the spread of the light. Intent on maintaining the separation
between themselves and other nations, they were unwilling to impart the
knowledge they still possessed concerning the symbolic service. The true

34

Interpreter must come. The One whom all these types prefigured must explain
their significance.

Through nature, through types and symbols, through patriarchs and prophets,
God had spoken to the world. Lessons must be given to humanity in the
language of humanity. The Messenger of the covenant must speak. His voice
must be heard in His own temple. Christ must come to utter words which
should be clearly and definitely understood. He, the author of truth, must
separate truth from the chaff of man's utterance, which had made it of no
effect. The principles of God's government and the plan of redemption must
be clearly defined. The lessons of the Old Testament must be fully set
before men.

Among the Jews there were yet steadfast souls, descendants of that holy line
through whom a knowledge of God had been preserved. These still looked for
the hope of the promise made unto the fathers. They strengthened their faith
by dwelling upon the assurance given through Moses, "A Prophet shall the
Lord your God raise up unto you of your brethren, like unto me; Him shall ye
hear in all things whatsoever He shall say unto you." Acts 3:22. Again, they
read how the Lord would anoint One "to preach good tidings unto the meek,"
"to bind up the brokenhearted, to proclaim liberty to the captives," and to
declare the "acceptable year of the Lord." Isa. 61:1, 2. They read how He
would "set judgment in the earth," how the isles should "wait for His law,"
how the Gentiles should come to His light, and kings to the brightness of
His rising. Isa. 42:4; 60:3.

The dying words of Jacob filled them with hope: "The scepter shall not
depart from Judah, nor a lawgiver from between his feet, until Shiloh come."
Gen. 49:10. The waning power of Israel testified that the Messiah's coming
was at hand. The prophecy of Daniel pictured the glory of His reign over an
empire which should succeed all earthly kingdoms; and, said the prophet, "It
shall stand forever." Dan. 2:44. While few understood the nature of Christ's
mission, there was a widespread expectation of a mighty prince who should
establish his kingdom in Israel, and who should come as a deliverer to the
nations.

The fullness of the time had come. Humanity, becoming more degraded through
ages of transgression, called for the coming of the Redeemer. Satan had been
working to make the gulf deep and impassable between earth and heaven. By
his falsehoods he had emboldened

                                                                     35

men in sin. It was his purpose to wear out the forbearance of God, and to
extinguish His love for man, so that He would abandon the world to satanic
jurisdiction.

Satan was seeking to shut out from men a knowledge of God, to turn their
attention from the temple of God, and to establish his own kingdom. His
strife for supremacy had seemed to be almost wholly successful. It is true
that in every generation God had His agencies. Even among the heathen there
were men through whom Christ was working to uplift the people from their sin
and degradation. But these men were despised and hated. Many of them
suffered a violent death. The dark shadow that Satan had cast over the world
grew deeper and deeper.

Through heathenism, Satan had for ages turned men away from God; but he won
his great triumph in perverting the faith of Israel. By contemplating and
worshiping their own conceptions, the heathen had lost a knowledge of God,
and had become more and more corrupt. So it was with Israel. The principle
that man can save himself by his own works lay at the foundation of every
heathen religion; it had now

36

become the principle of the Jewish religion. Satan had implanted this
principle. Wherever it is held, men have no barrier against sin.

The message of salvation is communicated to men through human agencies. But
the Jews had sought to make a monopoly of the truth which is eternal life.
They had hoarded the living manna, and it had turned to corruption. The
religion which they tried to shut up to themselves became an offense. They
robbed God of His glory, and defrauded the world by a counterfeit of the
gospel. They had refused to surrender themselves to God for the salvation of
the world, and they became agents of Satan for its destruction.

The people whom God had called to be the pillar and ground of the truth had
become representatives of Satan. They were doing the work that he desired
them to do, taking a course to misrepresent the character of God, and cause
the world to look upon Him as a tyrant. The very priests who ministered in
the temple had lost sight of the significance of the service they performed.
They had ceased to look beyond the symbol to the thing signified. In
presenting the sacrificial offerings they were as actors in a play. The
ordinances which God Himself had appointed were made the means of blinding
the mind and hardening the heart. God could do no more for man through these
channels. The whole system must be swept away.

The deception of sin had reached its height. All the agencies for depraving
the souls of men had been put in operation. The Son of God, looking upon the
world, beheld suffering and misery. With pity He saw how men had become
victims of satanic cruelty. He looked with compassion upon those who were
being corrupted, murdered, and lost. They had chosen a ruler who chained
them to his car as captives. Bewildered and deceived, they were moving on in
gloomy procession toward eternal ruin,--to death in which is no hope of
life, toward night to which comes no morning. Satanic agencies were
incorporated with men. The bodies of human beings, made for the dwelling
place of God, had become the habitation of demons. The senses, the nerves,
the passions, the organs of men, were worked by supernatural agencies in the
indulgence of the vilest lust. The very stamp of demons was impressed upon
the countenances of men. Human faces reflected the expression of the legions
of evil with which they were possessed. Such was the prospect upon which the
world's Redeemer looked. What a spectacle for Infinite Purity to behold!

                                                                     37


Sin had become a science, and vice was consecrated as a part of religion.
Rebellion had struck its roots deep into the heart, and the hostility of man
was most violent against heaven. It was demonstrated before the universe
that, apart from God, humanity could not be uplifted. A new element of life
and power must be imparted by Him who made the world.

With intense interest the unfallen worlds had watched to see Jehovah arise,
and sweep away the inhabitants of the earth. And if God should do this,
Satan was ready to carry out his plan for securing to himself the allegiance
of heavenly beings. He had declared that the principles of God's government
make forgiveness impossible. Had the world been destroyed, he would have
claimed that his accusations were proved true. He was ready to cast blame
upon God, and to spread his rebellion to the worlds above. But instead of
destroying the world, God sent His Son to save it. Though corruption and
defiance might be seen in every part of the alien province, a way for its
recovery was provided. At the very crisis, when Satan seemed about to
triumph, the Son of God came with the embassage of divine grace. Through
every age, through every hour, the love of God had been exercised toward the
fallen race. Notwithstanding the perversity of men, the signals of mercy had
been continually exhibited. And when the fullness of the time had come, the
Deity was glorified by pouring upon the world a flood of healing grace that
was never to be obstructed or withdrawn till the plan of salvation should be
fulfilled.

Satan was exulting that he had succeeded in debasing the image of God in
humanity. Then Jesus came to restore in man the image of his

38

Maker. None but Christ can fashion anew the character that has been ruined
by sin. He came to expel the demons that had controlled the will. He came to
lift us up from the dust, to reshape the marred character after the pattern
of His divine character, and to make it beautiful with His own glory.




                                                                     (43)

                             Chapter 4

                             Unto You a Saviour


The King of glory stooped low to take humanity. Rude and forbidding were His
earthly surroundings. His glory was veiled, that the majesty of His outward
form might not become an object of attraction. He shunned all outward
display. Riches, worldly honor, and human greatness can never save a soul
from death; Jesus purposed that no attraction of an earthly nature should
call men to His side. Only the beauty of heavenly truth must draw those who
would follow Him. The character of the Messiah had long been foretold in
prophecy, and He desired men to accept Him upon the testimony of the word of
God.

The angels had wondered at the glorious plan of redemption. They watched to
see how the people of God would receive His Son, clothed in the garb of
humanity. Angels came to the land of the chosen people. Other nations were
dealing in fables and worshiping false gods. To the land where the glory of
God had been revealed, and the light of prophecy had shone, the angels came.
They came unseen to Jerusalem, to the appointed expositors of the Sacred
Oracles, and the ministers of God's

44

house. Already to Zacharias the priest, as he ministered before the altar,
the nearness of Christ's coming had been announced. Already the forerunner
was born, his mission attested by miracle and prophecy. The tidings of his
birth and the wonderful significance of his mission had been spread abroad.
Yet Jerusalem was not preparing to welcome her Redeemer.

With amazement the heavenly messengers beheld the indifference of that
people whom God had called to communicate to the world the light of sacred
truth. The Jewish nation had been preserved as a witness that Christ was to
be born of the seed of Abraham and of David's line; yet they knew not that
His coming was now at hand. In the temple the morning and the evening
sacrifice daily pointed to the Lamb of God; yet even here was no preparation
to receive Him. The priests and teachers of the nation knew not that the
greatest event of the ages was about to take place. They rehearsed their
meaningless prayers, and performed the rites of worship to be seen by men,
but in their strife for riches and worldly honor they were not prepared for
the revelation of the Messiah. The same indifference pervaded the land of
Israel. Hearts selfish and world-engrossed were untouched by the joy that
thrilled all heaven. Only a few were longing to behold the Unseen. To these
heaven's embassy was sent.

Angels attend Joseph and Mary as they journey from their home in Nazareth to
the city of David. The decree of imperial Rome for the enrollment of the
peoples of her vast dominion has extended to the dwellers among the hills of
Galilee. As in old time Cyrus was called to the throne of the world's empire
that he might set free the captives of the Lord, so Caesar Augustus is made
the agent for the fulfillment of God's purpose in bringing the mother of
Jesus to Bethlehem. She is of the lineage of David, and the Son of David
must be born in David's city. Out of Bethlehem, said the prophet, "shall He
come forth . . . that is to be ruler in Israel; whose goings forth have been
from of old, from the days of eternity." Micah 5:2, margin. But in the city
of their royal line, Joseph and Mary are unrecognized and unhonored. Weary
and homeless, they traverse the entire length of the narrow street, from the
gate of the city to the eastern extremity of the town, vainly seeking a
resting place for the night. There is no room for them at the crowded inn.
In a rude building where the beasts are sheltered, they at last find refuge,
and here the Redeemer of the world is born.

                                                                     47


Men know it not, but the tidings fill heaven with rejoicing. With a deeper
and more tender interest the holy beings from the world of light are drawn
to the earth. The whole world is brighter for His presence. Above the hills
of Bethlehem are gathered an innumerable throng of angels. They wait the
signal to declare the glad news to the world. Had the leaders in Israel been
true to their trust, they might have shared the joy of heralding the birth
of Jesus. But now they are passed by.

God declares, "I will pour water upon him that is thirsty, and floods upon
the dry ground." "Unto the upright there ariseth light in the darkness."
Isa. 44:3; Ps. 112:4. To those who are seeking for light, and who accept it
with gladness, the bright rays from the throne of God will shine.

In the fields where the boy David had led his flock, shepherds were still
keeping watch by night. Through the silent hours they talked together of the
promised Saviour, and prayed for the coming of the King to David's throne.
"And, lo, the angel of the Lord came upon them, and the glory of the Lord
shone round about them: and they were sore afraid. And the angel said unto
them, Fear not: for, behold, I bring you good tidings of great joy, which
shall be to all people. For unto you is born this day in the city of David a
Saviour, which is Christ the Lord."

At these words, visions of glory fill the minds of the listening shepherds.
The Deliverer has come to Israel! Power, exaltation, triumph, are associated
with His coming. But the angel must prepare them to recognize their Saviour
in poverty and humiliation. "This shall be a sign unto you," he says; "Ye
shall find the babe wrapped in swaddling clothes, lying in a manger."

The heavenly messenger had quieted their fears. He had told them how to find
Jesus. With tender regard for their human weakness, he had

48

given them time to become accustomed to the divine radiance. Then the joy
and glory could no longer be hidden. The whole plain was lighted up with the
bright shining of the hosts of God. Earth was hushed, and heaven stooped to
listen to the song,--

                "Glory to God in the highest,
                 And on earth peace, good will toward men."

Oh that today the human family could recognize that song! The declaration
then made, the note then struck, will swell to the close of time, and
resound to the ends of the earth. When the Sun of Righteousness shall arise,
with healing in His wings, that song will be re-echoed by the voice of a
great multitude, as the voice of many waters, saying, "Alleluia: for the
Lord God omnipotent reigneth." Rev. 19:6.

As the angels disappeared, the light faded away, and the shadows of night
once more fell on the hills of Bethlehem. But the brightest picture ever
beheld by human eyes remained in the memory of the shepherds. "And it came
to pass, as the angels were gone away from them into heaven, the shepherds
said one to another, Let us now go even unto Bethlehem, and see this thing
which is come to pass, which the Lord hath made known unto us. And they came
with haste, and found Mary, and Joseph, and the babe lying in a manger."

Departing with great joy, they made known the things they had seen and
heard. "And all they that heard it wondered at those things which were told
them by the shepherds. But Mary kept all these things, and pondered them in
her heart. And the shepherds returned, glorifying and praising God."

Heaven and earth are no wider apart today than when shepherds listened to
the angels' song. Humanity is still as much the object of heaven's
solicitude as when common men of common occupations met angels at noonday,
and talked with the heavenly messengers in the vineyards and the fields. To
us in the common walks of life, heaven may be very near. Angels from the
courts above will attend the steps of those who come and go at God's
command.

The story of Bethlehem is an exhaustless theme. In it is hidden "the depth
of the riches both of the wisdom and knowledge of God." Rom. 11:33. We
marvel at the Saviour's sacrifice in exchanging the throne of heaven for the
manger, and the companionship of adoring angels for the

                                                                     49

beasts of the stall. Human pride and self-sufficiency stand rebuked in His
presence. Yet this was but the beginning of His wonderful condescension. It
would have been an almost infinite humiliation for the Son of God to take
man's nature, even when Adam stood in his innocence in Eden. But Jesus
accepted humanity when the race had been weakened by four thousand years of
sin. Like every child of Adam He accepted the results of the working of the
great law of heredity. What these results were is shown in the history of
His earthly ancestors. He came with such a heredity to share our sorrows and
temptations, and to give us the example of a sinless life.

Satan in heaven had hated Christ for His position in the courts of God. He
hated Him the more when he himself was dethroned. He hated Him who pledged
Himself to redeem a race of sinners. Yet into the world where Satan claimed
dominion God permitted His Son to come, a helpless babe, subject to the
weakness of humanity. He permitted Him to meet life's peril in common with
every human soul, to fight the battle as every child of humanity must fight
it, at the risk of failure and eternal loss.

The heart of the human father yearns over his son. He looks into the face of
his little child, and trembles at the thought of life's peril. He longs to
shield his dear one from Satan's power, to hold him back from temptation and
conflict. To meet a bitterer conflict and a more fearful risk, God gave His
only-begotten Son, that the path of life might be made sure for our little
ones. "Herein is love." Wonder, O heavens! and be astonished, O earth!




(50)

                             Chapter 5

                             The Dedication


About forty days after the birth of Christ, Joseph and Mary took Him to
Jerusalem, to present Him to the Lord, and to offer sacrifice. This was
according to the Jewish law, and as man's substitute Christ must conform to
the law in every particular. He had already been subjected to the rite of
circumcision, as a pledge of His obedience to the law.

As an offering for the mother, the law required a lamb of the first year for
a burnt offering, and a young pigeon or a turtledove for a sin offering. But
the law provided that if the parents were too poor to bring a lamb, a pair
of turtledoves or two young pigeons, one for a burnt offering, the other for
a sin offering, might be accepted.

The offerings presented to the Lord were to be without blemish. These
offerings represented Christ, and from this it is evident that Jesus Himself
was free from physical deformity. He was the "lamb without blemish and
without spot." 1 Peter 1:19. His physical structure was not marred by any
defect; His body was strong and healthy. And throughout His lifetime He
lived in conformity to nature's laws. Physically

                                                                     51

as well as spiritually, He was an example of what God designed all humanity
to be through obedience to His laws.

The dedication of the first-born had its origin in the earliest times. God
had promised to give the First-born of heaven to save the sinner. This gift
was to be acknowledged in every household by the consecration of the
first-born son. He was to be devoted to the priesthood, as a representative
of Christ among men.

In the deliverance of Israel from Egypt, the dedication of the first-born
was again commanded. While the children of Israel were in bondage to the
Egyptians, the Lord directed Moses to go to Pharaoh, king of Egypt, and say,
"Thus saith the Lord, Israel is My son, even My first-born: and I say unto
thee, Let My son go, that he may serve Me: and if thou refuse to let him go,
behold, I will slay thy son, even thy first-born." Ex. 4:22, 23.

Moses delivered his message; but the proud king's answer was, "Who is the
Lord, that I should obey His voice to let Israel go? I know not the Lord,
neither will I let Israel go." Ex. 5:2. The Lord worked for His people by
signs and wonders, sending terrible judgments upon Pharaoh. At length the
destroying angel was bidden to slay the first-born of man and beast among
the Egyptians. That the Israelites might be spared, they were directed to
place upon their doorposts the blood of a slain lamb. Every house was to be
marked, that when the angel came on his mission of death, he might pass over
the homes of the Israelites.

After sending this judgment upon Egypt, the Lord said to Moses, "Sanctify
unto Me all the first-born, . . . both of man and of beast: it is Mine;"
"for on the day that I smote all the first-born in the land of Egypt I
hallowed unto Me all the first-born in Israel, both man and beast: Mine
shall they be: I am the Lord." Ex. 13:2; Num. 3:13. After the tabernacle
service was established, the Lord chose the tribe of Levi in the place of
the first-born of all Israel to minister in the sanctuary. But the
first-born were still to be regarded as the Lord's, and were to be bought
back by a ransom.

Thus the law for the presentation of the first-born was made particularly
significant. While it was a memorial of the Lord's wonderful deliverance of
the children of Israel, it prefigured a greater deliverance, to be wrought
out by the only-begotten Son of God. As the blood sprinkled on the doorposts
had saved the first-born of Israel, so the blood of Christ has power to save
the world.

52


What meaning then was attached to Christ's presentation! But the priest did
not see through the veil; he did not read the mystery beyond. The
presentation of infants was a common scene. Day after day the priest
received the redemption money as the babes were presented to the Lord. Day
after day he went through the routine of his work, giving little heed to the
parents or children, unless he saw some indication of the wealth or high
rank of the parents. Joseph and Mary were poor; and when they came with
their child, the priests saw only a man and woman dressed as Galileans, and
in the humblest garments. There was nothing in their appearance to attract
attention, and they presented only the offering made by the poorer classes.

The priest went through the ceremony of his official work. He took the child
in his arms, and held it up before the altar. After handing it back to its
mother, he inscribed the name "Jesus" on the roll of the first-born. Little
did he think, as the babe lay in his arms, that it was the Majesty of
heaven, the King of glory. The priest did not think that this babe was the
One of whom Moses had written, "A Prophet shall the Lord your God raise up
unto you of your brethren, like unto me; Him shall ye hear in all things
whatsoever He shall say unto you." Acts 3:22. He did not think that this
babe was He whose glory Moses had asked to see. But One greater than Moses
lay in the priest's arms; and when he enrolled the child's name, he was
enrolling the name of One who was the foundation of the whole Jewish
economy. That name was to be its death warrant; for the system of sacrifices
and offerings was waxing old; the type had almost reached its antitype, the
shadow its substance.

The Shekinah had departed from the sanctuary, but in the Child of Bethlehem
was veiled the glory before which angels bow. This unconscious babe was the
promised seed, to whom the first altar at the gate of Eden pointed. This was
Shiloh, the peace giver. It was He who declared Himself to Moses as the I
am. It was He who in the pillar of cloud and of fire had been the guide of
Israel. This was He whom seers had long foretold. He was the Desire of all
nations, the Root and the Offspring of David, and the Bright and Morning
Star. The name of that helpless little babe, inscribed in the roll of
Israel, declaring Him our brother, was the hope of fallen humanity. The
child for whom the redemption money had been paid was He who was to pay the
ransom for the sins of the whole world. He was the true "high priest over
the house of God," the head of "an unchangeable priesthood," the intercessor

                                                                     55

at "the right hand of the Majesty on high." Heb. 10:21; 7:24; 1:3.

Spiritual things are spiritually discerned. In the temple the Son of God was
dedicated to the work He had come to do. The priest looked upon Him as he
would upon any other child. But though he neither saw nor felt anything
unusual, God's act in giving His Son to the world was acknowledged. This
occasion did not pass without some recognition of Christ. "There was a man
in Jerusalem, whose name was Simeon; and the same man was just and devout,
waiting for the Consolation of Israel: and the Holy Ghost was upon him. And
it was revealed unto him by the Holy Ghost, that he should not see death,
before he had seen the Lord's Christ."

As Simeon enters the temple, he sees a family presenting their first-born
son before the priest. Their appearance bespeaks poverty; but Simeon
understands the warnings of the Spirit, and he is deeply impressed that the
infant being presented to the Lord is the Consolation of Israel, the One he
has longed to see. To the astonished priest, Simeon appears like a man
enraptured. The child has been returned to Mary, and he takes it in his arms
and presents it to God, while a joy that he has never before felt enters his
soul. As he lifts the infant Saviour toward heaven, he says, "Lord, now
lettest Thou Thy servant depart in peace, according to Thy word: for mine
eyes have seen Thy salvation, which Thou hast prepared before the face of
all people; a light to lighten the Gentiles, and the glory of Thy people
Israel."

The spirit of prophecy was upon this man of God, and while Joseph and Mary
stood by, wondering at his words, he blessed them, and said unto Mary,
"Behold, this child is set for the fall and rising again of many in Israel;
and for a sign which shall be spoken against; (yea, a sword shall pierce
through thy own soul also,) that the thoughts of many hearts may be
revealed."

Anna also, a prophetess, came in and confirmed Simeon's testimony concerning
Christ. As Simeon spoke, her face lighted up with the glory of God, and she
poured out her heartfelt thanks that she had been permitted to behold Christ
the Lord.

These humble worshipers had not studied the prophecies in vain. But those
who held positions as rulers and priests in Israel, though they too had
before them the precious utterances of prophecy, were not walking in the way
of the Lord, and their eyes were not open to behold the Light of life.

56


So it is still. Events upon which the attention of all heaven is centered
are undiscerned, their very occurrence is unnoticed, by religious leaders,
and worshipers in the house of God. Men acknowledge Christ in history, while
they turn away from the living Christ. Christ in His word calling to
self-sacrifice, in the poor and suffering who plead for relief, in the
righteous cause that involves poverty and toil and reproach, is no more
readily received today than He was eighteen hundred years ago.

Mary pondered the broad and far-reaching prophecy of Simeon. As she looked
upon the child in her arms, and recalled the words spoken by the shepherds
of Bethlehem, she was full of grateful joy and bright hope. Simeon's words
called to her mind the prophetic utterances of Isaiah: "There shall come
forth a rod out of the stem of Jesse, and a Branch shall grow out of his
roots: and the Spirit of the Lord shall rest upon Him, the spirit of wisdom
and understanding, the spirit of counsel and might, the spirit of knowledge
and of the fear of the Lord. . . . And righteousness shall be the girdle of
His loins, and faithfulness the girdle of His reins." "The people that
walked in darkness have seen a great light: they that dwell in the land of
the shadow of death, upon them hath the light shined. . . . For unto us a
child is born, unto us a son is given: and the government shall be upon His
shoulder: and His name shall be called Wonderful, Counselor, The mighty God,
The everlasting Father, The Prince of Peace." Isa. 11:1-5; 9:2-6.

Yet Mary did not understand Christ's mission. Simeon had prophesied of Him
as a light to lighten the Gentiles, as well as a glory to Israel. Thus the
angels had announced the Saviour's birth as tidings of joy to all peoples.
God was seeking to correct the narrow, Jewish conception of the Messiah's
work. He desired men to behold Him, not merely as the deliverer of Israel,
but as the Redeemer of the world. But many years must pass before even the
mother of Jesus would understand His mission.

Mary looked forward to the Messiah's reign on David's throne, but she saw
not the baptism of suffering by which it must be won. Through Simeon it is
revealed that the Messiah is to have no unobstructed passage through the
world. In the words to Mary, "A sword shall pierce through thy own soul
also," God in His tender mercy gives to the mother of Jesus an intimation of
the anguish that already for His sake she had begun to bear.

"Behold," Simeon had said, "this child is set for the fall and rising again
of many in Israel; and for a sign which shall be spoken against."

                                                                     57

They must fall who would rise again. We must fall upon the Rock and be
broken before we can be uplifted in Christ. Self must be dethroned, pride
must be humbled, if we would know the glory of the spiritual kingdom. The
Jews would not accept the honor that is reached through humiliation.
Therefore they would not receive their Redeemer. He was a sign that was
spoken against.

"That the thoughts of many hearts may be revealed." In the light of the
Saviour's life, the hearts of all, even from the Creator to the prince of
darkness, are revealed. Satan has represented God as selfish and oppressive,
as claiming all, and giving nothing, as requiring the service of His
creatures for His own glory, and making no sacrifice for their good. But the
gift of Christ reveals the Father's heart. It testifies that the thoughts of
God toward us are "thoughts of peace, and not of evil." Jer. 29:11. It
declares that while God's hatred of sin is as strong as death, His love for
the sinner is stronger than death. Having undertaken our redemption, He will
spare nothing, however dear, which is necessary to the completion of His
work. No truth essential to our salvation is withheld, no miracle of mercy
is neglected, no divine agency is left unemployed. Favor is heaped upon
favor, gift upon gift. The whole treasury of heaven is open to those He
seeks to save. Having collected the riches of the universe, and laid open
the resources of infinite power, He gives them all into the hands of Christ,
and says, All these are for man. Use these gifts to convince him that there
is no love greater than Mine in earth or heaven. His greatest happiness will
be found in loving Me.

At the cross of Calvary, love and selfishness stood face to face. Here was
their crowning manifestation. Christ had lived only to comfort and bless,
and in putting Him to death, Satan manifested the malignity of his hatred
against God. He made it evident that the real purpose of his rebellion was
to dethrone God, and to destroy Him through whom the love of God was shown.

By the life and the death of Christ, the thoughts of men also are brought to
view. From the manger to the cross, the life of Jesus was a call to
self-surrender, and to fellowship in suffering. It unveiled the purposes of
men. Jesus came with the truth of heaven, and all who were listening to the
voice of the Holy Spirit were drawn to Him. The worshipers of self belonged
to Satan's kingdom. In their attitude toward Christ, all would show on which
side they stood. And thus everyone passes judgment on himself.

58


In the day of final judgment, every lost soul will understand the nature of
his own rejection of truth. The cross will be presented, and its real
bearing will be seen by every mind that has been blinded by transgression.
Before the vision of Calvary with its mysterious Victim, sinners will stand
condemned. Every lying excuse will be swept away. Human apostasy will appear
in its heinous character. Men will see what their choice has been. Every
question of truth and error in the long-standing controversy will then have
been made plain. In the judgment of the universe, God will stand clear of
blame for the existence or continuance of evil. It will be demonstrated that
the divine decrees are not accessory to sin. There was no defect in God's
government, no cause for disaffection. When the thoughts of all hearts shall
be revealed, both the loyal and the rebellious will unite in declaring,
"Just and true are Thy ways, Thou King of saints. Who shall not fear Thee, O
Lord, and glorify Thy name? . . . for Thy judgments are made manifest." Rev.
15:3, 4.




                                                                     (59)

                             Chapter 6

                             "We Have Seen His Star"


"Now when Jesus was born in Bethlehem of Judea in the days of Herod the
king, behold, there came wise men from the East to Jerusalem, saying, Where
is He that is born King of the Jews? for we have seen His star in the East,
and are come to worship Him."

The wise men from the East were philosophers. They belonged to a large and
influential class that included men of noble birth, and comprised much of
the wealth and learning of their nation. Among these were many who imposed
on the credulity of the people. Others were upright men who studied the
indications of Providence in nature, and who were honored for their
integrity and wisdom. Of this character were the wise men who came to Jesus.

The light of God is ever shining amid the darkness of heathenism. As these
magi studied the starry heavens, and sought to fathom the mystery hidden in
their bright paths, they beheld the glory of the Creator. Seeking clearer
knowledge, they turned to the Hebrew Scriptures. In their own land were
treasured prophetic writings that predicted the coming of a divine teacher.
Balaam belonged to the magicians, though at one time a prophet of God; by
the Holy Spirit he had foretold the prosperity of Israel and the appearing
of the Messiah; and his prophecies

60

had been handed down by tradition from century to century. But in the Old
Testament the Saviour's advent was more clearly revealed. The magi learned
with joy that His coming was near, and that the whole world was to be filled
with a knowledge of the glory of the Lord.

The wise men had seen a mysterious light in the heavens upon that night when
the glory of God flooded the hills of Bethlehem. As the light faded, a
luminous star appeared, and lingered in the sky. It was not a fixed star nor
a planet, and the phenomenon excited the keenest interest. That star was a
distant company of shining angels, but of this the wise men were ignorant.
Yet they were impressed that the star was of special import to them. They
consulted priests and philosophers, and searched the scrolls of the ancient
records. The prophecy of Balaam had declared, "There shall come a Star out
of Jacob, and a Scepter shall rise out of Israel." Num. 24:17. Could this
strange star have been sent as a harbinger of the Promised One? The magi had
welcomed the light of heaven-sent truth; now it was shed upon them in
brighter rays. Through dreams they were instructed to go in search of the
newborn Prince.

As by faith Abraham went forth at the call of God, "not knowing whither he
went" (Heb. 11:8); as by faith Israel followed the pillar of cloud to the
Promised Land, so did these Gentiles go forth to find the promised Saviour.
The Eastern country abounded in precious things, and the magi did not set
out empty-handed. It was the custom to offer presents as an act of homage to
princes or other personages of rank, and the richest gifts the land afforded
were borne as an offering to Him in whom all the families of the earth were
to be blessed. It was necessary to journey by night in order to keep the
star in view; but the travelers beguiled the hours by repeating traditional
sayings and prophetic utterances concerning the One they sought. At every
pause for rest they searched the prophecies; and the conviction deepened
that they were divinely guided. While they had the star before them as an
outward sign, they had also the inward evidence of the Holy Spirit, which
was impressing their hearts, and inspiring them with hope. The journey,
though long, was a happy one to them.

They have reached the land of Israel, and are descending the Mount of
Olives, with Jerusalem in sight, when, lo, the star that has guided them all
the weary way rests above the temple, and after a season fades from their
view. With eager steps they press onward, confidently expecting the
Messiah's birth to be the joyful burden of every tongue. But their

                                                                     61

inquiries are in vain. Entering the holy city, they repair to the temple. To
their amazement they find none who seem to have a knowledge of the newborn
king. Their questions call forth no expressions of joy, but rather of
surprise and fear, not unmingled with contempt.

The priests are rehearsing traditions. They extol their religion and their
own piety, while they denounce the Greeks and Romans as heathen, and sinners
above others. The wise men are not idolaters, and in the sight of God they
stand far higher than do these, His professed worshipers; yet they are
looked upon by the Jews as heathen. Even among the appointed guardians of
the Holy Oracles their eager questionings touch no chord of sympathy.

The arrival of the magi was quickly noised throughout Jerusalem. Their
strange errand created an excitement among the people, which penetrated to
the palace of King Herod. The wily Edomite was aroused at the intimation of
a possible rival. Countless murders had stained his pathway to the throne.
Being of alien blood, he was hated by the people over whom he ruled. His
only security was the favor of Rome. But this new Prince had a higher claim.
He was born to the kingdom.

Herod suspected the priests of plotting with the strangers to excite a
popular tumult and unseat him from the throne. He concealed his mistrust,
however, determined to thwart their schemes by superior cunning. Summoning
the chief priests and the scribes, he questioned

62

them as to the teaching of their sacred books in regard to the place of the
Messiah's birth.

This inquiry from the usurper of the throne, and made at the request of
strangers, stung the pride of the Jewish teachers. The indifference with
which they turned to the rolls of prophecy enraged the jealous tyrant. He
thought them trying to conceal their knowledge of the matter. With an
authority they dared not disregard, he commanded them to make close search,
and to declare the birthplace of their expected King. "And they said unto
him, In Bethlehem of Judea: for thus it is written by the prophet,

           "And thou Bethlehem, land of Judah,
            Art in nowise least among the princes of Judah:
            For out of thee shall come forth a governor,
            Which shall be shepherd of My people Israel."
                                                       R. V.

Herod now invited the magi to a private interview. A tempest of wrath and
fear was raging in his heart, but he preserved a calm exterior, and received
the strangers courteously. He inquired at what time the star had appeared,
and professed to hail with joy the intimation of the birth of Christ. He
bade his visitors, "Search diligently for the young child; and when ye have
found Him, bring me word again, that I may come and worship Him also." So
saying, he dismissed them to go on their way to Bethlehem.

The priests and elders of Jerusalem were not as ignorant concerning the
birth of Christ as they pretended. The report of the angels' visit to the
shepherds had been brought to Jerusalem, but the rabbis had treated it as
unworthy of their notice. They themselves might have found Jesus, and might
have been ready to lead the magi to His birthplace; but instead of this, the
wise men came to call their attention to the birth of the Messiah. "Where is
He that is born King of the Jews?" they said; "for we have seen His star in
the East, and are come to worship Him."

Now pride and envy closed the door against the light. If the reports brought
by the shepherds and the wise men were credited, they would place the
priests and rabbis in a most unenviable position, disproving their claim to
be the exponents of the truth of God. These learned teachers would not stoop
to be instructed by those whom they termed heathen. It could not be, they
said, that God had passed them by, to communicate

                                                                     63

with ignorant shepherds or uncircumcised Gentiles. They determined to show
their contempt for the reports that were exciting King Herod and all
Jerusalem. They would not even go to Bethlehem to see whether these things
were so. And they led the people to regard the interest in Jesus as a
fanatical excitement. Here began the rejection of Christ by the priests and
rabbis. From this point their pride and stubbornness grew into a settled
hatred of the Saviour. While God was opening the door to the Gentiles, the
Jewish leaders were closing the door to themselves.

The wise men departed alone from Jerusalem. The shadows of night were
falling as they left the gates, but to their great joy they again saw the
star, and were directed to Bethlehem. They had received no such intimation
of the lowly estate of Jesus as was given to the shepherds. After the long
journey they had been disappointed by the indifference of the Jewish
leaders, and had left Jerusalem less confident than when they entered the
city. At Bethlehem they found no royal guard stationed to protect the
newborn King. None of the world's honored men were in attendance. Jesus was
cradled in a manger. His parents, uneducated peasants, were His only
guardians. Could this be He of whom it was written, that He should "raise up
the tribes of Jacob," and "restore the preserved of Israel;" that He should
be "a light to the Gentiles," and for "salvation unto the end of the earth"?
Isa. 49:6.

"When they were come into the house, they saw the young child with Mary His
mother, and fell down, and worshiped Him." Beneath the lowly guise of Jesus,
they recognized the presence of Divinity. They gave their hearts to Him as
their Saviour, and then poured out their gifts,--"gold, and frankincense,
and myrrh." What a faith was theirs!

64

It might have been said of the wise men from the East, as afterward of the
Roman centurion, "I have not found so great faith, no, not in Israel." Matt.
8:10.

The wise men had not penetrated Herod's design toward Jesus. When the object
of their journey was accomplished, they prepared to return to Jerusalem,
intending to acquaint him with their success. But in a dream they received a
divine message to hold no further communication with him. Avoiding
Jerusalem, they set out for their own country by another route.

In like manner Joseph received warning to flee into Egypt with Mary and the
child. And the angel said, "Be thou there until I bring thee word: for Herod
will seek the young child to destroy Him." Joseph obeyed without delay,
setting out on the journey by night for greater security.

Through the wise men, God had called the attention of the Jewish nation to
the birth of His Son. Their inquiries in Jerusalem, the popular interest
excited, and even the jealousy of Herod, which compelled the attention of
the priests and rabbis, directed minds to the prophecies concerning the
Messiah, and to the great event that had just taken place.

                                                                     65


Satan was bent on shutting out the divine light from the world, and he used
his utmost cunning to destroy the Saviour. But He who never slumbers nor
sleeps was watching over His beloved Son. He who had rained manna from
heaven for Israel and had fed Elijah in the time of famine provided in a
heathen land a refuge for Mary and the child Jesus. And through the gifts of
the magi from a heathen country, the Lord supplied the means for the journey
into Egypt and the sojourn in a land of strangers.

The magi had been among the first to welcome the Redeemer. Their gift was
the first that was laid at His feet. And through that gift, what privilege
of ministry was theirs! The offering from the heart that loves, God delights
to honor, giving it highest efficiency in service for Him. If we have given
our hearts to Jesus, we also shall bring our gifts to Him. Our gold and
silver, our most precious earthly possessions, our highest mental and
spiritual endowments, will be freely devoted to Him who loved us, and gave
Himself for us.

Herod in Jerusalem impatiently awaited the return of the wise men. As time
passed, and they did not appear, his suspicions were roused. The
unwillingness of the rabbis to point out the Messiah's birthplace seemed to
indicate that they had penetrated his design, and that the magi had
purposely avoided him. He was maddened at the thought. Craft had failed, but
there was left the resort to force. He would make an example of this
child-king. Those haughty Jews should see what they might expect in their
attempts to place a monarch on the throne.

Soldiers were at once sent to Bethlehem, with orders to put to death all the
children of two years and under. The quiet homes of the city of David
witnessed those scenes of horror that, six hundred years before, had been
opened to the prophet. "In Ramah was there a voice heard, lamentation, and
weeping, and great mourning, Rachel weeping for her children, and would not
be comforted, because they are not."

This calamity the Jews had brought upon themselves. If they had been walking
in faithfulness and humility before God, He would in a signal manner have
made the wrath of the king harmless to them. But they had separated
themselves from God by their sins, and had rejected the Holy Spirit, which
was their only shield. They had not studied the Scriptures with a desire to
conform to the will of God. They had searched for prophecies which could be
interpreted to exalt themselves, and to show how God despised all other
nations. It was their proud boast that the

66

Messiah was to come as a king, conquering His enemies, and treading down the
heathen in His wrath. Thus they had excited the hatred of their rulers.
Through their misrepresentation of Christ's mission, Satan had purposed to
compass the destruction of the Saviour; but instead of this, it returned
upon their own heads.

This act of cruelty was one of the last that darkened the reign of Herod.
Soon after the slaughter of the innocents, he was himself compelled to yield
to that doom which none can turn aside. He died a fearful death.

Joseph, who was still in Egypt, was now bidden by an angel of God to return
to the land of Israel. Regarding Jesus as the heir of David's throne, Joseph
desired to make his home in Bethlehem; but learning that Archelaus reigned
in Judea in his father's stead, he feared that the father's designs against
Christ might be carried out by the son. Of all the sons of Herod, Archelaus
most resembled him in character. Already his succession to the government
had been marked by a tumult in Jerusalem, and the slaughter of thousands of
Jews by the Roman guards.

Again Joseph was directed to a place of safety. He returned to Nazareth, his
former home, and here for nearly thirty years Jesus dwelt, "that it might be
fulfilled which was spoken by the prophets, He shall be called a Nazarene."
Galilee was under the control of a son of Herod, but it had a much larger
admixture of foreign inhabitants than Judea.

                                                                     67

Thus there was less interest in matters relating especially to the Jews, and
the claims of Jesus would be less likely to excite the jealousy of those in
power.

Such was the Saviour's reception when He came to the earth. There seemed to
be no place of rest or safety for the infant Redeemer. God could not trust
His beloved Son with men, even while carrying forward His work for their
salvation. He commissioned angels to attend Jesus and protect Him till He
should accomplish His mission on earth, and die by the hands of those whom
He came to save.




(68)

                             Chapter 7

                             As a Child


The childhood and youth of Jesus were spent in a little mountain village.
There was no place on earth that would not have been honored by His
presence. The palaces of kings would have been privileged in receiving Him
as a guest. But He passed by the homes of wealth, the courts of royalty, and
the renowned seats of learning, to make His home in obscure and despised
Nazareth.

Wonderful in its significance is the brief record of His early life: "The
child grew, and waxed strong in spirit, filled with wisdom: and the grace of
God was upon Him." In the sunlight of His Father's countenance, Jesus
"increased in wisdom and stature, and in favor with God and man." Luke 2:52.
His mind was active and penetrating, with a thoughtfulness and wisdom beyond
His years. Yet His character was beautiful in its symmetry. The powers of
mind and body developed gradually, in keeping with the laws of childhood.

As a child, Jesus manifested a peculiar loveliness of disposition. His
willing hands were ever ready to serve others. He manifested a patience

                                                                     69

that nothing could disturb, and a truthfulness that would never sacrifice
integrity. In principle firm as a rock, His life revealed the grace of
unselfish courtesy.

With deep earnestness the mother of Jesus watched the unfolding of His
powers, and beheld the impress of perfection upon His character. With
delight she sought to encourage that bright, receptive mind. Through the
Holy Spirit she received wisdom to co-operate with the heavenly agencies in
the development of this child, who could claim only God as His Father.

From the earliest times the faithful in Israel had given much care to the
education of the youth. The Lord had directed that even from babyhood the
children should be taught of His goodness and His greatness, especially as
revealed in His law, and shown in the history of Israel. Song and prayer and
lessons from the Scriptures were to be adapted to the opening mind. Fathers
and mothers were to instruct their children that the law of God is an
expression of His character, and that as they received the principles of the
law into the heart, the image of God was traced on mind and soul. Much of
the teaching was oral; but the youth also learned to read the Hebrew
writings; and the parchment rolls of the Old Testament Scriptures were open
to their study.

In the days of Christ the town or city that did not provide for the
religious instruction of the young was regarded as under the curse of God.
Yet the teaching had become formal. Tradition had in a great degree
supplanted the Scriptures. True education would lead the youth to "seek the
Lord, if haply they might feel after Him, and find Him." Acts 17:27. But the
Jewish teachers gave their attention to matters of ceremony. The mind was
crowded with material that was worthless to the learner, and that would not
be recognized in the higher school of the courts above. The experience which
is obtained through a personal acceptance of God's word had no place in the
educational system. Absorbed in the round of externals, the students found
no quiet hours to spend with God. They did not hear His voice speaking to
the heart. In their search after knowledge, they turned away from the Source
of wisdom. The great essentials of the service of God were neglected. The
principles of the law were obscured. That which was regarded as superior
education was the greatest hindrance to real development. Under the training
of the rabbis the powers of the youth were repressed. Their minds became
cramped and narrow.

70


The child Jesus did not receive instruction in the synagogue schools. His
mother was His first human teacher. From her lips and from the scrolls of
the prophets, He learned of heavenly things. The very words which He Himself
had spoken to Moses for Israel He was now taught at His mother's knee. As He
advanced from childhood to youth, He did not seek the schools of the rabbis.
He needed not the education to be obtained from such sources; for God was
His instructor.

The question asked during the Saviour's ministry, "How knoweth this man
letters, having never learned?" does not indicate that Jesus was unable to
read, but merely that He had not received a rabbinical education. John 7:15.
Since He gained knowledge as we may do, His intimate acquaintance with the
Scriptures shows how diligently His early years were given to the study of
God's word. And spread out before Him was the great library of God's created
works. He who had made all things studied the lessons which His own hand had
written in earth and sea and sky. Apart from the unholy ways of the world,
He gathered stores of scientific knowledge from nature. He studied the life
of plants and animals, and the life of man. From His earliest years He was
possessed of one purpose; He lived to bless others. For this He found
resources in nature; new ideas of ways and means flashed into His mind as He
studied plant life and animal life. Continually He was seeking to draw from
things seen illustrations by which to present the living oracles of God. The
parables by which, during His ministry, He loved to teach His lessons of
truth show how open His spirit was to the influences of nature, and how He
had gathered the spiritual teaching from the surroundings of His daily life.

Thus to Jesus the significance of the word and the works of God was
unfolded, as He was trying to understand the reason of things. Heavenly
beings were His attendants, and the culture of holy thoughts and communings
was His. From the first dawning of intelligence He was constantly growing in
spiritual grace and knowledge of truth.

Every child may gain knowledge as Jesus did. As we try to become acquainted
with our heavenly Father through His word, angels will draw near, our minds
will be strengthened, our characters will be elevated and refined. We shall
become more like our Saviour. And as we behold the beautiful and grand in
nature, our affections go out after God. While the spirit is awed, the soul
is invigorated by coming in contact with the Infinite through His works.
Communion with God through

                                                                     71

prayer develops the mental and moral faculties, and the spiritual powers
strengthen as we cultivate thoughts upon spiritual things.

The life of Jesus was a life in harmony with God. While He was a child, He
thought and spoke as a child; but no trace of sin marred the image of God
within Him. Yet He was not exempt from temptation. The inhabitants of
Nazareth were proverbial for their wickedness. The low estimate in which
they were generally held is shown by Nathanael's question, "Can there any
good thing come out of Nazareth?" John 1:46. Jesus was placed where His
character would be tested. It was necessary for Him to be constantly on
guard in order to preserve His purity. He was subject to all the conflicts
which we have to meet, that He might be an example to us in childhood,
youth, and manhood.

Satan was unwearied in his efforts to overcome the Child of Nazareth. From
His earliest years Jesus was guarded by heavenly angels, yet His life was
one long struggle against the powers of darkness. That there should be upon
the earth one life free from the defilement of evil was an offense and a
perplexity to the prince of darkness. He left no means untried to ensnare
Jesus. No child of humanity will ever be called to live a holy life amid so
fierce a conflict with temptation as was our Saviour.

72


The parents of Jesus were poor, and dependent upon their daily toil. He was
familiar with poverty, self-denial, and privation. This experience was a
safeguard to Him. In His industrious life there were no idle moments to
invite temptation. No aimless hours opened the way for corrupting
associations. So far as possible, He closed the door to the tempter. Neither
gain nor pleasure, applause nor censure, could induce Him to consent to a
wrong act. He was wise to discern evil, and strong to resist it.

Christ was the only sinless one who ever dwelt on earth; yet for nearly
thirty years He lived among the wicked inhabitants of Nazareth. This fact is
a rebuke to those who think themselves dependent upon place, fortune, or
prosperity, in order to live a blameless life. Temptation, poverty,
adversity, is the very discipline needed to develop purity and firmness.

Jesus lived in a peasant's home, and faithfully and cheerfully acted His
part in bearing the burdens of the household. He had been the Commander of
heaven, and angels had delighted to fulfill His word; now He was a willing
servant, a loving, obedient son. He learned a trade, and with His own hands
worked in the carpenter's shop with Joseph. In the simple garb of a common
laborer He walked the streets of the little town, going to and returning
from His humble work. He did not employ His divine power to lessen His
burdens or to lighten His toil.

As Jesus worked in childhood and youth, mind and body were developed. He did
not use His physical powers recklessly, but in such a way as to keep them in
health, that He might do the best work in every line. He was not willing to
be defective, even in the handling of tools. He was perfect as a workman, as
He was perfect in character. By His own example He taught that it is our
duty to be industrious, that our work should be performed with exactness and
thoroughness, and that such labor is honorable. The exercise that teaches
the hands to be useful and trains the young to bear their share of life's
burdens gives physical strength, and develops every faculty. All should find
something to do that will be beneficial to themselves and helpful to others.
God appointed work as a blessing, and only the diligent worker finds the
true glory and joy of life. The approval of God rests with loving assurance
upon children and youth who cheerfully take their part in the duties of the
household, sharing the burdens of father and mother. Such children will go
out from the home to be useful members of society.

                                                                     73


Throughout His life on earth, Jesus was an earnest and constant worker. He
expected much; therefore He attempted much. After He had entered on His
ministry, He said, "I must work the works of Him that sent Me, while it is
day: the night cometh, when no man can work." John 9:4. Jesus did not shirk
care and responsibility, as do many who profess to be His followers. It is
because they seek to evade this discipline that so many are weak and
inefficient. They may possess precious and amiable traits, but they are
nerveless and almost useless when difficulties are to be met or obstacles
surmounted. The positiveness and energy, the solidity and strength of
character, manifested in Christ are to be developed in us, through the same
discipline that He endured. And the grace that He received is for us.

So long as He lived among men, our Saviour shared the lot of the poor. He
knew by experience their cares and hardships, and He could comfort and
encourage all humble workers. Those who have a true conception of the
teaching of His life will never feel that a distinction must be made between
classes, that the rich are to be honored above the worthy poor.

Jesus carried into His labor cheerfulness and tact. It requires much
patience and spirituality to bring Bible religion into the home life and
into the workshop, to bear the strain of worldly business, and yet keep the
eye single to the glory of God. This is where Christ was a helper. He was
never so full of worldly care as to have no time or thought for heavenly
things. Often He expressed the gladness of His heart by singing psalms and
heavenly songs. Often the dwellers in Nazareth heard His voice raised in
praise and thanksgiving to God. He held communion with heaven in song; and
as His companions complained of weariness from labor, they were cheered by
the sweet melody from His lips. His praise seemed to banish the evil angels,
and, like incense, fill the place with fragrance. The minds of His hearers
were carried away from their earthly exile, to the heavenly home.

74


Jesus was the fountain of healing mercy for the world; and through all those
secluded years at Nazareth, His life flowed out in currents of sympathy and
tenderness. The aged, the sorrowing, and the sin-burdened, the children at
play in their innocent joy, the little creatures of the groves, the patient
beasts of burden,--all were happier for His presence. He whose word of power
upheld the worlds would stoop to relieve a wounded bird. There was nothing
beneath His notice, nothing to which He disdained to minister.

Thus as He grew in wisdom and stature, Jesus increased in favor with God and
man. He drew the sympathy of all hearts by showing Himself capable of
sympathizing with all. The atmosphere of hope and courage that surrounded
Him made Him a blessing in every home. And often in the synagogue on the
Sabbath day He was called upon to read the lesson from the prophets, and the
hearts of the hearers thrilled as a new light shone out from the familiar
words of the sacred text.

Yet Jesus shunned display. During all the years of His stay in Nazareth, He
made no exhibition of His miraculous power. He sought no high position and
assumed no titles. His quiet and simple life, and even the silence of the
Scriptures concerning His early years, teach an important lesson. The more
quiet and simple the life of the child,--the more free from artificial
excitement, and the more in harmony with nature,--the more favorable is it
to physical and mental vigor and to spiritual strength.

Jesus is our example. There are many who dwell with interest upon the period
of His public ministry, while they pass unnoticed the teaching of His early
years. But it is in His home life that He is the pattern for all children
and youth. The Saviour condescended to poverty, that He might teach how
closely we in a humble lot may walk with God. He lived to please, honor, and
glorify His Father in the common things of life. His work began in
consecrating the lowly trade of the craftsmen who toil for their daily
bread. He was doing God's service just as much when laboring at the
carpenter's bench as when working miracles for the multitude. And every
youth who follows Christ's example of faithfulness and obedience in His
lowly home may claim those words spoken of Him by the Father through the
Holy Spirit, "Behold My Servant, whom I uphold; Mine Elect, in whom My soul
delighteth." Isa. 42:1.




                                                                     (75)

                             Chapter 8

                             The Passover Visit


Among the Jews the twelfth year was the dividing line between childhood and
youth. On completing this year a Hebrew boy was called a son of the law, and
also a son of God. He was given special opportunities for religious
instruction, and was expected to participate in the sacred feasts and
observances. It was in accordance with this custom that Jesus in His boyhood
made the Passover visit to Jerusalem. Like all devout Israelites, Joseph and
Mary went up every year to attend the Passover; and when Jesus had reached
the required age, they took Him with them.

There were three annual feasts, the Passover, the Pentecost, and the Feast
of Tabernacles, at which all the men of Israel were commanded to appear
before the Lord at Jerusalem. Of these feasts the Passover was the most
largely attended. Many were present from all countries where the Jews were
scattered. From every part of Palestine the worshipers came in great
numbers. The journey from Galilee occupied several days, and the travelers
united in large companies for companionship and protection. The women and
aged men rode upon oxen or asses over the steep

76

and rocky roads. The stronger men and the youth journeyed on foot. The time
of the Passover corresponded to the close of March or the beginning of
April, and the whole land was bright with flowers, and glad with the song of
birds. All along the way were spots memorable in the history of Israel, and
fathers and mothers recounted to their children the wonders that God had
wrought for His people in ages past. They beguiled their journey with song
and music, and when at last the towers of Jerusalem came into view, every
voice joined in the triumphant strain,--

                "Our feet shall stand
                 Within thy gates, O Jerusalem. . . .
                 Peace be within thy walls,
                 And prosperity within thy palaces."
                                          Ps. 122: 2-7.

The observance of the Passover began with the birth of the Hebrew nation. On
the last night of their bondage in Egypt, when there appeared

                                                                     77

no token of deliverance, God commanded them to prepare for an immediate
release. He had warned Pharaoh of the final judgment on the Egyptians, and
He directed the Hebrews to gather their families within their own dwellings.
Having sprinkled the doorposts with the blood of the slain lamb, they were
to eat the lamb, roasted, with unleavened bread and bitter herbs. "And thus
shall ye eat it," He said, "with your loins girded, your shoes on your feet,
and your staff in your hand; and ye shall eat it in haste: it is the Lord's
passover." Ex. 12:11. At midnight all the first-born of the Egyptians were
slain. Then the king sent to Israel the message, "Rise up, and get you forth
from among my people; . . . and go, serve the Lord, as ye have said." Ex.
12:31. The Hebrews went out from Egypt an independent nation. The Lord had
commanded that the Passover should be yearly kept. "It shall come to pass,"
He said, "when your children shall say unto you, What mean ye by this
service? that ye shall say, It is the sacrifice of the Lord's passover, who
passed over the houses of the children of Israel in Egypt, when He smote the
Egyptians." Thus from generation to generation the story of this wonderful
deliverance was to be repeated.

The Passover was followed by the seven days' feast of unleavened bread. On
the second day of the feast, the first fruits of the year's harvest, a sheaf
of barley, was presented before the Lord. All the ceremonies of the feast
were types of the work of Christ. The deliverance of Israel from Egypt was
an object lesson of redemption, which the Passover was intended to keep in
memory. The slain lamb, the unleavened bread, the sheaf of first fruits,
represented the Saviour.

With most of the people in the days of Christ, the observance of this feast
had degenerated into formalism. But what was its significance to the Son of
God!

78


For the first time the child Jesus looked upon the temple. He saw the
white-robed priests performing their solemn ministry. He beheld the bleeding
victim upon the altar of sacrifice. With the worshipers He bowed in prayer,
while the cloud of incense ascended before God. He witnessed the impressive
rites of the paschal service. Day by day He saw their meaning more clearly.
Every act seemed to be bound up with His own life. New impulses were
awakening within Him. Silent and absorbed, He seemed to be studying out a
great problem. The mystery of His mission was opening to the Saviour.

Rapt in the contemplation of these scenes, He did not remain beside His
parents. He sought to be alone. When the paschal services were ended, He
still lingered in the temple courts; and when the worshipers departed from
Jerusalem, He was left behind.

In this visit to Jerusalem, the parents of Jesus wished to bring Him in
connection with the great teachers in Israel. While He was obedient in every
particular to the word of God, He did not conform to the rabbinical rites
and usages. Joseph and Mary hoped that He might be led to reverence the
learned rabbis, and give more diligent heed to their requirements. But Jesus
in the temple had been taught by God. That which He had received, He began
at once to impart.

At that day an apartment connected with the temple was devoted to a sacred
school, after the manner of the schools of the prophets. Here leading rabbis
with their pupils assembled, and hither the child Jesus came. Seating
Himself at the feet of these grave, learned men, He listened to their
instruction. As one seeking for wisdom, He questioned these teachers in
regard to the prophecies, and to events then taking place that pointed to
the advent of the Messiah.

Jesus presented Himself as one thirsting for a knowledge of God. His
questions were suggestive of deep truths which had long been obscured, yet
which were vital to the salvation of souls. While showing how narrow and
superficial was the wisdom of the wise men, every question put before them a
divine lesson, and placed truth in a new aspect. The rabbis spoke of the
wonderful elevation which the Messiah's coming would bring to the Jewish
nation; but Jesus presented the prophecy of Isaiah, and asked them the
meaning of those scriptures that point to the suffering and death of the
Lamb of God.

The doctors turned upon Him with questions, and they were amazed at His
answers. With the humility of a child He repeated the words of

                                                                     79

Scripture, giving them a depth of meaning that the wise men had not
conceived of. If followed, the lines of truth He pointed out would have
worked a reformation in the religion of the day. A deep interest in
spiritual things would have been awakened; and when Jesus began His
ministry, many would have been prepared to receive Him.

80


The rabbis knew that Jesus had not been instructed in their schools; yet His
understanding of the prophecies far exceeded theirs. In this thoughtful
Galilean boy they discerned great promise. They desired to gain Him as a
student, that He might become a teacher in Israel. They wanted to have
charge of His education, feeling that a mind so original must be brought
under their molding.

The words of Jesus had moved their hearts as they had never before been
moved by words from human lips. God was seeking to give light to those
leaders in Israel, and He used the only means by which they could be
reached. In their pride they would have scorned to admit that they could
receive instruction from anyone. If Jesus had appeared to be trying to teach
them, they would have disdained to listen. But they flattered themselves
that they were teaching Him, or at least testing His knowledge of the
Scriptures. The youthful modesty and grace of Jesus disarmed their
prejudices. Unconsciously their minds were opened to the word of God, and
the Holy Spirit spoke to their hearts.

They could not but see that their expectation in regard to the Messiah was
not sustained by prophecy; but they would not renounce the theories that had
flattered their ambition. They would not admit that they had misapprehended
the Scriptures they claimed to teach. From one to another passed the
inquiry, How hath this youth knowledge, having never learned? The light was
shining in darkness; but "the darkness apprehended it not." John 1:5, R. V.

Meanwhile Joseph and Mary were in great perplexity and distress. In the
departure from Jerusalem they had lost sight of Jesus, and they knew not
that He had tarried behind. The country was then densely populated, and the
caravans from Galilee were very large. There was much confusion as they left
the city. On the way the pleasure of traveling with friends and
acquaintances absorbed their attention, and they did not notice His absence
till night came on. Then as they halted for rest, they missed the helpful
hand of their child. Supposing Him to be with their company, they had felt
no anxiety. Young as He was, they had trusted Him implicitly, expecting that
when needed, He would be ready to assist them, anticipating their wants as
He had always done. But now their fears were roused. They searched for Him
throughout their company, but in vain. Shuddering they remembered how Herod
had tried to destroy Him in His infancy. Dark forebodings filled their
hearts. They bitterly reproached themselves.

                                                                     81


Returning to Jerusalem, they pursued their search. The next day, as they
mingled with the worshipers in the temple, a familiar voice arrested their
attention. They could not mistake it; no other voice was like His, so
serious and earnest, yet so full of melody.

In the school of the rabbis they found Jesus. Rejoiced as they were, they
could not forget their grief and anxiety. When He was with them again, the
mother said, in words that implied reproof, "Son, why hast Thou thus dealt
with us? Behold, Thy father and I have sought Thee sorrowing."

"How is it that ye sought Me?" answered Jesus. "Wist ye not that I must be
about My Father's business?" And as they seemed not to understand His words,
He pointed upward. On His face was a light at which they wondered. Divinity
was flashing through humanity. On finding Him in the temple, they had
listened to what was passing between Him and the rabbis, and they were
astonished at His questions and answers. His words started a train of
thought that would never be forgotten.

And His question to them had a lesson. "Wist ye not," He said, "that I must
be about My Father's business?" Jesus was engaged in the work that He had
come into the world to do; but Joseph and Mary had neglected theirs. God had
shown them high honor in committing to them His Son. Holy angels had
directed the course of Joseph in order to preserve the life of Jesus. But
for an entire day they had lost sight of Him whom they should not have
forgotten for a moment. And when their anxiety was relieved, they had not
censured themselves, but had cast the blame upon Him.

It was natural for the parents of Jesus to look upon Him as their own child.
He was daily with them, His life in many respects was like that of other
children, and it was difficult for them to realize that He was the Son of
God. They were in danger of failing to appreciate the blessing granted them
in the presence of the world's Redeemer. The grief of their separation from
Him, and the gentle reproof which His words conveyed, were designed to
impress them with the sacredness of their trust.

In the answer to His mother, Jesus showed for the first time that He
understood His relation to God. Before His birth the angel had said to Mary,
"He shall be great, and shall be called the Son of the Highest: and the Lord
God shall give unto Him the throne of His

82

father David: and He shall reign over the house of Jacob forever." Luke
1:32, 33. These words Mary had pondered in her heart; yet while she believed
that her child was to be Israel's Messiah, she did not comprehend His
mission. Now she did not understand His words; but she knew that He had
disclaimed kinship to Joseph, and had declared His Sonship to God.

Jesus did not ignore His relation to His earthly parents. From Jerusalem He
returned home with them, and aided them in their life of toil. He hid in His
own heart the mystery of His mission, waiting submissively for the appointed
time for Him to enter upon His work. For eighteen years after He had
recognized that He was the Son of God, He acknowledged the tie that bound
Him to the home at Nazareth, and performed the duties of a son, a brother, a
friend, and a citizen.

As His mission had opened to Jesus in the temple, He shrank from contact
with the multitude. He wished to return from Jerusalem in quietness, with
those who knew the secret of His life. By the paschal service, God was
seeking to call His people away from their worldly cares, and to remind them
of His wonderful work in their deliverance from Egypt. In this work He
desired them to see a promise of deliverance from sin. As the blood of the
slain lamb sheltered the homes of Israel, so the blood of Christ was to save
their souls; but they could be saved through Christ only as by faith they
should make His life their own. There was virtue in the symbolic service
only as it directed the worshipers to Christ as their personal Saviour. God
desired that they should be led to prayerful study and meditation in regard
to Christ's mission. But as the multitudes left Jerusalem, the excitement of
travel and social intercourse too often absorbed their attention, and the
service they had witnessed was forgotten. The Saviour was not attracted to
their company.

As Joseph and Mary should return from Jerusalem alone with Jesus, He hoped
to direct their minds to the prophecies of the suffering Saviour. Upon
Calvary He sought to lighten His mother's grief. He was thinking of her now.
Mary was to witness His last agony, and Jesus desired her to understand His
mission, that she might be strengthened to endure, when the sword should
pierce through her soul. As Jesus had been separated from her, and she had
sought Him sorrowing three days, so when He should be offered up for the
sins of the world, He would again be lost to her for three days. And as He
should come forth from the tomb, her sorrow would again be turned to joy.
But how much better

                                                                     83

she could have borne the anguish of His death if she had understood the
Scriptures to which He was now trying to turn her thoughts!

If Joseph and Mary had stayed their minds upon God by meditation and prayer,
they would have realized the sacredness of their trust, and would not have
lost sight of Jesus. By one day's neglect they lost the Saviour; but it cost
them three days of anxious search to find Him. So with us; by idle talk,
evilspeaking, or neglect of prayer, we may in one day lose the Saviour's
presence, and it may take many days of sorrowful search to find Him, and
regain the peace that we have lost.

In our association with one another, we should take heed lest we forget
Jesus, and pass along unmindful that He is not with us. When we become
absorbed in worldly things so that we have no thought for Him in whom our
hope of eternal life is centered, we separate ourselves from Jesus and from
the heavenly angels. These holy beings cannot remain where the Saviour's
presence is not desired, and His absence is not marked. This is why
discouragement so often exists among the professed followers of Christ.

Many attend religious services, and are refreshed and comforted by the word
of God; but through neglect of meditation, watchfulness, and prayer, they
lose the blessing, and find themselves more destitute than before they
received it. Often they feel that God has dealt hardly with them. They do
not see that the fault is their own. By separating themselves from Jesus,
they have shut away the light of His presence.

It would be well for us to spend a thoughtful hour each day in contemplation
of the life of Christ. We should take it point by point, and let the
imagination grasp each scene, especially the closing ones. As we thus dwell
upon His great sacrifice for us, our confidence in Him will be more
constant, our love will be quickened, and we shall be more deeply imbued
with His spirit. If we would be saved at last, we must learn the lesson of
penitence and humiliation at the foot of the cross.

As we associate together, we may be a blessing to one another. If we are
Christ's, our sweetest thoughts will be of Him. We shall love to talk of
Him; and as we speak to one another of His love, our hearts will be softened
by divine influences. Beholding the beauty of His character, we shall be
"changed into the same image from glory to glory."
2 Cor. 3:18.




(84)

                             Chapter 9

                             Days of Conflict


From its earliest years the Jewish child was surrounded with the
requirements of the rabbis. Rigid rules were prescribed for every act, down
to the smallest details of life. Under the synagogue teachers the youth were
instructed in the countless regulations which as orthodox Israelites they
were expected to observe. But Jesus did not interest Himself in these
matters. From childhood He acted independently of the rabbinical laws. The
Scriptures of the Old Testament were His constant study, and the words,
"Thus saith the Lord," were ever upon His lips.

As the condition of the people began to open to His mind, He saw that the
requirements of society and the requirements of God were in constant
collision. Men were departing from the word of God, and exalting theories of
their own invention. They were observing traditional rites that possessed no
virtue. Their service was a mere round of ceremonies; the sacred truths it
was designed to teach were hidden from the worshipers. He saw that in their
faithless services they found no peace. They did not know the freedom of
spirit that would come to them by serving God in truth. Jesus had come to
teach the meaning of the worship of God, and He could not sanction the
mingling of human requirements with the divine precepts. He did not attack
the precepts or

                                                                     85

practices of the learned teachers; but when reproved for His own simple
habits, He presented the word of God in justification of His conduct.

In every gentle and submissive way, Jesus tried to please those with whom He
came in contact. Because He was so gentle and unobtrusive, the scribes and
elders supposed that He would be easily influenced by their teaching. They
urged Him to receive the maxims and traditions that had been handed down
from the ancient rabbis, but He asked for their authority in Holy Writ. He
would hear every word that proceeds from the mouth of God; but He could not
obey the inventions of men. Jesus seemed to know the Scriptures from
beginning to end, and He presented them in their true import. The rabbis
were ashamed to be instructed by a child. They claimed that it was their
office to explain the Scriptures, and that it was His place to accept their
interpretation. They were indignant that He should stand in opposition to
their word.

They knew that no authority could be found in Scripture for their
traditions. They realized that in spiritual understanding Jesus was far in
advance of them. Yet they were angry because He did not obey their

86

dictates. Failing to convince Him, they sought Joseph and Mary, and set
before them His course of noncompliance. Thus He suffered rebuke and
censure.

At a very early age, Jesus had begun to act for Himself in the formation of
His character, and not even respect and love for His parents could turn Him
from obedience to God's word. "It is written" was His reason for every act
that varied from the family customs. But the influence of the rabbis made
His life a bitter one. Even in His youth He had to learn the hard lesson of
silence and patient endurance.

His brothers, as the sons of Joseph were called, sided with the rabbis They
insisted that the traditions must be heeded, as if they were the
requirements of God. They even regarded the precepts of men more highly than
the word of God, and they were greatly annoyed at the clear penetration of
Jesus in distinguishing between the false and the true His strict obedience
to the law of God they condemned as stubbornness. They were surprised at the
knowledge and wisdom He showed in answering the rabbis. They knew that He
had not received instruction from the wise men, yet they could not but see
that He was an instructor to them. They recognized that His education was of
a higher type than their own. But they did not discern that He had access to
the tree of life, a source of knowledge of which they were ignorant.

Christ was not exclusive, and He had given special offense to the Pharisees
by departing in this respect from their rigid rules. He found the domain of
religion fenced in by high walls of seclusion, as too sacred a matter for
everyday life. These walls of partition He overthrew. In His contact with
men He did not ask, What is your creed? To what church do you belong? He
exercised His helping power in behalf of all who needed help. Instead of
secluding Himself in a hermit's cell in order to show His heavenly
character, He labored earnestly for humanity. He inculcated the principle
that Bible religion does not consist in the mortification of the body. He
taught that pure and undefiled religion is not meant only for set times and
special occasions. At all times and in all places He manifested a loving
interest in men, and shed about Him the light of a cheerful piety. All this
was a rebuke to the Pharisees. It showed that religion does not consist in
selfishness, and that their morbid devotion to personal interest was far
from being true godliness. This had roused their enmity against Jesus, so
that they tried to enforce His conformity to their regulations.

                                                                     87


Jesus worked to relieve every case of suffering that He saw. He had little
money to give, but He often denied Himself of food in order to relieve those
who appeared more needy than He. His brothers felt that His influence went
far to counteract theirs. He possessed a tact which none of them had, or
desired to have. When they spoke harshly to poor, degraded beings, Jesus
sought out these very ones, and spoke to them words of encouragement. To
those who were in need He would give a cup of cold water, and would quietly
place His own meal in their hands. As He relieved their sufferings, the
truths He taught were associated with His acts of mercy, and were thus
riveted in the memory.

All this displeased His brothers. Being older than Jesus, they felt that He
should be under their dictation. They charged Him with thinking Himself
superior to them, and reproved Him for setting Himself above their teachers
and the priests and rulers of the people. Often they threatened and tried to
intimidate Him; but He passed on, making the Scriptures His guide.

Jesus loved His brothers, and treated them with unfailing kindness; but they
were jealous of Him, and manifested the most decided unbelief and contempt.
They could not understand His conduct. Great contradictions presented
themselves in Jesus. He was the divine Son of God,

88

and yet a helpless child. The Creator of the worlds, the earth was His
possession, and yet poverty marked His life experience at every step. He
possessed a dignity and individuality wholly distinct from earthly pride and
assumption; He did not strive for worldly greatness, and in even the
lowliest position He was content. This angered His brothers. They could not
account for His constant serenity under trial and deprivation. They did not
know that for our sake He had become poor, that we "through His poverty
might be rich." 2 Cor. 8:9. They could understand the mystery of His mission
no more than the friends of Job could understand his humiliation and
suffering.

Jesus was misunderstood by His brothers because He was not like them. His
standard was not their standard. In looking to men they had turned away from
God, and they had not His power in their lives. The forms of religion which
they observed could not transform the character. They paid "tithe of mint
and anise and cummin," but omitted "the weightier matters of the law,
judgment, mercy, and faith." Matt. 23:23. The example of Jesus was to them a
continual irritation. He hated but one thing in the world, and that was sin.
He could not witness a wrong act without pain which it was impossible to
disguise. Between the formalists, whose sanctity of appearance concealed the
love of sin, and a character in which zeal for God's glory was always
paramount, the contrast was unmistakable. Because the life of Jesus
condemned evil, He was opposed, both at home and abroad. His unselfishness
and integrity were commented on with a sneer. His forbearance and kindness
were termed cowardice.

Of the bitterness that falls to the lot of humanity, there was no part which
Christ did not taste. There were those who tried to cast contempt upon Him
because of His birth, and even in His childhood He had to meet their
scornful looks and evil whisperings. If He had responded by an impatient
word or look, if He had conceded to His brothers by even one wrong act, He
would have failed of being a perfect example. Thus He would have failed of
carrying out the plan for our redemption. Had He even admitted that there
could be an excuse for sin, Satan would have triumphed, and the world would
have been lost. This is why the tempter worked to make His life as trying as
possible, that He might be led to sin.

But to every temptation He had one answer, "It is written." He rarely
rebuked any wrongdoing of His brothers, but He had a word

                                                                     89

from God to speak to them. Often He was accused of cowardice for refusing to
unite with them in some forbidden act; but His answer was, It is written,
"The fear of the Lord, that is wisdom; and to depart from evil is
understanding." Job 28:28.

There were some who sought His society, feeling at peace in His presence;
but many avoided Him, because they were rebuked by His stainless life. Young
companions urged Him to do as they did. He was bright and cheerful; they
enjoyed His presence, and welcomed His ready suggestions; but they were
impatient at His scruples, and pronounced Him narrow and strait-laced. Jesus
answered, It is written, "Wherewithal shall a young man cleanse his way? by
taking heed thereto according to Thy word." "Thy word have I hid in mine
heart, that I might not sin against Thee." Ps. 119:9, 11.

Often He was asked, Why are you bent on being so singular, so different from
us all? It is written, He said, "Blessed are the undefiled in the way, who
walk in the law of the Lord. Blessed are they that keep His testimonies, and
that seek Him with the whole heart. They also do no iniquity; they walk in
His ways." Ps. 119:1-3.

When questioned why He did not join in the frolics of the youth of Nazareth,
He said, It is written, "I have rejoiced in the way of Thy testimonies, as
much as in all riches. I will meditate in Thy precepts, and have respect
unto Thy ways. I will delight myself in Thy statutes; I will not forget Thy
word." Ps. 119:14-16.

Jesus did not contend for His rights. Often His work was made unnecessarily
severe because He was willing and uncomplaining. Yet He did not fail nor
become discouraged. He lived above these difficulties, as if in the light of
God's countenance. He did not retaliate when roughly used, but bore insult
patiently.

Again and again He was asked, Why do You submit to such despiteful usage,
even from Your brothers? It is written, He said, "My son, forget not My law;
but let thine heart keep My commandments: for length of days, and long life,
and peace, shall they add to thee. Let not mercy and truth forsake thee:
bind them about thy neck; write them upon the table of thine heart: so shalt
thou find favor and good understanding in the sight of God and man." Prov.
3:1-4.

From the time when the parents of Jesus found Him in the temple, His course
of action was a mystery to them. He would not enter into controversy, yet
His example was a constant lesson. He seemed as one

90

who was set apart. His hours of happiness were found when alone with nature
and with God. Whenever it was His privilege, He turned aside from the scene
of His labor, to go into the fields, to meditate in the green valleys, to
hold communion with God on the mountainside or amid the trees of the forest.
The early morning often found Him in some secluded place, meditating,
searching the Scriptures, or in prayer. From these quiet hours He would
return to His home to take up His duties again, and to give an example of
patient toil.

The life of Christ was marked with respect and love for His mother. Mary
believed in her heart that the holy child born of her was the long-promised
Messiah, yet she dared not express her faith. Throughout His life on earth
she was a partaker in His sufferings. She witnessed with sorrow the trials
brought upon Him in His childhood and youth. By her vindication of what she
knew to be right in His conduct, she herself was brought into trying
positions. She looked upon the associations of the home, and the mother's
tender watchcare over her children, as of vital importance in the formation
of character. The sons and daughters of Joseph knew this, and by appealing
to her anxiety, they tried to correct the practices of Jesus according to
their standard.

Mary often remonstrated with Jesus, and urged Him to conform to the usages
of the rabbis. But He could not be persuaded to change His habits of
contemplating the works of God and seeking to alleviate the suffering of men
or even of dumb animals. When the priests and teachers required Mary's aid
in controlling Jesus, she was greatly troubled; but peace came to her heart
as He presented the statements of Scripture upholding His practices.

At times she wavered between Jesus and His brothers, who did not believe
that He was the Sent of God; but evidence was abundant that His was a divine
character. She saw Him sacrificing Himself for the good of others. His
presence brought a purer atmosphere into the home, and His life was as
leaven working amid the elements of society. Harmless and undefiled, He
walked among the thoughtless, the rude, the uncourteous; amid the unjust
publicans, the reckless prodigals, the unrighteous Samaritans, the heathen
soldiers, the rough peasants, and the mixed multitude. He spoke a word of
sympathy here and a word there, as He saw men weary, yet compelled to bear
heavy burdens. He shared their burdens, and repeated to them the lessons He
had learned from nature, of the love, the kindness, the goodness of God.

                                                                     91


He taught all to look upon themselves as endowed with precious talents,
which if rightly employed would secure for them eternal riches. He weeded
all vanity from life, and by His own example taught that every moment of
time is fraught with eternal results; that it is to be cherished as a
treasure, and to be employed for holy purposes. He passed by no human being
as worthless, but sought to apply the saving remedy to every soul. In
whatever company He found Himself, He presented a lesson that was
appropriate to the time and the circumstances. He sought to inspire with
hope the most rough and unpromising, setting before them the assurance that
they might become blameless and harmless, attaining such a character as
would make them manifest as the children of God. Often He met those who had
drifted under Satan's control, and who had no power to break from his snare.
To such a one, discouraged, sick, tempted, and fallen, Jesus would speak
words of tenderest pity, words that were needed and could be understood.
Others

92

He met who were fighting a hand-to-hand battle with the adversary of souls.
These He encouraged to persevere, assuring them that they would win; for
angels of God were on their side, and would give them the victory. Those
whom He thus helped were convinced that here was One in whom they could
trust with perfect confidence. He would not betray the secrets they poured
into His sympathizing ear.

Jesus was the healer of the body as well as of the soul. He was interested
in every phase of suffering that came under His notice, and to every
sufferer He brought relief, His kind words having a soothing balm. None
could say that He had worked a miracle; but virtue--the healing power of
love--went out from Him to the sick and distressed. Thus in an unobtrusive
way He worked for the people from His very childhood. And this was why,
after His public ministry began, so many heard Him gladly.

Yet through childhood, youth, and manhood, Jesus walked alone. In His purity
and His faithfulness, He trod the wine press alone, and of the people there
was none with Him. He carried the awful weight of responsibility for the
salvation of men. He knew that unless there was a decided change in the
principles and purposes of the human race, all would be lost. This was the
burden of His soul, and none could appreciate the weight that rested upon
Him. Filled with intense purpose, He carried out the design of His life that
He Himself should be the light of men.




                                                                     (97)

                             Chapter 10

                             The Voice in the Wilderness


From among the faithful in Israel, who had long waited for the coming of the
Messiah, the forerunner of Christ arose. The aged priest Zacharias and his
wife Elisabeth were "both righteous before God;" and in their quiet and holy
lives the light of faith shone out like a star amid the darkness of those
evil days. To this godly pair was given the promise of a son, who should "go
before the face of the Lord to prepare His ways."

Zacharias dwelt in "the hill country of Judea," but he had gone up to
Jerusalem to minister for one week in the temple, a service required twice a
year from the priests of each course. "And it came to pass, that while he
executed the priest's office before God in the order of his course,
according to the custom of the priest's office, his lot was to burn incense
when he went into the temple of the Lord."

He was standing before the golden altar in the holy place of the sanctuary.
The cloud of incense with the prayers of Israel was ascending before God.
Suddenly he became conscious of a divine presence. An angel of the Lord was
"standing on the right side of the altar." The position of the angel was an
indication of favor, but Zacharias took no

98

note of this. For many years he had prayed for the coming of the Redeemer;
now heaven had sent its messenger to announce that these prayers were about
to be answered; but the mercy of God seemed too great for him to credit. He
was filled with fear and self-condemnation.

But he was greeted with the joyful assurance: "Fear not, Zacharias: for thy
prayer is heard; and thy wife Elisabeth shall bear thee a son, and thou
shalt call his name John. And thou shalt have joy and gladness; and many
shall rejoice at his birth. For he shall be great in the sight of the Lord,
and shall drink neither wine nor strong drink; and he shall be filled with
the Holy Ghost. . . . And many of the children of Israel shall he turn to
the Lord their God. And he shall go before Him in the spirit and power of
Elias, to turn the hearts of the fathers to the children, and the
disobedient to the wisdom of the just; to make ready a people prepared for
the Lord. And Zacharias said unto the angel, Whereby shall I know this? for
I am an old man, and my wife well stricken in years."

Zacharias well knew how to Abraham in his old age a child was given because
he believed Him faithful who had promised. But for a moment the aged priest
turns his thought to the weakness of humanity. He forgets that what God has
promised, He is able to perform. What a contrast between this unbelief and
the sweet, childlike faith of Mary, the maiden of Nazareth, whose answer to
the angel's wonderful announcement was, "Behold the handmaid of the Lord; be
it unto me according to thy word"! Luke 1:38.

The birth of a son to Zacharias, like the birth of the child of Abraham, and
that of Mary, was to teach a great spiritual truth, a truth that we are slow
to learn and ready to forget. In ourselves we are incapable of doing any
good thing; but that which we cannot do will be wrought by the power of God
in every submissive and believing soul. It was through faith that the child
of promise was given. It is through faith that spiritual life is begotten,
and we are enabled to do the works of righteousness.

To the question of Zacharias, the angel said, "I am Gabriel, that stand in
the presence of God; and am sent to speak unto thee, and to show thee these
glad tidings." Five hundred years before, Gabriel had made known to Daniel
the prophetic period which was to extend to the coming of Christ. The
knowledge that the end of this period was near had moved Zacharias to pray
for the Messiah's advent. Now the very messenger through whom the prophecy
was given had come to announce its fulfillment.

                                                                     99


The words of the angel, "I am Gabriel, that stand in the presence of God,"
show that he holds a position of high honor in the heavenly courts. When he
came with a message to Daniel, he said, "There is none that holdeth with me
in these things, but Michael [Christ] your Prince." Dan. 10:21. Of Gabriel
the Saviour speaks in the Revelation, saying that "He sent and signified it
by His angel unto His servant John." Rev. 1:1. And to John the angel
declared, "I am a fellow servant with thee and with thy brethren the
prophets." Rev. 22:9, R. V. Wonderful thought--that the angel who stands
next in honor to the Son of God is the one chosen to open the purposes of
God to sinful men.

Zacharias had expressed doubt of the angel's words. He was not to speak
again until they were fulfilled. "Behold," said the angel, "thou shalt be
dumb, . . . until the day that these things shall be performed, because thou
believest not my words, which shall be fulfilled in their season." It was
the duty of the priest in this service to pray for the pardon of public and
national sins, and for the coming of the Messiah; but when Zacharias
attempted to do this, he could not utter a word.

Coming forth to bless the people, "he beckoned unto them, and remained
speechless." They had waited long, and had begun to fear, lest he had been
cut down by the judgment of God. But as he came forth from the holy place,
his face was shining with the glory of God, "and they perceived that he had
seen a vision in the temple." Zacharias communicated to them what he had
seen and heard; and "as soon as the days of his ministration were
accomplished, he departed to his own house."

Soon after the birth of the promised child, the father's tongue was loosed,
"and he spake, and praised God. And fear came on all that dwelt round about
them: and all these sayings were noised abroad throughout all the hill
country of Judea. And all they that heard them laid them up

100

in their hearts, saying, What manner of child shall this be!" All this
tended to call attention to the Messiah's coming, for which John was to
prepare the way.

The Holy Spirit rested upon Zacharias, and in these beautiful words he
prophesied of the mission of his son:


"Thou, child, shalt be called the prophet of the Highest;
     For thou shalt go before the face of the Lord to prepare His ways;
     To give knowledge of salvation unto His people
     By the remission of their sins,
     Through the tender mercy of our God,
     Whereby the Dayspring from on high hath visited us,
     To give light to them that sit in darkness and in the shadow of
      death,
     To guide our feet into the way of peace."

"And the child grew, and waxed strong in spirit, and was in the deserts till
the day of his showing unto Israel." Before the birth of John, the angel had
said, "He shall be great in the sight of the Lord, and shall drink neither
wine nor strong drink; and he shall be filled with the Holy Ghost." God had
called the son of Zacharias to a great work, the greatest ever committed to
men. In order to accomplish this work, he must have the Lord to work with
him. And the Spirit of God would be with him if he heeded the instruction of
the angel.

John was to go forth as Jehovah's messenger, to bring to men the light of
God. He must give a new direction to their thoughts. He must impress them
with the holiness of God's requirements, and their need of His perfect
righteousness. Such a messenger must be holy. He must be a temple for the
indwelling Spirit of God. In order to fulfill his mission, he must have a
sound physical constitution, and mental and spiritual strength. Therefore it
would be necessary for him to control the appetites and passions. He must be
able so to control all his powers that he could stand among men as unmoved
by surrounding circumstances as the rocks and mountains of the wilderness.

In the time of John the Baptist, greed for riches, and the love of luxury
and display had become widespread. Sensuous pleasures, feasting and
drinking, were causing physical disease and degeneracy, benumbing the
spiritual perceptions, and lessening the sensibility to sin. John was to
stand as a reformer. By his abstemious life and plain dress he was to

                                                                     101

rebuke the excesses of his time. Hence the directions given to the parents
of John,--a lesson of temperance by an angel from the throne of heaven.

In childhood and youth the character is most impressible. The power of
self-control should then be acquired. By the fireside and at the family
board influences are exerted whose results are as enduring as eternity. More
than any natural endowment, the habits established in early years decide
whether a man will be victorious or vanquished in the battle of life. Youth
is the sowing time. It determines the character of the harvest, for this
life and for the life to come.

As a prophet, John was "to turn the hearts of the fathers to the children,
and the disobedient to the wisdom of the just; to make ready a people
prepared for the Lord." In preparing the way for Christ's first advent, he
was a representative of those who are to prepare a people for our Lord's
second coming. The world is given to self-indulgence. Errors and fables
abound. Satan's snares for destroying souls are multiplied. All who would
perfect holiness in the fear of God must learn the lessons of temperance and
self-control. The appetites and passions must be held in subjection to the
higher powers of the mind. This self-discipline is essential to that mental
strength and spiritual insight which will enable us to understand and to
practice the sacred truths of God's word. For this reason temperance finds
its place in the work of preparation for Christ's second coming.

In the natural order of things, the son of Zacharias would have been
educated for the priesthood. But the training of the rabbinical schools
would have unfitted him for his work. God did not send him to the teachers
of theology to learn how to interpret the Scriptures. He called him to the
desert, that he might learn of nature and nature's God.

It was a lonely region where he found his home, in the midst of barren
hills, wild ravines, and rocky caves. But it was his choice to forgo the
enjoyments and luxuries of life for the stern discipline of the wilderness.
Here his surroundings were favorable to habits of simplicity and
self-denial. Uninterrupted by the clamor of the world, he could here study
the lessons of nature, of revelation, and of Providence. The words of the
angel to Zacharias had been often repeated to John by his God-fearing
parents. From childhood his mission had been kept before him, and he had
accepted the holy trust. To him the solitude of the desert was a welcome
escape from society in which suspicion, unbelief, and impurity had become
well-nigh all-pervading. He distrusted his own

102

power to withstand temptation, and shrank from constant contact with sin,
lest he should lose the sense of its exceeding sinfulness.

Dedicated to God as a Nazarite from his birth, he made the vow his own in a
life-long consecration. His dress was that of the ancient prophets, a
garment of camel's hair, confined by a leather girdle. He ate the "locusts
and wild honey" found in the wilderness, and drank the pure water from the
hills.

But the life of John was not spent in idleness, in ascetic gloom, or in
selfish isolation. From time to time he went forth to mingle with men; and
he was ever an interested observer of what was passing in the world. From
his quiet retreat he watched the unfolding of events. With vision
illuminated by the divine Spirit he studied the characters of men, that he
might understand how to reach their hearts with the message of heaven. The
burden of his mission was upon him. In solitude, by meditation and prayer,
he sought to gird up his soul for the lifework before him.

Although in the wilderness, he was not exempt from temptation. So far as
possible, he closed every avenue by which Satan could enter, yet he was
still assailed by the tempter. But his spiritual perceptions were clear; he
had developed strength and decision of character, and through the aid of the
Holy Spirit he was able to detect Satan's approaches, and to resist his
power.

John found in the wilderness his school and his sanctuary. Like Moses amid
the mountains of Midian, he was shut in by God's presence, and surrounded by
the evidences of His power. It was not his lot to dwell, as did Israel's
great leader, amid the solemn majesty of the mountain solitudes; but before
him were the heights of Moab, beyond Jordan, speaking of Him who had set
fast the mountains, and girded them with strength. The gloomy and terrible
aspect of nature in his wilderness home vividly pictured the condition of
Israel. The fruitful vineyard of the Lord had become a desolate waste. But
above the desert the heavens bent bright and beautiful. The clouds that
gathered, dark with tempest, were arched by the rainbow of promise. So above
Israel's degradation shone the promised glory of the Messiah's reign. The
clouds of wrath were spanned by the rainbow of His covenant-mercy.

Alone in the silent night he read God's promise to Abraham of a seed
numberless as the stars. The light of dawn, gilding the mountains of Moab,
told of Him who should be as "the light of the morning, when the

                                                                     103

sun riseth, even a morning without clouds." 2 Sam. 23:4. And in the
brightness of noontide he saw the splendor of His manifestation, when "the
glory of the Lord shall be revealed, and all flesh shall see it together."
Isa. 40:5.

With awed yet exultant spirit he searched in the prophetic scrolls the
revelations of the Messiah's coming,--the promised seed that should bruise
the serpent's head; Shiloh, "the peace giver," who was to appear before a
king should cease to reign on David's throne. Now the time had come. A Roman
ruler sat in the palace upon Mount Zion. By the sure word of the Lord,
already the Christ was born.

Isaiah's rapt portrayals of the Messiah's glory were his study by day and by
night,--the Branch from the root of Jesse; a King to reign in righteousness,
judging "with equity for the meek of the earth;" "a covert from the tempest;
. . the shadow of a great rock in a weary land;" Israel no longer to be
termed "Forsaken," nor her land "Desolate," but to be called of the Lord,
"My Delight," and her land "Beulah." Isa. 11:4; 32:2; 62:4, margin. The
heart of the lonely exile was filled with the glorious vision.

He looked upon the King in His beauty, and self was forgotten. He beheld the
majesty of holiness, and felt himself to be inefficient and unworthy. He was
ready to go forth as Heaven's messenger, unawed by the human, because he had
looked upon the Divine. He could stand erect and fearless in the presence of
earthly monarchs, because he had bowed low before the King of kings.

John did not fully understand the nature of the Messiah's kingdom. He looked
for Israel to be delivered from her national foes; but the coming of a King
in righteousness, and the establishment of Israel as a holy nation, was the
great object of his hope. Thus he believed would be accomplished the
prophecy given at his birth,--

     "To remember His holy covenant; . . .
     That we being delivered out of the hand of our enemies
     Might serve Him without fear,
     In holiness and righteousness before Him, all the days of our
     life."

He saw his people deceived, self-satisfied, and asleep in their sins. He
longed to rouse them to a holier life. The message that God had given him to
bear was designed to startle them from their lethargy, and

104

cause them to tremble because of their great wickedness. Before the seed of
the gospel could find lodgment, the soil of the heart must be broken up.
Before they would seek healing from Jesus, they must be awakened to their
danger from the wounds of sin.

God does not send messengers to flatter the sinner. He delivers no message
of peace to lull the unsanctified into fatal security. He lays heavy burdens
upon the conscience of the wrongdoer, and pierces the soul with arrows of
conviction. The ministering angels present to him the fearful judgments of
God to deepen the sense of need, and prompt the cry, "What must I do to be
saved?" Then the hand that has humbled in the dust, lifts up the penitent.
The voice that has rebuked sin, and put to shame pride and ambition,
inquires with tenderest sympathy, "What wilt thou that I shall do unto
thee?"

When the ministry of John began, the nation was in a state of excitement and
discontent verging on revolution. At the removal of Archelaus, Judea had
been brought directly under the control of Rome. The tyranny and extortion
of the Roman governors, and their determined efforts to introduce the
heathen symbols and customs, kindled revolt, which had been quenched in the
blood of thousands of the bravest of Israel. All this intensified the
national hatred against Rome, and increased the longing to be freed from her
power.

Amid discord and strife, a voice was heard from the wilderness, a voice
startling and stern, yet full of hope: "Repent ye; for the kingdom of heaven
is at hand." With a new, strange power it moved the people. Prophets had
foretold the coming of Christ as an event far in the future; but here was an
announcement that it was at hand. John's singular appearance carried the
minds of his hearers back to the ancient seers. In his manner and dress he
resembled the prophet Elijah. With the spirit and power of Elijah he
denounced the national corruption, and rebuked the prevailing sins. His
words were plain, pointed, and convincing. Many believed him to be one of
the prophets risen from the dead. The whole nation was stirred. Multitudes
flocked to the wilderness.

John proclaimed the coming of the Messiah, and called the people to
repentance. As a symbol of cleansing from sin, he baptized them in the
waters of the Jordan. Thus by a significant object lesson he declared that
those who claimed to be the chosen people of God were defiled by sin, and
that without purification of heart and life they could have no part in the
Messiah's kingdom.

                                                                     105


Princes and rabbis, soldiers, publicans, and peasants came to hear the
prophet. For a time the solemn warning from God alarmed them. Many were
brought to repentance, and received baptism. Persons of all ranks submitted
to the requirement of the Baptist, in order to participate in the kingdom he
announced.

Many of the scribes and Pharisees came confessing their sins, and asking for
baptism. They had exalted themselves as better than other men, and had led
the people to entertain a high opinion of their piety; now the guilty
secrets of their lives were unveiled. But John was impressed by the Holy
Spirit that many of these men had no real conviction of sin. They were
timeservers. As friends of the prophet, they hoped to find favor with the
coming Prince. And by receiving baptism at the hands of this popular young
teacher, they thought to strengthen their influence with the people.

John met them with the scathing inquiry, "O generation of vipers, who hath
warned you to flee from the wrath to come? Bring forth therefore fruits meet
for repentance; and think not to say within yourselves,

106

We have Abraham to our father: for I say unto you, that God is able of these
stones to raise up children unto Abraham."

The Jews had misinterpreted God's promise of eternal favor to Israel: "Thus
saith the Lord, which giveth the sun for a light by day, and the ordinances
of the moon and of the stars for a light by night, which divideth the sea
when the waves thereof roar; The Lord of hosts is His name: If those
ordinances depart from before Me, saith the Lord, then the seed of Israel
also shall cease from being a nation before Me forever. Thus saith the Lord;
If heaven above can be measured, and the foundations of the earth searched
out beneath, I will also cast off all the seed of Israel for all that they
have done, saith the Lord." Jer. 31:35-37. The Jews regarded their natural
descent from Abraham as giving them a claim to this promise. But they
overlooked the conditions which God had specified. Before giving the
promise, He had said, "I will put My law in their inward parts, and write it
in their hearts; and will be their God, and they shall be My people. . . .
For I will forgive their iniquity, and I will remember their sin no more."
Jer. 31:33, 34.

To a people in whose hearts His law is written, the favor of God is assured.
They are one with Him. But the Jews had separated themselves from God.
Because of their sins they were suffering under His judgments. This was the
cause of their bondage to a heathen nation. Their minds were darkened by
transgression, and because in times past the Lord had shown them so great
favor, they excused their sins. They flattered themselves that they were
better than other men, and entitled to His blessings.

These things "are written for our admonition, upon whom the ends of the
world are come." 1 Cor. 10:11. How often we misinterpret God's blessings,
and flatter ourselves that we are favored on account of some goodness in us!
God cannot do for us that which He longs to do. His gifts are used to
increase our self-satisfaction, and to harden our hearts in unbelief and
sin.

John declared to the teachers of Israel that their pride, selfishness, and
cruelty showed them to be a generation of vipers, a deadly curse to the
people, rather than the children of just and obedient Abraham. In view of
the light they had received from God, they were even worse than the heathen,
to whom they felt so much superior. They had forgotten the rock whence they
were hewn, and the hole of the pit from which they had been digged. God was
not dependent upon them for the fulfilling of

                                                                     107

His purpose. As He had called Abraham out from a heathen people, so He could
call others to His service. Their hearts might now appear as lifeless as the
stones of the desert, but His Spirit could quicken them to do His will, and
receive the fulfillment of His promise.

"And now also," said the prophet, "the ax is laid unto the root of the
trees: therefore every tree which bringeth not forth good fruit is hewn
down, and cast into the fire." Not by its name, but by its fruit, is the
value of a tree determined. If the fruit is worthless, the name cannot save
the tree from destruction. John declared to the Jews that their standing
before God was to be decided by their character and life. Profession was
worthless. If their life and character were not in harmony with God's law,
they were not His people.

Under his heart-searching words, his hearers were convicted. They came to
him with the inquiry, "What shall we do then?" He answered, "He that hath
two coats, let him impart to him that hath none; and he that hath meat, let
him do likewise." And he warned the publicans against injustice, and the
soldiers against violence.

All who became the subjects of Christ's kingdom, he said, would give
evidence of faith and repentance. Kindness, honesty, and fidelity would be
seen in their lives. They would minister to the needy, and bring their
offerings to God. They would shield the defenseless, and give an example of
virtue and compassion. So the followers of Christ will give evidence of the
transforming power of the Holy Spirit. In the daily life, justice, mercy,
and the love of God will be seen. Otherwise they are like the chaff that is
given to the fire.

"I indeed baptize you in water unto repentance," said John; "but He that
cometh after me is mightier than I, whose shoes I am not worthy to bear: He
shall baptize you with the Holy Ghost and with fire." Matt. 3:11, R. V.,
margin. The prophet Isaiah had declared that the Lord would cleanse His
people from their iniquities "by the spirit of judgment, and by the spirit
of burning." The word of the Lord to Israel was, "I will turn My hand upon
thee, and purely purge away thy dross, and take away all thy tin." Isa. 4:4;
1:25. To sin, wherever found, "our God is a consuming fire." Heb. 12:29. In
all who submit to His power the Spirit of God will consume sin. But if men
cling to sin, they become identified with it. Then the glory of God, which
destroys sin, must destroy them. Jacob, after his night of wrestling with
the Angel, exclaimed, "I have seen God face to face, and my life is
preserved." Gen. 32: 30.

108

Jacob had been guilty of a great sin in his conduct toward Esau; but he had
repented. His transgression had been forgiven, and his sin purged; therefore
he could endure the revelation of God's presence. But wherever men came
before God while willfully cherishing evil, they were destroyed. At the
second advent of Christ the wicked shall be consumed "with the Spirit of His
mouth," and destroyed "with the brightness of His coming." 2 Thess. 2:8. The
light of the glory of God, which imparts life to the righteous, will slay
the wicked.

In the time of John the Baptist, Christ was about to appear as the revealer
of the character of God. His very presence would make manifest to men their
sin. Only as they were willing to be purged from sin could they enter into
fellowship with Him. Only the pure in heart could abide in His presence.

Thus the Baptist declared God's message to Israel. Many gave heed to his
instruction. Many sacrificed all in order to obey. Multitudes followed this
new teacher from place to place, and not a few cherished the hope that he
might be the Messiah. But as John saw the people turning to him, he sought
every opportunity of directing their faith to Him who was to come.




                                                                     (109)

                             Chapter 11

                             The Baptism


Tidings of the wilderness prophet and his wonderful announcement, spread
throughout Galilee. The message reached the peasants in the remotest hill
towns, and the fisher folk by the sea, and in these simple, earnest hearts
found its truest response. In Nazareth it was told in the carpenter shop
that had been Joseph's, and One recognized the call. His time had come.
Turning from His daily toil, He bade farewell to His mother, and followed in
the steps of His countrymen who were flocking to the Jordan.

Jesus and John the Baptist were cousins, and closely related by the
circumstances of their birth; yet they had had no direct acquaintance with
each other. The life of Jesus had been spent at Nazareth in Galilee; that of
John, in the wilderness of Judea. Amid widely different surroundings they
had lived in seclusion, and had had no communication with each other.
Providence had ordered this. No occasion was to be given for the charge that
they had conspired together to support each other's claims.

John was acquainted with the events that had marked the birth of Jesus. He
had heard of the visit to Jerusalem in His boyhood, and of what had passed
in the school of the rabbis. He knew of His sinless life, and believed Him
to be the Messiah; but of this he had no positive assurance. The fact that
Jesus had for so many years remained in obscurity, giving no special
evidence of His mission, gave occasion for

110

doubt as to whether He could be the Promised One. The Baptist, however,
waited in faith, believing that in God's own time all would be made plain.
It had been revealed to him that the Messiah would seek baptism at his
hands, and that a sign of His divine character should then be given. Thus he
would be enabled to present Him to the people.

When Jesus came to be baptized, John recognized in Him a purity of character
that he had never before perceived in any man. The very atmosphere of His
presence was holy and awe-inspiring. Among the multitudes that had gathered
about him at the Jordan, John had heard dark tales of crime, and had met
souls bowed down with the burden of myriad sins; but never had he come in
contact with a human being from whom there breathed an influence so divine.
All this was in harmony with what had been revealed to John regarding the
Messiah. Yet he shrank from granting the request of Jesus. How could he, a
sinner, baptize the Sinless One? And why should He who needed no repentance
submit to a rite that was a confession of guilt to be washed away?

                                                                     111


As Jesus asked for baptism, John drew back, exclaiming, "I have need to be
baptized of Thee, and comest Thou to me?" With firm yet gentle authority,
Jesus answered, "Suffer it to be so now: for thus it becometh us to fulfill
all righteousness." And John, yielding, led the Saviour down into the
Jordan, and buried Him beneath the water. "And straightway coming up out of
the water," Jesus "saw the heavens opened, and the Spirit like a dove
descending upon Him."

Jesus did not receive baptism as a confession of guilt on His own account.
He identified Himself with sinners, taking the steps that we are to take,
and doing the work that we must do. His life of suffering and patient
endurance after His baptism was also an example to us.

Upon coming up out of the water, Jesus bowed in prayer on the river bank. A
new and important era was opening before Him. He was now, upon a wider
stage, entering on the conflict of His life. Though He was the Prince of
Peace, His coming must be as the unsheathing of a sword. The kingdom He had
come to establish was the opposite of that which the Jews desired. He who
was the foundation of the ritual and economy of Israel would be looked upon
as its enemy and destroyer. He who had proclaimed the law upon Sinai would
be condemned as a transgressor. He who had come to break the power of Satan
would be denounced as Beelzebub. No one upon earth had understood Him, and
during His ministry He must still walk alone. Throughout His life His mother
and His brothers did not comprehend His mission. Even His disciples did not
understand Him. He had dwelt in eternal light, as one with God, but His life
on earth must be spent in solitude.

As one with us, He must bear the burden of our guilt and woe. The Sinless
One must feel the shame of sin. The peace lover must dwell with strife, the
truth must abide with falsehood, purity with vileness. Every sin, every
discord, every defiling lust that transgression had brought, was torture to
His spirit.

Alone He must tread the path; alone He must bear the burden. Upon Him who
had laid off His glory and accepted the weakness of humanity the redemption
of the world must rest. He saw and felt it all, but His purpose remained
steadfast. Upon His arm depended the salvation of the fallen race, and He
reached out His hand to grasp the hand of Omnipotent Love.

The Saviour's glance seems to penetrate heaven as He pours out His soul in
prayer. Well He knows how sin has hardened the hearts of men,

112

and how difficult it will be for them to discern His mission, and accept the
gift of salvation. He pleads with the Father for power to overcome their
unbelief, to break the fetters with which Satan has enthralled them, and in
their behalf to conquer the destroyer. He asks for the witness that God
accepts humanity in the person of His Son.

Never before have the angels listened to such a prayer. They are eager to
bear to their loved Commander a message of assurance and comfort. But no;
the Father Himself will answer the petition of His Son. Direct from the
throne issue the beams of His glory. The heavens are opened, and upon the
Saviour's head descends a dovelike form of purest light,--fit emblem of Him,
the meek and lowly One.

Of the vast throng at the Jordan, few except John discerned the heavenly
vision. Yet the solemnity of the divine Presence rested upon the assembly.
The people stood silently gazing upon Christ. His form was bathed in the
light that ever surrounds the throne of God. His upturned face was glorified
as they had never before seen the face of man. From the open heavens a voice
was heard saying, "This is My beloved Son, in whom I am well pleased."

These words of confirmation were given to inspire faith in those who
witnessed the scene, and to strengthen the Saviour for His mission.
Notwithstanding that the sins of a guilty world were laid upon Christ,
notwithstanding the humiliation of taking upon Himself our fallen nature,
the voice from heaven declared Him to be the Son of the Eternal.

John had been deeply moved as he saw Jesus bowed as a suppliant, pleading
with tears for the approval of the Father. As the glory of God encircled
Him, and the voice from heaven was heard, John recognized the token which
God had promised. He knew that it was the world's Redeemer whom he had
baptized. The Holy Spirit rested upon him, and with outstretched hand
pointing to Jesus, he cried, "Behold the Lamb of God, which taketh away the
sin of the world."

None among the hearers, and not even the speaker himself, discerned the
import of these words, "the Lamb of God." Upon Mount Moriah, Abraham had
heard the question of his son, "My father, . . . where is the lamb for a
burnt offering?" The father answered, "My son, God will provide Himself a
lamb for a burnt offering." Gen. 22:7, 8. And in the ram divinely provided
in the place of Isaac, Abraham saw a symbol of Him who was to die for the
sins of men. The Holy Spirit through Isaiah, taking up the illustration,
prophesied of the Saviour, "He is

                                                                     113

brought as a lamb to the slaughter," "and the Lord hath laid on Him the
iniquity of us all" (Isa. 53:7, 6); but the people of Israel had not
understood the lesson. Many of them regarded the sacrificial offerings much
as the heathen looked upon their sacrifices,--as gifts by which they
themselves might propitiate the Deity. God desired to teach them that from
His own love comes the gift which reconciles them to Himself.

And the word that was spoken to Jesus at the Jordan, "This is My beloved
Son, in whom I am well pleased," embraces humanity. God spoke to Jesus as
our representative. With all our sins and weaknesses, we are not cast aside
as worthless. "He hath made us accepted in the Beloved." Eph. 1:6. The glory
that rested upon Christ is a pledge of the love of God for us. It tells us
of the power of prayer,--how the human voice may reach the ear of God, and
our petitions find acceptance in the courts of heaven. By sin, earth was cut
off from heaven, and alienated from its communion; but Jesus has connected
it again with the sphere of glory. His love has encircled man, and reached
the highest heaven. The light which fell from the open portals upon the head
of our Saviour will fall upon us as we pray for help to resist temptation.
The voice which spoke to Jesus says to every believing soul, This is My
beloved child, in whom I am well pleased.

"Beloved, now are we the sons of God, and it doth not yet appear what we
shall be: but we know that, when He shall appear, we shall be like Him; for
we shall see Him as He is." 1 John 3:2. Our Redeemer has opened the way so
that the most sinful, the most needy, the most oppressed and despised, may
find access to the Father. All may have a home in the mansions which Jesus
has gone to prepare. "These things saith He that is holy, He that is true,
He that hath the key of David, He that openeth, and no man shutteth; and
shutteth, and no man openeth; . . . behold, I have set before thee an open
door, and no man can shut it." Rev. 3:7, 8.




(114)

                             Chapter 12

                             The Temptation


And Jesus being full of the Holy Ghost returned from Jordan, and was led by
the Spirit into the wilderness." The words of Mark are still more
significant. He says, "Immediately the Spirit driveth Him into the
wilderness. And He was there in the wilderness forty days, tempted of Satan;
and was with the wild beasts." "And in those days He did eat nothing."

When Jesus was led into the wilderness to be tempted, He was led by the
Spirit of God. He did not invite temptation. He went to the wilderness to be
alone, to contemplate His mission and work. By fasting and prayer He was to
brace Himself for the bloodstained path He must travel. But Satan knew that
the Saviour had gone into the wilderness, and he thought this the best time
to approach Him.

Mighty issues for the world were at stake in the conflict between the Prince
of light and the leader of the kingdom of darkness. After tempting man to
sin, Satan claimed the earth as his, and styled himself the prince of this
world. Having conformed to his own nature the father and mother of our race,
he thought to establish here his empire. He declared that men had chosen him
as their sovereign. Through his

                                                                     115

control of men, he held dominion over the world. Christ had come to disprove
Satan's claim. As the Son of man, Christ would stand loyal to God. Thus it
would be shown that Satan had not gained complete control of the human race,
and that his claim to the world was false. All who desired deliverance from
his power would be set free. The dominion that Adam had lost through sin
would be recovered.

Since the announcement to the serpent in Eden, "I will put enmity between
thee and the woman, and between thy seed and her seed" (Gen. 3:15), Satan
had known that he did not hold absolute sway over the world. There was seen
in men the working of a power that withstood his dominion. With intense
interest he watched the sacrifices offered by Adam and his sons. In these
ceremonies he discerned a symbol of communion between earth and heaven. He
set himself to intercept this communion. He misrepresented God, and
misinterpreted the rites that pointed to the Saviour. Men were led to fear
God as one who delighted in their destruction. The sacrifices that should
have revealed His love were offered only to appease His wrath. Satan excited
the evil passions of men, in order to fasten his rule upon them. When God's
written word was given, Satan studied the prophecies of the Saviour's
advent. From generation to generation he worked to blind the people to these
prophecies, that they might reject Christ at His coming.

At the birth of Jesus, Satan knew that One had come with a divine commission
to dispute his dominion. He trembled at the angel's message attesting the
authority of the newborn King. Satan well knew the position that Christ had
held in heaven as the Beloved of the Father. That the Son of God should come
to this earth as a man filled him with amazement and with apprehension. He
could not fathom the mystery of this great sacrifice. His selfish soul could
not understand such love for the deceived race. The glory and peace of
heaven, and the joy of communion with God, were but dimly comprehended by
men; but they

116

were well known to Lucifer, the covering cherub. Since he had lost heaven,
he was determined to find revenge by causing others to share his fall. This
he would do by causing them to undervalue heavenly things, and to set the
heart upon things of earth.

Not without hindrance was the Commander of heaven to win the souls of men to
His kingdom. From the time when He was a babe in Bethlehem, He was
continually assailed by the evil one. The image of God was manifest in
Christ, and in the councils of Satan it was determined that He should be
overcome. No human being had come into the world and escaped the power of
the deceiver. The forces of the confederacy of evil were set upon His track
to engage in warfare against Him, and if possible to prevail over Him.

At the Saviour's baptism, Satan was among the witnesses. He saw the Father's
glory overshadowing His Son. He heard the voice of Jehovah testifying to the
divinity of Jesus. Ever since Adam's sin, the human race had been cut off
from direct communion with God; the intercourse between heaven and earth had
been through Christ; but now that Jesus had come "in the likeness of sinful
flesh" (Rom. 8:3), the Father Himself spoke. He had before communicated with
humanity through Christ; now He communicated with humanity in Christ. Satan
had hoped that God's abhorrence of evil would bring an eternal separation
between heaven and earth. But now it was manifest that the connection
between God and man had been restored.

Satan saw that he must either conquer or be conquered. The issues of the
conflict involved too much to be entrusted to his confederate angels. He
must personally conduct the warfare. All the energies of apostasy were
rallied against the Son of God. Christ was made the mark of every weapon of
hell.

Many look on this conflict between Christ and Satan as having no special
bearing on their own life; and for them it has little interest. But within
the domain of every human heart this controversy is repeated. Never does one
leave the ranks of evil for the service of God without encountering the
assaults of Satan. The enticements which Christ resisted were those that we
find it so difficult to withstand. They were urged upon Him in as much
greater degree as His character is superior to ours. With the terrible
weight of the sins of the world upon Him, Christ withstood the test upon
appetite, upon the love of the world, and upon that love of display which
leads to presumption. These were the

                                                                     117

temptations that overcame Adam and Eve, and that so readily overcome us.

Satan had pointed to Adam's sin as proof that God's law was unjust, and
could not be obeyed. In our humanity, Christ was to redeem Adam's failure.
But when Adam was assailed by the tempter, none of the effects of sin were
upon him. He stood in the strength of perfect manhood, possessing the full
vigor of mind and body. He was surrounded with the glories of Eden, and was
in daily communion with heavenly beings. It was not thus with Jesus when He
entered the wilderness to cope with Satan. For four thousand years the race
had been decreasing in physical strength, in mental power, and in moral
worth; and Christ took upon Him the infirmities of degenerate humanity. Only
thus could He rescue man from the lowest depths of his degradation.

Many claim that it was impossible for Christ to be overcome by temptation.
Then He could not have been placed in Adam's position; He could not have
gained the victory that Adam failed to gain. If we have in any sense a more
trying conflict than had Christ, then He would not be able to succor us. But
our Saviour took humanity, with all its liabilities. He took the nature of
man, with the possibility of yielding to temptation. We have nothing to bear
which He has not endured.

With Christ, as with the holy pair in Eden, appetite was the ground of the
first great temptation. Just where the ruin began, the work of our
redemption must begin. As by the indulgence of appetite Adam fell, so by the
denial of appetite Christ must overcome. "And when He had fasted forty days
and forty nights, He was afterward an hungred. And when the tempter came to
Him, he said, If Thou be the Son of God, command that these stones be made
bread. But He answered and said, It is written, Man shall not live by bread
alone, but by every word that proceedeth out of the mouth of God."

From the time of Adam to that of Christ, self-indulgence had increased the
power of the appetites and passions, until they had almost unlimited
control. Thus men had become debased and diseased, and of themselves it was
impossible for them to overcome. In man's behalf, Christ conquered by
enduring the severest test. For our sake He exercised a self-control
stronger than hunger or death. And in this first victory were involved other
issues that enter into all our conflicts with the powers of darkness.

118


When Jesus entered the wilderness, He was shut in by the Father's glory.
Absorbed in communion with God, He was lifted above human weakness. But the
glory departed, and He was left to battle with temptation. It was pressing
upon Him every moment. His human nature shrank from the conflict that
awaited Him. For forty days He fasted and prayed. Weak and emaciated from
hunger, worn and haggard with mental agony, "His visage was so marred more
than any man, and His form more than the sons of men." Isa. 52:14. Now was
Satan's opportunity. Now he supposed that he could overcome Christ.

There came to the Saviour, as if in answer to His prayers, one in the guise
of an angel from heaven. He claimed to have a commission from God to declare
that Christ's fast was at an end. As God had sent an angel to stay the hand
of Abraham from offering Isaac, so, satisfied with Christ's willingness to
enter the bloodstained path, the Father had sent an angel to deliver Him;
this was the message brought to Jesus. The Saviour was faint from hunger, He
was craving for food, when Satan came suddenly upon Him. Pointing to the
stones which strewed the desert, and which had the appearance of loaves, the
tempter said, "If Thou be the Son of God, command that these stones be made
bread."

Though he appears as an angel of light, these first words betray his
character. "If Thou be the Son of God." Here is the insinuation of distrust.
Should Jesus do what Satan suggests, it would be an acceptance of the doubt.
The tempter plans to overthrow Christ by the same means that were so
successful with the human race in the beginning. How artfully had Satan
approached Eve in Eden! "Yea, hath God said, Ye shall not eat of every tree
of the garden?" Gen 3:1. Thus far the tempter's words were truth; but in his
manner of speaking them there was a disguised contempt for the words of God.
There was a covert negative, a doubt of the divine truthfulness. Satan
sought to instill into the mind of Eve the thought that God would not do as
He had said; that the withholding of such beautiful fruit was a
contradiction of His love and compassion for man. So now the tempter seeks
to inspire Christ with his own sentiments. "If Thou be the Son of God." The
words rankle with bitterness in his mind. In the tones of his voice is an
expression of utter incredulity. Would God treat His own Son thus? Would He
leave Him in the desert with wild beasts, without food, without companions,
without comfort? He insinuates that God never meant His Son to be in such a
state as this. "If Thou be the Son of God," show Thy power by

                                                                     119

relieving Thyself of this pressing hunger. Command that this stone be made
bread.

The words from heaven, "This is My beloved Son, in whom I am well pleased"
(Matt. 3:17), were still sounding in the ears of Satan. But he was
determined to make Christ disbelieve this testimony. The word of God was
Christ's assurance of His divine mission. He had come to live as a man among
men, and it was the word that declared His connection with heaven. It was
Satan's purpose to cause Him to doubt that word. If Christ's confidence in
God could be shaken, Satan knew that the victory in the whole controversy
would be his. He could overcome Jesus. He hoped that under the force of
despondency and extreme hunger, Christ would lose faith in His Father, and
work a miracle in His own behalf. Had He done this, the plan of salvation
would have been broken.

When Satan and the Son of God first met in conflict, Christ was the
commander of the heavenly hosts; and Satan, the leader of revolt in heaven,
was cast out. Now their condition is apparently reversed, and Satan makes
the most of his supposed advantage. One of the most powerful of the angels,
he says, has been banished from heaven. The appearance of Jesus indicates
that He is that fallen angel, forsaken by God, and deserted by man. A divine
being would be able to sustain his claim by working a miracle; "if Thou be
the Son of God, command this stone that it be made bread." Such an act of
creative power, urges the tempter, would be conclusive evidence of divinity.
It would bring the controversy to an end.

Not without a struggle could Jesus listen in silence to the arch-deceiver.
But the Son of God was not to prove His divinity to Satan, or to explain the
reason of His humiliation. By conceding to the demands of the rebel, nothing
for the good of man or the glory of God would be gained. Had Christ complied
with the suggestion of the enemy, Satan would still have said, Show me a
sign that I may believe you to be the Son of God. Evidence would have been
worthless to break the power of rebellion in his heart. And Christ was not
to exercise divine power for His own benefit. He had come to bear trial as
we must do, leaving us an example of faith and submission. Neither here nor
at any subsequent time in His earthly life did He work a miracle in His own
behalf. His wonderful works were all for the good of others. Though Jesus
recognized Satan from the beginning, He was not provoked to enter into
controversy with him. Strengthened with the memory of the voice

120

from heaven, He rested in His Father's love. He would not parley with
temptation.

Jesus met Satan with the words of Scripture. "It is written," He said. In
every temptation the weapon of His warfare was the word of God. Satan
demanded of Christ a miracle as a sign of His divinity. But that which is
greater than all miracles, a firm reliance upon a "Thus saith the Lord," was
a sign that could not be controverted. So long as Christ held to this
position, the tempter could gain no advantage.

It was in the time of greatest weakness that Christ was assailed by the
fiercest temptations. Thus Satan thought to prevail. By this policy he had
gained the victory over men. When strength failed, and the will power
weakened, and faith ceased to repose in God, then those who had stood long
and valiantly for the right were overcome. Moses was wearied with the forty
years' wandering of Israel, when for the moment his faith let go its hold
upon infinite power. He failed just upon the borders of the Promised Land.
So with Elijah, who had stood undaunted before King Ahab, who had faced the
whole nation of Israel, with the four hundred and fifty prophets of Baal at
their head. After that terrible day upon Carmel, when the false prophets had
been slain, and the people had declared their allegiance to God, Elijah fled
for his life before the threats of the idolatrous Jezebel. Thus Satan has
taken advantage of the weakness of humanity. And he will still work in the
same way. Whenever one is encompassed with clouds, perplexed by
circumstances, or afflicted by poverty or distress, Satan is at hand to
tempt and annoy. He attacks our weak points of character. He seeks to shake
our confidence in God, who suffers such a condition of things to exist. We
are tempted to distrust God, to question His love. Often the tempter comes
to us as he came to Christ, arraying before us our

                                                                     121

weakness and infirmities. He hopes to discourage the soul, and to break our
hold on God. Then he is sure of his prey. If we would meet him as Jesus did,
we should escape many a defeat. By parleying with the enemy, we give him an
advantage.

When Christ said to the tempter, "Man shall not live by bread alone, but by
every word that proceedeth out of the mouth of God," He repeated the words
that, more than fourteen hundred years before, He had spoken to Israel: "The
Lord thy God led thee these forty years in the wilderness. . . . And He
humbled thee, and suffered thee to hunger, and fed thee with manna, which
thou knewest not, neither did thy fathers know; that He might make thee know
that man doth not live by bread only, but by every word that proceedeth out
of the mouth of the Lord doth man live." Deut. 8:2, 3. In the wilderness,
when all means of sustenance failed, God sent His people manna from heaven;
and a sufficient and constant supply was given. This provision was to teach
them that while they trusted in God and walked in His ways He would not
forsake them. The Saviour now practiced the lesson He had taught to Israel.
By the word of God succor had been given to the Hebrew host, and by the same
word it would be given to Jesus. He awaited God's time to bring relief. He
was in the wilderness in obedience to God, and He would not obtain food by
following the suggestions of Satan. In the presence of the witnessing
universe, He testified that it is a less calamity to suffer whatever may
befall than to depart in any manner from the will of God.

"Man shall not live by bread alone, but by every word of God." Often the
follower of Christ is brought where he cannot serve God and carry forward
his worldly enterprises. Perhaps it appears that obedience to some plain
requirement of God will cut off his means of support. Satan would make him
believe that he must sacrifice his conscientious convictions. But the only
thing in our world upon which we can rely is the word of God. "Seek ye first
the kingdom of God, and His righteousness; and all these things shall be
added unto you." Matt. 6:33. Even in this life it is not for our good to
depart from the will of our Father in heaven. When we learn the power of His
word, we shall not follow the suggestions of Satan in order to obtain food
or to save our lives. Our only questions will be, What is God's command? and
what His promise? Knowing these, we shall obey the one, and trust the other.

In the last great conflict of the controversy with Satan those who are loyal
to God will see every earthly support cut off. Because they refuse

122

to break His law in obedience to earthly powers, they will be forbidden to
buy or sell. It will finally be decreed that they shall be put to death. See
Rev. 13:11-17. But to the obedient is given the promise, "He shall dwell on
high: his place of defense shall be the munitions of rocks: bread shall be
given him; his waters shall be sure." Isa. 33:16. By this promise the
children of God will live. When the earth shall be wasted with famine, they
shall be fed. "They shall not be ashamed in the evil time: and in the days
of famine they shall be satisfied." Ps. 37:19. To that time of distress the
prophet Habakkuk looked forward, and his words express the faith of the
church: "Although the fig tree shall not blossom, neither shall fruit be in
the vines; the labor of the olive shall fail, and the fields shall yield no
meat; the flock shall be cut off from the fold, and there shall be no herd
in the stalls: yet I will rejoice in the Lord, I will joy in the God of my
salvation." Hab. 3:17,18.

Of all the lessons to be learned from our Lord's first great temptation none
is more important than that bearing upon the control of the appetites and
passions. In all ages, temptations appealing to the physical nature have
been most effectual in corrupting and degrading mankind. Through
intemperance, Satan works to destroy the mental and moral powers that God
gave to man as a priceless endowment. Thus it becomes impossible for men to
appreciate things of eternal worth. Through sensual indulgence, Satan seeks
to blot from the soul every trace of likeness to God.

The uncontrolled indulgence and consequent disease and degradation that
existed at Christ's first advent will again exist, with intensity of evil,
before His second coming. Christ declares that the condition of the world
will be as in the days before the Flood, and as in Sodom and Gomorrah. Every
imagination of the thoughts of the heart will be evil continually. Upon the
very verge of that fearful time we are now living, and to us should come
home the lesson of the Saviour's fast. Only by the inexpressible anguish
which Christ endured can we estimate the evil of unrestrained indulgence.
His example declares that our only hope of eternal life is through bringing
the appetites and passions into subjection to the will of God.

In our own strength it is impossible for us to deny the clamors of our
fallen nature. Through this channel Satan will bring temptation upon us.
Christ knew that the enemy would come to every human being, to take
advantage of hereditary weakness, and by his false insinuations to ensnare
all whose trust is not in God. And by passing over the ground which

                                                                     123

man must travel, our Lord has prepared the way for us to overcome. It is not
His will that we should be placed at a disadvantage in the conflict with
Satan. He would not have us intimidated and discouraged by the assaults of
the serpent. "Be of good cheer," He says; "I have overcome the world." John
16:33.

Let him who is struggling against the power of appetite look to the Saviour
in the wilderness of temptation. See Him in His agony upon the cross, as He
exclaimed, "I thirst." He has endured all that it is possible for us to
bear. His victory is ours.

Jesus rested upon the wisdom and strength of His heavenly Father. He
declares, "The Lord God will help Me; therefore shall I not be confounded: .
. and I know that I shall not be ashamed. . . . Behold, the Lord God will
help Me." Pointing to His own example, He says to us, "Who is among you that
feareth the Lord, . . . that walketh in darkness, and hath no light? let him
trust in the name of the Lord, and stay upon his God." Isa. 50:7-10.

"The prince of this world cometh," said Jesus, "and hath nothing in Me."
John 14:30. There was in Him nothing that responded to Satan's sophistry. He
did not consent to sin. Not even by a thought did He yield to temptation. So
it may be with us. Christ's humanity was united with divinity; He was fitted
for the conflict by the indwelling of the Holy Spirit. And He came to make
us partakers of the divine nature. So long as we are united to Him by faith,
sin has no more dominion over us. God reaches for the hand of faith in us to
direct it to lay fast hold upon the divinity of Christ, that we may attain
to perfection of character.

And how this is accomplished, Christ has shown us. By what means did He
overcome in the conflict with Satan? By the word of God. Only by the word
could He resist temptation. "It is written," He said. And unto us are given
"exceeding great and precious promises: that by these ye might be partakers
of the divine nature, having escaped the corruption that is in the world
through lust." 2 Peter 1:4. Every promise in God's word is ours. "By every
word that proceedeth out of the mouth of God" are we to live. When assailed
by temptation, look not to circumstances or to the weakness of self, but to
the power of the word. All its strength is yours. "Thy word," says the
psalmist, "have I hid in mine heart, that I might not sin against Thee." "By
the world of Thy lips I have kept me from the paths of the destroyer." Ps.
119:11; 17:4.




(124)

                             Chapter 13

                             The Victory


Then the devil taketh Him up into the holy city, and setteth Him on a
pinnacle of the temple, and saith unto Him, If Thou be the Son of God, cast
Thyself down: for it is written,--

        "He shall give His angels charge concerning Thee:
         And in their hands they shall bear Thee up,
         Lest at any time Thou dash Thy foot against a stone."

Satan now supposes that he has met Jesus on His own ground. The wily foe
himself presents words that proceeded from the mouth of God. He still
appears as an angel of light, and he makes it evident that he is acquainted
with the Scriptures, and understands the import of what is written. As Jesus
before used the word of God to sustain His faith, the tempter now uses it to
countenance his deception. He claims that he has been only testing the
fidelity of Jesus, and he now commends His steadfastness. As the Saviour has
manifested trust in God, Satan urges Him to give still another evidence of
His faith.

But again the temptation is prefaced with the insinuation of distrust, "If
Thou be the Son of God." Christ was tempted to answer the "if;" but He
refrained from the slightest acceptance of the doubt. He would not imperil
His life in order to give evidence to Satan.

                                                                     125


The tempter thought to take advantage of Christ's humanity, and urge Him to
presumption. But while Satan can solicit, he cannot compel to sin. He said
to Jesus, "Cast Thyself down," knowing that he could not cast Him down; for
God would interpose to deliver Him. Nor could Satan force Jesus to cast
Himself down. Unless Christ should consent to temptation, He could not be
overcome. Not all the power of earth or hell could force Him in the
slightest degree to depart from the will of His Father.

The tempter can never compel us to do evil. He cannot control minds unless
they are yielded to his control. The will must consent, faith must let go
its hold upon Christ, before Satan can exercise his power upon us. But every
sinful desire we cherish affords him a foothold. Every point in which we
fail of meeting the divine standard is an open door by which he can enter to
tempt and destroy us. And every failure or defeat on our part gives occasion
for him to reproach Christ.

When Satan quoted the promise, "He shall give His angels charge over Thee,"
he omitted the words, "to keep Thee in all Thy ways;" that is, in all the
ways of God's choosing. Jesus refused to go outside the path of obedience.
While manifesting perfect trust in His Father, He would not place Himself,
unbidden, in a position that would necessitate the interposition of His
Father to save Him from death. He would not force Providence to come to His
rescue, and thus fail of giving man an example of trust and submission.

Jesus declared to Satan, "It is written again, Thou shalt not tempt the Lord
thy God." These words were spoken by Moses to the children of Israel when
they thirsted in the desert, and demanded that Moses should give them water,
exclaiming, "Is the Lord among

126

us, or not?" Exodus 17:7. God had wrought marvelously for them; yet in
trouble they doubted Him, and demanded evidence that He was with them. In
their unbelief they sought to put Him to the test. And Satan was urging
Christ to do the same thing. God had already testified that Jesus was His
Son; and now to ask for proof that He was the Son of God would be putting
God's word to the test,--tempting Him. And the same would be true of asking
for that which God had not promised. It would manifest distrust, and be
really proving, or tempting, Him. We should not present our petitions to God
to prove whether He will fulfill His word, but because He will fulfill it;
not to prove that He loves us, but because He loves us. "Without faith it is
impossible to please Him: for he that cometh to God must believe that He is,
and that He is a rewarder of them that diligently seek Him." Heb. 11:6.

But faith is in no sense allied to presumption. Only he who has true faith
is secure against presumption. For presumption is Satan's counterfeit of
faith. Faith claims God's promises, and brings forth fruit in obedience.
Presumption also claims the promises, but uses them as Satan did, to excuse
transgression. Faith would have led our first parents to trust the love of
God, and to obey His commands. Presumption led them to transgress His law,
believing that His great love would save them from the consequence of their
sin. It is not faith that claims the favor of Heaven without complying with
the conditions on which mercy is to be granted. Genuine faith has its
foundation in the promises and provisions of the Scriptures.

Often when Satan has failed of exciting distrust, he succeeds in leading us
to presumption. If he can cause us to place ourselves unnecessarily in the
way of temptation, he knows that the victory is his. God will preserve all
who walk in the path of obedience; but to depart from it is to venture on
Satan's ground. There we are sure to fall. The Saviour has bidden us, "Watch
ye and pray, lest ye enter into temptation." Mark 14:38. Meditation and
prayer would keep us from rushing unbidden into the way of danger, and thus
we should be saved from many a defeat.

Yet we should not lose courage when assailed by temptation. Often when
placed in a trying situation we doubt that the Spirit of God has been
leading us. But it was the Spirit's leading that brought Jesus into the
wilderness to be tempted by Satan. When God brings us into trial, He has a
purpose to accomplish for our good. Jesus did not presume on God's promises
by going unbidden into temptation, neither did He give

                                                                     129

up to despondency when temptation came upon Him. Nor should we. "God is
faithful, who will not suffer you to be tempted above that ye are able; but
will with the temptation also make a way to escape, that ye may be able to
bear it." He says, "Offer unto God thanksgiving; and pay thy vows unto the
Most High: and call upon Me in the day of trouble: I will deliver thee, and
thou shalt glorify Me." 1 Cor. 10:13; Ps. 50:14, 15.

Jesus was victor in the second temptation, and now Satan manifests himself
in his true character. But he does not appear as a hideous monster, with
cloven feet and bat's wings. He is a mighty angel, though fallen. He avows
himself the leader of rebellion and the god of this world.

Placing Jesus upon a high mountain, Satan caused the kingdoms of the world,
in all their glory, to pass in panoramic view before Him. The sunlight lay
on templed cities, marble palaces, fertile fields, and fruit-laden
vineyards. The traces of evil were hidden. The eyes of Jesus, so lately
greeted by gloom and desolation, now gazed upon a scene of unsurpassed
loveliness and prosperity. Then the tempter's voice was heard: "All this
power will I give Thee, and the glory of them: for that is delivered unto
me; and to whomsoever I will I give it. If Thou therefore wilt worship me,
all shall be Thine."

Christ's mission could be fulfilled only through suffering. Before Him was a
life of sorrow, hardship, and conflict, and an ignominious death. He must
bear the sins of the whole world. He must endure separation from His
Father's love. Now the tempter offered to yield up the power he had usurped.
Christ might deliver Himself from the dreadful future by acknowledging the
supremacy of Satan. But to do this was to yield the victory in the great
controversy. It was in seeking to exalt himself above the Son of God that
Satan had sinned in heaven. Should he prevail now, it would be the triumph
of rebellion.

When Satan declared to Christ, The kingdom and glory of the world are
delivered unto me, and to whomsoever I will I give it, he stated what was
true only in part, and he declared it to serve his own purpose of deception.
Satan's dominion was that wrested from Adam, but Adam was the vicegerent of
the Creator. His was not an independent rule. The earth is God's, and He has
committed all things to His Son. Adam was to reign subject to Christ. When
Adam betrayed his sovereignty into Satan's hands, Christ still remained the
rightful King. Thus the Lord had said to King Nebuchadnezzar, "The Most High
ruleth in the

130

kingdom of men, and giveth it to whomsoever He will." Dan. 4:17. Satan can
exercise his usurped authority only as God permits.

When the tempter offered to Christ the kingdom and glory of the world, he
was proposing that Christ should yield up the real kingship of the world,
and hold dominion subject to Satan. This was the same dominion upon which
the hopes of the Jews were set. They desired the kingdom of this world. If
Christ had consented to offer them such a kingdom, they would gladly have
received Him. But the curse of sin, with all its woe, rested upon it. Christ
declared to the tempter, "Get thee behind Me, Satan: for it is written, Thou
shalt worship the Lord thy God, and Him only shalt thou serve."

By the one who had revolted in heaven the kingdoms of this world were
offered Christ, to buy His homage to the principles of evil; but He would
not be bought; He had come to establish a kingdom of righteousness, and He
would not abandon His purpose. With the same temptation Satan approaches
men, and here he has better success than with Christ. To men he offers the
kingdom of this world on condition that they will acknowledge his supremacy.
He requires that they sacrifice integrity, disregard conscience, indulge
selfishness. Christ bids them seek first the kingdom of God, and His
righteousness; but Satan walks by their side and says: Whatever may be true
in regard to life eternal, in order to make a success in this world you must
serve me. I hold your welfare in my hands. I can give you riches, pleasures,
honor, and happiness. Hearken to my counsel. Do not allow yourselves to be
carried away with whimsical notions of honesty or self-sacrifice. I will
prepare the way before you. Thus multitudes are deceived. They consent to
live for the service of self, and Satan is satisfied. While he allures them
with the hope of worldly dominion, he gains dominion over the soul. But he
offers that which is not his to bestow, and which is soon to be wrested from
him. In return he beguiles them of their title to the inheritance of the
sons of God.

Satan had questioned whether Jesus was the Son of God. In his summary
dismissal he had proof that he could not gainsay. Divinity flashed through
suffering humanity. Satan had no power to resist the command. Writhing with
humiliation and rage, he was forced to withdraw from the presence of the
world's Redeemer. Christ's victory was as complete as had been the failure
of Adam.

So we may resist temptation, and force Satan to depart from us. Jesus gained
the victory through submission and faith in God, and by

                                                                     131

the apostle He says to us, "Submit yourselves therefore to God. Resist the
devil, and he will flee from you. Draw nigh to God, and He will draw nigh to
you." James 4:7, 8. We cannot save ourselves from the tempter's power; he
has conquered humanity, and when we try to stand in our own strength, we
shall become a prey to his devices; but "the name of the Lord is a strong
tower: the righteous runneth into it, and is safe." Prov. 18:10. Satan
trembles and flees before the weakest soul who finds refuge in that mighty
name.

After the foe had departed, Jesus fell exhausted to the earth, with the
pallor of death upon His face. The angels of heaven had watched the
conflict, beholding their loved Commander as He passed through inexpressible
suffering to make a way of escape for us. He had endured the test, greater
than we shall ever be called to endure. The angels now ministered to the Son
of God as He lay like one dying. He was strengthened with food, comforted
with the message of His Father's love and the assurance that all heaven
triumphed in His victory. Warming to life again, His great heart goes out in
sympathy for man, and He goes forth to complete the work He has begun; to
rest not until the foe is vanquished, and our fallen race redeemed.

Never can the cost of our redemption be realized until the redeemed shall
stand with the Redeemer before the throne of God. Then as the glories of the
eternal home burst upon our enraptured senses we shall remember that Jesus
left all this for us, that He not only became an exile from the heavenly
courts, but for us took the risk of failure and eternal loss. Then we shall
cast our crowns at His feet, and raise the song, "Worthy is the Lamb that
was slain to receive power, and riches, and wisdom, and strength, and honor,
and glory, and blessing." Rev. 5:12.




(132)

                             Chapter 14

                             "We Have Found the Messias"


John the Baptist was now preaching and baptizing at Bethabara, beyond
Jordan. It was not far from this spot that God had stayed the river in its
flow until Israel had passed over. A little distance from here the
stronghold of Jericho had been overthrown by the armies of heaven. The
memory of these events was at this time revived, and gave a thrilling
interest to the Baptist's message. Would not He who had wrought so
wonderfully in ages past again manifest His power for Israel's deliverance?
Such was the thought stirring the hearts of the people who daily thronged
the banks of the Jordan.

The preaching of John had taken so deep a hold on the nation as to demand
the attention of the religious authorities. The danger of insurrection
caused every popular gathering to be looked upon with suspicion by the
Romans, and whatever pointed toward an uprising of the people excited the
fears of the Jewish rulers. John had not recognized the authority of the
Sanhedrin by seeking their sanction for his work; and

                                                                     133

he had reproved rulers and people, Pharisees and Sadducees alike. Yet the
people followed him eagerly. The interest in his work seemed to be
continually increasing. Though he had not deferred to them, the Sanhedrin
accounted that, as a public teacher, he was under their jurisdiction.

This body was made up of members chosen from the priesthood, and from the
chief rulers and teachers of the nation. The high priest was usually the
president. All its members were to be men advanced in years, though not
aged; men of learning, not only versed in Jewish religion and history, but
in general knowledge. They were to be without physical blemish, and must be
married men, and fathers, as being more likely than others to be humane and
considerate. Their place of meeting was an apartment connected with the
temple at Jerusalem. In the days of Jewish independence the Sanhedrin was
the supreme court of the nation, possessing secular as well as
ecclesiastical authority. Though now subordinated by the Roman governors, it
still exercised a strong influence in civil as well as religious matters.

The Sanhedrin could not well defer an investigation of John's work. There
were some who recalled the revelation made to Zacharias in the temple, and
the father's prophecy, that had pointed to his child as the Messiah's
herald. In the tumults and changes of thirty years, these things had in a
great measure been lost sight of. They were now called to mind by the
excitement concerning the ministry of John.

It was long since Israel had had a prophet, long since such a reformation as
was now in progress had been witnessed. The demand for confession of sin
seemed new and startling. Many among the leaders would not go to hear John's
appeals and denunciations, lest they should be led to disclose the secrets
of their own lives. Yet his preaching was a direct announcement of the
Messiah. It was well known that the seventy weeks of Daniel's prophecy,
covering the Messiah's advent, were nearly ended; and all were eager to
share in that era of national glory which was then expected. Such was the
popular enthusiasm that the Sanhedrin would soon be forced either to
sanction or to reject John's work. Already their power over the people was
waning. It was becoming a serious question how to maintain their position.
In the hope of arriving at some conclusion, they dispatched to the Jordan a
deputation of priests and Levites to confer with the new teacher.

A multitude were gathered, listening to his words, when the delegates
approached. With an air of authority designed to impress the people

134

and to command the deference of the prophet the haughty rabbis came. With a
movement of respect, almost of fear, the crowd opened to let them pass. The
great men, in their rich robes, in the pride of rank and power, stood before
the prophet of the wilderness.

"Who art thou?" they demanded.

Knowing what was in their thoughts, John answered, "I am not the Christ."

"What then? Art thou Elias?"

"I am not."

"Art thou that prophet?"

"No."

"Who art thou? that we may give an answer to them that sent us. What sayest
thou of thyself?"

"I am the voice of one crying in the wilderness, Make straight the way of
the Lord, as said the prophet Esaias."

The scripture to which John referred is that beautiful prophecy of Isaiah:
"Comfort ye, comfort ye My people, saith your God. Speak

                                                                     135

ye comfortably to Jerusalem, and cry unto her, that her appointed time is
accomplished, that her iniquity is pardoned. . . . The voice of him that
crieth in the wilderness, Prepare ye the way of the Lord, make straight in
the desert a highway for our God. Every valley shall be exalted, and every
mountain and hill shall be made low: and the crooked shall be made straight,
and the rough places plain: and the glory of the Lord shall be revealed, and
all flesh shall see it together." Isa. 40:1-5, margin.

Anciently, when a king journeyed through the less frequented parts of his
dominion, a company of men was sent ahead of the royal chariot to level the
steep places and to fill up the hollows, that the king might travel in
safety and without hindrance. This custom is employed by the prophet to
illustrate the work of the gospel. "Every valley shall be exalted, and every
mountain and hill shall be made low." When the Spirit of God, with its
marvelous awakening power, touches the soul, it abases human pride. Worldly
pleasure and position and power are seen to be worthless. "Imaginations, and
every high thing that exalteth itself against the knowledge of God" are cast
down; every thought is brought into captivity "to the obedience of Christ."
2 Cor. 10:5. Then humility and self-sacrificing love, so little valued among
men, are exalted as alone of worth. This is the work of the gospel, of which
John's message was a part.

The rabbis continued their questioning: "Why baptizest thou then, if thou be
not that Christ, nor Elias, neither that prophet?" The words "that prophet"
had reference to Moses. The Jews had been inclined to the belief that Moses
would be raised from the dead, and taken to heaven. They did not know that
he had already been raised. When the Baptist began his ministry, many
thought that he might be the prophet Moses risen from the dead, for he
seemed to have a thorough knowledge of the prophecies and of the history of
Israel.

It was believed also that before the Messiah's advent, Elijah would
personally appear. This expectation John met in his denial; but his words
had a deeper meaning. Jesus afterward said, referring to John, "If ye are
willing to receive it, this is Elijah, which is to come." Matt. 11:14, R. V.
John came in the spirit and power of Elijah, to do such a work as Elijah
did. If the Jews had received him, it would have been accomplished for them.
But they did not receive his message. To them he was not Elijah. He could
not fulfill for them the mission he came to accomplish.

136


Many of those gathered at the Jordan had been present at the baptism of
Jesus; but the sign then given had been manifest to but few among them.
During the preceding months of the Baptist's ministry, many had refused to
heed the call to repentance. Thus they had hardened their hearts and
darkened their understanding. When Heaven bore testimony to Jesus at His
baptism, they perceived it not. Eyes that had never been turned in faith to
Him that is invisible beheld not the revelation of the glory of God; ears
that had never listened to His voice heard not the words of witness. So it
is now. Often the presence of Christ and the ministering angels is manifest
in the assemblies of the people, and yet there are many who know it not.
They discern nothing unusual. But to some the Saviour's presence is
revealed. Peace and joy animate their hearts. They are comforted,
encouraged, and blessed.

The deputies from Jerusalem had demanded of John, "Why baptizest thou?" and
they were awaiting his answer. Suddenly, as his glance swept over the
throng, his eye kindled, his face was lighted up, his whole being was
stirred with deep emotion. With outstretched hands he cried, "I baptize in
water: in the midst of you standeth One whom ye know not, even He that
cometh after me, the latchet of whose shoe I am not worthy to unloose." John
1:27, R. V., margin.

The message was distinct and unequivocal, to be carried back to the
Sanhedrin. The words of John could apply to no other than the long-promised
One. The Messiah was among them! In amazement priests and rulers gazed about
them, hoping to discover Him of whom John had spoken. But He was not
distinguishable among the throng.

When at the baptism of Jesus, John pointed to Him as the Lamb of God, a new
light was shed upon the Messiah's work. The prophet's mind was directed to
the words of Isaiah, "He is brought as a lamb to the slaughter." Isa. 53:7.
During the weeks that followed, John with new interest studied the
prophecies and the teaching of the sacrificial service. He did not
distinguish clearly the two phases of Christ's work,--as a suffering
sacrifice and a conquering king,--but he saw that His

                                                                     137

coming had a deeper significance than priests or people had discerned. When
he beheld Jesus among the throng on His return from the desert, he
confidently looked for Him to give the people some sign of His true
character. Almost impatiently he waited to hear the Saviour declare His
mission; but no word was spoken, no sign given. Jesus did not respond to the
Baptist's announcement of Him, but mingled with the disciples of John,
giving no outward evidence of His special work, and taking no measures to
bring Himself to notice.

The next day John sees Jesus coming. With the light of the glory of God
resting upon him, the prophet stretches out his hands, declaring, "Behold
the Lamb of God, which taketh away the sin of the world! This is He of whom
I said, After me cometh a man which is become before me. . . . And I knew
Him not; but that He should be made manifest to Israel, for this cause came
I baptizing in water. . . . I have beheld the Spirit descending as a dove
out of heaven; and it abode upon Him. And I knew Him not: but He that sent
me to baptize in water, He said unto me, Upon whomsoever thou shalt see the
Spirit descending, and abiding upon Him, the same is He that baptizeth with
the Holy Spirit. And I have seen, and have borne witness that this is the
Son of God." John 1:29-34, R. V., margin.

Was this the Christ? With awe and wonder the people looked upon the One just
declared to be the Son of God. They had been deeply moved by the words of
John. He had spoken to them in the name of God. They had listened to him day
after day as he reproved their sins, and daily the conviction that he was
sent of Heaven had strengthened. But who was this One greater than John the
Baptist? In His dress and bearing there was nothing that betokened rank. He
was apparently a simple personage, clad like themselves in the humble
garments of the poor.

There were in the throng some who at Christ's baptism had beheld the divine
glory, and had heard the voice of God. But since that time the Saviour's
appearance had greatly changed. At His baptism they had seen His countenance
transfigured in the light of heaven; now, pale, worn, and emaciated, He had
been recognized only by the prophet John.

But as the people looked upon Him, they saw a face where divine compassion
was blended with conscious power. Every glance of the eye, every feature of
the countenance, was marked with humility, and expressive of unutterable
love. He seemed to be surrounded by an

138

atmosphere of spiritual influence. While His manners were gentle and
unassuming, He impressed men with a sense of power that was hidden, yet
could not be wholly concealed. Was this the One for whom Israel had so long
waited?

Jesus came in poverty and humiliation, that He might be our example as well
as our Redeemer. If He had appeared with kingly pomp, how could He have
taught humility? how could He have presented such cutting truths as in the
Sermon on the Mount? Where would have been the hope of the lowly in life had
Jesus come to dwell as a king among men?

To the multitude, however, it seemed impossible that the One designated by
John should be associated with their lofty anticipations. Thus many were
disappointed, and greatly perplexed.

The words which the priests and rabbis so much desired to hear, that Jesus
would now restore the kingdom to Israel, had not been spoken. For such a
king they had been waiting and watching; such a king they were ready to
receive. But one who sought to establish in their hearts a kingdom of
righteousness and peace, they would not accept.

On the following day, while two disciples were standing near, John again saw
Jesus among the people. Again the face of the prophet was lighted up with
glory from the Unseen, as he cried, "Behold the Lamb of God!" The words
thrilled the hearts of the disciples. They did not fully understand them.
What meant the name that John had given Him,--"the Lamb of God"? John
himself had not explained it.

Leaving John, they went to seek Jesus. One of the two was Andrew, the
brother of Simon; the other was John the evangelist. These were Christ's
first disciples. Moved by an irresistible impulse, they followed
Jesus,--anxious to speak with Him, yet awed and silent, lost in the
overwhelming significance of the thought, "Is this the Messiah?"

Jesus knew that the disciples were following Him. They were the first fruits
of His ministry, and there was joy in the heart of the divine Teacher as
these souls responded to His grace. Yet turning, He asked only, "What seek
ye?" He would leave them free to turn back or to speak of their desire.

Of one purpose only were they conscious. One presence filled their thought.
They exclaimed, "Rabbi, . . . where dwellest Thou?" In a brief interview by
the wayside they could not receive that for which they longed. They desired
to be alone with Jesus, to sit at His feet, and hear His words.

                                                                     139


"He saith unto them, Come and see. They came and saw where He dwelt, and
abode with Him that day."

If John and Andrew had possessed the unbelieving spirit of the priests and
rulers, they would not have been found as learners at the feet of Jesus.
They would have come to Him as critics, to judge His words. Many thus close
the door to the most precious opportunities. But not so did these first
disciples. They had responded to the Holy Spirit's call in the preaching of
John the Baptist. Now they recognized the voice of the heavenly Teacher. To
them the words of Jesus were full of freshness and truth and beauty. A
divine illumination was shed upon the teaching of the Old Testament
Scriptures. The many-sided themes of truth stood out in new light.

It is contrition and faith and love that enable the soul to receive wisdom
from heaven. Faith working by love is the key of knowledge, and everyone
that loveth "knoweth God." 1 John 4:7.

The disciple John was a man of earnest and deep affection, ardent, yet
contemplative. He had begun to discern the glory of Christ,--not the worldly
pomp and power for which he had been taught to hope, but "the glory as of
the Only-begotten of the Father, full of grace and truth." John 1:14. He was
absorbed in contemplation of the wondrous theme.

Andrew sought to impart the joy that filled his heart. Going in search of
his brother Simon, he cried, "We have found the Messias." Simon waited for
no second bidding. He also had heard the preaching of John the Baptist, and
he hastened to the Saviour. The eye of Christ rested upon him, reading his
character and his life history. His impulsive nature, his loving,
sympathetic heart, his ambition and self-confidence, the history of his
fall, his repentance, his labors, and his martyr death,--the Saviour read it
all, and He said, "Thou art Simon the son of Jona: thou shalt be called
Cephas, which is by interpretation, A stone."

"The day following Jesus would go forth into Galilee, and findeth Philip,
and saith unto him, Follow Me." Philip obeyed the command, and straightway
he also became a worker for Christ.

Philip called Nathanael. The latter had been among the throng when the
Baptist pointed to Jesus as the Lamb of God. As Nathanael looked upon Jesus,
he was disappointed. Could this man, who bore the marks of toil and poverty,
be the Messiah? Yet Nathanael could not decide to reject Jesus, for the
message of John had brought conviction to his heart.

140


At the time when Philip called him, Nathanael had withdrawn to a quiet grove
to meditate upon the announcement of John and the prophecies concerning the
Messiah. He prayed that if the one announced by John was the deliverer, it
might be made known to him, and the Holy Spirit rested upon him with
assurance that God had visited His people and raised up a horn of salvation
for them. Philip knew that his friend was searching the prophecies, and
while Nathanael was praying under a fig tree, Philip discovered his retreat.
They had often prayed together in this secluded spot hidden by the foliage.

The message, "We have found Him, of whom Moses in the law, and the prophets,
did write," seemed to Nathanael a direct answer to his prayer. But Philip
had yet a trembling faith. He added doubtfully, "Jesus of Nazareth, the son
of Joseph." Again prejudice arose in Nathanael's heart. He exclaimed, "Can
there any good thing come out of Nazareth?"

Philip entered into no controversy. He said, "Come and see. Jesus saw
Nathanael coming to Him, and saith of him, Behold an Israelite indeed, in
whom is no guile!" In surprise Nathanael exclaimed, "Whence knowest Thou me?
Jesus answered and said unto him, Before that Philip called thee, when thou
wast under the fig tree, I saw thee."

It was enough. The divine Spirit that had borne witness to Nathanael in his
solitary prayer under the fig tree now spoke to him in the words of Jesus.
Though in doubt, and yielding somewhat to prejudice, Nathanael had come to
Christ with an honest desire for truth, and now his desire was met. His
faith went beyond that of the one who had brought him to Jesus. He answered
and said, "Rabbi, Thou art the Son of God; Thou art the King of Israel."

If Nathanael had trusted to the rabbis for guidance, he would never have
found Jesus. It was by seeing and judging for himself that he

                                                                     141

became a disciple. So in the case of many today whom prejudice withholds
from good. How different would be the result if they would "come and see"!

While they trust to the guidance of human authority, none will come to a
saving knowledge of the truth. Like Nathanael, we need to study God's word
for ourselves, and pray for the enlightenment of the Holy Spirit. He who saw
Nathanael under the fig tree will see us in the secret place of prayer.
Angels from the world of light are near to those who in humility seek for
divine guidance.

With the calling of John and Andrew and Simon, of Philip and Nathanael,
began the foundation of the Christian church. John directed two of his
disciples to Christ. Then one of these, Andrew, found his brother, and
called him to the Saviour. Philip was then called, and he went in search of
Nathanael. These examples should teach us the importance of personal effort,
of making direct appeals to our kindred, friends, and neighbors. There are
those who for a lifetime have professed to be acquainted with Christ, yet
who have never made a personal effort to bring even one soul to the Saviour.
They leave all the work for the minister. He may be well qualified for his
calling, but he cannot do that which God has left for the members of the
church.

There are many who need the ministration of loving Christian hearts. Many
have gone down to ruin who might have been saved if their neighbors, common
men and women, had put forth personal effort for them. Many are waiting to
be personally addressed. In the very family, the neighborhood, the town,
where we live, there is work for us to do as missionaries for Christ. If we
are Christians, this work will be our delight. No sooner is one converted
than there is born within him a desire to make known to others what a
precious friend he has found in Jesus. The saving and sanctifying truth
cannot be shut up in his heart.

All who are consecrated to God will be channels of light. God makes them His
agents to communicate to others the riches of His grace. His promise is, "I
will make them and the places round about My hill a blessing; and I will
cause the shower to come down in his season; there shall be showers of
blessing." Ezek. 34:26.

Philip said to Nathanael, "Come and see." He did not ask him to accept
another's testimony, but to behold Christ for himself. Now that Jesus has
ascended to heaven, His disciples are His representatives among men, and one
of the most effective ways of winning souls to Him is in

142

exemplifying His character in our daily life. Our influence upon others
depends not so much upon what we say as upon what we are. Men may combat and
defy our logic, they may resist our appeals; but a life of disinterested
love is an argument they cannot gainsay. A consistent life, characterized by
the meekness of Christ, is a power in the world.

The teaching of Christ was the expression of an inwrought conviction and
experience, and those who learn of Him become teachers after the divine
order. The word of God, spoken by one who is himself sanctified through it,
has a life-giving power that makes it attractive to the hearers, and
convicts them that it is a living reality. When one has received the truth
in the love of it, he will make this manifest in the persuasion of his
manner and the tones of his voice. He makes known that which he himself has
heard, seen, and handled of the word of life, that others may have
fellowship with him through the knowledge of Christ. His testimony, from
lips touched with a live coal from off the altar, is truth to the receptive
heart, and works sanctification upon the character.

And he who seeks to give light to others will himself be blessed. "There
shall be showers of blessing." "He that watereth shall be watered also
himself." Prov. 11:25. God could have reached His object in saving sinners
without our aid; but in order for us to develop a character like Christ's,
we must share in His work. In order to enter into His joy,--the joy of
seeing souls redeemed by His sacrifice,--we must participate in His labors
for their redemption.

Nathanael's first expression of his faith, so full and earnest and sincere,
fell like music on the ears of Jesus. And He "answered and said unto him,
Because I said unto thee, I saw thee under the fig tree, believest thou?
thou shalt see greater things than these." The Saviour looked forward with
joy to His work in preaching good tidings to the meek, binding up the
brokenhearted, and proclaiming liberty to the captives of Satan. At thought
of the precious blessings He had brought to men, Jesus added, "Verily,
verily, I say unto you, Hereafter ye shall see heaven open, and the angels
of God ascending and descending upon the Son of man."

Here Christ virtually says, On the bank of the Jordan the heavens were
opened, and the Spirit descended like a dove upon Me. That scene was but a
token that I am the Son of God. If you believe on Me as such, your faith
shall be quickened. You shall see that the heavens are opened, and are never
to be closed. I have opened them to you. The

                                                                     143

angels of God are ascending, bearing the prayers of the needy and distressed
to the Father above, and descending, bringing blessing and hope, courage,
help, and life, to the children of men.

The angels of God are ever passing from earth to heaven, and from heaven to
earth. The miracles of Christ for the afflicted and suffering were wrought
by the power of God through the ministration of the angels. And it is
through Christ, by the ministration of His heavenly messengers, that every
blessing comes from God to us. In taking upon Himself humanity, our Saviour
unites His interests with those of the fallen sons and daughters of Adam,
while through His divinity He grasps the throne of God. And thus Christ is
the medium of communication of men with God, and of God with men.




(144)

                             Chapter 15

                             At the Marriage Feast


Jesus did not begin His ministry by some great work before the Sanhedrin at
Jerusalem. At a household gathering in a little Galilean village His power
was put forth to add to the joy of a wedding feast. Thus He showed His
sympathy with men, and His desire to minister to their happiness. In the
wilderness of temptation He Himself had drunk the cup of woe. He came forth
to give to men the cup of blessing, by His benediction to hallow the
relations of human life.

From the Jordan, Jesus had returned to Galilee. There was to be a marriage
at Cana, a little town not far from Nazareth; the parties were relatives of
Joseph and Mary; and Jesus, knowing of this family gathering, went to Cana,
and with His disciples was invited to the feast.

Again He met His mother, from whom He had for some time been separated. Mary
had heard of the manifestation at the Jordan, at His baptism. The tidings
had been carried to Nazareth, and had brought to her mind afresh the scenes
that for so many years had been hidden in her heart. In common with all
Israel, Mary was deeply stirred by the mission of John the Baptist. Well she
remembered the prophecy given at his birth. Now his connection with Jesus
kindled her hopes

                                                                     145

anew. But tidings had reached her also of the mysterious departure of Jesus
to the wilderness, and she was oppressed with troubled forebodings.

From the day when she heard the angel's announcement in the home at Nazareth
Mary had treasured every evidence that Jesus was the Messiah. His sweet,
unselfish life assured her that He could be no other than the Sent of God.
Yet there came to her also doubts and disappointments, and she had longed
for the time when His glory should be revealed. Death had separated her from
Joseph, who had shared her knowledge of the mystery of the birth of Jesus.
Now there was no one to whom she could confide her hopes and fears. The past
two months had been very sorrowful. She had been parted from Jesus, in whose
sympathy she found comfort; she pondered upon the words of Simeon, "A sword
shall pierce through thy own soul also" (Luke 2:35); she recalled the three
days of agony when she thought Jesus lost to her forever; and with an
anxious heart she awaited His return.

At the marriage feast she meets Him, the same tender, dutiful son. Yet He is
not the same. His countenance is changed. It bears the traces of His
conflict in the wilderness, and a new expression of dignity and power gives
evidence of His heavenly mission. With Him is a group of young men, whose
eyes follow Him with reverence, and who call Him Master. These companions
recount to Mary what they have seen and heard at the baptism and elsewhere.
They conclude by declaring, "We have found Him, of whom Moses in the law,
and the prophets, did write." John 1:45.

As the guests assemble, many seem to be preoccupied with some topic of
absorbing interest. A suppressed excitement pervades the company. Little
groups converse together in eager but quiet tones, and wondering glances are
turned upon the Son of Mary. As Mary had heard the disciples' testimony in
regard to Jesus, she had been gladdened with the assurance that her
long-cherished hopes were not in vain. Yet she would have been more than
human if there had not mingled with this holy joy a trace of the fond
mother's natural pride. As she saw the many glances bent upon Jesus, she
longed to have Him prove to the company that He was really the Honored of
God. She hoped there might be opportunity for Him to work a miracle before
them.

It was the custom of the times for marriage festivities to continue several
days. On this occasion, before the feast ended it was found that the supply
of wine had failed. This discovery caused much perplexity and regret. It was
unusual to dispense with wine on festive occasions, and

146

its absence would seem to indicate a want of hospitality. As a relative of
the parties, Mary had assisted in the arrangements for the feast, and she
now spoke to Jesus, saying, "They have no wine." These words were a
suggestion that He might supply their need. But Jesus answered, "Woman, what
have I to do with thee? Mine hour is not yet come."

This answer, abrupt as it seems to us, expressed no coldness or discourtesy.
The Saviour's form of address to His mother was in accordance with Oriental
custom. It was used toward persons to whom it was desired to show respect.
Every act of Christ's earthly life was in harmony with the precept He
Himself had given, "Honor thy father and thy mother." Ex. 20:12. On the
cross, in His last act of tenderness toward His mother, Jesus again
addressed her in the same way, as He committed her to the care of His
best-loved disciple. Both at the marriage feast and upon the cross, the love
expressed in tone and look and manner interpreted His words.

At His visit to the temple in His boyhood, as the mystery of His lifework
opened before Him, Christ had said to Mary, "Wist ye not that I must be
about My Father's business?" Luke 2:49. These words

                                                                     147

struck the keynote of His whole life and ministry. Everything was held in
abeyance to His work, the great work of redemption which He had come into
the world to accomplish. Now He repeated the lesson. There was danger that
Mary would regard her relationship to Jesus as giving her a special claim
upon Him, and the right, in some degree, to direct Him in His mission. For
thirty years He had been to her a loving and obedient son, and His love was
unchanged; but He must now go about His Father's work. As Son of the Most
High, and Saviour of the world, no earthly ties must hold Him from His
mission, or influence His conduct. He must stand free to do the will of God.
This lesson is also for us. The claims of God are paramount even to the ties
of human relationship. No earthly attraction should turn our feet from the
path in which He bids us walk.

The only hope of redemption for our fallen race is in Christ; Mary could
find salvation only through the Lamb of God. In herself she possessed no
merit. Her connection with Jesus placed her in no different spiritual
relation to Him from that of any other human soul. This is indicated in the
Saviour's words. He makes clear the distinction between His relation to her
as the Son of man and as the Son of God. The tie of kinship between them in
no way placed her on an equality with Him.

The words, "Mine hour is not yet come," point to the fact that every act of
Christ's life on earth was in fulfillment of the plan that had existed from
the days of eternity. Before He came to earth, the plan lay out before Him,
perfect in all its details. But as He walked among men, He was guided, step
by step, by the Father's will. He did not hesitate to act at the appointed
time. With the same submission He waited until the time had come.

In saying to Mary that His hour had not yet come, Jesus was replying to her
unspoken thought,--to the expectation she cherished in common with her
people. She hoped that He would reveal Himself as the Messiah, and take the
throne of Israel. But the time had not come. Not as a King, but as "a Man of
Sorrows, and acquainted with grief," had Jesus accepted the lot of humanity.

But though Mary had not a right conception of Christ's mission, she trusted
Him implicitly. To this faith Jesus responded. It was to honor Mary's trust,
and to strengthen the faith of His disciples, that the first miracle was
performed. The disciples were to encounter many and great temptations to
unbelief. To them the prophecies had made it

148

clear beyond all controversy that Jesus was the Messiah. They looked for the
religious leaders to receive Him with confidence even greater than their
own. They declared among the people the wonderful works of Christ and their
own confidence in His mission, but they were amazed and bitterly
disappointed by the unbelief, the deep-seated prejudice, and the enmity to
Jesus, displayed by the priests and rabbis. The Saviour's early miracles
strengthened the disciples to stand against this opposition.

In nowise disconcerted by the words of Jesus, Mary said to those serving at
table, "Whatsoever He saith unto you, do it." Thus she did what she could to
prepare the way for the work of Christ.

Beside the doorway stood six large stone water jars, and Jesus bade the
servants fill these with water. It was done. Then as the wine was wanted for
immediate use, He said, "Draw out now, and bear unto the governor of the
feast." Instead of the water with which the vessels had been filled, there
flowed forth wine. Neither the ruler of the feast nor the guests generally
were aware that the supply of wine had failed. Upon tasting that which the
servants brought, the ruler found it superior to any he had ever before
drunk, and very different from that served at the beginning of the feast.
Turning to the bridegroom, he said, "Every man at the beginning doth set
forth good wine; and when men have well drunk, then that which is worse: but
thou hast kept the good wine until now."

As men set forth the best wine first, then afterward that which is worse, so
does the world with its gifts. That which it offers may please the eye and
fascinate the senses, but it proves to be unsatisfying. The wine turns to
bitterness, the gaiety to gloom. That which was begun with songs and mirth
ends in weariness and disgust. But the gifts of Jesus are ever fresh and
new. The feast that He provides for the soul never fails to give
satisfaction and joy. Each new gift increases the capacity of the receiver
to appreciate and enjoy the blessings of the Lord. He gives grace for grace.
There can be no failure of supply. If you abide in Him, the fact that you
receive a rich gift today insures the reception of a richer gift tomorrow.
The words of Jesus to Nathanael express the law of God's dealing with the
children of faith. With every fresh revelation of His love, He declares to
the receptive heart, "Believest thou? thou shalt see greater things than
these." John 1:50.

The gift of Christ to the marriage feast was a symbol. The water represented
baptism into His death; the wine, the shedding of His blood

                                                                     149

for the sins of the world. The water to fill the jars was brought by human
hands, but the word of Christ alone could impart to it life-giving virtue.
So with the rites which point to the Saviour's death. It is only by the
power of Christ, working through faith, that they have efficacy to nourish
the soul.

The word of Christ supplied ample provision for the feast. So abundant is
the provision of His grace to blot out the iniquities of men, and to renew
and sustain the soul.

At the first feast He attended with His disciples, Jesus gave them the cup
that symbolized His work for their salvation. At the last supper He gave it
again, in the institution of that sacred rite by which His death was to be
shown forth "till He come." 1 Cor. 11:26. And the sorrow of the disciples at
parting from their Lord was comforted with the promise of reunion, as He
said, "I will not drink henceforth of this fruit of the vine, until that day
when I drink it new with you in My Father's kingdom." Matt. 26:29.

The wine which Christ provided for the feast, and that which He gave to the
disciples as a symbol of His own blood, was the pure juice of the grape. To
this the prophet Isaiah refers when he speaks of the new wine "in the
cluster," and says, "Destroy it not; for a blessing is in it." Isa. 65:8.

It was Christ who in the Old Testament gave the warning to Israel, "Wine is
a mocker, strong drink is raging: and whosoever is deceived thereby is not
wise." Prov. 20:1. And He Himself provided no such beverage. Satan tempts
men to indulgence that will becloud reason and benumb the spiritual
perceptions, but Christ teaches us to bring the lower nature into
subjection. His whole life was an example of self-denial. In order to break
the power of appetite, He suffered in our behalf the severest test that
humanity could endure. It was Christ who directed that John the Baptist
should drink neither wine nor strong drink. It was He who enjoined similar
abstinence upon the wife of Manoah. And He pronounced a curse upon the man
who should put the bottle to his neighbor's lips. Christ did not contradict
His own teaching. The unfermented wine which He provided for the wedding
guests was a wholesome and refreshing drink. Its effect was to bring the
taste into harmony with a healthful appetite.

As the guests at the feast remarked upon the quality of the wine, inquiries
were made that drew from the servants an account of the

150

miracle. The company were for a time too much amazed to think of Him who had
performed the wonderful work. When at length they looked for Him, it was
found that He had withdrawn so quietly as to be unnoticed even by His
disciples.

The attention of the company was now turned to the disciples. For the first
time they had the opportunity of acknowledging their faith in Jesus. They
told what they had seen and heard at the Jordan, and there was kindled in
many hearts the hope that God had raised up a deliverer for His people. The
news of the miracle spread through all that region, and was carried to
Jerusalem. With new interest the priests and elders searched the prophecies
pointing to Christ's coming. There was eager desire to learn the mission of
this new teacher, who appeared among the people in so unassuming a manner.

The ministry of Christ was in marked contrast to that of the Jewish elders.
Their regard for tradition and formalism had destroyed all real freedom of
thought or action. They lived in continual dread of defilement. To avoid
contact with the "unclean," they kept aloof, not only from the Gentiles, but
from the majority of their own people, seeking neither to benefit them nor
to win their friendship. By dwelling constantly on these matters, they had
dwarfed their minds and narrowed the orbit of their lives. Their example
encouraged egotism and intolerance among all classes of the people.

Jesus began the work of reformation by coming into close sympathy with
humanity. While He showed the greatest reverence for the law of God, He
rebuked the pretentious piety of the Pharisees, and tried to free the people
from the senseless rules that bound them. He was seeking to break down the
barriers which separated the different classes of society, that He might
bring men together as children of one family. His attendance at the marriage
feast was designed to be a step toward effecting this.

God had directed John the Baptist to dwell in the wilderness, that he might
be shielded from the influence of the priests and rabbis, and be prepared
for a special mission. But the austerity and isolation of his life were not
an example for the people. John himself had not directed his hearers to
forsake their former duties. He bade them give evidence of their repentance
by faithfulness to God in the place where He had called them.

Jesus reproved self-indulgence in all its forms, yet He was social in His
nature. He accepted the hospitality of all classes, visiting the homes

                                                                     151

of the rich and the poor, the learned and the ignorant, and seeking to
elevate their thoughts from questions of commonplace life to those things
that are spiritual and eternal. He gave no license to dissipation, and no
shadow of worldly levity marred His conduct; yet He found pleasure in scenes
of innocent happiness, and by His presence sanctioned the social gathering.
A Jewish marriage was an impressive occasion, and its joy was not
displeasing to the Son of man. By attending this feast, Jesus honored
marriage as a divine institution.

In both the Old and the New Testament, the marriage relation is employed to
represent the tender and sacred union that exists between Christ and His
people. To the mind of Jesus the gladness of the wedding festivities pointed
forward to the rejoicing of that day when He shall bring home His bride to
the Father's house, and the redeemed with the Redeemer shall sit down to the
marriage supper of the Lamb. He says, "As the bridegroom rejoiceth over the
bride, so shall thy God rejoice over thee." "Thou shalt no more be termed
Forsaken; . . . but thou shalt be called My Delight; . . . for the Lord
delighteth in thee." "He will rejoice over thee with joy; He will rest in
His love, He will joy over thee with singing." Isa. 62:5, 4, margin; Zeph.
3:17. When the vision of heavenly things was granted to John the apostle, he
wrote: "I heard as it were the voice of a great multitude, and as the voice
of many waters, and as the voice of mighty thunderings, saying, Alleluia:
for the Lord God omnipotent reigneth. Let us be glad and rejoice, and give
honor to Him: for the marriage of the Lamb is come, and His wife hath made
herself ready." "Blessed are they which are called unto the marriage supper
of the Lamb." Rev. 19:6, 7, 9.

Jesus saw in every soul one to whom must be given the call to His kingdom.
He reached the hearts of the people by going among them as one who desired
their good. He sought them in the public streets, in private houses, on the
boats, in the synagogue, by the shores of the lake, and at the marriage
feast. He met them at their daily vocations, and manifested an interest in
their secular affairs. He carried His instruction into the household,
bringing families in their own homes under the influence of His divine
presence. His strong personal sympathy helped to win hearts. He often
repaired to the mountains for solitary prayer, but this was a preparation
for His labor among men in active life. From these seasons He came forth to
relieve the sick, to instruct the ignorant, and to break the chains from the
captives of Satan.

152


It was by personal contact and association that Jesus trained His disciples.
Sometimes He taught them, sitting among them on the mountainside; sometimes
beside the sea, or walking with them by the way, He revealed the mysteries
of the kingdom of God. He did not sermonize as men do today. Wherever hearts
were open to receive the divine message, He unfolded the truths of the way
of salvation. He did not command His disciples to do this or that, but said,
"Follow Me." On His journeys through country and cities He took them with
Him, that they might see how He taught the people. He linked their interest
with His, and they united with Him in the work.

The example of Christ in linking Himself with the interests of humanity
should be followed by all who preach His word, and by all who have received
the gospel of His grace. We are not to renounce social communion. We should
not seclude ourselves from others. In order to reach all classes, we must
meet them where they are. They will seldom seek us of their own accord. Not
alone from the pulpit are the hearts of men touched by divine truth. There
is another field of labor, humbler, it may be, but fully as promising. It is
found in the home of the lowly, and in the mansion of the great; at the
hospitable board, and in gatherings for innocent social enjoyment.

As disciples of Christ we shall not mingle with the world from a mere love
of pleasure, to unite with them in folly. Such associations can result only
in harm. We should never give sanction to sin by our words or our deeds, our
silence or our presence. Wherever we go, we are to carry Jesus with us, and
to reveal to others the preciousness of our Saviour. But those who try to
preserve their religion by hiding it within stone walls lose precious
opportunities of doing good. Through the social relations, Christianity
comes in contact with the world. Everyone who has received the divine
illumination is to brighten the pathway of those who know not the Light of
life.

We should all become witnesses for Jesus. Social power, sanctified by the
grace of Christ, must be improved in winning souls to the Saviour. Let the
world see that we are not selfishly absorbed in our own interests, but that
we desire others to share our blessings and privileges. Let them see that
our religion does not make us unsympathetic or exacting. Let all who profess
to have found Christ, minister as He did for the benefit of men.

We should never give to the world the false impression that Christians are a
gloomy, unhappy people. If our eyes are fixed on Jesus, we shall

                                                                     153

see a compassionate Redeemer, and shall catch light from His countenance.
Wherever His Spirit reigns, there peace abides. And there will be joy also,
for there is a calm, holy trust in God.

Christ is pleased with His followers when they show that, though human, they
are partakers of the divine nature. They are not statues, but living men and
women. Their hearts, refreshed by the dews of divine grace, open and expand
to the Sun of Righteousness. The light that shines upon them they reflect
upon others in works that are luminous with the love of Christ.




(154)

                             Chapter 16

                             In His Temple


"After this He went down to Capernaum, He, and His mother, and His brethren,
and His disciples: and they continued there not many days. And the Jews'
Passover was at hand, and Jesus went up to Jerusalem."

In this journey, Jesus joined one of the large companies that were making
their way to the capital. He had not yet publicly announced His mission, and
He mingled unnoticed with the throng. Upon these occasions, the coming of
the Messiah, to which such prominence had been given by the ministry of
John, was often the theme of conversation. The hope of national greatness
was dwelt upon with kindling enthusiasm. Jesus knew that this hope was to be
disappointed, for it was founded on a misinterpretation of the Scriptures.
With deep earnestness He explained the prophecies, and tried to arouse the
people to a closer study of God's word.

The Jewish leaders had instructed the people that at Jerusalem they were to
be taught to worship God. Here during the Passover week large numbers
assembled, coming from all parts of Palestine, and even from distant lands.
The temple courts were filled with a promiscuous throng. Many were unable to
bring with them the sacrifices that were to be

                                                                     155

offered up as typifying the one great Sacrifice. For the convenience of
these, animals were bought and sold in the outer court of the temple. Here
all classes of people assembled to purchase their offerings. Here all
foreign money was exchanged for the coin of the sanctuary.

Every Jew was required to pay yearly a half shekel as "a ransom for his
soul;" and the money thus collected was used for the support of the temple.
Ex. 30:12-16. Besides this, large sums were brought as freewill offerings,
to be deposited in the temple treasury. And it was required that all foreign
coin should be changed for a coin called the temple shekel, which was
accepted for the service of the sanctuary. The money changing gave
opportunity for fraud and extortion, and it had grown into a disgraceful
traffic, which was a source of revenue to the priests.

The dealers demanded exorbitant prices for the animals sold, and they shared
their profits with the priests and rulers, who thus enriched themselves at
the expense of the people. The worshipers had been taught to believe that if
they did not offer sacrifice, the blessing of God would not rest on their
children or their lands. Thus a high price for the animals could be secured;
for after coming so far, the people would not return to their homes without
performing the act of devotion for which they had come.

A great number of sacrifices were offered at the time of the Passover, and
the sales at the temple were very large. The consequent confusion indicated
a noisy cattle market rather than the sacred temple of God. There could be
heard sharp bargaining, the lowing of cattle, the bleating of sheep, the
cooing of doves, mingled with the chinking of coin and angry disputation. So
great was the confusion that the worshipers were disturbed, and the words
addressed to the Most High were drowned in the uproar that invaded the
temple. The Jews were exceedingly proud of their piety. They rejoiced over
their temple, and regarded a word spoken in its disfavor as blasphemy; they
were very rigorous in the performance of ceremonies connected with it; but
the love of money had overruled their scruples. They were scarcely aware how
far they had wandered from the original purpose of the service instituted by
God Himself.

When the Lord descended upon Mount Sinai, the place was consecrated by His
presence. Moses was commanded to put bounds around the mount and sanctify
it, and the word of the Lord was heard in

156

warning: "Take heed to yourselves, that ye go not up into the mount, or
touch the border of it: whosoever toucheth the mount shall be surely put to
death: there shall not an hand touch it, but he shall surely be stoned, or
shot through; whether it be beast or man, it shall not live." Ex. 19:12, 13.
Thus was taught the lesson that wherever God manifests His presence, the
place is holy. The precincts of God's temple should have been regarded as
sacred. But in the strife for gain, all this was lost sight of.

The priests and rulers were called to be the representatives of God to the
nation; they should have corrected the abuses of the temple

                                                                     157

court. They should have given to the people an example of integrity and
compassion. Instead of studying their own profit, they should have
considered the situation and needs of the worshipers, and should have been
ready to assist those who were not able to buy the required sacrifices. But
this they did not do. Avarice had hardened their hearts.

There came to this feast those who were suffering, those who were in want
and distress. The blind, the lame, the deaf, were there. Some were brought
on beds. Many came who were too poor to purchase the humblest offering for
the Lord, too poor even to buy food with which to satisfy their own hunger.
These were greatly distressed by the statements of the priests. The priests
boasted of their piety; they claimed to be the guardians of the people; but
they were without sympathy or compassion. The poor, the sick, the dying,
made their vain plea for favor. Their suffering awakened no pity in the
hearts of the priests.

As Jesus came into the temple, He took in the whole scene. He saw the unfair
transactions. He saw the distress of the poor, who thought that without
shedding of blood there would be no forgiveness for their sins. He saw the
outer court of His temple converted into a place of unholy traffic. The
sacred enclosure had become one vast exchange.

Christ saw that something must be done. Numerous ceremonies were enjoined
upon the people without the proper instruction as to their import. The
worshipers offered their sacrifices without understanding that they were
typical of the only perfect Sacrifice. And among them, unrecognized and
unhonored, stood the One symbolized by all their service. He had given
directions in regard to the offerings. He understood their symbolical value,
and He saw that they were now perverted and misunderstood. Spiritual worship
was fast disappearing. No link bound the priests and rulers to their God.
Christ's work was to establish an altogether different worship.

With searching glance, Christ takes in the scene before Him as He stands
upon the steps of the temple court. With prophetic eye He looks into
futurity, and sees not only years, but centuries and ages. He sees how
priests and rulers will turn the needy from their right, and forbid that the
gospel shall be preached to the poor. He sees how the love of God will be
concealed from sinners, and men will make merchandise of His grace. As He
beholds the scene, indignation, authority, and power are expressed in His
countenance. The attention of the people is attracted to Him. The eyes of
those engaged in their unholy traffic

158

are riveted upon His face. They cannot withdraw their gaze. They feel that
this Man reads their inmost thoughts, and discovers their hidden motives.
Some attempt to conceal their faces, as if their evil deeds were written
upon their countenances, to be scanned by those searching eyes.

The confusion is hushed. The sound of traffic and bargaining has ceased. The
silence becomes painful. A sense of awe overpowers the assembly. It is as if
they were arraigned before the tribunal of God to answer for their deeds.
Looking upon Christ, they behold divinity flash through the garb of
humanity. The Majesty of heaven stands as the Judge will stand at the last
day,--not now encircled with the glory that will then attend Him, but with
the same power to read the soul. His eye sweeps over the multitude, taking
in every individual. His form seems to rise above them in commanding
dignity, and a divine light illuminates His countenance. He speaks, and His
clear, ringing voice--the same that upon Mount Sinai proclaimed the law that
priests and rulers are transgressing--is heard echoing through the arches of
the temple: "Take these things hence; make not My Father's house an house of
merchandise."

Slowly descending the steps, and raising the scourge of cords gathered up on
entering the enclosure, He bids the bargaining company depart from the
precincts of the temple. With a zeal and severity He has never before
manifested, He overthrows the tables of the money-changers. The coin falls,
ringing sharply upon the marble pavement. None presume to question His
authority. None dare stop to gather up their ill-gotten gain. Jesus does not
smite them with the whip of cords, but in His hand that simple scourge seems
terrible as a flaming sword. Officers of the temple, speculating priests,
brokers and cattle traders, with their sheep and oxen, rush from the place,
with the one thought of escaping from the condemnation of His presence.

A panic sweeps over the multitude, who feel the overshadowing of His
divinity. Cries of terror escape from hundreds of blanched lips. Even the
disciples tremble. They are awestruck by the words and manner of Jesus, so
unlike His usual demeanor. They remember that it is written of Him, "The
zeal of Thine house hath eaten Me up." Ps. 69:9. Soon the tumultuous throng
with their merchandise are far removed from the temple of the Lord. The
courts are free from unholy traffic, and a deep silence and solemnity
settles upon the scene of confusion.

                                                                     161

The presence of the Lord, that of old sanctified the mount, has now made
sacred the temple reared in His honor.

In the cleansing of the temple, Jesus was announcing His mission as the
Messiah, and entering upon His work. That temple, erected for the abode of
the divine Presence, was designed to be an object lesson for Israel and for
the world. From eternal ages it was God's purpose that every created being,
from the bright and holy seraph to man, should be a temple for the
indwelling of the Creator. Because of sin, humanity ceased to be a temple
for God. Darkened and defiled by evil, the heart of man no longer revealed
the glory of the Divine One. But by the incarnation of the Son of God, the
purpose of Heaven is fulfilled. God dwells in humanity, and through saving
grace the heart of man becomes again His temple. God designed that the
temple at Jerusalem should be a continual witness to the high destiny open
to every soul. But the Jews had not understood the significance of the
building they regarded with so much pride. They did not yield themselves as
holy temples for the Divine Spirit. The courts of the temple at Jerusalem,
filled with the tumult of unholy traffic, represented all too truly the
temple of the heart, defiled by the presence of sensual passion and unholy
thoughts. In cleansing the temple from the world's buyers and sellers, Jesus
announced His mission to cleanse the heart from the defilement of sin,--from
the earthly desires, the selfish lusts, the evil habits, that corrupt the
soul. "The Lord, whom ye seek, shall suddenly come to His temple, even the
Messenger of the covenant, whom ye delight in: behold, He shall come, saith
the Lord of hosts. But who may abide the day of His coming? and who shall
stand when He appeareth? for He is like a refiner's fire, and like fullers'
soap: and He shall sit as a refiner and purifier of silver: and He shall
purify the sons of Levi, and purge them as gold and silver." Mal. 3:1-3.

"Know ye not that ye are the temple of God, and that the Spirit of God
dwelleth in you? If any man defile the temple of God, him shall God destroy;
for the temple of God is holy, which temple ye are." 1 Cor. 3:16, 17. No man
can of himself cast out the evil throng that have taken possession of the
heart. Only Christ can cleanse the soul temple. But He will not force an
entrance. He comes not into the heart as to the temple of old; but He says,
"Behold, I stand at the door, and knock: if any man hear My voice, and open
the door, I will come in to him." Rev. 3:20. He will come, not for one day
merely; for He says, "I will dwell in them, and walk in them; . . . and they
shall

162

be My people." "He will subdue our iniquities; and Thou wilt cast all their
sins into the depths of the sea." 2 Cor. 6:16; Micah 7:19. His presence will
cleanse and sanctify the soul, so that it may be a holy temple unto the
Lord, and "an habitation of God through the Spirit." Eph. 2:21, 22.

Overpowered with terror, the priests and rulers had fled from the temple
court, and from the searching glance that read their hearts. In their flight
they met others on their way to the temple, and bade them turn back, telling
them what they had seen and heard. Christ looked upon the fleeing men with
yearning pity for their fear, and their ignorance of what constituted true
worship. In this scene He saw symbolized the dispersion of the whole Jewish
nation for their wickedness and impenitence.

And why did the priests flee from the temple? Why did they not stand their
ground? He who commanded them to go was a carpenter's son, a poor Galilean,
without earthly rank or power. Why did they not resist Him? Why did they
leave the gain so ill acquired, and flee at the command of One whose outward
appearance was so humble?

Christ spoke with the authority of a king, and in His appearance, and in the
tones of His voice, there was that which they had no power to resist. At the
word of command they realized, as they had never realized before, their true
position as hypocrites and robbers. When divinity flashed through humanity,
not only did they see indignation on Christ's countenance; they realized the
import of His words. They felt as if before the throne of the eternal Judge,
with their sentence passed on them for time and for eternity. For a time
they were convinced that Christ was a prophet; and many believed Him to be
the Messiah. The Holy Spirit flashed into their minds the utterances of the
prophets concerning Christ. Would they yield to this conviction?

Repent they would not. They knew that Christ's sympathy for the poor had
been aroused. They knew that they had been guilty of extortion in their
dealings with the people. Because Christ discerned their thoughts they hated
Him. His public rebuke was humiliating to their pride, and they were jealous
of His growing influence with the people. They determined to challenge Him
as to the power by which He had driven them forth, and who gave Him this
power.

Slowly and thoughtfully, but with hate in their hearts, they returned to the
temple. But what a change had taken place during their absence!

                                                                     163

When they fled, the poor remained behind; and these were now looking to
Jesus, whose countenance expressed His love and sympathy. With tears in His
eyes, He said to the trembling ones around Him: Fear not; I will deliver
thee, and thou shalt glorify Me. For this cause came I into the world.

The people pressed into Christ's presence with urgent, pitiful appeals:
Master, bless me. His ear heard every cry. With pity exceeding that of a
tender mother He bent over the suffering little ones. All received
attention. Everyone was healed of whatever disease he had. The dumb opened
their lips in praise; the blind beheld the face of their Restorer. The
hearts of the sufferers were made glad.

As the priests and temple officials witnessed this great work, what a
revelation to them were the sounds that fell on their ears! The people were
relating the story of the pain they had suffered, of their disappointed
hopes, of painful days and sleepless nights. When the last spark of hope
seemed to be dead, Christ had healed them. The burden was so heavy, one
said; but I have found a helper. He is the Christ of God, and I will devote
my life to His service. Parents said to their children, He has saved your
life; lift up your voice and praise Him. The voices of children and youth,
fathers and mothers, friends and spectators, blended in thanksgiving and
praise. Hope and gladness filled their hearts. Peace came to their minds.
They were restored soul and body, and they returned home, proclaiming
everywhere the matchless love of Jesus.

At the crucifixion of Christ, those who had thus been healed did not join
with the rabble throng in crying, "Crucify Him, crucify Him." Their
sympathies were with Jesus; for they had felt His great sympathy and
wonderful power. They knew Him to be their Saviour; for He had given them
health of body and soul. They listened to the preaching of the apostles, and
the entrance of God's word into their hearts gave them understanding. They
became agents of God's mercy, and instruments of His salvation.

The crowd that had fled from the temple court after a time slowly drifted
back. They had partially recovered from the panic that had seized them, but
their faces expressed irresolution and timidity. They looked with amazement
on the works of Jesus, and were convicted that in Him the prophecies
concerning the Messiah were fulfilled. The sin of the desecration of the
temple rested, in a great degree, upon the priests. It

164

was by their arrangement that the court had been turned into a market place.
The people were comparatively innocent. They were impressed by the divine
authority of Jesus; but with them the influence of the priests and rulers
was paramount. They regarded Christ's mission as an innovation, and
questioned His right to interfere with what was permitted by the authorities
of the temple. They were offended because the traffic had been interrupted,
and they stifled the convictions of the Holy Spirit.

Above all others the priests and rulers should have seen in Jesus the
anointed of the Lord; for in their hands were the sacred scrolls that
described His mission, and they knew that the cleansing of the temple was a
manifestation of more than human power. Much as they hated Jesus, they could
not free themselves from the thought that He might be a prophet sent by God
to restore the sanctity of the temple. With a deference born of this fear,
they went to Him with the inquiry, "What sign showest Thou unto us, seeing
that Thou doest these things?"

Jesus had shown them a sign. In flashing light into their hearts, and in
doing before them the works which the Messiah was to do, He had given
convincing evidence of His character. Now when they asked for a sign, He
answered them by a parable, showing that He read their malice, and saw to
what lengths it would lead them. "Destroy this temple," He said, "and in
three days I will raise it up."

In these words His meaning was twofold. He referred not only to the
destruction of the Jewish temple and worship, but to His own death,--the
destruction of the temple of His body. This the Jews were already plotting.
As the priests and rulers returned to the temple, they had proposed to kill
Jesus, and thus rid themselves of the troubler. Yet when He set before them
their purpose, they did not understand Him. They took His words as applying
only to the temple at Jerusalem, and with indignation exclaimed, "Forty and
six years was this temple in building, and wilt Thou rear it up in three
days?" Now they felt that Jesus had justified their unbelief, and they were
confirmed in their rejection of Him.

Christ did not design that His words should be understood by the unbelieving
Jews, nor even by His disciples at this time. He knew that they would be
misconstrued by His enemies, and would be turned against Him. At His trial
they would be brought as an accusation, and on Calvary they would be flung
at Him as a taunt. But to explain them now would give His disciples a
knowledge of His sufferings, and bring

                                                                     165

upon them sorrow which as yet they were not able to bear. And an explanation
would prematurely disclose to the Jews the result of their prejudice and
unbelief. Already they had entered upon a path which they would steadily
pursue until He should be led as a lamb to the slaughter.

It was for the sake of those who should believe on Him that these words of
Christ were spoken. He knew that they would be repeated. Being spoken at the
Passover, they would come to the ears of thousands, and be carried to all
parts of the world. After He had risen from the dead, their meaning would be
made plain. To many they would be conclusive evidence of His divinity.

Because of their spiritual darkness, even the disciples of Jesus often
failed of comprehending His lessons. But many of these lessons were made
plain to them by subsequent events. When He walked no more with them, His
words were a stay to their hearts.

As referring to the temple at Jerusalem, the Saviour's words, "Destroy this
temple, and in three days I will raise it up," had a deeper meaning than the
hearers perceived. Christ was the foundation and life of the temple. Its
services were typical of the sacrifice of the Son of God. The priesthood was
established to represent the mediatorial character and work of Christ. The
entire plan of sacrificial worship was a foreshadowing of the Saviour's
death to redeem the world. There would be no efficacy in these offerings
when the great event toward which they had pointed for ages was consummated.

Since the whole ritual economy was symbolical of Christ, it had no value
apart from Him. When the Jews sealed their rejection of Christ by delivering
Him to death, they rejected all that gave significance to the temple and its
services. Its sacredness had departed. It was doomed to destruction. From
that day sacrificial offerings and the service connected with them were
meaningless. Like the offering of Cain, they did not express faith in the
Saviour. In putting Christ to death, the Jews virtually destroyed their
temple. When Christ was crucified, the inner veil of the temple was rent in
twain from top to bottom, signifying that the great final sacrifice had been
made, and that the system of sacrificial offerings was forever at an end.

"In three days I will raise it up." In the Saviour's death the powers of
darkness seemed to prevail, and they exulted in their victory. But from the
rent sepulcher of Joseph, Jesus came forth a conqueror. "Having spoiled
principalities and powers, He made a show of them openly, triumphing over
them." Col.2:15. By virtue of His death and resurrection

166

He became the minister of the "true tabernacle, which the Lord pitched, and
not man." Heb. 8:2. Men reared the Jewish tabernacle; men builded the Jewish
temple; but the sanctuary above, of which the earthly was a type, was built
by no human architect. "Behold the Man whose name is The Branch; . . . He
shall build the temple of the Lord; and He shall bear the glory, and shall
sit and rule upon His throne; and He shall be a priest upon His throne."
Zech. 6:12, 13.

The sacrificial service that had pointed to Christ passed away; but the eyes
of men were turned to the true sacrifice for the sins of the world. The
earthly priesthood ceased; but we look to Jesus, the minister of the new
covenant, and "to the blood of sprinkling, that speaketh better things than
that of Abel." "The way into the holiest of all was not yet made manifest,
while as the first tabernacle was yet standing: . . . but Christ being come
an high priest of good things to come, by a greater and more perfect
tabernacle, not made with hands, . . . by His own blood He entered in once
into the holy place, having obtained eternal redemption for us." Heb. 12:24;
9:8-12.

"Wherefore He is able also to save them to the uttermost that come unto God
by Him, seeing He ever liveth to make intercession for them." Heb. 7:25.
Though the ministration was to be removed from the earthly to the heavenly
temple; though the sanctuary and our great high priest would be invisible to
human sight, yet the disciples were to suffer no loss thereby. They would
realize no break in their communion, and no diminution of power because of
the Saviour's absence. While Jesus ministers in the sanctuary above, He is
still by His Spirit the minister of the church on earth. He is withdrawn
from the eye of sense, but His parting promise is fulfilled, "Lo, I am with
you alway, even unto the end of the world." Matt. 28:20. While He delegates
His power to inferior ministers, His energizing presence is still with His
church.

"Seeing then that we have a great high priest, . . . Jesus, the Son of God,
let us hold fast our profession. For we have not an high priest which cannot
be touched with the feeling of our infirmities; but was in all points
tempted like as we are, yet without sin. Let us therefore come boldly unto
the throne of grace, that we may obtain mercy, and find grace to help in
time of need." Heb 4:14-16.




                                                                     (167)

                             Chapter 17

                             Nicodemus


Nicodemus held a high position of trust in the Jewish nation. He was highly
educated, and possessed talents of no ordinary character, and he was an
honored member of the national council. With others, he had been stirred by
the teaching of Jesus. Though rich, learned, and honored, he had been
strangely attracted by the humble Nazarene. The lessons that had fallen from
the Saviour's lips had greatly impressed him, and he desired to learn more
of these wonderful truths.

Christ's exercise of authority in the cleansing of the temple had roused the
determined hatred of the priests and rulers. They feared the power of this
stranger. Such boldness on the part of an obscure Galilean was not to be
tolerated. They were bent on putting an end to His work. But not all were
agreed in this purpose. There were some that feared to oppose One who was so
evidently moved upon by the Spirit of God. They remembered how prophets had
been slain for rebuking the sins of the leaders in Israel. They knew that
the bondage of the Jews to a heathen nation was the result of their
stubbornness in rejecting reproofs from God. They feared that in plotting
against Jesus the priests and rulers were following in the steps of their
fathers, and would bring fresh calamities upon the nation. Nicodemus shared
these feelings. In a

168

council of the Sanhedrin, when the course to be pursued toward Jesus was
considered, Nicodemus advised caution and moderation. He urged that if Jesus
was really invested with authority from God, it would be perilous to reject
His warnings. The priests dared not disregard this counsel, and for the time
they took no open measures against the Saviour.

Since hearing Jesus, Nicodemus had anxiously studied the prophecies relating
to the Messiah; and the more he searched, the stronger was his conviction
that this was the One who was to come. With many others in Israel he had
been greatly distressed by the profanation of the temple He was a witness of
the scene when Jesus drove out the buyers and the sellers; he beheld the
wonderful manifestation of divine power; he saw the Saviour receiving the
poor and healing the sick; he saw their looks of joy, and heard their words
of praise; and he could not doubt that Jesus of Nazareth was the Sent of
God.

He greatly desired an interview with Jesus, but shrank from seeking Him
openly. It would be too humiliating for a ruler of the Jews to acknowledge
himself in sympathy with a teacher as yet so little known. And should his
visit come to the knowledge of the Sanhedrin, it would draw upon him their
scorn and denunciation. He resolved upon a secret interview, excusing this
on the ground that if he were to go openly, others might follow his example.
Learning by special inquiry the Saviour's place of retirement in the Mount
of Olives, he waited until the city was hushed in slumber, and then sought
Him.

In the presence of Christ, Nicodemus felt a strange timidity, which he
endeavored to conceal under an air of composure and dignity. "Rabbi," he
said, "we know that Thou art a teacher come from God: for no man can do
these miracles that Thou doest, except God be with him." By speaking of
Christ's rare gifts as a teacher, and also of His wonderful power to perform
miracles, he hoped to pave the way for his interview. His words were
designed to express and to invite confidence; but they really expressed
unbelief. He did not acknowledge Jesus to be the Messiah, but only a teacher
sent from God.

Instead of recognizing this salutation, Jesus bent His eyes upon the
speaker, as if reading his very soul. In His infinite wisdom He saw before
Him a seeker after truth. He knew the object of this visit, and with a
desire to deepen the conviction already resting upon His listener's mind, He
came directly to the point, saying solemnly, yet kindly, "Verily, verily, I
say unto thee, Except a man be born from above, he cannot see the kingdom of
God." John 3:3, margin.

                                                                     171


Nicodemus had come to the Lord thinking to enter into a discussion with Him,
but Jesus laid bare the foundation principles of truth. He said to
Nicodemus, It is not theoretical knowledge you need so much as spiritual
regeneration. You need not to have your curiosity satisfied, but to have a
new heart. You must receive a new life from above before you can appreciate
heavenly things. Until this change takes place, making all things new, it
will result in no saving good for you to discuss with Me My authority or My
mission.

Nicodemus had heard the preaching of John the Baptist concerning repentance
and baptism, and pointing the people to One who should baptize with the Holy
Spirit. He himself had felt that there was a lack of spirituality among the
Jews, that, to a great degree, they were controlled by bigotry and worldly
ambition. He had hoped for a better state of things at the Messiah's coming.
Yet the heart-searching message of the Baptist had failed to work in him
conviction of sin. He was a strict Pharisee, and prided himself on his good
works. He was widely esteemed for his benevolence and his liberality in
sustaining the temple service, and he felt secure of the favor of God. He
was startled at the thought of a kingdom too pure for him to see in his
present state.

The figure of the new birth, which Jesus had used, was not wholly unfamiliar
to Nicodemus. Converts from heathenism to the faith of Israel were often
compared to children just born. Therefore he must have perceived that the
words of Christ were not to be taken in a literal sense. But by virtue of
his birth as an Israelite he regarded himself as sure of a place in the
kingdom of God. He felt that he needed no change. Hence his surprise at the
Saviour's words. He was irritated by their close application to himself. The
pride of the Pharisee was struggling against the honest desire of the seeker
after truth. He wondered that Christ should speak to him as He did, not
respecting his position as ruler in Israel.

Surprised out of his self-possession, he answered Christ in words full of
irony, "How can a man be born when he is old?" Like many others when cutting
truth is brought home to the conscience, he revealed the fact that the
natural man receiveth not the things of the Spirit of God. There is in him
nothing that responds to spiritual things; for spiritual things are
spiritually discerned.

But the Saviour did not meet argument with argument. Raising His hand with
solemn, quiet dignity, He pressed the truth home with greater

172

assurance, "Verily, verily, I say unto thee, Except a man be born of water
and of the Spirit, he cannot enter into the kingdom of God." Nicodemus knew
that Christ here referred to water baptism and the renewing of the heart by
the Spirit of God. He was convinced that he was in the presence of the One
whom John the Baptist had foretold.

Jesus continued: "That which is born of the flesh is flesh; and that which
is born of the Spirit is spirit." By nature the heart is evil, and "who can
bring a clean thing out of an unclean? not one." Job 14:4. No human
invention can find a remedy for the sinning soul. "The carnal mind is enmity
against God: for it is not subject to the law of God, neither indeed can
be." "Out of the heart proceed evil thoughts, murders, adulteries,
fornications, thefts, false witness, blasphemies." Rom. 8:7; Matt. 15:19.
The fountain of the heart must be purified before the streams can become
pure. He who is trying to reach heaven by his own works in keeping the law
is attempting an impossibility. There is no safety for one who has merely a
legal religion, a form of godliness. The Christian's life is not a
modification or improvement of the old, but a transformation of nature.
There is a death to self and sin, and a new life altogether. This change can
be brought about only by the effectual working of the Holy Spirit.

Nicodemus was still perplexed, and Jesus used the wind to illustrate His
meaning: "The wind bloweth where it listeth, and thou hearest the sound
thereof, but canst not tell whence it cometh, and whither it goeth: so is
everyone that is born of the Spirit."

The wind is heard among the branches of the trees, rustling the leaves and
flowers; yet it is invisible, and no man knows whence it comes or whither it
goes. So with the work of the Holy Spirit upon the heart. It can no more be
explained than can the movements of the wind. A person may not be able to
tell the exact time or place, or to trace all the circumstances in the
process of conversion; but this does not prove him to be unconverted. By an
agency as unseen as the wind, Christ is constantly working upon the heart.
Little by little, perhaps unconsciously to the receiver, impressions are
made that tend to draw the soul to Christ. These may be received through
meditating upon Him, through reading the Scriptures, or through hearing the
word from the living preacher. Suddenly, as the Spirit comes with more
direct appeal, the soul gladly surrenders itself to Jesus. By many this is
called sudden conversion; but it is the result of long wooing by the Spirit
of God,--a patient, protracted process.

                                                                     173


While the wind is itself invisible, it produces effects that are seen and
felt. So the work of the Spirit upon the soul will reveal itself in every
act of him who has felt its saving power. When the Spirit of God takes
possession of the heart, it transforms the life. Sinful thoughts are put
away, evil deeds are renounced; love, humility, and peace take the place of
anger, envy, and strife. Joy takes the place of sadness, and the countenance
reflects the light of heaven. No one sees the hand that lifts the burden, or
beholds the light descend from the courts above. The blessing comes when by
faith the soul surrenders itself to God. Then that power which no human eye
can see creates a new being in the image of God.

It is impossible for finite minds to comprehend the work of redemption. Its
mystery exceeds human knowledge; yet he who passes from death to life
realizes that it is a divine reality. The beginning of redemption we may
know here through a personal experience. Its results reach through the
eternal ages.

While Jesus was speaking, some gleams of truth penetrated the ruler's mind.
The softening, subduing influence of the Holy Spirit impressed his heart.
Yet he did not fully understand the Saviour's words. He was not so much
impressed by the necessity of the new birth as by the manner of its
accomplishment. He said wonderingly, "How can these things be?"

"Art thou a master of Israel, and knowest not these things?" Jesus asked.
Surely one entrusted with the religious instruction of the people should not
be ignorant of truths so important. His words conveyed the lesson that
instead of feeling irritated over the plain words of truth, Nicodemus should
have had a very humble opinion of himself, because of his spiritual
ignorance. Yet Christ spoke with such solemn dignity, and both look and tone
expressed such earnest love, that Nicodemus was not offended as he realized
his humiliating condition.

But as Jesus explained that His mission on earth was to establish a
spiritual instead of a temporal kingdom, His hearer was troubled. Seeing
this, Jesus added, "If I have told you earthly things, and ye believe not,
how shall ye believe, if I tell you of heavenly things?" If Nicodemus could
not receive Christ's teaching, illustrating the work of grace upon the
heart, how could he comprehend the nature of His glorious heavenly kingdom?
Not discerning the nature of Christ's work on earth, he could not understand
His work in heaven.

The Jews whom Jesus had driven from the temple claimed to be children of
Abraham, but they fled from the Saviour's presence because

174

they could not endure the glory of God which was manifested in Him. Thus
they gave evidence that they were not fitted by the grace of God to
participate in the sacred services of the temple. They were zealous to
maintain an appearance of holiness, but they neglected holiness of heart.
While they were sticklers for the letter of the law, they were constantly
violating its spirit. Their great need was that very change which Christ had
been explaining to Nicodemus,--a new moral birth, a cleansing from sin, and
a renewing of knowledge and holiness.

There was no excuse for the blindness of Israel in regard to the work of
regeneration. Under the inspiration of the Holy Spirit, Isaiah had written,
"We are all as an unclean thing, and all our righteousnesses are as filthy
rags." David had prayed, "Create in me a clean heart, O God; and renew a
right spirit within me." And through Ezekiel the promise had been given, "A
new heart also will I give you, and a new spirit will I put within you: and
I will take away the stony heart out of your flesh, and I will give you an
heart of flesh. And I will put My Spirit within you, and cause you to walk
in My statutes." Isa. 64:6; Ps. 51:10; Ezek. 36:26, 27.

Nicodemus had read these scriptures with a clouded mind; but he now began to
comprehend their meaning. He saw that the most rigid obedience to the mere
letter of the law as applied to the outward life could entitle no man to
enter the kingdom of heaven. In the estimation of men, his life had been
just and honorable; but in the presence of Christ he felt that his heart was
unclean, and his life unholy.

Nicodemus was being drawn to Christ. As the Saviour explained to him
concerning the new birth, he longed to have this change wrought in himself.
By what means could it be accomplished? Jesus answered the unspoken
question: "As Moses lifted up the serpent in the wilderness, even so must
the Son of man be lifted up: that whosoever believeth in Him should not
perish, but have eternal life."

Here was ground with which Nicodemus was familiar. The symbol of the
uplifted serpent made plain to him the Saviour's mission. When the people of
Israel were dying from the sting of the fiery serpents, God directed Moses
to make a serpent of brass, and place it on high in the midst of the
congregation. Then the word was sounded throughout the encampment that all
who would look upon the serpent should live. The people well knew that in
itself the serpent had no power to help them. It was a symbol of Christ. As
the image made in the likeness of the

                                                                     175

destroying serpents was lifted up for their healing, so One made "in the
likeness of sinful flesh" was to be their Redeemer. Rom. 8:3. Many of the
Israelites regarded the sacrificial service as having in itself virtue to
set them free from sin. God desired to teach them that it had no more value
than that serpent of brass. It was to lead their minds to the Saviour.
Whether for the healing of their wounds or the pardon of their sins, they
could do nothing for themselves but show their faith in the Gift of God.
They were to look and live.

Those who had been bitten by the serpents might have delayed to look. They
might have questioned how there could be efficacy in that brazen symbol.
They might have demanded a scientific explanation. But no explanation was
given. They must accept the word of God to them through Moses. To refuse to
look was to perish.

Not through controversy and discussion is the soul enlightened. We must look
and live. Nicodemus received the lesson, and carried it with him. He
searched the Scriptures in a new way, not for the discussion of a theory,
but in order to receive life for the soul. He began to see the kingdom of
heaven as he submitted himself to the leading of the Holy Spirit.

There are thousands today who need to learn the same truth that was taught
to Nicodemus by the uplifted serpent. They depend on their obedience to the
law of God to commend them to His favor. When they are bidden to look to
Jesus, and believe that He saves them solely through His grace, they
exclaim, "How can these things be?"

Like Nicodemus, we must be willing to enter into life in the same way as the
chief of sinners. Than Christ, "there is none other name under heaven given
among men, whereby we must be saved." Acts 4:12. Through faith we receive
the grace of God; but faith is not our Saviour. It earns nothing. It is the
hand by which we lay hold upon Christ, and appropriate His merits, the
remedy for sin. And we cannot even repent without the aid of the Spirit of
God. The Scripture says of Christ, "Him hath God exalted with His right hand
to be a Prince and a Saviour, for to give repentance to Israel, and
forgiveness of sins." Acts 5:31. Repentance comes from Christ as truly as
does pardon.

How, then, are we to be saved? "As Moses lifted up the serpent in the
wilderness," so the Son of man has been lifted up, and everyone who has been
deceived and bitten by the serpent may look and live. "Behold the Lamb of
God, which taketh away the sin of the

176

world." John 1:29. The light shining from the cross reveals the love of God.
His love is drawing us to Himself. If we do not resist this drawing, we
shall be led to the foot of the cross in repentance for the sins that have
crucified the Saviour. Then the Spirit of God through faith produces a new
life in the soul. The thoughts and desires are brought into obedience to the
will of Christ. The heart, the mind, are created anew in the image of Him
who works in us to subdue all things to Himself. Then the law of God is
written in the mind and heart, and we can say with Christ, "I delight to do
Thy will, O my God." Ps. 40:8.

In the interview with Nicodemus, Jesus unfolded the plan of salvation, and
His mission to the world. In none of His subsequent discourses did He
explain so fully, step by step, the work necessary to be done in the hearts
of all who would inherit the kingdom of heaven. At the very beginning of His
ministry He opened the truth to a member of the Sanhedrin, to the mind that
was most receptive, and to an appointed teacher of the people. But the
leaders of Israel did not welcome the light. Nicodemus hid the truth in his
heart, and for three years there was little apparent fruit.

But Jesus was acquainted with the soil into which He cast the seed. The
words spoken at night to one listener in the lonely mountain were not lost.
For a time Nicodemus did not publicly acknowledge Christ, but he watched His
life, and pondered His teachings. In the Sanhedrin council he repeatedly
thwarted the schemes of the priests to destroy Him. When at last Jesus was
lifted up on the cross, Nicodemus remembered the teaching upon Olivet: "As
Moses lifted up the serpent in the wilderness, even so must the Son of man
be lifted up: that whosoever believeth

                                                                     177

in Him should not perish, but have eternal life." The light from that secret
interview illumined the cross upon Calvary, and Nicodemus saw in Jesus the
world's Redeemer.

After the Lord's ascension, when the disciples were scattered by
persecution, Nicodemus came boldly to the front. He employed his wealth in
sustaining the infant church that the Jews had expected to be blotted out at
the death of Christ. In the time of peril he who had been so cautious and
questioning was firm as a rock, encouraging the faith of the disciples, and
furnishing means to carry forward the work of the gospel. He was scorned and
persecuted by those who had paid him reverence in other days. He became poor
in this world's goods; yet he faltered not in the faith which had its
beginning in that night conference with Jesus.

Nicodemus related to John the story of that interview, and by his pen it was
recorded for the instruction of millions. The truths there taught are as
important today as they were on that solemn night in the shadowy mountain,
when the Jewish ruler came to learn the way of life from the lowly Teacher
of Galilee.




(178)

                             Chapter 18

                             "He Must Increase"


For a time the Baptist's influence over the nation had been greater than
that of its rulers, priests, or princes. If he had announced himself as the
Messiah, and raised a revolt against Rome, priests and people would have
flocked to his standard. Every consideration that appeals to the ambition of
the world's conquerors Satan had stood ready to urge upon John the Baptist.
But with the evidence before him of his power, he had steadfastly refused
the splendid bribe. The attention which was fixed upon him he had directed
to Another.

Now he saw the tide of popularity turning away from himself to the Saviour.
Day by day the crowds about him lessened. When Jesus came from Jerusalem to
the region about Jordan, the people flocked to hear Him. The number of His
disciples increased daily. Many came for baptism, and while Christ Himself
did not baptize, He sanctioned the administration of the ordinance by His
disciples. Thus He set His seal upon the mission of His forerunner. But the
disciples of John looked with jealousy upon the growing popularity of Jesus.
They stood ready to criticize His work, and it was not long before they
found occasion. A question arose between them and the Jews as to whether
baptism availed to cleanse the soul from sin; they maintained that the
baptism of Jesus differed essentially from that of John. Soon they were in
dispute with Christ's disciples in regard to the form of words proper to use
at baptism, and finally as to the right of the latter to baptize at all.

                                                                     179


The disciples of John came to him with their grievances, saying, "Rabbi, He
that was with thee beyond Jordan, to whom thou bearest witness, behold, the
same baptizeth, and all men come to Him." Through these words, Satan brought
temptation upon John. Though John's mission seemed about to close, it was
still possible for him to hinder the work of Christ. If he had sympathized
with himself, and expressed grief or disappointment at being superseded, he
would have sown the seeds of dissension, would have encouraged envy and
jealousy, and would seriously have impeded the progress of the gospel.

John had by nature the faults and weaknesses common to humanity, but the
touch of divine love had transformed him. He dwelt in an atmosphere
uncontaminated with selfishness and ambition, and far above the miasma of
jealousy. He manifested no sympathy with the dissatisfaction of his
disciples, but showed how clearly he understood his relation to the Messiah,
and how gladly he welcomed the One for whom he had prepared the way.

He said, "A man can receive nothing, except it be given him from heaven. Ye
yourselves bear me witness, that I said, I am not the Christ, but that I am
sent before Him. He that hath the bride is the bridegroom: but the friend of
the bridegroom, which standeth and heareth him, rejoiceth greatly because of
the bridegroom's voice." John represented himself as the friend who acted as
a messenger between the betrothed parties, preparing the way for the
marriage. When the bridegroom had received his bride, the mission of the
friend was fulfilled. He rejoiced in the happiness of those whose union he
had promoted. So John had been called to direct the people to Jesus, and it
was his joy to witness the success of the Saviour's work. He said, "This my
joy therefore is fulfilled. He must increase, but I must decrease."

Looking in faith to the Redeemer, John had risen to the height of
self-abnegation. He sought not to attract men to himself, but to lift their
thoughts higher and still higher, until they should rest upon the Lamb of
God. He himself had been only a voice, a cry in the wilderness. Now with joy
he accepted silence and obscurity, that the eyes of all might be turned to
the Light of life.

Those who are true to their calling as messengers for God will not seek
honor for themselves. Love for self will be swallowed up in love for Christ.
No rivalry will mar the precious cause of the gospel. They will recognize
that it is their work to proclaim, as did John the Baptist,

180

"Behold the Lamb of God, which taketh away the sin of the world." John 1:29.
They will lift up Jesus, and with Him humanity will be lifted up. "Thus
saith the high and lofty One that inhabiteth eternity, whose name is Holy; I
dwell in the high and holy place, with him also that is of a contrite and
humble spirit, to revive the spirit of the humble, and to revive the heart
of the contrite ones." Isa. 57:15.

The soul of the prophet, emptied of self, was filled with the light of the
divine. As he witnessed to the Saviour's glory, his words were almost a
counterpart of those that Christ Himself had spoken in His interview with
Nicodemus. John said, "He that cometh from above is above all: he that is of
the earth is earthly, and speaketh of the earth: He that cometh from heaven
is above all. . . . For He whom God hath sent speaketh the words of God: for
God giveth not the Spirit by measure unto Him." Christ could say, "I seek
not Mine own will, but the will of the Father which hath sent Me." John
5:30. To Him it is declared, "Thou hast loved righteousness, and hated
iniquity; therefore God, even Thy God, hath anointed Thee with the oil of
gladness above Thy fellows." Heb. 1:9. The Father "giveth not the Spirit by
measure unto Him."

                                                                     181


So with the followers of Christ. We can receive of heaven's light only as we
are willing to be emptied of self. We cannot discern the character of God,
or accept Christ by faith, unless we consent to the bringing into captivity
of every thought to the obedience of Christ. To all who do this the Holy
Spirit is given without measure. In Christ "dwelleth all the fullness of the
Godhead bodily, and in Him ye are made full." Col. 2:9, 10, R. V.

The disciples of John had declared that all men were coming to Christ; but
with clearer insight, John said, "No man receiveth His witness;" so few were
ready to accept Him as the Saviour from sin. But "he that hath received His
witness hath set his seal to this, that God is true." John 3:33, R. V. "He
that believeth on the Son hath everlasting life." No need of disputation as
to whether Christ's baptism or John's purified from sin. It is the grace of
Christ that gives life to the soul. Apart from Christ, baptism, like any
other service, is a worthless form. "He that believeth not the Son shall not
see life."

The success of Christ's work, which the Baptist had received with such joy,
was reported also to the authorities at Jerusalem. The priests and rabbis
had been jealous of John's influence as they saw the people leaving the
synagogues and flocking to the wilderness; but here was One who had still
greater power to attract the multitudes. Those leaders in Israel were not
willing to say with John, "He must increase, but I must decrease." They
arose with a new determination to put an end to the work that was drawing
the people away from them.

Jesus knew that they would spare no effort to create a division between His
own disciples and those of John. He knew that the storm was gathering which
would sweep away one of the greatest prophets ever given to the world.
Wishing to avoid all occasion for misunderstanding or dissension, He quietly
ceased His labors, and withdrew to Galilee. We also, while loyal to truth,
should try to avoid all that may lead to discord and misapprehension. For
whenever these arise, they result in the loss of souls. Whenever
circumstances occur that threaten to cause division, we should follow the
example of Jesus and of John the Baptist.

John had been called to lead out as a reformer. Because of this, his
disciples were in danger of fixing their attention upon him, feeling that
the success of the work depended upon his labors, and losing sight of the
fact that he was only an instrument through which God had wrought. But the
work of John was not sufficient to lay the foundation of the

182

Christian church. When he had fulfilled his mission, another work was to be
done, which his testimony could not accomplish. His disciples did not
understand this. When they saw Christ coming in to take the work, they were
jealous and dissatisfied.

The same dangers still exist. God calls a man to do a certain work; and when
he has carried it as far as he is qualified to take it, the Lord brings in
others, to carry it still farther. But, like John's disciples, many feel
that the success of the work depends on the first laborer. Attention is
fixed upon the human instead of the divine, jealousy comes in, and the work
of God is marred. The one thus unduly honored is tempted to cherish
self-confidence. He does not realize his dependence on God. The people are
taught to rely on man for guidance, and thus they fall into error, and are
led away from God.

The work of God is not to bear the image and superscription of man. From
time to time the Lord will bring in different agencies, through whom His
purpose can best be accomplished. Happy are they who are willing for self to
be humbled, saying with John the Baptist, "He must increase, but I must
decrease."




                                                                     (183)

                             Chapter 19

                             At Jacob's Well


On the way to Galilee Jesus passed through Samaria. It was noon when He
reached the beautiful Vale of Shechem. At the opening of this valley was
Jacob's well. Wearied with His journey, He sat down here to rest while His
disciples went to buy food.

The Jews and the Samaritans were bitter enemies, and as far as possible
avoided all dealing with each other. To trade with the Samaritans in case of
necessity was indeed counted lawful by the rabbis; but all social
intercourse with them was condemned. A Jew would not borrow from a
Samaritan, nor receive a kindness, not even a morsel of bread or a cup of
water. The disciples, in buying food, were acting in harmony with the custom
of their nation. But beyond this they did not go. To ask a favor of the
Samaritans, or in any way seek to benefit them, did not enter into the
thought of even Christ's disciples.

As Jesus sat by the well side, He was faint from hunger and thirst. The
journey since morning had been long, and now the sun of noontide beat upon
Him. His thirst was increased by the thought of the cool, refreshing water
so near, yet inaccessible to Him; for He had no rope nor water jar, and the
well was deep. The lot of humanity was His, and He waited for someone to
come to draw.

A woman of Samaria approached, and seeming unconscious of His presence,
filled her pitcher with water. As she turned to go away, Jesus asked her for
a drink. Such a favor no Oriental would withhold. In the East, water was
called "the gift of God." To offer a drink to the thirsty traveler was held
to be a duty so sacred that the Arabs of

184

the desert would go out of their way in order to perform it. The hatred
between Jews and Samaritans prevented the woman from offering a kindness to
Jesus; but the Saviour was seeking to find the key to this heart, and with
the tact born of divine love, He asked, not offered, a favor. The offer of a
kindness might have been rejected; but trust awakens trust. The King of
heaven came to this outcast soul, asking a service at her hands. He who made
the ocean, who controls the waters of the great deep, who opened the springs
and channels of the earth, rested from His weariness at Jacob's well, and
was dependent upon a stranger's kindness for even the gift of a drink of
water.

The woman saw that Jesus was a Jew. In her surprise she forgot to grant His
request, but tried to learn the reason for it. "How is it," she said, "that
Thou, being a Jew, askest drink of me, which am a woman of Samaria?"

Jesus answered, "If thou knewest the gift of God, and who it is that saith
to thee, Give Me to drink; thou wouldest have asked of Him, and He would
have given thee living water." You wonder that I should ask of you even so
small a favor as a draught of water from the well at our feet. Had you asked
of Me, I would have given you to drink of the water of everlasting life.

The woman had not comprehended the words of Christ, but she felt their
solemn import. Her light, bantering manner began to change. Supposing that
Jesus spoke of the well before them, she said, "Sir, Thou hast nothing to
draw with, and the well is deep: from whence then hast Thou that living
water? Art Thou greater than our father Jacob, which gave us the well, and
drank thereof himself?" She saw before her only a thirsty traveler, wayworn
and dusty. In her mind she compared Him with the honored patriarch Jacob.
She cherished the feeling, which is so natural, that no other well could be
equal to that provided by the fathers. She was looking backward to the
fathers, forward to the Messiah's coming, while the Hope of the fathers, the
Messiah Himself, was beside her, and she knew Him not. How many thirsting
souls are today close by the living fountain, yet looking far away for the
wellsprings of life! "Say not in thine heart, Who shall ascend into heaven?
(that is, to bring Christ down from above:) or, Who shall descend into the
deep? (that is, to bring up Christ again from the dead.) . . . The word is
nigh thee, even in thy mouth, and in thy heart: . . . if thou shalt confess
with thy mouth the Lord Jesus, and shalt believe in thine heart that God
hath raised Him from the dead, thou shalt be saved." Rom. 10:6-9.

                                                                     187


Jesus did not immediately answer the question in regard to Himself, but with
solemn earnestness He said, "Whosoever drinketh of this water shall thirst
again: but whosoever drinketh of the water that I shall give him shall never
thirst; but the water that I shall give him shall be in him a well of water
springing up into everlasting life."

He who seeks to quench his thirst at the fountains of this world will drink
only to thirst again. Everywhere men are unsatisfied. They long for
something to supply the need of the soul. Only One can meet that want. The
need of the world, "The Desire of all nations," is Christ. The divine grace
which He alone can impart, is as living water, purifying, refreshing, and
invigorating the soul.

Jesus did not convey the idea that merely one draft of the water of life
would suffice the receiver. He who tastes of the love of Christ will
continually long for more; but he seeks for nothing else. The riches,
honors, and pleasures of the world do not attract him. The constant cry of
his heart is, More of Thee. And He who reveals to the soul its necessity is
waiting to satisfy its hunger and thirst. Every human resource and
dependence will fail. The cisterns will be emptied, the pools become dry;
but our Redeemer is an inexhaustible fountain. We may drink, and drink
again, and ever find a fresh supply. He in whom Christ dwells has within
himself the fountain of blessing,--"a well of water springing up into
everlasting life." From this source he may draw strength and grace
sufficient for all his needs.

As Jesus spoke of the living water, the woman looked upon Him with wondering
attention. He had aroused her interest, and awakened a desire for the gift
of which He spoke. She perceived that it was not the water of Jacob's well
to which He referred; for of this she used continually, drinking, and
thirsting again. "Sir," she said, "give me this water, that I thirst not,
neither come hither to draw."

Jesus now abruptly turned the conversation. Before this soul could receive
the gift He longed to bestow, she must be brought to recognize her sin and
her Saviour. He "saith unto her, Go, call thy husband, and come hither." She
answered, "I have no husband." Thus she hoped to prevent all questioning in
that direction. But the Saviour continued, "Thou hast well said, I have no
husband: for thou hast had five husbands; and he whom thou now hast is not
thy husband: in that saidst thou truly."

The listener trembled. A mysterious hand was turning the pages of her life
history, bringing to view that which she had hoped to keep forever

188

hidden. Who was He that could read the secrets of her life? There came to
her thoughts of eternity, of the future Judgment, when all that is now
hidden shall be revealed. In its light, conscience was awakened.

She could deny nothing; but she tried to evade all mention of a subject so
unwelcome. With deep reverence, she said, "Sir, I perceive that Thou art a
prophet." Then, hoping to silence conviction, she turned to points of
religious controversy. If this was a prophet, surely He could give her
instruction concerning these matters that had been so long disputed.

Patiently Jesus permitted her to lead the conversation whither she would.
Meanwhile He watched for the opportunity of again bringing the truth home to
her heart. "Our fathers worshiped in this mountain," she said, "and ye say,
that in Jerusalem is the place where men ought to worship." Just in sight
was Mount Gerizim. Its temple was demolished, and only the altar remained.
The place of worship had been a subject of contention between the Jews and
the Samaritans. Some of the ancestors of the latter people had once belonged
to Israel; but because of their sins, the Lord suffered them to be overcome
by an idolatrous nation. For many generations they were intermingled with
idolaters, whose religion gradually contaminated their own. It is true they
held that their idols were only to remind them of the living God, the Ruler
of the universe; nevertheless the people were led to reverence their graven
images.

When the temple at Jerusalem was rebuilt in the days of Ezra, the Samaritans
wished to join the Jews in its erection. This privilege was refused them,
and a bitter animosity sprang up between the two peoples. The Samaritans
built a rival temple on Mount Gerizim. Here they worshiped in accordance
with the Mosaic ritual, though they did not wholly renounce idolatry. But
disasters attended them, their temple was destroyed by their enemies, and
they seemed to be under a curse; yet they still clung to their traditions
and their forms of worship. They would not acknowledge the temple at
Jerusalem as the house of God, nor admit that the religion of the Jews was
superior to their own.

In answer to the woman, Jesus said, "Believe Me, the hour cometh, when ye
shall neither in this mountain, nor yet at Jerusalem, worship the Father. Ye
worship ye know not what: we know what we worship: for salvation is of the
Jews." Jesus had shown that He was free from Jewish prejudice against the
Samaritans. Now He sought to break down

                                                                     189

the prejudice of this Samaritan against the Jews. While referring to the
fact that the faith of the Samaritans was corrupted with idolatry, He
declared that the great truths of redemption had been committed to the Jews,
and that from among them the Messiah was to appear. In the Sacred Writings
they had a clear presentation of the character of God and the principles of
His government. Jesus classed Himself with the Jews as those to whom God had
given a knowledge of Himself.

He desired to lift the thoughts of His hearer above matters of form and
ceremony, and questions of controversy. "The hour cometh," He said, "and now
is, when the true worshipers shall worship the Father in spirit and in
truth: for the Father seeketh such to worship Him. God is a Spirit: and they
that worship Him must worship Him in spirit and in truth."

Here is declared the same truth that Jesus had revealed to Nicodemus when He
said, "Except a man be born from above, he cannot see the kingdom of God."
John 3:3, margin. Not by seeking a holy mountain or a sacred temple are men
brought into communion with heaven. Religion is not to be confined to
external forms and ceremonies. The religion that comes from God is the only
religion that will lead to God. In order to serve Him aright, we must be
born of the divine Spirit. This will purify the heart and renew the mind,
giving us a new capacity for knowing and loving God. It will give us a
willing obedience to all His requirements. This is true worship. It is the
fruit of the working of the Holy Spirit. By the Spirit every sincere prayer
is indited, and such prayer is acceptable to God. Wherever a soul reaches
out after God, there the Spirit's working is manifest, and God will reveal
Himself to that soul. For such worshipers He is seeking. He waits to receive
them, and to make them His sons and daughters.

As the woman talked with Jesus, she was impressed with His words. Never had
she heard such sentiments from the priests of her own people or from the
Jews. As the past of her life had been spread out before her, she had been
made sensible of her great want. She realized her soul thirst, which the
waters of the well of Sychar could never satisfy. Nothing that had hitherto
come in contact with her had so awakened her to a higher need. Jesus had
convinced her that He read the secrets of her life; yet she felt that He was
her friend, pitying and loving her. While the very purity of His presence
condemned her sin, He had spoken no word of denunciation, but had told her
of His grace, that could renew

190

the soul. She began to have some conviction of His character. The question
arose in her mind, Might not this be the long-looked-for Messiah? She said
to Him, "I know that Messias cometh, which is called Christ: when He is
come, He will tell us all things." Jesus answered, "I that speak unto thee
am He."

As the woman heard these words, faith sprang up in her heart. She accepted
the wonderful announcement from the lips of the divine Teacher.

This woman was in an appreciative state of mind. She was ready to receive
the noblest revelation; for she was interested in the Scriptures, and the
Holy Spirit had been preparing her mind to receive more light. She had
studied the Old Testament promise, "The Lord thy God will raise up unto thee
a Prophet from the midst of thee, of thy brethren, like unto me; unto Him ye
shall hearken." Deut. 18:15. She longed to understand this prophecy. Light
was already flashing into her mind. The water of life, the spiritual life
which Christ gives to every thirsty soul, had begun to spring up in her
heart. The Spirit of the Lord was working with her.

The plain statement made by Christ to this woman could not have been made to
the self-righteous Jews. Christ was far more reserved when He spoke to them.
That which had been withheld from the Jews, and which the disciples were
afterward enjoined to keep secret, was revealed to her. Jesus saw that she
would make use of her knowledge in bringing others to share His grace.

When the disciples returned from their errand, they were surprised to find
their Master speaking with the woman. He had not taken the refreshing
draught that He desired, and He did not stop to eat the food His disciples
had brought. When the woman had gone, the disciples entreated Him to eat.
They saw Him silent, absorbed, as in rapt meditation. His face was beaming
with light, and they feared to interrupt His communion with heaven. But they
knew that He was faint and weary, and thought it their duty to remind Him of
His physical necessities. Jesus recognized their loving interest, and He
said, "I have meat to eat that ye know not of."

The disciples wondered who could have brought Him food; but He explained,
"My meat is to do the will of Him that sent Me, and to accomplish His work."
John 4:34, R. V. As His words to the woman had aroused her conscience, Jesus
rejoiced. He saw her drinking of the water

                                                                     191

of life, and His own hunger and thirst were satisfied. The accomplishment of
the mission which He had left heaven to perform strengthened the Saviour for
His labor, and lifted Him above the necessities of humanity. To minister to
a soul hungering and thirsting for the truth was more grateful to Him than
eating or drinking. It was a comfort, a refreshment, to Him. Benevolence was
the life of His soul.

Our Redeemer thirsts for recognition. He hungers for the sympathy and love
of those whom He has purchased with His own blood. He longs with
inexpressible desire that they should come to Him and have life. As the
mother watches for the smile of recognition from her little child, which
tells of the dawning of intelligence, so does Christ watch for the
expression of grateful love, which shows that spiritual life is begun in the
soul.

The woman had been filled with joy as she listened to Christ's words. The
wonderful revelation was almost overpowering. Leaving her waterpot, she
returned to the city, to carry the message to others. Jesus knew why she had
gone. Leaving her waterpot spoke unmistakably as to the effect of His words.
It was the earnest desire of her soul to obtain the living water; and she
forgot her errand to the well, she forgot the Saviour's thirst, which she
had purposed to supply. With heart overflowing with gladness, she hastened
on her way, to impart to others the precious light she had received.

"Come, see a man, which told me all things that ever I did," she said to the
men of the city. "Is not this the Christ?" Her words touched their hearts.
There was a new expression on her face, a change in her whole appearance.
They were interested to see Jesus. "Then they went out of the city, and came
unto Him."

As Jesus still sat at the well side, He looked over the fields of grain that
were spread out before Him, their tender green touched by the golden
sunlight. Pointing His disciples to the scene, He employed it as a symbol:
"Say not ye, There are yet four months, and then cometh harvest? behold, I
say unto you, Lift up your eyes, and look on the fields; for they are white
already to harvest." And as He spoke, He looked on the groups that were
coming to the well. It was four months to the time for harvesting the grain,
but here was a harvest ready for the reaper.

"He that reapeth," He said, "receiveth wages, and gathereth fruit unto life
eternal: that both he that soweth and he that reapeth may rejoice

192

together. And herein is that saying true, One soweth, and another reapeth."
Here Christ points out the sacred service owed to God by those who receive
the gospel. They are to be His living agencies. He requires their individual
service. And whether we sow or reap, we are working for God. One scatters
the seed; another gathers in the harvest; and both the sower and the reaper
receive wages. They rejoice together in the reward of their labor.

Jesus said to the disciples, "I sent you to reap that whereon ye bestowed no
labor: other men labored, and ye are entered into their labors." The Saviour
was here looking forward to the great ingathering on the day of Pentecost.
The disciples were not to regard this as the result of their own efforts.
They were entering into other men's labors. Ever since the fall of Adam
Christ had been committing the seed of the word to His chosen servants, to
be sown in human hearts. And an unseen agency, even an omnipotent power, had
worked silently but effectually to produce the harvest. The dew and rain and
sunshine of God's grace had been given, to refresh and nourish the seed of
truth. Christ was about to water the seed with His own blood. His disciples
were privileged to be laborers together with God. They were coworkers with
Christ and with the holy men of old. By the outpouring of the Holy Spirit at
Pentecost, thousands were to be converted in a day. This was the result of
Christ's sowing, the harvest of His work.

In the words spoken to the woman at the well, good seed had been sown, and
how quickly the harvest was received. The Samaritans came and heard Jesus,
and believed on Him. Crowding about Him at the well, they plied Him with
questions, and eagerly received His explanations of many things that had
been obscure to them. As they listened, their perplexity began to clear
away. They were like a people in great darkness tracing up a sudden ray of
light till they had found the day. But they were not satisfied with this
short conference. They were anxious to hear more, and to have their friends
also listen to this wonderful teacher. They invited Him to their city, and
begged Him to remain with them. For two days He tarried in Samaria, and many
more believed on Him.

The Pharisees despised the simplicity of Jesus. They ignored His miracles,
and demanded a sign that He was the Son of God. But the Samaritans asked no
sign, and Jesus performed no miracles among them, save in revealing the
secrets of her life to the woman at the well. Yet many received Him. In
their new joy they said to the woman,

                                                                     193

"Now we believe, not because of thy saying: for we have heard Him ourselves,
and know that this is indeed the Christ, the Saviour of the world."

The Samaritans believed that the Messiah was to come as the Redeemer, not
only of the Jews, but of the world. The Holy Spirit through Moses had
foretold Him as a prophet sent from God. Through Jacob it had been declared
that unto Him should the gathering of the people be; and through Abraham,
that in Him all the nations of the earth should be blessed. On these
scriptures the people of Samaria based their faith in the Messiah. The fact
that the Jews had misinterpreted the later prophets, attributing to the
first advent the glory of Christ's second coming, had led the Samaritans to
discard all the sacred writings except those given through Moses. But as the
Saviour swept away these false interpretations, many accepted the later
prophecies and the words of Christ Himself in regard to the kingdom of God.

Jesus had begun to break down the partition wall between Jew and Gentile,
and to preach salvation to the world. Though He was a Jew, He mingled freely
with the Samaritans, setting at nought the Pharisaic customs of His nation.
In face of their prejudices He accepted the hospitality of this despised
people. He slept under their roofs, ate with them at their
tables,--partaking of the food prepared and served by their hands,--taught
in their streets, and treated them with the utmost kindness and courtesy.

In the temple at Jerusalem a low wall separated the outer court from all
other portions of the sacred building. Upon this wall were inscriptions in
different languages, stating that none but Jews were allowed to pass this
boundary. Had a Gentile presumed to enter the inner enclosure, he would have
desecrated the temple, and would have paid the penalty with his life. But
Jesus, the originator of the temple and its service, drew the Gentiles to
Him by the tie of human sympathy, while His divine grace brought to them the
salvation which the Jews rejected.

The stay of Jesus in Samaria was designed to be a blessing to His disciples,
who were still under the influence of Jewish bigotry. They felt that loyalty
to their own nation required them to cherish enmity toward the Samaritans.
They wondered at the conduct of Jesus. They could not refuse to follow His
example, and during the two days in Samaria, fidelity to Him kept their
prejudices under control; yet in heart they were unreconciled. They were
slow to learn that their contempt and

194

hatred must give place to pity and sympathy. But after the Lord's ascension,
His lessons came back to them with a new meaning. After the outpouring of
the Holy Spirit, they recalled the Saviour's look, His words, the respect
and tenderness of His bearing toward these despised strangers. When Peter
went to preach in Samaria, he brought the same spirit into his own work.
When John was called to Ephesus and Smyrna, he remembered the experience at
Shechem, and was filled with gratitude to the divine Teacher, who,
foreseeing the difficulties they must meet, had given them help in His own
example.

The Saviour is still carrying forward the same work as when He proffered the
water of life to the woman of Samaria. Those who call themselves His
followers may despise and shun the outcast ones; but no circumstance of
birth or nationality, no condition of life, can turn away His love from the
children of men. To every soul, however sinful, Jesus says, If thou hadst
asked of Me, I would have given thee living water.

The gospel invitation is not to be narrowed down, and presented only to a
select few, who, we suppose, will do us honor if they accept it. The message
is to be given to all. Wherever hearts are open to receive the truth, Christ
is ready to instruct them. He reveals to them the Father, and the worship
acceptable to Him who reads the heart. For such He uses no parables. To
them, as to the woman at the well, He says, "I that speak unto thee am He."

When Jesus sat down to rest at Jacob's well, He had come from Judea, where
His ministry had produced little fruit. He had been rejected by the priests
and rabbis, and even the people who professed to be His disciples had failed
of perceiving His divine character. He was faint and weary; yet He did not
neglect the opportunity of speaking to one woman, though she was a stranger,
an alien from Israel, and living in open sin.

The Saviour did not wait for congregations to assemble. Often He began His
lessons with only a few gathered about Him, but one by one the passers-by
paused to listen, until a multitude heard with wonder and awe the words of
God through the heaven-sent Teacher. The worker for Christ should not feel
that he cannot speak with the same earnestness to a few hearers as to a
larger company. There may be only one to hear the message; but who can tell
how far-reaching will be its influence? It seemed a small matter, even to
His disciples, for the Saviour to spend

                                                                     195

His time upon a woman of Samaria. But He reasoned more earnestly and
eloquently with her than with kings, councilors, or high priests. The
lessons He gave to that woman have been repeated to the earth's remotest
bounds.

As soon as she had found the Saviour the Samaritan woman brought others to
Him. She proved herself a more effective missionary than His own disciples.
The disciples saw nothing in Samaria to indicate that it was an encouraging
field. Their thoughts were fixed upon a great work to be done in the future.
They did not see that right around them was a harvest to be gathered. But
through the woman whom they despised, a whole cityful were brought to hear
the Saviour. She carried the light at once to her countrymen.

This woman represents the working of a practical faith in Christ. Every true
disciple is born into the kingdom of God as a missionary. He who drinks of
the living water becomes a fountain of life. The receiver becomes a giver.
The grace of Christ in the soul is like a spring in the desert, welling up
to refresh all, and making those who are ready to perish eager to drink of
the water of life.




(196)

                             Chapter 20

                             "Except Ye See Signs and Wonders"


The Galileans who returned from the Passover brought back the report of the
wonderful works of Jesus. The judgment passed upon His acts by the
dignitaries at Jerusalem opened His way in Galilee. Many of the people
lamented the abuse of the temple and the greed and arrogance of the priests.
They hoped that this Man, who had put the rulers to flight, might be the
looked-for Deliverer. Now tidings had come that seemed to confirm their
brightest anticipations. It was reported that the prophet had declared
Himself to be the Messiah.

But the people of Nazareth did not believe on Him. For this reason, Jesus
did not visit Nazareth on His way to Cana. The Saviour declared to His
disciples that a prophet has no honor in his own country. Men estimate
character by that which they themselves are capable of appreciating. The
narrow and worldly-minded judged of Christ by His humble birth, His lowly
garb, and daily toil. They could not appreciate the purity of that spirit
upon which was no stain of sin.

The news of Christ's return to Cana soon spread throughout Galilee, bringing
hope to the suffering and distressed. In Capernaum the tidings attracted the
attention of a Jewish nobleman who was an officer in the

                                                                     197

king's service. A son of the officer was suffering from what seemed to be an
incurable disease. Physicians had given him up to die; but when the father
heard of Jesus, he determined to seek help from Him. The child was very low,
and, it was feared, might not live till his return; yet the nobleman felt
that he must present the case in person. He hoped that a father's prayers
might awaken the sympathy of the Great Physician.

On reaching Cana he found a throng surrounding Jesus. With an anxious heart
he pressed through to the Saviour's presence. His faith faltered when he saw
only a plainly dressed man, dusty and worn with travel. He doubted that this
Person could do what he had come to ask of Him; yet he secured an interview
with Jesus, told his errand, and besought the Saviour to accompany him to
his home. But already his

198

sorrow was known to Jesus. Before the officer had left his home, the Saviour
had beheld his affliction.

But He knew also that the father had, in his own mind, made conditions
concerning his belief in Jesus. Unless his petition should be granted, he
would not receive Him as the Messiah. While the officer waited in an agony
of suspense, Jesus said, "Except ye see signs and wonders, ye will not
believe."

Notwithstanding all the evidence that Jesus was the Christ, the petitioner
had determined to make his belief in Him conditional on the granting of his
own request. The Saviour contrasted this questioning unbelief with the
simple faith of the Samaritans, who asked for no miracle or sign. His word,
the ever-present evidence of His divinity, had a convincing power that
reached their hearts. Christ was pained that His own people, to whom the
Sacred Oracles had been committed, should fail to hear the voice of God
speaking to them in His Son.

Yet the nobleman had a degree of faith; for he had come to ask what seemed
to him the most precious of all blessings. Jesus had a greater gift to
bestow. He desired, not only to heal the child, but to make the officer and
his household sharers in the blessings of salvation, and to kindle a light
in Capernaum, which was so soon to be the field of His own labors. But the
nobleman must realize his need before he would desire the grace of Christ.
This courtier represented many of his nation. They were interested in Jesus
from selfish motives. They hoped to receive some special benefit through His
power, and they staked their faith on the granting of this temporal favor;
but they were ignorant as to their spiritual disease, and saw not their need
of divine grace.

Like a flash of light, the Saviour's words to the nobleman laid bare his
heart. He saw that his motives in seeking Jesus were selfish. His
vacillating faith appeared to him in its true character. In deep distress he
realized that his doubt might cost the life of his son. He knew that he was
in the presence of One who could read the thoughts, and to whom all things
were possible. In an agony of supplication he cried, "Sir, come down ere my
child die." His faith took hold upon Christ as did Jacob, when, wrestling
with the Angel, he cried, "I will not let Thee go, except Thou bless me."
Gen. 32:26.

Like Jacob he prevailed. The Saviour cannot withdraw from the soul that
clings to Him, pleading its great need. "Go thy way," He said; "thy son
liveth." The nobleman left the Saviour's presence with a peace

                                                                     199

and joy he had never known before. Not only did he believe that his son
would be restored, but with strong confidence he trusted in Christ as the
Redeemer.

At the same hour the watchers beside the dying child in the home at
Capernaum beheld a sudden and mysterious change. The shadow of death was
lifted from the sufferer's face. The flush of fever gave place to the soft
glow of returning health. The dim eyes brightened with intelligence, and
strength returned to the feeble, emaciated frame. No signs of his malady
lingered about the child. His burning flesh had become soft and moist, and
he sank into a quiet sleep. The fever had left him in the very heat of the
day. The family were amazed, and great was the rejoicing.

Cana was not so far from Capernaum but that the officer might have reached
his home on the evening after his interview with Jesus; but he did not
hasten on the homeward journey. It was not until the next morning that he
reached Capernaum. What a homecoming was that! When he went to find Jesus,
his heart was heavy with sorrow. The sunshine seemed cruel to him, the songs
of the birds a mockery. How different his feelings now! All nature wears a
new aspect. He sees with new eyes. As he journeys in the quiet of the early
morning, all nature seems to be praising God with him. While he is still
some distance from his own dwelling, servants come out to meet him, anxious
to relieve the suspense they are sure he must feel. He shows no surprise at
the news they bring, but with a depth of interest they cannot know he asks
at what hour the child began to mend. They answer, "Yesterday at the seventh
hour the fever left him." At the very moment when the father's faith grasped
the assurance, "Thy son liveth," divine love touched the dying child.

200


The father hurries on to greet his son. He clasps him to his heart as one
restored from the dead, and thanks God again and again for this wonderful
restoration.

The nobleman longed to know more of Christ. As he afterward heard His
teaching, he and all his household became disciples. Their affliction was
sanctified to the conversion of the entire family. Tidings of the miracle
spread; and in Capernaum, where so many of His mighty works were performed,
the way was prepared for Christ's personal ministry.

He who blessed the nobleman at Capernaum is just as desirous of blessing us.
But like the afflicted father, we are often led to seek Jesus by the desire
for some earthly good; and upon the granting of our request we rest our
confidence in His love. The Saviour longs to give us a greater blessing than
we ask; and He delays the answer to our request that He may show us the evil
of our own hearts, and our deep need of His grace. He desires us to renounce
the selfishness that leads us to seek Him. Confessing our helplessness and
bitter need, we are to trust ourselves wholly to His love.

The nobleman wanted to see the fulfillment of his prayer before he should
believe; but he had to accept the word of Jesus that his request was heard
and the blessing granted. This lesson we also have to learn. Not because we
see or feel that God hears us are we to believe. We are to trust in His
promises. When we come to Him in faith, every petition enters the heart of
God. When we have asked for His blessing, we should believe that we receive
it, and thank Him that we have received it. Then we are to go about our
duties, assured that the blessing will be realized when we need it most.
When we have learned to do this, we shall know that our prayers are
answered. God will do for us "exceeding abundantly," "according to the
riches of His glory," and "the working of His mighty power." Eph. 3:20, 16;
1:19.




                                                                     (201)

                             Chapter 21

                             Bethesda and the Sanhedrin


"Now there is at Jerusalem by the sheep market a pool, which is called in
the Hebrew tongue Bethesda, having five porches. In these lay a great
multitude of impotent folk, of blind, halt, withered, waiting for the moving
of the water."

At certain seasons the waters of this pool were agitated, and it was
commonly believed that this was the result of supernatural power, and that
whoever first after the troubling of the pool stepped into the waters, would
be healed of whatever disease he had. Hundreds of sufferers visited the
place; but so great was the crowd when the water was troubled that they
rushed forward, trampling underfoot men, women, and children, weaker than
themselves. Many could not get near the pool. Many who had succeeded in
reaching it died upon its brink. Shelters had been erected about the place,
that the sick might be protected from the heat by day and the chilliness of
the night. There were some who spent the night in these porches, creeping to
the edge of the pool day after day, in the vain hope of relief.

Jesus was again at Jerusalem. Walking alone, in apparent meditation and
prayer, He came to the pool. He saw the wretched sufferers watching for that
which they supposed to be their only chance of cure. He longed to exercise
His healing power, and make every sufferer whole. But it was the Sabbath
day. Multitudes were going to the temple for worship,

202

and He knew that such an act of healing would so excite the prejudice of the
Jews as to cut short His work.

But the Saviour saw one case of supreme wretchedness. It was that of a man
who had been a helpless cripple for thirty-eight years. His disease was in a
great degree the result of his own sin, and was looked upon as a judgment
from God. Alone and friendless, feeling that he was shut out from God's
mercy, the sufferer had passed long years of misery. At the time when it was
expected that the waters would be troubled, those who pitied his
helplessness would bear him to the porches. But at the favored moment he had
no one to help him in. He had seen the rippling of the water, but had never
been able to get farther than the edge of the pool. Others stronger than he
would plunge in before him. He could not contend successfully with the
selfish, scrambling crowd. His persistent efforts toward the one object, and
his anxiety and continual disappointment, were fast wearing away the remnant
of his strength.

The sick man was lying on his mat, and occasionally lifting his head to gaze
at the pool, when a tender, compassionate face bent over him, and the words,
"Wilt thou be made whole?" arrested his attention. Hope came to his heart.
He felt that in some way he was to have help. But the glow of encouragement
soon faded. He remembered how often he had tried to reach the pool, and now
he had little prospect of living till it should again be troubled. He turned
away wearily, saying, "Sir, I have no man, when the water is troubled, to
put me into the pool: but while I am coming, another steppeth down before
me."

Jesus does not ask this sufferer to exercise faith in Him. He simply says,
"Rise, take up thy bed, and walk." But the man's faith takes hold

                                                                     203

upon that word. Every nerve and muscle thrills with new life, and healthful
action comes to his crippled limbs. Without question he sets his will to
obey the command of Christ, and all his muscles respond to his will.
Springing to his feet, he finds himself an active man.

Jesus had given him no assurance of divine help. The man might have stopped
to doubt, and lost his one chance of healing. But he believed Christ's word,
and in acting upon it he received strength.

Through the same faith we may receive spiritual healing. By sin we have been
severed from the life of God. Our souls are palsied. Of ourselves we are no
more capable of living a holy life than was the impotent man capable of
walking. There are many who realize their helplessness, and who long for
that spiritual life which will bring them into harmony with God; they are
vainly striving to obtain it. In despair they cry, "O wretched man that I
am! who shall deliver me from this body of death?" Rom. 7:24, margin. Let
these desponding, struggling ones look up. The Saviour is bending over the
purchase of His blood, saying with inexpressible tenderness and pity, "Wilt
thou be made whole?" He bids you arise in health and peace. Do not wait to
feel that you are made whole. Believe His word, and it will be fulfilled.
Put your will on the side of Christ. Will to serve Him, and in acting upon
His word you will receive strength. Whatever may be the evil practice, the
master passion which through long indulgence binds both soul and body,
Christ is able and longs to deliver. He will impart life to the soul that is
"dead in trespasses." Eph. 2:1. He will set free the captive that is held by
weakness and misfortune and the chains of sin.

The restored paralytic stooped to take up his bed, which was only a rug and
a blanket, and as he straightened himself again with a sense of delight, he
looked around for his Deliverer; but Jesus was lost in the crowd. The man
feared that he would not know Him if he should see Him again. As he hurried
on his way with firm, free step, praising God and rejoicing in his new-found
strength, he met several of the Pharisees, and immediately told them of his
cure. He was surprised at the coldness with which they listened to his
story.

With lowering brows they interrupted him, asking why he was carrying his bed
on the Sabbath day. They sternly reminded him that it was not lawful to bear
burdens on the Lord's day. In his joy the man had forgotten that it was the
Sabbath; yet he felt no condemnation for obeying the command of One who had
such power from God. He

204

answered boldly, "He that made me whole, the same said unto me, Take up thy
bed, and walk." They asked who it was that had done this, but he could not
tell. These rulers knew well that only One had shown Himself able to perform
this miracle; but they wished for direct proof that it was Jesus, that they
might condemn Him as a Sabbath-breaker. In their judgment He had not only
broken the law in healing the sick man on the Sabbath, but had committed
sacrilege in bidding him bear away his bed.

The Jews had so perverted the law that they made it a yoke of bondage. Their
meaningless requirements had become a byword among other nations. Especially
was the Sabbath hedged in by all manner of senseless restrictions. It was
not to them a delight, the holy of the Lord, and honorable. The scribes and
Pharisees had made its observance an intolerable burden. A Jew was not
allowed to kindle a fire nor even to light a candle on the Sabbath. As a
consequence the people were dependent upon the Gentiles for many services
which their rules forbade them to do for themselves. They did not reflect
that if these acts were sinful, those who employed others to perform them
were as guilty as if they had done the work themselves. They thought that
salvation was restricted to the Jews, and that the condition of all others,
being already hopeless, could be made no worse. But God has given no
commandments which cannot be obeyed by all. His laws sanction no
unreasonable or selfish restrictions.

In the temple Jesus met the man who had been healed. He had come to bring a
sin offering and also a thank offering for the great mercy he had received.
Finding him among the worshipers, Jesus made Himself known, with the warning
words, "Behold, thou art made whole: sin no more, lest a worse thing come
unto thee."

The healed man was overjoyed at meeting his Deliverer. Ignorant of the
enmity toward Jesus, he told the Pharisees who had questioned him, that this
was He who had performed the cure. "Therefore did the Jews persecute Jesus,
and sought to slay Him, because He had done these things on the Sabbath
day."

Jesus was brought before the Sanhedrin to answer the charge of
Sabbathbreaking. Had the Jews at this time been an independent nation, such
a charge would have served their purpose for putting Him to death. This
their subjection to the Romans prevented. The Jews had not the power to
inflict capital punishment, and the accusations brought against

                                                                     205

Christ would have no weight in a Roman court. There were other objects,
however, which they hoped to secure. Notwithstanding their efforts to
counteract His work, Christ was gaining, even in Jerusalem, an influence
over the people greater than their own. Multitudes who were not interested
in the harangues of the rabbis were attracted by His teaching. They could
understand His words, and their hearts were warmed and comforted. He spoke
of God, not as an avenging judge, but as a tender father, and He revealed
the image of God as mirrored in Himself. His words were like balm to the
wounded spirit. Both by His words and by His works of mercy He was breaking
the oppressive power of the old traditions and man-made commandments, and
presenting the love of God in its exhaustless fullness.

In one of the earliest prophecies of Christ it is written, "The scepter
shall not depart from Judah, nor a lawgiver from between his feet, until
Shiloh come; and unto Him shall the gathering of the people be." Gen. 49:10.
The people were gathering to Christ. The sympathetic hearts of the multitude
accepted lessons of love and benevolence in preference to the rigid
ceremonies required by the priests. If the priests and rabbis had not
interposed, His teaching would have wrought such a reformation as this world
has never witnessed. But in order to maintain their own power, these leaders
determined to break down the influence of Jesus. His arraignment before the
Sanhedrin, and an open condemnation of His teachings, would aid in effecting
this; for the people still had great reverence for their religious leaders.
Whoever dared to condemn the rabbinical requirements, or attempt to lighten
the burdens they had brought upon the people, was regarded as guilty, not
only of blasphemy, but of treason. On this ground the rabbis hoped to excite
suspicion of Christ. They represented Him as trying to overthrow the
established customs, thus causing division among the people, and preparing
the way for complete subjugation by the Romans.

But the plans which these rabbis were working so zealously to fulfill
originated in another council than that of the Sanhedrin. After Satan had
failed to overcome Christ in the wilderness, he combined his forces to
oppose Him in His ministry, and if possible to thwart His work. What he
could not accomplish by direct, personal effort, he determined to effect by
strategy. No sooner had he withdrawn from the conflict in the wilderness
than in council with his confederate angels he matured his plans for still
further blinding the minds of the Jewish people, that

206

they might not recognize their Redeemer. He planned to work through his
human agencies in the religious world, by imbuing them with his own enmity
against the champion of truth. He would lead them to reject Christ and to
make His life as bitter as possible, hoping to discourage Him in His
mission. And the leaders in Israel became instruments of Satan in warring
against the Saviour.

Jesus had come to "magnify the law, and make it honorable." He was not to
lessen its dignity, but to exalt it. The scripture says, "He shall not fail
nor be discouraged, till He have set judgment in the earth." Isa. 42:21, 4.
He had come to free the Sabbath from those burdensome requirements that had
made it a curse instead of a blessing.

For this reason He had chosen the Sabbath upon which to perform the act of
healing at Bethesda. He could have healed the sick man as well on any other
day of the week; or He might simply have cured him, without bidding him bear
away his bed. But this would not have given Him the opportunity He desired.
A wise purpose underlay every act of Christ's life on earth. Everything He
did was important in itself and in its teaching. Among the afflicted ones at
the pool He selected the worst case upon whom to exercise His healing power,
and bade the man carry his bed through the city in order to publish the
great work that had been wrought upon him. This would raise the question of
what it was lawful to do on the Sabbath, and would open the way for Him to
denounce the restrictions of the Jews in regard to the Lord's day, and to
declare their traditions void.

Jesus stated to them that the work of relieving the afflicted was in harmony
with the Sabbath law. It was in harmony with the work of God's angels, who
are ever descending and ascending between heaven and earth to minister to
suffering humanity. Jesus declared, "My Father worketh hitherto, and I
work." All days are God's, in which to carry out His plans for the human
race. If the Jews' interpretation of the law was correct, then Jehovah was
at fault, whose work has quickened and upheld every living thing since first
He laid the foundations of the earth; then He who pronounced His work good,
and instituted the Sabbath to commemorate its completion, must put a period
to His labor, and stop the never-ending routine of the universe.

Should God forbid the sun to perform its office upon the Sabbath, cut off
its genial rays from warming the earth and nourishing vegetation? Must the
system of worlds stand still through that holy day? Should He

                                                                     207

command the brooks to stay from watering the fields and forests, and bid the
waves of the sea still their ceaseless ebbing and flowing? Must the wheat
and corn stop growing, and the ripening cluster defer its purple bloom? Must
the trees and flowers put forth no bud nor blossom on the Sabbath?

In such a case, men would miss the fruits of the earth, and the blessings
that make life desirable. Nature must continue her unvarying course. God
could not for a moment stay His hand, or man would faint and die. And man
also has a work to perform on this day. The necessities of life must be
attended to, the sick must be cared for, the wants of the needy must be
supplied. He will not be held guiltless who neglects to relieve suffering on
the Sabbath. God's holy rest day was made for man, and acts of mercy are in
perfect harmony with its intent. God does not desire His creatures to suffer
an hour's pain that may be relieved upon the Sabbath or any other day.

The demands upon God are even greater upon the Sabbath than upon other days.
His people then leave their usual employment, and spend the time in
meditation and worship. They ask more favors of Him on the Sabbath than upon
other days. They demand His special attention. They crave His choicest
blessings. God does not wait for the Sabbath to pass before He grants these
requests. Heaven's work never ceases, and men should never rest from doing
good. The Sabbath is not intended to be a period of useless inactivity. The
law forbids secular labor on the rest day of the Lord; the toil that gains a
livelihood must cease; no labor for worldly pleasure or profit is lawful
upon that day; but as God ceased His labor of creating, and rested upon the
Sabbath and blessed it, so man is to leave the occupations of his daily
life, and devote those sacred hours to healthful rest, to worship, and to
holy deeds. The work of Christ in healing the sick was in perfect accord
with the law. It honored the Sabbath.

Jesus claimed equal rights with God in doing a work equally sacred, and of
the same character with that which engaged the Father in heaven. But the
Pharisees were still more incensed. He had not only broken the law,
according to their understanding, but in calling God "His own Father" had
declared Himself equal with God. John 5:18, R. V.

The whole nation of the Jews called God their Father, therefore they would
not have been so enraged if Christ had represented Himself as standing in
the same relation to God. But they accused Him of

208

blasphemy, showing that they understood Him as making this claim in the
highest sense.

These adversaries of Christ had no arguments with which to meet the truths
He brought home to their consciences. They could only cite their customs and
traditions, and these seemed weak and vapid when compared with the arguments
Jesus had drawn from the word of God and the unceasing round of nature. Had
the rabbis felt any desire to receive light, they would have been convinced
that Jesus spoke the truth. But they evaded the points He made concerning
the Sabbath, and sought to stir up anger against Him because He claimed to
be equal with God. The fury of the rulers knew no bounds. Had they not
feared the people, the priests and rabbis would have slain Jesus on the
spot. But the popular sentiment in His favor was strong. Many recognized in
Jesus the friend who had healed their diseases and comforted their sorrows,
and they justified His healing of the sufferer at Bethesda. So for the time
the leaders were obliged to restrain their hatred.

Jesus repelled the charge of blasphemy. My authority, He said, for doing the
work of which you accuse Me, is that I am the Son of God, one with Him in
nature, in will, and in purpose. In all His works of creation and
providence, I co-operate with God. "The Son can do nothing of Himself, but
what He seeth the Father do." The priests and rabbis were taking the Son of
God to task for the very work He had been sent into the world to do. By
their sins they had separated themselves from God, and in their pride were
moving independently of Him. They felt sufficient in themselves for all
things, and realized no need of a higher wisdom to direct their acts. But
the Son of God was surrendered to the Father's will, and dependent upon His
power. So utterly was Christ emptied of self that He made no plans for
Himself. He accepted God's plans for Him, and day by day the Father unfolded
His plans. So should we depend upon God, that our lives may be the simple
outworking of His will.

When Moses was about to build the sanctuary as a dwelling place for God, he
was directed to make all things according to the pattern shown him in the
mount. Moses was full of zeal to do God's work; the most talented, skillful
men were at hand to carry out his suggestions. Yet he was not to make a
bell, a pomegranate, a tassel, a fringe, a curtain, or any vessel of the
sanctuary, except according to the pattern shown him. God called him into
the mount, and revealed to him the heavenly things. The Lord covered him
with His own glory, that he might see

                                                                     209

the pattern, and according to it all things were made. So to Israel, whom He
desired to make His dwelling place, He had revealed His glorious ideal of
character. The pattern was shown them in the mount when the law was given
from Sinai, and when the Lord passed by before Moses and proclaimed, "The
Lord, The Lord God, merciful and gracious, long-suffering, and abundant in
goodness and truth, keeping mercy for thousands, forgiving iniquity and
transgression and sin." Ex. 34:6, 7.

Israel had chosen their own ways. They had not builded according to the
pattern; but Christ, the true temple for God's indwelling, molded every
detail of His earthly life in harmony with God's ideal. He said, "I delight
to do Thy will, O My God: yea, Thy law is within My heart." Ps. 40:8. So our
characters are to be builded "for an habitation of God through the Spirit."
Eph. 2:22. And we are to "make all things according to the pattern," even
Him who "suffered for us, leaving us an example, that ye should follow His
steps." Heb. 8:5; 1 Peter 2:21.

The words of Christ teach that we should regard ourselves as inseparably
bound to our Father in heaven. Whatever our position, we are dependent upon
God, who holds all destinies in His hands. He has appointed us our work, and
has endowed us with faculties and means for that work. So long as we
surrender the will to God, and trust in His strength and wisdom, we shall be
guided in safe paths, to fulfill our appointed part in His great plan. But
the one who depends upon his own wisdom and power is separating himself from
God. Instead of working in unison with Christ, he is fulfilling the purpose
of the enemy of God and man.

The Saviour continued: "What things soever He [the Father] doeth, these also
doeth the Son likewise. . . . As the Father raiseth up the dead, and
quickeneth them; even so the Son quickeneth whom He will." The Sadducees
held that there would be no resurrection of the body; but Jesus tells them
that one of the greatest works of His Father is raising the dead, and that
He Himself has power to do the same work. "The hour is coming, and now is,
when the dead shall hear the voice of the Son of God: and they that hear
shall live." The Pharisees believed in the resurrection of the dead. Christ
declares that even now the power which gives life to the dead is among them,
and they are to behold its manifestation. This same resurrection power is
that which gives life to the soul "dead in trespasses and sins." Eph. 2:1.
That spirit of life in Christ Jesus, "the power of His resurrection," sets
men "free from

210

the law of sin and death." Phil. 3:10; Rom. 8:2. The dominion of evil is
broken, and through faith the soul is kept from sin. He who opens his heart
to the Spirit of Christ becomes a partaker of that mighty power which shall
bring forth his body from the grave.

The humble Nazarene asserts His real nobility. He rises above humanity,
throws off the guise of sin and shame, and stands revealed, the Honored of
the angels, the Son of God, One with the Creator of the universe. His
hearers are spellbound. No man has ever spoken words like His, or borne
himself with such a kingly majesty. His utterances are clear and plain,
fully declaring His mission, and the duty of the world. "For the Father
judgeth no man, but hath committed all judgment unto the Son: that all men
should honor the Son, even as they honor the Father. He that honoreth not
the Son honoreth not the Father which hath sent Him. . . . For as the Father
hath life in Himself; so hath He given to the Son to have life in Himself;
and hath given Him authority to execute judgment also, because He is the Son
of man."

The priests and rulers had set themselves up as judges to condemn Christ's
work, but He declared Himself their judge, and the judge of all the earth.
The world has been committed to Christ, and through Him has come every
blessing from God to the fallen race. He was the Redeemer before as after
His incarnation. As soon as there was sin, there was a Saviour. He has given
light and life to all, and according to the measure of light given, each is
to be judged. And He who has given the light, He who has followed the soul
with tenderest entreaty, seeking to win it from sin to holiness, is in one
its advocate and judge. From the opening of the great controversy in heaven,
Satan has maintained his cause through deception; and Christ has been
working to unveil his schemes and to break his power. It is He who has
encountered the deceiver, and who through all the ages has been seeking to
wrest the captives from his grasp, who will pass judgment upon every soul.

And God "hath given Him authority to execute judgment also, because He is
the Son of man." Because He has tasted the very dregs of human affliction
and temptation, and understands the frailties and sins of men; because in
our behalf He has victoriously withstood the temptations of Satan, and will
deal justly and tenderly with the souls that His own blood has been poured
out to save,--because of this, the Son of man is appointed to execute the
judgment.

But Christ's mission was not for judgment, but for salvation. "God sent not
His Son into the world to condemn the world; but that the

                                                                     211

world through Him might be saved." John 3:17. And before the Sanhedrin Jesus
declared, "He that heareth My word, and believeth Him that sent Me, hath
eternal life, and cometh not into judgment, but hath passed out of death
into life." John 5:24, R. V.

Bidding His hearers marvel not, Christ opened before them, in still wider
view, the mystery of the future. "The hour cometh," He said, "in which all
that are in the tombs shall hear His voice, and shall come forth; they that
have done good, unto the resurrection of life; and they that have done ill,
unto the resurrection of judgment." John 5:28, 29, R. V.

This assurance of the future life was that for which Israel had so long
waited, and which they had hoped to receive at the Messiah's advent. The
only light that can lighten the gloom of the grave was shining upon them.
But self-will is blind. Jesus had violated the traditions of the rabbis, and
disregarded their authority, and they would not believe.

The time, the place, the occasion, the intensity of feeling that pervaded
the assembly, all combined to make the words of Jesus before the Sanhedrin
the more impressive. The highest religious authorities of the nation were
seeking the life of Him who declared Himself the restorer of Israel. The
Lord of the Sabbath was arraigned before an earthly tribunal to answer the
charge of breaking the Sabbath law. When He so fearlessly declared His
mission, His judges looked upon Him with astonishment and rage; but His
words were unanswerable. They could not condemn Him. He denied the right of
the priests and rabbis to question Him, or to interfere with His work. They
were invested with no such authority. Their claims were based upon their own
pride and arrogance. He refused to plead guilty of their charges, or to be
catechized by them.

Instead of apologizing for the act of which they complained, or explaining
His purpose in doing it, Jesus turned upon the rulers, and the accused
became the accuser. He rebuked them for the hardness of their hearts, and
their ignorance of the Scriptures. He declared that they had rejected the
word of God, inasmuch as they had rejected Him whom God had sent. "Ye search
the Scriptures, because ye think that in them ye have eternal life; and
these are they which bear witness of Me." John 5:39, R. V.

In every page, whether history, or precept, or prophecy, the Old Testament
Scriptures are irradiated with the glory of the Son of God. So far as it was
of divine institution, the entire system of Judaism was a compacted prophecy
of the gospel. To Christ "give all the prophets witness." Acts 10:43. From
the promise given to Adam, down through

212

the patriarchal line and the legal economy, heaven's glorious light made
plain the footsteps of the Redeemer. Seers beheld the Star of Bethlehem, the
Shiloh to come, as future things swept before them in mysterious procession.
In every sacrifice Christ's death was shown. In every cloud of incense His
righteousness ascended. By every jubilee trumpet His name was sounded. In
the awful mystery of the holy of holies His glory dwelt.

The Jews had the Scriptures in their possession, and supposed that in their
mere outward knowledge of the word they had eternal life. But Jesus said,
"Ye have not His word abiding in you." Having rejected Christ in His word,
they rejected Him in person. "Ye will not come to Me," He said, "that ye
might have life."

The Jewish leaders had studied the teachings of the prophets concerning the
kingdom of the Messiah; but they had done this, not with a sincere desire to
know the truth, but with the purpose of finding evidence to sustain their
ambitious hopes. When Christ came in a manner contrary to their
expectations, they would not receive Him; and in order to justify
themselves, they tried to prove Him a deceiver. When once they had set their
feet in this path, it was easy for Satan to strengthen their opposition to
Christ. The very words that should have been received as evidence of His
divinity were interpreted against Him. Thus they turned the truth of God
into a lie, and the more directly the Saviour spoke to them in His works of
mercy, the more determined they were in resisting the light.

Jesus said, "I receive not honor from men." It was not the influence of the
Sanhedrin, it was not their sanction He desired. He could receive no honor
from their approbation. He was invested with the honor and authority of
Heaven. Had He desired it, angels would have come to do Him homage; the
Father would again have testified to His divinity. But for their own sake,
for the sake of the nation whose leaders they were, He desired the Jewish
rulers to discern His character, and receive the blessings He came to bring
them.

"I am come in My Father's name, and ye receive Me not: if another shall come
in his own name, him ye will receive." Jesus came by the authority of God,
bearing His image, fulfilling His word, and seeking His glory; yet He was
not accepted by the leaders in Israel; but when others should come, assuming
the character of Christ, but actuated by their own will and seeking their
own glory, they would be received. And why? Because he who is seeking his
own glory appeals to the desire for self-exaltation in others. To such
appeals the Jews could respond.

                                                                     213

They would receive the false teacher because he flattered their pride by
sanctioning their cherished opinions and traditions. But the teaching of
Christ did not coincide with their ideas. It was spiritual, and demanded the
sacrifice of self; therefore they would not receive it. They were not
acquainted with God, and to them His voice through Christ was the voice of a
stranger.

Is not the same thing repeated in our day? Are there not many, even
religious leaders, who are hardening their hearts against the Holy Spirit,
making it impossible for them to recognize the voice of God? Are they not
rejecting the word of God, that they may keep their own traditions?

"Had ye believed Moses," said Jesus, "ye would have believed Me: for he
wrote of Me. But if ye believe not his writings, how shall ye believe My
words?" It was Christ who had spoken to Israel through Moses. If they had
listened to the divine voice that spoke through their great leader, they
would have recognized it in the teachings of Christ. Had they believed
Moses, they would have believed Him of whom Moses wrote.

Jesus knew that the priests and rabbis were determined to take His life; yet
He clearly explained to them His unity with the Father, and His relation to
the world. They saw that their opposition to Him was without excuse, yet
their murderous hatred was not quenched. Fear seized them as they witnessed
the convincing power that attended His ministry; but they resisted His
appeals, and locked themselves in darkness.

They had signally failed to subvert the authority of Jesus or to alienate
the respect and attention of the people, many of whom were convicted by His
words. The rulers themselves had felt deep condemnation as He had pressed
their guilt home upon their consciences; yet this only made them the more
bitter against Him. They were determined to take His life. They sent
messengers all over the country to warn the people against Jesus as an
impostor. Spies were sent to watch Him, and report what He said and did. The
precious Saviour was now most surely standing under the shadow of the cross.




(214)

                             Chapter 22

                             Imprisonment and Death of John


John the Baptist had been first in heralding Christ's kingdom, and he was
first also in suffering. From the free air of the wilderness and the vast
throngs that had hung upon his words, he was now shut in by the walls of a
dungeon cell. He had become a prisoner in the fortress of Herod Antipas. In
the territory east of Jordan, which was under the dominion of Antipas, much
of John's ministry had been spent. Herod himself had listened to the
preaching of the Baptist. The dissolute king had trembled under the call to
repentance. "Herod feared John, knowing that he was a just man and an holy;
. . and when he heard him, he did many things, and heard him gladly." John
dealt with him faithfully, denouncing his iniquitous alliance with Herodias,
his brother's wife. For a time Herod feebly sought to break the chain of
lust that bound him; but Herodias fastened him the more firmly in her toils,
and found revenge upon the Baptist by inducing Herod to cast him into
prison.

The life of John had been one of active labor, and the gloom and inaction of
his prison life weighed heavily upon him. As week after week passed,
bringing no change, despondency and doubt crept over him. His disciples did
not forsake him. They were allowed access to the prison, and they brought
him tidings of the works of Jesus, and told how the people were flocking to
Him. But they questioned why, if this

                                                                     215

new teacher was the Messiah, He did nothing to effect John's release. How
could He permit His faithful herald to be deprived of liberty and perhaps of
life?

These questions were not without effect. Doubts which otherwise would never
have arisen were suggested to John. Satan rejoiced to hear the words of
these disciples, and to see how they bruised the soul of the Lord's
messenger. Oh, how often those who think themselves the friends of a good
man, and who are eager to show their fidelity to him, prove to be his most
dangerous enemies! How often, instead of strengthening his faith, their
words depress and dishearten!

Like the Saviour's disciples, John the Baptist did not understand the nature
of Christ's kingdom. He expected Jesus to take the throne of David; and as
time passed, and the Saviour made no claim to kingly authority, John became
perplexed and troubled. He had declared to the people that in order for the
way to be prepared before the Lord, the prophecy of Isaiah must be
fulfilled; the mountains and hills must be brought low, the crooked made
straight, and the rough places plain. He had looked for the high places of
human pride and power to be cast down. He had pointed to the Messiah as the
One whose fan was in His hand, and who would thoroughly purge His floor, who
would gather the wheat into His garner, and burn up the chaff with
unquenchable fire. Like the prophet Elijah, in whose spirit and power he had
come to Israel, he looked for the Lord to reveal Himself as a God that
answereth by fire.

In his mission the Baptist had stood as a fearless reprover of iniquity,
both in high places and in low. He had dared to face King Herod with the
plain rebuke of sin. He had not counted his life dear unto himself, that he
might fulfill his appointed work. And now from his dungeon he watched for
the Lion of the tribe of Judah to cast down the pride of the oppressor, and
to deliver the poor and him that cried. But Jesus seemed to content Himself
with gathering disciples about Him, and healing and teaching the people. He
was eating at the tables of the publicans, while every day the Roman yoke
rested more heavily upon Israel, while King Herod and his vile paramour
worked their will, and the cries of the poor and suffering went up to
heaven.

216


To the desert prophet all this seemed a mystery beyond his fathoming. There
were hours when the whisperings of demons tortured his spirit, and the
shadow of a terrible fear crept over him. Could it be that the
long-hoped-for Deliverer had not yet appeared? Then what meant the message
that he himself had been impelled to bear? John had been bitterly
disappointed in the result of his mission. He had expected that the message
from God would have the same effect as when the law was read in the days of
Josiah and of Ezra (2 Chronicles 34; Nehemiah
8, 9); that there would follow a deep-seated work of repentance and
returning unto the Lord. For the success of this mission his whole life had
been sacrificed. Had it been in vain?

John was troubled to see that through love for him, his own disciples were
cherishing unbelief in regard to Jesus. Had his work for them been
fruitless? Had he been unfaithful in his mission, that he was now cut off
from labor? If the promised Deliverer had appeared, and John had been found
true to his calling, would not Jesus now overthrow the oppressor's power,
and set free His herald?

But the Baptist did not surrender his faith in Christ. The memory of the
voice from heaven and the descending dove, the spotless purity of Jesus, the
power of the Holy Spirit that had rested upon John as he came into the
Saviour's presence, and the testimony of the prophetic scriptures,--all
witnessed that Jesus of Nazareth was the Promised One.

John would not discuss his doubts and anxieties with his companions. He
determined to send a message of inquiry to Jesus. This he entrusted to two
of his disciples, hoping that an interview with the Saviour would confirm
their faith, and bring assurance to their brethren. And he longed for some
word from Christ spoken directly for himself.

The disciples came to Jesus with their message, "Art Thou He that should
come, or do we look for another?"

How short the time since the Baptist had pointed to Jesus, and proclaimed,
"Behold the Lamb of God, which taketh away the sin of the world." "He it is,
who coming after me is preferred before me." John 1:29, 27. And now the
question, "Art Thou He that should come?" It was keenly bitter and
disappointing to human nature. If John, the faithful forerunner, failed to
discern Christ's mission, what could be expected from the self-seeking
multitude?

The Saviour did not at once answer the disciples' question. As they stood
wondering at His silence, the sick and afflicted were coming to Him to be
healed. The blind were groping their way through the crowd;

                                                                     217

diseased ones of all classes, some urging their own way, some borne by their
friends, were eagerly pressing into the presence of Jesus. The voice of the
mighty Healer penetrated the deaf ear. A word, a touch of His hand, opened
the blind eyes to behold the light of day, the scenes of nature, the faces
of friends, and the face of the Deliverer. Jesus rebuked disease and
banished fever. His voice reached the ears of the dying, and they arose in
health and vigor. Paralyzed demoniacs obeyed His word, their madness left
them, and they worshiped Him. While He healed their diseases, He taught the
people. The poor peasants and laborers, who were shunned by the rabbis as
unclean, gathered close about Him, and He spoke to them the words of eternal
life.

Thus the day wore away, the disciples of John seeing and hearing all. At
last Jesus called them to Him, and bade them go and tell John what they had
witnessed, adding, "Blessed is he, whosoever shall find none occasion of
stumbling in Me." Luke 7:23, R. V. The evidence of His divinity was seen in
its adaptation to the needs of suffering humanity. His glory was shown in
His condescension to our low estate.

The disciples bore the message, and it was enough. John recalled the
prophecy concerning the Messiah, "The Lord hath anointed Me to preach good
tidings unto the meek; He hath sent Me to bind up the brokenhearted, to
proclaim liberty to the captives, and the opening of the prison to them that
are bound; to proclaim the acceptable year of the Lord." Isa. 61:1, 2. The
works of Christ not only declared Him to be the Messiah, but showed in what
manner His kingdom was to be established. To John was opened the same truth
that had come to Elijah in the desert, when "a great and strong wind rent
the mountains, and brake in pieces the rocks before the Lord; but the Lord
was not in the wind: and after the wind an earthquake; but the Lord was not
in the earthquake: and after the earthquake a fire; but the Lord was not in
the fire:" and after the fire, God spoke to the prophet by "a still small
voice." 1 Kings 19:11, 12. So Jesus was to do His work, not with the clash
of arms and the overturning of thrones and kingdoms, but through speaking to
the hearts of men by a life of mercy and self-sacrifice.

218


The principle of the Baptist's own life of self-abnegation was the principle
of the Messiah's kingdom. John well knew how foreign all this was to the
principles and hopes of the leaders in Israel. That which was to him
convincing evidence of Christ's divinity would be no evidence to them. They
were looking for a Messiah who had not been promised. John saw that the
Saviour's mission could win from them only hatred and condemnation. He, the
forerunner, was but drinking of the cup which Christ Himself must drain to
its dregs.

The Saviour's words, "Blessed is he, whosoever shall find none occasion of
stumbling in Me," were a gentle reproof to John. It was not lost upon him.
Understanding more clearly now the nature of Christ's mission, he yielded
himself to God for life or for death, as should best serve the interests of
the cause he loved.

After the messengers had departed, Jesus spoke to the people concerning
John. The Saviour's heart went out in sympathy to the faithful witness now
buried in Herod's dungeon. He would not leave the people to conclude that
God had forsaken John, or that his faith had failed in the day of trial.
"What went ye out into the wilderness to see?" He said. "A reed shaken with
the wind?"

The tall reeds that grew beside the Jordan, bending before every breeze,
were fitting representatives of the rabbis who had stood as critics and
judges of the Baptist's mission. They were swayed this way and that by the
winds of popular opinion. They would not humble themselves to receive the
heart-searching message of the Baptist, yet for fear of the people they
dared not openly oppose his work. But God's messenger was of no such craven
spirit. The multitudes who were gathered about Christ had been witnesses to
the work of John. They had heard his fearless rebuke of sin. To the
self-righteous Pharisees, the priestly Sadducees, King Herod and his court,
princes and soldiers, publicans and peasants, John had spoken with equal
plainness. He was no trembling reed, swayed by the winds of human praise or
prejudice. In the prison he was the same in his loyalty to God and his zeal
for righteousness as when he preached God's message in the wilderness. In
his faithfulness to principle he was as firm as a rock.

Jesus continued, "But what went ye out for to see? A man clothed in soft
raiment? Behold, they which are gorgeously appareled, and live delicately,
are in kings' courts." John had been called to reprove the sins and excesses
of his time, and his plain dress and self-denying life

                                                                     219

were in harmony with the character of his mission. Rich apparel and the
luxuries of this life are not the portion of God's servants, but of those
who live "in kings' courts," the rulers of this world, to whom pertain its
power and its riches. Jesus wished to direct attention to the contrast
between the clothing of John, and that worn by the priests and rulers. These
officials arrayed themselves in rich robes and costly ornaments. They loved
display, and hoped to dazzle the people, and thus command greater
consideration. They were more anxious to gain the admiration of men than to
obtain the purity of heart which would win the approval of God. Thus they
revealed that their allegiance was not given to God, but to the kingdom of
this world.

"But what," said Jesus, "went ye out for to see? A prophet? yea, I say unto
you, and more than a prophet. For this is he, of whom it is written,--

         "Behold, I send My messenger before Thy face,
          Which shall prepare Thy way before Thee.

"Verily I say unto you, Among them that are born of women there hath not
risen a greater than John the Baptist." In the announcement to Zacharias
before the birth of John, the angel had declared, "He shall be great in the
sight of the Lord." Luke 1:15. In the estimation of Heaven, what is it that
constitutes greatness? Not that which the world accounts greatness; not
wealth, or rank, or noble descent, or intellectual gifts, in themselves
considered. If intellectual greatness, apart from any higher consideration,
is worthy of honor, then our homage is due to Satan, whose intellectual
power no man has ever equaled. But when perverted to self-serving, the
greater the gift, the greater curse it becomes. It is moral worth that God
values. Love and purity are the attributes He prizes most. John was great in
the sight of the Lord, when, before the messengers from the Sanhedrin,
before the people, and before his own disciples, he refrained from seeking
honor for himself, but pointed all to Jesus as the Promised One. His
unselfish joy in the ministry of Christ presents the highest type of
nobility ever revealed in man.

The witness borne of him after his death, by those who had heard his
testimony to Jesus, was, "John did no miracle: but all things that John
spake of this Man were true." John 10:41. It was not given to John to call
down fire from heaven, or to raise the dead, as Elijah did, nor

220

to wield Moses' rod of power in the name of God. He was sent to herald the
Saviour's advent, and to call upon the people to prepare for His coming. So
faithfully did he fulfill his mission, that as the people recalled what he
had taught them of Jesus, they could say, "All things that John spake of
this Man were true." Such witness to Christ every disciple of the Master is
called upon to bear.

As the Messiah's herald, John was "much more than a prophet." For while
prophets had seen from afar Christ's advent, to John it was given to behold
Him, to hear the testimony from heaven to His Messiahship, and to present
Him to Israel as the Sent of God. Yet Jesus said, "He that is least in the
kingdom of heaven is greater than he."

The prophet John was the connecting link between the two dispensations. As
God's representative he stood forth to show the relation of the law and the
prophets to the Christian dispensation. He was the lesser light, which was
to be followed by a greater. The mind of John was illuminated by the Holy
Spirit, that he might shed light upon his people; but no other light ever
has shone or ever will shine so clearly upon fallen man as that which
emanated from the teaching and example of Jesus. Christ and His mission had
been but dimly understood as typified in the shadowy sacrifices. Even John
had not fully comprehended the future, immortal life through the Saviour.

Aside from the joy that John found in his mission, his life had been one of
sorrow. His voice had been seldom heard except in the wilderness. His was a
lonely lot. And he was not permitted to see the result of his own labors. It
was not his privilege to be with Christ and witness the manifestation of
divine power attending the greater light. It was not for him to see the
blind restored to sight, the sick healed, and the dead raised to life. He
did not behold the light that shone through every word of Christ, shedding
glory upon the promises of prophecy. The least disciple who saw Christ's
mighty works and heard His words was in this sense more highly privileged
than John the Baptist, and therefore is said to have been greater than he.

Through the vast throngs that had listened to John's preaching, his fame had
spread throughout the land. A deep interest was felt as to the result of his
imprisonment. Yet his blameless life, and the strong public sentiment in his
favor, led to the belief that no violent measures would be taken against
him.

Herod believed John to be a prophet of God, and he fully intended

                                                                     221

to set him at liberty. But he delayed his purpose from fear of Herodias.

Herodias knew that by direct measures she could never win Herod's consent to
the death of John, and she resolved to accomplish her purpose by stratagem.
On the king's birthday an entertainment was to be given to the officers of
state and the nobles of the court. There would be feasting and drunkenness.
Herod would thus be thrown off his guard, and might then be influenced
according to her will.

When the great day arrived, and the king with his lords was feasting and
drinking, Herodias sent her daughter into the banqueting hall to dance for
the entertainment of the guests. Salome was in the first flush of womanhood,
and her voluptuous beauty captivated the senses of the lordly revelers. It
was not customary for the ladies of the court to appear at these
festivities, and a flattering compliment was paid to Herod when this
daughter of Israel's priests and princes danced for the amusement of his
guests.

The king was dazed with wine. Passion held sway, and reason was dethroned.
He saw only the hall of pleasure, with its reveling guests, the banquet
table, the sparkling wine and the flashing lights, and the young girl
dancing before him. In the recklessness of the moment, he desired to make
some display that would exalt him before the great men of his realm. With an
oath he promised to give the daughter of Herodias whatever she might ask,
even to the half of his kingdom.

Salome hastened to her mother, to know what she should ask. The answer was
ready,--the head of John the Baptist. Salome knew not of the thirst for
revenge in her mother's heart, and she shrank from presenting the request;
but the determination of Herodias prevailed. The girl returned with the
terrible petition, "I will that thou forthwith give me in a charger the head
of John the Baptist." Mark 6:25, R. V.

Herod was astonished and confounded. The riotous mirth ceased, and an
ominous silence settled down upon the scene of revelry. The king was
horror-stricken at the thought of taking the life of John. Yet his word was
pledged, and he was unwilling to appear fickle or rash. The oath had been
made in honor of his guests, and if one of them had offered a word against
the fulfillment of his promise, he would gladly have spared the prophet. He
gave them opportunity to speak in the prisoner's behalf. They had traveled
long distances in order to hear the preaching of John, and they knew him to
be a man without crime, and a servant of God. But though shocked at the
girl's demand, they were

222

too besotted to interpose a remonstrance. No voice was raised to save the
life of Heaven's messenger. These men occupied high positions of trust in
the nation, and upon them rested grave responsibilities; yet they had given
themselves up to feasting and drunkenness until the senses were benumbed.
Their heads were turned with the giddy scene of music and dancing, and
conscience lay dormant. By their silence they pronounced the sentence of
death upon the prophet of God to satisfy the revenge of an abandoned woman.

Herod waited in vain to be released from his oath; then he reluctantly
commanded the execution of the prophet. Soon the head of John was brought in
before the king and his guests. Forever sealed were those lips that had
faithfully warned Herod to turn from his life of sin. Never more would that
voice be heard calling men to repentance. The revels of one night had cost
the life of one of the greatest of the prophets.

Oh, how often has the life of the innocent been sacrificed through the
intemperance of those who should have been guardians of justice! He who puts
the intoxicating cup to his lips makes himself responsible for all the
injustice he may commit under its besotting power. By benumbing his senses
he makes it impossible for him to judge calmly or to have a clear perception
of right and wrong. He opens the way for Satan to work through him in
oppressing and destroying the innocent. "Wine is a mocker, strong drink is
raging: and whosoever is deceived thereby is not wise." Prov. 20:1. Thus it
is that "judgment is turned away backward, . . . and he that departeth from
evil maketh himself a prey." Isa. 59:14, 15. Those who have jurisdiction
over the lives of their fellow men should be held guilty of a crime when
they yield to intemperance. All who execute the laws should be lawkeepers.
They should be men of self-control. They need to have full command of their
physical, mental, and moral powers, that they may possess vigor of
intellect, and a high sense of justice.

The head of John the Baptist was carried to Herodias, who received it with
fiendish satisfaction. She exulted in her revenge, and flattered herself
that Herod's conscience would no longer be troubled. But no happiness
resulted to her from her sin. Her name became notorious and abhorred, while
Herod was more tormented by remorse than he had been by the warnings of the
prophet. The influence of John's teachings was not silenced; it was to
extend to every generation till the close of time.

                                                                     223


Herod's sin was ever before him. He was constantly seeking to find relief
from the accusings of a guilty conscience. His confidence in John was
unshaken. As he recalled his life of self-denial, his solemn, earnest
appeals, his sound judgment in counsel, and then remembered how he had come
to his death, Herod could find no rest. Engaged in the affairs of the state,
receiving honors from men, he bore a smiling face and dignified mien, while
he concealed an anxious heart, ever oppressed with the fear that a curse was
upon him.

Herod had been deeply impressed by the words of John, that nothing can be
hidden from God. He was convinced that God was present in every place, that
He had witnessed the revelry of the banqueting room, that He had heard the
command to behead John, and had seen the exultation of Herodias, and the
insult she offered to the severed head of her reprover. And many things that
Herod had heard from the lips of the prophet now spoke to his conscience
more distinctly than had the preaching in the wilderness.

When Herod heard of the works of Christ, he was exceedingly troubled. He
thought that God had raised John from the dead, and sent him forth with
still greater power to condemn sin. He was in constant fear that John would
avenge his death by passing condemnation upon him and his house. Herod was
reaping that which God had declared to be the result of a course of sin,--"a
trembling heart, and failing of eyes, and sorrow of mind: and thy life shall
hang in doubt before thee; and thou shalt fear day and night, and shalt have
none assurance of thy life: in the morning thou shalt say, Would God it were
even! and at even thou shalt say, Would God it were morning! for the fear of
thine heart wherewith thou shalt fear, and for the sight of thine eyes which
thou shalt see." Deut. 28:65-67. The sinner's own thoughts are his accusers;
and there can be no torture keener than the stings of a guilty conscience,
which give him no rest day nor night.

To many minds a deep mystery surrounds the fate of John the Baptist. They
question why he should have been left to languish and die in prison. The
mystery of this dark providence our human vision cannot penetrate; but it
can never shake our confidence in God when we remember that John was but a
sharer in the sufferings of Christ. All who follow Christ will wear the
crown of sacrifice. They will surely be misunderstood by selfish men, and
will be made a mark for the fierce assaults of Satan. It is this principle
of self-sacrifice that his kingdom is established to destroy, and he will
war against it wherever manifested.

224


The childhood, youth, and manhood of John had been characterized by firmness
and moral power. When his voice was heard in the wilderness saying, "Prepare
ye the way of the Lord, make His paths straight" (Matt. 3:3), Satan feared
for the safety of his kingdom. The sinfulness of sin was revealed in such a
manner that men trembled. Satan's power over many who had been under his
control was broken. He had been unwearied in his efforts to draw away the
Baptist from a life of unreserved surrender to God; but he had failed. And
he had failed to overcome Jesus. In the temptation in the wilderness, Satan
had been defeated, and his rage was great. Now he determined to bring sorrow
upon Christ by striking John. The One whom he could not entice to sin he
would cause to suffer.

Jesus did not interpose to deliver His servant. He knew that John would bear
the test. Gladly would the Saviour have come to John, to brighten the
dungeon gloom with His own presence. But He was not to place Himself in the
hands of enemies and imperil His own mission. Gladly would He have delivered
His faithful servant. But for the sake of thousands who in after years must
pass from prison to death, John was to drink the cup of martyrdom. As the
followers of Jesus should languish in lonely cells, or perish by the sword,
the rack, or the fagot, apparently forsaken by God and man, what a stay to
their hearts would be the thought that John the Baptist, to whose
faithfulness Christ Himself had borne witness, had passed through a similar
experience!

Satan was permitted to cut short the earthly life of God's messenger; but
that life which "is hid with Christ in God," the destroyer could not reach.
Col. 3:3. He exulted that he had brought sorrow upon Christ, but he had
failed of conquering John. Death itself only placed him forever beyond the
power of temptation. In this warfare, Satan was revealing his own character.
Before the witnessing universe he made manifest his enmity toward God and
man.

Though no miraculous deliverance was granted John, he was not forsaken. He
had always the companionship of heavenly angels, who opened to him the
prophecies concerning Christ, and the precious promises of Scripture. These
were his stay, as they were to be the stay of God's people through the
coming ages. To John the Baptist, as to those that came after him, was given
the assurance, "Lo, I am with you all the days, even unto the end." Matt.
28:20, R. V., margin.

God never leads His children otherwise than they would choose to be led, if
they could see the end from the beginning, and discern the glory

                                                                     225

of the purpose which they are fulfilling as co-workers with Him. Not Enoch,
who was translated to heaven, not Elijah, who ascended in a chariot of fire,
was greater or more honored than John the Baptist, who perished alone in the
dungeon. "Unto you it is given in the behalf of Christ, not only to believe
on Him, but also to suffer for His sake." Phil. 1:29. And of all the gifts
that Heaven can bestow upon men, fellowship with Christ in His sufferings is
the most weighty trust and the highest honor.




                                                                     (231)

                             Chapter 23

                             "The Kingdom of God Is at Hand"


"Jesus came into Galilee, preaching the gospel of the kingdom of God, and
saying, The time is fulfilled, and the kingdom of God is at hand: repent ye,
and believe the gospel." Mark 1:14, 15.

The Messiah's coming had been first announced in Judea. In the temple at
Jerusalem the birth of the forerunner had been foretold to Zacharias as he
ministered before the altar. On the hills of Bethlehem the angels had
proclaimed the birth of Jesus. To Jerusalem the magi had come in search of
Him. In the temple Simeon and Anna had testified to His divinity.
"Jerusalem, and all Judea" had listened to the preaching of John the
Baptist; and the deputation from the Sanhedrin, with the multitude, had
heard his testimony concerning Jesus. In Judea, Christ had received His
first disciples. Here much of His early ministry had been spent. The
flashing forth of His divinity in the cleansing of the temple, His miracles
of healing, and the lessons of divine truth that fell from His lips, all
proclaimed that which after the healing at Bethesda He had declared before
the Sanhedrin,--His Sonship to the Eternal.

If the leaders in Israel had received Christ, He would have honored them as
His messengers to carry the gospel to the world. To them first was given the
opportunity to become heralds of the kingdom and grace

232

of God. But Israel knew not the time of her visitation. The jealousy and
distrust of the Jewish leaders had ripened into open hatred, and the hearts
of the people were turned away from Jesus.

The Sanhedrin had rejected Christ's message and was bent upon His death;
therefore Jesus departed from Jerusalem, from the priests, the temple, the
religious leaders, the people who had been instructed in the law, and turned
to another class to proclaim His message, and to gather out those who should
carry the gospel to all nations.

As the light and life of men was rejected by the ecclesiastical authorities
in the days of Christ, so it has been rejected in every succeeding
generation. Again and again the history of Christ's withdrawal from Judea
has been repeated. When the Reformers preached the word of God, they had no
thought of separating themselves from the established church; but the
religious leaders would not tolerate the light, and those that bore it were
forced to seek another class, who were longing for the truth. In our day few
of the professed followers of the Reformers are actuated by their spirit.
Few are listening for the voice of God, and ready to accept truth in
whatever guise it may be presented. Often those who follow in the steps of
the Reformers are forced to turn away from the churches they love, in order
to declare the plain teaching of the word of God. And many times those who
are seeking for light are by the same teaching obliged to leave the church
of their fathers, that they may render obedience.

The people of Galilee were despised by the rabbis of Jerusalem as rude and
unlearned, yet they presented a more favorable field for the Saviour's work.
They were more earnest and sincere; less under the control of bigotry; their
minds were more open for the reception of truth. In going to Galilee, Jesus
was not seeking seclusion or isolation. The province was at this time the
home of a crowded population, with a much larger admixture of people of
other nations than was found in Judea.

As Jesus traveled through Galilee, teaching and healing, multitudes flocked
to Him from the cities and villages. Many came even from Judea and the
adjoining provinces. Often He was obliged to hide Himself from the people.
The enthusiasm ran so high that it was necessary to take precautions lest
the Roman authorities should be aroused to fear an insurrection. Never
before had there been such a period as this for the world. Heaven was
brought down to men. Hungering and thirsting souls that had waited long for
the redemption of Israel now feasted upon the grace of a merciful Saviour.

                                                                     233


The burden of Christ's preaching was, "The time is fulfilled, and the
kingdom of God is at hand; repent ye, and believe the gospel." Thus the
gospel message, as given by the Saviour Himself, was based on the
prophecies. The "time" which He declared to be fulfilled was the period made
known by the angel Gabriel to Daniel. "Seventy weeks," said the angel, "are
determined upon thy people and upon thy holy city, to finish the
transgression, and to make an end of sins, and to make reconciliation for
iniquity, and to bring in everlasting righteousness, and to seal up the
vision and prophecy, and to anoint the most holy." Dan. 9:24. A day in
prophecy stands for a year. See Num. 14:34; Ezek. 4:6. The seventy weeks, or
four hundred and ninety days, represent four hundred and ninety years. A
starting point for this period is given: "Know therefore and understand,
that from the going forth of the commandment to restore and to build
Jerusalem unto the Messiah the Prince shall be seven weeks, and threescore
and two weeks," sixty-nine weeks, or four hundred and eighty-three years.
Dan. 9:25. The commandment to restore and build Jerusalem, as completed by
the decree of Artaxerxes Longimanus (see Ezra 6:14; 7:1, 9, margin), went
into effect in the autumn of B. C. 457. From this time four hundred and
eighty-three years extend to the autumn of A. D. 27. According to the
prophecy, this period was to reach to the Messiah, the Anointed One. In A.
D. 27, Jesus at His baptism received the anointing of the Holy Spirit, and
soon afterward began His ministry. Then the message was proclaimed. "The
time is fulfilled."

Then, said the angel, "He shall confirm the covenant with many for one week
[seven years]." For seven years after the Saviour entered on His ministry,
the gospel was to be preached especially to the Jews; for three and a half
years by Christ Himself; and afterward by the apostles. "In the midst of the
week He shall cause the sacrifice and the oblation to cease." Dan. 9:27. In
the spring of A. D. 31, Christ the true sacrifice was offered on Calvary.
Then the veil of the temple was rent in twain, showing that the sacredness
and significance of the sacrificial service had departed. The time had come
for the earthly sacrifice and oblation to cease.

The one week--seven years--ended in A. D. 34. Then by the stoning of Stephen
the Jews finally sealed their rejection of the gospel; the disciples who
were scattered abroad by persecution "went everywhere preaching the word"
(Acts 8:4); and shortly after, Saul the persecutor was converted, and became
Paul, the apostle to the Gentiles.

234


The time of Christ's coming, His anointing by the Holy Spirit, His death,
and the giving of the gospel to the Gentiles, were definitely pointed out.
It was the privilege of the Jewish people to understand these prophecies,
and to recognize their fulfillment in the mission of Jesus. Christ urged
upon His disciples the importance of prophetic study. Referring to the
prophecy given to Daniel in regard to their time, He said, "Whoso readeth,
let him understand." Matt. 24:15. After His resurrection He explained to the
disciples in "all the prophets" "the things concerning Himself." Luke 24:27.
The Saviour had spoken through all the prophets. "The Spirit of Christ which
was in them" "testified beforehand the sufferings of Christ, and the glory
that should follow." 1 Peter 1:11.

It was Gabriel, the angel next in rank to the Son of God, who came with the
divine message to Daniel. It was Gabriel, "His angel," whom Christ sent to
open the future to the beloved John; and a blessing is pronounced on those
who read and hear the words of the prophecy, and keep the things written
therein. Rev. 1:3.

"The Lord God will do nothing, but He revealeth His secret unto His servants
and prophets." While "the secret things belong unto the Lord our God,"
"those things which are revealed belong unto us and to our children
forever." Amos 3:7; Deut. 29:29. God has given these things to us, and His
blessing will attend the reverent, prayerful study of the prophetic
scriptures.

As the message of Christ's first advent announced the kingdom of His grace,
so the message of His second advent announces the kingdom of His glory. And
the second message, like the first, is based on the prophecies. The words of
the angel to Daniel relating to the last days were to be understood in the
time of the end. At that time, "many shall run to and fro, and knowledge
shall be increased." "The wicked shall do wickedly: and none of the wicked
shall understand; but the wise shall understand." Dan. 12:4, 10. The Saviour
Himself has given signs of His coming, and He says, "When ye see these
things come to pass, know ye that the kingdom of God is nigh at hand." "And
take heed to yourselves, lest at any time your hearts be overcharged with
surfeiting, and drunkenness, and cares of this life, and so that day come
upon you unawares." "Watch ye therefore, and pray always, that ye may be
accounted worthy to escape all these things that shall come to pass, and to
stand before the Son of man." Luke 21:31, 34, 36.

                                                                     235


We have reached the period foretold in these scriptures. The time of the end
is come, the visions of the prophets are unsealed, and their solemn warnings
point us to our Lord's coming in glory as near at hand.

The Jews misinterpreted and misapplied the word of God, and they knew not
the time of their visitation. The years of the ministry of Christ and His
apostles,--the precious last years of grace to the chosen people,--they
spent in plotting the destruction of the Lord's messengers. Earthly
ambitions absorbed them, and the offer of the spiritual kingdom came to them
in vain. So today the kingdom of this world absorbs men's thoughts, and they
take no note of the rapidly fulfilling prophecies and the tokens of the
swift-coming kingdom of God.

"But ye, brethren, are not in darkness, that that day should overtake you as
a thief. Ye are all the children of light, and the children of the day: we
are not of the night, nor of darkness." While we are not to know the hour of
our Lord's return, we may know when it is near. "Therefore let us not sleep,
as do others; but let us watch and be sober."
1 Thess. 5:4-6.




(236)

                             Chapter 24

                             "Is Not This the Carpenter's Son?"


Across the bright days of Christ's ministry in Galilee, one shadow lay. The
people of Nazareth rejected Him. "Is not this the carpenter's son?" they
said.

During His childhood and youth, Jesus had worshiped among His brethren in
the synagogue at Nazareth. Since the opening of His ministry He had been
absent from them, but they had not been ignorant of what had befallen Him.
As He again appeared among them, their interest and expectation were excited
to the highest pitch. Here were the familiar forms and faces of those whom
He had known from infancy. Here were His mother, His brothers and sisters,
and all eyes were turned upon Him as He entered the synagogue upon the
Sabbath day, and took His place among the worshipers.

In the regular service for the day, the elder read from the prophets, and
exhorted the people still to hope for the Coming One, who would bring in a
glorious reign, and banish all oppression. He sought to encourage his
hearers by rehearsing the evidence that the Messiah's coming was near. He
described the glory of His advent, keeping prominent the thought that He
would appear at the head of armies to deliver Israel.

When a rabbi was present at the synagogue, he was expected to deliver the
sermon, and any Israelite might give the reading from the prophets. Upon
this Sabbath Jesus was requested to take part in the service. He "stood up
to read. And there was delivered unto Him a roll of the prophet Isaiah."
Luke 4:16, 17, R. V., margin. The scripture which He read was one that was
understood as referring to the Messiah:

                                                                     237

       "The Spirit of the Lord is upon Me,
        Because He hath anointed Me to preach the gospel to the poor;
        He hath sent Me to heal the brokenhearted,
        To preach deliverance to the captives,
        And recovering of sight to the blind,
        To set at liberty them that are bruised,
        To preach the acceptable year of the Lord."

"And He closed the roll, and gave it back to the attendant: . . . and the
eyes of all in the synagogue were fastened on Him. . . . And all bare Him
witness, and wondered at the words of grace which proceeded out of His
mouth." Luke 4:20-22, R. V., margin.

Jesus stood before the people as a living expositor of the prophecies
concerning Himself. Explaining the words He had read, He spoke of the
Messiah as a reliever of the oppressed, a liberator of captives, a healer of
the afflicted, restoring sight to the blind, and revealing to the world the
light of truth. His impressive manner and the wonderful import of His words
thrilled the hearers with a power they had never felt before. The tide of
divine influence broke every barrier down; like Moses, they beheld the
Invisible. As their hearts were moved upon by the Holy Spirit, they
responded with fervent amens and praises to the Lord.

But when Jesus announced, "This day is this scripture fulfilled in your
ears," they were suddenly recalled to think of themselves, and of the claims
of Him who had been addressing them. They, Israelites, children of Abraham,
had been represented as in bondage. They had been addressed as prisoners to
be delivered from the power of evil; as in darkness, and needing the light
of truth. Their pride was offended, and their fears were roused. The words
of Jesus indicated that His work for them was to be altogether different
from what they desired. Their deeds might be investigated too closely.
Notwithstanding their exactness in outward ceremonies, they shrank from
inspection by those clear, searching eyes.

Who is this Jesus? they questioned. He who had claimed for Himself the glory
of the Messiah was the son of a carpenter, and had worked at His trade with
His father Joseph. They had seen Him toiling up and down the hills, they
were acquainted with His brothers and sisters, and knew His life and labors.
They had seen Him develop from childhood to youth, and from youth to
manhood. Although His life had been spotless, they would not believe that He
was the Promised One.

238


What a contrast between His teaching in regard to the new kingdom and that
which they had heard from their elder! Jesus had said nothing of delivering
them from the Romans. They had heard of His miracles, and had hoped that His
power would be exercised for their advantage, but they had seen no
indication of such purpose.

As they opened the door to doubt, their hearts became so much the harder for
having been momentarily softened. Satan was determined that blind eyes
should not that day be opened, nor souls bound in slavery be set at liberty.
With intense energy he worked to fasten them in unbelief. They made no
account of the sign already given, when they had been stirred by the
conviction that it was their Redeemer who addressed them.

But Jesus now gave them an evidence of His divinity by revealing their
secret thoughts. "He said unto them, Doubtless ye will say unto Me this
parable, Physician, heal thyself: whatsoever we have heard done at
Capernaum, do also here in Thine own country. And He said, Verily I say unto
you, No prophet is acceptable in his own country. But of a truth I say unto
you, There were many widows in Israel in the days of Elijah, when the heaven
was shut up three years and six months, when there came a great famine over
all the land; and unto none of them was Elijah sent, but only to Zarephath,
in the land of Sidon, unto a woman that was a widow. And there were many
lepers in Israel in the time of Elisha the prophet; and none of them was
cleansed, but only Naaman, the Syrian." Luke 4:23-27, R. V.

By this relation of events in the lives of the prophets, Jesus met the
questionings of His hearers. The servants whom God had chosen for a special
work were not allowed to labor for a hardhearted and unbelieving people. But
those who had hearts to feel and faith to believe were especially favored
with evidences of His power through the prophets. In the days of Elijah,
Israel had departed from God. They clung to their sins, and rejected the
warnings of the Spirit through the Lord's messengers. Thus they cut
themselves off from the channel by which God's blessing could come to them.
The Lord passed by the homes of Israel, and found a refuge for His servant
in a heathen land, with a woman who did not belong to the chosen people. But
this woman was favored because she had followed the light she had received,
and her heart was open to the greater light that God sent her through His
prophet.

                                                                     239


It was for the same reason that in Elisha's time the lepers of Israel were
passed by. But Naaman, a heathen nobleman, had been faithful to his
convictions of right, and had felt his great need of help. He was in a
condition to receive the gifts of God's grace. He was not only cleansed from
his leprosy, but blessed with a knowledge of the true God.

Our standing before God depends, not upon the amount of light we have
received, but upon the use we make of what we have. Thus even the heathen
who choose the right as far as they can distinguish it are in a more
favorable condition than are those who have had great light, and profess to
serve God, but who disregard the light, and by their daily life contradict
their profession.

The words of Jesus to His hearers in the synagogue struck at the root of
their self-righteousness, pressing home upon them the bitter truth that they
had departed from God and forfeited their claim to be His people. Every word
cut like a knife as their real condition was set before them. They now
scorned the faith with which Jesus had at first inspired them. They would
not admit that He who had sprung from poverty and lowliness was other than a
common man.

Their unbelief bred malice. Satan controlled them, and in wrath they cried
out against the Saviour. They had turned from Him whose mission

240

it was to heal and restore; now they manifested the attributes of the
destroyer.

When Jesus referred to the blessings given to the Gentiles, the fierce
national pride of His hearers was aroused, and His words were drowned in a
tumult of voices. These people had prided themselves on keeping the law; but
now that their prejudices were offended, they were ready to commit murder.
The assembly broke up, and laying hands upon Jesus, they thrust Him from the
synagogue, and out of the city. All seemed eager for His destruction. They
hurried Him to the brow of a precipice, intending to cast Him down headlong.
Shouts and maledictions filled the air. Some were casting stones at Him,
when suddenly He disappeared from among them. The heavenly messengers who
had been by His side in the synagogue were with Him in the midst of that
maddened throng. They shut Him in from His enemies, and conducted Him to a
place of safety.

So angels protected Lot, and led him out safely from the midst of Sodom. So
they protected Elisha in the little mountain city. When the encircling hills
were filled with the horses and chariots of the king of Syria, and the great
host of his armed men, Elisha beheld the nearer hill slopes covered with the
armies of God,--horses and chariots of fire round about the servant of the
Lord.

So, in all ages, angels have been near to Christ's faithful followers. The
vast confederacy of evil is arrayed against all who would overcome; but
Christ would have us look to the things which are not seen, to the armies of
heaven encamped about all who love God, to deliver them. From what dangers,
seen and unseen, we have been preserved through the interposition of the
angels, we shall never know, until in the light of eternity we see the
providences of God. Then we shall know that the whole family of heaven was
interested in the family here below, and that messengers from the throne of
God attended our steps from day to day.

When Jesus in the synagogue read from the prophecy, He stopped short of the
final specification concerning the Messiah's work. Having read the words,
"To proclaim the acceptable year of the Lord," He omitted the phrase, "and
the day of vengeance of our God." Isa. 61:2. This was just as much truth as
was the first of the prophecy, and by His silence Jesus did not deny the
truth. But this last expression was that upon which His hearers delighted to
dwell, and which they were desirous of fulfilling. They denounced judgments
against the heathen, not discerning

                                                                     241

that their own guilt was even greater than that of others. They themselves
were in deepest need of the mercy they were so ready to deny to the heathen.
That day in the synagogue, when Jesus stood among them, was their
opportunity to accept the call of Heaven. He who "delighteth in mercy"
(Micah 7:18) would fain have saved them from the ruin which their sins were
inviting.

Not without one more call to repentance could He give them up. Toward the
close of His ministry in Galilee, He again visited the home of His
childhood. Since His rejection there, the fame of His preaching and His
miracles had filled the land. None now could deny that He possessed more
than human power. The people of Nazareth knew that He went about doing good,
and healing all that were oppressed by Satan. About them were whole villages
where there was not a moan of sickness in any house; for He had passed
through them, and healed all their sick. The mercy revealed in every act of
His life testified to His divine anointing.

Again as they listened to His words the Nazarenes were moved by the Divine
Spirit. But even now they would not admit that this Man, who had been
brought up among them, was other or greater than themselves. Still there
rankled the bitter memory that while He had claimed for Himself to be the
Promised One, He had really denied them a place with Israel; for He had
shown them to be less worthy of God's favor than a heathen man and woman.
Hence though they questioned, "Whence hath this Man this wisdom, and these
mighty works?" they would not receive Him as the Christ of God. Because of
their unbelief, the Saviour could not work many miracles among them. Only a
few hearts were open to His blessing, and reluctantly He departed, never to
return.

Unbelief, having once been cherished, continued to control the men of
Nazareth. So it controlled the Sanhedrin and the nation. With priests and
people, the first rejection of the demonstration of the Holy Spirit's power
was the beginning of the end. In order to prove that their first resistance
was right, they continued ever after to cavil at the words of Christ. Their
rejection of the Spirit culminated in the cross of Calvary, in the
destruction of their city, in the scattering of the nation to the winds of
heaven.

Oh, how Christ longed to open to Israel the precious treasures of the truth!
But such was their spiritual blindness that it was impossible to

242

reveal to them the truths relating to His kingdom. They clung to their creed
and their useless ceremonies when the truth of Heaven awaited their
acceptance. They spent their money for chaff and husks, when the bread of
life was within their reach. Why did they not go to the word of God, and
search diligently to know whether they were in error? The Old Testament
Scriptures stated plainly every detail of Christ's ministry, and again and
again He quoted from the prophets, and declared, "This day is this scripture
fulfilled in your ears." If they had honestly searched the Scriptures,
bringing their theories to the test of God's word, Jesus need not have wept
over their impenitence. He need not have declared, "Behold, your house is
left unto you desolate." Luke 13:35. They might have been acquainted with
the evidence of His Messiahship, and the calamity that laid their proud city
in ruins might have been averted. But the minds of the Jews had become
narrowed by their unreasoning bigotry. The lessons of Christ revealed their
deficiencies of character, and demanded repentance. If they accepted His
teachings, their practices must be changed, and their cherished hopes
relinquished. In order to be honored by Heaven, they must sacrifice the
honor of men. If they obeyed the words of this new rabbi, they must go
contrary to the opinions of the great thinkers and teachers of the time.

Truth was unpopular in Christ's day. It is unpopular in our day. It has been
unpopular ever since Satan first gave man a disrelish for it by presenting
fables that lead to self-exaltation. Do we not today meet theories and
doctrines that have no foundation in the word of God? Men cling as
tenaciously to them as did the Jews to their traditions.

The Jewish leaders were filled with spiritual pride. Their desire for the
glorification of self manifested itself even in the service of the
sanctuary. They loved the highest seats in the synagogue. They loved
greetings in the market places, and were gratified with the sound of their
titles on the lips of men. As real piety declined, they became more jealous
for their traditions and ceremonies.

Because their understanding was darkened by selfish prejudice, they could
not harmonize the power of Christ's convicting words with the humility of
His life. They did not appreciate the fact that real greatness can dispense
with outward show. This Man's poverty seemed wholly inconsistent with His
claim to be the Messiah. They questioned, If He was what He claimed to be,
why was He so unpretending? If He was satisfied to be without the force of
arms, what would become of their

                                                                     243

nation? How could the power and glory so long anticipated bring the nations
as subjects to the city of the Jews? Had not the priests taught that Israel
was to bear rule over all the earth? and could it be possible that the great
religious teachers were in error?

But it was not simply the absence of outward glory in His life that led the
Jews to reject Jesus. He was the embodiment of purity, and they were impure.
He dwelt among men an example of spotless integrity. His blameless life
flashed light upon their hearts. His sincerity revealed their insincerity.
It made manifest the hollowness of their pretentious piety, and discovered
iniquity to them in its odious character. Such a light was unwelcome.

If Christ had called attention to the Pharisees, and had extolled their
learning and piety, they would have hailed Him with joy. But when He spoke
of the kingdom of heaven as a dispensation of mercy for all mankind, He was
presenting a phase of religion they would not tolerate. Their own example
and teaching had never been such as to make the service of God seem
desirable. When they saw Jesus giving attention to the very ones they hated
and repulsed, it stirred up the worst passions of their proud hearts.
Notwithstanding their boast that under the "Lion of the tribe of Judah"
(Rev. 5:5), Israel should be exalted to pre-eminence over all nations, they
could have borne the disappointment of their ambitious hopes better than
they could bear Christ's reproof of their sins, and the reproach they felt
even from the presence of His purity.




(244)

                             Chapter 25

                             The Call by the Sea


Day was breaking over the Sea of Galilee. The disciples, weary with a night
of fruitless toil, were still in their fishing boats on the lake. Jesus had
come to spend a quiet hour by the waterside. In the early morning He hoped
for a little season of rest from the multitude that followed Him day after
day. But soon the people began to gather about Him. Their numbers rapidly
increased, so that He was pressed upon all sides. Meanwhile the disciples
had come to land. In order to escape the pressure of the multitude, Jesus
stepped into Peter's boat, and bade him pull out a little from the shore.
Here Jesus could be better seen and heard by all, and from the boat He
taught the multitude on the beach.

What a scene was this for angels to contemplate; their glorious Commander,
sitting in a fisherman's boat, swayed to and fro by the restless waves, and
proclaiming the good news of salvation to the listening throng that were
pressing down to the water's edge! He who was the Honored of heaven was
declaring the great things of His kingdom in the open air, to the common
people. Yet He could have had no more fitting scene for His labors. The
lake, the mountains, the spreading

                                                                     245

fields, the sunlight flooding the earth, all furnished objects to illustrate
His lessons and impress them upon the mind. And no lesson of Christ's fell
fruitless. Every message from His lips came to some soul as the word of
eternal life.

Every moment added to the multitude upon the shore. Aged men leaning upon
their staffs, hardy peasants from the hills, fishermen from their toil on
the lake, merchants and rabbis, the rich and learned, old and young,
bringing their sick and suffering ones, pressed to hear the words of the
divine Teacher. To such scenes as this the prophets had looked forward, and
they wrote:

         "The land of Zebulon and the land of Naphtali,
          Toward the sea, beyond Jordan,
          Galilee of the Gentiles,
          The people which sat in darkness
          Saw a great light,
          And to them which sat in the region and shadow of death,
          To them did light spring up." R. V.

Beside the throng on the shores of Gennesaret, Jesus in His sermon by the
sea had other audiences before His mind. Looking down the ages, He saw His
faithful ones in prison and judgment hall, in temptation and loneliness and
affliction. Every scene of joy and conflict and perplexity was open before
Him. In the words spoken to those gathered about Him, He was speaking also
to these other souls the very words that would come to them as a message of
hope in trial, of comfort in sorrow, and heavenly light in darkness. Through
the Holy Spirit, that voice which was speaking from the fisherman's boat on
the Sea of Galilee, would be heard speaking peace to human hearts to the
close of time.

The discourse ended, Jesus turned to Peter, and bade him launch out into the
sea, and let down his net for a draught. But Peter was disheartened. All
night he had taken nothing. During the lonely hours he had thought of the
fate of John the Baptist, who was languishing alone in his dungeon. He had
thought of the prospect before Jesus and His followers, of the ill success
of the mission to Judea, and the malice of the priests and rabbis. Even his
own occupation had failed him; and as he watched by the empty nets, the
future had seemed dark with discouragement. "Master," he said, "we have
toiled all the night, and have taken nothing: nevertheless at Thy word I
will let down the net."

246


Night was the only favorable time for fishing with nets in the clear waters
of the lake. After toiling all night without success, it seemed hopeless to
cast the net by day; but Jesus had given the command, and love for their
Master moved the disciples to obey. Simon and his brother together let down
the net. As they attempted to draw it in, so great was the quantity of fish
enclosed that it began to break. They were obliged to summon James and John
to their aid. When the catch was secured, both the boats were so heavily
laden that they were in danger of sinking.

But Peter was unmindful now of boats or lading. This miracle, above any
other he had ever witnessed, was to him a manifestation of divine power. In
Jesus he saw One who held all nature under His control. The presence of
divinity revealed his own unholiness. Love for his Master, shame for his own
unbelief, gratitude for the condescension of Christ, above all, the sense of
his uncleanness in the presence of infinite purity, overwhelmed him. While
his companions were securing the contents of the net, Peter fell at the
Saviour's feet, exclaiming, "Depart from me; for I am a sinful man, O Lord."

It was the same presence of divine holiness that had caused the prophet
Daniel to fall as one dead before the angel of God. He said, "My comeliness
was turned in me into corruption, and I retained no strength." So when
Isaiah beheld the glory of the Lord, he exclaimed, "Woe is me! for I am
undone; because I am a man of unclean lips, and I dwell in the midst of a
people of unclean lips: for mine eyes have seen the King, the Lord of
hosts." Dan. 10:8; Isa. 6:5. Humanity, with its weakness and sin, was
brought in contrast with the perfection of divinity, and he felt altogether
deficient and unholy. Thus it has been with all who have been granted a view
of God's greatness and majesty.

Peter exclaimed, "Depart from me; for I am a sinful man;" yet he clung to
the feet of Jesus, feeling that he could not be parted from Him. The Saviour
answered, "Fear not; from henceforth thou shalt catch men." It was after
Isaiah has beheld the holiness of God and his own unworthiness that he was
entrusted with the divine message. It was after Peter had been led to
self-renunciation and dependence upon divine power that he received the call
to his work for Christ.

Until this time none of the disciples had fully united as colaborers with
Jesus. They had witnessed many of His miracles, and had listened to His
teaching; but they had not entirely forsaken their former employment.

                                                                     249

The imprisonment of John the Baptist had been to them all a bitter
disappointment. If such were to be the outcome of John's mission, they could
have little hope for their Master, with all the religious leaders combined
against Him. Under the circumstances it was a relief to them to return for a
short time to their fishing. But now Jesus called them to forsake their
former life, and unite their interests with His. Peter had accepted the
call. Upon reaching the shore, Jesus bade the three other disciples, "Follow
Me, and I will make you fishers of men." Immediately they left all, and
followed Him.

Before asking them to leave their nets and fishing boats, Jesus had given
them the assurance that God would supply their needs. The use of Peter's
boat for the work of the gospel had been richly repaid. He who is "rich unto
all that call upon Him," has said, "Give, and it shall be given unto you;
good measure, pressed down, and shaken together, and running over." Rom.
10:12; Luke 6:38. In this measure He had rewarded the disciple's service.
And every sacrifice that is made in His ministry will be recompensed
according to "the exceeding riches of His grace." Eph. 3:20; 2:7.

During that sad night on the lake, when they were separated from Christ, the
disciples were pressed hard by unbelief, and weary with fruitless toil. But
His presence kindled their faith, and brought them joy and success. So it is
with us; apart from Christ, our work is fruitless, and it is easy to
distrust and murmur. But when He is near, and we labor under His direction,
we rejoice in the evidence of His power. It is Satan's work to discourage
the soul; it is Christ's work to inspire with faith and hope.

The deeper lesson which the miracle conveyed for the disciples is a lesson
for us also,--that He whose word could gather the fishes from the sea could
also impress human hearts, and draw them by the cords of His love, so that
His servants might become "fishers of men."

They were humble and unlearned men, those fishers of Galilee; but Christ,
the light of the world, was abundantly able to qualify them for the position
for which He had chosen them. The Saviour did not despise education; for
when controlled by the love of God, and devoted to His service, intellectual
culture is a blessing. But He passed by the wise men of His time, because
they were so self-confident that they could not sympathize with suffering
humanity, and become colaborers with the Man of Nazareth. In their bigotry
they scorned to be taught by Christ. The Lord Jesus seeks the co-operation
of those who will become unobstructed

250

channels for the communication of His grace. The first thing to be learned
by all who would become workers together with God is the lesson of
self-distrust; then they are prepared to have imparted to them the character
of Christ. This is not to be gained through education in the most scientific
schools. It is the fruit of wisdom that is obtained from the divine Teacher
alone.

Jesus chose unlearned fishermen because they had not been schooled in the
traditions and erroneous customs of their time. They were men of native
ability, and they were humble and teachable,--men whom He could educate for
His work. In the common walks of life there is many a man patiently treading
the round of daily toil, unconscious that he possesses powers which, if
called into action, would raise him to an equality with the world's most
honored men. The touch of a skillful hand is needed to arouse those dormant
faculties. It was such men that Jesus called to be His colaborers; and He
gave them the advantage of association with Himself. Never had the world's
great men such a teacher. When the disciples came forth from the Saviour's
training, they were no longer ignorant and uncultured. They had become like
Him in mind and character, and men took knowledge of them that they had been
with Jesus.

It is not the highest work of education to communicate knowledge merely, but
to impart that vitalizing energy which is received through the contact of
mind with mind, and soul with soul. It is only life that can beget life.
What privilege, then, was theirs who for three years were in daily contact
with that divine life from which has flowed every life-giving impulse that
has blessed the world! Above all his companions, John the beloved disciple
yielded himself to the power of that wondrous life. He says, "The life was
manifested, and we have seen it, and bear witness, and show unto you that
eternal life, which was with the Father, and was manifested unto us." "Of
His fullness have all we received, and grace for grace." 1 John 1:2; John
1:16.

In the apostles of our Lord there was nothing to bring glory to themselves.
It was evident that the success of their labors was due only to God. The
lives of these men, the characters they developed, and the mighty work that
God wrought through them, are a testimony to what He will do for all who are
teachable and obedient.

He who loves Christ the most will do the greatest amount of good. There is
no limit to the usefulness of one who, by putting self aside,

                                                                     251

makes room for the working of the Holy Spirit upon his heart, and lives a
life wholly consecrated to God. If men will endure the necessary discipline,
without complaining or fainting by the way, God will teach them hour by
hour, and day by day. He longs to reveal His grace. If His people will
remove the obstructions, He will pour forth the waters of salvation in
abundant streams through the human channels. If men in humble life were
encouraged to do all the good they could do, if restraining hands were not
laid upon them to repress their zeal, there would be a hundred workers for
Christ where now there is one.

God takes men as they are, and educates them for His service, if they will
yield themselves to Him. The Spirit of God, received into the soul, will
quicken all its faculties. Under the guidance of the Holy Spirit, the mind
that is devoted unreservedly to God develops harmoniously, and is
strengthened to comprehend and fulfill the requirements of God. The weak,
vacillating character becomes changed to one of strength and steadfastness.
Continual devotion establishes so close a relation between Jesus and His
disciple that the Christian becomes like Him in mind and character. Through
a connection with Christ he will have clearer and broader views. His
discernment will be more penetrative, his judgment better balanced. He who
longs to be of service to Christ is so quickened by the life-giving power of
the Sun of Righteousness that he is enabled to bear much fruit to the glory
of God.

Men of the highest education in the arts and sciences have learned precious
lessons from Christians in humble life who were designated by the world as
unlearned. But these obscure disciples had obtained an education in the
highest of all schools. They had sat at the feet of Him who spoke as "never
man spake."




(252)

                             Chapter 26

                             At Capernaum


At Capernaum Jesus dwelt in the intervals of His journeys to and fro, and it
came to be known as "His own city." It was on the shores of the Sea of
Galilee, and near the borders of the beautiful plain of Gennesaret, if not
actually upon it.

The deep depression of the lake gives to the plain that skirts its shores
the genial climate of the south. Here in the days of Christ flourished the
palm tree and the olive, here were orchards and vineyards, green fields, and
brightly blooming flowers in rich luxuriance, all watered by living streams
bursting from the cliffs. The shores of the lake, and the hills that at a
little distance encircle it, were dotted with towns and villages. The lake
was covered with fishing boats. Everywhere was the stir of busy, active
life.

Capernaum itself was well adapted to be the center of the Saviour's work.
Being on the highway from Damascus to Jerusalem and Egypt, and to the
Mediterranean Sea, it was a great thoroughfare of travel. People from many
lands passed through the city, or tarried for rest in their journeyings to
and fro. Here Jesus could meet all nations and all ranks, the rich and great
as well as the poor and lowly, and His lessons would be carried to other
countries and into many households.

                                                                     253

Investigation of the prophecies would thus be excited, attention would be
directed to the Saviour, and His mission would be brought before the world.

Notwithstanding the action of the Sanhedrin against Jesus, the people
eagerly awaited the development of His mission. All heaven was astir with
interest. Angels were preparing the way for His ministry, moving upon men's
hearts, and drawing them to the Saviour.

In Capernaum the nobleman's son whom Christ had healed was a witness to His
power. And the court official and his household joyfully testified of their
faith. When it was known that the Teacher Himself was among them, the whole
city was aroused. Multitudes flocked to His presence. On the Sabbath the
people crowded the synagogue until great numbers had to turn away, unable to
find entrance.

All who heard the Saviour "were astonished at His doctrine: for His word was
with power." "He taught them as one having authority, and not as the
scribes." Luke 4:32; Matt. 7:29. The teaching of the scribes and elders was
cold and formal, like a lesson learned by rote. To them the word of God
possessed no vital power. Their own ideas and traditions were substituted
for its teaching. In the accustomed round of service they professed to
explain the law, but no inspiration from God stirred their own hearts or the
hearts of their hearers.

Jesus had nothing to do with the various subjects of dissension among the
Jews. It was His work to present the truth. His words shed a flood of light
upon the teachings of patriarchs and prophets, and the Scriptures came to
men as a new revelation. Never before had His hearers perceived such a depth
of meaning in the word of God.

Jesus met the people on their own ground, as one who was acquainted with
their perplexities. He made truth beautiful by presenting it in the most
direct and simple way. His language was pure, refined, and clear as a
running stream. His voice was as music to those who had listened to the
monotonous tones of the rabbis. But while His teaching was simple, He spoke
as one having authority. This characteristic set His teaching in contrast
with that of all others. The rabbis spoke with doubt and hesitancy, as if
the Scriptures might be interpreted to mean one thing or exactly the
opposite. The hearers were daily involved in greater uncertainty. But Jesus
taught the Scriptures as of unquestionable authority. Whatever His subject,
it was presented with power, as if His words could not be controverted.

254


Yet He was earnest, rather than vehement. He spoke as one who had a definite
purpose to fulfill. He was bringing to view the realities of the eternal
world. In every theme God was revealed. Jesus sought to break the spell of
infatuation which keeps men absorbed in earthly things. He placed the things
of this life in their true relation, as subordinate to those of eternal
interest; but He did not ignore their importance. He taught that heaven and
earth are linked together, and that a knowledge of divine truth prepares men
better to perform the duties of everyday life. He spoke as one familiar with
heaven, conscious of His relationship to God, yet recognizing His unity with
every member of the human family.

His messages of mercy were varied to suit His audience. He knew "how to
speak a word in season to him that is weary" (Isa. 50:4); for grace was
poured upon His lips, that He might convey to men in the most attractive way
the treasures of truth. He had tact to meet the prejudiced minds, and
surprise them with illustrations that won their attention.Through the
imagination He reached the heart. His illustrations were taken from the
things of daily life, and although they were simple, they had in them a
wonderful depth of meaning. The birds of the air, the lilies of the field,
the seed, the shepherd and the sheep,--with these objects Christ illustrated
immortal truth; and ever afterward, when His hearers chanced to see these
things of nature, they recalled His words. Christ's illustrations constantly
repeated His lessons.

Christ never flattered men. He never spoke that which would exalt their
fancies and imaginations, nor did He praise them for their clever
inventions; but deep, unprejudiced thinkers received His teaching, and found
that it tested their wisdom. They marveled at the spiritual truth expressed
in the simplest language. The most highly educated were charmed with His
words, and the uneducated were always profited. He had a message for the
illiterate; and He made even the heathen to understand that He had a message
for them.

His tender compassion fell with a touch of healing upon weary and troubled
hearts. Even amid the turbulence of angry enemies He was surrounded with an
atmosphere of peace. The beauty of His countenance, the loveliness of His
character, above all, the love expressed in look and tone, drew to Him all
who were not hardened in unbelief. Had it not been for the sweet,
sympathetic spirit that shone out in every look and word, He would not have
attracted the large congregations that He did. The afflicted ones who came
to Him felt that He linked His

                                                                     255

interest with theirs as a faithful and tender friend, and they desired to
know more of the truths He taught. Heaven was brought near. They longed to
abide in His presence, that the comfort of His love might be with them
continually.

Jesus watched with deep earnestness the changing countenances of His
hearers. The faces that expressed interest and pleasure gave Him great
satisfaction. As the arrows of truth pierced to the soul, breaking through
the barriers of selfishness, and working contrition, and finally gratitude,
the Saviour was made glad. When His eye swept over the throng of listeners,
and He recognized among them the faces He had before seen, His countenance
lighted up with joy. He saw in them hopeful subjects for His kingdom. When
the truth, plainly spoken, touched some cherished idol, He marked the change
of countenance, the cold, forbidding look, which told that the light was
unwelcome. When He saw men refuse the message of peace, His heart was
pierced to the very depths.

Jesus in the synagogue spoke of the kingdom He had come to establish, and of
His mission to set free the captives of Satan. He was interrupted by a
shriek of terror. A madman rushed forward from among the people, crying out,
"Let us alone; what have we to do with Thee, Thou Jesus of Nazareth? art
Thou come to destroy us? I know Thee who Thou art; the Holy One of God."

All was now confusion and alarm. The attention of the people was diverted
from Christ, and His words were unheeded. This was Satan's purpose in
leading his victim to the synagogue. But Jesus rebuked the demon, saying,
"Hold thy peace, and come out of him. And when the devil had thrown him in
the midst, he came out of him, and hurt him not."

The mind of this wretched sufferer had been darkened by Satan, but in the
Saviour's presence a ray of light had pierced the gloom. He was roused to
long for freedom from Satan's control; but the demon resisted the power of
Christ. When the man tried to appeal to Jesus for help, the evil spirit put
words into his mouth, and he cried out in an agony of fear. The demoniac
partially comprehended that he was in the presence of One who could set him
free; but when he tried to come within reach of that mighty hand, another's
will held him, another's words found utterance through him. The conflict
between the power of Satan and his own desire for freedom was terrible.

256


He who had conquered Satan in the wilderness of temptation was again brought
face to face with His enemy. The demon exerted all his power to retain
control of his victim. To lose ground here would be to give Jesus a victory.
It seemed that the tortured man must lose his life in the struggle with the
foe that had been the ruin of his manhood. But the Saviour spoke with
authority, and set the captive free. The man who had been possessed stood
before the wondering people happy in the freedom of self-possession. Even
the demon had testified to the divine power of the Saviour.

The man praised God for his deliverance. The eye that had so lately glared
with the fire of insanity, now beamed with intelligence, and overflowed with
grateful tears. The people were dumb with amazement. As soon as they
recovered speech they exclaimed, one to another, "What is this? a new
teaching! with authority He commandeth even the unclean spirits, and they
obey Him." Mark 1:27, R. V.

The secret cause of the affliction that had made this man a fearful
spectacle to his friends and a burden to himself was in his own life. He had
been fascinated by the pleasures of sin, and had thought to make life a
grand carnival. He did not dream of becoming a terror to the world and the
reproach of his family. He thought his time could be spent in innocent
folly. But once in the downward path, his feet rapidly descended.
Intemperance and frivolity perverted the noble attributes of his nature, and
Satan took absolute control of him.

Remorse came too late. When he would have sacrificed wealth and pleasure to
regain his lost manhood, he had become helpless in the grasp of the evil
one. He had placed himself on the enemy's ground, and Satan had taken
possession of all his faculties. The tempter had allured him with many
charming presentations; but when once the wretched man was in his power, the
fiend became relentless in his cruelty, and terrible in his angry
visitations. So it will be with all who yield to evil; the fascinating
pleasure of their early career ends in the darkness of despair or the
madness of a ruined soul.

The same evil spirit that tempted Christ in the wilderness, and that
possessed the maniac of Capernaum, controlled the unbelieving Jews. But with
them he assumed an air of piety, seeking to deceive them as to their motives
in rejecting the Saviour. Their condition was more hopeless than that of the
demoniac, for they felt no need of Christ and were therefore held fast under
the power of Satan.

                                                                     257


The period of Christ's personal ministry among men was the time of greatest
activity for the forces of the kingdom of darkness. For ages Satan with his
evil angels had been seeking to control the bodies and the souls of men, to
bring upon them sin and suffering; then he had charged all this misery upon
God. Jesus was revealing to men the character of God. He was breaking
Satan's power, and setting his captives free. New life and love and power
from heaven were moving upon the hearts of men, and the prince of evil was
aroused to contend for the supremacy of his kingdom. Satan summoned all his
forces, and at every step contested the work of Christ.

So it will be in the great final conflict of the controversy between
righteousness and sin. While new life and light and power are descending
from on high upon the disciples of Christ, a new life is springing up from
beneath, and energizing the agencies of Satan. Intensity is taking
possession of every earthly element. With a subtlety gained through
centuries of conflict, the prince of evil works under a disguise. He appears
clothed as an angel of light, and multitudes are "giving heed to seducing
spirits, and doctrines of devils." 1 Tim. 4:1.

In the days of Christ the leaders and teachers of Israel were powerless to
resist the work of Satan. They were neglecting the only means by which they
could have withstood evil spirits. It was by the word of God that Christ
overcame the wicked one. The leaders of Israel professed to be the
expositors of God's word, but they had studied it only to sustain their
traditions, and enforce their man-made observances. By their interpretation
they made it express sentiments that God had never given. Their mystical
construction made indistinct that which He had made plain. They disputed
over insignificant technicalities, and practically denied the most essential
truths. Thus infidelity was sown broadcast. God's word was robbed of its
power, and evil spirits worked their will.

258


History is repeating. With the open Bible before them, and professing to
reverence its teachings, many of the religious leaders of our time are
destroying faith in it as the word of God. They busy themselves with
dissecting the word, and set their own opinions above its plainest
statements. In their hands God's word loses its regenerating power. This is
why infidelity runs riot, and iniquity is rife.

When Satan has undermined faith in the Bible, he directs men to other
sources for light and power. Thus he insinuates himself. Those who turn from
the plain teaching of Scripture and the convicting power of God's Holy
Spirit are inviting the control of demons. Criticism and speculation
concerning the Scriptures have opened the way for spiritism and
theosophy--those modernized forms of ancient heathenism--to gain a foothold
even in the professed churches of our Lord Jesus Christ.

Side by side with the preaching of the gospel, agencies are at work which
are but the medium of lying spirits. Many a man tampers with these merely
from curiosity, but seeing evidence of the working of a more than human
power, he is lured on and on, until he is controlled by a will stronger than
his own. He cannot escape from its mysterious power.

The defenses of the soul are broken down. He has no barrier against sin.
When once the restraints of God's word and His Spirit are rejected, no man
knows to what depths of degradation he may sink. Secret sin or master
passion may hold him a captive as helpless as was the demoniac of Capernaum.
Yet his condition is not hopeless.

The means by which we can overcome the wicked one is that by which Christ
overcame,--the power of the word. God does not control our minds without our
consent; but if we desire to know and to do His will, His promises are ours:
"Ye shall know the truth, and the truth shall make you free." "If any man
willeth to do His will, he shall know of the teaching." John 8:32; 7:17, R.
V. Through faith in these promises, every man may be delivered from the
snares of error and the control of sin.

Every man is free to choose what power he will have to rule over him. None
have fallen so low, none are so vile, but that they can find deliverance in
Christ. The demoniac, in place of prayer, could utter only the words of
Satan; yet the heart's unspoken appeal was heard. No cry from a soul in
need, though it fail of utterance in words, will be unheeded. Those who will
consent to enter into covenant relation with the God of heaven are not left
to the power of Satan or to the infirmity of their own

                                                                     259

nature. They are invited by the Saviour, "Let him take hold of My strength,
that he may make peace with Me; and he shall make peace with Me." Isa. 27:5.
The spirits of darkness will battle for the soul once under their dominion,
but angels of God will contend for that soul with prevailing power. The Lord
says, "Shall the prey be taken from the mighty, or the lawful captive
delivered? . . . Thus saith the Lord, Even the captives of the mighty shall
be taken away, and the prey of the terrible shall be delivered: for I will
contend with him that contendeth with thee, and I will save thy children."
Isa. 49:24, 25.

While the congregation in the synagogue were still spellbound with awe,
Jesus withdrew to the home of Peter for a little rest. But here also a
shadow had fallen. The mother of Peter's wife lay sick, stricken with a
"great fever." Jesus rebuked the disease, and the sufferer arose, and
ministered to the wants of the Master and His disciples.

Tidings of the work of Christ spread rapidly throughout Capernaum. For fear
of the rabbis, the people dared not come for healing upon the Sabbath; but
no sooner had the sun disappeared below the horizon than there was a great
commotion. From the homes, the shops, the market places, the inhabitants of
the city pressed toward the humble dwelling that sheltered Jesus. The sick
were brought upon couches, they came leaning upon staffs, or, supported by
friends, they tottered feebly into the Saviour's presence.

Hour after hour they came and went; for none could know whether tomorrow
would find the Healer still among them. Never before had Capernaum witnessed
a day like this. The air was filled with the voice of triumph and shouts of
deliverance. The Saviour was joyful in the joy He had awakened. As He
witnessed the sufferings of those who had come to Him, His heart was stirred
with sympathy, and He rejoiced in His power to restore them to health and
happiness.

Not until the last sufferer had been relieved did Jesus cease His work. It
was far into the night when the multitude departed, and silence settled down
upon the home of Simon. The long, exciting day was past, and Jesus sought
rest. But while the city was still wrapped in slumber, the Saviour, "rising
up a great while before day, . . . went out, and departed into a solitary
place, and there prayed."

Thus were spent the days in the earthly life of Jesus. He often dismissed
His disciples to visit their homes and rest; but He gently resisted their
efforts to draw Him away from His labors. All day He toiled,

260

teaching the ignorant, healing the sick, giving sight to the blind, feeding
the multitude; and at the eventide or in the early morning, He went away to
the sanctuary of the mountains for communion with His Father. Often He
passed the entire night in prayer and meditation, returning at daybreak to
His work among the people.

Early in the morning, Peter and his companions came to Jesus, saying that
already the people of Capernaum were seeking Him. The disciples had been
bitterly disappointed at the reception which Christ had met hitherto. The
authorities at Jerusalem were seeking to murder Him; even His own townsmen
had tried to take His life; but at Capernaum He was welcomed with joyful
enthusiasm, and the hopes of the disciples kindled anew. It might be that
among the liberty-loving Galileans were to be found the supporters of the
new kingdom. But with surprise they heard Christ's words, "I must preach the
kingdom of God to other cities also: for therefore am I sent."

In the excitement which then pervaded Capernaum, there was danger that the
object of His mission would be lost sight of. Jesus was not satisfied to
attract attention to Himself merely as a wonder worker or a healer of
physical diseases. He was seeking to draw men to Him as their Saviour. While
the people were eager to believe that He had come as a king, to establish an
earthly reign, He desired to turn their minds away from the earthly to the
spiritual. Mere worldly success would interfere with His work.

And the wonder of the careless crowd jarred upon His spirit. In His life no
self-assertion mingled. The homage which the world gives to position, or
wealth, or talent, was foreign to the Son of man. None of the means that men
employ to win allegiance or command homage did Jesus use. Centuries before
His birth, it had been prophesied of Him,

                                                                     261

"He shall not cry, nor lift up, nor cause His voice to be heard in the
street. A bruised reed shall He not break, and the dimly burning flax shall
He not quench: He shall bring forth judgment unto truth. He shall not fail
nor be discouraged, till He have set judgment in the earth." Isa. 42:2-4,
margin.

The Pharisees sought distinction by their scrupulous ceremonialism, and the
ostentation of their worship and charities. They proved their zeal for
religion by making it the theme of discussion. Disputes between opposing
sects were loud and long, and it was not unusual to hear on the streets the
voice of angry controversy from learned doctors of the law.

In marked contrast to all this was the life of Jesus. In that life no noisy
disputation, no ostentatious worship, no act to gain applause, was ever
witnessed. Christ was hid in God, and God was revealed in the character of
His Son. To this revelation Jesus desired the minds of the people to be
directed, and their homage to be given.

The Sun of Righteousness did not burst upon the world in splendor, to dazzle
the senses with His glory. It is written of Christ, "His going forth is
prepared as the morning." Hosea 6:3. Quietly and gently the daylight breaks
upon the earth, dispelling the shadow of darkness, and waking the world to
life. So did the Sun of Righteousness arise, "with healing in His wings."
Mal. 4:2.




(262)

                             Chapter 27

                             "Thou Canst Make Me Clean"


Of all diseases known in the East the leprosy was most dreaded. Its
incurable and contagious character, and its horrible effect upon its
victims, filled the bravest with fear. Among the Jews it was regarded as a
judgment on account of sin, and hence was called "the stroke," "the finger
of God." Deep-rooted, ineradicable, deadly, it was looked upon as a symbol
of sin. By the ritual law, the leper was pronounced unclean. Like one
already dead, he was shut out from the habitations of men. Whatever he
touched was unclean. The air was polluted by his breath. One who was
suspected of having the disease must present himself to the priests, who
were to examine and decide his case. If pronounced a leper, he was isolated
from his family, cut off from the congregation of Israel, and was doomed to
associate with those only who were similarly afflicted. The law was
inflexible in its requirement. Even kings and rulers were not exempt. A
monarch who was attacked by this terrible disease must yield up the scepter,
and flee from society.

Away from his friends and his kindred, the leper must bear the curse of his
malady. He was obliged to publish his own calamity, to rend his garments,
and sound the alarm, warning all to flee from his contaminating presence.
The cry, "Unclean! unclean!" coming in mournful tones from the lonely exile,
was a signal heard with fear and abhorrence.

In the region of Christ's ministry, there were many of these sufferers, and
the news of His work reached them, kindling a gleam of hope. But since the
days of Elisha the prophet, such a thing had never been known

                                                                     263

as the cleansing of one upon whom this disease had fastened. They dared not
expect Jesus to do for them what He had never done for any man. There was
one, however, in whose heart faith began to spring up. Yet the man knew not
how to reach Jesus. Debarred as he was from contact with his fellow men, how
could he present himself to the Healer? And he questioned if Christ would
heal him. Would He stoop to notice one believed to be suffering under the
judgment of God? Would He not, like the Pharisees, and even the physicians,
pronounce a curse upon him, and warn him to flee from the haunts of men? He
thought of all that had been told him of Jesus. Not one who had sought His
help had been turned away. The wretched man determined to find the Saviour.
Though shut out from the cities, it might be that he could cross His path in
some byway along the mountain roads, or find Him as He was teaching outside
the towns. The difficulties were great, but this was his only hope.

The leper is guided to the Saviour. Jesus is teaching beside the lake, and
the people are gathered about Him. Standing afar off, the leper catches a
few words from the Saviour's lips. He sees Him laying His hands upon the
sick. He sees the lame, the blind, the paralytic, and those dying of various
maladies rise up in health, praising God for their deliverance. Faith
strengthens in his heart. He draws nearer and yet nearer to the gathered
throng. The restrictions laid upon him, the safety of the people, and the
fear with which all men regard him are forgotten. He thinks only of the
blessed hope of healing.

He is a loathsome spectacle. The disease has made frightful inroads, and his
decaying body is horrible to look upon. At sight of him the people fall back
in terror. They crowd upon one another in their eagerness to escape from
contact with him. Some try to prevent him from approaching Jesus, but in
vain. He neither sees nor hears them. Their expressions of loathing are lost
upon him. He sees only the Son of God. He hears only the voice that speaks
life to the dying. Pressing to Jesus, he casts himself at His feet with the
cry, "Lord, if Thou wilt, Thou canst make me clean."

Jesus replied, "I will; be thou made clean," and laid His hand upon him.
Matt. 8:3, R. V.

Immediately a change passed over the leper. His flesh became healthy, the
nerves sensitive, the muscles firm. The rough, scaly surface peculiar to
leprosy disappeared, and a soft glow, like that upon the skin of a healthy
child, took its place.

264


Jesus charged the man not to make known the work that had been wrought, but
straightway to present himself with an offering at the temple. Such an
offering could not be accepted until the priests had made examination and
pronounced the man wholly free from the disease. However unwilling they
might be to perform this service, they could not evade an examination and
decision of the case.

The words of Scripture show with what urgency Christ enjoined upon the man
the necessity of silence and prompt action. "He straitly charged him, and
forthwith sent him away; and saith unto him, See thou say nothing to any
man: but go thy way, show thyself to the priest, and offer for thy cleansing
those things which Moses commanded, for a testimony unto them." Had the
priests known the facts concerning the healing of the leper, their hatred of
Christ might have led them to render a dishonest sentence. Jesus desired the
man to present himself at the temple before any rumors concerning the
miracle had reached them. Thus an impartial decision could be secured, and
the restored leper would be permitted to unite once more with his family and
friends.

There were other objects which Christ had in view in enjoining silence on
the man. The Saviour knew that His enemies were ever seeking to limit His
work, and to turn the people from Him. He knew that if the healing of the
leper were noised abroad, other sufferers from this terrible disease would
crowd about Him, and the cry would be raised that the people would be
contaminated by contact with them. Many of the lepers would not so use the
gift of health as to make it a blessing to themselves or to others. And by
drawing the lepers about Him, He would give occasion for the charge that He
was breaking down the restrictions of the ritual law. Thus His work in
preaching the gospel would be hindered.

The event justified Christ's warning. A multitude of people had witnessed
the healing of the leper, and they were eager to learn of the priests'
decision. When the man returned to his friends, there was great

                                                                     265

excitement. Notwithstanding the caution of Jesus, the man made no further
effort to conceal the fact of his cure. It would indeed have been impossible
to conceal it, but the leper published the matter abroad. Conceiving that it
was only the modesty of Jesus which laid this restriction upon him, he went
about proclaiming the power of this Great Healer. He did not understand that
every such manifestation made the priests and elders more determined to
destroy Jesus. The restored man felt that the boon of health was very
precious. He rejoiced in the vigor of manhood, and in his restoration to his
family and society, and felt it impossible to refrain from giving glory to
the Physician who had made him whole. But his act in blazing abroad the
matter resulted in hindering the Saviour's work. It caused the people to
flock to Him in such multitudes that He was forced for a time to cease His
labors.

Every act of Christ's ministry was far-reaching in its purpose. It
comprehended more than appeared in the act itself. So in the case of the
leper. While Jesus ministered to all who came unto Him, He yearned to bless
those who came not. While He drew the publicans, the heathen, and the
Samaritans, He longed to reach the priests and teachers who were shut in by
prejudice and tradition. He left untried no means by which they might be
reached. In sending the healed leper to the priests, He gave them a
testimony calculated to disarm their prejudices.

The Pharisees had asserted that Christ's teaching was opposed to the law
which God had given through Moses; but His direction to the cleansed leper
to present an offering according to the law disproved this charge. It was
sufficient testimony for all who were willing to be convinced.

The leaders at Jerusalem had sent out spies to find some pretext for putting
Christ to death. He responded by giving them an evidence of His love for
humanity, His respect for the law, and His power to deliver from sin and
death. Thus He bore witness of them: "They have rewarded Me evil for good,
and hatred for My love." Ps. 109:5. He who on the mount gave the precept,
"Love your enemies," Himself exemplified the principle, not rendering "evil
for evil, or railing for railing: but contrariwise blessing." Matt. 5:44; 1
Peter 3:9.

The same priests who condemned the leper to banishment certified his cure.
This sentence, publicly pronounced and registered, was a standing testimony
for Christ. And as the healed man was reinstated in the congregation of
Israel, upon the priests' own assurance that there

266

was not a taint of the disease upon him, he himself was a living witness for
his Benefactor. Joyfully he presented his offering, and magnified the name
of Jesus. The priests were convinced of the divine power of the Saviour.
Opportunity was granted them to know the truth and to be profited by the
light. Rejected, it would pass away, never to return. By many the light was
rejected; yet it was not given in vain. Many hearts were moved that for a
time made no sign. During the Saviour's life, His mission seemed to call
forth little response of love from the priests and teachers; but after His
ascension "a great company of the priests were obedient to the faith." Acts
6:7.

The work of Christ in cleansing the leper from his terrible disease is an
illustration of His work in cleansing the soul from sin. The man who came to
Jesus was "full of leprosy." Its deadly poison permeated his whole body. The
disciples sought to prevent their Master from touching him; for he who
touched a leper became himself unclean. But in laying His hand upon the
leper, Jesus received no defilement. His touch imparted life-giving power.
The leprosy was cleansed. Thus it is with the leprosy of sin,--deep-rooted,
deadly, and impossible to be cleansed by human power. "The whole head is
sick, and the whole heart faint. From the sole of the foot even unto the
head there is no soundness in it; but wounds, and bruises, and putrefying
sores." Isa. 1:5, 6. But Jesus, coming to dwell in humanity, receives no
pollution. His presence has healing virtue for the sinner. Whoever will fall
at His feet, saying in faith, "Lord, if Thou wilt, Thou canst make me
clean," shall hear the answer, "I will; be thou made clean." Matt. 8:2, 3,
R. V.

In some instances of healing, Jesus did not at once grant the blessing
sought. But in the case of leprosy, no sooner was the appeal made than it
was granted. When we pray for earthly blessings, the answer to our prayer
may be delayed, or God may give us something other than we ask, but not so
when we ask for deliverance from sin. It is His will to cleanse us from sin,
to make us His children, and to enable us to live a holy life. Christ "gave
Himself for our sins, that He might deliver us from this present evil world,
according to the will of God and our Father." Gal. 1:4. And "this is the
confidence that we have in Him, that, if we ask anything according to His
will, He heareth us: and if we know that He hear us, whatsoever we ask, we
know that we have the petitions that we desired of Him." 1 John 5:14, 15.
"If we confess our sins, He is faithful and just to forgive us our sins, and
to cleanse us from all unrighteousness." 1 John 1:9.

                                                                     267


In the healing of the paralytic at Capernaum, Christ again taught the same
truth. It was to manifest His power to forgive sins that the miracle was
performed. And the healing of the paralytic also illustrates other precious
truths. It is full of hope and encouragement, and from its connection with
the caviling Pharisees it has a lesson of warning as well.

Like the leper, this paralytic had lost all hope of recovery. His disease
was the result of a life of sin, and his sufferings were embittered by
remorse. He had long before appealed to the Pharisees and doctors, hoping
for relief from mental suffering and physical pain. But they coldly
pronounced him incurable, and abandoned him to the wrath of God. The
Pharisees regarded affliction as an evidence of divine displeasure, and they
held themselves aloof from the sick and the needy. Yet often these very ones
who exalted themselves as holy were more guilty than the sufferers they
condemned.

The palsied man was entirely helpless, and, seeing no prospect of aid from
any quarter, he had sunk into despair. Then he heard of the wonderful works
of Jesus. He was told that others as sinful and helpless as he had been
healed; even lepers had been cleansed. And the friends who reported these
things encouraged him to believe that he too might be cured if he could be
carried to Jesus. But his hope fell when he remembered how the disease had
been brought upon him. He feared that the pure Physician would not tolerate
him in His presence.

Yet it was not physical restoration he desired so much as relief from the
burden of sin. If he could see Jesus, and receive the assurance of
forgiveness and peace with Heaven, he would be content to live or die,
according to God's will. The cry of the dying man was, Oh that I might come
into His presence! There was no time to lose; already his wasted flesh was
showing signs of decay. He besought his friends to carry him on his bed to
Jesus, and this they gladly undertook to do. But so dense was the crowd that
had assembled in and about the house where the Saviour was, that it was
impossible for the sick man and his friends to reach Him, or even to come
within hearing of His voice.

Jesus was teaching in the house of Peter. According to their custom, His
disciples sat close about Him, and "there were Pharisees and doctors of the
law sitting by, which were come out of every town of Galilee, and Judea, and
Jerusalem." These had come as spies, seeking an accusation against Jesus.
Outside of these officials thronged the promiscuous multitude, the eager,
the reverent, the curious, and the unbelieving. Different

268

nationalities and all grades of society were represented. "And the power of
the Lord was present to heal." The Spirit of life brooded over the assembly,
but Pharisees and doctors did not discern its presence. They felt no sense
of need, and the healing was not for them. "He hath filled the hungry with
good things; and the rich He hath sent empty away." Luke 1:53.

Again and again the bearers of the paralytic tried to push their way through
the crowd, but in vain. The sick man looked about him in unutterable
anguish. When the longed-for help was so near, how could he relinquish hope?
At his suggestion his friends bore him to the top of the house and, breaking
up the roof, let him down at the feet of Jesus. The discourse was
interrupted. The Saviour looked upon the mournful countenance, and saw the
pleading eyes fixed upon Him. He understood the case; He had drawn to
Himself that perplexed and doubting spirit. While the paralytic was yet at
home, the Saviour had brought conviction to his conscience. When he repented
of his sins, and believed in the power of Jesus to make him whole, the
life-giving mercies of the Saviour had first blessed his longing heart.
Jesus had watched the first glimmer of faith grow into a belief that He was
the sinner's only helper, and had seen it grow stronger with every effort to
come into His presence.

Now, in words that fell like music on the sufferer's ear, the Saviour said,
"Son, be of good cheer; thy sins be forgiven thee."

The burden of despair rolls from the sick man's soul; the peace of
forgiveness rests upon his spirit, and shines out upon his countenance. His
physical pain is gone, and his whole being is transformed. The helpless
paralytic is healed! the guilty sinner is pardoned!

In simple faith he accepted the words of Jesus as the boon of new life. He
urged no further request, but lay in blissful silence, too happy for words.
The light of heaven irradiated his countenance, and the people looked with
awe upon the scene.

The rabbis had waited anxiously to see what disposition Christ would make of
this case. They recollected how the man had appealed to them for help, and
they had refused him hope or sympathy. Not satisfied with this, they had
declared that he was suffering the curse of God for his sins. These things
came fresh to their minds when they saw the sick man before them. They
marked the interest with which all were watching the scene, and they felt a
terrible fear of losing their own influence over the people.

                                                                     269


These dignitaries did not exchange words together, but looking into one
another's faces they read the same thought in each, that something must be
done to arrest the tide of feeling. Jesus had declared that the sins of the
paralytic were forgiven. The Pharisees caught at these words as blasphemy,
and conceived that they could present this as a sin worthy of death. They
said in their hearts, "He blasphemeth: who can forgive sins but One, even
God?" Mark 2:7, R. V.

Fixing His glance upon them, beneath which they cowered, and drew back,
Jesus said, "Wherefore think ye evil in your hearts? For whether is easier,
to say, Thy sins be forgiven thee; or to say, Arise, and walk? But that ye
may know that the Son of man hath power on earth to forgive sins," He said,
turning to the paralytic, "Arise, take up thy bed, and go unto thine house."

Then he who had been borne on a litter to Jesus rises to his feet with the
elasticity and strength of youth. The life-giving blood bounds through his
veins. Every organ of his body springs into sudden activity. The glow of
health succeeds the pallor of approaching death. "And immediately he arose,
took up the bed, and went forth before them all; insomuch that they were all
amazed, and glorified God, saying, We never saw it on this fashion."

Oh, wondrous love of Christ, stooping to heal the guilty and the afflicted!
Divinity sorrowing over and soothing the ills of suffering humanity! Oh,
marvelous power thus displayed to the children of men! Who can doubt the
message of salvation? Who can slight the mercies of a compassionate
Redeemer?

It required nothing less than creative power to restore health to that
decaying body. The same voice that spoke life to man created from

270

the dust of the earth had spoken life to the dying paralytic. And the same
power that gave life to the body had renewed the heart. He who at the
creation "spake, and it was," who "commanded, and it stood fast," (Ps.
33:9), had spoken life to the soul dead in trespasses and sins. The healing
of the body was an evidence of the power that had renewed the heart. Christ
bade the paralytic arise and walk, "that ye may know," He said, "that the
Son of man hath power on earth to forgive sins."

The paralytic found in Christ healing for both the soul and the body. The
spiritual healing was followed by physical restoration. This lesson should
not be overlooked. There are today thousands suffering from physical
disease, who, like the paralytic, are longing for the message, "Thy sins are
forgiven." The burden of sin, with its unrest and unsatisfied desires, is
the foundation of their maladies. They can find no relief until they come to
the Healer of the soul. The peace which He alone can give, would impart
vigor to the mind, and health to the body.

Jesus came to "destroy the works of the devil." "In Him was life," and He
says, "I am come that they might have life, and that they might have it more
abundantly." He is "a quickening spirit." 1 John 3:8; John 1:4; 10:10; 1
Cor. 15:45. And He still has the same life-giving power as when on earth He
healed the sick, and spoke forgiveness to the sinner. He "forgiveth all
thine iniquities," He "healeth all thy diseases." Ps. 103:3.

The effect produced upon the people by the healing of the paralytic was as
if heaven had opened, and revealed the glories of the better world. As the
man who had been cured passed through the multitude, blessing God at every
step, and bearing his burden as if it were a feather's weight, the people
fell back to give him room, and with awe-stricken faces gazed upon him,
whispering softly among themselves, "We have seen strange things today."

The Pharisees were dumb with amazement and overwhelmed with defeat. They saw
that here was no opportunity for their jealousy to inflame the multitude.
The wonderful work wrought upon the man whom they had given over to the
wrath of God had so impressed the people that the rabbis were for the time
forgotten. They saw that Christ possessed a power which they had ascribed to
God alone; yet the gentle dignity of His manner was in marked contrast to
their own haughty bearing. They were disconcerted and abashed, recognizing,
but not confessing, the presence of a superior being. The stronger the
evidence that Jesus had power on earth to forgive sins, the more firmly

                                                                     271

they entrenched themselves in unbelief. From the home of Peter, where they
had seen the paralytic restored by His word, they went away to invent new
schemes for silencing the Son of God.

Physical disease, however malignant and deep-seated, was healed by the power
of Christ; but the disease of the soul took a firmer hold upon those who
closed their eyes against the light. Leprosy and palsy were not so terrible
as bigotry and unbelief.

In the home of the healed paralytic there was great rejoicing when he
returned to his family, carrying with ease the couch upon which he had been
slowly borne from their presence but a short time before. They gathered
round with tears of joy, scarcely daring to believe their eyes. He stood
before them in the full vigor of manhood. Those arms that they had seen
lifeless were quick to obey his will. The flesh that had been shrunken and
leaden-hued was now fresh and ruddy. He walked with a firm, free step. Joy
and hope were written in every lineament of his countenance; and an
expression of purity and peace had taken the place of the marks of sin and
suffering. Glad thanksgiving went up from that home, and God was glorified
through His Son, who had restored hope to the hopeless, and strength to the
stricken one. This man and his family were ready to lay down their lives for
Jesus. No doubt dimmed their faith, no unbelief marred their fealty to Him
who had brought light into their darkened home.




(272)

                             Chapter 28

                             Levi-Matthew


Of the Roman officials in Palestine, none were more hated than the
publicans. The fact that the taxes were imposed by a foreign power was a
continual irritation to the Jews, being a reminder that their independence
had departed. And the taxgatherers were not merely the instruments of Roman
oppression; they were extortioners on their own account, enriching
themselves at the expense of the people. A Jew who accepted this office at
the hands of the Romans was looked upon as betraying the honor of his
nation. He was despised as an apostate, and was classed with the vilest of
society.

To this class belonged Levi-Matthew, who, after the four disciples at
Gennesaret, was the next to be called to Christ's service. The Pharisees had
judged Matthew according to his employment, but Jesus saw in this man a
heart open for the reception of truth. Matthew had listened to the Saviour's
teaching. As the convicting Spirit of God revealed his sinfulness, he longed
to seek help from Christ; but he was accustomed to the exclusiveness of the
rabbis, and had no thought that this Great Teacher would notice him.

                                                                     273


Sitting at his toll booth one day, the publican saw Jesus approaching. Great
was his astonishment to hear the words addressed to himself, "Follow Me."

Matthew "left all, rose up, and followed Him." There was no hesitation, no
questioning, no thought of the lucrative business to be exchanged for
poverty and hardship. It was enough for him that he was to be with Jesus,
that he might listen to His words, and unite with Him in His work.

So it was with the disciples previously called. When Jesus bade Peter and
his companions follow Him, immediately they left their boats and nets. Some
of these disciples had friends dependent on them for support; but when they
received the Saviour's invitation, they did not hesitate, and inquire, How
shall I live, and sustain my family? They were obedient to the call; and
when afterward Jesus asked them, "When I sent you without purse, and scrip,
and shoes, lacked ye anything?" they could answer, "Nothing." Luke 22:35.

To Matthew in his wealth, and to Andrew and Peter in their poverty, the same
test was brought; the same consecration was made by each. At the moment of
success, when the nets were filled with fish, and the impulses of the old
life were strongest, Jesus asked the disciples at the sea to leave all for
the work of the gospel. So every soul is tested as to whether the desire for
temporal good or for fellowship with Christ is strongest.

Principle is always exacting. No man can succeed in the service of God
unless his whole heart is in the work and he counts all things but loss for
the excellency of the knowledge of Christ. No man who makes any reserve can
be the disciple of Christ, much less can he be His colaborer. When men
appreciate the great salvation, the self-sacrifice seen in Christ's life
will be seen in theirs. Wherever He leads the way, they will rejoice to
follow.

The calling of Matthew to be one of Christ's disciples excited great
indignation. For a religious teacher to choose a publican as one of his
immediate attendants was an offense against the religious, social, and
national customs. By appealing to the prejudices of the people the Pharisees
hoped to turn the current of popular feeling against Jesus.

Among the publicans a widespread interest was created. Their hearts were
drawn toward the divine Teacher. In the joy of his new discipleship, Matthew
longed to bring his former associates to Jesus. Accordingly

274

he made a feast at his own house, and called together his relatives and
friends. Not only were publicans included, but many others who were of
doubtful reputation, and were proscribed by their more scrupulous neighbors.

The entertainment was given in honor of Jesus, and He did not hesitate to
accept the courtesy. He well knew that this would give offense to the
Pharisaic party, and would also compromise Him in the eyes of the people.
But no question of policy could influence His movements. With Him external
distinctions weighed nothing. That which appealed to His heart was a soul
thirsting for the water of life.

Jesus sat as an honored guest at the table of the publicans, by His sympathy
and social kindliness showing that He recognized the dignity of humanity;
and men longed to become worthy of His confidence. Upon their thirsty hearts
His words fell with blessed, life-giving power. New impulses were awakened,
and the possibility of a new life opened to these outcasts of society.

At such gatherings as this, not a few were impressed by the Saviour's
teaching who did not acknowledge Him until after His ascension. When

                                                                     275

the Holy Spirit was poured out, and three thousand were converted in a day,
there were among them many who first heard the truth at the table of the
publicans, and some of these became messengers of the gospel. To Matthew
himself the example of Jesus at the feast was a constant lesson. The
despised publican became one of the most devoted evangelists, in his own
ministry following closely in his Master's steps.

When the rabbis learned of the presence of Jesus at Matthew's feast, they
seized the opportunity of accusing Him. But they chose to work through the
disciples. By arousing their prejudices they hoped to alienate them from
their Master. It was their policy to accuse Christ to the disciples, and the
disciples to Christ, aiming their arrows where they would be most likely to
wound. This is the way in which Satan has worked ever since the disaffection
in heaven; and all who try to cause discord and alienation are actuated by
his spirit.

"Why eateth your Master with publicans and sinners?" questioned the envious
rabbis.

Jesus did not wait for His disciples to answer the charge, but Himself
replied: "They that be whole need not a physician, but they that are sick.
But go ye and learn what that meaneth, I will have mercy, and not sacrifice:
for I am not come to call the righteous, but sinners to repentance." The
Pharisees claimed to be spiritually whole, and therefore in no need of a
physician, while they regarded the publicans and Gentiles as perishing from
diseases of the soul. Then was it not His work, as a physician, to go to the
very class that needed His help?

But although the Pharisees thought so highly of themselves, they were really
in a worse condition than the ones they despised. The publicans were less
bigoted and self-sufficient, and thus were more open to the influence of
truth. Jesus said to the rabbis, "Go ye and learn what that meaneth, I will
have mercy, and not sacrifice." Thus He showed that while they claimed to
expound the word of God, they were wholly ignorant of its spirit.

The Pharisees were silenced for the time, but only became more determined in
their enmity. They next sought out the disciples of John the Baptist, and
tried to set them against the Saviour. These Pharisees had not accepted the
mission of the Baptist. They had pointed in scorn to his abstemious life,
his simple habits, his coarse garments, and had declared him a fanatic.
Because he denounced their hypocrisy, they had resisted his words, and had
tried to stir up the people against him. The

276

Spirit of God had moved upon the hearts of these scorners, convicting them
of sin; but they had rejected the counsel of God, and had declared that John
was possessed of a devil.

Now when Jesus came mingling with the people, eating and drinking at their
tables, they accused Him of being a glutton and a winebibber. The very ones
who made this charge were themselves guilty. As God is misrepresented, and
clothed by Satan with his own attributes, so the Lord's messengers were
falsified by these wicked men.

The Pharisees would not consider that Jesus was eating with publicans and
sinners in order to bring the light of heaven to those who sat in darkness.
They would not see that every word dropped by the divine Teacher was a
living seed that would germinate and bear fruit to the glory of God. They
had determined not to accept the light; and although they had opposed the
mission of the Baptist, they were now ready to court the friendship of his
disciples, hoping to secure their co-operation against Jesus. They
represented that Jesus was setting at nought the ancient traditions; and
they contrasted the austere piety of the Baptist with the course of Jesus in
feasting with publicans and sinners.

The disciples of John were at this time in great sorrow. It was before their
visit to Jesus with John's message. Their beloved teacher was in prison, and
they passed their days in mourning. And Jesus was making no effort to
release John, and even appeared to cast discredit on his teaching. If John
had been sent by God, why did Jesus and His disciples pursue a course so
widely different?

The disciples of John had not a clear understanding of Christ's work; they
thought there might be some foundation for the charges of the Pharisees.
They observed many of the rules prescribed by the rabbis, and even hoped to
be justified by the works of the law. Fasting was practiced by the Jews as
an act of merit, and the most rigid among them fasted two days in every
week. The Pharisees and John's disciples were fasting when the latter came
to Jesus with the inquiry, "Why do we and the Pharisees fast oft, but Thy
disciples fast not?"

Very tenderly Jesus answered them. He did not try to correct their erroneous
conception of fasting, but only to set them right in regard to His own
mission. And He did this by employing the same figure that the Baptist
himself had used in his testimony to Jesus. John had said, "He that hath the
bride is the bridegroom: but the friend of the bridegroom, which standeth
and heareth him, rejoiceth greatly because of

                                                                     277

the bridegroom's voice: this my joy therefore is fulfilled." John 3:29. The
disciples of John could not fail to recall these words of their teacher, as,
taking up the illustration, Jesus said, "Can ye make the children of the
bridechamber fast, while the bridegroom is with them?"

The Prince of heaven was among His people. The greatest gift of God had been
given to the world. Joy to the poor; for Christ had come to make them heirs
of His kingdom. Joy to the rich; for He would teach them how to secure
eternal riches. Joy to the ignorant; He would make them wise unto salvation.
Joy to the learned; He would open to them deeper mysteries than they had
ever fathomed; truths that had been hidden from the foundation of the world
would be opened to men by the Saviour's mission.

John the Baptist had rejoiced to behold the Saviour. What occasion for
rejoicing had the disciples who were privileged to walk and talk with the
Majesty of heaven! This was not a time for them to mourn and fast. They must
open their hearts to receive the light of His glory, that they might shed
light upon those who sat in darkness and in the shadow of death.

It was a bright picture which the words of Christ had called up, but across
it lay a heavy shadow, which His eye alone discerned. "The days will come,"
He said, "when the bridegroom shall be taken away from them, and then shall
they fast in those days." When they should see their Lord betrayed and
crucified, the disciples would mourn and fast. In His last words to them in
the upper chamber, He said, "A little while, and ye shall not see Me: and
again, a little while, and ye shall see Me. Verily, verily, I say unto you,
That ye shall weep and lament, but the world shall rejoice: and ye shall be
sorrowful, but your sorrow shall be turned into joy." John 16:19, 20.

When He should come forth from the tomb, their sorrow would be turned to
joy. After His ascension He was to be absent in person; but through the
Comforter He would still be with them, and they were not to spend their time
in mourning. This was what Satan wanted. He desired them to give the world
the impression that they had been deceived and disappointed; but by faith
they were to look to the sanctuary above, where Jesus was ministering for
them; they were to open their hearts to the Holy Spirit, His representative,
and to rejoice in the light of His presence. Yet days of temptation and
trial would come, when they would be brought into conflict with the rulers
of this world, and the leaders of the kingdom of darkness; when Christ was
not personally

278

with them, and they failed to discern the Comforter, then it would be more
fitting for them to fast.

The Pharisees sought to exalt themselves by their rigorous observance of
forms, while their hearts were filled with envy and strife. "Behold," says
the Scripture, "ye fast for strife and debate, and to smite with the fist of
wickedness: ye shall not fast as ye do this day, to make your voice to be
heard on high. Is it such a fast that I have chosen? a day for a man to
afflict his soul? is it to bow down his head as a bulrush, and to spread
sackcloth and ashes under him? wilt thou call this a fast, and an acceptable
day to the Lord?" Isa. 58:4, 5.

The true fast is no mere formal service. The Scripture describes the fast
that God has chosen,--"to loose the bands of wickedness, to undo the heavy
burdens, and to let the oppressed go free, and that ye break every yoke;" to
"draw out thy soul to the hungry, and satisfy the afflicted soul." Isa.
58:6, 10. Here is set forth the very spirit and character of the work of
Christ. His whole life was a sacrifice of Himself for the saving of the
world. Whether fasting in the wilderness of temptation or eating with the
publicans at Matthew's feast, He was giving His life for the redemption of
the lost. Not in idle mourning, in mere bodily humiliation and multitudinous
sacrifices, is the true spirit of devotion manifested, but it is shown in
the surrender of self in willing service to God and man.

Continuing His answer to the disciples of John, Jesus spoke a parable,
saying, "No man putteth a piece of a new garment upon an old; if otherwise,
then both the new maketh a rent, and the piece that was taken out of the new
agreeth not with the old." The message of John the Baptist was not to be
interwoven with tradition and superstition. An attempt to blend the pretense
of the Pharisees with the devotion of John would only make more evident the
breach between them.

Nor could the principles of Christ's teaching be united with the forms of
Pharisaism. Christ was not to close up the breach that had been made by the
teachings of John. He would make more distinct the separation between the
old and the new. Jesus further illustrated this fact, saying, "No man
putteth new wine into old bottles; else the new wine will burst the bottles,
and be spilled, and the bottles shall perish." The skin bottles which were
used as vessels to contain the new wine, after a time became dry and
brittle, and were then worthless to serve the same purpose again. In this
familiar illustration Jesus presented the condition of the Jewish leaders.
Priests and scribes and rulers were

                                                                     279

fixed in a rut of ceremonies and traditions. Their hearts had become
contracted, like the dried-up wine skins to which He had compared them.
While they remained satisfied with a legal religion, it was impossible for
them to become the depositaries of the living truth of heaven. They thought
their own righteousness all-sufficient, and did not desire that a new
element should be brought into their religion. The good will of God to men
they did not accept as something apart from themselves. They connected it
with their own merit because of their good works. The faith that works by
love and purifies the soul could find no place for union with the religion
of the Pharisees, made up of ceremonies and the injunctions of men. The
effort to unite the teachings of Jesus with the established religion would
be vain. The vital truth of God, like fermenting wine, would burst the old,
decaying bottles of the Pharisaical tradition.

The Pharisees thought themselves too wise to need instruction, too righteous
to need salvation, too highly honored to need the honor that comes from
Christ. The Saviour turned away from them to find others who would receive
the message of heaven. In the untutored fishermen, in the publican at the
market place, in the woman of Samaria, in the common people who heard Him
gladly, He found His new bottles for the new wine. The instrumentalities to
be used in the gospel work are those souls who gladly receive the light
which God sends them. These are His agencies for imparting the knowledge of
truth to the world. If through the grace of Christ His people will become
new bottles, He will fill them with new wine.

The teaching of Christ, though it was represented by the new wine, was not a
new doctrine, but the revelation of that which had been taught from the
beginning. But to the Pharisees the truth of God had lost its original
significance and beauty. To them Christ's teaching was new in almost every
respect, and it was unrecognized and unacknowledged.

Jesus pointed out the power of false teaching to destroy the appreciation
and desire for truth. "No man," He said, "having drunk old wine straightway
desireth new: for he saith, The old is better." All the truth that has been
given to the world through patriarchs and prophets shone out in new beauty
in the words of Christ. But the scribes and Pharisees had no desire for the
precious new wine. Until emptied of the old traditions, customs, and
practices, they had no place in mind or heart for the teachings of Christ.
They clung to the dead forms, and turned away from the living truth and the
power of God.

280


It was this that proved the ruin of the Jews, and it will prove the ruin of
many souls in our own day. Thousands are making the same mistake as did the
Pharisees whom Christ reproved at Matthew's feast. Rather than give up some
cherished idea, or discard some idol of opinion, many refuse the truth which
comes down from the Father of light. They trust in self, and depend upon
their own wisdom, and do not realize their spiritual poverty. They insist on
being saved in some way by which they may perform some important work. When
they see that there is no way of weaving self into the work, they reject the
salvation provided.

A legal religion can never lead souls to Christ; for it is a loveless,
Christless religion. Fasting or prayer that is actuated by a self-justifying
spirit is an abomination in the sight of God. The solemn assembly for
worship, the round of religious ceremonies, the external humiliation, the
imposing sacrifice, proclaim that the doer of these things regards himself
as righteous, and as entitled to heaven; but it is all a deception. Our own
works can never purchase salvation.

As it was in the days of Christ, so it is now; the Pharisees do not know
their spiritual destitution. To them comes the message, "Because thou
sayest, I am rich, and increased with goods, and have need of nothing; and
knowest not that thou art wretched, and miserable, and poor, and blind, and
naked: I counsel thee to buy of Me gold tried in the fire, that thou mayest
be rich; and white raiment, that thou mayest be clothed, and that the shame
of thy nakedness do not appear." Rev. 3:17, 18. Faith and love are the gold
tried in the fire. But with many the gold has become dim, and the rich
treasure has been lost. The righteousness of Christ is to them as a robe
unworn, a fountain untouched. To them it is said, "I have somewhat against
thee, because thou hast left thy first love. Remember therefore from whence
thou art fallen, and repent, and do the first works; or else I will come
unto thee quickly, and will remove thy candlestick out of his place, except
thou repent." Rev. 2:4, 5.

"The sacrifices of God are a broken spirit: a broken and a contrite heart, O
God, Thou wilt not despise." Ps. 51:17. Man must be emptied of self before
he can be, in the fullest sense, a believer in Jesus. When self is
renounced, then the Lord can make man a new creature. New bottles can
contain the new wine. The love of Christ will animate the believer with new
life. In him who looks unto the Author and Finisher of our faith the
character of Christ will be manifest.




                                                                     (281)

                             Chapter 29

                             The Sabbath


The Sabbath was hallowed at the creation. As ordained for man, it had its
origin when "the morning stars sang together, and all the sons of God
shouted for joy." Job 38:7. Peace brooded over the world; for earth was in
harmony with heaven. "God saw everything that He had made, and, behold, it
was very good;" and He rested in the joy of His completed work. Gen. 1:31.

Because He had rested upon the Sabbath, "God blessed the seventh day, and
sanctified it,"--set it apart to a holy use. He gave it to Adam as a day of
rest. It was a memorial of the work of creation, and thus a sign of God's
power and His love. The Scripture says, "He hath made His wonderful works to
be remembered." "The things that are made," declare "the invisible things of
Him since the creation of the world," "even His everlasting power and
divinity." Gen. 2:3; Ps. 111:4; Rom. 1:20, R. V.

All things were created by the Son of God. "In the beginning was the Word,
and the Word was with God. . . . All things were made by Him; and without
Him was not anything made that was made." John 1: 1-3. And since the Sabbath
is a memorial of the work of creation, it is a token of the love and power
of Christ.

The Sabbath calls our thoughts to nature, and brings us into communion with
the Creator. In the song of the bird, the sighing of the trees, and the
music of the sea, we still may hear His voice who talked

282

with Adam in Eden in the cool of the day. And as we behold His power in
nature we find comfort, for the word that created all things is that which
speaks life to the soul. He "who commanded the light to shine out of
darkness, hath shined in our hearts, to give the light of the knowledge of
the glory of God in the face of Jesus Christ." 2 Cor. 4:6.

It was this thought that awoke the song,--

               "Thou, Lord, hast made me glad through Thy work;
                I will triumph in the works of Thy hands.
                O Lord, how great are Thy works!
                And Thy thoughts are very deep."
                                                Ps. 92:4,5.

And the Holy Spirit through the prophet Isaiah declares: "To whom then will
ye liken God? or what likeness will ye compare unto Him? . . . Have ye not
known? have ye not heard? hath it not been told you from the beginning? have
ye not understood from the foundations of the earth? It is He that sitteth
upon the circle of the earth, and the inhabitants thereof are as
grasshoppers; that stretcheth out the heavens as a curtain, and spreadeth
them out as a tent to dwell in. . . . To whom then will ye liken Me, or
shall I be equal? saith the Holy One. Lift up your eyes on high, and behold
who hath created these things, that bringeth out their host by number: He
calleth them all by names by the greatness of His might, for that He is
strong in power; not one faileth. Why sayest thou, O Jacob, and speakest, O
Israel, My way is hid from the Lord, and my judgment is passed over from my
God? Hast thou not known? hast thou not heard, that the everlasting God, the
Lord, the Creator of the ends of the earth, fainteth not, neither is weary?
. . He giveth power to the faint; and to them that have no

                                                                     283

might He increaseth strength." "Fear thou not; for I am with thee: be not
dismayed; for I am thy God: I will strengthen thee; yea, I will help thee;
yea, I will uphold thee with the right hand of My righteousness." "Look unto
Me, and be ye saved, all the ends of the earth: for I am God, and there is
none else." This is the message written in nature, which the Sabbath is
appointed to keep in memory. When the Lord bade Israel hallow His Sabbaths,
He said, "They shall be a sign between Me and you, that ye may know that I
am Jehovah your God." Isa. 40:18-29; 41:10; 45:22; Ezek. 20:20, R. V.

The Sabbath was embodied in the law given from Sinai; but it was not then
first made known as a day of rest. The people of Israel had a knowledge of
it before they came to Sinai. On the way thither the Sabbath was kept. When
some profaned it, the Lord reproved them, saying, "How long refuse ye to
keep My commandments and My laws?" Ex. 16:28.

The Sabbath was not for Israel merely, but for the world. It had been made
known to man in Eden, and, like the other precepts of the Decalogue, it is
of imperishable obligation. Of that law of which the fourth commandment
forms a part, Christ declares, "Till heaven and earth pass, one jot or one
tittle shall in nowise pass from the law." So long as the heavens and the
earth endure, the Sabbath will continue as a sign of the Creator's power.
And when Eden shall bloom on earth again, God's holy rest day will be
honored by all beneath the sun. "From one Sabbath to another" the
inhabitants of the glorified new earth shall go up "to worship before Me,
saith the Lord." Matt. 5:18; Isa. 66:23.

No other institution which was committed to the Jews tended so fully to
distinguish them from surrounding nations as did the Sabbath. God designed
that its observance should designate them as His worshipers. It was to be a
token of their separation from idolatry, and their connection with the true
God. But in order to keep the Sabbath holy, men must themselves be holy.
Through faith they must become partakers of the righteousness of Christ.
When the command was given to Israel, "Remember the Sabbath day, to keep it
holy," the Lord said also to them, "Ye shall be holy men unto Me." Ex. 20:8;
22:31. Only thus could the Sabbath distinguish Israel as the worshipers of
God.

As the Jews departed from God, and failed to make the righteousness of
Christ their own by faith, the Sabbath lost its significance to them. Satan
was seeking to exalt himself and to draw men away from Christ, and he worked
to pervert the Sabbath, because it is the sign of the

284

power of Christ. The Jewish leaders accomplished the will of Satan by
surrounding God's rest day with burdensome requirements. In the days of
Christ the Sabbath had become so perverted that its observance reflected the
character of selfish and arbitrary men rather than the character of the
loving heavenly Father. The rabbis virtually represented God as giving laws
which it was impossible for men to obey. They led the people to look upon
God as a tyrant, and to think that the observance of the Sabbath, as He
required it, made men hard-hearted and cruel. It was the work of Christ to
clear away these misconceptions. Although the rabbis followed Him with
merciless hostility, He did not even appear to conform to their
requirements, but went straight forward, keeping the Sabbath according to
the law of God.

Upon one Sabbath day, as the Saviour and His disciples returned from the
place of worship, they passed through a field of ripening grain. Jesus had
continued His work to a late hour, and while passing through the fields, the
disciples began to gather the heads of grain, and to eat the kernels after
rubbing them in their hands. On any other day this act would have excited no
comment, for one passing through a field of grain, an orchard, or a
vineyard, was at liberty to gather what he desired to eat. See Deut. 23:24,
25. But to do this on the Sabbath was held to be an act of desecration. Not
only was the gathering of the grain a kind of reaping, but the rubbing of it
in the hands was a kind of threshing. Thus, in the opinion of the rabbis,
there was a double offense.

The spies at once complained to Jesus, saying, "Behold, Thy disciples do
that which is not lawful to do upon the Sabbath day."

When accused of Sabbathbreaking at Bethesda, Jesus defended Himself by
affirming His Sonship to God, and declaring that He worked in harmony with
the Father. Now that the disciples are attacked, He cites

                                                                     285

His accusers to examples from the Old Testament, acts performed on the
Sabbath by those who were in the service of God.

The Jewish teachers prided themselves on their knowledge of the Scriptures,
and in the Saviour's answer there was an implied rebuke for their ignorance
of the Sacred Writings. "Have ye not read so much as this," He said, "what
David did, when himself was an hungered, and they which were with him; how
he went into the house of God, and did take and eat the shewbread, . . .
which it is not lawful to eat but for the priests alone?" "And He said unto
them, The Sabbath was made for man, and not man for the Sabbath." "Have ye
not read in the law, how that on the Sabbath days the priests in the temple
profane the Sabbath, and are blameless? But I say unto you, That in this
place is one greater than the temple." "The Son of man is Lord also of the
Sabbath." Luke 6:3, 4; Mark 2:27, 28; Matt. 12:5, 6.

If it was right for David to satisfy his hunger by eating of the bread that
had been set apart to a holy use, then it was right for the disciples to
supply their need by plucking the grain upon the sacred hours of the
Sabbath. Again, the priests in the temple performed greater labor on the
Sabbath than upon other days. The same labor in secular business would be
sinful; but the work of the priests was in the service of God. They were
performing those rites that pointed to the redeeming power of Christ, and
their labor was in harmony with the object of the Sabbath. But now Christ
Himself had come. The disciples, in doing the work of Christ, were engaged
in God's service, and that which was necessary for the accomplishment of
this work it was right to do on the Sabbath day.

Christ would teach His disciples and His enemies that the service of God is
first of all. The object of God's work in this world is the redemption of
man; therefore that which is necessary to be done on the Sabbath in the
accomplishment of this work is in accord with the Sabbath law. Jesus then
crowned His argument by declaring Himself the "Lord of the Sabbath,"--One
above all question and above all law. This infinite Judge acquits the
disciples of blame, appealing to the very statutes they are accused of
violating.

Jesus did not let the matter pass with administering a rebuke to His
enemies. He declared that in their blindness they had mistaken the object of
the Sabbath. He said, "If ye had known what this meaneth, I will have mercy,
and not sacrifice, ye would not have condemned the guiltless." Matt. 12:7.
Their many heartless rites could not supply the

286

lack of that truthful integrity and tender love which will ever characterize
the true worshiper of God.

Again Christ reiterated the truth that the sacrifices were in themselves of
no value. They were a means, and not an end. Their object was to direct men
to the Saviour, and thus to bring them into harmony with God. It is the
service of love that God values. When this is lacking, the mere round of
ceremony is an offense to Him. So with the Sabbath. It was designed to bring
men into communion with God; but when the mind was absorbed with wearisome
rites, the object of the Sabbath was thwarted. Its mere outward observance
was a mockery.

Upon another Sabbath, as Jesus entered a synagogue. He saw there a man who
had a withered hand. The Pharisees watched Him, eager to see what He would
do. The Saviour well knew that in healing on the Sabbath He would be
regarded as a transgressor, but He did not hesitate to break down the wall
of traditional requirements that barricaded the Sabbath. Jesus bade the
afflicted man stand forth, and then asked, "It is lawful to do good on the
Sabbath days, or to do evil? to save life, or to kill?" It was a maxim among
the Jews that a failure to do good, when one had opportunity, was to do
evil; to neglect to save life was to kill. Thus Jesus met the rabbis on
their own ground. "But they held their peace. And when He had looked round
about on them with anger, being grieved for the hardness of their hearts, He
saith unto the man, Stretch forth thine hand. And he stretched it out: and
his hand was restored whole as the other." Mark 3:4, 5.

When questioned, "Is it lawful to heal on the Sabbath days?" Jesus answered,
"What man shall there be among you, that shall have one sheep, and if it
fall into a pit on the Sabbath day, will he not lay hold on it, and lift it
out? How much then is a man better than a sheep? Wherefore it is lawful to
do well on the Sabbath days." Matt. 12:10-12.

The spies dared not answer Christ in the presence of the multitude, for fear
of involving themselves in difficulty. They knew that He had spoken the
truth. Rather than violate their traditions, they would leave a man to
suffer, while they would relieve a brute because of the loss to the owner if
it were neglected. Thus greater care was shown for a dumb animal than for
man, who is made in the image of God. This illustrates the working of all
false religions. They originate in man's desire to exalt himself above God,
but they result in degrading man

                                                                     287

below the brute. Every religion that wars against the sovereignty of God
defrauds man of the glory which was his at the creation, and which is to be
restored to him in Christ. Every false religion teaches its adherents to be
careless of human needs, sufferings, and rights. The gospel places a high
value upon humanity as the purchase of the blood of Christ, and it teaches a
tender regard for the wants and woes of man. The Lord says, "I will make a
man more precious than fine gold; even a man than the golden wedge of
Ophir." Isa. 13:12.

When Jesus turned upon the Pharisees with the question whether it was lawful
on the Sabbath day to do good or to do evil, to save life or to kill, He
confronted them with their own wicked purposes. They were hunting His life
with bitter hatred, while He was saving life and bringing happiness to
multitudes. Was it better to slay upon the Sabbath, as they were planning to
do, than to heal the afflicted, as He had done? Was it more righteous to
have murder in the heart upon God's holy day than love to all men, which
finds expression in deeds of mercy?

In the healing of the withered hand, Jesus condemned the custom of the Jews,
and left the fourth commandment standing as God had given it. "It is lawful
to do well on the Sabbath days," He declared. By sweeping away the senseless
restrictions of the Jews, Christ honored the Sabbath, while those who
complained of Him were dishonoring God's holy day.

Those who hold that Christ abolished the law teach that He broke the Sabbath
and justified His disciples in doing the same. Thus they are really taking
the same ground as did the caviling Jews. In this they contradict the
testimony of Christ Himself, who declared, "I have kept My Father's
commandments, and abide in His love." John 15:10. Neither the Saviour nor
His followers broke the law of the Sabbath. Christ was a living
representative of the law. No violation of its holy precepts was found in
His life. Looking upon a nation of witnesses who were seeking occasion to
condemn Him, He could say unchallenged, "Which of you convicteth Me of sin?"
John 8:46, R. V.

The Saviour had not come to set aside what patriarchs and prophets had
spoken; for He Himself had spoken through these representative men. All the
truths of God's word came from Him. But these priceless gems had been placed
in false settings. Their precious light had been made to minister to error.
God desired them to be removed from their

288

settings of error and replaced in the framework of truth. This work only a
divine hand could accomplish. By its connection with error, the truth had
been serving the cause of the enemy of God and man. Christ had come to place
it where it would glorify God, and work the salvation of humanity.

"The Sabbath was made for man, and not man for the Sabbath," Jesus said. The
institutions that God has established are for the benefit of mankind. "All
things are for your sakes." "Whether Paul, or Apollos, or Cephas, or the
world, or life, or death, or things present, or things to come; all are
yours; and ye are Christ's; and Christ is God's."
2 Cor. 4:15; 1 Cor. 3:22, 23. The law of Ten Commandments, of which
the Sabbath forms a part, God gave to His people as a blessing. "The Lord
commanded us," said Moses, "to do all these statutes, to fear the Lord our
God, for our good always, that He might preserve us alive." Deut. 6:24. And
through the psalmist the message was given to Israel, "Serve the Lord with
gladness: come before His presence with singing. Know ye that the Lord He is
God: it is He that hath made us, and not we ourselves; we are His people,
and the sheep of His pasture. Enter into His gates with thanksgiving, and
into His courts with praise." Ps. 100:2-4. And of all who keep "the Sabbath
from polluting it," the Lord declares, "Even them will I bring to My holy
mountain, and make them joyful in My house of prayer." Isa. 56:6, 7.

"Wherefore the Son of man is Lord also of the Sabbath." These words are full
of instruction and comfort. Because the Sabbath was made for man, it is the
Lord's day. It belongs to Christ. For "all things were made by Him; and
without Him was not anything made that was made." John 1:3. Since He made
all things, He made the Sabbath. By Him it was set apart as a memorial of
the work of creation. It points to Him as both the Creator and the
Sanctifier. It declares that He who created all things in heaven and in
earth, and by whom all things hold together, is the head of the church, and
that by His power we are reconciled to God. For, speaking of Israel, He
said, "I gave them My Sabbaths, to be a sign between Me and them, that they
might know that I am the Lord that sanctify them,"--make them holy. Ezek.
20:12. Then the Sabbath is a sign of Christ's power to make us holy. And it
is given to all whom Christ makes holy. As a sign of His sanctifying power,
the Sabbath is given to all who through Christ become a part of the Israel
of God.

                                                                     289


And the Lord says, "If thou turn away thy foot from the Sabbath, from doing
thy pleasure on My holy day; and call the Sabbath a delight, the holy of the
Lord, honorable; . . . then shalt thou delight thyself in the Lord." Isa.
58:13, 14. To all who receive the Sabbath as a sign of Christ's creative and
redeeming power, it will be a delight. Seeing Christ in it, they delight
themselves in Him. The Sabbath points them to the works of creation as an
evidence of His mighty power in redemption. While it calls to mind the lost
peace of Eden, it tells of peace restored through the Saviour. And every
object in nature repeats His invitation, "Come unto Me, all ye that labor
and are heavy-laden, and I will give you rest." Matt 11:28.




(290)

                             Chapter 30

                             "He Ordained Twelve"


"And He goeth up into a mountain, and calleth unto Him whom He would: and
they came unto Him. And He ordained twelve, that they should be with Him,
and that He might send them forth to preach."

It was beneath the sheltering trees of the mountainside, but a little
distance from the Sea of Galilee, that the twelve were called to the
apostolate, and the Sermon on the Mount was given. The fields and hills were
the favorite resorts of Jesus, and much of His teaching was given under the
open sky, rather than in the temple or the synagogues. No synagogue could
have received the throngs that followed Him; but not for this reason only
did He choose to teach in the fields and groves. Jesus loved the scenes of
nature. To Him each quiet retreat was a sacred temple.

It was under the trees of Eden that the first dwellers on earth had chosen
their sanctuary. There Christ had communed with the father of mankind. When
banished from Paradise, our first parents still worshiped in the fields and
groves, and there Christ met them with the gospel of His grace. It was
Christ who spoke with Abraham under the

                                                                     291

oaks at Mamre; with Isaac as he went out to pray in the fields at the
eventide; with Jacob on the hillside at Bethel; with Moses among the
mountains of Midian; and with the boy David as he watched his flocks. It was
at Christ's direction that for fifteen centuries the Hebrew people had left
their homes for one week every year, and had dwelt in booths formed from the
green branches "of goodly trees, branches of palm trees, and boughs of thick
trees, and willows of the brook." Lev. 23:40.

In training His disciples, Jesus chose to withdraw from the confusion of the
city to the quiet of the fields and hills, as more in harmony with the
lessons of self-abnegation He desired to teach them. And during His ministry
He loved to gather the people about Him under the blue heavens, on some
grassy hillside, or on the beach beside the lake. Here, surrounded by the
works of His own creation, He could turn the thoughts of His hearers from
the artificial to the natural. In the growth and development of nature were
revealed the principles of His kingdom. As men should lift up their eyes to
the hills of God, and behold the wonderful works of His hands, they could
learn precious lessons of divine truth. Christ's teaching would be repeated
to them in the things of nature. So it is with all who go into the fields
with Christ in their hearts. They will feel themselves surrounded with a
holy influence. The things of nature take up the parables of our Lord, and
repeat His counsels. By communion with God in nature, the mind is uplifted,
and the heart finds rest.

The first step was now to be taken in the organization of the church that
after Christ's departure was to be His representative on earth. No costly
sanctuary was at their command, but the Saviour led His disciples to the
retreat He loved, and in their minds the sacred experiences of that day were
forever linked with the beauty of mountain and vale and sea.

Jesus had called His disciples that He might send them forth as His
witnesses, to declare to the world what they had seen and heard of Him.
Their office was the most important to which human beings had ever been
called, and was second only to that of Christ Himself. They were to be
workers together with God for the saving of the world. As in the Old
Testament the twelve patriarchs stand as representatives of Israel, so the
twelve apostles were to stand as representatives of the gospel church.

The Saviour knew the character of the men whom He had chosen; all their
weaknesses and errors were open before Him; He knew the

292

perils through which they must pass, the responsibility that would rest upon
them; and His heart yearned over these chosen ones. Alone upon a mountain
near the Sea of Galilee He spent the entire night in prayer for them, while
they were sleeping at the foot of the mountain. With the first light of dawn
He summoned them to meet Him; for He had something of importance to
communicate to them.

These disciples had been for some time associated with Jesus in active
labor. John and James, Andrew and Peter, with Philip, Nathanael, and
Matthew, had been more closely connected with Him than the others, and had
witnessed more of His miracles. Peter, James, and John stood in still nearer
relationship to Him. They were almost constantly with Him, witnessing His
miracles, and hearing His words. John pressed into still closer intimacy
with Jesus, so that he is distinguished as the one whom Jesus loved. The
Saviour loved them all, but John's was the most receptive spirit. He was
younger than the others, and with more of the child's confiding trust he
opened his heart to Jesus. Thus he came more into sympathy with Christ, and
through him the Saviour's deepest spiritual teaching was communicated to His
people.

At the head of one of the groups into which the apostles are divided stands
the name of Philip. He was the first disciple to whom Jesus addressed the
distinct command, "Follow Me." Philip was of Bethsaida, the city of Andrew
and Peter. He had listened to the teaching of John the Baptist, and had
heard his announcement of Christ as the Lamb of God. Philip was a sincere
seeker for truth, but he was slow of heart to believe. Although he had
joined himself to Christ, yet his announcement of Him to Nathanael shows
that he was not fully convinced of the divinity of Jesus. Though Christ had
been proclaimed by the voice from heaven as the Son of God, to Philip He was
"Jesus of Nazareth, the son of Joseph." John 1:45. Again, when the five
thousand were

                                                                     293

fed, Philip's lack of faith was shown. It was to test him that Jesus
questioned, "Whence shall we buy bread, that these may eat?" Philip's answer
was on the side of unbelief: "Two hundred pennyworth of bread is not
sufficient for them, that every one of them may take a little." John 6:5, 7.
Jesus was grieved. Although Philip had seen His works and felt His power,
yet he had not faith. When the Greeks inquired of Philip concerning Jesus,
he did not seize upon the opportunity of introducing them to the Saviour,
but he went to tell Andrew. Again, in those last hours before the
crucifixion, the words of Philip were such as to discourage faith. When
Thomas said to Jesus, "Lord, we know not whither Thou goest; and how can we
know the way?" the Saviour answered, "I am the Way, the Truth, and the Life.
. . If ye had known Me, ye should have known My Father also." From Philip
came the response of unbelief: "Lord, show us the Father, and it sufficeth
us." John 14:5-8. So slow of heart, so weak in faith, was that disciple who
for three years had been with Jesus.

In happy contrast to Philip's unbelief was the childlike trust of Nathanael.
He was a man of intensely earnest nature, one whose faith took hold upon
unseen realities. Yet Philip was a student in the school of Christ, and the
divine Teacher bore patiently with his unbelief and dullness. When the Holy
Spirit was poured out upon the disciples, Philip became a teacher after the
divine order. He knew whereof he spoke, and he taught with an assurance that
carried conviction to the hearers.

While Jesus was preparing the disciples for their ordination, one who had
not been summoned urged his presence among them. It was Judas Iscariot, a
man who professed to be a follower of Christ. He now came forward,
soliciting a place in this inner circle of disciples. With great earnestness
and apparent sincerity he declared, "Master, I will follow Thee
whithersoever Thou goest." Jesus neither repulsed nor welcomed him, but
uttered only the mournful words: "The foxes have holes, and the birds of the
air have nests; but the Son of man

294

hath not where to lay His head." Matt. 8:19, 20. Judas believed Jesus to be
the Messiah; and by joining the apostles, he hoped to secure a high position
in the new kingdom. This hope Jesus designed to cut off by the statement of
His poverty.

The disciples were anxious that Judas should become one of their number. He
was of commanding appearance, a man of keen discernment and executive
ability, and they commended him to Jesus as one who would greatly assist Him
in His work. They were surprised that Jesus received him so coolly.

The disciples had been much disappointed that Jesus had not tried to secure
the co-operation of the leaders in Israel. They felt that it was a mistake
not to strengthen His cause by securing the support of these influential
men. If He had repulsed Judas, they would, in their own minds, have
questioned the wisdom of their Master. The after history of Judas would show
them the danger of allowing any worldly consideration to have weight in
deciding the fitness of men for the work of God. The co-operation of such
men as the disciples were anxious to secure would have betrayed the work
into the hands of its worst enemies.

Yet when Judas joined the disciples, he was not insensible to the beauty of
the character of Christ. He felt the influence of that divine power which
was drawing souls to the Saviour. He who came not to break the bruised reed
nor quench the smoking flax would not repulse this soul while even one
desire was reaching toward the light. The Saviour read the heart of Judas;
He knew the depths of iniquity to which, unless delivered by the grace of
God, Judas would sink. In connecting this man with Himself, He placed him
where he might, day by day, be brought in contact with the outflowing of His
own unselfish love. If he would open his heart to Christ, divine grace would
banish the demon of selfishness, and even Judas might become a subject of
the kingdom of God.

God takes men as they are, with the human elements in their character, and
trains them for His service, if they will be disciplined and learn of Him.
They are not chosen because they are perfect, but notwithstanding their
imperfections, that through the knowledge and practice of the truth, through
the grace of Christ, they may become transformed into His image.

Judas had the same opportunities as had the other disciples. He listened to
the same precious lessons. But the practice of the truth,

                                                                     295

which Christ required, was at variance with the desires and purposes of
Judas, and he would not yield his ideas in order to receive wisdom from
Heaven.

How tenderly the Saviour dealt with him who was to be His betrayer! In His
teaching, Jesus dwelt upon principles of benevolence that struck at the very
root of covetousness. He presented before Judas the heinous character of
greed, and many a time the disciple realized that his character had been
portrayed, and his sin pointed out; but he would not confess and forsake his
unrighteousness. He was self-sufficient, and instead of resisting
temptation, he continued to follow his fraudulent practices. Christ was
before him, a living example of what he must become if he reaped the benefit
of the divine mediation and ministry; but lesson after lesson fell unheeded
on the ears of Judas.

Jesus dealt him no sharp rebuke for his covetousness, but with divine
patience bore with this erring man, even while giving him evidence that He
read his heart as an open book. He presented before him the highest
incentives for right doing; and in rejecting the light of Heaven, Judas
would be without excuse.

Instead of walking in the light, Judas chose to retain his defects. Evil
desires, revengeful passions, dark and sullen thoughts, were cherished,
until Satan had full control of the man. Judas became a representative of
the enemy of Christ.

When he came into association with Jesus, he had some precious traits of
character that might have been made a blessing to the church. If he had been
willing to wear the yoke of Christ, he might have been among the chief of
the apostles; but he hardened his heart when his defects were pointed out,
and in pride and rebellion chose his own selfish ambitions, and thus
unfitted himself for the work that God would have given him to do.

All the disciples had serious faults when Jesus called them to His service.
Even John, who came into closest association with the meek and lowly One,
was not himself naturally meek and yielding. He and his brother were called
"the sons of thunder." While they were with Jesus, any slight shown to Him
aroused their indignation and combativeness. Evil temper, revenge, the
spirit of criticism, were all in the beloved disciple. He was proud, and
ambitious to be first in the kingdom of God. But day by day, in contrast
with his own violent spirit, he beheld the tenderness and forbearance of
Jesus, and heard His lessons of humility and patience. He opened his heart
to the divine influence,

296

and became not only a hearer but a doer of the Saviour's words. Self was hid
in Christ. He learned to wear the yoke of Christ and to bear His burden.

Jesus reproved His disciples, He warned and cautioned them; but John and his
brethren did not leave Him; they chose Jesus, notwithstanding the reproofs.
The Saviour did not withdraw from them because of their weakness and errors.
They continued to the end to share His trials and to learn the lessons of
His life. By beholding Christ, they became transformed in character.

The apostles differed widely in habits and disposition. There were the
publican, Levi-Matthew, and the fiery zealot Simon, the uncompromising hater
of the authority of Rome; the generous, impulsive Peter, and the
mean-spirited Judas; Thomas, truehearted, yet timid and fearful, Philip,
slow of heart, and inclined to doubt, and the ambitious, outspoken sons of
Zebedee, with their brethren. These were brought together, with their
different faults, all with inherited and cultivated tendencies to evil; but
in and through Christ they were to dwell in the family of God, learning to
become one in faith, in doctrine, in spirit. They would have their tests,
their grievances, their differences of opinion; but while Christ was abiding
in the heart, there could be no dissension. His love would lead to love for
one another; the lessons of the Master would lead to the harmonizing of all
differences, bringing the disciples into unity, till they would be of one
mind and one judgment. Christ is the great center, and they would approach
one another just in proportion as they approached the center.

When Jesus had ended His instruction to the disciples, He gathered the
little band close about Him, and kneeling in the midst of them, and laying
His hands upon their heads, He offered a prayer dedicating them to His
sacred work. Thus the Lord's disciples were ordained to the gospel ministry.

As His representatives among men, Christ does not choose angels who have
never fallen, but human beings, men of like passions with those they seek to
save. Christ took upon Himself humanity, that He might reach humanity.
Divinity needed humanity; for it required both the divine and the human to
bring salvation to the world. Divinity needed humanity, that humanity might
afford a channel of communication between God and man. So with the servants
and messengers of Christ. Man needs a power outside of and beyond himself,
to restore him to the likeness of God, and enable him to do the work of God;
but this

                                                                     297

does not make the human agency unessential. Humanity lays hold upon divine
power, Christ dwells in the heart by faith; and through co-operation with
the divine, the power of man becomes efficient for good.

He who called the fisherman of Galilee is still calling men to His service.
And He is just as willing to manifest His power through us as through the
first disciples. However imperfect and sinful we may be, the Lord holds out
to us the offer of partnership with Himself, of apprenticeship to Christ. He
invites us to come under the divine instruction, that, uniting with Christ,
we may work the works of God.

"We have this treasure in earthen vessels, that the exceeding greatness of
the power may be of God, and not from ourselves." 2 Cor. 4:7, R. V. This is
why the preaching of the gospel was committed to erring men rather than to
the angels. It is manifest that the power which works through the weakness
of humanity is the power of God; and thus we are encouraged to believe that
the power which can help others as weak as ourselves can help us. And those
who are themselves "compassed with infirmity" should be able to "have
compassion on the ignorant, and on them that are out of the way." Heb. 5:2.
Having been in peril themselves, they are acquainted with the dangers and
difficulties of the way, and for this reason are called to reach out for
others in like peril. There are souls perplexed with doubt, burdened with
infirmities, weak in faith, and unable to grasp the Unseen; but a friend
whom they can see, coming to them in Christ's stead, can be a connecting
link to fasten their trembling faith upon Christ.

We are to be laborers together with the heavenly angels in presenting Jesus
to the world. With almost impatient eagerness the angels wait for our
co-operation; for man must be the channel to communicate with man. And when
we give ourselves to Christ in wholehearted devotion, angels rejoice that
they may speak through our voices to reveal God's love.




(298)

                             Chapter 31

                             The Sermon on the Mount


Christ seldom gathered His disciples alone to receive His words. He did not
choose for His audience those only who knew the way of life. It was His work
to reach the multitudes who were in ignorance and error. He gave His lessons
of truth where they could reach the darkened understanding. He Himself was
the Truth, standing with girded loins and hands ever outstretched to bless,
and in words of warning, entreaty, and encouragement, seeking to uplift all
who would come unto Him.

The Sermon on the Mount, though given especially to the disciples, was
spoken in the hearing of the multitude. After the ordination of the
apostles, Jesus went with them to the seaside. Here in the early morning the
people had begun to assemble. Besides the usual crowds from the Galilean
towns, there were people from Judea, and even from Jerusalem itself; from
Perea, from Decapolis, from Idumea, away to the south of Judea; and from
Tyre and Sidon, the Phoenician cities on the shore of the Mediterranean.
"When they had heard what great things He did," they "came to hear Him, and
to be healed of their diseases: . . . there went virtue out of Him, and
healed them all." Mark 3:8; Luke 6:17-19.

The narrow beach did not afford even standing room within reach of His voice
for all who desired to hear Him, and Jesus led the way back to the
mountainside. Reaching a level space that offered a pleasant gathering place
for the vast assembly, He seated Himself on the grass, and the disciples and
the multitude followed His example.

                                                                     299


The disciples' place was always next to Jesus. The people constantly pressed
upon Him, yet the disciples understood that they were not to be crowded away
from His presence. They sat close beside Him, that they might not lose a
word of His instruction. They were attentive listeners, eager to understand
the truths they were to make known to all lands and all ages.

With a feeling that something more than usual might be expected, they now
pressed about their Master. They believed that the kingdom was soon to be
established, and from the events of the morning they gathered assurance that
some announcement concerning it was about to be made. A feeling of
expectancy pervaded the multitude also, and eager faces gave evidence of the
deep interest. As the people sat upon the green hillside, awaiting the words
of the divine Teacher, their hearts were filled with thoughts of future
glory. There were scribes and Pharisees who looked forward to the day when
they should have dominion over the hated Romans, and possess the riches and
splendor of the world's great empire. The poor peasants and fishermen hoped
to hear the assurance that their wretched hovels, the scanty food, the life
of toil, and fear of want were to be exchanged for mansions of plenty and
days of ease. In place of the one coarse garment which was their covering by
day, and their blanket at night, they hoped that Christ would give them the
rich and costly robes of their conquerors. All hearts thrilled with the
proud hope that Israel was soon to be honored before the nations as the
chosen of the Lord, and Jerusalem exalted as the head of a universal
kingdom.

Christ disappointed the hope of worldly greatness. In the Sermon on the
Mount He sought to undo the work that had been wrought by false education,
and to give His hearers a right conception of His kingdom and of His own
character. Yet He did not make a direct attack on the errors of the people.
He saw the misery of the world on account of sin, yet He did not present
before them a vivid delineation of their wretchedness. He taught them of
something infinitely better than they had known. Without combating their
ideas of the kingdom of God, He told them the conditions of entrance
therein, leaving them to draw their own conclusions as to its nature. The
truths He taught are no less important to us than to the multitude that
followed Him. We no less than they need to learn the foundation principles
of the kingdom of God.

Christ's first words to the people on the mount were words of blessing.
Happy are they, He said, who recognize their spiritual poverty, and

300

feel their need of redemption. The gospel is to be preached to the poor. Not
to the spiritually proud, those who claim to be rich and in need of nothing,
is it revealed, but to those who are humble and contrite. One fountain only
has been opened for sin, a fountain for the poor in spirit.

The proud heart strives to earn salvation; but both our title to heaven and
our fitness for it are found in the righteousness of Christ. The Lord can do
nothing toward the recovery of man until, convinced of his own weakness, and
stripped of all self-sufficiency, he yields himself to the control of God.
Then he can receive the gift that God is waiting to bestow. From the soul
that feels his need, nothing is withheld. He has unrestricted access to Him
in whom all fullness dwells. "For thus saith the high and lofty One that
inhabiteth eternity, whose name is Holy; I dwell in the high and holy place,
with him also that is of a contrite and humble spirit, to revive the spirit
of the humble, and to revive the heart of the contrite ones." Isa. 57:15.

"Blessed are they that mourn: for they shall be comforted." By these words
Christ does not teach that mourning in itself has power to remove the guilt
of sin. He gives no sanction to pretense or to voluntary humility. The
mourning of which He speaks does not consist in melancholy and lamentation.
While we sorrow on account of sin, we are to rejoice in the precious
privilege of being children of God.

We often sorrow because our evil deeds bring unpleasant consequences to
ourselves; but this is not repentance. Real sorrow for sin is the result of
the working of the Holy Spirit. The Spirit reveals the ingratitude of the
heart that has slighted and grieved the Saviour, and brings us in contrition
to the foot of the cross. By every sin Jesus is wounded afresh; and as we
look upon Him whom we have pierced, we mourn for the sins that have brought
anguish upon Him. Such mourning will lead to the renunciation of sin.

The worldling may pronounce this sorrow a weakness; but it is the strength
which binds the penitent to the Infinite One with links that cannot be
broken. It shows that the angels of God are bringing back to the soul the
graces that were lost through hardness of heart and transgression. The tears
of the penitent are only the raindrops that precede the sunshine of
holiness. This sorrow heralds a joy which will be a living fountain in the
soul. "Only acknowledge thine iniquity, that thou hast transgressed against
the Lord thy God;" "and I will not cause Mine anger to fall upon you: for I
am merciful, saith the Lord." Jer. 3:13, 12. "Unto them that mourn in Zion,"
He has appointed to give

                                                                     301

"beauty for ashes, the oil of joy for mourning, the garment of praise for
the spirit of heaviness." Isa. 61:3.

And for those also who mourn in trial and sorrow there is comfort. The
bitterness of grief and humiliation is better than the indulgences of sin.
Through affliction God reveals to us the plague spots in our characters,
that by His grace we may overcome our faults. Unknown chapters in regard to
ourselves are opened to us, and the test comes, whether we will accept the
reproof and the counsel of God. When brought into trial, we are not to fret
and complain. We should not rebel, or worry ourselves out of the hand of
Christ. We are to humble the soul before God. The ways of the Lord are
obscure to him who desires to see things in a light pleasing to himself.
They appear dark and joyless to our human nature. But God's ways are ways of
mercy and the end is salvation. Elijah knew not what he was doing when in
the desert he said that he had had enough of life, and prayed that he might
die. The Lord in His mercy did not take him at his word. There was yet a
great work for Elijah to do; and when his work was done, he was not to
perish in discouragement and solitude in the wilderness. Not for him the
descent into the dust of death, but the ascent in glory, with the convoy of
celestial chariots, to the throne on high.

God's word for the sorrowing is, "I have seen his ways, and will heal him: I
will lead him also, and restore comforts unto him and to his mourners." "I
will turn their mourning into joy, and will comfort them, and make them
rejoice from their sorrow." Isa. 57:18; Jer. 31:13.

"Blessed are the meek." The difficulties we have to encounter may be very
much lessened by that meekness which hides itself in Christ. If we possess
the humility of our Master, we shall rise above the slights, the rebuffs,
the annoyances, to which we are daily exposed, and they will cease to cast a
gloom over the spirit. The highest evidence of nobility in a Christian is
self-control. He who under abuse or cruelty fails to maintain a calm and
trustful spirit robs God of His right to reveal in him His own perfection of
character. Lowliness of heart is the strength that gives victory to the
followers of Christ; it is the token of their connection with the courts
above.

"Though the Lord be high, yet hath He respect unto the lowly." Ps. 138:6.
Those who reveal the meek and lowly spirit of Christ are tenderly regarded
by God. They may be looked upon with scorn by the world, but they are of
great value in His sight. Not only the wise, the great, the beneficent, will
gain a passport to the heavenly courts; not only

302

the busy worker, full of zeal and restless activity. No; the poor in spirit,
who crave the presence of an abiding Christ, the humble in heart, whose
highest ambition is to do God's will,--these will gain an abundant entrance.
They will be among that number who have washed their robes and made them
white in the blood of the Lamb. "Therefore are they before the throne of
God, and serve Him day and night in His temple: and He that sitteth on the
throne shall dwell among them." Rev. 7:15.

"Blessed are they which do hunger and thirst after righteousness." The sense
of unworthiness will lead the heart to hunger and thirst for righteousness,
and this desire will not be disappointed. Those who make room in their
hearts for Jesus will realize His love. All who long to bear the likeness of
the character of God shall be satisfied. The Holy Spirit never leaves
unassisted the soul who is looking unto Jesus. He takes of the things of
Christ and shows them unto him. If the eye is kept fixed on Christ, the work
of the Spirit ceases not until the soul is conformed to His image. The pure
element of love will expand the soul, giving it a capacity for higher
attainments, for increased knowledge of heavenly things, so that it will not
rest short of the fullness. "Blessed are they which do hunger and thirst
after righteousness; for they shall be filled."

The merciful shall find mercy, and the pure in heart shall see God. Every
impure thought defiles the soul, impairs the moral sense, and tends to
obliterate the impressions of the Holy Spirit. It dims the spiritual vision,
so that men cannot behold God. The Lord may and does forgive the repenting
sinner; but though forgiven, the soul is marred. All impurity of speech or
of thought must be shunned by him who would have clear discernment of
spiritual truth.

But the words of Christ cover more than freedom from sensual impurity, more
than freedom from that ceremonial defilement which the Jews so rigorously
shunned. Selfishness prevents us from beholding God. The self-seeking spirit
judges of God as altogether such a one as itself. Until we have renounced
this, we cannot understand Him who is love. Only the unselfish heart, the
humble and trustful spirit, shall see God as "merciful and gracious,
long-suffering, and abundant in goodness and truth." Ex. 34:6.

"Blessed are the peacemakers." The peace of Christ is born of truth. It is
harmony with God. The world is at enmity with the law of God;

                                                                     305

sinners are at enmity with their Maker; and as a result they are at enmity
with one another. But the psalmist declares, "Great peace have they which
love Thy law: and nothing shall offend them." Ps. 119:165. Men cannot
manufacture peace. Human plans for the purification and uplifting of
individuals or of society will fail of producing peace, because they do not
reach the heart. The only power that can create or perpetuate true peace is
the grace of Christ. When this is implanted in the heart, it will cast out
the evil passions that cause strife and dissension. "Instead of the thorn
shall come up the fir tree, and instead of the brier shall come up the
myrtle tree;" and life's desert "shall rejoice, and blossom as the rose."
Isa. 55:13; 35:1.

The multitudes were amazed at this teaching, which was so at variance with
the precepts and example of the Pharisees. The people had come to think that
happiness consisted in the possession of the things of this world, and that
fame and the honor of men were much to be coveted. It was very pleasing to
be called "Rabbi," and to be extolled as wise and religious, having their
virtues paraded before the public. This was regarded as the crown of
happiness. But in the presence of that vast throng, Jesus declared that
earthly gain and honor were all the reward such persons would ever receive.
He spoke with certainty, and a convincing power attended His words. The
people were silenced, and a feeling of fear crept over them. They looked at
one another doubtfully. Who of them would be saved if this Man's teachings
were true? Many were convicted that this remarkable Teacher was actuated by
the Spirit of God, and that the sentiments He uttered were divine.

After explaining what constitutes true happiness, and how it may be
obtained, Jesus more definitely pointed out the duty of His disciples, as
teachers chosen of God to lead others into the path of righteousness and
eternal life. He knew that they would often suffer from disappointment and
discouragement, that they would meet with decided opposition, that they
would be insulted, and their testimony rejected. Well He knew that in the
fulfillment of their mission, the humble men who listened so attentively to
His words were to bear calumny, torture, imprisonment, and death, and He
continued:

"Blessed are they which are persecuted for righteousness' sake: for theirs
is the kingdom of heaven. Blessed are ye, when men shall revile you, and
persecute you, and shall say all manner of evil against you falsely, for My
sake. Rejoice, and be exceeding glad: for great is your

306

reward in heaven: for so persecuted they the prophets which were before
you."

The world loves sin, and hates righteousness, and this was the cause of its
hostility to Jesus. All who refuse His infinite love will find Christianity
a disturbing element. The light of Christ sweeps away the darkness that
covers their sins, and the need of reform is made manifest. While those who
yield to the influence of the Holy Spirit begin war with themselves, those
who cling to sin war against the truth and its representatives.

Thus strife is created, and Christ's followers are accused as troublers of
the people. But it is fellowship with God that brings them the world's
enmity. They are bearing the reproach of Christ. They are treading the path
that has been trodden by the noblest of the earth. Not with sorrow, but with
rejoicing, should they meet persecution. Each fiery trial is God's agent for
their refining. Each is fitting them for their work as colaborers with Him.
Each conflict has its place in the great battle for righteousness, and each
will add to the joy of their final triumph. Having this in view, the test of
their faith and patience will be cheerfully accepted rather than dreaded and
avoided. Anxious to fulfill their obligation to the world, fixing their
desire upon the approval of God, His servants are to fulfill every duty,
irrespective of the fear or the favor of men.

"Ye are the salt of the earth," Jesus said. Do not withdraw yourselves from
the world in order to escape persecution. You are to abide among men, that
the savor of the divine love may be as salt to preserve the world from
corruption.

Hearts that respond to the influence of the Holy Spirit are the channels
through which God's blessing flows. Were those who serve God removed from
the earth, and His Spirit withdrawn from among men, this world would be left
to desolation and destruction, the fruit of Satan's dominion. Though the
wicked know it not, they owe even the blessings of this life to the
presence, in the world, of God's people whom they despise and oppress. But
if Christians are such in name only, they are like the salt that has lost
its savor. They have no influence for good in the world. Through their
misrepresentation of God they are worse than unbelievers.

"Ye are the light of the world." The Jews thought to confine the benefits of
salvation to their own nation; but Christ showed them that

                                                                     307

salvation is like the sunshine. It belongs to the whole world. The religion
of the Bible is not to be confined between the covers of a book, nor within
the walls of a church. It is not to be brought out occasionally for our own
benefit, and then to be carefully laid aside again. It is to sanctify the
daily life, to manifest itself in every business transaction and in all our
social relations.

True character is not shaped from without, and put on; it radiates from
within. If we wish to direct others in the path of righteousness, the
principles of righteousness must be enshrined in our own hearts. Our
profession of faith may proclaim the theory of religion, but it is our
practical piety that holds forth the word of truth. The consistent life, the
holy conversation, the unswerving integrity, the active, benevolent spirit,
the godly example,--these are the mediums through which light is conveyed to
the world.

Jesus had not dwelt on the specifications of the law, but He did not leave
His hearers to conclude that He had come to set aside its requirements. He
knew that spies stood ready to seize upon every word that might be wrested
to serve their purpose. He knew the prejudice that existed in the minds of
many of His hearers, and He said nothing to unsettle their faith in the
religion and institutions that had been committed to them through Moses.
Christ Himself had given both the moral and the ceremonial law. He did not
come to destroy confidence in His own instruction. It was because of His
great reverence for the law and the prophets that He sought to break through
the wall of traditional requirements which hemmed in the Jews. While He set
aside their false interpretations of the law, He carefully guarded His
disciples against yielding up the vital truths committed to the Hebrews.

The Pharisees prided themselves on their obedience to the law; yet they knew
so little of its principles through everyday practice that to them the
Saviour's words sounded like heresy. As He swept away the rubbish under
which the truth had been buried, they thought He was sweeping away the truth
itself. They whispered to one another that He was making light of the law.
He read their thoughts, and answered them, saying,--

"Think not that I am come to destroy the law, or the prophets: I am not come
to destroy, but to fulfill." Here Jesus refutes the charge of the Pharisees.
His mission to the world is to vindicate the sacred claims of that law which
they charge Him with breaking. If the law

308

of God could have been changed or abrogated, then Christ need not have
suffered the consequences of our transgression. He came to explain the
relation of the law to man, and to illustrate its precepts by His own life
of obedience.

God has given us His holy precepts, because He loves mankind. To shield us
from the results of transgression, He reveals the principles of
righteousness. The law is an expression of the thought of God; when received
in Christ, it becomes our thought. It lifts us above the power of natural
desires and tendencies, above temptations that lead to sin. God desires us
to be happy, and He gave us the precepts of the law that in obeying them we
might have joy. When at Jesus' birth the angels sang,--

        "Glory to God in the highest,
         And on earth peace, good will toward men" (Luke 2:14),

they were declaring the principles of the law which He had come to magnify
and make honorable.

When the law was proclaimed from Sinai, God made known to men the holiness
of His character, that by contrast they might see the sinfulness of their
own. The law was given to convict them of sin, and reveal their need of a
Saviour. It would do this as its principles were applied to the heart by the
Holy Spirit. This work it is still to do. In the life of Christ the
principles of the law are made plain; and as the Holy Spirit of God touches
the heart, as the light of Christ reveals to men their need of His cleansing
blood and His justifying righteousness, the law is still an agent in
bringing us to Christ, that we may be justified by faith. "The law of the
Lord is perfect, converting the soul." Ps. 19:7.

"Till heaven and earth pass," said Jesus, "one jot or one tittle shall in
nowise pass from the law, till all be fulfilled." The sun shining in the
heavens, the solid earth upon which you dwell, are God's witnesses that His
law is changeless and eternal. Though they may pass away, the divine
precepts shall endure. "It is easier for heaven and earth to pass, than one
tittle of the law to fail." Luke 16:17. The system of types that pointed to
Jesus as the Lamb of God was to be abolished at His death; but the precepts
of the Decalogue are as immutable as the throne of God.

Since "the law of the Lord is perfect," every variation from it must be
evil. Those who disobey the commandments of God, and teach others

                                                                     309

to do so, are condemned by Christ. The Saviour's life of obedience
maintained the claims of the law; it proved that the law could be kept in
humanity, and showed the excellence of character that obedience would
develop. All who obey as He did are likewise declaring that the law is
"holy, and just, and good." Rom. 7:12. On the other hand, all who break
God's commandments are sustaining Satan's claim that the law is unjust, and
cannot be obeyed. Thus they second the deceptions of the great adversary,
and cast dishonor upon God. They are the children of the wicked one, who was
the first rebel against God's law. To admit them into heaven would again
bring in the elements of discord and rebellion, and imperil the well-being
of the universe. No man who willfully disregards one principle of the law
shall enter the kingdom of heaven.

The rabbis counted their righteousness a passport to heaven; but Jesus
declared it to be insufficient and unworthy. External ceremonies and a
theoretical knowledge of truth constituted Pharisaical righteousness. The
rabbis claimed to be holy through their own efforts in keeping the law; but
their works had divorced righteousness from religion. While they were
punctilious in ritual observances, their lives were immoral and debased.
Their so-called righteousness could never enter the kingdom of heaven.

The greatest deception of the human mind in Christ's day was that a mere
assent to the truth constitutes righteousness. In all human experience a
theoretical knowledge of the truth has been proved to be insufficient for
the saving of the soul. It does not bring forth the fruits of righteousness.
A jealous regard for what is termed theological truth often accompanies a
hatred of genuine truth as made manifest in life. The darkest chapters of
history are burdened with the record of crimes committed by bigoted
religionists. The Pharisees claimed to be children of Abraham, and boasted
of their possession of the oracles of God; yet these advantages did not
preserve them from selfishness, malignity, greed for gain, and the basest
hypocrisy. They thought themselves the greatest religionists of the world,
but their so-called orthodoxy led them to crucify the Lord of glory.

The same danger still exists. Many take it for granted that they are
Christians, simply because they subscribe to certain theological tenets. But
they have not brought the truth into practical life. They have not believed
and loved it, therefore they have not received the power and

310

grace that come through sanctification of the truth. Men may profess faith
in the truth; but if it does not make them sincere, kind, patient,
forbearing, heavenly-minded, it is a curse to its possessors, and through
their influence it is a curse to the world.

The righteousness which Christ taught is conformity of heart and life to the
revealed will of God. Sinful men can become righteous only as they have
faith in God and maintain a vital connection with Him. Then true godliness
will elevate the thoughts and ennoble the life. Then the external forms of
religion accord with the Christian's internal purity. Then the ceremonies
required in the service of God are not meaningless rites, like those of the
hypocritical Pharisees.

Jesus takes up the commandments separately, and explains the depth and
breadth of their requirement. Instead of removing one jot of their force, He
shows how far-reaching their principles are, and exposes the fatal mistake
of the Jews in their outward show of obedience. He declares that by the evil
thought or the lustful look the law of God is transgressed. One who becomes
a party to the least injustice is breaking the law and degrading his own
moral nature. Murder first exists in the mind. He who gives hatred a place
in his heart is setting his feet in the path of the murderer, and his
offerings are abhorrent to God.

The Jews cultivated a spirit of retaliation. In their hatred of the Romans
they gave utterance to hard denunciations, and pleased the wicked one by
manifesting his attributes. Thus they were training themselves to do the
terrible deeds to which he led them on. In the religious life of the
Pharisees there was nothing to recommend piety to the Gentiles. Jesus bade
them not to deceive themselves with the thought that they could in heart
rise up against their oppressors, and cherish the longing to avenge their
wrongs.

It is true there is an indignation that is justifiable, even in the
followers of Christ. When they see that God is dishonored, and His service
brought into disrepute, when they see the innocent oppressed, a righteous
indignation stirs the soul. Such anger, born of sensitive morals, is not a
sin. But those who at any supposed provocation feel at liberty to indulge
anger or resentment are opening the heart to Satan. Bitterness and animosity
must be banished from the soul if we would be in harmony with heaven.

The Saviour goes farther than this. He says, "If thou bring thy gift to the
altar, and there rememberest that thy brother hath aught against thee; leave
there thy gift before the altar, and go thy way; first be

                                                                     311

reconciled to thy brother, and then come and offer thy gift." Many are
zealous in religious services, while between them and their brethren are
unhappy differences which they might reconcile. God requires them to do all
in their power to restore harmony. Until they do this, He cannot accept
their services. The Christian's duty in this matter is clearly pointed out.

God pours His blessings upon all. "He maketh His sun to rise on the evil and
on the good, and sendeth rain on the just and on the unjust." He is "kind
unto the unthankful and to the evil." Luke 6:35. He bids us to be like Him.
"Bless them that curse you," said Jesus; "do good to them that hate you, . .
that ye may be the children of your Father which is in heaven." These are
the principles of the law, and they are the wellsprings of life.

God's ideal for His children is higher than the highest human thought can
reach. "Be ye therefore perfect, even as your Father which is in heaven is
perfect." This command is a promise. The plan of redemption contemplates our
complete recovery from the power of Satan. Christ always separates the
contrite soul from sin. He came to destroy the works of the devil, and He
has made provision that the Holy Spirit shall be imparted to every repentant
soul, to keep him from sinning.

The tempter's agency is not to be accounted an excuse for one wrong act.
Satan is jubilant when he hears the professed followers of Christ making
excuses for their deformity of character. It is these excuses that lead to
sin. There is no excuse for sinning. A holy temper, a Christlike life, is
accessible to every repenting, believing child of God.

The ideal of Christian character is Christlikeness. As the Son of man was
perfect in His life, so His followers are to be perfect in their life. Jesus
was in all things made like unto His brethren. He became flesh, even as we
are. He was hungry and thirsty and weary. He was sustained by food and
refreshed by sleep. He shared the lot of man; yet He was the blameless Son
of God. He was God in the flesh. His character is to be ours. The Lord says
of those who believe in Him, "I will dwell in them, and walk in them; and I
will be their God, and they shall be My people." 2 Cor. 6:16.

Christ is the ladder that Jacob saw, the base resting on the earth, and the
topmost round reaching to the gate of heaven, to the very threshold of
glory. If that ladder had failed by a single step of reaching the earth, we
should have been lost. But Christ reaches us where we are. He took our
nature and overcame, that we through taking His

312

nature might overcome. Made "in the likeness of sinful flesh" (Rom. 8:3), He
lived a sinless life. Now by His divinity He lays hold upon the throne of
heaven, while by His humanity He reaches us. He bids us by faith in Him
attain to the glory of the character of God. Therefore are we to be perfect,
even as our "Father which is in heaven is perfect."

Jesus had shown in what righteousness consists, and had pointed to God as
its source. Now He turned to practical duties. In almsgiving, in prayer, in
fasting, He said, let nothing be done to attract attention or win praise to
self. Give in sincerity, for the benefit of the suffering poor. In prayer,
let the soul commune with God. In fasting, go not with the head bowed down,
and heart filled with thoughts of self. The heart of the Pharisee is a
barren and profitless soil, in which no seeds of divine life can flourish.
It is he who yields himself most unreservedly to God that will render Him
the most acceptable service. For through fellowship with God men become
workers together with Him in presenting His character in humanity.

The service rendered in sincerity of heart has great recompense. "Thy Father
which seeth in secret Himself shall reward thee openly." By the life we live
through the grace of Christ the character is formed. The original loveliness
begins to be restored to the soul. The attributes of the character of Christ
are imparted, and the image of the Divine begins to shine forth. The faces
of men and women who walk and work with God express the peace of heaven.
They are surrounded with the atmosphere of heaven. For these souls the
kingdom of God has begun. They have Christ's joy, the joy of being a
blessing to humanity. They have the honor of being accepted for the Master's
use; they are trusted to do His work in His name.

"No man can serve two masters." We cannot serve God with a divided heart.
Bible religion is not one influence among many others; its influence is to
be supreme, pervading and controlling every other. It is not to be like a
dash of color brushed here and there upon the canvas, but it is to pervade
the whole life, as if the canvas were dipped into the color, until every
thread of the fabric were dyed a deep, unfading hue.

"If therefore thine eye be single, thy whole body shall be full of light.
But if thine eye be evil, thy whole body shall be full of darkness." Purity
and steadfastness of purpose are the conditions of receiving light from God.
He who desires to know the truth must be willing to accept all that it
reveals. He can make no compromise with error. To be

                                                                     313

wavering and halfhearted in allegiance to truth is to choose the darkness of
error and satanic delusion.

Worldly policy and the undeviating principles of righteousness do not blend
into each other imperceptibly, like the colors of the rainbow. Between the
two a broad, clear line is drawn by the eternal God. The likeness of Christ
stands out as distinct from that of Satan as midday in contrast with
midnight. And only those who live the life of Christ are His co-workers. If
one sin is cherished in the soul, or one wrong practice retained in the
life, the whole being is contaminated. The man becomes an instrument of
unrighteousness.

All who have chosen God's service are to rest in His care. Christ pointed to
the birds flying in the heavens, to the flowers of the field, and bade His
hearers consider these objects of God's creation. "Are not ye of much more
value than they?" He said. Matt. 6:26, R. V. The measure of divine attention
bestowed on any object is proportionate to its rank in the scale of being.
The little brown sparrow is watched over by Providence. The flowers of the
field, the grass that carpets the earth, share the notice and care of our
heavenly Father. The great Master Artist has taken thought for the lilies,
making them so beautiful that they outshine the glory of Solomon. How much
more does He care for man, who is the image and glory of God. He longs to
see His children reveal a character after His similitude. As the sunbeam
imparts to the flowers their varied and delicate tints, so does God impart
to the soul the beauty of His own character.

All who choose Christ's kingdom of love and righteousness and peace, making
its interest paramount to all other, are linked to the world above, and
every blessing needed for this life is theirs. In the book of God's
providence, the volume of life, we are each given a page. That page contains
every particular of our history; even the hairs of the head are numbered.
God's children are never absent from His mind.

"Be not therefore anxious for the morrow." Matt. 6:34, R. V. We are to
follow Christ day by day. God does not bestow help for tomorrow. He does not
give His children all the directions for their life journey at once, lest
they should become confused. He tells them just as much as they can remember
and perform. The strength and wisdom imparted are for the present emergency.
"If any of you lack wisdom,"--for today,--"let him ask of God, that giveth
to all men liberally, and upbraideth not; and it shall be given him." James
1:5.

314


"Judge not, that ye be not judged." Do not think yourself better than other
men, and set yourself up as their judge. Since you cannot discern motive,
you are incapable of judging another. In criticizing him, you are passing
sentence upon yourself; for you show that you are a participant with Satan,
the accuser of the brethren. The Lord says, "Examine yourselves, whether ye
be in the faith; prove your own selves." This is our work. "If we would
judge ourselves, we should not be judged." 2 Cor. 13:5; 1 Cor. 11:31.

The good tree will produce good fruit. If the fruit is unpalatable and
worthless, the tree is evil. So the fruit borne in the life testifies as to
the condition of the heart and the excellence of the character. Good works
can never purchase salvation, but they are an evidence of the faith that
acts by love and purifies the soul. And though the eternal reward is not
bestowed because of our merit, yet it will be in proportion to the work that
has been done through the grace of Christ.

Thus Christ set forth the principles of His kingdom, and showed them to be
the great rule of life. To impress the lesson He adds an illustration. It is
not enough, He says, for you to hear My words. By obedience you must make
them the foundation of your character. Self is but shifting sand. If you
build upon human theories and inventions, your house will fall. By the winds
of temptation, the tempests of trial, it will be swept away. But these
principles that I have given will endure. Receive Me; build on My words.

"Everyone therefore which heareth these words of Mine, and doeth them, shall
be likened unto a wise man, which built his house upon the rock: and the
rain descended, and the floods came, and the winds blew, and beat upon that
house; and it fell not: for it was founded upon the rock." Matt. 7:24, 25,
R.V.




                                                                     (315)

                             Chapter 32

                             The Centurion


Christ had said to the nobleman whose son He healed, "Except ye see signs
and wonders, ye will not believe." John 4:48. He was grieved that His own
nation should require these outward signs of His Messiahship. Again and
again He had marveled at their unbelief. But He marveled at the faith of the
centurion who came to Him. The centurion did not question the Saviour's
power. He did not even ask Him to come in person to perform the miracle.
"Speak the word only," he said, "and my servant shall be healed."

The centurion's servant had been stricken with palsy, and lay at the point
of death. Among the Romans the servants were slaves, bought and sold in the
market places, and treated with abuse and cruelty; but the centurion was
tenderly attached to his servant, and greatly desired his recovery. He
believed that Jesus could heal him. He had not seen the Saviour, but the
reports he heard had inspired him with faith. Notwithstanding the formalism
of the Jews, this Roman was convinced that their religion was superior to
his own. Already he had broken through the barriers of national prejudice
and hatred that separated the conquerors from the conquered people. He had
manifested respect for the service of God, and had shown kindness to the
Jews as His worshipers. In the teaching of Christ, as it had been reported
to him, he found that which met the need of the soul. All that was spiritual
within him responded to the Saviour's words. But he felt unworthy to come
into the presence of Jesus, and he appealed to the Jewish elders to make
request for the healing of his servant. They were acquainted with the

316

Great Teacher, and would, he thought, know how to approach Him so as to win
His favor.

As Jesus entered Capernaum, He was met by a delegation of the elders, who
told Him of the centurion's desire. They urged "that he was worthy for whom
He should do this: for he loveth our nation, and he hath built us a
synagogue."

Jesus immediately set out for the officer's home; but, pressed by the
multitude, He advanced slowly. The news of His coming preceded Him, and the
centurion, in his self-distrust, sent Him the message, "Lord, trouble not
Thyself: for I am not worthy that Thou shouldest enter under my roof." But
the Saviour kept on His way, and the centurion, venturing at last to
approach Him, completed the message, saying, "Neither thought I myself
worthy to come unto Thee;" "but speak the word only, and my servant shall be
healed. For I am a man under authority, having soldiers under me: and I say
to this man, Go, and he goeth; and to another, Come, and he cometh; and to
my servant, Do this, and he doeth it." As I represent the power of Rome, and
my soldiers recognize my authority as supreme, so dost Thou represent the
power of the Infinite God, and all created things obey Thy word. Thou canst
command the disease to depart, and it shall obey Thee. Thou canst summon Thy
heavenly messengers, and they shall impart healing virtue. Speak but the
word, and my servant shall be healed.

"When Jesus heard these things, He marveled at him, and turned Him about,
and said unto the people that followed Him, I say unto you, I have not found
so great faith, no, not in Israel." And to the centurion He said, "As thou
hast believed, so be it done unto thee. And his servant was healed in the
selfsame hour."

The Jewish elders who recommended the centurion to Christ had

                                                                     317

shown how far they were from possessing the spirit of the gospel. They did
not recognize that our great need is our only claim on God's mercy. In their
self-righteousness they commended the centurion because of the favor he had
shown to "our nation." But the centurion said of himself, "I am not worthy."
His heart had been touched by the grace of Christ. He saw his own
unworthiness; yet he feared not to ask help. He trusted not to his own
goodness; his argument was his great need. His faith took hold upon Christ
in His true character. He did not believe in Him merely as a worker of
miracles, but as the friend and Saviour of mankind.

It is thus that every sinner may come to Christ. "Not by works of
righteousness which we have done, but according to His mercy He saved us."
Titus 3:5. When Satan tells you that you are a sinner, and cannot hope to
receive blessing from God, tell him that Christ came into the world to save
sinners. We have nothing to recommend us to God; but the plea that we may
urge now and ever is our utterly helpless condition that makes His redeeming
power a necessity. Renouncing all self-dependence, we may look to the cross
of Calvary and say,--

             "In my hand no price I bring;
              Simply to Thy cross I cling."

The Jews had been instructed from childhood concerning the work of the
Messiah. The inspired utterances of patriarchs and prophets and the symbolic
teaching of the sacrificial service had been theirs. But they had
disregarded the light; and now they saw in Jesus nothing to be desired. But
the centurion, born in heathenism, educated in the idolatry of imperial
Rome, trained as a soldier, seemingly cut off from spiritual life by his
education and surroundings, and still further shut out by the bigotry of the
Jews, and by the contempt of his own countrymen for the people of
Israel,--this man perceived the truth to which the children of Abraham were
blinded. He did not wait to see whether the Jews themselves would receive
the One who claimed to be their Messiah. As the "light, which lighteth every
man that cometh into the world" (John 1:9) had shone upon him, he had,
though afar off, discerned the glory of the Son of God.

To Jesus this was an earnest of the work which the gospel was to accomplish
among the Gentiles. With joy He looked forward to the gathering of souls
from all nations to His kingdom. With deep sadness He pictured to the Jews
the result of their rejection of His grace: "I

318

say unto you, That many shall come from the east and west, and shall sit
down with Abraham, and Isaac, and Jacob, in the kingdom of heaven. But the
children of the kingdom shall be cast out into outer darkness: there shall
be weeping and gnashing of teeth." Alas, how many are still preparing for
the same fatal disappointment! While souls in heathen darkness accept His
grace, how many there are in Christian lands upon whom the light shines only
to be disregarded.

More than twenty miles from Capernaum, on a tableland overlooking the wide,
beautiful plain of Esdraelon, lay the village of Nain, and thither Jesus
next bent His steps. Many of His disciples and others were with Him, and all
along the way the people came, longing for His words of love and pity,
bringing their sick for His healing, and ever with the hope that He who
wielded such wondrous power would make Himself known as the King of Israel.
A multitude thronged His steps, and it was a glad, expectant company that
followed Him up the rocky path toward the gate of the mountain village.

As they draw near, a funeral train is seen coming from the gates. With slow,
sad steps it is proceeding to the place of burial. On an open bier carried
in front is the body of the dead, and about it are the mourners, filling the
air with their wailing cries. All the people of the town seem to have
gathered to show their respect for the dead and their sympathy with the
bereaved.

It was a sight to awaken sympathy. The deceased was the only son of his
mother, and she a widow. The lonely mourner was following to the grave her
sole earthly support and comfort. "When the Lord saw her, He had compassion
on her." As she moved on blindly, weeping, noting not His presence, He came
close beside her, and gently said, "Weep not." Jesus was about to change her
grief to joy, yet He could not forbear this expression of tender sympathy.

"He came and touched the bier;" to Him even contact with death could impart
no defilement. The bearers stood still, and the lamentations of the mourners
ceased. The two companies gathered about the bier, hoping against hope. One
was present who had banished disease and vanquished demons; was death also
subject to His power?

In clear, authoritative voice the words are spoken, "Young man, I say unto
thee, Arise." That voice pierces the ears of the dead. The young man opens
his eyes. Jesus takes him by the hand, and lifts him up. His gaze falls upon
her who has been weeping beside him, and mother and son unite in a long,
clinging, joyous embrace. The multitude

                                                                     319

look on in silence, as if spellbound. "There came a fear on all." Hushed and
reverent they stood for a little time, as if in the very presence of God.
Then they "glorified God, saying, That a great prophet is risen up among us;
and, That God hath visited His people." The funeral train returned to Nain
as a triumphal procession. "And this rumor of Him went forth throughout all
Judea, and throughout all the region round about."

He who stood beside the sorrowing mother at the gate of Nain, watches with
every mourning one beside the bier. He is touched with sympathy for our
grief. His heart, that loved and pitied, is a heart of unchangeable
tenderness. His word, that called the dead to life, is no less efficacious
now than when spoken to the young man of Nain. He says, "All power is given
unto Me in heaven and in earth." Matt. 28:18. That power is not diminished
by the lapse of years, nor exhausted by the ceaseless activity of His
overflowing grace. To all who believe on Him He is still a living Saviour.

320


Jesus changed the mother's grief to joy when He gave back her son; yet the
youth was but called forth to this earthly life, to endure its sorrows, its
toils, and its perils, and to pass again under the power of death. But Jesus
comforts our sorrow for the dead with a message of infinite hope: "I am He
that liveth, and was dead; and, behold, I am alive forevermore, . . . and
have the keys of hell and of death." "Forasmuch then as the children are
partakers of flesh and blood, He also Himself likewise took part of the
same; that through death He might destroy him that had the power of death,
that is, the devil; and deliver them who through fear of death were all
their lifetime subject to bondage." Rev. 1:18; Heb. 2:14, 15.

Satan cannot hold the dead in his grasp when the Son of God bids them live.
He cannot hold in spiritual death one soul who in faith receives Christ's
word of power. God is saying to all who are dead in sin, "Awake thou that
sleepest, and arise from the dead." Eph. 5:14. That word is eternal life. As
the word of God which bade the first man live, still gives us life; as
Christ's word, "Young man, I say unto thee, Arise," gave life to the youth
of Nain, so that word, "Arise from the dead," is life to the soul that
receives it. God "hath delivered us from the power of darkness, and hath
translated us into the kingdom of His dear Son." Col. 1:13. It is all
offered us in His word. If we receive the word, we have the deliverance.

And "if the Spirit of Him that raised up Jesus from the dead dwell in you,
He that raised up Christ from the dead shall also quicken your mortal bodies
by His Spirit that dwelleth in you." "For the Lord Himself shall descend
from heaven with a shout, with the voice of the Archangel, and with the
trump of God: and the dead in Christ shall rise first: then we which are
alive and remain shall be caught up together with them in the clouds, to
meet the Lord in the air: and so shall we ever be with the Lord." Rom. 8:11;
1 Thess. 4:16, 17. This is the word of comfort wherewith He bids us comfort
one another.




                                                                     (321)

                             Chapter 33

                             Who Are My Brethren?


The sons of Joseph were far from being in sympathy with Jesus in His work.
The reports that reached them in regard to His life and labors filled them
with astonishment and dismay. They heard that He devoted entire nights to
prayer, that through the day He was thronged by great companies of people,
and did not give Himself time so much as to eat. His friends felt that He
was wearing Himself out by His incessant labor; they were unable to account
for His attitude toward the Pharisees, and there were some who feared that
His reason was becoming unsettled.

His brothers heard of this, and also of the charge brought by the Pharisees
that He cast out devils through the power of Satan. They felt keenly the
reproach that came upon them through their relation to Jesus. They knew what
a tumult His words and works created, and were not only alarmed at His bold
statements, but indignant at His denunciation of the scribes and Pharisees.
They decided that He must be persuaded or constrained to cease this manner
of labor, and they induced Mary to unite with them, thinking that through
His love for her they might prevail upon Him to be more prudent.

It was just before this that Jesus had a second time performed the miracle
of healing a man possessed, blind and dumb, and the Pharisees had reiterated
the charge, "He casteth out devils through the prince of the devils." Matt.
9:34. Christ told them plainly that in attributing the

322

work of the Holy Spirit to Satan, they were cutting themselves off from the
fountain of blessing. Those who had spoken against Jesus Himself, not
discerning His divine character, might receive forgiveness; for through the
Holy Spirit they might be brought to see their error and repent. Whatever
the sin, if the soul repents and believes, the guilt is washed away in the
blood of Christ; but he who rejects the work of the Holy Spirit is placing
himself where repentance and faith cannot come to him. It is by the Spirit
that God works upon the heart; when men willfully reject the Spirit, and
declare It to be from Satan, they cut off the channel by which God can
communicate with them. When the Spirit is finally rejected, there is no more
that God can do for the soul.

The Pharisees to whom Jesus spoke this warning did not themselves believe
the charge they brought against Him. There was not one of those dignitaries
but had felt drawn toward the Saviour. They had heard the Spirit's voice in
their own hearts declaring Him to be the Anointed of Israel, and urging them
to confess themselves His disciples. In the light of His presence they had
realized their unholiness, and had longed for a righteousness which they
could not create. But after their rejection of Him it would be too
humiliating to receive Him as the Messiah. Having set their feet in the path
of unbelief, they were too proud to confess their error. And in order to
avoid acknowledging the truth, they tried with desperate violence to dispute
the Saviour's teaching. The evidence of His power and mercy exasperated
them. They could not prevent the Saviour from working miracles, they could
not silence His teaching; but they did everything in their power to
misrepresent Him and to falsify His words. Still the convicting Spirit of
God followed them, and they had to build up many barriers in order to
withstand its power. The mightiest agency that can be brought to bear upon
the human heart was striving with them, but they would not yield.

It is not God that blinds the eyes of men or hardens their hearts. He sends
them light to correct their errors, and to lead them in safe paths; it is by
the rejection of this light that the eyes are blinded and the heart
hardened. Often the process is gradual, and almost imperceptible. Light
comes to the soul through God's word, through His servants, or by the direct
agency of His Spirit; but when one ray of light is disregarded, there is a
partial benumbing of the spiritual perceptions, and the second revealing of
light is less clearly discerned. So the darkness increases, until it is
night in the soul. Thus it had been with

                                                                     323

these Jewish leaders. They were convinced that a divine power attended
Christ, but in order to resist the truth, they attributed the work of the
Holy Spirit to Satan. In doing this they deliberately chose deception; they
yielded themselves to Satan, and henceforth they were controlled by his
power.

Closely connected with Christ's warning in regard to the sin against the
Holy Spirit is a warning against idle and evil words. The words are an
indication of that which is in the heart. "Out of the abundance of the heart
the mouth speaketh." But the words are more than an indication of character;
they have power to react on the character. Men are influenced by their own
words. Often under a momentary impulse, prompted by Satan, they give
utterance to jealousy or evil surmising, expressing that which they do not
really believe; but the expression reacts on the thoughts. They are deceived
by their words, and come to believe that true which was spoken at Satan's
instigation. Having once expressed an opinion or decision, they are often
too proud to retract it, and try to prove themselves in the right, until
they come to believe that they are. It is dangerous to utter a word of
doubt, dangerous to question and criticize divine light. The habit of
careless and irreverent criticism reacts upon the character, in fostering
irreverence and unbelief. Many a man indulging this habit has gone on
unconscious of danger, until he was ready to criticize and reject the work
of the Holy Spirit. Jesus said, "Every idle word that men shall speak, they
shall give account thereof in the day of judgment. For by thy words thou
shalt be justified, and by thy words thou shalt be condemned."

Then He added a warning to those who had been impressed by His words, who
had heard Him gladly, but who had not surrendered themselves for the
indwelling of the Holy Spirit. It is not only by resistance but by neglect
that the soul is destroyed. "When the unclean spirit is gone out of a man,"
said Jesus, "he walketh through dry places, seeking rest, and findeth none.
Then he saith, I will return into my house from whence I came out; and when
he is come, he findeth it empty, swept, and garnished. Then goeth he, and
taketh with himself seven other spirits more wicked than himself, and they
enter in and dwell there."

There were many in Christ's day, as there are today, over whom the control
of Satan for the time seemed broken; through the grace of God they were set
free from the evil spirits that had held dominion over

324

the soul. They rejoiced in the love of God; but, like the stony-ground
hearers of the parable, they did not abide in His love. They did not
surrender themselves to God daily, that Christ might dwell in the heart; and
when the evil spirit returned, with "seven other spirits more wicked than
himself," they were wholly dominated by the power of evil.

When the soul surrenders itself to Christ, a new power takes possession of
the new heart. A change is wrought which man can never accomplish for
himself. It is a supernatural work, bringing a supernatural element into
human nature. The soul that is yielded to Christ becomes His own fortress,
which He holds in a revolted world, and He intends that no authority shall
be known in it but His own. A soul thus kept in possession by the heavenly
agencies is impregnable to the assaults of Satan. But unless we do yield
ourselves to the control of Christ, we shall be dominated by the wicked one.
We must inevitably be under the control of the one or the other of the two
great powers that are contending for the supremacy of the world. It is not
necessary for us deliberately to choose the service of the kingdom of
darkness in order to come under its dominion. We have only to neglect to
ally ourselves with the kingdom of light. If we do not co-operate with the
heavenly agencies, Satan will take possession of the heart, and will make it
his abiding place. The only defense against evil is the indwelling of Christ
in the heart through faith in His righteousness. Unless we become vitally
connected with God, we can never resist the unhallowed effects of self-love,
self-indulgence, and temptation to sin. We may leave off many bad habits,
for the time we may part company with Satan; but without a vital connection
with God, through the surrender of ourselves to Him moment by moment, we
shall be overcome. Without a personal acquaintance with Christ, and a
continual communion, we are at the mercy of the enemy, and shall do his
bidding in the end.

"The last state of that man is worse than the first. Even so," said Jesus,
"shall it be also unto this wicked generation." There are none so hardened
as those who have slighted the invitation of mercy, and done despite to the
Spirit of grace. The most common manifestation of the sin against the Holy
Spirit is in persistently slighting Heaven's invitation to repent. Every
step in the rejection of Christ is a step toward the rejection of salvation,
and toward the sin against the Holy Spirit.

In rejecting Christ the Jewish people committed the unpardonable sin; and by
refusing the invitation of mercy, we may commit the same

                                                                     325

error. We offer insult to the Prince of life, and put Him to shame before
the synagogue of Satan and before the heavenly universe when we refuse to
listen to His delegated messengers, and instead listen to the agents of
Satan, who would draw the soul away from Christ. So long as one does this,
he can find no hope or pardon, and he will finally lose all desire to be
reconciled to God.

While Jesus was still teaching the people, His disciples brought the message
that His mother and His brothers were without, and desired to see Him. He
knew what was in their hearts, and "He answered and said unto him that told
Him, Who is My mother? and who are My brethren? And He stretched forth His
hand toward His disciples, and said, Behold My mother and My brethren! For
whosoever shall do the will of My Father which is in heaven, the same is My
brother, and sister, and mother."

All who would receive Christ by faith were united to Him by a tie closer
than that of human kinship. They would become one with Him, as He was one
with the Father. As a believer and doer of His words, His mother was more
nearly and savingly related to Him than through her natural relationship.
His brothers would receive no benefit from their connection with Him unless
they accepted Him as their personal Saviour.

What a support Christ would have found in His earthly relatives if they had
believed in Him as one from heaven, and had co-operated with Him in doing
the work of God! Their unbelief cast a shadow over the earthly life of
Jesus. It was a part of the bitterness of that cup of woe which He drained
for us.

326


The enmity kindled in the human heart against the gospel was keenly felt by
the Son of God, and it was most painful to Him in His home; for His own
heart was full of kindness and love, and He appreciated tender regard in the
family relation. His brothers desired that He should concede to their ideas,
when such a course would have been utterly out of harmony with His divine
mission. They looked upon Him as in need of their counsel. They judged Him
from their human point of view, and thought that if He would speak only such
things as would be acceptable to the scribes and Pharisees, He would avoid
the disagreeable controversy that His words aroused. They thought that He
was beside Himself in claiming divine authority, and in placing Himself
before the rabbis as a reprover of their sins. They knew that the Pharisees
were seeking occasion to accuse Him, and they felt that He had given them
sufficient occasion.

With their short measuring line they could not fathom the mission which He
came to fulfill, and therefore could not sympathize with Him in His trials.
Their coarse, unappreciative words showed that they had no true perception
of His character, and did not discern that the divine blended with the
human. They often saw Him full of grief; but instead of comforting Him,
their spirit and words only wounded His heart. His sensitive nature was
tortured, His motives were misunderstood, His work was uncomprehended.

His brothers often brought forward the philosophy of the Pharisees, which
was threadbare and hoary with age, and presumed to think that they could
teach Him who understood all truth, and comprehended all mysteries. They
freely condemned that which they could not understand. Their reproaches
probed Him to the quick, and His soul was wearied and distressed. They
avowed faith in God, and thought they were vindicating God, when God was
with them in the flesh, and they knew Him not.

These things made His path a thorny one to travel. So pained was Christ by
the misapprehension in His own home that it was a relief to Him to go where
it did not exist. There was one home that He loved to visit,--the home of
Lazarus, and Mary, and Martha; for in the atmosphere of faith and love His
spirit had rest. Yet there were none on earth who could comprehend His
divine mission, or know the burden which He bore in behalf of humanity.
Often He could find relief only in being alone, and communing with His
heavenly Father.

                                                                     327


Those who are called to suffer for Christ's sake, who have to endure
misapprehension and distrust, even in their own home, may find comfort in
the thought that Jesus has endured the same. He is moved with compassion for
them. He bids them find companionship in Him, and relief where He found it,
in communion with the Father.

Those who accept Christ as their personal Saviour are not left as orphans,
to bear the trials of life alone. He receives them as members of the
heavenly family; He bids them call His Father their Father. They are His
"little ones," dear to the heart of God, bound to Him by the most tender and
abiding ties. He has toward them an exceeding tenderness, as far surpassing
what our father or mother has felt toward us in our helplessness as the
divine is above the human.

Of Christ's relation to His people, there is a beautiful illustration in the
laws given to Israel. When through poverty a Hebrew had been forced to part
with his patrimony, and to sell himself as a bondservant, the duty of
redeeming him and his inheritance fell to the one who was nearest of kin.
See Lev. 25:25, 47-49; Ruth 2:20. So the work of redeeming us and our
inheritance, lost through sin, fell upon Him who is "near of kin" unto us.
It was to redeem us that He became our kinsman. Closer than father, mother,
brother, friend, or lover is the Lord our Saviour. "Fear not," He says, "for
I have redeemed thee, I have called thee by thy name; thou art Mine." "Since
thou wast precious in My sight, thou hast been honorable, and I have loved
thee: therefore will I give men for thee, and people for thy life." Isa.
43:1, 4.

Christ loves the heavenly beings that surround His throne; but what shall
account for the great love wherewith He has loved us? We cannot understand
it, but we can know it true in our own experience. And if we do hold the
relation of kinship to Him, with what tenderness should we regard those who
are brethren and sisters of our Lord! Should we not be quick to recognize
the claims of our divine relationship? Adopted into the family of God,
should we not honor our Father and our kindred?




(328)

                             Chapter 34

                             The Invitation


"Come unto Me, all ye that labor and are heavy-laden, and I will give you
rest."

These words of comfort were spoken to the multitude that followed Jesus. The
Saviour had said that only through Himself could men receive a knowledge of
God. He had spoken of His disciples as the ones to whom a knowledge of
heavenly things had been given. But He left none to feel themselves shut out
from His care and love. All who labor and are heavy-laden may come unto Him.

Scribes and rabbis, with their punctilious attention to religious forms, had
a sense of want that rites of penance could never satisfy. Publicans and
sinners might pretend to be content with the sensual and earthly, but in
their hearts were distrust and fear. Jesus looked upon the distressed and
heart burdened, those whose hopes were blighted, and who with earthly joys
were seeking to quiet the longing of the soul, and He invited all to find
rest in Him.

Tenderly He bade the toiling people, "Take My yoke upon you, and learn of
Me; for I am meek and lowly in heart: and ye shall find rest unto your
souls."

In these words Christ is speaking to every human being. Whether they know it
or not, all are weary and heavy-laden. All are weighed down with burdens
that only Christ can remove. The heaviest burden that we bear is the burden
of sin. If we were left to bear this burden, it

                                                                     329

would crush us. But the Sinless One has taken our place. "The Lord hath laid
on Him the iniquity of us all." Isa. 53:6. He has borne the burden of our
guilt. He will take the load from our weary shoulders. He will give us rest.
The burden of care and sorrow also He will bear. He invites us to cast all
our care upon Him; for He carries us upon His heart.

The Elder Brother of our race is by the eternal throne. He looks upon every
soul who is turning his face toward Him as the Saviour. He knows by
experience what are the weaknesses of humanity, what are our wants, and
where lies the strength of our temptations; for He was in all points tempted
like as we are, yet without sin. He is watching over you, trembling child of
God. Are you tempted? He will deliver. Are you weak? He will strengthen. Are
you ignorant? He will enlighten. Are you wounded? He will heal. The Lord
"telleth the number of the stars;" and yet "He healeth the broken in heart,
and bindeth up their wounds." Ps. 147:4, 3. "Come unto Me," is His
invitation. Whatever your anxieties and trials, spread out your case before
the Lord. Your spirit will be braced for endurance. The way will be opened
for you to disentangle yourself from embarrassment and difficulty. The
weaker and more helpless you know yourself to be, the stronger will you
become in His strength. The heavier your burdens, the more blessed the rest
in casting them upon the Burden Bearer. The rest that Christ offers depends
upon conditions, but these conditions are plainly specified. They are those
with which all can comply. He tells us just how His rest is to be found.

"Take My yoke upon you," Jesus says. The yoke is an instrument of service.
Cattle are yoked for labor, and the yoke is essential that they may labor
effectually. By this illustration Christ teaches us that we are called to
service as long as life shall last. We are to take upon us His yoke, that we
may be co-workers with Him.

The yoke that binds to service is the law of God. The great law of love
revealed in Eden, proclaimed upon Sinai, and in the new covenant written in
the heart, is that which binds the human worker to the will of God. If we
were left to follow our own inclinations, to go just where our will would
lead us, we should fall into Satan's ranks and become possessors of his
attributes. Therefore God confines us to His will, which is high, and noble,
and elevating. He desires that we shall patiently and wisely take up the
duties of service. The yoke of service Christ Himself has borne in humanity.
He said, "I delight to do Thy will, O My God: yea, Thy law is within My
heart." Ps. 40:8. "I came down

330

from heaven, not to do Mine own will, but the will of Him that sent Me."
John 6:38. Love for God, zeal for His glory, and love for fallen humanity,
brought Jesus to earth to suffer and to die. This was the controlling power
of His life. This principle He bids us adopt.

There are many whose hearts are aching under a load of care because they
seek to reach the world's standard. They have chosen its service, accepted
its perplexities, adopted its customs. Thus their character is marred, and
their life made a weariness. In order to gratify ambition and worldly
desires, they wound the conscience, and bring upon themselves an additional
burden of remorse. The continual worry is wearing out the life forces. Our
Lord desires them to lay aside this yoke of bondage. He invites them to
accept His yoke; He says, "My yoke is easy, and My burden is light." He bids
them seek first the kingdom of God and His righteousness, and His promise is
that all things needful to them for this life shall be added. Worry is
blind, and cannot discern the future; but Jesus sees the end from the
beginning. In every difficulty He has His way prepared to bring relief. Our
heavenly Father has a thousand ways to provide for us, of which we know
nothing. Those who accept the one principle of making the service and honor
of God supreme will find perplexities vanish, and a plain path before their
feet.

"Learn of Me," says Jesus; "for I am meek and lowly in heart: and ye shall
find rest." We are to enter the school of Christ, to learn from Him meekness
and lowliness. Redemption is that process by which the soul is trained for
heaven. This training means a knowledge of Christ. It means emancipation
from ideas, habits, and practices that have been gained in the school of the
prince of darkness. The soul must be delivered from all that is opposed to
loyalty to God.

In the heart of Christ, where reigned perfect harmony with God, there was
perfect peace. He was never elated by applause, nor dejected by censure or
disappointment. Amid the greatest opposition and the most cruel treatment,
He was still of good courage. But many who profess to be His followers have
an anxious, troubled heart, because they are afraid to trust themselves with
God. They do not make a complete surrender to Him; for they shrink from the
consequences that such a surrender may involve. Unless they do make this
surrender, they cannot find peace.

It is the love of self that brings unrest. When we are born from above, the
same mind will be in us that was in Jesus, the mind that led

                                                                     331

Him to humble Himself that we might be saved. Then we shall not be seeking
the highest place. We shall desire to sit at the feet of Jesus, and learn of
Him. We shall understand that the value of our work does not consist in
making a show and noise in the world, and in being active and zealous in our
own strength. The value of our work is in proportion to the impartation of
the Holy Spirit. Trust in God brings holier qualities of mind, so that in
patience we may possess our souls.

The yoke is placed upon the oxen to aid them in drawing the load, to lighten
the burden. So with the yoke of Christ. When our will is swallowed up in the
will of God, and we use His gifts to bless others, we shall find life's
burden light. He who walks in the way of God's commandments is walking in
company with Christ, and in His love the heart is at rest. When Moses
prayed, "Show me now Thy way, that I may know Thee," the Lord answered him,
"My presence shall go with thee, and I will give thee rest." And through the
prophets the message was given, "Thus saith the Lord, Stand ye in the ways,
and see, and ask for the old paths, where is the good way, and walk therein,
and ye shall find rest for your souls." Ex. 33:13, 14; Jer. 6:16. And He
says, "O that thou hadst hearkened to My commandments! then had thy peace
been as a river, and thy righteousness as the waves of the sea." Isa. 48:18.

Those who take Christ at His word, and surrender their souls to His keeping,
their lives to His ordering, will find peace and quietude. Nothing of the
world can make them sad when Jesus makes them glad by His presence. In
perfect acquiescence there is perfect rest. The Lord says, "Thou wilt keep
him in perfect peace, whose mind is stayed on Thee: because he trusteth in
Thee." Isa. 26:3. Our lives may seem a tangle; but as we commit ourselves to
the wise Master Worker, He will bring out the pattern of life and character
that will be to His own glory. And that character which expresses the
glory--character--of Christ will be received into the Paradise of God. A
renovated race shall walk with Him in white, for they are worthy.

As through Jesus we enter into rest, heaven begins here. We respond to His
invitation, Come, learn of Me, and in thus coming we begin the life eternal.
Heaven is a ceaseless approaching to God through Christ. The longer we are
in the heaven of bliss, the more and still more of glory will be opened to
us; and the more we know of God, the more intense will be our happiness. As
we walk with Jesus in this life, we may be filled with His love, satisfied
with His presence. All that human

332

nature can bear, we may receive here. But what is this compared with the
hereafter? There "are they before the throne of God, and serve Him day and
night in His temple: and He that sitteth on the throne shall dwell among
them. They shall hunger no more, neither thirst any more; neither shall the
sun light on them, nor any heat. For the Lamb which is in the midst of the
throne shall feed them, and shall lead them unto living fountains of waters:
and God shall wipe away all tears from their eyes." Rev. 7:15-17.




                                                                     (333)

                             Chapter 35

                             "Peace, Be Still"


It had been an eventful day in the life of Jesus. Beside the Sea of Galilee
He had spoken His first parables, by familiar illustrations again explaining
to the people the nature of His kingdom and the manner in which it was to be
established. He had likened His own work to that of the sower; the
development of His kingdom to the growth of the mustard seed and the effect
of leaven in the measure of meal. The great final separation of the
righteous and the wicked He had pictured in the parables of the wheat and
tares and the fishing net. The exceeding preciousness of the truths He
taught had been illustrated by the hidden treasure and the pearl of great
price, while in the parable of the householder He taught His disciples how
they were to labor as His representatives.

All day He had been teaching and healing; and as evening came on the crowds
still pressed upon Him. Day after day He had ministered to them, scarcely
pausing for food or rest. The malicious criticism and misrepresentation with
which the Pharisees constantly pursued Him made His labors much more severe
and harassing; and now the close of the day found Him so utterly wearied
that He determined to seek retirement in some solitary place across the
lake.

The eastern shore of Gennesaret was not uninhabited, for there were towns
here and there beside the lake; yet it was a desolate region when

334

compared with the western side. It contained a population more heathen than
Jewish, and had little communication with Galilee. Thus it offered Jesus the
seclusion He sought, and He now bade His disciples accompany Him thither.

After He had dismissed the multitude, they took Him, even "as He was," into
the boat, and hastily set off. But they were not to depart alone. There were
other fishing boats lying near the shore, and these were quickly crowded
with people who followed Jesus, eager still to see and hear Him.

The Saviour was at last relieved from the pressure of the multitude, and,
overcome with weariness and hunger, He lay down in the stern of the boat,
and soon fell asleep. The evening had been calm and pleasant, and quiet
rested upon the lake; but suddenly darkness overspread the sky, the wind
swept wildly down the mountain gorges along the eastern shore, and a fierce
tempest burst upon the lake.

The sun had set, and the blackness of night settled down upon the stormy
sea. The waves, lashed into fury by the howling winds, dashed fiercely over
the disciples' boat, and threatened to engulf it. Those hardy fishermen had
spent their lives upon the lake, and had guided their craft safely through
many a storm; but now their strength and skill availed nothing. They were
helpless in the grasp of the tempest, and hope failed them as they saw that
their boat was filling.

Absorbed in their efforts to save themselves, they had forgotten that Jesus
was on board. Now, seeing their labor vain and only death before them, they
remembered at whose command they had set out to cross the sea. In Jesus was
their only hope. In their helplessness and despair they cried, "Master,
Master!" But the dense darkness hid Him from their sight. Their voices were
drowned by the roaring of the tempest, and there was no reply. Doubt and
fear assailed them. Had Jesus forsaken them? Was He who had conquered
disease and demons, and even death, powerless to help His disciples now? Was
He unmindful of them in their distress?

Again they call, but there is no answer except the shrieking of the angry
blast. Already their boat is sinking. A moment, and apparently they will be
swallowed up by the hungry waters.

Suddenly a flash of lightning pierces the darkness, and they see Jesus lying
asleep, undisturbed by the tumult. In amazement and despair they exclaim,
"Master, carest Thou not that we perish?" How can He rest so peacefully,
while they are in danger and battling with death?

                                                                     335


Their cry arouses Jesus. As the lightning's glare reveals Him, they see the
peace of heaven in His face; they read in His glance self-forgetful, tender
love, and, their hearts turning to Him, cry, "Lord, save us: we perish."

Never did a soul utter that cry unheeded. As the disciples grasp their oars
to make a last effort, Jesus rises. He stands in the midst of His disciples,
while the tempest rages, the waves break over them, and the lightning
illuminates His countenance. He lifts His hand, so often employed in deeds
of mercy, and says to the angry sea, "Peace, be still."

The storm ceases. The billows sink to rest. The clouds roll away, and the
stars shine forth. The boat rests upon a quiet sea. Then turning to His
disciples, Jesus asks sorrowfully, "Why are ye fearful? have ye not yet
faith?" Mark 4:40, R.V.

A hush fell upon the disciples. Even Peter did not attempt to express the
awe that filled his heart. The boats that had set out to accompany Jesus had
been in the same peril with that of the disciples. Terror and despair had
seized their occupants; but the command of Jesus brought quiet to the scene
of tumult. The fury of the storm had driven the boats into close proximity,
and all on board beheld the miracle. In the calm that followed, fear was
forgotten. The people whispered among themselves, "What manner of man is
this, that even the winds and the sea obey Him?"

336


When Jesus was awakened to meet the storm, He was in perfect peace. There
was no trace of fear in word or look, for no fear was in His heart. But He
rested not in the possession of almighty power. It was not as the "Master of
earth and sea and sky" that He reposed in quiet. That power He had laid
down, and He says, "I can of Mine own self do nothing." John 5:30. He
trusted in the Father's might. It was in faith--faith in God's love and
care--that Jesus rested, and the power of that word which stilled the storm
was the power of God.

As Jesus rested by faith in the Father's care, so we are to rest in the care
of our Saviour. If the disciples had trusted in Him, they would have been
kept in peace. Their fear in the time of danger revealed their unbelief. In
their efforts to save themselves, they forgot Jesus; and it was only when,
in despair of self-dependence, they turned to Him that He could give them
help.

How often the disciples' experience is ours! When the tempests of temptation
gather, and the fierce lightnings flash, and the waves sweep over us, we
battle with the storm alone, forgetting that there is One who can help us.
We trust to our own strength till our hope is lost, and we are ready to
perish. Then we remember Jesus, and if we call upon Him to save us, we shall
not cry in vain. Though He sorrowfully reproves our unbelief and
self-confidence, He never fails to give us the help we need. Whether on the
land or on the sea, if we have the Saviour in our hearts, there is no need
of fear. Living faith in the Redeemer will smooth the sea of life, and will
deliver us from danger in the way that He knows to be best.

There is another spiritual lesson in this miracle of the stilling of the
tempest. Every man's experience testifies to the truth of the words of
Scripture, "The wicked are like the troubled sea, when it cannot rest. . . .
There is no peace, saith my God, to the wicked." Isa. 57:20, 21. Sin has
destroyed our peace. While self is unsubdued, we can find no rest. The
masterful passions of the heart no human power can control. We are as
helpless here as were the disciples to quiet the raging storm. But He who
spoke peace to the billows of Galilee has spoken the word of peace for every
soul. However fierce the tempest, those who turn to Jesus with the cry,
"Lord, save us," will find deliverance. His grace, that reconciles the soul
to God, quiets the strife of human passion, and in His love the heart is at
rest. "He maketh the storm a calm, so that the waves thereof are still. Then
are they glad because they be quiet;

                                                                     337

so He bringeth them unto their desired haven." Ps. 107:29, 30. "Being
justified by faith, we have peace with God through our Lord Jesus Christ."
"The work of righteousness shall be peace; and the effect of righteousness
quietness and assurance forever." Rom. 5:1; Isa. 32:17.

In the early morning the Saviour and His companions came to shore, and the
light of the rising sun touched sea and land as with the benediction of
peace. But no sooner had they stepped upon the beach than their eyes were
greeted by a sight more terrible than the fury of the tempest. From some
hiding place among the tombs, two madmen rushed upon them as if to tear them
in pieces. Hanging about these men were parts of chains which they had
broken in escaping from confinement. Their flesh was torn and bleeding where
they had cut themselves with sharp stones. Their eyes glared out from their
long and matted hair, the very likeness of humanity seemed to have been
blotted out by the demons that possessed them, and they looked more like
wild beasts than like men.

The disciples and their companions fled in terror; but presently they
noticed that Jesus was not with them, and they turned to look for Him. He
was standing where they had left Him. He who had stilled the tempest, who
had before met Satan and conquered him, did not flee before these demons.
When the men, gnashing their teeth, and foaming at the mouth, approached
Him, Jesus raised that hand which had beckoned the waves to rest, and the
men could come no nearer. They stood raging but helpless before Him.

With authority He bade the unclean spirits come out of them. His words
penetrated the darkened minds of the unfortunate men. They

338

realized dimly that One was near who could save them from the tormenting
demons. They fell at the Saviour's feet to worship Him; but when their lips
were opened to entreat His mercy, the demons spoke through them, crying
vehemently, "What have I to do with Thee, Jesus, Thou Son of God most high?
I beseech Thee, torment me not."

Jesus asked, "What is thy name?" And the answer was, "My name is Legion: for
we are many." Using the afflicted men as mediums of communication, they
besought Jesus not to send them out of the country. Upon a mountainside not
far distant a great herd of swine was feeding. Into these the demons asked
to be allowed to enter, and Jesus suffered them. Immediately a panic seized
the herd. They rushed madly down the cliff, and, unable to check themselves
upon the shore, plunged into the lake, and perished.

Meanwhile a marvelous change had come over the demoniacs. Light had shone
into their minds. Their eyes beamed with intelligence. The countenances, so
long deformed into the image of Satan, became suddenly mild, the
bloodstained hands were quiet, and with glad voices the men praised God for
their deliverance.

From the cliff the keepers of the swine had seen all that had occurred, and
they hurried away to publish the news to their employers and to all the
people. In fear and amazement the whole population flocked to meet Jesus.
The two demoniacs had been the terror of the country. No one had been safe
to pass the place where they were; for they would rush upon every traveler
with the fury of demons. Now these men were clothed and in their right mind,
sitting at the feet of Jesus, listening to His words, and glorifying the
name of Him who had made them whole. But the people who beheld this
wonderful scene did not rejoice. The loss of the swine seemed to them of
greater moment than the deliverance of these captives of Satan.

It was in mercy to the owners of the swine that this loss had been permitted
to come upon them. They were absorbed in earthly things, and cared not for
the great interests of spiritual life. Jesus desired to break the spell of
selfish indifference, that they might accept His grace.

                                                                     339

But regret and indignation for their temporal loss blinded their eyes to the
Saviour's mercy.

The manifestation of supernatural power aroused the superstitions of the
people, and excited their fears. Further calamities might follow from having
this Stranger among them. They apprehended financial ruin, and determined to
be freed from His presence. Those who had crossed the lake with Jesus told
of all that had happened on the preceding night, of their peril in the
tempest, and how the wind and the sea had been stilled. But their words were
without effect. In terror the people thronged about Jesus, beseeching Him to
depart from them, and He complied, taking ship at once for the opposite
shore.

The people of Gergesa had before them the living evidence of Christ's power
and mercy. They saw the men who had been restored to reason; but they were
so fearful of endangering their earthly interests that He who had vanquished
the prince of darkness before their eyes was treated as an intruder, and the
Gift of heaven was turned from their doors. We have not the opportunity of
turning from the person of Christ as had the Gergesenes; but still there are
many who refuse to obey His word, because obedience would involve the
sacrifice of some worldly interest. Lest His presence shall cause them
pecuniary loss, many reject His grace, and drive His Spirit from them.

But far different was the feeling of the restored demoniacs. They desired
the company of their deliverer. In His presence they felt secure from the
demons that had tormented their lives and wasted their manhood. As Jesus was
about to enter the boat, they kept close to His side, knelt at His feet, and
begged Him to keep them near Him, where they might ever listen to His words.
But Jesus bade them go home and tell what great things the Lord had done for
them.

Here was a work for them to do,--to go to a heathen home, and tell of the
blessing they had received from Jesus. It was hard for them to be separated
from the Saviour. Great difficulties were sure to beset them in association
with their heathen countrymen. And their long isolation from society seemed
to have disqualified them for the work He had indicated. But as soon as
Jesus pointed out their duty they were ready to obey. Not only did they tell
their own households and neighbors about Jesus, but they went throughout
Decapolis, everywhere declaring His power to save, and describing how He had
freed them from the demons. In doing this work they could receive a greater

340

blessing than if, merely for benefit to themselves, they had remained in His
presence. It is in working to spread the good news of salvation that we are
brought near to the Saviour.

The two restored demoniacs were the first missionaries whom Christ sent to
preach the gospel in the region of Decapolis. For a few moments only these
men had been privileged to hear the teachings of Christ. Not one sermon from
His lips had ever fallen upon their ears. They could not instruct the people
as the disciples who had been daily with Christ were able to do. But they
bore in their own persons the evidence that Jesus was the Messiah. They
could tell what they knew; what they themselves had seen, and heard, and
felt of the power of Christ. This is what everyone can do whose heart has
been touched by the grace of God. John, the beloved disciple, wrote: "That
which was from the beginning, which we have heard, which we have seen with
our eyes, which we have looked upon, and our hands have handled, of the Word
of life; . . . that which we have seen and heard declare we unto you."
1 John 1:1-3. As witnesses for Christ, we are to tell what we know, what
we ourselves have seen and heard and felt. If we have been following Jesus
step by step, we shall have something right to the point to tell concerning
the way in which He has led us. We can tell how we have tested His promise,
and found the promise true. We can bear witness to what we have known of the
grace of Christ. This is the witness for which our Lord calls, and for want
of which the world is perishing.

Though the people of Gergesa had not received Jesus, He did not leave them
to the darkness they had chosen. When they bade Him depart from them, they
had not heard His words. They were ignorant of that which they were
rejecting. Therefore He again sent the light to them, and by those to whom
they would not refuse to listen.

In causing the destruction of the swine, it was Satan's purpose to turn the
people away from the Saviour, and prevent the preaching of the gospel in
that region. But this very occurrence roused the whole country as nothing
else could have done, and directed attention to Christ. Though the Saviour
Himself departed, the men whom He had healed remained as witnesses to His
power. Those who had been mediums of the prince of darkness became channels
of light, messengers of the Son of God. Men marveled as they listened to the
wondrous news. A door was opened to the gospel throughout that region. When
Jesus returned to Decapolis, the people flocked about Him, and for three

                                                                     341

days, not merely the inhabitants of one town, but thousands from all the
surrounding region, heard the message of salvation. Even the power of demons
is under the control of our Saviour, and the working of evil is overruled
for good.

The encounter with the demoniacs of Gergesa had a lesson for the disciples.
It showed the depths of degradation to which Satan is seeking to drag the
whole human race, and the mission of Christ to set men free from his power.
Those wretched beings, dwelling in the place of graves, possessed by demons,
in bondage to uncontrolled passions and loathsome lusts, represent what
humanity would become if given up to satanic jurisdiction. Satan's influence
is constantly exerted upon men to distract the senses, control the mind for
evil, and incite to violence and crime. He weakens the body, darkens the
intellect, and debases the soul. Whenever men reject the Saviour's
invitation, they are yielding themselves to Satan. Multitudes in every
department in life, in the home, in business, and even in the church, are
doing this today. It is because of this that violence and crime have
overspread the earth, and moral darkness, like the pall of death, enshrouds
the habitations of men. Through his specious temptations Satan leads men to
worse and worse evils, till utter depravity and ruin are the result. The
only safeguard against his power is found in the presence of Jesus. Before
men and angels Satan has been revealed as man's enemy and destroyer; Christ,
as man's friend and deliverer. His Spirit will develop in man all that will
ennoble the character and dignify the nature. It will build man up for the
glory of God in body and soul and spirit. "For God hath not given us the
spirit of fear; but of power, and of love, and of a sound mind." 2 Tim. 1:7.
He has called us "to the obtaining of the glory"--character--"of our Lord
Jesus Christ;" has called us to be "conformed to the image of His Son." 2
Thess. 2:14; Rom. 8:29.

And souls that have been degraded into instruments of Satan are still
through the power of Christ transformed into messengers of righteousness,
and sent forth by the Son of God to tell what "great things the Lord hath
done for thee, and hath had compassion on thee."




(342)

                             Chapter 36

                             The Touch of Faith


Returning from Gergesa to the western shore, Jesus found a multitude
gathered to receive Him, and they greeted Him with joy. He remained by the
seaside for a time, teaching and healing, and then repaired to the house of
Levi-Matthew to meet the publicans at the feast. Here Jairus, the ruler of
the synagogue, found Him.

This elder of the Jews came to Jesus in great distress, and cast himself at
His feet, exclaiming, "My little daughter lieth at the point of death: I
pray Thee, come and lay Thy hands on her, that she may be healed; and she
shall live."

Jesus set out at once with the ruler for his home. Though the disciples had
seen so many of His works of mercy, they were surprised at His compliance
with the entreaty of the haughty rabbi; yet they accompanied their Master,
and the people followed, eager and expectant.

The ruler's house was not far distant, but Jesus and His companions advanced
slowly, for the crowd pressed Him on every side. The anxious father was
impatient of delay; but Jesus, pitying the people, stopped now and then to
relieve some suffering one, or to comfort a troubled heart.

While they were still on the way, a messenger pressed through the crowd,
bearing to Jairus the news that his daughter was dead, and it was useless to
trouble the Master further. The word caught the ear of

                                                                     343

Jesus. "Fear not," He said; "believe only, and she shall be made whole."

Jairus pressed closer to the Saviour, and together they hurried to the
ruler's home. Already the hired mourners and flute players were there,
filling the air with their clamor. The presence of the crowd, and the tumult
jarred upon the spirit of Jesus. He tried to silence them, saying, "Why make
ye this ado, and weep? the damsel is not dead, but sleepeth." They were
indignant at the words of the Stranger. They had seen the child in the
embrace of death, and they laughed Him to scorn. Requiring them all to leave
the house, Jesus took with Him the father and mother of the maiden, and the
three disciples, Peter, James, and John, and together they entered the
chamber of death.

Jesus approached the bedside, and, taking the child's hand in His own, He
pronounced softly, in the familiar language of her home, the words, "Damsel,
I say unto thee, arise."

Instantly a tremor passed through the unconscious form. The pulses of life
beat again. The lips unclosed with a smile. The eyes opened widely as if
from sleep, and the maiden gazed with wonder on the group beside her. She
arose, and her parents clasped her in their arms, and wept for joy.

On the way to the ruler's house, Jesus had met, in the crowd, a poor woman
who for twelve years had suffered from a disease that made her life a
burden. She had spent all her means upon physicians and remedies, only to be
pronounced incurable. But her hopes revived when she heard of the cures that
Christ performed. She felt assured that if she could only go to Him she
would be healed. In weakness and suffering she came to the seaside where He
was teaching, and tried to press through the crowd, but in vain. Again she
followed Him from the house of Levi-Matthew, but was still unable to reach
Him. She had begun to despair, when, in making His way through the
multitude, He came near where she was.

The golden opportunity had come. She was in the presence of the Great
Physician! But amid the confusion she could not speak to Him, nor catch more
than a passing glimpse of His figure. Fearful of losing her one chance of
relief, she pressed forward, saying to herself, "If I may but touch His
garment, I shall be whole." As He was passing, she reached forward, and
succeeded in barely touching the border of His garment. But in that moment
she knew that she was healed. In that one touch she was concentrated the
faith of her life, and instantly her pain and feebleness gave place to the
vigor of perfect health.

344


With a grateful heart she then tried to withdraw from the crowd; but
suddenly Jesus stopped, and the people halted with Him. He turned, and
looking about asked in a voice distinctly heard above the confusion of the
multitude, "Who touched Me?" The people answered this query with a look of
amazement. Jostled upon all sides, and rudely pressed hither and thither, as
He was, it seemed a strange inquiry.

Peter, ever ready to speak, said, "Master, the multitude throng Thee and
press Thee, and sayest Thou, Who touched Me?" Jesus answered, "Somebody hath
touched Me: for I perceive that virtue is gone out of Me." The Saviour could
distinguish the touch of faith from the casual contact of the careless
throng. Such trust should not be passed without comment. He would speak to
the humble woman words of comfort that would be to her a wellspring of
joy,--words that would be a blessing to His followers to the close of time.

Looking toward the woman, Jesus insisted on knowing who had touched Him.
Finding concealment vain, she came forward tremblingly,

                                                                     347

and cast herself at His feet. With grateful tears she told the story of her
suffering, and how she had found relief. Jesus gently said, "Daughter, be of
good comfort: thy faith hath made thee whole; go in peace." He gave no
opportunity for superstition to claim healing virtue for the mere act of
touching His garments. It was not through the outward contact with Him, but
through the faith which took hold on His divine power, that the cure was
wrought.

The wondering crowd that pressed close about Christ realized no accession of
vital power. But when the suffering woman put forth her hand to touch Him,
believing that she would be made whole, she felt the healing virtue. So in
spiritual things. To talk of religion in a casual way, to pray without soul
hunger and living faith, avails nothing. A nominal faith in Christ, which
accepts Him merely as the Saviour of the world, can never bring healing to
the soul. The faith that is unto salvation is not a mere intellectual assent
to the truth. He who waits for entire knowledge before he will exercise
faith, cannot receive blessing from God. It is not enough to believe about
Christ; we must believe in Him. The only faith that will benefit us is that
which embraces Him as a personal Saviour; which appropriates His merits to
ourselves. Many hold faith as an opinion. Saving faith is a transaction by
which those who receive Christ join themselves in covenant relation with
God. Genuine faith is life. A living faith means an increase of vigor, a
confiding trust, by which the soul becomes a conquering power.

After healing the woman, Jesus desired her to acknowledge the blessing she
had received. The gifts which the gospel offers are not to be secured by
stealth or enjoyed in secret. So the Lord calls upon us for confession of
His goodness. "Ye are My witnesses, saith the Lord, that I am God." Isa.
43:12.

Our confession of His faithfulness is Heaven's chosen agency for revealing
Christ to the world. We are to acknowledge His grace as made known through
the holy men of old; but that which will be most effectual is the testimony
of our own experience. We are witnesses for God as we reveal in ourselves
the working of a power that is divine. Every individual has a life distinct
from all others, and an experience differing essentially from theirs. God
desires that our praise shall ascend to Him, marked by our own
individuality. These precious acknowledgments to the praise of the glory of
His grace, when supported by a Christ-like life, have an irresistible power
that works for the salvation of souls.

348


When the ten lepers came to Jesus for healing, He bade them go and show
themselves to the priest. On the way they were cleansed, but only one of
them returned to give Him glory. The others went their way, forgetting Him
who had made them whole. How many are still doing the same thing! The Lord
works continually to benefit mankind. He is ever imparting His bounties. He
raises up the sick from beds of languishing, He delivers men from peril
which they do not see, He commissions heavenly angels to save them from
calamity, to guard them from "the pestilence that walketh in darkness" and
"the destruction that wasteth at noonday" (Ps. 91:6); but their hearts are
unimpressed. He has given all the riches of heaven to redeem them, and yet
they are unmindful of His great love. By their ingratitude they close their
hearts against the grace of God. Like the heath in the desert they know not
when good cometh, and their souls inhabit the parched places of the
wilderness.

It is for our own benefit to keep every gift of God fresh in our memory.
Thus faith is strengthened to claim and to receive more and more. There is
greater encouragement for us in the least blessing we ourselves receive from
God than in all the accounts we can read of the faith and experience of
others. The soul that responds to the grace of God shall be like a watered
garden. His health shall spring forth speedily; his light shall rise in
obscurity, and the glory of the Lord shall be seen upon him. Let us then
remember the loving-kindness of the Lord, and the multitude of His tender
mercies. Like the people of Israel, let us set up our stones of witness, and
inscribe upon them the precious story of what God has wrought for us. And as
we review His dealings with us in our pilgrimage, let us, out of hearts
melted with gratitude, declare, "What shall I render unto the Lord for all
His benefits toward me? I will take the cup of salvation, and call upon the
name of the Lord. I will pay my vows unto the Lord now in the presence of
all His people." Ps. 116:12-14.




                                                                     (349)

                             Chapter 37

                             The First Evangelists


The apostles were members of the family of Jesus, and they had accompanied
Him as He traveled on foot through Galilee. They had shared with Him the
toils and hardships that overtook them. They had listened to His discourses,
they had walked and talked with the Son of God, and from His daily
instruction they had learned how to work for the elevation of humanity. As
Jesus ministered to the vast multitudes that gathered about Him, His
disciples were in attendance, eager to do His bidding and to lighten His
labor. They assisted in arranging the people, bringing the afflicted ones to
the Saviour, and promoting the comfort of all. They watched for interested
hearers, explained the Scriptures to them, and in various ways worked for
their spiritual benefit. They taught what they had learned of Jesus, and
were every day obtaining a rich experience. But they needed also an
experience in laboring alone. They were still in need of much instruction,
great patience and tenderness. Now, while He was personally with them, to
point out their errors, and counsel and correct them, the Saviour sent them
forth as His representatives.

While they had been with Him, the disciples had often been perplexed by the
teaching of the priests and Pharisees, but they had brought their
perplexities to Jesus. He had set before them the truths of Scripture in
contrast with tradition. Thus He had strengthened their confidence in God's
word, and in a great measure had set them free from their fear of the rabbis
and their bondage to tradition. In the

350

training of the disciples the example of the Saviour's life was far more
effective than any mere doctrinal instruction. When they were separated from
Him, every look and tone and word came back to them. Often when in conflict
with the enemies of the gospel, they repeated His words, and as they saw
their effect upon the people, they rejoiced greatly.

Calling the twelve about Him, Jesus bade them go out two and two through the
towns and villages. None were sent forth alone, but brother was associated
with brother, friend with friend. Thus they could help and encourage each
other, counseling and praying together, each one's strength supplementing
the other's weakness. In the same manner He afterward sent forth the
seventy. It was the Saviour's purpose that the messengers of the gospel
should be associated in this way. In our own time evangelistic work would be
far more successful if this example were more closely followed.

The disciples' message was the same as that of John the Baptist and of
Christ Himself: "The kingdom of heaven is at hand." They were to enter into
no controversy with the people as to whether Jesus of Nazareth was the
Messiah; but in His name they were to do the same works of mercy as He had
done. He bade them, "Heal the sick, cleanse the lepers, raise the dead, cast
out devils: freely ye have received, freely give."

During His ministry Jesus devoted more time to healing the sick than to
preaching. His miracles testified to the truth of His words, that He came
not to destroy but to save. His righteousness went before Him, and the glory
of the Lord was His rearward. Wherever He went, the tidings of His mercy
preceded Him. Where He had passed, the objects of His compassion were
rejoicing in health, and making trial of their new-found powers. Crowds were
collecting around them to hear from their lips the works that the Lord had
wrought. His voice was the first sound that many had ever heard, His name
the first word they had ever spoken, His face the first they had ever looked
upon. Why should they not love Jesus, and sound His praise? As He passed
through the towns and cities He was like a vital current, diffusing life and
joy wherever He went.

The followers of Christ are to labor as He did. We are to feed the hungry,
clothe the naked, and comfort the suffering and afflicted. We are to
minister to the despairing, and inspire hope in the hopeless. And to us also
the promise will be fulfilled, "Thy righteousness shall go before thee; the
glory of the Lord shall be thy rearward." Isa. 58:8. The love of Christ,
manifested in unselfish ministry, will be more effective in reforming the
evildoer than will the sword or the court of

                                                                     351

justice. These are necessary to strike terror to the lawbreaker, but the
loving missionary can do more than this. Often the heart will harden under
reproof; but it will melt under the love of Christ. The missionary cannot
only relieve physical maladies, but he can lead the sinner to the Great
Physician, who can cleanse the soul from the leprosy of sin. Through His
servants, God designs that the sick, the unfortunate, those possessed of
evil spirits, shall hear His voice. Through His human agencies He desires to
be a Comforter such as the world knows not.

The disciples on their first missionary tour were to go only to "the lost
sheep of the house of Israel." If they had now preached the gospel to the
Gentiles or the Samaritans, they would have lost their influence with the
Jews. By exciting the prejudice of the Pharisees they would have involved
themselves in controversy which would have discouraged them at the outset of
their labors. Even the apostles were slow to understand that the gospel was
to be carried to all nations. Until they themselves could grasp this truth
they were not prepared to labor for the Gentiles. If the Jews would receive
the gospel, God purposed to make them His messengers to the Gentiles.
Therefore they were first to hear the message.

All over the field of Christ's labor there were souls awakened to their
need, and hungering and thirsting for the truth. The time had come to send
the tidings of His love to these longing hearts. To all these the disciples
were to go as His representatives. The believers would thus be led to look
upon them as divinely appointed teachers, and when the Saviour should be
taken from them they would not be left without instructors.

On this first tour the disciples were to go only where Jesus had been before
them, and had made friends. Their preparation for the journey was to be of
the simplest kind. Nothing must be allowed to divert their minds from their
great work, or in any way excite opposition and close the door for further
labor. They were not to adopt the dress of the religious teachers, nor use
any guise in apparel to distinguish them from the humble peasants. They were
not to enter into the synagogues and call the people together for public
service; their efforts were to be put forth in house-to-house labor. They
were not to waste time in needless salutations, or in going from house to
house for entertainment. But in every place they were to accept the
hospitality of those who were worthy, those who would welcome them heartily
as if entertaining Christ Himself. They were to enter the dwelling with the
beautiful salutation, "Peace be to this house." Luke 10:5. That home would
be blessed by their prayers, their

352

songs of praise, and the opening of the Scriptures in the family circle.

These disciples were to be heralds of the truth, to prepare the way for the
coming of their Master. The message they had to bear was the word of eternal
life, and the destiny of men depended upon their reception or rejection of
it. To impress the people with its solemnity, Jesus bade His disciples,
"Whosoever shall not receive you, nor hear your words, when ye depart out of
that house or city, shake off the dust of your feet. Verily I say unto you,
It shall be more tolerable for the land of Sodom and Gomorrah in the day of
judgment, than for that city."

Now the Saviour's eye penetrates the future; He beholds the broader fields
in which, after His death, the disciples are to be witnesses for Him. His
prophetic glance takes in the experience of His servants through all the
ages till He shall come the second time. He shows His followers the
conflicts they must meet; He reveals the character and plan of the battle.
He lays open before them the perils they must encounter, the self-denial
that will be required. He desires them to count the cost, that they may not
be taken unawares by the enemy. Their warfare is not to be waged against
flesh and blood, but "against the principalities, against the powers,
against the world rulers of this darkness, against the spiritual hosts of
wickedness in the heavenly places." Eph. 6:12, R. V. They are to contend
with supernatural forces, but they are assured of supernatural help. All the
intelligences of heaven are in this army. And more than angels are in the
ranks. The Holy Spirit, the representative of the Captain of the Lord's
host, comes down to direct the battle. Our infirmities may be many, our sins
and mistakes grievous; but the grace of God is for all who seek it with
contrition. The power of Omnipotence is enlisted in behalf of those who
trust in God.
                                                                     353


"Behold," said Jesus, "I send you forth as sheep in the midst of wolves: be
ye therefore wise as serpents, and harmless as doves." Christ Himself did
not suppress one word of truth, but He spoke it always in love. He exercised
the greatest tact, and thoughtful, kind attention in His intercourse with
the people. He was never rude, never needlessly spoke a severe word, never
gave needless pain to a sensitive soul. He did not censure human weakness.
He fearlessly denounced hypocrisy, unbelief, and iniquity, but tears were in
His voice as He uttered His scathing rebukes. He wept over Jerusalem, the
city He loved, that refused to receive Him, the Way, the Truth, and the
Life. They rejected Him, the Saviour, but He regarded them with pitying
tenderness, and sorrow so deep that it broke His heart. Every soul was
precious in His eyes. While He always bore Himself with divine dignity, He
bowed with tenderest regard to every member of the family of God. In all men
He saw fallen souls whom it was His mission to save.

The servants of Christ are not to act out the dictates of the natural heart.
They need to have close communion with God, lest, under provocation, self
rise up, and they pour forth a torrent of words that are unbefitting, that
are not as dew or the still showers that refresh the withering plants. This
is what Satan wants them to do; for these are his methods. It is the dragon
that is wroth; it is the spirit of Satan that is revealed in anger and
accusing. But God's servants are to be representatives of Him. He desires
them to deal only in the currency of heaven, the truth that bears His own
image and superscription. The power by which they are to overcome evil is
the power of Christ. The glory of Christ is their strength. They are to fix
their eyes upon His loveliness. Then they can present the gospel with divine
tact and gentleness. And the spirit that is kept gentle under provocation
will speak more effectively in favor of the truth than will any argument,
however forcible.

Those who are brought in controversy with the enemies of truth have to meet,
not only men, but Satan and his agents. Let them remember the Saviour's
words, "Behold, I send you forth as lambs among wolves." Luke 10:3. Let them
rest in the love of God, and the spirit will be kept calm, even under
personal abuse. The Lord will clothe them with a divine panoply. His Holy
Spirit will influence the mind and heart, so that their voices shall not
catch the notes of the baying of the wolves.

354


Continuing His instruction to His disciples, Jesus said, "Beware of men."
They were not to put implicit confidence in those who knew not God, and open
to them their counsels; for this would give Satan's agents an advantage.
Man's inventions often counterwork God's plans. Those who build the temple
of the Lord are to build according to the pattern shown in the mount,--the
divine similitude. God is dishonored and the gospel is betrayed when His
servants depend on the counsel of men who are not under the guidance of the
Holy Spirit. Worldly wisdom is foolishness with God. Those who rely upon it
will surely err.

"They will deliver you up to councils, . . . yea and before governors and
kings shall ye be brought for My sake, for a testimony to them and to the
Gentiles." Matt. 10:17, 18, R. V. Persecution will spread the light. The
servants of Christ will be brought before the great men of the world, who,
but for this, might never hear the gospel. The truth has been misrepresented
to these men. They have listened to false charges concerning the faith of
Christ's disciples. Often their only means of learning its real character is
the testimony of those who are brought to trial for their faith. Under
examination these are required to answer, and their judges to listen to the
testimony borne. God's grace will be dispensed to His servants to meet the
emergency. "It shall be given you," says Jesus, "in that same hour what ye
shall speak. For it is not ye that speak, but the Spirit of your Father
which speaketh in you." As the Spirit of God illuminates the minds of His
servants, the truth will be presented in its divine power and preciousness.
Those who reject the truth will stand to accuse and oppress the disciples.
But under loss and suffering, even unto death, the Lord's children are to
reveal the meekness of their divine Example. Thus will be seen the contrast
between Satan's agents and the representatives of Christ. The Saviour will
be lifted up before the rulers and the people.

The disciples were not endowed with the courage and fortitude of the martyrs
until such grace was needed. Then the Saviour's promise was fulfilled. When
Peter and John testified before the Sanhedrin council, men "marveled; and
they took knowledge of them, that they had been with Jesus." Acts 4:13. Of
Stephen it is written that "all that sat in the council, looking steadfastly
on him, saw his face as it had been the face of an angel." Men "were not
able to resist the wisdom and the spirit by which he spake." Acts 6:15, 10.
And Paul, writing of his own trial at the court of the Caesars, says, "At my
first defense no one took my

                                                                     355

part, but all forsook me. . . . But the Lord stood by me, and strengthened
me; that through me the message might be fully proclaimed, and that all the
Gentiles might hear: and I was delivered out of the mouth of the lion." 2
Tim. 4:16, 17, R. V.

The servants of Christ were to prepare no set speech to present when brought
to trial. Their preparation was to be made day by day in treasuring up the
precious truths of God's word, and through prayer strengthening their faith.
When they were brought into trial, the Holy Spirit would bring to their
remembrance the very truths that would be needed.

A daily, earnest striving to know God, and Jesus Christ whom He has sent,
would bring power and efficiency to the soul. The knowledge obtained by
diligent searching of the Scriptures would be flashed into the memory at the
right time. But if any had neglected to acquaint themselves with the words
of Christ, if they had never tested the power of His grace in trial, they
could not expect that the Holy Spirit would bring His words to their
remembrance. They were to serve God daily with undivided affection, and then
trust Him.

So bitter would be the enmity to the gospel that even the tenderest earthly
ties would be disregarded. The disciples of Christ would be betrayed to
death by the members of their own households. "Ye shall be hated of all men
for My name's sake," He added; "but he that shall endure unto the end, the
same shall be saved." Mark 13:13. But He bade them not to expose themselves
unnecessarily to persecution. He Himself often left one field of labor for
another, in order to escape from those who were seeking His life. When He
was rejected at Nazareth, and His own townsmen tried to kill Him, He went
down to Capernaum, and there the people were astonished at His teaching;
"for His word was with power." Luke 4:32. So His servants were not to be
discouraged by persecution, but to seek a place where they could still labor
for the salvation of souls.

The servant is not above his master. The Prince of heaven was called
Beelzebub, and His disciples will be misrepresented in like manner. But
whatever the danger, Christ's followers must avow their principles. They
should scorn concealment. They cannot remain uncommitted until assured of
safety in confessing the truth. They are set as watchmen, to warn men of
their peril. The truth received from Christ must be imparted to all, freely
and openly. Jesus said, "What I tell you in darkness, that speak ye in
light: and what ye hear in the ear, that preach ye upon the housetops."

356


Jesus Himself never purchased peace by compromise. His heart overflowed with
love for the whole human race, but He was never indulgent to their sins. He
was too much their friend to remain silent while they were pursuing a course
that would ruin their souls,--the souls He had purchased with His own blood.
He labored that man should be true to himself, true to his higher and
eternal interest. The servants of Christ are called to the same work, and
they should beware lest, in seeking to prevent discord, they surrender the
truth. They are to "follow after the things which make for peace" (Rom.
14:19); but real peace can never be secured by compromising principle. And
no man can be true to principle without exciting opposition. A Christianity
that is spiritual will be opposed by the children of disobedience. But Jesus
bade His disciples, "Fear not them which kill the body, but are not able to
kill the soul." Those who are true to God need not fear the power of men nor
the enmity of Satan. In Christ their eternal life is secure. Their only fear
should be lest they surrender the truth, and thus betray the trust with
which God has honored them.

It is Satan's work to fill men's hearts with doubt. He leads them to look
upon God as a stern judge. He tempts them to sin, and then to regard
themselves as too vile to approach their heavenly Father or to excite His
pity. The Lord understands all this. Jesus assures His disciples of God's
sympathy for them in their needs and weaknesses. Not a sigh is breathed, not
a pain felt, not a grief pierces the soul, but the throb vibrates to the
Father's heart.

The Bible shows us God in His high and holy place, not in a state of
inactivity, not in silence and solitude, but surrounded by ten thousand
times ten thousand and thousands of thousands of holy intelligences, all
waiting to do His will. Through channels which we cannot discern He is in
active communication with every part of His dominion. But it is in this
speck of a world, in the souls that He gave His only-begotten Son to save,
that His interest and the interest of all heaven is centered. God is bending
from His throne to hear the cry of the oppressed. To every sincere prayer He
answers, "Here am I." He uplifts the distressed and downtrodden. In all our
afflictions He is afflicted. In every temptation and every trial the angel
of His presence is near to deliver.

Not even a sparrow falls to the ground without the Father's notice. Satan's
hatred against God leads him to hate every object of the Saviour's care. He
seeks to mar the handiwork of God, and he delights in destroying

                                                                     357

even the dumb creatures. It is only through God's protecting care that the
birds are preserved to gladden us with their songs of joy. But He does not
forget even the sparrows. "Fear ye not therefore, ye are of more value than
many sparrows."

Jesus continues: As you confess Me before men, so I will confess you before
God and the holy angels. You are to be My witnesses upon earth, channels
through which My grace can flow for the healing of the world. So I will be
your representative in heaven. The Father beholds not your faulty character,
but He sees you as clothed in My perfection. I am the medium through which
Heaven's blessings shall come to you. And everyone who confesses Me by
sharing My sacrifice for the lost shall be confessed as a sharer in the
glory and joy of the redeemed.

He who would confess Christ must have Christ abiding in him. He cannot
communicate that which he has not received. The disciples might speak
fluently on doctrines, they might repeat the words of Christ Himself; but
unless they possessed Christlike meekness and love, they were not confessing
Him. A spirit contrary to the spirit of Christ would deny Him, whatever the
profession. Men may deny Christ by evilspeaking, by foolish talking, by
words that are untruthful or unkind. They may deny Him by shunning life's
burdens, by the pursuit of sinful pleasure. They may deny Him by conforming
to the world, by uncourteous behavior, by the love of their own opinions, by
justifying self, by cherishing doubt, borrowing trouble, and dwelling in
darkness. In all these ways they declare that Christ is not in them. And
"whosoever shall deny Me before men," He says, "him will I also deny before
My Father which is in heaven."

The Saviour bade His disciples not to hope that the world's enmity to the
gospel would be overcome, and that after a time its opposition would cease.
He said, "I came not to send peace, but a sword." This creating of strife is
not the effect of the gospel, but the result of opposition to it. Of all
persecution the hardest to bear is variance in the home, the estrangement of
dearest earthly friends. But Jesus declares, "He that loveth father or
mother more than Me is not worthy of Me: and he that loveth son or daughter
more than Me is not worthy of Me. And he that taketh not his cross, and
followeth after Me, is not worthy of Me."

The mission of Christ's servants is a high honor, and a sacred trust. "He
that receiveth you," He says, "receiveth Me, and he that receiveth

358

Me receiveth Him that sent Me." No act of kindness shown to them in His name
will fail to be recognized and rewarded. And in the same tender recognition
He includes the feeblest and lowliest of the family of God: "Whosoever shall
give to drink unto one of these little ones"--those who are as children in
their faith and their knowledge of Christ--"a cup of cold water only in the
name of a disciple, verily I say unto you, he shall in nowise lose his
reward."

Thus the Saviour ended His instruction. In the name of Christ the chosen
twelve went out, as He had gone, "to preach the gospel to the poor, . . . to
heal the brokenhearted, to preach deliverance to the captives, and
recovering of sight to the blind, to set at liberty them that are bruised,
to preach the acceptable year of the Lord." Luke 4:18, 19.




                                                                     (359)

                             Chapter 38

                             Come Rest Awhile


On returning from their missionary tour, "the apostles gathered themselves
together unto Jesus, and told Him all things, both what they had done, and
what they had taught. And He said unto them, Come ye yourselves apart into a
desert place, and rest awhile: for there were many coming and going, and
they had no leisure so much as to eat."

The disciples came to Jesus and told Him all things. Their intimate
relationship with Him encouraged them to lay before Him their favorable and
unfavorable experiences, their joy at seeing results from their labors, and
their sorrow at their failures, their faults, and their weaknesses. They had
committed errors in their first work as evangelists, and as they frankly
told Christ of their experiences, He saw that they needed much instruction.
He saw, too, that they had become weary in their labors, and that they
needed to rest.

But where they then were they could not obtain the needed privacy; "for
there were many coming and going, and they had no leisure so much as to
eat." The people were thronging after Christ, anxious to be healed, and
eager to listen to His words. Many felt drawn to Him; for He seemed to them
to be the fountain of all blessings. Many of those who then thronged about
Christ to receive the precious boon of health accepted Him as their Saviour.
Many others, afraid then to confess Him, because of the Pharisees, were
converted at the descent

360

of the Holy Spirit, and, before the angry priests and rulers, acknowledged
Him as the Son of God.

But now Christ longed for retirement, that He might be with His disciples;
for He had much to say to them. In their work they had passed through the
test of conflict, and had encountered opposition in various forms. Hitherto
they had consulted Christ in everything; but for some time they had been
alone, and at times they had been much troubled to know what to do. They had
found much encouragement in their work; for Christ did not send them away
without His Spirit, and by faith in Him they worked many miracles; but they
needed now to feed on the Bread of Life. They needed to go to a place of
retirement, where they could hold communion with Jesus and receive
instruction for future work.

"And He said unto them, Come ye yourselves apart into a desert place, and
rest awhile." Christ is full of tenderness and compassion for all in His
service. He would show His disciples that God does not require sacrifice,
but mercy. They had been putting their whole souls into labor for the
people, and this was exhausting their physical and mental strength. It was
their duty to rest.

As the disciples had seen the success of their labors, they were in danger
of taking credit to themselves, in danger of cherishing spiritual pride, and
thus falling under Satan's temptations. A great work was before them, and
first of all they must learn that their strength was not in self, but in
God. Like Moses in the wilderness of Sinai, like David among the hills of
Judea, or Elijah by the brook Cherith, the disciples needed to come apart
from the scenes of their busy activity, to commune with Christ, with nature,
and with their own hearts.

While the disciples had been absent on their missionary tour, Jesus had
visited other towns and villages, preaching the gospel of the kingdom. It
was about this time that He received tidings of the Baptist's death. This
event brought vividly before Him the end to which His own steps were
tending. The shadows were gathering thickly about His path. Priests and
rabbis were watching to compass His death, spies hung upon His steps, and on
every hand plots for His ruin were multiplying. News of the preaching of the
apostles throughout Galilee reached Herod, calling his attention to Jesus
and His work. "This is John the Baptist," he said; "he is risen from the
dead;" and he expressed a desire to see Jesus. Herod was in constant fear
lest a revolution might be secretly carried forward, with the object of
unseating him from the throne, and breaking the Roman yoke from the Jewish
nation. Among the people the spirit

                                                                     361

of discontent and insurrection was rife. It was evident that Christ's public
labors in Galilee could not be long continued. The scenes of His suffering
were drawing near, and He longed to be apart for a season from the confusion
of the multitude.

With saddened hearts the disciples of John had borne his mutilated body to
its burial. Then they "went and told Jesus." These disciples had been
envious of Christ when He seemed to be drawing the people away from John.
They had sided with the Pharisees in accusing Him when He sat with the
publicans at Matthew's feast. They had doubted His divine mission because He
did not set the Baptist at liberty. But now that their teacher was dead, and
they longed for consolation in their great sorrow, and for guidance as to
their future work, they came to Jesus, and united their interest with His.
They too needed a season of quiet for communion with the Saviour.

Near Bethsaida, at the northern end of the lake, was a lonely region, now
beautiful with the fresh green of spring, that offered a welcome retreat to
Jesus and His disciples. For this place they set out, going in their boat
across the water. Here they would be away from the thoroughfares of travel,
and the bustle and agitation of the city. The scenes of nature were in
themselves a rest, a change grateful to the senses. Here they could listen
to the words of Christ without hearing the angry interruptions, the retorts
and accusations of the scribes and Pharisees. Here they could enjoy a short
season of precious fellowship in the society of their Lord.

The rest which Christ and His disciples took was not self-indulgent rest.
The time they spent in retirement was not devoted to pleasure seeking. They
talked together regarding the work of God, and the possibility of bringing
greater efficiency to the work. The disciples had been with Christ, and
could understand Him; to them He need not talk in parables. He corrected
their errors, and made plain to them the right way of approaching the
people. He opened more fully to them the precious treasures of divine truth.
They were vitalized by divine power, and inspired with hope and courage.

Though Jesus could work miracles, and had empowered His disciples to work
miracles, He directed His worn servants to go apart into the country and
rest. When He said that the harvest was great, and the laborers were few, He
did not urge upon His disciples the necessity of ceaseless toil, but said,
"Pray ye therefore the Lord of the harvest, that He will send forth laborers
into His harvest." Matt. 9:38. God has

362

appointed to every man his work, according to his ability (Eph. 4:11-13),
and He would not have a few weighted with responsibilities while others have
no burden, no travail of soul.

Christ's words of compassion are spoken to His workers today just as surely
as they were spoken to His disciples. "Come ye yourselves apart, . . . and
rest awhile," He says to those who are worn and weary. It is not wise to be
always under the strain of work and excitement, even in ministering to men's
spiritual needs; for in this way personal piety is neglected, and the powers
of mind and soul and body are overtaxed. Self-denial is required of the
disciples of Christ, and sacrifices must be made; but care must also be
exercised lest through their overzeal Satan take advantage of the weakness
of humanity, and the work of God be marred.

In the estimation of the rabbis it was the sum of religion to be always in a
bustle of activity. They depended upon some outward performance to show
their superior piety. Thus they separated their souls from God, and built
themselves up in self-sufficiency. The same dangers still exist. As activity
increases and men become successful in doing any work for God, there is
danger of trusting to human plans and methods. There is a tendency to pray
less, and to have less faith. Like the disciples, we are in danger of losing
sight of our dependence on God, and seeking to make a savior of our
activity. We need to look constantly to Jesus, realizing that it is His
power which does the work. While we are to labor earnestly for the salvation
of the lost, we must also take time for meditation, for prayer, and for the
study of the word of God. Only the work accomplished with much prayer, and
sanctified by the merit of Christ, will in the end prove to have been
efficient for good.

No other life was ever so crowded with labor and responsibility as was that
of Jesus; yet how often He was found in prayer! How constant was His
communion with God! Again and again in the history of His earthly life are
found records such as these: "Rising up a great while before day, He went
out, and departed into a solitary place, and there prayed." "Great
multitudes came together to hear, and to be healed by Him of their
infirmities. And He withdrew Himself into the wilderness, and prayed." "And
it came to pass in those days, that He went out into a mountain to pray, and
continued all night in prayer to God." Mark 1:35; Luke 5:15, 16; 6:12.

In a life wholly devoted to the good of others, the Saviour found

                                                                     363

it necessary to withdraw from the thoroughfares of travel and from the
throng that followed Him day after day. He must turn aside from a life of
ceaseless activity and contact with human needs, to seek retirement and
unbroken communion with His Father. As one with us, a sharer in our needs
and weaknesses, He was wholly dependent upon God, and in the secret place of
prayer He sought divine strength, that He might go forth braced for duty and
trial. In a world of sin Jesus endured struggles and torture of soul. In
communion with God He could unburden the sorrows that were crushing Him.
Here He found comfort and joy.

In Christ the cry of humanity reached the Father of infinite pity. As a man
He supplicated the throne of God till His humanity was charged with a
heavenly current that should connect humanity with divinity. Through
continual communion He received life from God, that He might impart life to
the world. His experience is to be ours.

"Come ye yourselves apart," He bids us. If we would give heed to His word,
we should be stronger and more useful. The disciples sought Jesus, and told
Him all things; and He encouraged and instructed them. If today we would
take time to go to Jesus and tell Him our needs, we should not be
disappointed; He would be at our right hand to help us. We need more
simplicity, more trust and confidence in our Saviour. He whose name is
called "The mighty God, The everlasting Father, The Prince of Peace;" He of
whom it is written, "The government shall be upon His shoulder," is the
Wonderful Counselor. We are invited to ask wisdom of Him. He "giveth to all
men liberally, and upbraideth not." Isa. 9:6; James 1:5.

In all who are under the training of God is to be revealed a life that is
not in harmony with the world, its customs, or its practices; and everyone
needs to have a personal experience in obtaining a knowledge of the will of
God. We must individually hear Him speaking to the heart. When every other
voice is hushed, and in quietness we wait before Him, the silence of the
soul makes more distinct the voice of God. He bids us, "Be still, and know
that I am God." Ps. 46:10. Here alone can true rest be found. And this is
the effectual preparation for all who labor for God. Amid the hurrying
throng, and the strain of life's intense activities, the soul that is thus
refreshed will be surrounded with an atmosphere of light and peace. The life
will breathe out fragrance, and will reveal a divine power that will reach
men's hearts.




(364)

                             Chapter 39

                             "Give Ye Them to Eat"


Christ had retired to a secluded place with His disciples, but this rare
season of peaceful quietude was soon broken. The disciples thought they had
retired where they would not be disturbed; but as soon as the multitude
missed the divine Teacher, they inquired, "Where is He?" Some among them had
noticed the direction in which Christ and His disciples had gone. Many went
by land to meet them, while others followed in their boats across the water.
The Passover was at hand, and, from far and near, bands of pilgrims on their
way to Jerusalem gathered to see Jesus. Additions were made to their number,
until there were assembled five thousand men besides women and children.
Before Christ reached the shore, a multitude were waiting for Him. But He
landed unobserved by them, and spent a little time apart with the disciples.

From the hillside He looked upon the moving multitude, and His heart was
stirred with sympathy. Interrupted as He was, and robbed of His rest, He was
not impatient. He saw a greater necessity demanding His attention as He
watched the people coming and still coming. He "was moved with compassion
toward them, because they were as sheep not having a shepherd." Leaving His
retreat, He found a convenient place where He could minister to them. They
received no help from

                                                                     365

the priests and rulers; but the healing waters of life flowed from Christ as
He taught the multitude the way of salvation.

The people listened to the words of mercy flowing so freely from the lips of
the Son of God. They heard the gracious words, so simple and so plain that
they were as the balm of Gilead to their souls. The healing of His divine
hand brought gladness and life to the dying, and ease and health to those
suffering with disease. The day seemed to them like heaven upon earth, and
they were utterly unconscious of how long it had been since they had eaten
anything.

At length the day was far spent. The sun was sinking in the west, and yet
the people lingered. Jesus had labored all day without food or rest. He was
pale from weariness and hunger, and the disciples besought Him to cease from
His toil. But He could not withdraw Himself from the multitude that pressed
upon Him.

The disciples finally came to Him, urging that for their own sake the people
should be sent away. Many had come from far, and had eaten nothing since
morning. In the surrounding towns and villages they might be able to buy
food. But Jesus said, "Give ye them to eat," and then, turning to Philip,
questioned, "Whence shall we buy bread, that these may eat?" This He said to
test the faith of the disciple. Philip looked over the sea of heads, and
thought how impossible it would be to provide food to satisfy the wants of
such a crowd. He answered that two hundred pennyworth of bread would not be
nearly enough to divide among them, so that each might have a little. Jesus
inquired how much food could be found among the company. "There is a lad
here," said Andrew, "which hath five barley loaves, and two small fishes;
but what are they among so many?" Jesus directed that these be brought to
Him. Then He bade the disciples seat the people on the grass in parties of
fifty or a hundred, to preserve order, and that all might witness what He
was about to do. When this was accomplished, Jesus took the food, "and
looking up to heaven, He blessed, and brake, and gave the loaves to His
disciples, and the disciples to the multitude." "And they did all eat, and
were filled. And they took up twelve baskets full of the fragments, and of
the fishes."

He who taught the people the way to secure peace and happiness was just as
thoughtful of their temporal necessities as of their spiritual need. The
people were weary and faint. There were mothers with babes in their arms,
and little children clinging to their skirts. Many had been standing for
hours. They had been so intensely interested

366

in Christ's words that they had not once thought of sitting down, and the
crowd was so great that there was danger of their trampling on one another.
Jesus would give them a chance to rest, and He bade them sit down. There was
much grass in the place, and all could rest in comfort.

Christ never worked a miracle except to supply a genuine necessity, and
every miracle was of a character to lead the people to the tree of life,
whose leaves are for the healing of the nations. The simple food

                                                                     367

passed round by the hands of the disciples contained a whole treasure of
lessons. It was humble fare that had been provided; the fishes and barley
loaves were the daily food of the fisher folk about the Sea of Galilee.
Christ could have spread before the people a rich repast, but food prepared
merely for the gratification of appetite would have conveyed no lesson for
their good. Christ taught them in this lesson that the natural provisions of
God for man had been perverted. And never did people enjoy the luxurious
feasts prepared for the gratification of perverted taste as this people
enjoyed the rest and the simple food which Christ provided so far from human
habitations.

If men today were simple in their habits, living in harmony with nature's
laws, as did Adam and Eve in the beginning, there would be an abundant
supply for the needs of the human family. There would be fewer imaginary
wants, and more opportunities to work in God's ways. But selfishness and the
indulgence of unnatural taste have brought sin and misery into the world,
from excess on the one hand, and from want on the other.

Jesus did not seek to attract the people to Him by gratifying the desire for
luxury. To that great throng, weary and hungry after the long, exciting day,
the simple fare was an assurance not only of His power, but of His tender
care for them in the common needs of life. The Saviour has not promised His
followers the luxuries of the world; their fare may be plain, and even
scanty; their lot may be shut in by poverty; but His word is pledged that
their need shall be supplied, and He has promised that which is far better
than worldly good,--the abiding comfort of His own presence.

In feeding the five thousand, Jesus lifts the veil from the world of nature,
and reveals the power that is constantly exercised for our good. In the
production of earth's harvests God is working a miracle every day. Through
natural agencies the same work is accomplished that was wrought in the
feeding of the multitude. Men prepare the soil and sow the seed, but it is
the life from God that causes the seed to germinate. It is God's rain and
air and sunshine that cause it to put forth, "first the blade, then the ear,
after that the full corn in the ear." Mark 4:28. It is God who is every day
feeding millions from earth's harvest fields. Men are called upon to
co-operate with God in the care of the grain and the preparation of the
loaf, and because of this they lose sight of the divine agency. They do not
give God the glory due unto

368

His holy name. The working of His power is ascribed to natural causes or to
human instrumentality. Man is glorified in place of God, and His gracious
gifts are perverted to selfish uses, and made a curse instead of a blessing.
God is seeking to change all this. He desires that our dull senses shall be
quickened to discern His merciful kindness and to glorify Him for the
working of His power. He desires us to recognize Him in His gifts, that they
may be, as He intended, a blessing to us. It was to accomplish this purpose
that the miracles of Christ were performed.

After the multitude had been fed, there was an abundance of food left. But
He who had all the resources of infinite power at His command said, "Gather
up the fragments that remain, that nothing be lost." These words meant more
than putting the bread into the baskets. The lesson was twofold. Nothing is
to be wasted. We are to let slip no temporal advantage. We should neglect
nothing that will tend to benefit a human being. Let everything be gathered
up that will relieve the necessity of earth's hungry ones. And there should
be the same carefulness in spiritual things. When the baskets of fragments
were collected, the people thought of their friends at home. They wanted
them to share in the bread that Christ had blessed. The contents of the
baskets were distributed among the eager throng, and were carried away into
all the region round about. So those who were at the feast were to give to
others the bread that comes down from heaven, to satisfy the hunger of the
soul. They were to repeat what they had learned of the wonderful things of
God. Nothing was to be lost. Not one word that concerned their eternal
salvation was to fall useless to the ground.

The miracle of the loaves teaches a lesson of dependence upon God. When
Christ fed the five thousand, the food was not nigh at hand. Apparently He
had no means at His command. Here He was, with five thousand men, besides
women and children, in the wilderness. He had not invited the large
multitude to follow Him; they came without invitation or command; but He
knew that after they had listened so long to His instruction, they would
feel hungry and faint; for He was one with them in their need of food. They
were far from home, and the night was close at hand. Many of them were
without means to purchase food. He who for their sake had fasted forty days
in the wilderness would not suffer them to return fasting to their homes.
The providence of God had placed Jesus where He was; and He depended on His
heavenly Father for the means to relieve the necessity.

                                                                     369


And when we are brought into strait places, we are to depend on God. We are
to exercise wisdom and judgment in every action of life, that we may not, by
reckless movements, place ourselves in trial. We are not to plunge into
difficulties, neglecting the means God has provided, and misusing the
faculties He has given us. Christ's workers are to obey His instructions
implicitly. The work is God's, and if we would bless others His plans must
be followed. Self cannot be made a center; self can receive no honor. If we
plan according to our own ideas, the Lord will leave us to our own mistakes.
But when, after following His directions, we are brought into strait places,
He will deliver us. We are not to give up in discouragement, but in every
emergency we are to seek help from Him who has infinite resources at His
command. Often we shall be surrounded with trying circumstances, and then,
in the fullest confidence, we must depend upon God. He will keep every soul
that is brought into perplexity through trying to keep the way of the Lord.

Christ has bidden us, through the prophet, "Deal thy bread to the hungry,"
and "satisfy the afflicted soul;" "when thou seest the naked, that thou
cover him," and "bring the poor that are cast out to thy house." Isa.
58:7-10. He has bidden us, "Go ye into all the world, and preach the gospel
to every creature." Mark 16:15. But how often our hearts sink, and faith
fails us, as we see how great is the need, and how small the means in our
hands. Like Andrew looking upon the five barley loaves and the two little
fishes, we exclaim, "What are they among so many?" Often we hesitate,
unwilling to give all that we have, fearing to spend and to be spent for
others. But Jesus has bidden us, "Give ye them to eat." His command is a
promise; and behind it is the same power that fed the multitude beside the
sea.

In Christ's act of supplying the temporal necessities of a hungry multitude
is wrapped up a deep spiritual lesson for all His workers. Christ received
from the Father; He imparted to the disciples; they imparted to the
multitude; and the people to one another. So all who are united to Christ
will receive from Him the bread of life, the heavenly food, and impart it to
others.

In full reliance upon God, Jesus took the small store of loaves; and
although there was but a small portion for His own family of disciples, He
did not invite them to eat, but began to distribute to them, bidding them
serve the people. The food multiplied in His hands; and the hands of the
disciples, reaching out to Christ Himself the Bread of

370

Life, were never empty. The little store was sufficient for all. After the
wants of the people had been supplied, the fragments were gathered up, and
Christ and His disciples ate together of the precious, Heaven-supplied food.

The disciples were the channel of communication between Christ and the
people. This should be a great encouragement to His disciples today. Christ
is the great center, the source of all strength. His disciples are to
receive their supplies from Him. The most intelligent, the most spiritually
minded, can bestow only as they receive. Of themselves they can supply
nothing for the needs of the soul. We can impart only that which we receive
from Christ; and we can receive only as we impart to others. As we continue
imparting, we continue to receive; and the more we impart, the more we shall
receive. Thus we may be constantly believing, trusting, receiving, and
imparting.

The work of building up the kingdom of Christ will go forward, though to all
appearance it moves slowly and impossibilities seem to testify against
advance. The work is of God, and He will furnish means, and will send
helpers, true, earnest disciples, whose hands also will be filled with food
for the starving multitude. God is not unmindful of those who labor in love
to give the word of life to perishing souls, who in their turn reach forth
their hands for food for other hungry souls.

In our work for God there is danger of relying too largely upon what man
with his talents and ability can do. Thus we lose sight of the one Master
Worker. Too often the worker for Christ fails to realize his personal
responsibility. He is in danger of shifting his burden upon organizations,
instead of relying upon Him who is the source of all strength. It is a great
mistake to trust in human wisdom or numbers in the work of God. Successful
work for Christ depends not so much on numbers or talent as upon pureness of
purpose, the true simplicity of earnest, dependent faith. Personal
responsibilities must be borne, personal duties must be taken up, personal
efforts must be made for those who do not know Christ. In the place of
shifting your responsibility upon someone whom you think more richly endowed
than you are, work according to your ability.

When the question comes home to your heart, "Whence shall we buy bread, that
these may eat?" let not your answer be the response of unbelief. When the
disciples heard the Saviour's direction, "Give ye them to eat," all the
difficulties arose in their minds. They questioned,

                                                                     371

Shall we go away into the villages to buy food? So now, when the people are
destitute of the bread of life, the Lord's children question, Shall we send
for someone from afar, to come and feed them? But what said Christ? "Make
the men sit down," and He fed them there. So when you are surrounded by
souls in need, know that Christ is there. Commune with Him. Bring your
barley loaves to Jesus.

The means in our possession may not seem to be sufficient for the work; but
if we will move forward in faith, believing in the all-sufficient power of
God, abundant resources will open before us. If the work be of God, He
Himself will provide the means for its accomplishment. He will reward
honest, simple reliance upon Him. The little that is wisely and economically
used in the service of the Lord of heaven will increase in the very act of
imparting. In the hand of Christ the small supply of food remained
undiminished until the famished multitude were satisfied. If we go to the
Source of all strength, with our hands of faith outstretched to receive, we
shall be sustained in our work, even under the most forbidding
circumstances, and shall be enabled to give to others the bread of life.

The Lord says, "Give, and it shall be given unto you." "He that soweth
sparingly shall reap also sparingly; and he that soweth with blessings shall
reap also with blessings. . . . And God is able to make all grace abound
unto you; that ye, having always all sufficiency in everything, may abound
unto every good work; as it is written,--

            "He hath scattered abroad, he hath given to the poor:
             His righteousness abideth forever.

"And He that supplieth seed to the sower and bread for food, shall supply
and multiply your seed for sowing, and increase the fruits of your
righteousness: ye being enriched in everything unto all liberality, which
worketh through us thanksgiving to God." Luke 6:38; 2 Cor. 9:6-11, R. V.,
margin.




                                                                     (377)

                             Chapter 40

                             A Night on the Lake


Seated upon the grassy plain, in the twilight of the spring evening, the
people ate of the food that Christ had provided. The words they had heard
that day had come to them as the voice of God. The works of healing they had
witnessed were such as only divine power could perform. But the miracle of
the loaves appealed to everyone in that vast multitude. All were sharers in
its benefit. In the days of Moses, God had fed Israel with manna in the
desert; and who was this that had fed them that day but He whom Moses had
foretold? No human power could create from five barley loaves and two small
fishes food sufficient to feed thousands of hungry people. And they said one
to another, "This is of a truth that Prophet that should come into the
world."

All day the conviction has strengthened. That crowning act is assurance that
the long-looked-for Deliverer is among them. The hopes of the people rise
higher and higher. This is He who will make Judea an earthly paradise, a
land flowing with milk and honey. He can satisfy every desire. He can break
the power of the hated Romans. He can deliver Judah and Jerusalem. He can
heal the soldiers who are wounded in battle. He can supply whole armies with
food. He can conquer the nations, and give to Israel the long-sought
dominion.

378


In their enthusiasm the people are ready at once to crown Him king. They see
that He makes no effort to attract attention or secure honor to Himself. In
this He is essentially different from the priests and rulers, and they fear
that He will never urge His claim to David's throne. Consulting together,
they agree to take Him by force, and proclaim Him the king of Israel. The
disciples unite with the multitude in declaring the throne of David the
rightful inheritance of their Master. It is the modesty of Christ, they say,
that causes Him to refuse such honor. Let the people exalt their Deliverer.
Let the arrogant priests and rulers be forced to honor Him who comes clothed
with the authority of God.

They eagerly arrange to carry out their purpose; but Jesus sees what is on
foot, and understands, as they cannot, what would be the result of such a
movement. Even now the priests and rulers are hunting His life. They accuse
Him of drawing the people away from them. Violence and insurrection would
follow an effort to place Him on the throne, and the work of the spiritual
kingdom would be hindered. Without delay the movement must be checked.
Calling His disciples, Jesus bids them take the boat and return at once to
Capernaum, leaving Him to dismiss the people.

Never before had a command from Christ seemed so impossible of fulfillment.
The disciples had long hoped for a popular movement to place Jesus on the
throne; they could not endure the thought that all this enthusiasm should
come to nothing. The multitudes that were assembling to keep the Passover
were anxious to see the new prophet. To His followers this seemed the golden
opportunity to establish their beloved Master on the throne of Israel. In
the glow of this new ambition it was hard for them to go away by themselves,
and leave Jesus alone upon that desolate shore. They protested against the
arrangement; but Jesus now spoke with an authority He had never before
assumed toward them. They knew that further opposition on their part would
be useless, and in silence they turned toward the sea.

Jesus now commands the multitude to disperse; and His manner is so decisive
that they dare not disobey. The words of praise and exaltation die on their
lips. In the very act of advancing to seize Him their steps are stayed, and
the glad, eager look fades from their countenances. In that throng are men
of strong mind and firm determination; but the kingly bearing of Jesus, and
His few quiet words of command, quell the tumult, and frustrate their
designs. They recognize

                                                                     379

in Him a power above all earthly authority, and without a question they
submit.

When left alone, Jesus "went up into a mountain apart to pray." For hours He
continued pleading with God. Not for Himself but for men were those prayers.
He prayed for power to reveal to men the divine character of His mission,
that Satan might not blind their understanding and pervert their judgment.
The Saviour knew that His days of personal ministry on earth were nearly
ended, and that few would receive Him as their Redeemer. In travail and
conflict of soul He prayed for His disciples. They were to be grievously
tried. Their long-cherished hopes, based on a popular delusion, were to be
disappointed in a most painful and humiliating manner. In the place of His
exaltation to the throne of David they were to witness His crucifixion. This
was to be indeed His true coronation. But they did not discern this, and in
consequence strong temptations would come to them, which it would be
difficult for them to recognize as temptations. Without the Holy Spirit to
enlighten the mind and enlarge the comprehension the faith of the disciples
would fail. It was painful to Jesus that their conceptions of His kingdom
were, to so great a degree, limited to worldly aggrandizement and honor. For
them the burden was heavy upon His heart, and He poured out His
supplications with bitter agony and tears.

The disciples had not put off immediately from the land, as Jesus directed
them. They waited for a time, hoping that He would come to

380

them. But as they saw that darkness was fast gathering, they "entered into a
ship, and went over the sea toward Capernaum." They had left Jesus with
dissatisfied hearts, more impatient with Him than ever before since
acknowledging Him as their Lord. They murmured because they had not been
permitted to proclaim Him king. They blamed themselves for yielding so
readily to His command. They reasoned that if they had been more persistent
they might have accomplished their purpose.

Unbelief was taking possession of their minds and hearts. Love of honor had
blinded them. They knew that Jesus was hated by the Pharisees, and they were
eager to see Him exalted as they thought He should be. To be united with a
teacher who could work mighty miracles, and yet to be reviled as deceivers,
was a trial they could ill endure. Were they always to be accounted
followers of a false prophet? Would Christ never assert His authority as
king? Why did not He who possessed such power reveal Himself in His true
character, and make their way less painful? Why had He not saved John the
Baptist from a violent death? Thus the disciples reasoned until they brought
upon themselves great spiritual darkness. They questioned, Could Jesus be an
impostor, as the Pharisees asserted?

The disciples had that day witnessed the wonderful works of Christ. It had
seemed that heaven had come down to the earth. The memory of that precious,
glorious day should have filled them with faith and hope. Had they, out of
the abundance of their hearts, been conversing together in regard to these
things, they would not have entered into temptation. But their
disappointment had absorbed their thoughts. The words of Christ, "Gather up
the fragments, . . . that nothing be lost," were unheeded. Those were hours
of large blessing to the disciples, but they had forgotten it all. They were
in the midst of troubled waters. Their thoughts were stormy and
unreasonable, and the Lord gave them something else to afflict their souls
and occupy their minds. God often does this when men create burdens and
troubles for themselves. The disciples had no need to make trouble. Already
danger was fast approaching.

A violent tempest had been stealing upon them, and they were unprepared for
it. It was a sudden contrast, for the day had been perfect; and when the
gale struck them, they were afraid. They forgot their disaffection, their
unbelief, their impatience. Everyone worked to keep the boat from sinking.
It was but a short distance by sea from Bethsaida to the point where they
expected to meet Jesus, and in ordinary weather the journey required but a
few hours; but now they were driven farther

                                                                     381

and farther from the point they sought. Until the fourth watch of the night
they toiled at the oars. Then the weary men gave themselves up for lost. In
storm and darkness the sea had taught them their own helplessness, and they
longed for the presence of their Master.

Jesus had not forgotten them. The Watcher on the shore saw those
fear-stricken men battling with the tempest. Not for a moment did He lose
sight of His disciples. With deepest solicitude His eyes followed the
storm-tossed boat with its precious burden; for these men were to be the
light of the world. As a mother in tender love watches her child, so the
compassionate Master watched His disciples. When their hearts were subdued,
their unholy ambition quelled, and in humility they prayed for help, it was
given them.

At the moment when they believe themselves lost, a gleam of light reveals a
mysterious figure approaching them upon the water. But they know not that it
is Jesus. The One who has come for their help they count as an enemy. Terror
overpowers them. The hands that have grasped the oars with muscles like iron
let go their hold. The boat rocks at the will of the waves; all eyes are
riveted on this vision of a man walking upon the white-capped billows of the
foaming sea.

They think it a phantom that omens their destruction, and they cry out for
fear. Jesus advances as if He would pass them; but they recognize Him, and
cry out, entreating His help. Their beloved Master turns, His voice silences
their fear, "Be of good cheer: it is I; be not afraid."

As soon as they could credit the wondrous fact, Peter was almost beside
himself with joy. As if he could scarcely yet believe, he cried out, "Lord,
if it be Thou, bid me come unto Thee on the water. And He said, Come."

Looking unto Jesus, Peter walks securely; but as in self-satisfaction he
glances back toward his companions in the boat, his eyes are turned from the
Saviour. The wind is boisterous. The waves roll high, and come directly
between him and the Master; and he is afraid. For a moment Christ is hidden
from his view, and his faith gives way. He begins to sink. But while the
billows talk with death, Peter lifts his eyes from the angry waters, and
fixing them upon Jesus, cries, "Lord, save me." Immediately Jesus grasps the
outstretched hand, saying, "O thou of little faith, wherefore didst thou
doubt?"

Walking side by side, Peter's hand in that of his Master, they stepped into
the boat together. But Peter was now subdued and silent. He had no reason to
boast over his fellows, for through unbelief and self-exaltation

382

he had very nearly lost his life. When he turned his eyes from Jesus, his
footing was lost, and he sank amid the waves.

When trouble comes upon us, how often we are like Peter! We look upon the
waves, instead of keeping our eyes fixed upon the Saviour. Our footsteps
slide, and the proud waters go over our souls. Jesus did not bid Peter come
to Him that he should perish; He does not call us to follow Him, and then
forsake us. "Fear not," He says; "for I have redeemed thee, I have called
thee by thy name; thou art Mine. When thou passest through the waters, I
will be with thee; and through the rivers, they shall not overflow thee:
when thou walkest through the fire, thou shalt not be burned; neither shall
the flame kindle upon thee. For I am the Lord thy God, the Holy One of
Israel, thy Saviour." Isa. 43:1-3.

Jesus read the character of His disciples. He knew how sorely their faith
was to be tried. In this incident on the sea He desired to reveal to Peter
his own weakness,--to show that his safety was in constant dependence upon
divine power. Amid the storms of temptation he could walk safely only as in
utter self-distrust he should rely upon the Saviour. It was on the point
where he thought himself strong that Peter was weak; and not until he
discerned his weakness could he realize his need of dependence upon Christ.
Had he learned the lesson that Jesus sought to teach him in that experience
on the sea, he would not have failed when the great test came upon him.

Day by day God instructs His children. By the circumstances of the daily
life He is preparing them to act their part upon that wider stage to which
His providence has appointed them. It is the issue of the daily test that
determines their victory or defeat in life's great crisis.

Those who fail to realize their constant dependence upon God will be
overcome by temptation. We may now suppose that our feet stand secure, and
that we shall never be moved. We may say with confidence, "I know in whom I
have believed; nothing can shake my faith in God and in His word." But Satan
is planning to take advantage of our hereditary and cultivated traits of
character, and to blind our eyes to our own necessities and defects. Only
through realizing our own weakness and looking steadfastly unto Jesus can we
walk securely.

No sooner had Jesus taken His place in the boat than the wind ceased, "and
immediately the ship was at the land whither they went." The night of horror
was succeeded by the light of dawn. The disciples, and others who also were
on board, bowed at the feet of Jesus with thankful hearts, saying, "Of a
truth Thou art the Son of God!"




                                                                     (383)

                             Chapter 41

                             The Crisis in Galilee


When Christ forbade the people to declare Him king, He knew that a turning
point in His history was reached. Multitudes who desired to exalt Him to the
throne today would turn from Him tomorrow. The disappointment of their
selfish ambition would turn their love to hatred, and their praise to
curses. Yet knowing this, He took no measures to avert the crisis. From the
first He had held out to His followers no hope of earthly rewards. To one
who came desiring to become His disciple He had said, "The foxes have holes,
and the birds of the air have nests; but the Son of man hath not where to
lay His head." Matt. 8:20. If men could have had the world with Christ,
multitudes would have proffered Him their allegiance; but such service He
could not accept. Of those now connected with Him there were many who had
been attracted by the hope of a worldly kingdom. These must be undeceived.
The deep spiritual teaching in the miracle of the loaves had not been
comprehended. This was to be made plain. And this new revelation would bring
with it a closer test.

The miracle of the loaves was reported far and near, and very early next
morning the people flocked to Bethsaida to see Jesus. They came in great
numbers, by land and sea. Those who had left Him the preceding night
returned, expecting to find Him still there; for there had been no boat by
which He could pass to the other side. But their search was fruitless, and
many repaired to Capernaum, still seeking Him.

384


Meanwhile He had arrived at Gennesaret, after an absence of but one day. As
soon as it was known that He had landed, the people "ran through that whole
region round about, and began to carry about in beds those that were sick,
where they heard He was." Mark 6:55.

After a time He went to the synagogue, and there those who had come from
Bethsaida found Him. They learned from His disciples how He had crossed the
sea. The fury of the storm, and the many hours of fruitless rowing against
adverse winds, the appearance of Christ walking upon the water, the fears
thus aroused, His reassuring words, the adventure of Peter and its result,
with the sudden stilling of the tempest and landing of the boat, were all
faithfully recounted to the wondering crowd. Not content with this, however,
many gathered about Jesus, questioning, "Rabbi, when camest Thou hither?"
They hoped to receive from His own lips a further account of the miracle.

Jesus did not gratify their curiosity. He sadly said, "Ye seek Me, not
because ye saw the miracles, but because ye did eat of the loaves, and were
filled." They did not seek Him from any worthy motive; but as they had been
fed with the loaves, they hoped still to receive temporal benefit by
attaching themselves to Him. The Saviour bade them, "Labor not for the meat
which perisheth, but for that meat which endureth unto

                                                                     385

everlasting life." Seek not merely for material benefit. Let it not be the
chief effort to provide for the life that now is, but seek for spiritual
food, even that wisdom which will endure unto everlasting life. This the Son
of God alone can give; "for Him hath God the Father sealed."

For the moment the interest of the hearers was awakened. They exclaimed,
"What shall we do, that we might work the works of God?" They had been
performing many and burdensome works in order to recommend themselves to
God; and they were ready to hear of any new observance by which they could
secure greater merit. Their question meant, What shall we do that we may
deserve heaven? What is the price we are required to pay in order to obtain
the life to come?

"Jesus answered and said unto them, This is the work of God, that ye believe
on Him whom He hath sent." The price of heaven is Jesus. The way to heaven
is through faith in "the Lamb of God, which taketh away the sin of the
world." John 1:29.

But the people did not choose to receive this statement of divine truth.
Jesus had done the very work which prophecy had foretold that the Messiah
would do; but they had not witnessed what their selfish hopes had pictured
as His work. Christ had indeed once fed the multitude with barley loaves;
but in the days of Moses Israel had been fed with manna forty years, and far
greater blessings were expected from the Messiah. Their dissatisfied hearts
queried why, if Jesus could perform so many wondrous works as they had
witnessed, could He not give health, strength, and riches to all His people,
free them from their oppressors, and exalt them to power and honor? The fact
that He claimed to be the Sent of God, and yet refused to be Israel's king,
was a mystery which they could not fathom. His refusal was misinterpreted.
Many concluded that He dared not assert His claims because He Himself
doubted as to the divine character of His mission. Thus they opened their
hearts to unbelief, and the seed which Satan had sown bore fruit of its
kind, in misunderstanding and defection.

Now, half mockingly, a rabbi questioned, "What sign showest Thou then, that
we may see, and believe Thee? what dost Thou work? Our fathers did eat manna
in the desert; as it is written, He gave them bread from heaven to eat."

The Jews honored Moses as the giver of the manna, ascribing praise to the
instrument, and losing sight of Him by whom the work had been accomplished.
Their fathers had murmured against Moses, and had doubted and denied his
divine mission. Now in the same spirit the

386

children rejected the One who bore the message of God to themselves. "Then
said Jesus unto them, Verily, verily, I say unto you, Moses gave you not
that bread from heaven." The giver of the manna was standing among them. It
was Christ Himself who had led the Hebrews through the wilderness, and had
daily fed them with the bread from heaven. That food was a type of the real
bread from heaven. The life-giving Spirit, flowing from the infinite
fullness of God, is the true manna. Jesus said, "The bread of God is that
which cometh down out of heaven, and giveth life unto the world." John 6:33,
R. V.

Still thinking that it was temporal food to which Jesus referred, some of
His hearers exclaimed, "Lord, evermore give us this bread." Jesus then spoke
plainly: "I am the bread of life."

The figure which Christ used was a familiar one to the Jews. Moses, by the
inspiration of the Holy Spirit, had said, "Man doth not live by bread only,
but by every word that proceedeth out of the mouth of the Lord." And the
prophet Jeremiah had written, "Thy words were found, and I did eat them; and
Thy word was unto me the joy and rejoicing of mine heart." Deut. 8:3; Jer.
15:16. The rabbis themselves had a saying, that the eating of bread, in its
spiritual significance, was the study of the law and the practice of good
works; and it was often said that at the Messiah's coming all Israel would
be fed. The teaching of the prophets made plain the deep spiritual lesson in
the miracle of the loaves. This lesson Christ was seeking to open to His
hearers in the synagogue. Had they understood the Scriptures, they would
have understood His words when He said, "I am the bread of life." Only the
day before, the great multitude, when faint and weary, had been fed by the
bread which He had given. As from that bread they had received physical
strength and refreshment, so from Christ they might receive spiritual
strength unto eternal life. "He that cometh to Me," He said, "shall never
hunger; and he that believeth on Me shall never thirst." But He added, "Ye
also have seen Me, and believe not."

They had seen Christ by the witness of the Holy Spirit, by the revelation of
God to their souls. The living evidences of His power had been before them
day after day, yet they asked for still another sign. Had this been given,
they would have remained as unbelieving as before. If they were not
convinced by what they had seen and heard, it was useless to show them more
marvelous works. Unbelief will ever find excuse for doubt, and will reason
away the most positive proof.

Again Christ appealed to those stubborn hearts. "Him that cometh

                                                                     387

to Me I will in nowise cast out." All who received Him in faith, He said,
should have eternal life. Not one could be lost. No need for Pharisees and
Sadducees to dispute concerning the future life. No longer need men mourn in
hopeless grief over their dead. "This is the will of Him that sent Me, that
everyone which seeth the Son, and believeth on Him, may have everlasting
life: and I will raise him up at the last day."

But the leaders of the people were offended, "and they said, Is not this
Jesus, the son of Joseph, whose father and mother we know? how is it then
that He saith, I came down from heaven?" They tried to arouse prejudice by
referring scornfully to the lowly origin of Jesus. They contemptuously
alluded to His life as a Galilean laborer, and to His family as being poor
and lowly. The claims of this uneducated carpenter, they said, were unworthy
of their attention. And on account of His mysterious birth they insinuated
that He was of doubtful parentage, thus representing the human circumstances
of His birth as a blot upon His history.

Jesus did not attempt to explain the mystery of His birth. He made no answer
to the questionings in regard to His having come down from heaven, as He had
made none to the questions concerning His crossing the sea. He did not call
attention to the miracles that marked His life. Voluntarily He had made
Himself of no reputation, and taken upon Him the form of a servant. But His
words and works revealed His character. All whose hearts were open to divine
illumination would recognize in Him "the Only-begotten of the Father, full
of grace and truth." John 1:14.

The prejudice of the Pharisees lay deeper than their questions would
indicate; it had its root in the perversity of their hearts. Every word and
act of Jesus aroused antagonism in them; for the spirit which they cherished
could find in Him no answering chord.

"No man can come to Me, except the Father which hath sent Me draw him: and I
will raise him up at the last day. It is written in the prophets, And they
shall be all taught of God. Every man therefore that hath heard, and hath
learned of the Father, cometh unto Me." None will ever come to Christ, save
those who respond to the drawing of the Father's love. But God is drawing
all hearts unto Him, and only those who resist His drawing will refuse to
come to Christ.

In the words, "They shall be all taught of God," Jesus referred to the
prophecy of Isaiah: "All thy children shall be taught of the Lord; and great
shall be the peace of thy children." Isa. 54:13. This scripture

388

the Jews appropriated to themselves. It was their boast that God was their
teacher. But Jesus showed how vain is this claim; for He said, "Every man
therefore that hath heard, and hath learned of the Father, cometh unto Me."
Only through Christ could they receive a knowledge of the Father. Humanity
could not endure the vision of His glory. Those who had learned of God had
been listening to the voice of His Son, and in Jesus of Nazareth they would
recognize Him who through nature and revelation has declared the Father.

"Verily, verily, I say unto you, He that believeth on Me hath everlasting
life." Through the beloved John, who listened to these words, the Holy
Spirit declared to the churches, "This is the record, that God hath given to
us eternal life, and this life is in His Son. He that hath the Son hath
life." 1 John 5:11, 12. And Jesus said, "I will raise him up at the last
day." Christ became one flesh with us, in order that we might become one
spirit with Him. It is by virtue of this union that we are to come forth
from the grave,--not merely as a manifestation of the power of Christ, but
because, through faith, His life has become ours. Those who see Christ in
His true character, and receive Him into the heart, have everlasting life.
It is through the Spirit that Christ dwells in us; and the Spirit of God,
received into the heart by faith, is the beginning of the life eternal.

The people had referred Christ to the manna which their fathers ate in the
wilderness, as if the furnishing of that food was a greater miracle than
Jesus had performed; but He shows how meager was that gift when compared
with the blessings He had come to bestow. The manna could sustain only this
earthly existence; it did not prevent the approach of death, nor insure
immortality; but the bread of heaven would nourish the soul unto everlasting
life. The Saviour said, "I am that bread of life. Your fathers did eat manna
in the wilderness, and are dead. This is the bread which cometh down from
heaven, that a man may eat thereof, and not die. I am the living bread which
came down from heaven: if any man eat of this bread, he shall live forever."
To this figure Christ now adds another. Only through dying could He impart
life to men, and in the words that follow He points to His death as the
means of salvation. He says, "The bread that I will give is My flesh, which
I will give for the life of the world."

The Jews were about to celebrate the Passover at Jerusalem, in commemoration
of the night of Israel's deliverance, when the destroying angel smote the
homes of Egypt. In the paschal lamb God desired them

                                                                     389

to behold the Lamb of God, and through the symbol receive Him who gave
Himself for the life of the world. But the Jews had come to make the symbol
all-important, while its significance was unnoticed. They discerned not the
Lord's body. The same truth that was symbolized in the paschal service was
taught in the words of Christ. But it was still undiscerned.

Now the rabbis exclaimed angrily, "How can this Man give us His flesh to
eat?" They affected to understand His words in the same literal sense as did
Nicodemus when he asked, "How can a man be born when he is old?" John 3:4.
To some extent they comprehended the meaning of Jesus, but they were not
willing to acknowledge it. By misconstruing His words, they hoped to
prejudice the people against Him.

Christ did not soften down His symbolical representation. He reiterated the
truth in yet stronger language: "Verily, verily, I say unto you, Except ye
eat the flesh of the Son of man, and drink His blood, ye have no life in
you. Whoso eateth My flesh, and drinketh My blood, hath eternal life; and I
will raise him up at the last day. For My flesh is meat indeed, and My blood
is drink indeed. He that eateth My flesh, and drinketh My blood, dwelleth in
Me, and I in him."

To eat the flesh and drink the blood of Christ is to receive Him as a
personal Saviour, believing that He forgives our sins, and that we are
complete in Him. It is by beholding His love, by dwelling upon it, by
drinking it in, that we are to become partakers of His nature. What food is
to the body, Christ must be to the soul. Food cannot benefit us unless we
eat it, unless it becomes a part of our being. So Christ is of no value to
us if we do not know Him as a personal Saviour. A theoretical knowledge will
do us no good. We must feed upon Him, receive Him into the heart, so that
His life becomes our life. His love, His grace, must be assimilated.

But even these figures fail to present the privilege of the believer's
relation to Christ. Jesus said, "As the living Father hath sent Me, and I
live by the Father: so he that eateth Me, even he shall live by Me." As the
Son of God lived by faith in the Father, so are we to live by faith in
Christ. So fully was Jesus surrendered to the will of God that the Father
alone appeared in His life. Although tempted in all points like as we are,
He stood before the world untainted by the evil that surrounded Him. Thus we
also are to overcome as Christ overcame.

Are you a follower of Christ? Then all that is written concerning the
spiritual life is written for you, and may be attained through uniting
yourself

390

to Jesus. Is your zeal languishing? has your first love grown cold? Accept
again of the proffered love of Christ. Eat of His flesh, drink of His blood,
and you will become one with the Father and with the Son.

The unbelieving Jews refused to see any except the most literal meaning in
the Saviour's words. By the ritual law they were forbidden to taste blood,
and they now construed Christ's language into a sacrilegious speech, and
disputed over it among themselves. Many even of the disciples said, "This is
an hard saying; who can hear it?"

The Saviour answered them: "Doth this offend you? What and if ye shall see
the Son of man ascend up where He was before? It is the spirit that
quickeneth; the flesh profiteth nothing: the words that I speak unto you,
they are spirit, and they are life."

The life of Christ that gives life to the world is in His word. It was by
His word that Jesus healed disease and cast out demons; by His word He
stilled the sea, and raised the dead; and the people bore witness that His
word was with power. He spoke the word of God, as He had spoken through all
the prophets and teachers of the Old Testament. The whole Bible is a
manifestation of Christ, and the Saviour desired to fix the faith of His
followers on the word. When His visible presence should be withdrawn, the
word must be their source of power. Like their Master, they were to live "by
every word that proceedeth out of the mouth of God." Matt. 4:4.

As our physical life is sustained by food, so our spiritual life is
sustained by the word of God. And every soul is to receive life from God's
word for himself. As we must eat for ourselves in order to receive
nourishment, so we must receive the word for ourselves. We are not to obtain
it merely through the medium of another's mind. We should carefully study
the Bible, asking God for the aid of the Holy Spirit, that we may understand
His word. We should take one verse, and concentrate the mind on the task of
ascertaining the thought which God has put in that verse for us. We should
dwell upon the thought until it becomes our own, and we know "what saith the
Lord."

In His promises and warnings, Jesus means me. God so loved the world, that
He gave His only-begotten Son, that I by believing in Him, might not perish,
but have everlasting life. The experiences related in God's word are to be
my experiences. Prayer and promise, precept and warning, are mine. "I am
crucified with Christ: nevertheless I live; yet not I, but Christ liveth in
me: and the life which I now live in the flesh I live by the faith of the
Son of God, who loved me, and gave Himself

                                                                     391

for me." Gal. 2:20. As faith thus receives and assimilates the principles of
truth, they become a part of the being and the motive power of the life. The
word of God, received into the soul, molds the thoughts, and enters into the
development of character.

By looking constantly to Jesus with the eye of faith, we shall be
strengthened. God will make the most precious revelations to His hungering,
thirsting people. They will find that Christ is a personal Saviour. As they
feed upon His word, they find that it is spirit and life. The word destroys
the natural, earthly nature, and imparts a new life in Christ Jesus. The
Holy Spirit comes to the soul as a Comforter. By the transforming agency of
His grace, the image of God is reproduced in the disciple; he becomes a new
creature. Love takes the place of hatred, and the heart receives the divine
similitude. This is what it means to live "by every word that proceedeth out
of the mouth of God." This is eating the Bread that comes down from heaven.

Christ had spoken a sacred, eternal truth regarding the relation between
Himself and His followers. He knew the character of those who claimed to be
His disciples, and His words tested their faith. He declared that they were
to believe and act upon His teaching. All who received Him would partake of
His nature, and be conformed to His character. This involved the
relinquishment of their cherished ambitions. It required the complete
surrender of themselves to Jesus. They were called to become
self-sacrificing, meek and lowly in heart. They must walk in the narrow path
traveled by the Man of Calvary, if they would share in the gift of life and
the glory of heaven.

The test was too great. The enthusiasm of those who had sought to take Him
by force and make Him king grew cold. This discourse in the synagogue, they
declared, had opened their eyes. Now they were undeceived. In their minds
His words were a direct confession that He was not the Messiah, and that no
earthly rewards were to be realized from connection with Him. They had
welcomed His miracle-working power; they were eager to be freed from disease
and suffering; but they would not come into sympathy with His
self-sacrificing life. They cared not for the mysterious spiritual kingdom
of which He spoke. The insincere, the selfish, who had sought Him, no longer
desired Him. If He would not devote His power and influence to obtaining
their freedom from the Romans, they would have nothing to do with Him.

Jesus told them plainly, "There are some of you that believe not;" adding,
"Therefore said I unto you, that no man can come unto Me,

392

except it were given unto him of My Father." He wished them to understand
that if they were not drawn to Him it was because their hearts were not open
to the Holy Spirit. "The natural man receiveth not the things of the Spirit
of God: for they are foolishness unto him: neither can he know them, because
they are spiritually discerned." 1 Cor. 2:14. It is by faith that the soul
beholds the glory of Jesus. This glory is hidden, until, through the Holy
Spirit, faith is kindled in the soul.

By the public rebuke of their unbelief these disciples were still further
alienated from Jesus. They were greatly displeased, and wishing to wound the
Saviour and gratify the malice of the Pharisees, they turned their backs
upon Him, and left Him with disdain. They had made their choice,--had taken
the form without the spirit, the husk without the kernel. Their decision was
never afterward reversed; for they walked no more with Jesus.

"Whose fan is in His hand, and He will throughly purge His floor, and gather
His wheat into the garner." Matt. 3:12. This was one of the times of
purging. By the words of truth, the chaff was being separated from the
wheat. Because they were too vain and self-righteous to receive reproof, too
world-loving to accept a life of humility, many turned away from Jesus. Many
are still doing the same thing. Souls are tested today as were those
disciples in the synagogue at Capernaum. When truth is brought home to the
heart, they see that their lives are not in accordance with the will of God.
They see the need of an entire change in themselves; but they are not
willing to take up the self-denying work. Therefore they are angry when
their sins are discovered. They go away offended, even as the disciples left
Jesus, murmuring, "This is an hard saying; who can hear it?"

Praise and flattery would be pleasing to their ears; but the truth is
unwelcome; they cannot hear it. When the crowds follow, and the multitudes
are fed, and the shouts of triumph are heard, their voices are loud in
praise; but when the searching of God's Spirit reveals their sin, and bids
them leave it, they turn their backs upon the truth, and walk no more with
Jesus.

As those disaffected disciples turned away from Christ, a different spirit
took control of them. They could see nothing attractive in Him whom they had
once found so interesting. They sought out His enemies, for they were in
harmony with their spirit and work. They misinterpreted His words, falsified
His statements, and impugned His motives. They sustained their course by
gathering up every item that could be

                                                                     393

turned against Him; and such indignation was stirred up by these false
reports that His life was in danger.

The news spread swiftly that by His own confession Jesus of Nazareth was not
the Messiah. And thus in Galilee the current of popular feeling was turned
against Him, as, the year before, it had been in Judea. Alas for Israel!
They rejected their Saviour, because they longed for a conqueror who would
give them temporal power. They wanted the meat which perishes, and not that
which endures unto everlasting life.

With a yearning heart, Jesus saw those who had been His disciples departing
from Him, the Life and the Light of men. The consciousness that His
compassion was unappreciated, His love unrequited, His mercy slighted, His
salvation rejected, filled Him with sorrow that was inexpressible. It was
such developments as these that made Him a man of sorrows, and acquainted
with grief.

Without attempting to hinder those who were leaving Him, Jesus turned to the
twelve and said, "Will ye also go away?"

Peter replied by asking, "Lord, to whom shall we go?" "Thou hast the words
of eternal life," he added. "And we believe and are sure that Thou art that
Christ, the Son of the living God."

"To whom shall we go?" The teachers of Israel were slaves to formalism. The
Pharisees and Sadducees were in constant contention. To leave Jesus was to
fall among sticklers for rites and ceremonies, and ambitious men who sought
their own glory. The disciples had found more peace and joy since they had
accepted Christ than in all their previous lives. How could they go back to
those who had scorned and persecuted the Friend of sinners? They had long
been looking for the Messiah; now He had come, and they could not turn from
His presence to those who were hunting His life, and had persecuted them for
becoming His followers.

"To whom shall we go?" Not from the teaching of Christ, His lessons of love
and mercy, to the darkness of unbelief, the wickedness of the world. While
the Saviour was forsaken by many who had witnessed His wonderful works,
Peter expressed the faith of the disciples,--"Thou art that Christ." The
very thought of losing this anchor of their souls filled them with fear and
pain. To be destitute of a Saviour was to be adrift on a dark and stormy
sea.

Many of the words and acts of Jesus appear mysterious to finite minds, but
every word and act had its definite purpose in the work for our redemption;
each was calculated to produce its own result. If we

394

were capable of understanding His purposes, all would appear important,
complete, and in harmony with His mission.

While we cannot now comprehend the works and ways of God, we can discern His
great love, which underlies all His dealings with men. He who lives near to
Jesus will understand much of the mystery of godliness. He will recognize
the mercy that administers reproof, that tests the character, and brings to
light the purpose of the heart.

When Jesus presented the testing truth that caused so many of His disciples
to turn back, He knew what would be the result of His words; but He had a
purpose of mercy to fulfill. He foresaw that in the hour of temptation every
one of His beloved disciples would be severely tested. His agony in
Gethsemane, His betrayal and crucifixion, would be to them a most trying
ordeal. Had no previous test been given, many who were actuated by merely
selfish motives would have been connected with them. When their Lord was
condemned in the judgment hall; when the multitude who had hailed Him as
their king hissed at Him and reviled Him; when the jeering crowd cried,
"Crucify Him!"--when their worldly ambitions were disappointed, these
self-seeking ones would, by renouncing their allegiance to Jesus, have
brought upon the disciples a bitter, heart-burdening sorrow, in addition to
their grief and disappointment in the ruin of their fondest hopes. In that
hour of darkness, the example of those who turned from Him might have
carried others with them. But Jesus brought about this crisis while by His
personal presence He could still strengthen the faith of His true followers.

Compassionate Redeemer, who in the full knowledge of the doom that awaited
Him, tenderly smoothed the way for the disciples, prepared them for their
crowning trial, and strengthened them for the final test!




                                                                     (395)

                             Chapter 42

                             Tradition


The scribes and Pharisees, expecting to see Jesus at the Passover, had laid
a trap for Him. But Jesus, knowing their purpose, had absented Himself from
this gathering. "Then came together unto Him the Pharisees, and certain of
the scribes." As He did not go to them, they came to Him. For a time it had
seemed that the people of Galilee would receive Jesus as the Messiah, and
that the power of the hierarchy in that region would be broken. The mission
of the twelve, indicating the extension of Christ's work, and bringing the
disciples more directly into conflict with the rabbis, had excited anew the
jealousy of the leaders at Jerusalem. The spies they sent to Capernaum in
the early part of His ministry, who had tried to fix on Him the charge of
Sabbathbreaking, had been put to confusion; but the rabbis were bent on
carrying out their purpose. Now another deputation was sent to watch His
movements, and find some accusation against Him.

As before, the ground of complaint was His disregard of the traditional
precepts that encumbered the law of God. These were professedly designed to
guard the observance of the law, but they were regarded as more sacred than
the law itself. When they came in collision with the commandments given from
Sinai, preference was given to the rabbinical precepts.

Among the observances most strenuously enforced was that of ceremonial
purification. A neglect of the forms to be observed before eating

396

was accounted a heinous sin, to be punished both in this world and in the
next; and it was regarded as a virtue to destroy the transgressor.

The rules in regard to purification were numberless. The period of a
lifetime was scarcely sufficient for one to learn them all. The life of
those who tried to observe the rabbinical requirements was one long struggle
against ceremonial defilement, an endless round of washings and
purifications. While the people were occupied with trifling distinctions,
and observances which God had not required, their attention was turned away
from the great principles of His law.

Christ and His disciples did not observe these ceremonial washings, and the
spies made this neglect the ground of their accusation. They did not,
however, make a direct attack on Christ, but came to Him with criticism of
His disciples. In the presence of the multitude they said, "Why do Thy
disciples transgress the tradition of the elders? for they wash not their
hands when they eat bread."

Whenever the message of truth comes home to souls with special power, Satan
stirs up his agents to start a dispute over some minor question. Thus he
seeks to attract attention from the real issue. Whenever a good work is
begun, there are cavilers ready to enter into dispute over forms or
technicalities, to draw minds away from the living realities. When it
appears that God is about to work in a special manner for His people, let
them not be enticed into a controversy that will work only ruin of souls.
The questions that most concern us are, Do I believe with saving faith on
the Son of God? Is my life in harmony with the divine law? "He that
believeth on the Son hath everlasting life: and he that believeth not the
Son shall not see life." "And hereby we do know that we know Him, if we keep
His commandments." John 3:36; 1 John 2:3.

Jesus made no attempt to defend Himself or His disciples. He made no
reference to the charges against Him, but proceeded to show the spirit that
actuated these sticklers for human rites. He gave them an example of what
they were repeatedly doing, and had done just before coming in search of
Him. "Full well ye reject the commandment of God," He said, "that ye may
keep your own tradition. For Moses said, Honor thy father and thy mother;
and, Whoso curseth father or mother, let him die the death: but ye say, If a
man shall say to his father or mother, It is Corban, that is to say, a gift,
by whatsoever thou mightest be profited by me; he shall be free. And ye
suffer him no more to do aught for his father or his mother." They set aside
the fifth commandment as of

                                                                     397

no consequence, but were very exact in carrying out the traditions of the
elders. They taught the people that the devotion of their property to the
temple was a duty more sacred than even the support of their parents; and
that, however great the necessity, it was sacrilege to impart to father or
mother any part of what had been thus consecrated. An undutiful child had
only to pronounce the word "Corban" over his property, thus devoting it to
God, and he could retain it for his own use during his lifetime, and after
his death it was to be appropriated to the temple service. Thus he was at
liberty, both in life and in death, to dishonor and defraud his parents,
under cover of a pretended devotion to God.

Never, by word or deed, did Jesus lessen man's obligation to present gifts
and offerings to God. It was Christ who gave all the directions of the law
in regard to tithes and offerings. When on earth He commended the poor woman
who gave her all to the temple treasury. But the apparent zeal for God on
the part of the priests and rabbis was a pretense to cover their desire for
self-aggrandizement. The people were deceived by them. They were bearing
heavy burdens which God had not imposed. Even the disciples of Christ were
not wholly free from the yoke that had been bound upon them by inherited
prejudice and rabbinical authority. Now, by revealing the true spirit of the
rabbis, Jesus sought to free from the bondage of tradition all who were
really desirous of serving God.

"Ye hypocrites," He said, addressing the wily spies, "well did Esaias
prophesy of you, saying, This people draweth nigh unto Me with their mouth,
and honoreth Me with their lips; but their heart is far from Me. But in vain
they do worship Me, teaching for doctrines the commandments of men." The
words of Christ were an arraignment of the whole system of Pharisaism. He
declared that by placing their requirements above the divine precepts the
rabbis were setting themselves above God.

The deputies from Jerusalem were filled with rage. They could not accuse
Christ as a violator of the law given from Sinai, for He spoke as its
defender against their traditions. The great precepts of the law, which He
had presented, appeared in striking contrast to the petty rules that men had
devised.

To the multitude, and afterward more fully to His disciples, Jesus explained
that defilement comes not from without, but from within. Purity and impurity
pertain to the soul. It is the evil deed, the evil word, the evil thought,
the transgression of the law of God, not the neglect of external, man-made
ceremonies, that defiles a man.

398


The disciples noted the rage of the spies as their false teaching was
exposed. They saw the angry looks, and heard the half-muttered words of
dissatisfaction and revenge. Forgetting how often Christ had given evidence
that He read the heart as an open book, they told Him of the effect of His
words. Hoping that He might conciliate the enraged officials, they said to
Jesus, "Knowest Thou that the Pharisees were offended, after they heard this
saying?"

He answered, "Every plant, which My heavenly Father hath not planted, shall
be rooted up." The customs and traditions so highly valued by the rabbis
were of this world, not from heaven. However great their authority with the
people, they could not endure the testing of God. Every human invention that
has been substituted for the commandments of God will be found worthless in
that day when "God shall bring every work into judgment, with every secret
thing, whether it be good, or whether it be evil." Eccl. 12:14.

The substitution of the precepts of men for the commandments of God has not
ceased. Even among Christians are found institutions and usages that have no
better foundation than the traditions of the fathers. Such institutions,
resting upon mere human authority, have supplanted those of divine
appointment. Men cling to their traditions, and revere their customs, and
cherish hatred against those who seek to show them their error. In this day,
when we are bidden to call attention to the commandments of God and the
faith of Jesus, we see the same enmity as was manifested in the days of
Christ. Of the remnant people of God it is written, "The dragon was wroth
with the woman, and went to make war with the remnant of her seed, which
keep the commandments of God, and have the testimony of Jesus Christ." Rev.
12:17.

But "every plant, which My heavenly Father hath not planted, shall be rooted
up." In place of the authority of the so-called fathers of the church, God
bids us accept the word of the eternal Father, the Lord of heaven and earth.
Here alone is truth unmixed with error. David said, "I have more
understanding than all my teachers: for Thy testimonies are my meditation. I
understand more than the ancients, because I keep Thy precepts." Ps. 119:99,
100. Let all who accept human authority, the customs of the church, or the
traditions of the fathers, take heed to the warning conveyed in the words of
Christ, "In vain they do worship Me, teaching for doctrines the commandments
of men."




                                                                     (399)

                             Chapter 43

                             Barriers Broken Down


After the encounter with the Pharisees, Jesus withdrew from Capernaum, and
crossing Galilee, repaired to the hill country on the borders of Phoenicia.
Looking westward, He could see, spread out upon the plain below, the ancient
cities of Tyre and Sidon, with their heathen temples, their magnificent
palaces and marts of trade, and the harbors filled with shipping. Beyond was
the blue expanse of the Mediterranean, over which the messengers of the
gospel were to bear its glad tidings to the centers of the world's great
empire. But the time was not yet. The work before Him now was to prepare His
disciples for their mission. In coming to this region He hoped to find the
retirement He had failed to secure at Bethsaida. Yet this was not His only
purpose in taking this journey.

"Behold, a Canaanitish woman came out from those borders, and cried, saying,
Have mercy on me, O Lord, Thou Son of David; my daughter is grievously vexed
with a devil." Matt. 15:22, R. V. The people of this district were of the
old Canaanite race. They were idolaters, and were despised and hated by the
Jews. To this class belonged the woman who now came to Jesus. She was a
heathen, and was therefore excluded from the advantages which the Jews daily
enjoyed. There

400

were many Jews living among the Phoenicians, and the tidings of Christ's
work had penetrated to this region. Some of the people had listened to His
words and had witnessed His wonderful works. This woman had heard of the
prophet, who, it was reported, healed all manner of diseases. As she heard
of His power, hope sprang up in her heart. Inspired by a mother's love, she
determined to present her daughter's case to Him. It was her resolute
purpose to bring her affliction to Jesus. He must heal her child. She had
sought help from the heathen gods, but had obtained no relief. And at times
she was tempted to think, What can this Jewish teacher do for me? But the
word had come, He heals all manner of diseases, whether those who come to
Him for help are rich or poor. She determined not to lose her only hope.

Christ knew this woman's situation. He knew that she was longing to see Him,
and He placed Himself in her path. By ministering to her sorrow, He could
give a living representation of the lesson He designed to teach. For this He
had brought His disciples into this region. He desired them to see the
ignorance existing in cities and villages close to the land of Israel. The
people who had been given every opportunity to understand the truth were
without a knowledge of the needs of those around them. No effort was made to
help souls in darkness. The partition wall which Jewish pride had erected,
shut even the disciples from sympathy with the heathen world. But these
barriers were to be broken down.

Christ did not immediately reply to the woman's request. He received this
representative of a despised race as the Jews would have done. In this He
designed that His disciples should be impressed with the cold and heartless
manner in which the Jews would treat such a case, as evinced by His
reception of the woman, and the compassionate manner in which He would have
them deal with such distress, as manifested by His subsequent granting of
her petition.

But although Jesus did not reply, the woman did not lose faith. As He passed
on, as if not hearing her, she followed Him, continuing her supplications.
Annoyed by her importunities, the disciples asked Jesus to send her away.
They saw that their Master treated her with indifference, and they therefore
supposed that the prejudice of the Jews against the Canaanites was pleasing
to Him. But it was a pitying Saviour to whom the woman made her plea, and in
answer to the request of the disciples, Jesus said, "I am not sent but unto
the lost sheep of the house

                                                                     401

of Israel." Although this answer appeared to be in accordance with the
prejudice of the Jews, it was an implied rebuke to the disciples, which they
afterward understood as reminding them of what He had often told them,--that
He came to the world to save all who would accept Him.

The woman urged her case with increased earnestness, bowing at Christ's
feet, and crying, "Lord, help me." Jesus, still apparently rejecting her
entreaties, according to the unfeeling prejudice of the Jews, answered, "It
is not meet to take the children's bread, and to cast it to dogs." This was
virtually asserting that it was not just to lavish the blessings brought to
the favored people of God upon strangers and aliens from Israel. This answer
would have utterly discouraged a less earnest seeker. But the woman saw that
her opportunity had come. Beneath the apparent refusal of Jesus, she saw a
compassion that He could not hide. "Truth, Lord," she answered, "yet the
dogs eat of the crumbs which fall from their masters' table." While the
children of the household eat at the father's table, even the dogs are not
left unfed. They have a right to the crumbs that fall from the table
abundantly supplied. So while there were many blessings given to Israel, was
there not also a blessing for her? She was looked upon as a dog, and had she
not then a dog's claim to a crumb from His bounty?

Jesus had just departed from His field of labor because the scribes and
Pharisees were seeking to take His life. They murmured and complained. They
manifested unbelief and bitterness, and refused the salvation so freely
offered them. Here Christ meets one of an unfortunate and despised race,
that has not been favored with the light of God's word; yet she yields at
once to the divine influence of Christ, and has implicit faith in His
ability to grant the favor she asks. She begs for the crumbs that fall from
the Master's table. If she may have the privilege of a dog, she is willing
to be regarded as a dog. She has no national or religious prejudice or pride
to influence her course, and she immediately acknowledges Jesus as the
Redeemer, and as being able to do all that she asks of Him.

The Saviour is satisfied. He has tested her faith in Him. By His dealings
with her, He has shown that she who has been regarded as an outcast from
Israel is no longer an alien, but a child in God's household. As a child it
is her privilege to share in the Father's gifts. Christ now grants her
request, and finishes the lesson to the disciples. Turning to her with a
look of pity and love, He says, "O woman, great is thy faith:

402

be it unto thee even as thou wilt." From that hour her daughter became
whole. The demon troubled her no more. The woman departed, acknowledging her
Saviour, and happy in the granting of her prayer.

This was the only miracle that Jesus wrought while on this journey. It was
for the performance of this act that He went to the borders of Tyre and
Sidon. He wished to relieve the afflicted woman, and at the same time to
leave an example in His work of mercy toward one of a despised people for
the benefit of His disciples when He should no longer be with them. He
wished to lead them from their Jewish exclusiveness to be interested in
working for others besides their own people.

Jesus longed to unfold the deep mysteries of the truth which had been hid
for ages, that the Gentiles should be fellow heirs with the Jews, and
"partakers of His promise in Christ by the gospel." Eph. 3:6. This truth the
disciples were slow to learn, and the divine Teacher gave them lesson upon
lesson. In rewarding the faith of the centurion at Capernaum, and preaching
the gospel to the inhabitants of Sychar, He had already given evidence that
He did not share the intolerance of the Jews. But the Samaritans had some
knowledge of God; and the centurion had shown kindness to Israel. Now Jesus
brought the disciples in contact with a heathen, whom they regarded as
having no reason above any of her people, to expect favor from Him. He would
give an example of how such a one should be treated. The disciples had
thought that He dispensed too freely the gifts of His grace. He would show
that His love was not to be circumscribed to race or nation.

When He said, "I am not sent but unto the lost sheep of the house of
Israel," He stated the truth, and in His work for the Canaanite woman He was
fulfilling His commission. This woman was one of the lost sheep that Israel
should have rescued. It was their appointed work, the work which they had
neglected, that Christ was doing.

This act opened the minds of the disciples more fully to the labor that lay
before them among the Gentiles. They saw a wide field of usefulness outside
of Judea. They saw souls bearing sorrows unknown to those more highly
favored. Among those whom they had been taught to despise were souls longing
for help from the mighty Healer, hungering for the light of truth, which had
been so abundantly given to the Jews.

Afterward, when the Jews turned still more persistently from the disciples,
because they declared Jesus to be the Saviour of the world,

                                                                     403

and when the partition wall between Jew and Gentile was broken down by the
death of Christ, this lesson, and similar ones which pointed to the gospel
work unrestricted by custom or nationality, had a powerful influence upon
the representatives of Christ, in directing their labors.

The Saviour's visit to Phoenicia and the miracle there performed had a yet
wider purpose. Not alone for the afflicted woman, nor even for His disciples
and those who received their labors, was the work accomplished; but also
"that ye might believe that Jesus is the Christ, the Son of God; and that
believing ye might have life through His name." John 20:31. The same
agencies that barred men away from Christ eighteen hundred years ago are at
work today. The spirit which built up the partition wall between Jew and
Gentile is still active. Pride and prejudice have built strong walls of
separation between different classes of men. Christ and His mission have
been misrepresented, and multitudes feel that they are virtually shut away
from the ministry of the gospel. But let them not feel that they are shut
away from Christ. There are no barriers which man or Satan can erect but
that faith can penetrate.

In faith the woman of Phoenicia flung herself against the barriers that had
been piled up between Jew and Gentile. Against discouragement, regardless of
appearances that might have led her to doubt, she trusted the Saviour's
love. It is thus that Christ desires us to trust in Him. The blessings of
salvation are for every soul. Nothing but his own choice can prevent any man
from becoming a partaker of the promise in Christ by the gospel.

Caste is hateful to God. He ignores everything of this character. In His
sight the souls of all men are of equal value. He "hath made of one blood
all nations of men for to dwell on all the face of the earth, and hath
determined the times before appointed, and the bounds of their habitation;
that they should seek the Lord, if haply they might feel after Him, and find
Him, though He be not far from every one of us." Without distinction of age,
or rank, or nationality, or religious privilege, all are invited to come
unto Him and live. "Whosoever believeth on Him shall not be ashamed. For
there is no difference." "There is neither Jew nor Greek, there is neither
bond nor free." "The rich and poor meet together: the Lord is the Maker of
them all." "The same Lord over all is rich unto all that call upon Him. For
whosoever shall call upon the name of the Lord shall be saved." Acts 17:26,
27; Gal. 3:28; Prov. 22:2; Rom. 10:11-13.




(404)

                             Chapter 44

                             The True Sign


"Again He went out from the borders of Tyre, and came through Sidon unto the
Sea of Galilee, through the midst of the borders of Decapolis." Mark 7:31,
R. V.

It was in the region of Decapolis that the demoniacs of Gergesa had been
healed. Here the people, alarmed at the destruction of the swine, had
constrained Jesus to depart from among them. But they had listened to the
messengers He left behind, and a desire was aroused to see Him. As He came
again into that region, a crowd gathered about Him, and a deaf, stammering
man was brought to Him. Jesus did not, according to His custom, restore the
man by a word only. Taking him apart from the multitude, He put His fingers
in his ears, and touched his tongue; looking up to heaven, He sighed at
thought of the ears that would not be open to the truth, the tongues that
refused to acknowledge the Redeemer. At the word, "Be opened," the man's
speech was restored, and, disregarding the command to tell no man, he
published abroad the story of his cure.

Jesus went up into a mountain, and there the multitude flocked to Him,
bringing their sick and lame, and laying them at His feet. He healed them
all; and the people, heathen as they were, glorified the God of Israel. For
three days they continued to throng about the Saviour, sleeping at night in
the open air, and through the day pressing eagerly to hear the words of
Christ, and to see His works. At the end of three

                                                                     405

days their food was spent. Jesus would not send them away hungry, and He
called upon His disciples to give them food. Again the disciples revealed
their unbelief. At Bethsaida they had seen how, with Christ's blessing,
their little store availed for the feeding of the multitude; yet they did
not now bring forward their all, trusting His power to multiply it for the
hungry crowds. Moreover, those whom He fed at Bethsaida were Jews; these
were Gentiles and heathen. Jewish prejudice was still strong in the hearts
of the disciples, and they answered Jesus, "Whence can a man satisfy these
men with bread here in the wilderness?" But obedient to His word they
brought Him what they had,--seven loaves and two fishes. The multitude were
fed, seven large baskets of fragments remaining. Four thousand men, besides
women and children, were thus refreshed, and Jesus sent them away with glad
and grateful hearts.

Then taking a boat with His disciples, He crossed the lake to Magdala, at
the southern end of the plain of Gennesaret. In the border of Tyre and Sidon
His spirit had been refreshed by the confiding trust of the Syrophoenician
woman. The heathen people of Decapolis had received Him with gladness. Now
as He landed once more in Galilee, where His power had been most strikingly
manifested, where most of His works of mercy had been performed, and His
teaching given, He was met with contemptuous unbelief.

A deputation of Pharisees had been joined by representatives from the rich
and lordly Sadducees, the party of the priests, the skeptics and aristocracy
of the nation. The two sects had been at bitter enmity. The Sadducees
courted the favor of the ruling power in order to maintain their own
position and authority. The Pharisees, on the other hand, fostered the
popular hatred against the Romans, longing for the time when they could
throw off the yoke of the conqueror. But Pharisee and Sadducee now united
against Christ. Like seeks like; and evil, wherever it exists, leagues with
evil for the destruction of the good.

406


Now the Pharisees and Sadducees came to Christ, asking for a sign from
heaven. When in the days of Joshua Israel went out to battle with the
Canaanites at Bethhoron, the sun had stood still at the leader's command
until victory was gained; and many similar wonders had been manifest in
their history. Some such sign was demanded of Jesus. But these signs were
not what the Jews needed. No mere external evidence could benefit them. What
they needed was not intellectual enlightenment, but spiritual renovation.

"O ye hypocrites," said Jesus, "ye can discern the face of the sky,"--by
studying the sky they could foretell the weather,--"but can ye not discern
the signs of the times?" Christ's own words, spoken with the power of the
Holy Spirit that convicted them of sin, were the sign that God had given for
their salvation. And signs direct from heaven had been given to attest the
mission of Christ. The song of the angels to the shepherds, the star that
guided the wise men, the dove and the voice from heaven at His baptism, were
witnesses for Him.

"And He sighed deeply in His spirit, and saith, Why doth this generation
seek after a sign?" "There shall no sign be given unto it, but the sign of
the prophet Jonas." As Jonah was three days and three nights in the belly of
the whale, Christ was to be the same time "in the heart of the earth." And
as the preaching of Jonah was a sign to the Ninevites, so Christ's preaching
was a sign to His generation. But what a contrast in the reception of the
word! The people of the great heathen city trembled as they heard the
warning from God. Kings and nobles humbled themselves; the high and the
lowly together cried to the God of heaven, and His mercy was granted unto
them. "The men of Nineveh shall rise in judgment with this generation,"
Christ had said, "and shall condemn it: because they repented at the
preaching of Jonas; and, behold, a greater than Jonas is here." Matt. 12:40,
41.

Every miracle that Christ performed was a sign of His divinity. He was doing
the very work that had been foretold of the Messiah; but to the Pharisees
these works of mercy were a positive offense. The Jewish leaders looked with
heartless indifference on human suffering. In many cases their selfishness
and oppression had caused the affliction that Christ relieved. Thus His
miracles were to them a reproach.

That which led the Jews to reject the Saviour's work was the highest
evidence of His divine character. The greatest significance of His miracles
is seen in the fact that they were for the blessing of humanity.

                                                                     407

The highest evidence that He came from God is that His life revealed the
character of God. He did the works and spoke the words of God. Such a life
is the greatest of all miracles.

When the message of truth is presented in our day, there are many who, like
the Jews, cry, Show us a sign. Work us a miracle. Christ wrought no miracle
at the demand of the Pharisees. He wrought no miracle in the wilderness in
answer to Satan's insinuations. He does not impart to us power to vindicate
ourselves or to satisfy the demands of unbelief and pride. But the gospel is
not without a sign of its divine origin. Is it not a miracle that we can
break from the bondage of Satan? Enmity against Satan is not natural to the
human heart; it is implanted by the grace of God. When one who has been
controlled by a stubborn, wayward will is set free, and yields himself
wholeheartedly to the drawing of God's heavenly agencies, a miracle is
wrought; so also when a man who has been under strong delusion comes to
understand moral truth. Every time a soul is converted, and learns to love
God and keep His commandments, the promise of God is fulfilled, "A new heart
also will I give you, and a new spirit will I put within you." Ezek. 36:26.
The change in human hearts, the transformation of human characters, is a
miracle that reveals an ever-living Saviour, working to rescue souls. A
consistent life in Christ is a great miracle. In the preaching of the word
of God, the sign that should be manifest now and always is the presence of
the Holy Spirit, to make the word a regenerating power to those that hear.
This is God's witness before the world to the divine mission of His Son.

Those who desired a sign from Jesus had so hardened their hearts in unbelief
that they did not discern in His character the likeness of God. They would
not see that His mission was in fulfillment of the Scriptures. In the
parable of the rich man and Lazarus, Jesus said to the Pharisees, "If they
hear not Moses and the prophets, neither will they be persuaded, though one
rose from the dead." Luke 16:31. No sign that could be given in heaven or
earth would benefit them.

Jesus "sighed deeply in His spirit," and, turning from the group of
cavilers, re-entered the boat with His disciples. In sorrowful silence they
again crossed the lake. They did not, however, return to the place they had
left, but directed their course toward Bethsaida, near where the five
thousand had been fed. Upon reaching the farther side, Jesus said, "Take
heed and beware of the leaven of the Pharisees and of the

408

Sadducees." The Jews had been accustomed since the days of Moses to put away
leaven from their houses at the Passover season, and they had thus been
taught to regard it as a type of sin. Yet the disciples failed to understand
Jesus. In their sudden departure from Magdala they had forgotten to take
bread, and they had with them only one loaf. To this circumstance they
understood Christ to refer, warning them not to buy bread of a Pharisee or a
Sadducee. Their lack of faith and spiritual insight had often led them to
similar misconception of His words. Now Jesus reproved them for thinking
that He who had fed thousands with a few fishes and barley loaves could in
that solemn warning have referred merely to temporal food. There was danger
that the crafty reasoning of the Pharisees and the Sadducees would leaven
His disciples with unbelief, causing them to think lightly of the works of
Christ.

The disciples were inclined to think that their Master should have granted
the demand for a sign in the heavens. They believed that He was fully able
to do this, and that such a sign would put His enemies to silence. They did
not discern the hypocrisy of these cavilers.

Months afterward, "when there were gathered together an innumerable
multitude of people, insomuch that they trode one upon another," Jesus
repeated the same teaching. "He began to say unto His disciples first of
all, Beware ye of the leaven of the Pharisees, which is hypocrisy." Luke
12:1.

The leaven placed in the meal works imperceptibly, changing the whole mass
to its own nature. So if hypocrisy is allowed to exist in the heart, it
permeates the character and the life. A striking example of the hypocrisy of
the Pharisees, Christ had already rebuked in denouncing the practice of
"Corban," by which a neglect of filial duty was concealed under a pretense
of liberality to the temple. The scribes and Pharisees were insinuating
deceptive principles. They concealed the real tendency of their doctrines,
and improved every occasion to instill them artfully into the minds of their
hearers. These false principles, when once accepted, worked like leaven in
the meal, permeating and transforming the character. It was this deceptive
teaching that made it so hard for the people to receive the words of Christ.

The same influences are working today through those who try to explain the
law of God in such a way as to make it conform to their practices. This
class do not attack the law openly, but put forward

                                                                     409

speculative theories that undermine its principles. They explain it so as to
destroy its force.

The hypocrisy of the Pharisees was the product of self-seeking. The
glorification of themselves was the object of their lives. It was this that
led them to pervert and misapply the Scriptures, and blinded them to the
purpose of Christ's mission. This subtle evil even the disciples of Christ
were in danger of cherishing. Those who classed themselves with the
followers of Jesus, but who had not left all in order to become His
disciples, were influenced in a great degree by the reasoning of the
Pharisees. They were often vacillating between faith and unbelief, and they
did not discern the treasures of wisdom hidden in Christ. Even the
disciples, though outwardly they had left all for Jesus' sake, had not in
heart ceased to seek great things for themselves. It was this spirit that
prompted the strife as to who should be greatest. It was this that came
between them and Christ, making them so little in sympathy with His mission
of self-sacrifice, so slow to comprehend the mystery of redemption. As
leaven, if left to complete its work, will cause corruption and decay, so
does the self-seeking spirit, cherished, work the defilement and ruin of the
soul.

Among the followers of our Lord today, as of old, how widespread is this
subtle, deceptive sin! How often our service to Christ, our communion with
one another, is marred by the secret desire to exalt self! How ready the
thought of self-gratulation, and the longing for human approval! It is the
love of self, the desire for an easier way than God has appointed that leads
to the substitution of human theories and traditions for the divine
precepts. To His own disciples the warning words of Christ are spoken, "Take
heed and beware of the leaven of the Pharisees."

The religion of Christ is sincerity itself. Zeal for God's glory is the
motive implanted by the Holy Spirit; and only the effectual working of the
Spirit can implant this motive. Only the power of God can banish
self-seeking and hypocrisy. This change is the sign of His working. When the
faith we accept destroys selfishness and pretense, when it leads us to seek
God's glory and not our own, we may know that it is of the right order.
"Father, glorify Thy name" (John 12:28), was the keynote of Christ's life,
and if we follow Him, this will be the keynote of our life. He commands us
to "walk, even as He walked;" and "hereby we do know that we know Him, if we
keep His commandments."1 John 2:6, 3.




(410)

                             Chapter 45

                             The Foreshadowing of the Cross


The work of Christ on earth was hastening to a close. Before Him, in vivid
outline, lay the scenes whither His feet were tending. Even before He took
humanity upon Him, He saw the whole length of the path He must travel in
order to save that which was lost. Every pang that rent His heart, every
insult that was heaped upon His head, every privation that He was called to
endure, was open to His view before He laid aside His crown and royal robe,
and stepped down from the throne, to clothe His divinity with humanity. The
path from the manger to Calvary was all before His eyes. He knew the anguish
that would come upon Him. He knew it all, and yet He said, "Lo, I come: in
the volume of the Book it is written of Me, I delight to do Thy will, O My
God: yea, Thy law is within My heart." Ps. 40:7, 8.

Ever before Him He saw the result of His mission. His earthly life, so full
of toil and self-sacrifice, was cheered by the prospect that He would not
have all this travail for nought. By giving His life for the life of men, He
would win back the world to its loyalty to God. Although the baptism of
blood must first be received; although the sins of the world were to weigh
upon His innocent soul; although the shadow of an unspeakable woe was upon
Him; yet for the joy that was set before Him, He chose to endure the cross,
and despised the shame.

From the chosen companions of His ministry the scenes that lay before Him
were as yet hidden; but the time was near when they must

                                                                     411

behold His agony. They must see Him whom they had loved and trusted,
delivered into the hands of His enemies, and hung upon the cross of Calvary.
Soon He must leave them to face the world without the comfort of His visible
presence. He knew how bitter hate and unbelief would persecute them, and He
desired to prepare them for their trials.

Jesus and His disciples had now come into one of the towns about Caesarea
Philippi. They were beyond the limits of Galilee, in a region where idolatry
prevailed. Here the disciples were withdrawn from the controlling influence
of Judaism, and brought into closer contact with the heathen worship. Around
them were represented forms of superstition that existed in all parts of the
world. Jesus desired that a view of these things might lead them to feel
their responsibility to the heathen. During His stay in this region, He
endeavored to withdraw from teaching the people, and to devote Himself more
fully to His disciples.

He was about to tell them of the suffering that awaited Him. But first He
went away alone, and prayed that their hearts might be prepared to receive
His words. Upon joining them, He did not at once communicate that which He
desired to impart. Before doing this, He gave them an opportunity of
confessing their faith in Him that they might be strengthened for the coming
trial. He asked, "Whom do men say that I the Son of man am?"

Sadly the disciples were forced to acknowledge that Israel had failed to
recognize their Messiah. Some indeed, when they saw His miracles, had
declared Him to be the Son of David. The multitudes that had been fed at
Bethsaida had desired to proclaim Him king of Israel. Many were ready to
accept Him as a prophet; but they did not believe Him to be the Messiah.

Jesus now put a second question, relating to the disciples themselves: "But
whom say ye that I am?" Peter answered, "Thou art the Christ, the Son of the
living God."

From the first, Peter had believed Jesus to be the Messiah. Many others who
had been convicted by the preaching of John the Baptist, and had accepted
Christ, began to doubt as to John's mission when he was imprisoned and put
to death; and they now doubted that Jesus was the Messiah, for whom they had
looked so long. Many of the disciples who had ardently expected Jesus to
take His place on David's throne left Him when they perceived that He had no
such intention. But Peter and his

412

companions turned not from their allegiance. The vacillating course of those
who praised yesterday and condemned today did not destroy the faith of the
true follower of the Saviour. Peter declared, "Thou art the Christ, the Son
of the living God." He waited not for kingly honors to crown his Lord, but
accepted Him in His humiliation.

Peter had expressed the faith of the twelve. Yet the disciples were still
far from understanding Christ's mission. The opposition and
misrepresentation of the priests and rulers, while it could not turn them
away from Christ, still caused them great perplexity. They did not see their
way clearly. The influence of their early training, the teaching of the
rabbis, the power of tradition, still intercepted their view of truth. From
time to time precious rays of light from Jesus shone upon them, yet often
they were like men groping among shadows. But on this day, before they were
brought face to face with the great trial of their faith, the Holy Spirit
rested upon them in power. For a little time their eyes were turned away
from "the things which are seen," to behold "the things which are not seen."
2 Cor. 4:18. Beneath the guise of humanity they discerned the glory of the
Son of God.

Jesus answered Peter, saying, "Blessed art thou, Simon Bar-jona: for flesh
and blood hath not revealed it unto thee, but My Father which is in heaven."

The truth which Peter had confessed is the foundation of the believer's
faith. It is that which Christ Himself has declared to be eternal life. But
the possession of this knowledge was no ground for self-glorification.
Through no wisdom or goodness of his own had it been revealed to Peter.
Never can humanity, of itself, attain to a knowledge of the divine. "It is
as high as heaven; what canst thou do? deeper than hell; what canst thou
know?" Job 11:8. Only the spirit of adoption can reveal to us the deep
things of God, which "eye hath not seen, nor ear heard, neither have entered
into the heart of man." "God hath revealed them unto us by His Spirit: for
the Spirit searcheth all things, yea, the deep things of God."
1 Cor. 2:9, 10. "The secret of the Lord is with them that fear Him;" and
the fact that Peter discerned the glory of Christ was an evidence that he
had been "taught of God." Ps. 25:14; John 6:45. Ah, indeed, "blessed art
thou, Simon Bar-jona: for flesh and blood hath not revealed it unto thee."

Jesus continued: "I say also unto thee, That thou art Peter, and upon this
rock I will build My church; and the gates of hell shall not prevail

                                                                     413

against it." The word Peter signifies a stone,--a rolling stone. Peter was
not the rock upon which the church was founded. The gates of hell did
prevail against him when he denied his Lord with cursing and swearing. The
church was built upon One against whom the gates of hell could not prevail.

Centuries before the Saviour's advent Moses had pointed to the Rock of
Israel's salvation. The psalmist had sung of "the Rock of my strength."
Isaiah had written, "Thus saith the Lord God, Behold, I lay in Zion for a
foundation a stone, a tried stone, a precious cornerstone, a sure
foundation." Deut. 32:4; Ps. 62:7; Isa. 28:16. Peter himself, writing by
inspiration, applies this prophecy to Jesus. He says, "If ye have tasted
that the Lord is gracious: unto whom coming, a living stone, rejected indeed
of men, but with God elect, precious, ye also, as living stones, are built
up a spiritual house." 1 Peter 2:3-5, R. V.

"Other foundation can no man lay than that is laid, which is Jesus Christ."
1 Cor. 3:11. "Upon this rock," said Jesus, "I will build My church." In the
presence of God, and all the heavenly intelligences, in the presence of the
unseen army of hell, Christ founded His church upon the living Rock. That
Rock is Himself,--His own body, for us broken and bruised. Against the
church built upon this foundation, the gates of hell shall not prevail.

How feeble the church appeared when Christ spoke these words! There was only
a handful of believers, against whom all the power of demons and evil men
would be directed; yet the followers of Christ were not to fear. Built upon
the Rock of their strength, they could not be overthrown.

For six thousand years, faith has builded upon Christ. For six thousand
years the floods and tempests of satanic wrath have beaten upon the Rock of
our salvation; but it stands unmoved.

Peter had expressed the truth which is the foundation of the church's faith,
and Jesus now honored him as the representative of the whole body of
believers. He said, "I will give unto thee the keys of the kingdom of
heaven: and whatsoever thou shalt bind on earth shall be bound in heaven:
and whatsoever thou shalt loose on earth shall be loosed in heaven."

"The keys of the kingdom of heaven" are the words of Christ. All the words
of Holy Scripture are His, and are here included. These words have power to
open and to shut heaven. They declare the conditions

414

upon which men are received or rejected. Thus the work of those who preach
God's word is a savor of life unto life or of death unto death. Theirs is a
mission weighted with eternal results.

The Saviour did not commit the work of the gospel to Peter individually. At
a later time, repeating the words that were spoken to Peter, He applied them
directly to the church. And the same in substance was spoken also to the
twelve as representatives of the body of believers. If Jesus had delegated
any special authority to one of the disciples above the others, we should
not find them so often contending as to who should be the greatest. They
would have submitted to the wish of their Master, and honored the one whom
He had chosen.

Instead of appointing one to be their head, Christ said to the disciples,
"Be not ye called Rabbi;" "neither be ye called masters: for one is your
Master, even Christ." Matt. 23:8, 10.

"The head of every man is Christ." God, who put all things under the
Saviour's feet, "gave Him to be the head over all things to the church,
which is His body, the fullness of Him that filleth all in all." 1 Cor.
11:3; Eph. 1:22, 23. The church is built upon Christ as its foundation; it
is to obey Christ as its head. It is not to depend upon man, or be
controlled by man. Many claim that a position of trust in the church gives
them authority to dictate what other men shall believe and what they shall
do. This claim God does not sanction. The Saviour declares, "All ye are
brethren." All are exposed to temptation, and are liable to error. Upon no
finite being can we depend for guidance. The Rock of faith is the living
presence of Christ in the church. Upon this the weakest may depend, and
those who think themselves the strongest will prove to be the weakest,
unless they make Christ their efficiency. "Cursed be the man that trusteth
in man, and maketh flesh his arm." The Lord "is the Rock, His work is
perfect." "Blessed are all they that put their trust in Him." Jer. 17:5;
Deut. 32:4; Ps. 2:12.

After Peter's confession, Jesus charged the disciples to tell no man that He
was the Christ. This charge was given because of the determined opposition
of the scribes and Pharisees. More than this, the people, and even the
disciples, had so false a conception of the Messiah that a public
announcement of Him would give them no true idea of His character or His
work. But day by day He was revealing Himself to them as the Saviour, and
thus He desired to give them a true conception of Him as the Messiah.

                                                                     415


The disciples still expected Christ to reign as a temporal prince. Although
He had so long concealed His design, they believed that He would not always
remain in poverty and obscurity; the time was near when He would establish
His kingdom. That the hatred of the priests and rabbis would never be
overcome, that Christ would be rejected by His own nation, condemned as a
deceiver, and crucified as a malefactor,--such a thought the disciples had
never entertained. But the hour of the power of darkness was drawing on, and
Jesus must open to His disciples the conflict before them. He was sad as He
anticipated the trial.

Hitherto He had refrained from making known to them anything relative to His
sufferings and death. In His conversation with Nicodemus He had said, "As
Moses lifted up the serpent in the wilderness, even so must the Son of man
be lifted up: that whosoever believeth in Him should not perish, but have
eternal life." John 3:14, 15. But the disciples did not hear this, and had
they heard, would not have understood. But now they have been with Jesus,
listening to His words, beholding His works, until, notwithstanding the
humility of His surroundings, and the opposition of priests and people, they
can join in the testimony of Peter, "Thou art the Christ, the Son of the
living God." Now the time has come for the veil that hides the future to be
withdrawn. "From that time forth began Jesus to show unto His disciples, how
that He must go unto Jerusalem, and suffer many things of the elders and
chief priests and scribes, and be killed, and be raised again the third
day."

Speechless with grief and amazement, the disciples listened. Christ had
accepted Peter's acknowledgment of Him as the Son of God; and now His words
pointing to His suffering and death seemed incomprehensible. Peter could not
keep silent. He laid hold upon his Master, as if to draw Him back from His
impending doom, exclaiming, "Be it far from Thee, Lord: this shall not be
unto Thee."

Peter loved his Lord; but Jesus did not commend him for thus manifesting the
desire to shield Him from suffering. Peter's words were not such as would be
a help and solace to Jesus in the great trial before Him. They were not in
harmony with God's purpose of grace toward a lost world, nor with the lesson
of self-sacrifice that Jesus had come to teach by His own example. Peter did
not desire to see the cross in the work of Christ. The impression which his
words would make was directly opposed to that which Christ desired to make
on the minds of His followers, and the Saviour was moved to utter one of the
sternest rebukes

416

that ever fell from His lips: "Get thee behind Me, Satan: thou art an
offense unto Me: for thou savorest not the things that be of God, but those
that be of men."

Satan was trying to discourage Jesus, and turn Him from His mission; and
Peter, in his blind love, was giving voice to the temptation. The prince of
evil was the author of the thought. His instigation was behind that
impulsive appeal. In the wilderness, Satan had offered Christ the dominion
of the world on condition of forsaking the path of humiliation and
sacrifice. Now he was presenting the same temptation to the disciple of
Christ. He was seeking to fix Peter's gaze upon the earthly glory, that he
might not behold the cross to which Jesus desired to turn his eyes. And
through Peter, Satan was again pressing the temptation upon Jesus. But the
Saviour heeded it not; His thought was for His disciple. Satan had
interposed between Peter and his Master, that the heart of the disciple
might not be touched at the vision of Christ's humiliation for him. The
words of Christ were spoken, not to Peter, but to the one who was trying to
separate him from his Redeemer. "Get thee behind Me, Satan." No longer
interpose between Me and My erring servant. Let Me come face to face with
Peter, that I may reveal to him the mystery of My love.

It was to Peter a bitter lesson, and one which he learned but slowly, that
the path of Christ on earth lay through agony and humiliation. The disciple
shrank from fellowship with his Lord in suffering. But in the heat of the
furnace fire he was to learn its blessing. Long afterward, when his active
form was bowed with the burden of years and labors, he wrote, "Beloved,
think it not strange concerning the fiery trial which is to try you, as
though some strange thing happened unto you: but rejoice, inasmuch as ye are
partakers of Christ's sufferings; that, when His glory shall be revealed, ye
may be glad also with exceeding joy."
1 Peter 4:12, 13.

Jesus now explained to His disciples that His own life of self-abnegation
was an example of what theirs should be. Calling about Him, with the
disciples, the people who had been lingering near, He said, "If any man will
come after Me, let him deny himself, and take up his cross daily, and follow
Me." The cross was associated with the power of Rome. It was the instrument
of the most cruel and humiliating form of death. The lowest criminals were
required to bear the cross to the place of execution; and often as it was
about to be laid upon their shoulders, they resisted with desperate
violence, until they were overpowered, and

                                                                     417

the instrument of torture was bound upon them. But Jesus bade His followers
take up the cross and bear it after Him. To the disciples His words, though
dimly comprehended, pointed to their submission to the most bitter
humiliation,--submission even unto death for the sake of Christ. No more
complete self-surrender could the Saviour's words have pictured. But all
this He had accepted for them. Jesus did not count heaven a place to be
desired while we were lost. He left the heavenly courts for a life of
reproach and insult, and a death of shame. He who was rich in heaven's
priceless treasure, became poor, that through His poverty we might be rich.
We are to follow in the path He trod.

Love for souls for whom Christ died means crucifixion of self. He who is a
child of God should henceforth look upon himself as a link in the chain let
down to save the world, one with Christ in His plan of mercy, going forth
with Him to seek and save the lost. The Christian is ever to realize that he
has consecrated himself to God, and that in character he is to reveal Christ
to the world. The self-sacrifice, the sympathy, the love, manifested in the
life of Christ are to reappear in the life of the worker for God.

"Whosoever will save his life shall lose it; but whosoever shall lose his
life for My sake and the gospel's, the same shall save it." Selfishness is
death. No organ of the body could live should it confine its service to
itself. The heart, failing to send its lifeblood to the hand and the head,
would quickly lose its power. As our lifeblood, so is the love of Christ
diffused through every part of His mystical body. We are members one of
another, and the soul that refuses to impart will perish. And "what is a man
profited," said Jesus, "if he shall gain the whole world, and lose his own
soul? or what shall a man give in exchange for his soul?"

Beyond the poverty and humiliation of the present, He pointed the disciples
to His coming in glory, not in the splendor of an earthly throne, but with
the glory of God and the hosts of heaven. And then, He said, "He shall
reward every man according to his works." Then for their encouragement He
gave the promise, "Verily I say unto you, There be some standing here, which
shall not taste of death, till they see the Son of man coming in His
kingdom." But the disciples did not comprehend His words. The glory seemed
far away. Their eyes were fixed upon the nearer view, the earthly life of
poverty, humiliation, and suffering. Must their glowing expectations of the
Messiah's kingdom be relinquished? Were they not to see their Lord exalted
to the throne of

418

David? Could it be that Christ was to live a humble, homeless wanderer, to
be despised, rejected, and put to death? Sadness oppressed their hearts, for
they loved their Master. Doubt also harassed their minds, for it seemed
incomprehensible that the Son of God should be subjected to such cruel
humiliation. They questioned why He should voluntarily go to Jerusalem to
meet the treatment which He had told them He was there to receive. How could
He resign Himself to such a fate, and leave them in greater darkness than
that in which they were groping before He revealed Himself to them?

In the region of Caesarea Philippi, Christ was out of the reach of Herod and
Caiaphas, the disciples reasoned. He had nothing to fear from the hatred of
the Jews or from the power of the Romans. Why not work there, at a distance
from the Pharisees? Why need He give Himself up to death? If He was to die,
how was it that His kingdom was to be established so firmly that the gates
of hell should not prevail against it? To the disciples this was indeed a
mystery.

They were even now journeying along the shores of the Sea of Galilee toward
the city where all their hopes were to be crushed. They dared not
remonstrate with Christ, but they talked together in low, sorrowful tones in
regard to what the future would be. Even amid their questionings they clung
to the thought that some unforeseen circumstance might avert the doom which
seemed to await their Lord. Thus they sorrowed and doubted, hoped and
feared, for six long, gloomy days.




                                                                     (419)

                             Chapter 46

                             He Was Transfigured


Evening is drawing on as Jesus calls to His side three of His disciples,
Peter, James, and John, and leads them across the fields, and far up a
rugged path, to a lonely mountainside. The Saviour and His disciples have
spent the day in traveling and teaching, and the mountain climb adds to
their weariness. Christ has lifted burdens from mind and body of many
sufferers; He has sent the thrill of life through their enfeebled frames;
but He also is compassed with humanity, and with His disciples He is wearied
with the ascent.

The light of the setting sun still lingers on the mountain top, and gilds
with its fading glory the path they are traveling. But soon the light dies
out from hill as well as valley, the sun disappears behind the western
horizon, and the solitary travelers are wrapped in the darkness of night.
The gloom of their surroundings seems in harmony with their sorrowful lives,
around which the clouds are gathering and thickening.

The disciples do not venture to ask Christ whither He is going, or for what
purpose. He has often spent entire nights in the mountains in prayer. He
whose hand formed mountain and valley is at home with nature, and enjoys its
quietude. The disciples follow where Christ leads the way; yet they wonder
why their Master should lead them up this toilsome ascent when they are
weary, and when He too is in need of rest.

Presently Christ tells them that they are now to go no farther. Stepping a
little aside from them, the Man of Sorrows pours out His

420

supplications with strong crying and tears. He prays for strength to endure
the test in behalf of humanity. He must Himself gain a fresh hold on
Omnipotence, for only thus can He contemplate the future. And He pours out
His heart longings for His disciples, that in the hour of the power of
darkness their faith may not fail. The dew is heavy upon His bowed form, but
He heeds it not. The shadows of night gather thickly about Him, but He
regards not their gloom. So the hours pass slowly by. At first the disciples
unite their prayers with His in sincere devotion; but after a time they are
overcome with weariness, and, even while trying to retain their interest in
the scene, they fall asleep. Jesus has told them of His sufferings; He has
taken them with Him that they might unite with Him in prayer; even now He is
praying for them. The Saviour has seen the gloom of His disciples, and has
longed to lighten their grief by an assurance that their faith has not been
in vain. Not all, even of the twelve, can receive the revelation He desires
to give. Only the three who are to witness His anguish in Gethsemane have
been chosen to be with Him on the mount. Now the burden of His prayer is
that they may be given a manifestation

                                                                     421

of the glory He had with the Father before the world was, that His kingdom
may be revealed to human eyes, and that His disciples may be strengthened to
behold it. He pleads that they may witness a manifestation of His divinity
that will comfort them in the hour of His supreme agony with the knowledge
that He is of a surety the Son of God and that His shameful death is a part
of the plan of redemption.

His prayer is heard. While He is bowed in lowliness upon the stony ground,
suddenly the heavens open, the golden gates of the city of God are thrown
wide, and holy radiance descends upon the mount, enshrouding the Saviour's
form. Divinity from within flashes through humanity, and meets the glory
coming from above. Arising from His prostrate position, Christ stands in
godlike majesty. The soul agony is gone. His countenance now shines "as the
sun," and His garments are "white as the light."

The disciples, awaking, behold the flood of glory that illuminates the
mount. In fear and amazement they gaze upon the radiant form of their
Master. As they become able to endure the wondrous light, they see that
Jesus is not alone. Beside Him are two heavenly beings, in close converse
with Him. They are Moses, who upon Sinai had talked with God; and Elijah, to
whom the high privilege was given--granted to but one other of the sons of
Adam--never to come under the power of death.

Upon Mount Pisgah fifteen centuries before, Moses had stood gazing upon the
Land of Promise. But because of his sin at Meribah, it was not for him to
enter there. Not for him was the joy of leading the host of Israel into the
inheritance of their fathers. His agonized entreaty, "I pray Thee, let me go
over, and see the good land that is beyond Jordan, that goodly mountain, and
Lebanon" (Deut. 3:25), was refused. The hope that for forty years had
lighted up the darkness of the desert wanderings must be denied. A
wilderness grave was the goal of those years of toil and heart-burdening
care. But He who is "able to do exceeding abundantly above all that we ask
or think" (Eph. 3:20), had in this measure answered His servant's prayer.
Moses passed under the dominion of death, but he was not to remain in the
tomb. Christ Himself called him forth to life. Satan the tempter had claimed
the body of Moses because of his sin; but Christ the Saviour brought him
forth from the grave. Jude 9.

Moses upon the mount of transfiguration was a witness to Christ's victory
over sin and death. He represented those who shall come forth

422

from the grave at the resurrection of the just. Elijah, who had been
translated to heaven without seeing death, represented those who will be
living upon the earth at Christ's second coming, and who will be "changed,
in a moment, in the twinkling of an eye, at the last trump;" when "this
mortal must put on immortality," and "this corruptible must put on
incorruption." 1 Cor. 15:51-53. Jesus was clothed with the light of heaven,
as He will appear when He shall come "the second time without sin unto
salvation." For He will come "in the glory of His Father with the holy
angels." Heb. 9:28; Mark 8:38. The Saviour's promise to the disciples was
now fulfilled. Upon the mount the future kingdom of glory was represented in
miniature,--Christ the King, Moses a representative of the risen saints, and
Elijah of the translated ones.

The disciples do not yet comprehend the scene; but they rejoice that the
patient Teacher, the meek and lowly One, who has wandered to and fro a
helpless stranger, is honored by the favored ones of heaven. They believe
that Elijah has come to announce the Messiah's reign, and that the kingdom
of Christ is about to be set up on the earth. The memory of their fear and
disappointment they would banish forever. Here, where the glory of God is
revealed, they long to tarry. Peter exclaims, "Master, it is good for us to
be here: and let us make three tabernacles; one for Thee, and one for Moses,
and one for Elias." The disciples are confident that Moses and Elijah have
been sent to protect their Master, and to establish His authority as king.

But before the crown must come the cross. Not the inauguration of Christ as
king, but the decease to be accomplished at Jerusalem, is the subject of
their conference with Jesus. Bearing the weakness of humanity, and burdened
with its sorrow and sin, Jesus walked alone in the midst of men. As the
darkness of the coming trial pressed upon Him, He was in loneliness of
spirit, in a world that knew Him not. Even His loved disciples, absorbed in
their own doubt and sorrow and ambitious hopes, had not comprehended the
mystery of His mission. He had dwelt amid the love and fellowship of heaven;
but in the world that He had created, He was in solitude. Now heaven had
sent its messengers to Jesus; not angels, but men who had endured suffering
and sorrow, and who could sympathize with the Saviour in the trial of His
earthly life. Moses and Elijah had been colaborers with Christ. They had
shared His longing for the salvation of men. Moses had pleaded for Israel:
"Yet now, if Thou wilt forgive their sin--; and if not, blot me, I pray
Thee, out of Thy book which Thou hast written." Ex. 32:32. Elijah

                                                                     425

had known loneliness of spirit, as for three years and a half of famine he
had borne the burden of the nation's hatred and its woe. Alone he had stood
for God upon Mount Carmel. Alone he had fled to the desert in anguish and
despair. These men, chosen above every angel around the throne, had come to
commune with Jesus concerning the scenes of His suffering, and to comfort
Him with the assurance of the sympathy of heaven. The hope of the world, the
salvation of every human being, was the burden of their interview.

Through being overcome with sleep, the disciples heard little of what passed
between Christ and the heavenly messengers. Failing to watch and pray, they
had not received that which God desired to give them,--a knowledge of the
sufferings of Christ, and the glory that should follow. They lost the
blessing that might have been theirs through sharing His self-sacrifice.
Slow of heart to believe were these disciples, little appreciative of the
treasure with which Heaven sought to enrich them.

Yet they received great light. They were assured that all heaven knew of the
sin of the Jewish nation in rejecting Christ. They were given a clearer
insight into the work of the Redeemer. They saw with their eyes and heard
with their ears things that were beyond the comprehension of man. They were
"eyewitnesses of His majesty" (2 Peter 1:16), and they realized that Jesus
was indeed the Messiah, to whom patriarchs and prophets had witnessed, and
that He was recognized as such by the heavenly universe.

While they were still gazing on the scene upon the mount, "a bright cloud
overshadowed them: and behold a voice out of the cloud, which said, This is
My beloved Son, in whom I am well pleased; hear ye Him." As they beheld the
cloud of glory, brighter than that which went before the tribes of Israel in
the wilderness; as they heard the voice of God speak in awful majesty that
caused the mountain to tremble, the disciples fell smitten to the earth.
They remained prostrate, their faces hidden, till Jesus came near, and
touched them, dispelling their fears with His well-known voice, "Arise, and
be not afraid." Venturing to lift up their eyes, they saw that the heavenly
glory had passed away, the forms of Moses and Elijah had disappeared. They
were upon the mount, alone with Jesus.




(426)

                             Chapter 47

                             Ministry


The entire night had been passed in the mountain; and as the sun arose,
Jesus and His disciples descended to the plain. Absorbed in thought, the
disciples were awed and silent. Even Peter had not a word to say. Gladly
would they have lingered in that holy place which had been touched with the
light of heaven, and where the Son of God had manifested His glory; but
there was work to be done for the people, who were already searching far and
near for Jesus.

At the foot of the mountain a large company had gathered, led hither by the
disciples who had remained behind, but who knew whither Jesus had resorted.
As the Saviour drew near, He charged His three companions to keep silence
concerning what they had witnessed, saying, "Tell the vision to no man,
until the Son of man be risen again from the dead." The revelation made to
the disciples was to be pondered in their own hearts, not to be published
abroad. To relate it to the multitudes would excite only ridicule or idle
wonder. And even the nine apostles would not understand the scene until
after Christ had risen from the dead. How slow of comprehension even the
three favored disciples were, is seen in the fact that notwithstanding all
that Christ had said of what was before Him, they queried among themselves
what the rising from the dead

                                                                     427

should mean. Yet they asked no explanation from Jesus. His words in regard
to the future had filled them with sorrow; they sought no further revelation
concerning that which they were fain to believe might never come to pass.

As the people on the plain caught sight of Jesus, they ran to meet Him,
greeting Him with expressions of reverence and joy. Yet His quick eye
discerned that they were in great perplexity. The disciples appeared
troubled. A circumstance had just occurred that had caused them bitter
disappointment and humiliation.

While they were waiting at the foot of the mountain, a father had brought to
them his son, to be delivered from a dumb spirit that tormented him.
Authority over unclean spirits, to cast them out, had been conferred on the
disciples when Jesus sent out the twelve to preach through Galilee. As they
went forth strong in faith, the evil spirits had obeyed their word. Now in
the name of Christ they commanded the torturing spirit to leave his victim;
but the demon only mocked them by a fresh display of his power. The
disciples, unable to account for their defeat, felt that they were bringing
dishonor upon themselves and their Master. And in the crowd there were
scribes who made the most of this opportunity to humiliate them. Pressing
around the disciples, they plied them with questions, seeking to prove that
they and their Master were deceivers. Here, the rabbis triumphantly
declared, was an evil spirit that neither the disciples nor Christ Himself
could conquer. The people were inclined to side with the scribes, and a
feeling of contempt and scorn pervaded the crowd.

But suddenly the accusations ceased. Jesus and the three disciples were seen
approaching, and with a quick revulsion of feeling the people turned to meet
them. The night of communion with the heavenly glory had left its trace upon
the Saviour and His companions. Upon their countenances was a light that
awed the beholders. The scribes drew back in fear, while the people welcomed
Jesus.

As if He had been a witness of all that had occurred, the Saviour came to
the scene of conflict, and fixing His gaze upon the scribes inquired, "What
question ye with them?"

But the voices so bold and defiant before were now silent. A hush had fallen
upon the entire company. Now the afflicted father made his way through the
crowd, and falling at the feet of Jesus, poured out the story of his trouble
and disappointment.

428


"Master," he said, "I have brought unto Thee my son, which hath a dumb
spirit; and wheresoever he taketh him, he teareth him: . . . and I spake to
Thy disciples that they should cast him out; and they could not."

Jesus looked about Him upon the awe-stricken multitude, the caviling
scribes, the perplexed disciples. He read the unbelief in every heart; and
in a voice filled with sorrow He exclaimed, "O faithless generation, how
long shall I be with you? how long shall I suffer you?" Then He bade the
distressed father, "Bring thy son hither."

The boy was brought, and as the Saviour's eyes fell upon him, the evil
spirit cast him to the ground in convulsions of agony. He lay wallowing and
foaming, rending the air with unearthly shrieks.

Again the Prince of life and the prince of the powers of darkness had met on
the field of battle,--Christ in fulfillment of His mission to "preach
deliverance to the captives, . . . to set at liberty them that are bruised"
(Luke 4:18), Satan seeking to hold his victim under his control. Angels of
light and the hosts of evil angels, unseen, were pressing near to behold the
conflict. For a moment, Jesus permitted the evil spirit to display his
power, that the beholders might comprehend the deliverance about to be
wrought.

The multitude looked on with bated breath, the father in an agony of hope
and fear. Jesus asked, "How long is it ago since this came unto him?" The
father told the story of long years of suffering, and then, as if he could
endure no more, exclaimed, "If Thou canst do anything, have compassion on
us, and help us." "If Thou canst!" Even now the father questioned the power
of Christ.

Jesus answers, "If thou canst believe, all things are possible to him that
believeth." There is no lack of power on the part of Christ; the healing of
the son depends upon the father's faith. With a burst of tears, realizing
his own weakness, the father casts himself upon Christ's mercy, with the
cry, "Lord, I believe; help Thou mine unbelief."

Jesus turns to the suffering one, and says, "Thou dumb and deaf spirit, I
charge thee, come out of him, and enter no more into him." There is a cry,
an agonized struggle. The demon, in passing, seems about to rend the life
from his victim. Then the boy lies motionless, and apparently lifeless. The
multitude whisper, "He is dead." But Jesus takes him by the hand, and
lifting him up, presents him, in perfect soundness of mind and body, to his
father. Father and son praise the name of

                                                                     429

their Deliverer. The multitude are "amazed at the mighty power of God,"
while the scribes, defeated and crestfallen, turn sullenly away.

"If Thou canst do anything, have compassion on us, and help us." How many a
sin-burdened soul has echoed that prayer. And to all, the pitying Saviour's
answer is, "If thou canst believe, all things are possible to him that
believeth." It is faith that connects us with heaven, and brings us strength
for coping with the powers of darkness. In Christ, God has provided means
for subduing every sinful trait, and resisting every temptation, however
strong. But many feel that they lack faith, and therefore they remain away
from Christ. Let these souls, in their helpless unworthiness, cast
themselves upon the mercy of their compassionate Saviour. Look not to self,
but to Christ. He who healed the sick and cast out demons when He walked
among men is the same mighty Redeemer today. Faith comes by the word of God.
Then grasp His promise, "Him that cometh to Me I will in no wise cast out."
John 6:37. Cast yourself at His feet with the cry, "Lord, I believe; help
Thou mine unbelief." You can never perish while you do this--never.

In a brief space of time the favored disciples have beheld the extreme of
glory and of humiliation. They have seen humanity as transfigured into the
image of God, and as debased into the likeness of Satan. From the mountain
where He has talked with the heavenly messengers, and has been proclaimed
the Son of God by the voice from the radiant glory, they have seen Jesus
descend to meet that most distressing and revolting spectacle, the maniac
boy, with distorted countenance, gnashing his teeth in spasms of agony that
no human power could relieve. And this mighty Redeemer, who but a few hours
before stood glorified before His wondering disciples, stoops to lift the
victim of Satan from the earth where he is wallowing, and in health of mind
and body restores him to his father and his home.

It was an object lesson of redemption,--the Divine One from the Father's
glory stooping to save the lost. It represented also the disciples' mission.
Not alone upon the mountaintop with Jesus, in hours of spiritual
illumination, is the life of Christ's servants to be spent. There is work
for them down in the plain. Souls whom Satan has enslaved are waiting for
the word of faith and prayer to set them free.

The nine disciples were yet pondering upon the bitter fact of their own
failure; and when Jesus was once more alone with them, they questioned, "Why
could not we cast him out?" Jesus answered them,

430

"Because of your unbelief: for verily I say unto you, If ye have faith as a
grain of mustard seed, ye shall say unto this mountain, Remove hence to
yonder place; and it shall remove; and nothing shall be impossible unto you.
Howbeit this kind goeth not out but by prayer and fasting." Their unbelief,
that shut them out from deeper sympathy with

                                                                     431

Christ, and the carelessness with which they regarded the sacred work
committed to them, had caused their failure in the conflict with the powers
of darkness.

The words of Christ pointing to His death had brought sadness and doubt. And
the selection of the three disciples to accompany Jesus to the mountain had
excited the jealousy of the nine. Instead of strengthening their faith by
prayer and meditation on the words of Christ, they had been dwelling on
their discouragements and personal grievances. In this state of darkness
they had undertaken the conflict with Satan.

In order to succeed in such a conflict they must come to the work in a
different spirit. Their faith must be strengthened by fervent prayer and
fasting, and humiliation of heart. They must be emptied of self, and be
filled with the Spirit and power of God. Earnest, persevering supplication
to God in faith--faith that leads to entire dependence upon God, and
unreserved consecration to His work--can alone avail to bring men the Holy
Spirit's aid in the battle against principalities and powers, the rulers of
the darkness of this world, and wicked spirits in high places.

"If ye have faith as a grain of mustard seed," said Jesus, "ye shall say
unto this mountain, Remove hence to yonder place; and it shall remove."
Though the grain of mustard seed is so small, it contains that same
mysterious life principle which produces growth in the loftiest tree. When
the mustard seed is cast into the ground, the tiny germ lays hold of every
element that God has provided for its nutriment, and it speedily develops a
sturdy growth. If you have faith like this, you will lay hold upon God's
word, and upon all the helpful agencies He has appointed. Thus your faith
will strengthen, and will bring to your aid the power of heaven. The
obstacles that are piled by Satan across your path, though apparently as
insurmountable as the eternal hills, shall disappear before the demand of
faith. "Nothing shall be impossible unto you."




(432)

                             Chapter 48

                             Who Is the Greatest?


On returning to Capernaum, Jesus did not repair to the well-known resorts
where He had taught the people, but with His disciples quietly sought the
house that was to be His temporary home. During the remainder of His stay in
Galilee it was His object to instruct the disciples rather than to labor for
the multitudes.

On the journey through Galilee, Christ had again tried to prepare the minds
of His disciples for the scenes before Him. He told them that He was to go
up to Jerusalem to be put to death and to rise again. And He added the
strange and solemn announcement that He was to be betrayed into the hands of
His enemies. The disciples did not even now comprehend His words. Although
the shadow of a great sorrow fell upon them, a spirit of rivalry found a
place in their hearts. They disputed among themselves which should be
accounted greatest in the kingdom. This strife they thought to conceal from
Jesus, and they did not, as usual, press close to His side, but loitered
behind, so that He was in advance of them as they entered Capernaum. Jesus
read their thoughts, and He longed to counsel and instruct them. But for
this He awaited a quiet hour, when their hearts should be open to receive
His words.

Soon after they reached the town, the collector of the temple revenue came
to Peter with the question, "Doth not your Master pay tribute?"

                                                                     433

This tribute was not a civil tax, but a religious contribution, which every
Jew was required to pay annually for the support of the temple. A refusal to
pay the tribute would be regarded as disloyalty to the temple,--in the
estimation of the rabbis a most grievous sin. The Saviour's attitude toward
the rabbinical laws, and His plain reproofs to the defenders of tradition,
afforded a pretext for the charge that He was seeking to overthrow the
temple service. Now His enemies saw an opportunity of casting discredit upon
Him. In the collector of the tribute they found a ready ally.

Peter saw in the collector's question an insinuation touching Christ's
loyalty to the temple. Zealous for his Master's honor, he hastily answered,
without consulting Him, that Jesus would pay the tribute.

But Peter only partially comprehended the purpose of his questioner. There
were some classes who were held to be exempt from the payment of the
tribute. In the time of Moses, when the Levites were set apart for the
service of the sanctuary, they were given no inheritance among the people.
The Lord said, "Levi hath no part nor inheritance with his brethren; the
Lord is his inheritance." Deut. 10:9. In the days of Christ the priests and
Levites were still regarded as especially devoted to the temple, and were
not required to make the annual contribution for its support. Prophets also
were exempted from this payment. In requiring the tribute from Jesus, the
rabbis were setting aside His claim as a prophet or teacher, and were
dealing with Him as with any commonplace person. A refusal on His part to
pay the tribute would be represented as disloyalty to the temple; while, on
the other hand, the payment of it would be taken as justifying their
rejection of Him as a prophet.

Only a little before, Peter had acknowledged Jesus as the Son of God; but he
now missed an opportunity of setting forth the character of his Master. By
his answer to the collector, that Jesus would pay the tribute, he had
virtually sanctioned the false conception of Him to which the priests and
rulers were trying to give currency.

When Peter entered the house, the Saviour made no reference to what had
taken place, but inquired, "What thinkest thou, Simon? of whom do the kings
of the earth take custom or tribute? of their own children, or of
strangers?" Peter answered, "Of strangers." And Jesus said, "Then are the
children free." While the people of a country are taxed for the maintenance
of their king, the monarch's own children are exempt. So Israel, the
professed people of God, were required to

434

maintain His service; but Jesus, the Son of God, was under no such
obligation. If priests and Levites were exempt because of their connection
with the temple, how much more He to whom the temple was His Father's house.

If Jesus had paid the tribute without a protest, He would virtually have
acknowledged the justice of the claim, and would thus have denied His
divinity. But while He saw good to meet the demand, He denied the claim upon
which it was based. In providing for the payment of the tribute He gave
evidence of His divine character. It was made manifest that He was one with
God, and therefore was not under tribute as a mere subject of the kingdom.

"Go thou to the sea," He directed Peter, "and cast an hook, and take up the
fish that first cometh up; and when thou hast opened his mouth, thou shalt
find a piece of money: that take, and give unto them for Me and thee."

Though He had clothed His divinity with humanity, in this miracle He
revealed His glory. It was evident that this was He who through David had
declared, "Every beast of the forest is Mine, and the cattle upon a thousand
hills. I know all the fowls of the mountains; and the wild beasts of the
field are Mine. If I were hungry, I would not tell thee: for the world is
Mine, and the fullness thereof." Ps. 50:10-12.

While Jesus made it plain that He was under no obligation to pay the
tribute, He entered into no controversy with the Jews in regard to the
matter; for they would have misinterpreted His words, and turned them
against Him. Lest He should give offense by withholding the tribute, He did
that which He could not justly be required to do. This lesson would be of
great value to His disciples. Marked changes were soon to take place in
their relation to the temple service, and Christ taught them not to place
themselves needlessly in antagonism to established order. So far as
possible, they were to avoid giving occasion for misinterpretation of their
faith. While Christians are not to sacrifice one principle of truth, they
should avoid controversy whenever it is possible to do so.

When Christ and the disciples were alone in the house, while Peter was gone
to the sea, Jesus called the others to Him, and asked, "What was it that ye
disputed among yourselves by the way?" The presence of Jesus, and His
question, put the matter in an entirely different light from that in which
it had appeared to them while they were contending

                                                                     435

by the way. Shame and self-condemnation kept them silent. Jesus had told
them that He was to die for their sake, and their selfish ambition was in
painful contrast to His unselfish love.

When Jesus told them that He was to be put to death and to rise again, He
was trying to draw them into conversation in regard to the great test of
their faith. Had they been ready to receive what He desired to make known to
them, they would have been saved bitter anguish and despair. His words would
have brought consolation in the hour of bereavement and disappointment. But
although He had spoken so plainly of what awaited Him, His mention of the
fact that He was soon to go to Jerusalem again kindled their hope that the
kingdom was about to be set up. This had led to questioning as to who should
fill the highest offices. On Peter's return from the sea, the disciples told
him of the Saviour's question, and at last one ventured to ask Jesus, "Who
is the greatest in the kingdom of heaven?"

The Saviour gathered His disciples about Him, and said to them, "If any man
desire to be first, the same shall be last of all, and servant of all."
There was in these words a solemnity and impressiveness which the disciples
were far from comprehending. That which Christ discerned they could not see.
They did not understand the nature of Christ's kingdom, and this ignorance
was the apparent cause of their contention. But the real cause lay deeper.
By explaining the nature of the kingdom, Christ might for the time have
quelled their strife; but this would not have touched the underlying cause.
Even after they had received the fullest knowledge, any question of
precedence might have renewed the trouble. Thus disaster would have been
brought to the church after Christ's departure. The strife for the highest
place was the outworking of that same spirit which was the beginning of the
great controversy in the worlds above, and which had brought Christ from
heaven to die. There rose up before Him a vision of Lucifer, the "son of the
morning," in glory surpassing all the angels that surround the throne, and
united in closest ties to the Son of God. Lucifer had said, "I will be like
the Most High" (Isa. 14:12, 14); and the desire for self-exaltation had
brought strife into the heavenly courts, and had banished a multitude of the
hosts of God. Had Lucifer really desired to be like the Most High, he would
never have deserted his appointed place in heaven; for the spirit of the
Most High is manifested in unselfish ministry. Lucifer desired God's power,
but not His character. He sought for himself the highest

436

place, and every being who is actuated by his spirit will do the same. Thus
alienation, discord, and strife will be inevitable. Dominion becomes the
prize of the strongest. The kingdom of Satan is a kingdom of force; every
individual regards every other as an obstacle in the way of his own
advancement, or a steppingstone on which he himself may climb to a higher
place.

While Lucifer counted it a thing to be grasped to be equal with God, Christ,
the Exalted One, "made Himself of no reputation, and took upon Him the form
of a servant, and was made in the likeness of men: and being found in
fashion as a man, He humbled Himself, and became obedient unto death, even
the death of the cross." Phil. 2:7, 8. Now the cross was just before Him;
and His own disciples were so filled with self-seeking--the very principle
of Satan's kingdom--that they could not enter into sympathy with their Lord,
or even understand Him as He spoke of His humiliation for them.

Very tenderly, yet with solemn emphasis, Jesus tried to correct the evil. He
showed what is the principle that bears sway in the kingdom of heaven, and
in what true greatness consists, as estimated by the standard of the courts
above. Those who were actuated by pride and love of distinction were
thinking of themselves, and of the rewards they were to have, rather than
how they were to render back to God the gifts they had received. They would
have no place in the kingdom of heaven, for they were identified with the
ranks of Satan.

Before honor is humility. To fill a high place before men, Heaven chooses
the worker who, like John the Baptist, takes a lowly place before God. The
most childlike disciple is the most efficient in labor for God. The heavenly
intelligences can co-operate with him who is seeking, not to exalt self, but
to save souls. He who feels most deeply his need of divine aid will plead
for it; and the Holy Spirit will give unto him glimpses of Jesus that will
strengthen and uplift the soul. From communion with Christ he will go forth
to work for those who are perishing in their sins. He is anointed for his
mission; and he succeeds where many of the learned and intellectually wise
would fail.

But when men exalt themselves, feeling that they are a necessity for the
success of God's great plan, the Lord causes them to be set aside. It is
made evident that the Lord is not dependent upon them. The work does not
stop because of their removal from it, but goes forward with greater power.

                                                                     437


It was not enough for the disciples of Jesus to be instructed as to the
nature of His kingdom. What they needed was a change of heart that would
bring them into harmony with its principles. Calling a little child to Him,
Jesus set him in the midst of them; then tenderly folding the little one in
His arms He said, "Except ye be converted, and become as little children, ye
shall not enter into the kingdom of heaven." The simplicity, the
self-forgetfulness, and the confiding love of a little child are the
attributes that Heaven values. These are the characteristics of real
greatness.

Again Jesus explained to the disciples that His kingdom is not characterized
by earthly dignity and display. At the feet of Jesus all these distinctions
are forgotten. The rich and the poor, the learned and the ignorant, meet
together, with no thought of caste or worldly preeminence. All meet as
blood-bought souls, alike dependent upon One who has redeemed them to God.

The sincere, contrite soul is precious in the sight of God. He places His
own signet upon men, not by their rank, not by their wealth, not by their
intellectual greatness, but by their oneness with Christ. The Lord of glory
is satisfied with those who are meek and lowly in heart. "Thou hast also
given me," said David, "the shield of Thy salvation: . . . and Thy
gentleness"--as an element in the human character--"hath made me great." Ps.
18:35.

"Whosoever shall receive one of such children in My name," said Jesus,
"receiveth Me: and whosoever shall receive Me, receiveth not Me, but Him
that sent Me." "Thus saith the Lord, The heaven is My throne, and the earth
is My footstool: . . . but to this man will I look, even to him that is poor
and of a contrite spirit, and trembleth at My word." Isa. 66:1, 2.

The Saviour's words awakened in the disciples a feeling of self-distrust. No
one had been specially pointed out in the reply; but John was led to
question whether in one case his action had been right. With the spirit of a
child he laid the matter before Jesus. "Master," he said, "we saw one
casting out devils in Thy name, and he followeth not us: and we forbade him,
because he followeth not us."

James and John had thought that in checking this man they had had in view
their Lord's honor; they began to see that they were jealous for their own.
They acknowledged their error, and accepted the reproof of Jesus, "Forbid
him not: for there is no man which shall do a miracle in My name, that can
lightly speak evil of Me." None who showed

438

themselves in any way friendly to Christ were to be repulsed. There were
many who had been deeply moved by the character and the work of Christ, and
whose hearts were opening to Him in faith; and the disciples, who could not
read motives, must be careful not to discourage these souls. When Jesus was
no longer personally among them, and the work was left in their hands, they
must not indulge a narrow, exclusive spirit, but manifest the same
far-reaching sympathy which they had seen in their Master.

The fact that one does not in all things conform to our personal ideas or
opinions will not justify us in forbidding him to labor for God. Christ is
the Great Teacher; we are not to judge or to command, but in humility each
is to sit at the feet of Jesus, and learn of Him. Every soul whom God has
made willing is a channel through which Christ will reveal His pardoning
love. How careful we should be lest we discourage one of God's light
bearers, and thus intercept the rays that He would have shine to the world!

Harshness or coldness shown by a disciple toward one whom Christ was
drawing--such an act as that of John in forbidding one to work miracles in
Christ's name--might result in turning the feet into the path of the enemy,
and causing the loss of a soul. Rather than for one to do this, said Jesus,
"it is better for him that a millstone were hanged about his neck, and he
were cast into the sea." And He added, "If thy hand cause thee to stumble,
cut it off: it is good for thee to enter into life maimed, rather than
having thy two hands to go into hell, into the unquenchable fire. And if thy
foot cause thee to stumble, cut it off: it is good for thee to enter into
life halt, rather than having thy two feet to be cast into hell." Mark
9:43-45, R. V.

Why this earnest language, than which none can be stronger? Because "the Son
of man is come to save that which was lost." Shall His disciples show less
regard for the souls of their fellow men than the Majesty of heaven has
shown? Every soul has cost an infinite price, and how terrible is the sin of
turning one soul away from Christ, so that for him the Saviour's love and
humiliation and agony shall have been in vain.

"Woe unto the world because of occasions of stumbling! for it must needs be
that the occasions come." Matt. 18:7, R. V. The world, inspired by Satan,
will surely oppose the followers of Christ, and seek to destroy their faith;
but woe to him who has taken Christ's name, and yet is found

                                                                     439

doing this work. Our Lord is put to shame by those who claim to serve Him,
but who misrepresent His character; and multitudes are deceived, and led
into false paths.

Any habit or practice that would lead into sin, and bring dishonor upon
Christ, would better be put away, whatever the sacrifice. That which
dishonors God cannot benefit the soul. The blessing of heaven cannot attend
any man in violating the eternal principles of right. And one sin cherished
is sufficient to work the degradation of the character, and to mislead
others. If the foot or the hand would be cut off, or even the eye would be
plucked out, to save the body from death, how much more earnest should we be
to put away sin, that brings death to the soul!

In the ritual service, salt was added to every sacrifice. This, like the
offering of incense, signified that only the righteousness of Christ could
make the service acceptable to God. Referring to this practice, Jesus said,
"Every sacrifice shall be salted with salt." "Have salt in yourselves, and
have peace one with another." All who would present themselves "a living
sacrifice, holy, acceptable unto God" (Rom. 12:1), must receive the saving
salt, the righteousness of our Saviour. Then they become "the salt of the
earth," restraining evil among men, as salt preserves from corruption. Matt.
5:13. But if the salt has lost its savor; if there is only a profession of
godliness, without the love of Christ, there is no power for good. The life
can exert no saving influence upon the world. Your energy and efficiency in
the upbuilding of My kingdom, Jesus says, depend upon your receiving of My
Spirit. You must be partakers of My grace, in order to be a savor of life
unto life. Then there will be no rivalry, no self-seeking, no desire for the
highest place. You will have that love which seeks not her own, but
another's wealth.

Let the repenting sinner fix his eyes upon "the Lamb of God, which taketh
away the sin of the world" (John 1:29); and by beholding, he becomes
changed. His fear is turned to joy, his doubts to hope. Gratitude springs
up. The stony heart is broken. A tide of love sweeps into the soul. Christ
is in him a well of water springing up unto everlasting life. When we see
Jesus, a Man of Sorrows and acquainted with grief, working to save the lost,
slighted, scorned, derided, driven from city to city till His mission was
accomplished; when we behold Him in Gethsemane, sweating great drops of
blood, and on the cross dying in agony,--when we see this, self will no
longer clamor to be recognized. Looking unto Jesus, we shall be ashamed of
our coldness, our lethargy, our self-seeking.

440

We shall be willing to be anything or nothing, so that we may do heart
service for the Master. We shall rejoice to bear the cross after Jesus, to
endure trial, shame, or persecution for His dear sake.

"We then that are strong ought to bear the infirmities of the weak, and not
to please ourselves." Rom. 15:1. No soul who believes in Christ, though his
faith may be weak, and his steps wavering as those of a little child, is to
be lightly esteemed. By all that has given us advantage over another,--be it
education and refinement, nobility of character, Christian training,
religious experience,--we are in debt to those less favored; and, so far as
lies in our power, we are to minister unto them. If we are strong, we are to
stay up the hands of the weak. Angels of glory, that do always behold the
face of the Father in heaven, joy in ministering to His little ones.
Trembling souls, who have many objectionable traits of character, are their
special charge. Angels are ever present where they are most needed, with
those who have the hardest battle with self to fight, and whose surroundings
are the most discouraging. And in this ministry Christ's true followers will
co-operate.

If one of these little ones shall be overcome, and commit a wrong against
you, then it is your work to seek his restoration. Do not wait for him to
make the first effort for reconciliation. "How think ye?" said Jesus; "if a
man have an hundred sheep, and one of them be gone astray, doth he not leave
the ninety and nine, and goeth into the mountains, and seeketh that which is
gone astray? And if so be that he find it, verily I say unto you, he
rejoiceth more of that sheep, than of the ninety and nine which went not
astray. Even so it is not the will of your Father which is in heaven, that
one of these little ones should perish."

In the spirit of meekness, "considering thyself, lest thou also be tempted,"
(Gal. 6:1), go to the erring one, and "tell him his fault between thee and
him alone." Do not put him to shame by exposing his fault to others, nor
bring dishonor upon Christ by making public the sin or error of one who
bears His name. Often the truth must be plainly spoken to the erring; he
must be led to see his error, that he may reform. But you are not to judge
or to condemn. Make no attempt at self-justification. Let all your effort be
for his recovery. In treating the wounds of the soul, there is need of the
most delicate touch, the finest sensibility. Only the love that flows from
the Suffering One of Calvary can avail here. With pitying tenderness, let
brother deal with brother, knowing that if you succeed, you will "save a
soul from death," and "hide a multitude of sins." James 5:20.

                                                                     441


But even this effort may be unavailing. Then, said Jesus, "take with thee
one or two more." It may be that their united influence will prevail where
that of the first was unsuccessful. Not being parties to the trouble, they
will be more likely to act impartially, and this fact will give their
counsel greater weight with the erring one.

If he will not hear them, then, and not till then, the matter is to be
brought before the whole body of believers. Let the members of the church,
as the representatives of Christ, unite in prayer and loving entreaty that
the offender may be restored. The Holy Spirit will speak through His
servants, pleading with the wanderer to return to God. Paul the apostle,
speaking by inspiration, says, "As though God did beseech you by us: we pray
you in Christ's stead, be ye reconciled to God." 2 Cor. 5:20. He who rejects
this united overture has broken the tie that binds him to Christ, and thus
has severed himself from the fellowship of the church. Henceforth, said
Jesus, "let him be unto thee as an heathen man and a publican." But he is
not to be regarded as cut off from the mercy of God. Let him not be despised
or neglected by his former brethren, but be treated with tenderness and
compassion, as one of the lost sheep that Christ is still seeking to bring
to His fold.

Christ's instruction as to the treatment of the erring repeats in more
specific form the teaching given to Israel through Moses: "Thou shalt not
hate thy brother in thine heart: thou shalt in anywise rebuke thy neighbor,
that thou bear not sin for him." Lev. 19:17, margin. That is, if one
neglects the duty Christ has enjoined, of trying to restore those who are in
error and sin, he becomes a partaker in the sin. For evils that we might
have checked, we are just as responsible as if we were guilty of the acts
ourselves.

But it is to the wrongdoer himself that we are to present the wrong. We are
not to make it a matter of comment and criticism among ourselves; nor even
after it is told to the church, are we at liberty to repeat it to others. A
knowledge of the faults of Christians will be only a cause of stumbling to
the unbelieving world; and by dwelling upon these things, we ourselves can
receive only harm; for it is by beholding that we become changed. While we
seek to correct the errors of a brother, the Spirit of Christ will lead us
to shield him, as far as possible, from the criticism of even his own
brethren, and how much more from the censure of the unbelieving world. We
ourselves are erring, and need Christ's pity and forgiveness, and just as we
wish Him to deal with us, He bids us deal with one another.

442


"Whatsoever ye shall bind on earth shall be bound in heaven: and whatsoever
ye shall loose on earth shall be loosed in heaven." You are acting as the
ambassadors of heaven, and the issues of your work are for eternity.

But we are not to bear this great responsibility alone. Wherever His word is
obeyed with a sincere heart, there Christ abides. Not only is He present in
the assemblies of the church, but wherever disciples, however few, meet in
His name, there also He will be. And He says, "If two of you shall agree on
earth as touching anything that they shall ask, it shall be done for them of
My Father which is in heaven."

Jesus says, "My Father which is in heaven," as reminding His disciples that
while by His humanity He is linked with them, a sharer in their trials, and
sympathizing with them in their sufferings, by His divinity He is connected
with the throne of the Infinite. Wonderful assurance! The heavenly
intelligences unite with men in sympathy and labor for the saving of that
which was lost. And all the power of heaven is brought to combine with human
ability in drawing souls to Christ.




                                                                     (447)

                             Chapter 49

                             At the Feast of Tabernacles


Three times a year the Jews were required to assemble at Jerusalem for
religious purposes. Enshrouded in the pillar of cloud, Israel's invisible
Leader had given the directions in regard to these gatherings. During the
captivity of the Jews, they could not be observed; but when the people were
restored to their own land, the observance of these memorials was once more
begun. It was God's design that these anniversaries should call Him to the
minds of the people. But with few exceptions, the priests and leaders of the
nation had lost sight of this purpose. He who had ordained these national
assemblies and understood their significance witnessed their perversion.

The Feast of Tabernacles was the closing gathering of the year. It was God's
design that at this time the people should reflect on His goodness and
mercy. The whole land had been under His guidance, receiving His blessing.
Day and night His watchcare had continued. The sun and rain had caused the
earth to produce her fruits. From the valleys and plains of Palestine the
harvest had been gathered. The olive berries had been picked, and the
precious oil stored in bottles. The palm had yielded her store. The purple
clusters of the vine had been trodden in the wine press.

448


The feast continued for seven days, and for its celebration the inhabitants
of Palestine, with many from other lands, left their homes, and came to
Jerusalem. From far and near the people came, bringing in their hands a
token of rejoicing. Old and young, rich and poor, all brought some gift as a
tribute of thanksgiving to Him who had crowned the year with His goodness,
and made His paths drop fatness. Everything that could please the eye, and
give expression to the universal joy, was brought from the woods; the city
bore the appearance of a beautiful forest.

This feast was not only the harvest thanksgiving, but the memorial of God's
protecting care over Israel in the wilderness. In commemoration of their
tent life, the Israelites during the feast dwelt in booths or tabernacles of
green boughs. These were erected in the streets, in the courts of the
temple, or on the housetops. The hills and valleys surrounding Jerusalem
were also dotted with these leafy dwellings, and seemed to be alive with
people.

With sacred song and thanksgiving the worshipers celebrated this occasion. A
little before the feast was the Day of Atonement, when, after confession of
their sins, the people were declared to be at peace with Heaven. Thus the
way was prepared for the rejoicing of the feast. "O give thanks unto the
Lord; for He is good: for His mercy endureth forever" (Ps. 106:1) rose
triumphantly, while all kinds of music, mingled with shouts of hosanna,
accompanied the united singing. The temple was the center of the universal
joy. Here was the pomp of the sacrificial ceremonies. Here, ranged on either
side of the white marble steps of the sacred building, the choir of Levites
led the service of song. The multitude of worshipers, waving their branches
of palm and myrtle, took up the strain, and echoed the chorus; and again the
melody was caught up by voices near and afar off, till the encircling hills
were vocal with praise.

At night the temple and its court blazed with artificial light. The music,
the waving of palm branches, the glad hosannas, the great concourse of
people, over whom the light streamed from the hanging lamps, the array of
the priests, and the majesty of the ceremonies, combined to make a scene
that deeply impressed the beholders. But the most impressive ceremony of the
feast, one that called forth greatest rejoicing, was one commemorating an
event in the wilderness sojourn.

At the first dawn of day, the priests sounded a long, shrill blast upon
their silver trumpets, and the answering trumpets, and the glad shouts of
the people from their booths, echoing over hill and valley, welcomed

                                                                     449

the festal day. Then the priest dipped from the flowing waters of the Kedron
a flagon of water, and, lifting it on high, while the trumpets were
sounding, he ascended the broad steps of the temple, keeping time with the
music with slow and measured tread, chanting meanwhile, "Our feet shall
stand within thy gates, O Jerusalem." Ps. 122:2.

He bore the flagon to the altar, which occupied a central position in the
court of the priests. Here were two silver basins, with a priest standing at
each one. The flagon of water was poured into one, and a flagon of wine into
the other; and the contents of both flowed into a pipe which communicated
with the Kedron, and was conducted to the Dead Sea. This display of the
consecrated water represented the fountain that at the command of God had
gushed from the rock to quench the thirst of the children of Israel. Then
the jubilant strains rang forth, "The Lord Jehovah is my strength and my
song;" "therefore with joy shall ye draw water out of the wells of
salvation." Isa. 12:2, 3.

450


As the sons of Joseph made preparation to attend the Feast of Tabernacles,
they saw that Christ made no movement signifying His intention of attending.
They watched Him with anxiety. Since the healing at Bethesda He had not
attended the national gatherings. To avoid useless conflict with the leaders
at Jerusalem, He had restricted His labors to Galilee. His apparent neglect
of the great religious assemblies, and the enmity manifested toward Him by
the priests and rabbis, were a cause of perplexity to the people about Him,
and even to His own disciples and His kindred. In His teachings He had dwelt
upon the blessings of obedience to the law of God, and yet He Himself seemed
to be indifferent to the service which had been divinely established. His
mingling with publicans and others of ill repute, His disregard of the
rabbinical observances, and the freedom with which He set aside the
traditional requirements concerning the Sabbath, all seeming to place Him in
antagonism to the religious authorities, excited much questioning. His
brothers thought it a mistake for Him to alienate the great and learned men
of the nation. They felt that these men must be in the right, and that Jesus
was at fault in placing Himself in antagonism to them. But they had
witnessed His blameless life, and though they did not rank themselves with
His disciples, they had been deeply impressed by His works. His popularity
in Galilee was gratifying to their ambition; they still hoped that He would
give an evidence of His power which would lead the Pharisees to see that He
was what He claimed to be. What if He were the Messiah, the Prince of
Israel! They cherished this thought with proud satisfaction.

So anxious were they about this that they urged Christ to go to Jerusalem.
"Depart hence," they said, "and go into Judea, that Thy disciples also may
see the works that Thou doest. For there is no man that doeth anything in
secret, and he himself seeketh to be known openly. If Thou do these things,
show Thyself to the world." The "if" expressed doubt and unbelief. They
attributed cowardice and weakness to Him. If He knew that He was the
Messiah, why this strange reserve and inaction? If He really possessed such
power, why not go boldly to Jerusalem, and assert His claims? Why not
perform in Jerusalem the wonderful works reported of Him in Galilee? Do not
hide in secluded provinces, they said, and perform your mighty works for the
benefit of ignorant peasants and fishermen. Present yourself at the capital,
win the support of the priests and rulers, and unite the nation in
establishing the new kingdom.

                                                                     451


These brothers of Jesus reasoned from the selfish motive so often found in
the hearts of those ambitious for display. This spirit was the ruling spirit
of the world. They were offended because, instead of seeking a temporal
throne, Christ had declared Himself to be the bread of life. They were
greatly disappointed when so many of His disciples forsook Him. They
themselves turned from Him to escape the cross of acknowledging what His
works revealed--that He was the Sent of God.

"Then Jesus said unto them, My time is not yet come: but your time is alway
ready. The world cannot hate you; but Me it hateth, because I testify of it,
that the works thereof are evil. Go ye up unto this feast: I go not up yet
unto this feast; for My time is not yet full come. When He had said these
words unto them, He abode still in Galilee." His brothers had spoken to Him
in a tone of authority, prescribing the course He should pursue. He cast
their rebuke back to them, classing them not with His self-denying
disciples, but with the world. "The world cannot hate you," He said, "but Me
it hateth, because I testify of it, that the works thereof are evil." The
world does not hate those who are like it in spirit; it loves them as its
own.

The world for Christ was not a place of ease and self-aggrandizement. He was
not watching for an opportunity to seize its power and its glory. It held
out no such prize for Him. It was the place into which His Father had sent
Him. He had been given for the life of the world, to work out the great plan
of redemption. He was accomplishing His work for the fallen race. But He was
not to be presumptuous, not to rush into danger, not to hasten a crisis.
Each event in His work had its appointed hour. He must wait patiently. He
knew that He was to receive the world's hatred; He knew that His work would
result in His death; but to prematurely expose Himself would not be the will
of His Father.

From Jerusalem the report of Christ's miracles had spread wherever the Jews
were dispersed; and although for many months He had been absent from the
feasts, the interest in Him had not abated. Many from all parts of the world
had come up to the Feast of Tabernacles in the hope of seeing Him. At the
beginning of the feast many inquiries were made for Him. The Pharisees and
rulers looked for Him to come, hoping for an opportunity to condemn Him.
They anxiously inquired, "Where is He?" but no one knew. The thought of Him
was uppermost in all minds. Through fear of the priests and rulers, none
dared acknowledge

452

Him as the Messiah, but everywhere there was quiet yet earnest discussion
concerning Him. Many defended Him as one sent from God, while others
denounced Him as a deceiver of the people.

Meanwhile Jesus had quietly arrived at Jerusalem. He had chosen an
unfrequented route by which to go, in order to avoid the travelers who were
making their way to the city from all quarters. Had He joined any of the
caravans that went up to the feast, public attention would have been
attracted to Him on His entrance into the city, and a popular demonstration
in His favor would have aroused the authorities against Him. It was to avoid
this that He chose to make the journey alone.

In the midst of the feast, when the excitement concerning Him was at its
height, He entered the court of the temple in the presence of the multitude.
Because of His absence from the feast, it had been urged that He dared not
place Himself in the power of the priests and rulers. All were surprised at
His presence. Every voice was hushed. All wondered at the dignity and
courage of His bearing in the midst of powerful enemies who were thirsting
for His life.

Standing thus, the center of attraction to that vast throng, Jesus addressed
them as no man had ever done. His words showed a knowledge

                                                                     453

of the laws and institutions of Israel, of the sacrificial service and the
teachings of the prophets, far exceeding that of the priests and rabbis. He
broke through the barriers of formalism and tradition. The scenes of the
future life seemed outspread before Him. As one who beheld the Unseen, He
spoke of the earthly and the heavenly, the human and the divine, with
positive authority. His words were most clear and convincing; and again, as
at Capernaum, the people were astonished at His teaching; "for His word was
with power." Luke 4:32. Under a variety of representations He warned His
hearers of the calamity that would follow all who rejected the blessings He
came to bring them. He had given them every possible proof that He came
forth from God, and made every possible effort to bring them to repentance.
He would not be rejected and murdered by His own nation if He could save
them from the guilt of such a deed.

All wondered at His knowledge of the law and the prophecies; and the
question passed from one to another, "How knoweth this Man letters, having
never learned?" No one was regarded as qualified to be a religious teacher
unless he had studied in the rabbinical schools, and both Jesus and John the
Baptist had been represented as ignorant because they had not received this
training. Those who heard them were astonished at their knowledge of the
Scriptures, "having never learned." Of men they had not, truly; but the God
of heaven was their teacher, and from Him they had received the highest kind
of wisdom.

As Jesus spoke in the temple court, the people were held spellbound. The
very men who were the most violent against Him felt themselves powerless to
do Him harm. For the time, all other interests were forgotten.

Day after day He taught the people, until the last, "that great day of the
feast." The morning of this day found the people wearied from the long
season of festivity. Suddenly Jesus lifted up His voice, in tones that rang
through the courts of the temple:

"If any man thirst, let him come unto Me, and drink. He that believeth on
Me, as the scripture hath said, out of his belly shall flow rivers of living
water." The condition of the people made this appeal very forcible. They had
been engaged in a continued scene of pomp and festivity, their eyes had been
dazzled with light and color, and their ears regaled with the richest music;
but there had been nothing in all this round of ceremonies to meet the wants
of the spirit, nothing to

454

satisfy the thirst of the soul for that which perishes not. Jesus invited
them to come and drink of the fountain of life, of that which would be in
them a well of water, springing up unto everlasting life.

The priest had that morning performed the ceremony which commemorated the
smiting of the rock in the wilderness. That rock was a symbol of Him who by
His death would cause living streams of salvation to flow to all who are
athirst. Christ's words were the water of life. There in the presence of the
assembled multitude He set Himself apart to be smitten, that the water of
life might flow to the world. In smiting Christ, Satan thought to destroy
the Prince of life; but from the smitten rock there flowed living water. As
Jesus thus spoke to the people, their hearts thrilled with a strange awe,
and many were ready to exclaim, with the woman of Samaria, "Give me this
water, that I thirst not." John 4:15.

Jesus knew the wants of the soul. Pomp, riches, and honor cannot satisfy the
heart. "If any man thirst, let him come unto Me." The rich, the poor, the
high, the low, are alike welcome. He promises to relieve the burdened mind,
to comfort the sorrowing, and to give hope to the despondent. Many of those
who heard Jesus were mourners over disappointed hopes, many were nourishing
a secret grief, many were seeking to satisfy their restless longing with the
things of the world and the praise of men; but when all was gained, they
found that they had toiled only to reach a broken cistern, from which they
could not quench their thirst. Amid the glitter of the joyous scene they
stood, dissatisfied and sad. That sudden cry, "If any man thirst," startled
them from their sorrowful meditation, and as they listened to the words that
followed, their minds kindled with a new hope. The Holy Spirit presented the
symbol before them until they saw in it the offer of the priceless gift of
salvation.

The cry of Christ to the thirsty soul is still going forth, and it appeals
to us with even greater power than to those who heard it in the temple on
that last day of the feast. The fountain is open for all. The weary and
exhausted ones are offered the refreshing draught of eternal life. Jesus is
still crying, "If any man thirst, let him come unto Me, and drink." "Let him
that is athirst come. And whosoever will, let him take the water of life
freely." "Whosoever drinketh of the water that I shall give him shall never
thirst; but the water that I shall give him shall be in him a well of water
springing up into everlasting life." Rev. 22:17; John 4:14.




                                                                     (455)

                             Chapter 50

                             Among Snares


All the while Jesus was at Jerusalem during the feast He was shadowed by
spies. Day after day new schemes to silence Him were tried. The priests and
rulers were watching to entrap Him. They were planning to stop Him by
violence. But this was not all. They wanted to humble this Galilean rabbi
before the people.

On the first day of His presence at the feast, the rulers had come to Him,
demanding by what authority He taught. They wished to divert attention from
Him to the question of His right to teach, and thus to their own importance
and authority.

"My teaching is not Mine," said Jesus, "but His that sent Me. If any man
willeth to do His will, he shall know of the teaching, whether it be of God,
or whether I speak from Myself." John 7:16, 17, R. V. The question of these
cavilers Jesus met, not by answering the cavil, but by opening up truth
vital to the salvation of the soul. The perception and appreciation of
truth, He said, depends less upon the mind than upon the heart. Truth must
be received into the soul; it claims the homage of the will. If truth could
be submitted to the reason alone, pride would be no hindrance in the way of
its reception. But it is to be received through the work of grace in the
heart; and its reception depends upon the renunciation of every sin that the
Spirit of God reveals. Man's advantages for obtaining a knowledge of the
truth, however great these may be, will prove of no benefit to him unless
the heart is open to receive

456

the truth, and there is a conscientious surrender of every habit and
practice that is opposed to its principles. To those who thus yield
themselves to God, having an honest desire to know and to do His will, the
truth is revealed as the power of God for their salvation. These will be
able to distinguish between him who speaks for God, and him who speaks
merely from himself. The Pharisees had not put their will on the side of
God's will. They were not seeking to know the truth, but to find some excuse
for evading it; Christ showed that this was why they did not understand His
teaching.

He now gave a test by which the true teacher might be distinguished from the
deceiver: "He that speaketh from himself seeketh his own glory: but he that
seeketh the glory of Him that sent him, the same is true, and no
unrighteousness is in him." John 7:18, R. V. He that seeketh his own glory
is speaking only from himself. The spirit of self-seeking betrays its
origin. But Christ was seeking the glory of God. He spoke the words of God.
This was the evidence of His authority as a teacher of the truth.

Jesus gave the rabbis an evidence of His divinity by showing that He read
their hearts. Ever since the healing at Bethesda they had been plotting His
death. Thus they were themselves breaking the law which they professed to be
defending. "Did not Moses give you the law," He said, "and yet none of you
keepeth the law? Why go ye about to kill Me?"

Like a swift flash of light these words revealed to the rabbis the pit of
ruin into which they were about to plunge. For an instant they were filled
with terror. They saw that they were in conflict with Infinite Power. But
they would not be warned. In order to maintain their influence with the
people, their murderous designs must be concealed. Evading the question of
Jesus, they exclaimed, "Thou hast a devil: who goeth about to kill Thee?"
They insinuated that the wonderful works of Jesus were instigated by an evil
spirit.

To this insinuation Christ gave no heed. He went on to show that His work of
healing at Bethesda was in harmony with the Sabbath law, and that it was
justified by the interpretation which the Jews themselves put upon the law.
He said, "Moses therefore gave unto you circumcision; . . . and ye on the
Sabbath day circumcise a man." According to the law, every child must be
circumcised on the eighth day. Should the appointed time fall upon the
Sabbath, the rite must then be performed. How much more must it be in
harmony with the

                                                                     457

spirit of the law to make a man "every whit whole on the Sabbath day." And
He warned them to "judge not according to the appearance, but judge
righteous judgment."

The rulers were silenced; and many of the people exclaimed, "Is not this He,
whom they seek to kill? But, lo, He speaketh boldly, and they say nothing
unto Him. Do the rulers know indeed that this is the very Christ?"

Many among Christ's hearers who were dwellers at Jerusalem, and who were not
ignorant of the plots of the rulers against Him, felt themselves drawn to
Him by an irresistible power. The conviction pressed upon them that He was
the Son of God. But Satan was ready to suggest doubt; and for this the way
was prepared by their own erroneous ideas of the Messiah and His coming. It
was generally believed that Christ would be born at Bethlehem, but that
after a time He would disappear, and at His second appearance none would
know whence He came. There were not a few who held that the Messiah would
have no natural relationship to humanity. And because the popular conception
of the glory of the Messiah was not met by Jesus of Nazareth, many gave heed
to the suggestion, "Howbeit we know this Man whence He is: but when Christ
cometh, no man knoweth whence He is."

While they were thus wavering between doubt and faith, Jesus took up their
thoughts and answered them: "Ye both know Me, and ye know whence I am: and I
am not come of Myself, but He that sent Me is true, whom ye know not." They
claimed a knowledge of what the origin of Christ should be, but they were in
utter ignorance of it. If they had lived in accordance with the will of God,
they would have known His Son when He was manifested to them.

The hearers could not but understand Christ's words. Clearly they were a
repetition of the claim He had made in the presence of the Sanhedrin many
months before, when He declared Himself the Son of God. As the rulers then
tried to compass His death, so now they sought to take Him; but they were
prevented by an unseen power, which put a limit to their rage, saying to
them, Thus far shalt thou go, and no farther.

Among the people many believed on Him, and they said, "When Christ cometh,
will He do more miracles than these which this Man hath done?" The leaders
of the Pharisees, who were anxiously watching the course of events, caught
the expressions of sympathy among the throng. Hurrying away to the chief
priests, they laid their plans to arrest Him.

458

They arranged, however, to take Him when He was alone; for they dared not
seize Him in the presence of the people. Again Jesus made it manifest that
He read their purpose. "Yet a little while am I with you," He said, "and
then I go unto Him that sent Me. Ye shall seek Me, and shall not find Me:
and where I am, thither ye cannot come." Soon He would find a refuge beyond
the reach of their scorn and hate. He would ascend to the Father, to be
again the Adored of the angels; and thither His murderers could never come.

Sneeringly the rabbis said, "Whither will He go, that we shall not find Him?
will He go unto the dispersed among the Gentiles, and teach the Gentiles?"
Little did these cavilers dream that in their mocking words they were
picturing the mission of the Christ! All day long He had stretched forth His
hands unto a disobedient and gainsaying people; yet He would be found of
them that sought Him not; among a people that had not called upon His name
He would be manifest. Rom. 10:20, 21.

Many who were convinced that Jesus was the Son of God were misled by the
false reasoning of the priests and rabbis. These teachers had repeated with
great effect the prophecies concerning the Messiah, that He would "reign in
Mount Zion, and in Jerusalem, and before His ancients gloriously;" that He
would "have dominion also from sea to sea, and from the river unto the ends
of the earth." Isa. 24:23; Ps. 72:8. Then they made contemptuous comparisons
between the glory here pictured and the humble appearance of Jesus. The very
words of prophecy were so perverted as to sanction error. Had the people in
sincerity studied the word for themselves, they would not have been misled.
The sixty-first chapter of Isaiah testifies that Christ was to do the very
work He did. Chapter fifty-three sets forth His rejection and sufferings in
the world, and chapter fifty-nine describes the character of the priests and
rabbis.

God does not compel men to give up their unbelief. Before them are light and
darkness, truth and error. It is for them to decide which they will accept.
The human mind is endowed with power to discriminate between right and
wrong. God designs that men shall not decide from impulse, but from weight
of evidence, carefully comparing scripture with scripture. Had the Jews laid
by their prejudice and compared written prophecy with the facts
characterizing the life of Jesus, they would have perceived a beautiful
harmony between the prophecies and their fulfillment in the life and
ministry of the lowly Galilean.

                                                                     459


Many are deceived today in the same way as were the Jews. Religious teachers
read the Bible in the light of their own understanding and traditions; and
the people do not search the Scriptures for themselves, and judge for
themselves as to what is truth; but they yield up their judgment, and commit
their souls to their leaders. The preaching and teaching of His word is one
of the means that God has ordained for diffusing light; but we must bring
every man's teaching to the test of Scripture. Whoever will prayerfully
study the Bible, desiring to know the truth, that he may obey it, will
receive divine enlightenment. He will understand the Scriptures. "If any man
willeth to do His will, he shall know of the teaching." John 7:17, R. V.

On the last day of the feast, the officers sent out by the priests and
rulers to arrest Jesus, returned without Him. They were angrily questioned,
"Why have ye not brought Him?" With solemn countenance they answered, "Never
man spake like this Man."

Hardened as were their hearts, they were melted by His words. While He was
speaking in the temple court, they had lingered near, to catch something
that might be turned against Him. But as they listened, the purpose for
which they had been sent was forgotten. They stood as men entranced. Christ
revealed Himself to their souls. They saw that which priests and rulers
would not see,--humanity flooded with the glory of divinity. They returned,
so filled with this thought, so impressed by His words, that to the inquiry,
"Why have ye not brought Him?" they could only reply, "Never man spake like
this Man."

The priests and rulers, on first coming into the presence of Christ, had
felt the same conviction. Their hearts were deeply moved, and the thought
was forced upon them, "Never man spake like this Man." But they had stifled
the conviction of the Holy Spirit. Now, enraged that even the instruments of
the law should be influenced by the hated Galilean, they cried, "Are ye also
deceived? Have any of the rulers or of the Pharisees believed on Him? But
this people who knoweth not the law are cursed."

Those to whom the message of truth is spoken seldom ask, "Is it true?" but,
"By whom is it advocated?" Multitudes estimate it by the numbers who accept
it; and the question is still asked, "Have any of the learned men or
religious leaders believed?" Men are no more favorable to real godliness now
than in the days of Christ. They are just as intently seeking earthly good,
to the neglect of eternal riches; and it is not an

460

argument against the truth, that large numbers are not ready to accept it,
or that it is not received by the world's great men, or even by the
religious leaders.

Again the priests and rulers proceeded to lay plans for arresting Jesus. It
was urged that if He were longer left at liberty, He would draw the people
away from the established leaders, and the only safe course was to silence
Him without delay. In the full tide of their discussion, they were suddenly
checked. Nicodemus questioned, "Doth our law judge any man, before it hear
him, and know what he doeth?" Silence fell on the assembly. The words of
Nicodemus came home to their consciences. They could not condemn a man
unheard. But it was not for this reason alone that the haughty rulers
remained silent, gazing at him who had dared to speak in favor of justice.
They were startled and chagrined that one of their own number had been so
far impressed by the character of Jesus as to speak a word in His defense.
Recovering from their astonishment, they addressed Nicodemus with cutting
sarcasm, "Art thou also of Galilee? Search and look: for out of Galilee
ariseth no prophet."

Yet the protest resulted in staying the proceedings of the council. The
rulers were unable to carry out their purpose and condemn Jesus without a
hearing. Defeated for the time, "every man went unto his own house. Jesus
went unto the Mount of Olives."

From the excitement and confusion of the city, from the eager crowds and the
treacherous rabbis, Jesus turned away to the quiet of the olive groves,
where He could be alone with God. But in the early morning He returned to
the temple, and as the people gathered about Him, He sat down and taught
them.

He was soon interrupted. A group of Pharisees and scribes approached Him,
dragging with them a terror-stricken woman, whom with hard, eager voices
they accused of having violated the seventh commandment. Having pushed her
into the presence of Jesus, they said to Him, with a hypocritical show of
respect, "Moses in the law commanded us, that such should be stoned: but
what sayest Thou?"

Their pretended reverence veiled a deep-laid plot for His ruin. They had
seized upon this opportunity to secure His condemnation, thinking that
whatever decision He might make, they would find occasion to accuse Him.
Should He acquit the woman, He might be charged with despising the law of
Moses. Should He declare her worthy of death,

                                                                     461

He could be accused to the Romans as one who was assuming authority that
belonged only to them.

Jesus looked for a moment upon the scene,--the trembling victim in her
shame, the hard-faced dignitaries, devoid of even human pity. His spirit of
stainless purity shrank from the spectacle. Well He knew for what purpose
this case had been brought to Him. He read the heart, and knew the character
and life history of everyone in His presence. These would-be guardians of
justice had themselves led their victim into sin, that they might lay a
snare for Jesus. Giving no sign that He had heard their question, He
stooped, and fixing His eyes upon the ground, began to write in the dust.

Impatient at His delay and apparent indifference, the accusers drew nearer,
urging the matter upon His attention. But as their eyes, following those of
Jesus, fell upon the pavement at His feet, their countenances changed.
There, traced before them, were the guilty secrets of their own lives. The
people, looking on, saw the sudden change of expression, and pressed forward
to discover what it was that they were regarding with such astonishment and
shame.

With all their professions of reverence for the law, these rabbis, in
bringing the charge against the woman, were disregarding its provisions. It
was the husband's duty to take action against her, and the guilty parties
were to be punished equally. The action of the accusers was wholly
unauthorized. Jesus, however, met them on their own ground. The law
specified that in punishment by stoning, the witnesses in the case should be
the first to cast a stone. Now rising, and fixing His eyes upon the plotting
elders, Jesus said, "He that is without sin among you, let him first cast a
stone at her." And stooping down, He continued writing on the ground.

He had not set aside the law given through Moses, nor infringed upon the
authority of Rome. The accusers had been defeated. Now, their robe of
pretended holiness torn from them, they stood, guilty and condemned, in the
presence of Infinite Purity. They trembled lest the hidden iniquity of their
lives should be laid open to the multitude; and one by one, with bowed heads
and downcast eyes, they stole away, leaving their victim with the pitying
Saviour.

Jesus arose, and looking at the woman said, "Woman, where are those thine
accusers? hath no man condemned thee? She said, No man, Lord. And Jesus said
unto her, Neither do I condemn thee: go, and sin no more."

462


The woman had stood before Jesus, cowering with fear. His words, "He that is
without sin among you, let him first cast a stone," had come to her as a
death sentence. She dared not lift her eyes to the Saviour's face, but
silently awaited her doom. In astonishment she saw her accusers depart
speechless and confounded; then those words of hope fell upon her ear,
"Neither do I condemn thee: go, and sin no more." Her heart was melted, and
she cast herself at the feet of Jesus, sobbing out her grateful love, and
with bitter tears confessing her sins.

This was to her the beginning of a new life, a life of purity and peace,
devoted to the service of God. In the uplifting of this fallen soul, Jesus
performed a greater miracle than in healing the most grievous physical
disease; He cured the spiritual malady which is unto death everlasting. This
penitent woman became one of His most steadfast followers. With
self-sacrificing love and devotion she repaid His forgiving mercy.

In His act of pardoning this woman and encouraging her to live a better
life, the character of Jesus shines forth in the beauty of perfect
righteousness. While He does not palliate sin, nor lessen the sense of
guilt, He seeks not to condemn, but to save. The world had for this erring
woman only contempt and scorn; but Jesus speaks words of comfort and hope.
The Sinless One pities the weakness of the sinner, and reaches to her a
helping hand. While the hypocritical Pharisees denounce, Jesus bids her,
"Go, and sin no more."

It is not Christ's follower that, with averted eyes, turns from the erring,
leaving them unhindered to pursue their downward course. Those who are
forward in accusing others, and zealous in bringing them to justice, are
often in their own lives more guilty than they. Men hate the sinner, while
they love the sin. Christ hates the sin, but loves the sinner. This will be
the spirit of all who follow Him. Christian love is slow to censure, quick
to discern penitence, ready to forgive, to encourage, to set the wanderer in
the path of holiness, and to stay his feet therein.




                                                                     (463)

                             Chapter 51

                             "The Light of Life"


Then spake Jesus again unto them, saying, I am the light of the world: he
that followeth Me shall not walk in darkness, but shall have the light of
life."

When He spoke these words, Jesus was in the court of the temple specially
connected with the services of the Feast of Tabernacles. In the center of
this court rose two lofty standards, supporting lampstands of great size.
After the evening sacrifice, all the lamps were kindled, shedding their
light over Jerusalem. This ceremony was in commemoration of the pillar of
light that guided Israel in the desert, and was also regarded as pointing to
the coming of the Messiah. At evening when the lamps were lighted, the court
was a scene of great rejoicing. Gray-haired men, the priests of the temple
and the rulers of the people, united in the festive dances to the sound of
instrumental music and the chants of the Levites.

In the illumination of Jerusalem, the people expressed their hope of the
Messiah's coming to shed His light upon Israel. But to Jesus the scene had a
wider meaning. As the radiant lamps of the temple lighted up all about them,
so Christ, the source of spiritual light, illumines the darkness of the
world. Yet the symbol was imperfect. That great light which His own hand had
set in the heavens was a truer representation of the glory of His mission.

It was morning; the sun had just risen above the Mount of Olives, and its
rays fell with dazzling brightness on the marble palaces, and

464

lighted up the gold of the temple walls, when Jesus, pointing to it, said,
"I am the light of the world."

By one who listened to these words, they were long afterward re-echoed in
that sublime passage, "In Him was life; and the life was the light of men.
And the light shineth in the darkness; and the darkness apprehended it not."
"That was the true light, which lighteth every man that cometh into the
world." John 1:4, 5, R. V., 9. And long after Jesus had ascended to heaven,
Peter also, writing under the illumination of the divine Spirit, recalled
the symbol Christ had used: "We have also a more sure word of prophecy;
whereunto ye do well that ye take heed, as unto a light that shineth in a
dark place, until the day dawn, and the daystar arise in your hearts." 2
Peter 1:19.

In the manifestation of God to His people, light had ever been a symbol of
His presence. At the creative word in the beginning, light had shone out of
darkness. Light had been enshrouded in the pillar of cloud by day and the
pillar of fire by night, leading the vast armies of Israel. Light blazed
with awful grandeur about the Lord on Mount Sinai. Light rested over the
mercy seat in the tabernacle. Light filled the temple of Solomon at its
dedication. Light shone on the hills of Bethlehem when the angels brought
the message of redemption to the watching shepherds.

God is light; and in the words, "I am the light of the world," Christ
declared His oneness with God, and His relation to the whole human family.
It was He who at the beginning had caused "the light to shine out of
darkness." 2 Cor. 4:6. He is the light of sun and moon and star. He was the
spiritual light that in symbol and type and prophecy had shone upon Israel.
But not to the Jewish nation alone was the light given. As the sunbeams
penetrate to the remotest corners of the earth, so does the light of the Sun
of Righteousness shine upon every soul.

"That was the true light, which lighteth every man that cometh into the
world." The world has had its great teachers, men of giant intellect and
wonderful research, men whose utterances have stimulated thought, and opened
to view vast fields of knowledge; and these men have been honored as guides
and benefactors of their race. But there is One who stands higher than they.
"As many as received Him, to them gave He power to become the sons of God."
"No man hath seen God at any time; the only-begotten Son, which is in the
bosom of the Father, He hath declared Him." John 1:12, 18. We can trace the
line of the world's great teachers as far back as human records extend; but
the

                                                                     465

Light was before them. As the moon and the stars of the solar system shine
by the reflected light of the sun, so, as far as their teaching is true, do
the world's great thinkers reflect the rays of the Sun of Righteousness.
Every gem of thought, every flash of the intellect, is from the Light of the
world. In these days we hear much about "higher education." The true "higher
education" is that imparted by Him "in whom are hid all the treasures of
wisdom and knowledge." "In Him was life; and the life was the light of men."
Col. 2:3; John 1:4. "He that followeth Me," said Jesus, "shall not walk in
darkness, but shall have the light of life."

In the words, "I am the light of the world," Jesus declared Himself the
Messiah. The aged Simeon, in the temple where Christ was now teaching, had
spoken of Him as "a light to lighten the Gentiles, and the glory of Thy
people Israel." Luke 2:32. In these words he was applying to Him a prophecy
familiar to all Israel. By the prophet Isaiah, the Holy Spirit had declared,
"It is too light a thing that Thou shouldest be My servant to raise up the
tribes of Jacob, and to restore the preserved of Israel: I will also give
Thee for a light to the Gentiles, that Thou mayest be My salvation unto the
end of the earth." Isa. 49:6, R. V. This prophecy was generally understood
as spoken of the Messiah, and when Jesus said, "I am the light of the
world," the people could not fail to recognize His claim to be the Promised
One.

To the Pharisees and rulers this claim seemed an arrogant assumption. That a
man like themselves should make such pretensions they could not tolerate.
Seeming to ignore His words, they demanded, "Who art Thou?" They were bent
upon forcing Him to declare Himself the Christ. His appearance and His work
were so at variance with the expectations of the people, that, as His wily
enemies believed, a direct announcement of Himself as the Messiah would
cause Him to be rejected as an impostor.

But to their question, "Who art Thou?" Jesus replied, "Even that which I
have also spoken unto you from the beginning." John 8:25, R.V. That which
had been revealed in His words was revealed also in His character. He was
the embodiment of the truths He taught. "I do nothing of Myself," He
continued; "but as My Father hath taught Me, I speak these things. And He
that sent Me is with Me: the Father hath not left Me alone; for I do always
those things that please Him." He did not attempt to prove His Messianic
claim, but showed His unity with God. If their minds had been open to God's
love, they would have received Jesus.

466


Among His hearers many were drawn to Him in faith, and to them He said, "if
ye continue in My word, then are ye My disciples indeed; and ye shall know
the truth, and the truth shall make you free."

These words offended the Pharisees. The nation's long subjection to a
foreign yoke, they disregarded, and angrily exclaimed, "We be Abraham's
seed, and were never in bondage to any man: how sayest Thou, Ye shall be
made free?" Jesus looked upon these men, the slaves of malice, whose
thoughts were bent upon revenge, and sadly answered, "Verily, verily, I say
unto you, Whosoever committeth sin is the servant of sin." They were in the
worst kind of bondage,--ruled by the spirit of evil.

Every soul that refuses to give himself to God is under the control of
another power. He is not his own. He may talk of freedom, but he is in the
most abject slavery. He is not allowed to see the beauty of truth, for his
mind is under the control of Satan. While he flatters himself that he is
following the dictates of his own judgment, he obeys the will of the prince
of darkness. Christ came to break the shackles of sin-slavery from the soul.
"If the Son therefore shall make you free, ye shall be free indeed." "The
law of the Spirit of life in Christ Jesus" sets us "free from the law of sin
and death." Rom. 8:2.

In the work of redemption there is no compulsion. No external force is
employed. Under the influence of the Spirit of God, man is left free to
choose whom he will serve. In the change that takes place when the soul
surrenders to Christ, there is the highest sense of freedom. The expulsion
of sin is the act of the soul itself. True, we have no power to free
ourselves from Satan's control; but when we desire to be set free from sin,
and in our great need cry out for a power out of and above ourselves, the
powers of the soul are imbued with the divine energy of the Holy Spirit, and
they obey the dictates of the will in fulfilling the will of God.

The only condition upon which the freedom of man is possible is that of
becoming one with Christ. "The truth shall make you free;" and Christ is the
truth. Sin can triumph only by enfeebling the mind, and destroying the
liberty of the soul. Subjection to God is restoration to one's self,--to the
true glory and dignity of man. The divine law, to which we are brought into
subjection, is "the law of liberty." James 2:12.

The Pharisees had declared themselves the children of Abraham. Jesus told
them that this claim could be established only by doing the works of
Abraham. The true children of Abraham would live, as he did, a life of
obedience to God. They would not try to kill One who was speaking the truth
that was given Him from God. In plotting

                                                                     467

against Christ, the rabbis were not doing the works of Abraham. A mere
lineal descent from Abraham was of no value. Without a spiritual connection
with him, which would be manifested in possessing the same spirit, and doing
the same works, they were not his children.

This principle bears with equal weight upon a question that has long
agitated the Christian world,--the question of apostolic succession. Descent
from Abraham was proved, not by name and lineage, but by likeness of
character. So the apostolic succession rests not upon the transmission of
ecclesiastical authority, but upon spiritual relationship. A life actuated
by the apostles' spirit, the belief and teaching of the truth they taught,
this is the true evidence of apostolic succession. This is what constitutes
men the successors of the first teachers of the gospel.

Jesus denied that the Jews were children of Abraham. He said, "Ye do the
deeds of your father." In mockery they answered, "We be not born of
fornication; we have one Father, even God." These words, in allusion to the
circumstances of His birth, were intended as a thrust against Christ in the
presence of those who were beginning to believe on Him. Jesus gave no heed
to the base insinuation, but said, "If God were your Father, ye would love
Me: for I proceeded forth and came from God."

Their works testified of their relationship to him who was a liar and a
murderer. "Ye are of your father the devil," said Jesus, "and the lusts of
your father it is your will to do. He was a murderer from the beginning, and
stood not in the truth, because there is no truth in him. . . . Because I
say the truth, ye believe Me not." John 8:44, 45, R. V. The fact that Jesus
spoke the truth, and that with certainty, was why He was not received by the
Jewish leaders. It was the truth that offended these self-righteous men. The
truth exposed the fallacy of error; it condemned their teaching and
practice, and it was unwelcome. They would rather close their eyes to the
truth than humble themselves to confess that they had been in error. They
did not love the truth. They did not desire it, even though it was truth.

"Which of you convicteth [Revised Version] Me of sin? And if I say the
truth, why do ye not believe Me?" Day by day for three years His enemies had
been following Christ, trying to find some stain in His character. Satan and
all the confederacy of evil had been seeking to overcome Him; but they had
found nothing in Him by which to gain an advantage. Even the devils were
forced to confess, "Thou art the Holy One of God." Mark 1:24. Jesus lived
the law in the sight of heaven, in the

468

sight of unfallen worlds, and in the sight of sinful men. Before angels,
men, and demons, He had spoken, unchallenged, words that from any other lips
would have been blasphemy: "I do always those things that please Him."

The fact that although they could find no sin in Christ the Jews would not
receive Him proved that they themselves had no connection with God. They did
not recognize His voice in the message of His Son. They thought themselves
passing judgment on Christ; but in rejecting Him they were pronouncing
sentence upon themselves. "He that is of God," said Jesus, "heareth God's
words: ye therefore hear them not, because ye are not of God."

The lesson is true for all time. Many a man who delights to quibble, to
criticize, seeking for something to question in the word of God, thinks that
he is thereby giving evidence of independence of thought, and mental
acuteness. He supposes that he is sitting in judgment on the Bible, when in
truth he is judging himself. He makes it manifest that he is incapable of
appreciating truths that originate in heaven, and that compass eternity. In
presence of the great mountain of God's righteousness, his spirit is not
awed. He busies himself with hunting for sticks and straws, and in this
betrays a narrow and earthly nature, a heart that is fast losing its
capacity to appreciate God. He whose heart has responded to the divine touch
will be seeking for that which will increase his knowledge of God, and will
refine and elevate the character. As a flower turns to the sun, that the
bright rays may touch it with tints of beauty, so will the soul turn to the
Sun of Righteousness, that heaven's light may beautify the character with
the graces of the character of Christ.

Jesus continued, drawing a sharp contrast between the position of the Jews
and that of Abraham: "Your father Abraham rejoiced to see My day: and he saw
it, and was glad."

Abraham had greatly desired to see the promised Saviour. He offered up the
most earnest prayer that before his death he might behold the Messiah. And
he saw Christ. A supernatural light was given him, and he acknowledged
Christ's divine character. He saw His day, and was glad. He was given a view
of the divine sacrifice for sin. Of this sacrifice he had an illustration in
his own experience. The command came to him, "Take now thy son, thine only
son Isaac, whom thou lovest, . . . and offer him . . . for a burnt
offering." Gen. 22:2.

                                                                     469

Upon the altar of sacrifice he laid the son of promise, the son in whom his
hopes were centered. Then as he waited beside the altar with knife upraised
to obey God, he heard a voice from heaven saying, "Lay not thine hand upon
the lad, neither do thou anything unto him: for now I know that thou fearest
God, seeing thou hast not withheld thy son, thine only son from Me." Gen.
22:12. This terrible ordeal was imposed upon Abraham that he might see the
day of Christ, and realize the great love of God for the world, so great
that to raise it from its degradation, He gave His only-begotten Son to a
most shameful death.

Abraham learned of God the greatest lesson ever given to mortal. His prayer
that he might see Christ before he should die was answered. He saw Christ;
he saw all that mortal can see, and live. By making an entire surrender, he
was able to understand the vision of Christ, which had been given him. He
was shown that in giving His only-begotten Son to save sinners from eternal
ruin, God was making a greater and more wonderful sacrifice than ever man
could make.

Abraham's experience answered the question: "Wherewith shall I come before
the Lord, and bow myself before the high God? Shall I come before Him with
burnt offerings, with calves of a year old? Will the Lord be pleased with
thousands of rams, or with ten thousands of rivers of oil? shall I give my
first-born for my transgression, the fruit of my body for the sin of my
soul?" Micah 6:6, 7. In the words of Abraham, "My son, God will provide
Himself a lamb for a burnt offering," (Gen. 22:8), and in God's provision of
a sacrifice instead of Isaac, it was declared that no man could make
expiation for himself. The pagan system of sacrifice was wholly unacceptable
to God. No father was to offer up his son or his daughter for a sin
offering. The Son of God alone can bear the guilt of the world.

Through his own suffering, Abraham was enabled to behold the Saviour's
mission of sacrifice. But Israel would not understand that which was so
unwelcome to their proud hearts. Christ's words concerning Abraham conveyed
to His hearers no deep significance. The Pharisees saw in them only fresh
ground for caviling. They retorted with a sneer, as if they would prove
Jesus to be a madman, "Thou art not yet fifty years old, and hast Thou seen
Abraham?"

With solemn dignity Jesus answered, "Verily, verily, I say unto you, Before
Abraham was, I Am."

Silence fell upon the vast assembly. The name of God, given to Moses to
express the idea of the eternal presence, had been claimed as

470

His own by this Galilean Rabbi. He had announced Himself to be the
self-existent One, He who had been promised to Israel, "whose goings forth
have been from of old, from the days of eternity." Micah 5:2, margin.

Again the priests and rabbis cried out against Jesus as a blasphemer. His
claim to be one with God had before stirred them to take His life, and a few
months later they plainly declared, "For a good work we stone Thee not; but
for blasphemy; and because that Thou, being a man, makest Thyself God." John
10:33. Because He was, and avowed Himself to be, the Son of God, they were
bent on destroying Him. Now many of the people, siding with the priests and
rabbis, took up stones to cast at Him. "But Jesus hid Himself, and went out
of the temple, going through the midst of them, and so passed by."

The Light was shining in darkness; but "the darkness apprehended it not."
John 1:5, R. V.

"As Jesus passed by, He saw a man which was blind from his birth. And His
disciples asked Him, saying, Master, who did sin, this man, or his parents,
that he was born blind? Jesus answered, Neither hath this man sinned, nor
his parents: but that the works of God should be made manifest in him. . . .
When He had thus spoken, He spat on the ground, and made clay of the
spittle, and He anointed the eyes of the blind man with the clay, and said
unto him, Go, wash in the pool of Siloam, (which is by interpretation,
Sent). He went his way therefore, and washed, and came seeing."

                                                                     471


It was generally believed by the Jews that sin is punished in this life.
Every affliction was regarded as the penalty of some wrongdoing, either of
the sufferer himself or of his parents. It is true that all suffering
results from the transgression of God's law, but this truth had become
perverted. Satan, the author of sin and all its results, had led men to look
upon disease and death as proceeding from God,--as punishment arbitrarily
inflicted on account of sin. Hence one upon whom some great affliction or
calamity had fallen had the additional burden of being regarded as a great
sinner.

Thus the way was prepared for the Jews to reject Jesus. He who "hath borne
our griefs, and carried our sorrows" was looked upon by the Jews as
"stricken, smitten of God, and afflicted;" and they hid their faces from
Him. Isa. 53:4, 3.

God had given a lesson designed to prevent this. The history of Job had
shown that suffering is inflicted by Satan, and is overruled by God for
purposes of mercy. But Israel did not understand the lesson. The same error
for which God had reproved the friends of Job was repeated by the Jews in
their rejection of Christ.

The belief of the Jews in regard to the relation of sin and suffering was
held by Christ's disciples. While Jesus corrected their error, He did not
explain the cause of the man's affliction, but told them what would be the
result. Because of it the works of God would be made manifest. "As long as I
am in the world," He said, "I am the light of the world." Then having
anointed the eyes of the blind man, He sent him to wash in the pool of
Siloam, and the man's sight was restored. Thus Jesus answered the question
of the disciples in a practical way, as He usually answered questions put to
Him from curiosity. The disciples were not called upon to discuss the
question as to who had sinned or had not sinned, but to understand the power
and mercy of God in giving sight to the blind. It was evident that there was
no healing virtue in the clay, or in the pool wherein the blind man was sent
to wash, but that the virtue was in Christ.

The Pharisees could not but be astonished at the cure. Yet they were more
than ever filled with hatred; for the miracle had been performed on the
Sabbath day.

The neighbors of the young man, and those who knew him before in his
blindness, said, "Is not this he that sat and begged?" They looked upon him
with doubt; for when his eyes were opened, his countenance was changed and
brightened, and he appeared like another man. From

472

one to another the question passed. Some said, "This is he;" others, "He is
like him." But he who had received the great blessing settled the question
by saying, "I am he." He then told them of Jesus, and by what means he had
been healed, and they inquired, "Where is He? He said, I know not."

Then they brought him before a council of the Pharisees. Again the man was
asked how he had received his sight. "He said unto them, He put clay upon
mine eyes, and I washed, and do see. Therefore said some of the Pharisees,
This man is not of God, because He keepeth not the Sabbath day." The
Pharisees hoped to make Jesus out to be a sinner, and therefore not the
Messiah. They knew not that it was He who had made the Sabbath and knew all
its obligation, who had healed the blind man. They appeared wonderfully
zealous for the observance of the Sabbath, yet were planning murder on that
very day. But many were greatly moved at hearing of this miracle, and were
convicted that He who had opened the eyes of the blind was more than a
common man. In answer to the charge that Jesus was a sinner because He kept
not the Sabbath day, they said, "How can a man that is a sinner do such
miracles?"

Again the rabbis appealed to the blind man, "What sayest thou of Him, that
He hath opened thine eyes? He said, He is a prophet." The Pharisees then
asserted that he had not been born blind and received his sight. They called
for his parents, and asked them, saying, "Is this your son, who ye say was
born blind?"

There was the man himself, declaring that he had been blind, and had had his
sight restored; but the Pharisees would rather deny the evidence of their
own senses than admit that they were in error. So powerful is prejudice, so
distorting is Pharisaical righteousness.

The Pharisees had one hope left, and that was to intimidate the man's
parents. With apparent sincerity they asked, "How then doth he now see?" The
parents feared to compromise themselves; for it had been declared that
whoever should acknowledge Jesus as the Christ should be "put out of the
synagogue;" that is, should be excluded from the synagogue for thirty days.
During this time no child could be circumcised nor dead be lamented in the
offender's home. The sentence was regarded as a great calamity; and if it
failed to produce repentance, a far heavier penalty followed. The great work
wrought for their son had brought conviction to the parents, yet they
answered, "We know that this is our son, and that he was born blind: but by
what means he now

                                                                     473

seeth, we know not; or who hath opened his eyes, we know not: he is of age;
ask him: he shall speak for himself." Thus they shifted all responsibility
from themselves to their son; for they dared not confess Christ.

The dilemma in which the Pharisees were placed, their questioning and
prejudice, their unbelief in the facts of the case, were opening the eyes of
the multitude, especially of the common people. Jesus had frequently wrought
His miracles in the open street, and His work was always of a character to
relieve suffering. The question in many minds was, Would God do such mighty
works through an impostor, as the Pharisees insisted that Jesus was? The
controversy was becoming very earnest on both sides.

The Pharisees saw that they were giving publicity to the work done by Jesus.
They could not deny the miracle. The blind man was filled with joy and
gratitude; he beheld the wondrous things of nature, and was filled with
delight at the beauty of earth and sky. He freely related his experience,
and again they tried to silence him, saying, "Give God the praise: we know
that this Man is a sinner." That is, Do not say again that this Man gave you
sight; it is God who has done this.

The blind man answered, "Whether He be a sinner or no, I know not: one thing
I know, that, whereas I was blind, now I see."

Then they questioned again, "What did He to thee? how opened He thine eyes?"
With many words they tried to confuse him, so that he might think himself
deluded. Satan and his evil angels were on the side of the Pharisees, and
united their energies and subtlety with man's reasoning in order to
counteract the influence of Christ. They blunted the convictions that were
deepening in many minds. Angels of God were also on the ground to strengthen
the man who had had his sight restored.

474


The Pharisees did not realize that they had to deal with any other than the
uneducated man who had been born blind; they knew not Him with whom they
were in controversy. Divine light shone into the chambers of the blind man's
soul. As these hypocrites tried to make him disbelieve, God helped him to
show, by the vigor and pointedness of his replies, that he was not to be
ensnared. He answered, "I have told you already, and ye did not hear:
wherefore would ye hear it again? will ye also be His disciples? Then they
reviled him, and said, Thou art His disciple; but we are Moses' disciples.
We know that God spake unto Moses: as for this fellow, we know not from
whence He is."

The Lord Jesus knew the ordeal through which the man was passing, and He
gave him grace and utterance, so that he became a witness for Christ. He
answered the Pharisees in words that were a cutting rebuke to his
questioners. They claimed to be the expositors of Scripture, the religious
guides of the nation; and yet here was One performing miracles, and they
were confessedly ignorant as to the source of His power, and as to His
character and claims. "Why herein is a marvelous thing," said the man, "that
ye know not from whence He is, and yet He hath opened mine eyes. Now we know
that God heareth not sinners: but if any man be a worshiper of God, and
doeth His will, him He heareth. Since the world began was it not heard that
any man opened the eyes of one that was born blind. If this Man were not of
God, He could do nothing."

The man had met his inquisitors on their own ground. His reasoning was
unanswerable. The Pharisees were astonished, and they held their
peace,--spellbound before his pointed, determined words. For a few moments
there was silence. Then the frowning priests and rabbis gathered about them
their robes, as though they feared contamination from contact with him; they
shook off the dust from their feet, and hurled denunciations against
him,--"Thou wast altogether born in sins, and dost thou teach us?" And they
excommunicated him.

Jesus heard what had been done; and finding him soon after, He said, "Dost
thou believe on the Son of God?"

For the first time the blind man looked upon the face of his Restorer.
Before the council he had seen his parents troubled and perplexed; he had
looked upon the frowning faces of the rabbis; now his eyes rested upon the
loving, peaceful countenance of Jesus. Already, at great cost to himself, he
had acknowledged Him as a delegate of divine power; now a higher revelation
was granted him.

                                                                     475


To the Saviour's question, "Dost thou believe on the Son of God?" the blind
man replied by asking, "Who is He, Lord, that I might believe on Him?" And
Jesus said, "Thou hast both seen Him, and it is He that talketh with thee."
The man cast himself at the Saviour's feet in worship. Not only had his
natural sight been restored, but the eyes of his understanding had been
opened. Christ had been revealed to his soul, and he received Him as the
Sent of God.

A group of Pharisees had gathered near, and the sight of them brought to the
mind of Jesus the contrast ever manifest in the effect of His words and
works. He said, "For judgment I am come into this world, that they which see
not might see; and that they which see might be made blind." Christ had come
to open the blind eyes, to give light to them that sit in darkness. He had
declared Himself to be the light of the world, and the miracle just
performed was in attestation of His mission. The people who beheld the
Saviour at His advent were favored with a fuller manifestation of the divine
presence than the world had ever enjoyed before. The knowledge of God was
revealed more perfectly. But in this very revelation, judgment was passing
upon men. Their character was tested, their destiny determined.

The manifestation of divine power that had given to the blind man both
natural and spiritual sight had left the Pharisees in yet deeper darkness.
Some of His hearers, feeling that Christ's words applied to them, inquired,
"Are we blind also?" Jesus answered, "If ye were blind, ye should have no
sin." If God had made it impossible for you to see the truth, your ignorance
would involve no guilt. "But now ye say, We see." You believe yourselves
able to see, and reject the means through which alone you could receive
sight. To all who realized their need, Christ came with infinite help. But
the Pharisees would confess no need; they refused to come to Christ, and
hence they were left in blindness,--a blindness for which they were
themselves guilty. Jesus said, "Your sin remaineth."




(476)

                             Chapter 52

                             The Divine Shepherd


"I am the Good Shepherd: the good shepherd giveth his life for the sheep."
"I am the Good Shepherd, and know My sheep, and am known of Mine. As the
Father knoweth Me, even so know I the Father: and I lay down My life for the
sheep."

Again Jesus found access to the minds of His hearers by the pathway of their
familiar associations. He had likened the Spirit's influence to the cool,
refreshing water. He had represented Himself as the light, the source of
life and gladness to nature and to man. Now in a beautiful pastoral picture
He represents His relation to those that believe on Him. No picture was more
familiar to His hearers than this, and Christ's words linked it forever with
Himself. Never could the disciples look on the shepherds tending their
flocks without recalling the Saviour's lesson. They would see Christ in each
faithful shepherd. They would see themselves in each helpless and dependent
flock.

This figure the prophet Isaiah had applied to the Messiah's mission, in the
comforting words, "O Zion, that bringest good tidings, get thee up into the
high mountain; O Jerusalem, that bringest good tidings, lift up thy voice
with strength; lift it up, be not afraid; say unto the cities of Judah,
Behold your God! . . . He shall feed His flock like a shepherd: He shall
gather the lambs with His arm, and carry them in His bosom." Isa. 40:9-11.
David had sung, "The Lord is my shepherd;

                                                                     477

I shall not want." Ps. 23:1. And the Holy Spirit through Ezekiel had
declared: "I will set up one Shepherd over them, and He shall feed them." "I
will seek that which was lost, and bring again that which was driven away,
and will bind up that which was broken, and will strengthen that which was
sick." "And I will make with them a covenant of peace." "And they shall no
more be a prey to the heathen; . . . but they shall dwell safely, and none
shall make them afraid." Ezek. 34:23,
16, 25, 28.

Christ applied these prophecies to Himself, and He showed the contrast
between His own character and that of the leaders in Israel. The Pharisees
had just driven one from the fold, because he dared to bear witness to the
power of Christ. They had cut off a soul whom the True Shepherd was drawing
to Himself. In this they had shown themselves ignorant of the work committed
to them, and unworthy of their trust as shepherds of the flock. Jesus now
set before them the contrast between them and the Good Shepherd, and He
pointed to Himself as the real keeper of the Lord's flock. Before doing
this, however, He speaks of Himself under another figure.

He said, "He that entereth not by the door into the sheepfold, but climbeth
up some other way, the same is a thief and a robber. But he that entereth in
by the door is the shepherd of the sheep." The Pharisees did not discern
that these words were spoken against them. When they reasoned in their
hearts as to the meaning, Jesus told them plainly, "I am the door: by Me if
any man enter in, he shall be saved, and shall go in and out, and find
pasture. The thief cometh not, but for to steal, and to kill, and to
destroy: I am come that they might have life, and that they might have it
more abundantly."

Christ is the door to the fold of God. Through this door all His children,
from the earliest times, have found entrance. In Jesus, as shown in types,
as shadowed in symbols, as manifested in the revelation of the prophets, as
unveiled in the lessons given to His disciples, and in the miracles wrought
for the sons of men, they have beheld "the Lamb of God, which taketh away
the sin of the world" (John 1:29), and through Him they are brought within
the fold of His grace. Many have come presenting other objects for the faith
of the world; ceremonies and systems have been devised by which men hope to
receive justification and peace with God, and thus find entrance to His
fold. But the only door is Christ, and all who have interposed something to
take the place

478

of Christ, all who have tried to enter the fold in some other way, are
thieves and robbers.

The Pharisees had not entered by the door. They had climbed into the fold by
another way than Christ, and they were not fulfilling the work of the true
shepherd. The priests and rulers, the scribes and Pharisees, destroyed the
living pastures, and defiled the wellsprings of the water of life.
Faithfully do the words of inspiration describe those false shepherds: "The
diseased have ye not strengthened, neither have ye healed that which was
sick, neither have ye bound up that which was broken, neither have ye
brought again that which was driven away; . . . but with force and with
cruelty have ye ruled them." Ezek. 34:4.

In all ages, philosophers and teachers have been presenting to the world
theories by which to satisfy the soul's need. Every heathen nation has had
its great teachers and religious systems offering some other means of
redemption than Christ, turning the eyes of men away from the Father's face,
and filling their hearts with fear of Him who has given them only blessing.
The trend of their work is to rob God of that which is His own, both by
creation and by redemption. And these false teachers rob man as well.
Millions of human beings are bound down under false religions, in the
bondage of slavish fear, of stolid indifference, toiling like beasts of
burden, bereft of hope or joy or aspiration here, and with only a dull fear
of the hereafter. It is the gospel of the grace of God alone that can uplift
the soul. The contemplation of the love of God manifested in His Son will
stir the heart and arouse the powers of the soul as nothing else can. Christ
came that He might re-create the image of God in man; and whoever turns men
away from Christ is turning them away from the source of true development;
he is defrauding them of the hope and purpose and glory of life. He is a
thief and a robber.

"He that entereth in by the door is the shepherd of the sheep." Christ is
both the door and the shepherd. He enters in by Himself. It is through His
own sacrifice that He becomes the shepherd of the sheep. "To Him the porter
openeth; and the sheep hear His voice: and He calleth His own sheep by name,
and leadeth them out. And when He putteth forth His own sheep, He goeth
before them, and the sheep follow Him: for they know His voice."

Of all creatures the sheep is one of the most timid and helpless, and in the
East the shepherd's care for his flock is untiring and incessant.

                                                                     479

Anciently as now there was little security outside of the walled towns.
Marauders from the roving border tribes, or beasts of prey from their hiding
places in the rocks, lay in wait to plunder the flocks. The shepherd watched
his charge, knowing that it was at the peril of his own life. Jacob, who
kept the flocks of Laban in the pasture grounds of Haran, describing his own
unwearied labor, said, "In the day the drought consumed me, and the frost by
night; and my sleep departed from mine eyes." Gen. 31:40. And it was while
guarding his father's sheep that the boy David, single-handed, encountered
the lion and the bear, and rescued from their teeth the stolen lamb.

As the shepherd leads his flock over the rocky hills, through forest and
wild ravines, to grassy nooks by the riverside; as he watches them on the
mountains through the lonely night, shielding from robbers, caring tenderly
for the sickly and feeble, his life comes to be one with theirs. A strong
and tender attachment unites him to the objects of his care. However large
the flock, the shepherd knows every sheep. Every one has its name, and
responds to the name at the shepherd's call.

As an earthly shepherd knows his sheep, so does the divine Shepherd know His
flock that are scattered throughout the world. "Ye My flock, the flock of My
pasture, are men, and I am your God, saith the Lord God." Jesus says, "I
have called thee by thy name; thou art Mine." "I have graven thee upon the
palms of My hands." Ezek. 34:31; Isa. 43:1; 49:16.

Jesus knows us individually, and is touched with the feeling of our
infirmities. He knows us all by name. He knows the very house in which we
live, the name of each occupant. He has at times given directions to His
servants to go to a certain street in a certain city, to such a house, to
find one of His sheep.

480


Every soul is as fully known to Jesus as if he were the only one for whom
the Saviour died. The distress of every one touches His heart. The cry for
aid reaches His ear. He came to draw all men unto Himself. He bids them,
"Follow Me," and His Spirit moves upon their hearts to draw them to come to
Him. Many refuse to be drawn. Jesus knows who they are. He also knows who
gladly hear His call, and are ready to come under His pastoral care. He
says, "My sheep hear My voice, and I know them, and they follow Me." He
cares for each one as if there were not another on the face of the earth.

"He calleth His own sheep by name, and leadeth them out. . . . And the sheep
follow Him: for they know His voice." The Eastern shepherd does not drive
his sheep. He depends not upon force or fear; but going before, he calls
them. They know his voice, and obey the call. So does the Saviour-Shepherd
with His sheep. The Scripture says, "Thou leddest Thy people like a flock by
the hand of Moses and Aaron." Through the prophet, Jesus declares, "I have
loved thee with an everlasting love: therefore with loving-kindness have I
drawn thee." He compels none to follow Him. "I drew them," He says, "with
cords of a man, with bands of love." Ps. 77:20; Jer. 31:3; Hosea 11:4.

It is not the fear of punishment, or the hope of everlasting reward, that
leads the disciples of Christ to follow Him. They behold the Saviour's
matchless love, revealed throughout His pilgrimage on earth, from the manger
of Bethlehem to Calvary's cross, and the sight of Him attracts, it softens
and subdues the soul. Love awakens in the heart of the beholders. They hear
His voice, and they follow Him.

As the shepherd goes before his sheep, himself first encountering the perils
of the way, so does Jesus with His people. "When He putteth forth His own
sheep, He goeth before them." The way to heaven is consecrated by the
Saviour's footprints. The path may be steep and rugged, but Jesus has
traveled that way; His feet have pressed down the cruel thorns, to make the
pathway easier for us. Every burden that we are called to bear He Himself
has borne.

Though now He has ascended to the presence of God, and shares the throne of
the universe, Jesus has lost none of His compassionate nature. Today the
same tender, sympathizing heart is open to all the woes of humanity. Today
the hand that was pierced is reached forth to bless more abundantly His
people that are in the world. "And they shall never perish, neither shall
any man pluck them out of My hand."

                                                                     483

The soul that has given himself to Christ is more precious in His sight than
the whole world. The Saviour would have passed through the agony of Calvary
that one might be saved in His kingdom. He will never abandon one for whom
He has died. Unless His followers choose to leave Him, He will hold them
fast.

Through all our trials we have a never-failing Helper. He does not leave us
alone to struggle with temptation, to battle with evil, and be finally
crushed with burdens and sorrow. Though now He is hidden from mortal sight,
the ear of faith can hear His voice saying, Fear not; I am with you. "I am
He that liveth, and was dead; and, behold, I am alive forevermore." Rev.
1:18. I have endured your sorrows, experienced your struggles, encountered
your temptations. I know your tears; I also have wept. The griefs that lie
too deep to be breathed into any human ear, I know. Think not that you are
desolate and forsaken. Though your pain touch no responsive chord in any
heart on earth, look unto Me, and live. "The mountains shall depart, and the
hills be removed; but My kindness shall not depart from thee, neither shall
the covenant of My peace be removed, saith the Lord that hath mercy on
thee." Isa. 54:10.

However much a shepherd may love his sheep, he loves his sons and daughters
more. Jesus is not only our shepherd; He is our "everlasting Father." And He
says, "I know Mine own, and Mine own know Me, even as the Father knoweth Me,
and I know the Father." John 10:14, 15, R. V. What a statement is this!--the
only-begotten Son, He who is in the bosom of the Father, He whom God has
declared to be "the Man that is My fellow" (Zech. 13:7),--the communion
between Him and the eternal God is taken to represent the communion between
Christ and His children on the earth!

Because we are the gift of His Father, and the reward of His work, Jesus
loves us. He loves us as His children. Reader, He loves you. Heaven itself
can bestow nothing greater, nothing better. Therefore trust.

Jesus thought upon the souls all over the earth who were misled by false
shepherds. Those whom He longed to gather as the sheep of His pasture were
scattered among wolves, and He said, "Other sheep I have, which are not of
this fold: them also I must bring, and they shall hear My voice; and they
shall become one flock, one shepherd." John 10:16, R. V.

"Therefore doth My Father love Me, because I lay down My life, that I might
take it again." That is, My Father has so loved you, that

484

He even loves Me more for giving My life to redeem you. In becoming your
substitute and surety, by surrendering My life, by taking your liabilities,
your transgressions, I am endeared to My Father.

"I lay down My life, that I might take it again. No man taketh it from Me,
but I lay it down of Myself. I have power to lay it down, and I have power
to take it again." While as a member of the human family He was mortal, as
God He was the fountain of life for the world. He could have withstood the
advances of death, and refused to come under its dominion; but voluntarily
He laid down His life, that He might bring life and immortality to light. He
bore the sin of the world, endured its curse, yielded up His life as a
sacrifice, that men might not eternally die. "Surely He hath borne our
griefs, and carried our sorrows. . . . He was wounded for our
transgressions, He was bruised for our iniquities: the chastisement of our
peace was upon Him; and with His stripes we are healed. All we like sheep
have gone astray; we have turned every one to his own way; and the Lord hath
laid on Him the iniquity of us all." Isa. 53:4-6.




                                                                     (485)

                             Chapter 53

                             The Last Journey From Galilee


As the close of His ministry drew near, there was a change in Christ's
manner of labor. Heretofore He had sought to shun excitement and publicity.
He had refused the homage of the people, and had passed quickly from place
to place when the popular enthusiasm in His favor seemed kindling beyond
control. Again and again He had commanded that none should declare Him to be
the Christ.

At the time of the Feast of Tabernacles His journey to Jerusalem was made
swiftly and secretly. When urged by His brothers to present Himself publicly
as the Messiah, His answer was, "My time is not yet come." John 7:6. He made
His way to Jerusalem unobserved, and entered the city unannounced, and
unhonored by the multitude. But not so with His last journey. He had left
Jerusalem for a season because of the malice of the priests and rabbis. But
He now set out to return, traveling in the most public manner, by a
circuitous route, and preceded by such an announcement of His coming as He
had never made before. He was going forward to the scene of His great
sacrifice, and to this the attention of the people must be directed.

"As Moses lifted up the serpent in the wilderness, even so must the Son of
man be lifted up." John 3:14. As the eyes of all Israel had been directed to
the uplifted serpent, the symbol appointed for their healing, so all eyes
must be drawn to Christ, the sacrifice that brought salvation to the lost
world.

It was a false conception of the Messiah's work, and a lack of faith

486

in the divine character of Jesus, that had led His brothers to urge Him to
present Himself publicly to the people at the Feast of Tabernacles. Now, in
a spirit akin to this, the disciples would have prevented Him from making
the journey to Jerusalem. They remembered His words concerning what was to
befall Him there, they knew the deadly hostility of the religious leaders,
and they would fain have dissuaded their Master from going thither.

To the heart of Christ it was a bitter task to press His way against the
fears, disappointment, and unbelief of His beloved disciples. It was hard to
lead them forward to the anguish and despair that awaited them at Jerusalem.
And Satan was at hand to press his temptations upon the Son of man. Why
should He now go to Jerusalem, to certain death? All around Him were souls
hungering for the bread of life. On every hand were suffering ones waiting
for His word of healing. The work to be wrought by the gospel of His grace
was but just begun. And He was full of the vigor of manhood's prime. Why not
go forward to the vast fields of the world with the words of His grace, the
touch of His healing power? Why not take to Himself the joy of giving light
and gladness to those darkened and sorrowing millions? Why leave the harvest
gathering to His disciples, so weak in faith, so dull of understanding, so
slow to act? Why face death now, and leave the work in its infancy? The foe
who in the wilderness had confronted Christ assailed Him now with fierce and
subtle temptations. Had Jesus yielded for a moment, had He changed His
course in the least particular to save Himself, Satan's agencies would have
triumphed, and the world would have been lost.

But Jesus had "steadfastly set His face to go to Jerusalem." The one law of
His life was the Father's will. In the visit to the temple in His boyhood,
He had said to Mary, "Wist ye not that I must be about My Father's
business?" Luke 2:49. At Cana, when Mary desired Him to reveal His
miraculous power, His answer was, "Mine hour is not yet come." John 2:4.
With the same words He replied to His brothers when they urged Him to go to
the feast. But in God's great plan the hour had been appointed for the
offering of Himself for the sins of men, and that hour was soon to strike.
He would not fail nor falter. His steps are turned toward Jerusalem, where
His foes have long plotted to take His life; now He will lay it down. He set
His face steadfastly to go to persecution, denial, rejection, condemnation,
and death.

And He "sent messengers before His face: and they went, and entered into a
village of the Samaritans, to make ready for Him." But

                                                                     487

the people refused to receive Him, because He was on His way to Jerusalem.
This they interpreted as meaning that Christ showed a preference for the
Jews, whom they hated with intense bitterness. Had He come to restore the
temple and worship upon Mount Gerizim, they would gladly have received Him;
but He was going to Jerusalem, and they would show Him no hospitality.
Little did they realize that they were turning from their doors the best
gift of heaven. Jesus invited men to receive Him, He asked favors at their
hands, that He might come near to them, to bestow the richest blessings. For
every favor manifested toward Him, He requited a more precious grace. But
all was lost to the Samaritans because of their prejudice and bigotry.

James and John, Christ's messengers, were greatly annoyed at the insult
shown to their Lord. They were filled with indignation because He had been
so rudely treated by the Samaritans whom He was honoring by His presence.
They had recently been with Him on the mount of transfiguration, and had
seen Him glorified by God, and honored by Moses and Elijah. This manifest
dishonor on the part of the Samaritans, should not, they thought, be passed
over without marked punishment.

Coming to Christ, they reported to Him the words of the people, telling Him
that they had even refused to give Him a night's lodging. They thought that
a grievous wrong had been done Him, and seeing Mount Carmel in the distance,
where Elijah had slain the false prophets, they said, "Wilt Thou that we
command fire to come down from heaven, and consume them, even as Elias did?"
They were surprised to see that Jesus was pained by their words, and still
more surprised as His rebuke fell upon their ears, "Ye know not what manner
of spirit ye are of. For the Son of man is not come to destroy men's lives,
but to save them." And He went to another village.

It is no part of Christ's mission to compel men to receive Him. It is Satan,
and men actuated by his spirit, that seek to compel the conscience. Under a
pretense of zeal for righteousness, men who are confederate with evil angels
bring suffering upon their fellow men, in order to convert them to their
ideas of religion; but Christ is ever showing mercy, ever seeking to win by
the revealing of His love. He can admit no rival in the soul, nor accept of
partial service; but He desires only voluntary service, the willing
surrender of the heart under the constraint of love. There can be no more
conclusive evidence that we possess the spirit of Satan than the disposition
to hurt and destroy those who do not appreciate our work, or who act
contrary to our ideas.

488


Every human being, in body, soul, and spirit, is the property of God. Christ
died to redeem all. Nothing can be more offensive to God than for men,
through religious bigotry, to bring suffering upon those who are the
purchase of the Saviour's blood.

"And He arose from thence, and cometh into the coasts of Judea by the
farther side of Jordan: and the people resort unto Him again; and, as He was
wont, He taught them again." Mark 10:1.

A considerable part of the closing months of Christ's ministry was spent in
Perea, the province on "the farther side of Jordan" from Judea. Here the
multitude thronged His steps, as in His early ministry in Galilee, and much
of His former teaching was repeated.

As He had sent out the twelve, so He "appointed seventy others, and sent
them two and two before His face into every city and place, whither He
Himself was about to come." Luke 10:1, R. V. These disciples had been for
some time with Him, in training for their work. When the twelve were sent
out on their first separate mission, other disciples accompanied Jesus in
His journey through Galilee. Thus they had the privilege of intimate
association with Him, and direct personal instruction. Now this larger
number also were to go forth on a separate mission.

The directions to the seventy were similar to those that had been given to
the twelve; but the command to the twelve, not to enter into any city of the
Gentiles or of the Samaritans, was not given to the seventy. Though Christ
had just been repulsed by the Samaritans, His love toward them was
unchanged. When the seventy went forth in His name, they visited, first of
all, the cities of Samaria.

The Saviour's own visit to Samaria, and later, the commendation of the good
Samaritan, and the grateful joy of that leper, a Samaritan, who alone of the
ten returned to give thanks to Christ, were full of significance to the
disciples. The lesson sank deep into their hearts. In His commission to
them, just before His ascension, Jesus mentioned Samaria with Jerusalem and
Judea as the places where they were first to preach the gospel. This
commission His teaching had prepared them to fulfill. When in their Master's
name they went to Samaria, they found the people ready to receive them. The
Samaritans had heard of Christ's words of commendation and His works of
mercy for men of their nation. They saw that, notwithstanding their rude
treatment of Him, He had only thoughts of love toward them, and their hearts
were won. After His ascension they welcomed the Saviour's messengers, and
the disciples gathered a precious harvest from among those who had once been
their bitterest enemies.

                                                                     489

"A bruised reed shall He not break, and the dimly burning flax shall He not
quench: He shall bring forth judgment unto truth." "And in His name shall
the Gentiles trust." Isa. 42:3, margin; Matt. 12:21.

In sending out the seventy, Jesus bade them, as He had bidden the twelve,
not to urge their presence where they were unwelcome. "Into whatsoever city
ye enter, and they receive you not," He said, "go your ways out into the
streets of the same, and say, Even the very dust of your city, which
cleaveth on us, we do wipe off against you: notwithstanding be ye sure of
this, that the kingdom of God is come nigh unto you." They were not to do
this from motives of resentment or through wounded dignity, but to show how
grievous a thing it is to refuse the Lord's message or His messengers. To
reject the Lord's servants is to reject Christ Himself.

"I say unto you," Jesus added, "that it shall be more tolerable in that day
for Sodom, than for that city." Then His mind reverted to the Galilean towns
where so much of His ministry had been spent. In deeply sorrowful accents He
exclaimed, "Woe unto thee, Chorazin! woe unto thee, Bethsaida! for if the
mighty works had been done in Tyre and Sidon, which have been done in you,
they had a great while ago repented, sitting in sackcloth and ashes. But it
shall be more tolerable for Tyre and Sidon at the judgment, than for you.
And thou, Capernaum, which art exalted to heaven, shalt be thrust down to
hell."

To those busy towns about the Sea of Galilee, heaven's richest blessings had
been freely offered. Day after day the Prince of life had gone in and out
among them. The glory of God, which prophets and kings had longed to see,
had shone upon the multitudes that thronged the Saviour's steps. Yet they
had refused the heavenly Gift.

With a great show of prudence the rabbis had warned the people against
receiving the new doctrines taught by this new teacher; for His theories and
practices were contrary to the teachings of the fathers. The people gave
credence to what the priests and Pharisees taught, in place of seeking to
understand the word of God for themselves. They honored the priests and
rulers instead of honoring God, and rejected the truth that they might keep
their own traditions. Many had been impressed and almost persuaded; but they
did not act upon their convictions, and were not reckoned on the side of
Christ. Satan presented his temptations, until the light appeared as
darkness. Thus many rejected the truth that would have proved the saving of
the soul.

The True Witness says, "Behold, I stand at the door, and knock." Rev. 3:20.
Every warning, reproof, and entreaty in the word of God or

490

through His messengers is a knock at the door of the heart. It is the voice
of Jesus asking for entrance. With every knock unheeded, the disposition to
open becomes weaker. The impressions of the Holy Spirit if disregarded
today, will not be as strong tomorrow. The heart becomes less impressible,
and lapses into a perilous unconsciousness of the shortness of life, and of
the great eternity beyond. Our condemnation in the judgment will not result
from the fact that we have been in error, but from the fact that we have
neglected heaven-sent opportunities for learning what is truth.

Like the apostles, the seventy had received supernatural endowments as a
seal of their mission. When their work was completed, they returned with
joy, saying, "Lord, even the devils are subject unto us through Thy name."
Jesus answered, "I beheld Satan as lightning fall from heaven."

The scenes of the past and the future were presented to the mind of Jesus.
He beheld Lucifer as he was first cast out from the heavenly places. He
looked forward to the scenes of His own agony, when before all the worlds
the character of the deceiver should be unveiled. He heard the cry, "It is
finished" (John 19:30), announcing that the redemption of the lost race was
forever made certain, that heaven was made eternally secure against the
accusations, the deceptions, the pretensions, that Satan would instigate.

Beyond the cross of Calvary, with its agony and shame, Jesus looked forward
to the great final day, when the prince of the power of the air will meet
his destruction in the earth so long marred by his rebellion. Jesus beheld
the work of evil forever ended, and the peace of God filling heaven and
earth.

Henceforward Christ's followers were to look upon Satan as a conquered foe.
Upon the cross, Jesus was to gain the victory for them; that victory He
desired them to accept as their own. "Behold," He said, "I give unto you
power to tread on serpents and scorpions, and over all the power of the
enemy: and nothing shall by any means hurt you."

The omnipotent power of the Holy Spirit is the defense of every contrite
soul. Not one that in penitence and faith has claimed His protection will
Christ permit to pass under the enemy's power. The Saviour is by the side of
His tempted and tried ones. With Him there can be no such thing as failure,
loss, impossibility, or defeat; we can do all things through Him who
strengthens us. When temptations and trials

                                                                     493

come, do not wait to adjust all the difficulties, but look to Jesus, your
helper.

There are Christians who think and speak altogether too much about the power
of Satan. They think of their adversary, they pray about him, they talk
about him, and he looms up greater and greater in their imagination. It is
true that Satan is a powerful being; but, thank God, we have a mighty
Saviour, who cast out the evil one from heaven. Satan is pleased when we
magnify his power. Why not talk of Jesus? Why not magnify His power and His
love?

The rainbow of promise encircling the throne on high is an everlasting
testimony that "God so loved the world, that He gave His only-begotten Son,
that whosoever believeth in Him should not perish, but have everlasting
life." John 3:16. It testifies to the universe that God will never forsake
His people in their struggle with evil. It is an assurance to us of strength
and protection as long as the throne itself shall endure.

Jesus added, "Notwithstanding in this rejoice not, that the spirits are
subject unto you; but rather rejoice, because your names are written in
heaven." Rejoice not in the possession of power, lest you lose sight of your
dependence upon God. Be careful lest self-sufficiency come in, and you work
in your own strength, rather than in the spirit and strength of your Master.
Self is ever ready to take the credit if any measure of success attends the
work. Self is flattered and exalted, and the impression is not made upon
other minds that God is all and in all. The apostle Paul says, "When I am
weak, then am I strong." 2 Cor. 12:10. When we have a realization of our
weakness, we learn to depend upon a power not inherent. Nothing can take so
strong a hold on the heart as the abiding sense of our responsibility to
God. Nothing reaches so fully down to the deepest motives of conduct as a
sense of the pardoning love of Christ. We are to come in touch with God,
then we shall be imbued with His Holy Spirit, that enables us to come in
touch with our fellow men. Then rejoice that through Christ you have become
connected with God, members of the heavenly family. While you look higher
than yourself, you will have a continual sense of the weakness of humanity.
The less you cherish self, the more distinct and full will be your
comprehension of the excellence of your Saviour. The more closely you
connect yourself with the source of light and power, the greater light will
be shed upon you, and the greater power will be yours to work for God.
Rejoice that you are one with God, one with Christ, and with the whole
family of heaven.

494


As the seventy listened to the words of Christ, the Holy Spirit was
impressing their minds with living realities, and writing truth upon the
tablets of the soul. Though multitudes surrounded them, they were as though
shut in with God.

Knowing that they had caught the inspiration of the hour, Jesus "rejoiced in
spirit, and said, I thank Thee, O Father, Lord of heaven and earth, that
Thou hast hid these things from the wise and prudent, and hast revealed them
unto babes: even so, Father; for so it seemed good in Thy sight. All things
are delivered to Me of My Father: and no man knoweth who the Son is, but the
Father, and who the Father is, but the Son, and he to whom the Son will
reveal Him."

The honored men of the world, the so-called great and wise men, with all
their boasted wisdom, could not comprehend the character of Christ. They
judged Him from outward appearance, from the humiliation that came upon Him
as a human being. But to fishermen and publicans it had been given to see
the Invisible. Even the disciples failed of understanding all that Jesus
desired to reveal to them; but from time to time, as they surrendered
themselves to the Holy Spirit's power, their minds were illuminated. They
realized that the mighty God, clad in the garb of humanity, was among them.
Jesus rejoiced that though this knowledge was not possessed by the wise and
prudent, it had been revealed to these humble men. Often as He had presented
the Old Testament Scriptures, and showed their application to Himself and
His work of atonement, they had been awakened by His Spirit, and lifted into
a heavenly atmosphere. Of the spiritual truths spoken by the prophets they
had a clearer understanding than had the original writers themselves.
Hereafter they would read the Old Testament Scriptures, not as the doctrines
of the scribes and Pharisees, not as the utterances of wise men who were
dead, but as a new revelation from God. They beheld Him "whom the world
cannot receive, because it seeth Him not, neither knoweth Him: but ye know
Him; for He dwelleth with you, and shall be in you." John 14:17.

The only way in which we can gain a more perfect apprehension of truth is by
keeping the heart tender and subdued by the Spirit of Christ. The soul must
be cleansed from vanity and pride, and vacated of all that has held it in
possession, and Christ must be enthroned within. Human science is too
limited to comprehend the atonement. The plan of redemption is so
far-reaching that philosophy cannot explain it. It will

                                                                     495

ever remain a mystery that the most profound reasoning cannot fathom. The
science of salvation cannot be explained; but it can be known by experience.
Only he who sees his own sinfulness can discern the preciousness of the
Saviour.

Full of instruction were the lessons which Christ taught as He slowly made
His way from Galilee toward Jerusalem. Eagerly the people listened to His
words. In Perea as in Galilee the people were less under the control of
Jewish bigotry than in Judea, and His teaching found a response in their
hearts.

During these last months of His ministry, many of Christ's parables were
spoken. The priests and rabbis pursued Him with ever-increasing bitterness,
and His warnings to them He veiled in symbols. They could not mistake His
meaning, yet they could find in His words nothing on which to ground an
accusation against Him. In the parable of the Pharisee and the publican, the
self-sufficient prayer, "God, I thank Thee that I am not as the rest of
men," stood out in sharp contrast to the penitent's plea, "Be merciful to me
the sinner." Luke 18:11, 13, R. V., margin. Thus Christ rebuked the
hypocrisy of the Jews. And under the figures of the barren fig tree and the
great supper He foretold the doom about to fall upon the impenitent nation.
Those who had scornfully rejected the invitation to the gospel feast heard
His warning words: "I say unto you, That none of those men which were bidden
shall taste of My supper." Luke 14:24.

Very precious was the instruction given to the disciples. The parable of the
importunate widow and the friend asking for bread at midnight gave new force
to His words, "Ask, and it shall be given you; seek, and ye shall find;
knock, and it shall be opened unto you." Luke 11:9. And often their wavering
faith was strengthened by the memory that Christ had said, "Shall not God do
justice for His elect, which cry to Him day and night, and He is
long-suffering over them? I say unto you, that He will do them justice
speedily." Luke 18:7, 8, R. V., margin.

The beautiful parable of the lost sheep Christ repeated. And He carried its
lesson still farther, as He told of the lost piece of silver and the
prodigal son. The force of these lessons the disciples could not then fully
appreciate; but after the outpouring of the Holy Spirit, as they saw the
ingathering of the Gentiles and the envious anger of the Jews, they better
understood the lesson of the prodigal son, and could enter into the joy of
Christ's words, "It was meet that we should make merry,

496

and be glad;" "for this my son was dead, and is alive again; he was lost,
and is found." Luke 15:32, 24. And as they went out in their Master's name,
facing reproach and poverty and persecution, they often strengthened their
hearts by repeating His injunction, spoken on this last journey, "Fear not,
little flock; for it is your Father's good pleasure to give you the kingdom.
Sell that ye have, and give alms; provide yourselves bags which wax not old,
a treasure in the heavens that faileth not, where no thief approacheth,
neither moth corrupteth. For where your treasure is, there will your heart
be also." Luke 12:32-34.




                                                                     (497)

                             Chapter 54

                             The Good Samaritan


In the story of the good Samaritan, Christ illustrates the nature of true
religion. He shows that it consists not in systems, creeds, or rites, but in
the performance of loving deeds, in bringing the greatest good to others, in
genuine goodness.

As Christ was teaching the people, "a certain lawyer stood up, and tempted
Him, saying, Master, what shall I do to inherit eternal life?" With
breathless attention the large congregation awaited the answer. The priests
and rabbis had thought to entangle Christ by having the lawyer ask this
question. But the Saviour entered into no controversy. He required the
answer from the questioner himself. "What is written in the law?" He said;
"how readest thou?" The Jews still accused Jesus of lightly regarding the
law given from Sinai; but He turned the question of salvation upon the
keeping of God's commandments.

The lawyer said, "Thou shalt love the Lord thy God with all thy heart, and
with all thy soul, and with all thy strength, and with all thy mind; and thy
neighbor as thyself." Jesus said, "Thou hast answered right: this do, and
thou shalt live."

The lawyer was not satisfied with the position and works of the Pharisees.
He had been studying the Scriptures with a desire to learn their real
meaning. He had a vital interest in the matter, and had asked in sincerity,
"What shall I do?" In his answer as to the requirements

498

of the law, he passed by all the mass of ceremonial and ritualistic
precepts. For these he claimed no value, but presented the two great
principles on which hang all the law and the prophets. This answer, being
commended by Christ, placed the Saviour on vantage ground with the rabbis.
They could not condemn Him for sanctioning that which had been advanced by
an expositor of the law.

"This do, and thou shalt live," Jesus said. He presented the law as a divine
unity, and in this lesson taught that it is not possible to keep one
precept, and break another; for the same principle runs through them all.
Man's destiny will be determined by his obedience to the whole law. Supreme
love to God and impartial love to man are the principles to be wrought out
in the life.

The lawyer found himself a lawbreaker. He was convicted under Christ's
searching words. The righteousness of the law, which he claimed to
understand, he had not practiced. He had not manifested love toward his
fellow man. Repentance was demanded; but instead of repenting, he tried to
justify himself. Rather than acknowledge the truth, he sought to show how
difficult of fulfillment the commandment is. Thus he hoped both to parry
conviction and to vindicate himself in the eyes of the people. The Saviour's
words had shown that his question was needless, since he had been able to
answer it himself. Yet he put another question, saying, "Who is my
neighbor?"

Among the Jews this question caused endless dispute. They had no doubt as to
the heathen and the Samaritans; these were strangers and enemies. But where
should the distinction be made among the people of their own nation, and
among the different classes of society? Whom should the priest, the rabbi,
the elder, regard as neighbor? They spent their lives in a round of
ceremonies to make themselves pure. Contact with the ignorant and careless
multitude, they taught, would cause defilement that would require wearisome
effort to remove. Were they to regard the "unclean" as neighbors?

Again Jesus refused to be drawn into controversy. He did not denounce the
bigotry of those who were watching to condemn Him. But by a simple story He
held up before His hearers such a picture of the outflowing of heaven-born
love as touched all hearts, and drew from the lawyer a confession of the
truth.

The way to dispel darkness is to admit light. The best way to deal with
error is to present truth. It is the revelation of God's love that makes
manifest the deformity and sin of the heart centered in self.

                                                                     499


"A certain man," said Jesus, "was going down from Jerusalem to Jericho; and
he fell among robbers, which both stripped him and beat him, and departed,
leaving him half dead. And by chance a certain priest was going down that
way: and when he saw him, he passed by on the other side. And in like manner
a Levite also, when he came to the place, and saw him, passed by on the
other side." Luke 10:30-32, R. V. This was no imaginary scene, but an actual
occurrence, which was known to be exactly as represented. The priest and the
Levite who had passed by on the other side were in the company that listened
to Christ's words.

In journeying from Jerusalem to Jericho, the traveler had to pass through a
portion of the wilderness of Judea. The road led down a wild, rocky ravine,
which was infested by robbers, and was often the scene of violence. It was
here that the traveler was attacked, stripped of all that was valuable,
wounded and bruised, and left half dead by the wayside. As he lay thus, the
priest came that way; but he merely glanced toward the wounded man. Then the
Levite appeared. Curious to know what had happened, he stopped and looked at
the sufferer. He was convicted of what he ought to do; but it was not an
agreeable duty. He wished that he had not come that way, so that he need not
have seen the wounded man. He persuaded himself that the case was no concern
of his.

Both these men were in sacred office, and professed to expound the
Scriptures. They were of the class specially chosen to be representatives of
God to the people. They were to "have compassion on the ignorant, and on
them that are out of the way" (Heb. 5:2), that they might lead

500

men to understand God's great love toward humanity. The work they were
called to do was the same that Jesus had described as His own when He said,
"The Spirit of the Lord is upon Me, because He hath anointed Me to preach
the gospel to the poor; He hath sent Me to heal the brokenhearted, to preach
deliverance to the captives, and recovering of sight to the blind, to set at
liberty them that are bruised." Luke 4:18.

The angels of heaven look upon the distress of God's family upon the earth,
and they are prepared to co-operate with men in relieving oppression and
suffering. God in His providence had brought the priest and the Levite along
the road where the wounded sufferer lay, that they might see his need of
mercy and help. All heaven watched to see if the hearts of these men would
be touched with pity for human woe. The Saviour was the One who had
instructed the Hebrews in the wilderness; from the pillar of cloud and of
fire He had taught a very different lesson from that which the people were
now receiving from their priests and teachers. The merciful provisions of
the law extended even to the lower animals, which cannot express in words
their want and suffering. Directions had been given to Moses for the
children of Israel to this effect: "If thou meet thine enemy's ox or his ass
going astray, thou shalt surely bring it back to him again. If thou see the
ass of him that hateth thee lying under his burden, and wouldest forbear to
help him, thou shalt surely help with him." Ex. 23:4, 5. But in the man
wounded by robbers, Jesus presented the case of a brother in suffering. How
much more should their hearts have been moved with pity for him than for a
beast of burden! The message had been given them through Moses that the Lord
their God, "a great God, a mighty, and a terrible," "doth execute the
judgment of the fatherless and widow, and loveth the stranger." Wherefore He
commanded, "Love ye therefore the stranger." "Thou shalt love him as
thyself." Deut. 10:17-19; Lev. 19:34.

Job had said, "The stranger did not lodge in the street: but I opened my
doors to the traveler." And when the two angels in the guise of men came to
Sodom, Lot bowed himself with his face toward the ground, and said, "Behold
now, my lords, turn in, I pray you, into your servant's house, and tarry all
night." Job 31:32; Gen. 19:2. With all these lessons the priest and the
Levite were familiar, but they had not brought them into practical life.
Trained in the school of national bigotry, they had become selfish, narrow,
and exclusive. When they looked upon the wounded man, they could not tell
whether he was of their nation or not. They thought he might be of the
Samaritans, and they turned away.

                                                                     503


In their action, as Christ had described it, the lawyer saw nothing contrary
to what he had been taught concerning the requirements of the law. But now
another scene was presented:

A certain Samaritan, in his journey, came where the sufferer was, and when
he saw him, he had compassion on him. He did not question whether the
stranger was a Jew or a Gentile. If a Jew, the Samaritan well knew that,
were their condition reversed, the man would spit in his face, and pass him
by with contempt. But he did not hesitate on account of this. He did not
consider that he himself might be in danger of violence by tarrying in the
place. It was enough that there was before him a human being in need and
suffering. He took off his own garment with which to cover him. The oil and
wine provided for his own journey he used to heal and refresh the wounded
man. He lifted him on his own beast, and moved slowly along with even pace,
so that the stranger might not be jarred, and made to suffer increased pain.
He brought him to an inn, and cared for him through the night, watching him
tenderly. In the morning, as the sick man had improved, the Samaritan
ventured to go on his way. But before doing this, he placed him in the care
of the innkeeper, paid the charges, and left a deposit for his benefit; and
not satisfied even with this, he made provision for any further need, saying
to the host, "Take care of him; and whatsoever thou spendest more, when I
come again, I will repay thee."

The story ended, Jesus fixed His eyes upon the lawyer, in a glance that
seemed to read his soul, and said, "Which of these three, thinkest thou,
proved neighbor unto him that fell among the robbers?" Luke 10:36, R. V.

The lawyer would not, even now, take the name Samaritan upon his lips, and
he made answer, "He that showed mercy on him." Jesus said, "Go, and do thou
likewise."

Thus the question, "Who is my neighbor?" is forever answered. Christ has
shown that our neighbor does not mean merely one of the church or faith to
which we belong. It has no reference to race, color, or class distinction.
Our neighbor is every person who needs our help. Our neighbor is every soul
who is wounded and bruised by the adversary. Our neighbor is everyone who is
the property of God.

In the story of the good Samaritan, Jesus gave a picture of Himself and His
mission. Man had been deceived, bruised, robbed, and ruined by Satan, and
left to perish; but the Saviour had compassion on our

504

helpless condition. He left His glory, to come to our rescue. He found us
ready to die, and He undertook our case. He healed our wounds. He covered us
with His robe of righteousness. He opened to us a refuge of safety, and made
complete provision for us at His own charges. He died to redeem us. Pointing
to His own example, He says to His followers, "These things I command you,
that ye love one another." "As I have loved you, that ye also love one
another." John 15:17; 13:34.

The lawyer's question to Jesus had been, "What shall I do?" And Jesus,
recognizing love to God and man as the sum of righteousness, had said, "This
do, and thou shalt live." The Samaritan had obeyed the dictates of a kind
and loving heart, and in this had proved himself a doer of the law. Christ
bade the lawyer, "Go, and do thou likewise." Doing, and not saying merely,
is expected of the children of God. "He that saith he abideth in Him ought
himself also so to walk, even as He walked." 1 John 2:6.

The lesson is no less needed in the world today than when it fell from the
lips of Jesus. Selfishness and cold formality have well-nigh extinguished
the fire of love, and dispelled the graces that should make fragrant the
character. Many who profess His name have lost sight of the fact that
Christians are to represent Christ. Unless there is practical self-sacrifice
for the good of others, in the family circle, in the neighborhood, in the
church, and wherever we may be, then whatever our profession, we are not
Christians.

Christ has linked His interest with that of humanity, and He asks us to
become one with Him for the saving of humanity. "Freely ye have received,"
He says, "freely give." Matt. 10:8. Sin is the greatest of all evils, and it
is ours to pity and help the sinner. There are many who err, and who feel
their shame and their folly. They are hungry for words of encouragement.
They look upon their mistakes and errors, until they are driven almost to
desperation. These souls we are not to neglect. If we are Christians, we
shall not pass by on the other side, keeping as far as possible from the
very ones who most need our help. When we see human beings in distress,
whether through affliction or through sin, we shall never say, This does not
concern me.

"Ye which are spiritual, restore such an one in the spirit of meekness."
Gal. 6:1. By faith and prayer press back the power of the enemy. Speak words
of faith and courage that will be as a healing balsam to the bruised and
wounded one. Many, many, have fainted and become discouraged

                                                                     505

in the great struggle of life, when one word of kindly cheer would have
strengthened them to overcome. Never should we pass by one suffering soul
without seeking to impart to him of the comfort wherewith we are comforted
of God.

All this is but a fulfillment of the principle of the law,--the principle
that is illustrated in the story of the good Samaritan, and made manifest in
the life of Jesus. His character reveals the true significance of the law,
and shows what is meant by loving our neighbor as ourselves. And when the
children of God manifest mercy, kindness, and love toward all men, they also
are witnessing to the character of the statutes of heaven. They are bearing
testimony to the fact that "the law of the Lord is perfect, converting the
soul." Ps. 19:7. And whoever fails to manifest this love is breaking the law
which he professes to revere. For the spirit we manifest toward our brethren
declares what is our spirit toward God. The love of God in the heart is the
only spring of love toward our neighbor. "If a man say, I love God, and
hateth his brother, he is a liar: for he that loveth not his brother whom he
hath seen, how can he love God whom he hath not seen?" Beloved, "if we love
one another, God dwelleth in us, and His love is perfected in us." 1 John
4:20, 12.




(506)

                             Chapter 55

                             Not With Outward Show


Some of the Pharisees had come to Jesus demanding "when the kingdom of God
should come." More than three years had passed since John the Baptist gave
the message that like a trumpet call had sounded through the land, "The
kingdom of heaven is at hand." Matt. 3:2. And as yet these Pharisees saw no
indication of the establishment of the kingdom. Many of those who rejected
John, and at every step had opposed Jesus, were insinuating that His mission
had failed.

Jesus answered, "The kingdom of God cometh not with outward show; [margin]:
neither shall they say, Lo here! or, lo there! for, behold, the kingdom of
God is within you." The kingdom of God begins in the heart. Look not here or
there for manifestations of earthly power to mark its coming.

"The days will come," He said, turning to His disciples, "when ye shall
desire to see one of the days of the Son of man, and ye shall not see it."
Because it is not attended by worldly pomp, you are in danger of failing to
discern the glory of My mission. You do not realize how great is your
present privilege in having among you, though veiled in humanity, Him who is
the life and the light of men. The days will come when you will look back
with longing upon the opportunities you now enjoy to walk and talk with the
Son of God.

Because of their selfishness and earthliness, even the disciples of Jesus

                                                                     507

could not comprehend the spiritual glory which He sought to reveal unto
them. It was not until after Christ's ascension to His Father, and the
outpouring of the Holy Spirit upon the believers, that the disciples fully
appreciated the Saviour's character and mission. After they had received the
baptism of the Spirit, they began to realize that they had been in the very
presence of the Lord of glory. As the sayings of Christ were brought to
their remembrance, their minds were opened to comprehend the prophecies, and
to understand the miracles which He had wrought. The wonders of His life
passed before them, and they were as men awakened from a dream. They
realized that "the Word was made flesh, and dwelt among us, (and we beheld
His glory, the glory as of the Only-begotten of the Father,) full of grace
and truth." John 1:14. Christ had actually come from God to a sinful world
to save the fallen sons and daughters of Adam. The disciples now seemed, to
themselves, of much less importance than before they realized this. They
never wearied of rehearsing His words and works. His lessons, which they had
but dimly understood, now came to them as a fresh revelation. The Scriptures
became to them a new book.

As the disciples searched the prophecies that testified of Christ, they were
brought into fellowship with the Deity, and learned of Him who had ascended
to heaven to complete the work He had begun on earth. They recognized the
fact that in Him dwelt knowledge which no human being, unaided by divine
agency, could comprehend. They needed the help of Him whom kings, prophets,
and righteous men had foretold. With amazement they read and reread the
prophetic delineations of His character and work. How dimly had they
comprehended the prophetic scriptures! how slow they had been in taking in
the great truths which testified of Christ! Looking upon Him in His
humiliation, as He walked a man among men, they had not understood the
mystery of His incarnation, the dual character of His nature. Their eyes
were holden, so that they did not fully recognize divinity in humanity. But
after they were illuminated by the Holy Spirit, how they longed to see Him
again, and to place themselves at His feet! How they wished that they might
come to Him, and have Him explain the scriptures which they could not
comprehend! How attentively would they listen to His words! What had Christ
meant when He said, "I have yet many things to say unto you, but ye cannot
bear them now"? John 16:12. How eager they were to know it all! They grieved
that their faith had been so

508

feeble, that their ideas had been so wide of the mark, that they had so
failed of comprehending the reality.

A herald had been sent from God to proclaim the coming of Christ, and to
call the attention of the Jewish nation and of the world to His mission,
that men might prepare for His reception. The wonderful personage whom John
had announced had been among them for more than thirty years, and they had
not really known Him as the One sent from God. Remorse took hold of the
disciples because they had allowed the prevailing unbelief to leaven their
opinions and becloud their understanding. The Light of this dark world had
been shining amid its gloom, and they had failed to comprehend whence were
its beams. They asked themselves why they had pursued a course that made it
necessary for Christ to reprove them. They often repeated His conversations,
and said, Why did we allow earthly considerations and the opposition of
priests and rabbis to confuse our senses, so that we did not comprehend that
a greater than Moses was among us, that One wiser than Solomon was
instructing us? How dull were our ears! how feeble was our understanding!

Thomas would not believe until he had thrust his finger into the wound made
by the Roman soldiers. Peter had denied Him in His humiliation and
rejection. These painful remembrances came before them in distinct lines.
They had been with Him, but they had not known or appreciated Him. But how
these things now stirred their hearts as they recognized their unbelief!

As priests and rulers combined against them, and they were brought before
councils and thrust into prison, the followers of Christ rejoiced "that they
were counted worthy to suffer shame for His name." Acts 5:41. They rejoiced
to prove, before men and angels, that they recognized the glory of Christ,
and chose to follow Him at the loss of all things.

It is as true now as in apostolic days, that without the illumination of the
divine Spirit, humanity cannot discern the glory of Christ. The truth and
the work of God are unappreciated by a world-loving and compromising
Christianity. Not in the ways of ease, of earthly honor or worldly
conformity, are the followers of the Master found. They are far in advance,
in the paths of toil, and humiliation, and reproach, in the front of the
battle "against the principalities, against the powers, against the world
rulers of this darkness, against the spiritual hosts of wickedness in the
heavenly places." Eph. 6:12, R. V. And now, as in

                                                                     509

Christ's day, they are misunderstood and reproached and oppressed by the
priests and Pharisees of their time.

The kingdom of God comes not with outward show. The gospel of the grace of
God, with its spirit of self-abnegation, can never be in harmony with the
spirit of the world. The two principles are antagonistic. "The natural man
receiveth not the things of the Spirit of God: for they are foolishness unto
him: neither can he know them, because they are spiritually discerned." 1
Cor. 2:14.

But today in the religious world there are multitudes who, as they believe,
are working for the establishment of the kingdom of Christ as an earthly and
temporal dominion. They desire to make our Lord the ruler of the kingdoms of
this world, the ruler in its courts and camps, its legislative halls, its
palaces and market places. They expect Him to rule through legal enactments,
enforced by human authority. Since Christ is not now here in person, they
themselves will undertake to act in His stead, to execute the laws of His
kingdom. The establishment of such a kingdom is what the Jews desired in the
days of Christ. They would have received Jesus, had He been willing to
establish a temporal dominion, to enforce what they regarded as the laws of
God, and to make them the expositors of His will and the agents of His
authority. But He said, "My kingdom is not of this world." John 18:36. He
would not accept the earthly throne.

The government under which Jesus lived was corrupt and oppressive; on every
hand were crying abuses,--extortion, intolerance, and grinding cruelty. Yet
the Saviour attempted no civil reforms. He attacked no national abuses, nor
condemned the national enemies. He did not interfere with the authority or
administration of those in power. He who was our example kept aloof from
earthly governments. Not because He was indifferent to the woes of men, but
because the remedy did not lie in merely human and external measures. To be
efficient, the cure must reach men individually, and must regenerate the
heart.

Not by the decisions of courts or councils or legislative assemblies, not by
the patronage of worldly great men, is the kingdom of Christ established,
but by the implanting of Christ's nature in humanity through the work of the
Holy Spirit. "As many as received Him, to them gave He power to become the
sons of God, even to them that believe on His name: which were born, not of
blood, nor of the will of the flesh, nor of the will of man, but of God."
John 1:12, 13. Here is the only power that

510

can work the uplifting of mankind. And the human agency for the
accomplishment of this work is the teaching and practicing of the word of
God.

When the apostle Paul began his ministry in Corinth, that populous, wealthy,
and wicked city, polluted by the nameless vices of heathenism, he said, "I
determined not to know anything among you, save Jesus Christ, and Him
crucified." 1 Cor. 2:2. Writing afterward to some of those who had been
corrupted by the foulest sins, he could say, "But ye are washed, but ye are
sanctified, but ye are justified in the name of the Lord Jesus, and by the
Spirit of our God." "I thank my God always on your behalf, for the grace of
God which is given you by Jesus Christ." 1 Cor. 6:11; 1:4.

Now, as in Christ's day, the work of God's kingdom lies not with those who
are clamoring for recognition and support by earthly rulers and human laws,
but with those who are declaring to the people in His name those spiritual
truths that will work in the receivers the experience of Paul: "I am
crucified with Christ: nevertheless I live; yet not I, but Christ liveth in
me." Gal. 2:20. Then they will labor as did Paul for the benefit of men. He
said, "Now then we are ambassadors for Christ, as though God did beseech you
by us: we pray you in Christ's stead, be ye reconciled to God." 2 Cor. 5:20.




                                                                     (511)

                             Chapter 56

                             Blessing the Children


Jesus was ever a lover of children. He accepted their childish sympathy and
their open, unaffected love. The grateful praise from their pure lips was
music in His ears, and refreshed His spirit when oppressed by contact with
crafty and hypocritical men. Wherever the Saviour went, the benignity of His
countenance, and His gentle, kindly manner won the love and confidence of
children.

Among the Jews it was customary for children to be brought to some rabbi,
that he might lay his hands upon them in blessing; but the Saviour's
disciples thought His work too important to be interrupted in this way. When
the mothers came to Him with their little ones, the disciples looked on them
with disfavor. They thought these children too young to be benefited by a
visit to Jesus, and concluded that He would be displeased at their presence.
But it was the disciples with whom He was displeased. The Saviour understood
the care and burden of the mothers who were seeking to train their children
according to the word of God. He had heard their prayers. He Himself had
drawn them into His presence.

One mother with her child had left her home to find Jesus. On the way she
told a neighbor her errand, and the neighbor wanted to have Jesus bless her
children. Thus several mothers came together, with their little ones. Some
of the children had passed beyond the years of

512

infancy to childhood and youth. When the mothers made known their desire,
Jesus heard with sympathy the timid, tearful request. But He waited to see
how the disciples would treat them. When He saw them send the mothers away,
thinking to do Him a favor, He showed them their error, saying, "Suffer the
little children to come unto Me, and forbid them not: for of such is the
kingdom of God." He took the children in His arms, He laid His hands upon
them, and gave them the blessing for which they came.

The mothers were comforted. They returned to their homes strengthened and
blessed by the words of Christ. They were encouraged to take up their burden
with new cheerfulness, and to work hopefully for their children. The mothers
of today are to receive His words with the same faith. Christ is as verily a
personal Saviour today as when He lived a man among men. He is as verily the
helper of mothers today as when He gathered the little ones to His arms in
Judea. The children of our hearths are as much the purchase of His blood as
were the children of long ago.

Jesus knows the burden of every mother's heart. He who had a mother that
struggled with poverty and privation sympathizes with every mother in her
labors. He who made a long journey in order to relieve the anxious heart of
a Canaanite woman will do as much for the mothers of today. He who gave back
to the widow of Nain her only son, and who in His agony upon the cross
remembered His own mother, is touched today by the mother's sorrow. In every
grief and every need He will give comfort and help.

Let mothers come to Jesus with their perplexities. They will find grace
sufficient to aid them in the management of their children. The gates are
open for every mother who would lay her burdens at the Saviour's feet. He
who said, "Suffer the little children to come unto Me, and forbid them not,"
still invites the mothers to lead up their little ones to be blessed by Him.
Even the babe in its mother's arms may dwell as under the shadow of the
Almighty through the faith of the praying mother. John the Baptist was
filled with the Holy Spirit from his birth. If we will live in communion
with God, we too may expect the divine Spirit to mold our little ones, even
from their earliest moments.

In the children who were brought in contact with Him, Jesus saw the men and
women who should be heirs of His grace and subjects of His kingdom, and some
of whom would become martyrs for His sake.

                                                                     515

He knew that these children would listen to Him and accept Him as their
Redeemer far more readily than would grown-up people, many of whom were the
worldly-wise and hardhearted. In His teaching He came down to their level.
He, the Majesty of heaven, did not disdain to answer their questions, and
simplify His important lessons to meet their childish understanding. He
planted in their minds the seeds of truth, which in after years would spring
up, and bear fruit unto eternal life.

It is still true that children are the most susceptible to the teachings of
the gospel; their hearts are open to divine influences, and strong to retain
the lessons received. The little children may be Christians, having an
experience in accordance with their years. They need to be educated in
spiritual things, and parents should give them every advantage, that they
may form characters after the similitude of the character of Christ.

Fathers and mothers should look upon their children as younger members of
the Lord's family, committed to them to educate for heaven. The lessons that
we ourselves learn from Christ we should give to our children, as the young
minds can receive them, little by little opening to them the beauty of the
principles of heaven. Thus the Christian home becomes a school, where the
parents serve as underteachers, while Christ Himself is the chief
instructor.

In working for the conversion of our children, we should not look for
violent emotion as the essential evidence of conviction of sin. Nor is it
necessary to know the exact time when they are converted. We should teach
them to bring their sins to Jesus, asking His forgiveness, and believing
that He pardons and receives them as He received the children when He was
personally on earth.

As the mother teaches her children to obey her because they love her, she is
teaching them the first lessons in the Christian life. The mother's love
represents to the child the love of Christ, and the little ones who trust
and obey their mother are learning to trust and obey the Saviour.

Jesus was the pattern for children, and He was also the father's example. He
spoke as one having authority, and His word was with power; yet in all His
intercourse with rude and violent men He did not use one unkind or
discourteous expression. The grace of Christ in the heart will impart a
heaven-born dignity and sense of propriety. It will soften whatever is
harsh, and subdue all that is coarse and unkind. It will lead fathers and
mothers to treat their children as intelligent beings, as they themselves
would like to be treated.

516


Parents, in the training of your children, study the lessons that God has
given in nature. If you would train a pink, or rose, or lily, how would you
do it? Ask the gardener by what process he makes every branch and leaf to
flourish so beautifully, and to develop in symmetry and loveliness. He will
tell you that it was by no rude touch, no violent effort; for this would
only break the delicate stems. It was by little attentions, often repeated.
He moistened the soil, and protected the growing plants from the fierce
blasts and from the scorching sun, and God caused them to flourish and to
blossom into loveliness. In dealing with your children, follow the method of
the gardener. By gentle touches, by loving ministrations, seek to fashion
their characters after the pattern of the character of Christ.

Encourage the expression of love toward God and toward one another. The
reason why there are so many hardhearted men and women in the world is that
true affection has been regarded as weakness, and has been discouraged and
repressed. The better nature of these persons was stifled in childhood; and
unless the light of divine love shall melt away their cold selfishness,
their happiness will be forever ruined. If we wish our children to possess
the tender spirit of Jesus, and the sympathy that angels manifest for us, we
must encourage the generous, loving impulses of childhood.

Teach the children to see Christ in nature. Take them out into the open air,
under the noble trees, into the garden; and in all the wonderful works of
creation teach them to see an expression of His love. Teach them that He
made the laws which govern all living things, that He has made laws for us,
and that these laws are for our happiness and joy. Do

                                                                     517

not weary them with long prayers and tedious exhortations, but through
nature's object lessons teach them obedience to the law of God.

As you win their confidence in you as followers of Christ, it will be easy
to teach them of the great love wherewith He has loved us. As you try to
make plain the truths of salvation, and point the children to Christ as a
personal Saviour, angels will be by your side. The Lord will give to fathers
and mothers grace to interest their little ones in the precious story of the
Babe of Bethlehem, who is indeed the hope of the world.

When Jesus told the disciples not to forbid the children to come to Him, He
was speaking to His followers in all ages,--to officers of the church, to
ministers, helpers, and all Christians. Jesus is drawing the children, and
He bids us, Suffer them to come; as if He would say, They will come if you
do not hinder them.

Let not your un-Christlike character misrepresent Jesus. Do not keep the
little ones away from Him by your coldness and harshness. Never give them
cause to feel that heaven will not be a pleasant place to them if you are
there. Do not speak of religion as something that children cannot
understand, or act as if they were not expected to accept Christ in their
childhood. Do not give them the false impression that the religion of Christ
is a religion of gloom, and that in coming to the Saviour they must give up
all that makes life joyful.

As the Holy Spirit moves upon the hearts of the children, co-operate with
His work. Teach them that the Saviour is calling them, that nothing can give
Him greater joy than for them to give themselves to Him in the bloom and
freshness of their years.

The Saviour regards with infinite tenderness the souls whom He has purchased
with His own blood. They are the claim of His love. He looks upon them with
unutterable longing. His heart is drawn out, not only to the best-behaved
children, but to those who have by inheritance objectionable traits of
character. Many parents do not understand how much they are responsible for
these traits in their children. They have not the tenderness and wisdom to
deal with the erring ones whom they have made what they are. But Jesus looks
upon these children with pity. He traces from cause to effect.

The Christian worker may be Christ's agent in drawing these children to the
Saviour. By wisdom and tact he may bind them to his heart, he may give them
courage and hope, and through the grace of Christ may see them transformed
in character, so that of them it may be said, "Of such is the kingdom of
God."




(518)

                             Chapter 57

                             "One Thing Thou Lackest"


And when He was gone forth into the way, there came one running, and kneeled
to Him, and asked Him, Good Master, what shall I do that I may inherit
eternal life?"

The young man who asked this question was a ruler. He had great possessions,
and occupied a position of responsibility. He saw the love that Christ
manifested toward the children brought to Him; he saw how tenderly He
received them, and took them up in His arms, and his heart kindled with love
for the Saviour. He felt a desire to be His disciple. He was so deeply moved
that as Christ was going on His way, he ran after Him, and kneeling at His
feet, asked with sincerity and earnestness the question so important to his
soul and to the soul of every human being, "Good Master, what shall I do
that I may inherit eternal life?"

"Why callest thou Me good?" said Christ, "there is none good but One, that
is, God." Jesus desired to test the ruler's sincerity, and to draw from him
the way in which he regarded Him as good. Did he realize that the One to
whom he was speaking was the Son of God? What was the true sentiment of his
heart?

This ruler had a high estimate of his own righteousness. He did not really
suppose that he was defective in anything, yet he was not altogether
satisfied. He felt the want of something that he did not possess. Could not
Jesus bless him as He blessed the little children, and satisfy his soul
want?

In reply to this question Jesus told him that obedience to the commandments
of God was necessary if he would obtain eternal life; and He quoted several
of the commandments which show man's duty to his

                                                                     519

fellow men. The ruler's answer was positive: "All these things have I kept
from my youth up: what lack I yet?"

Christ looked into the face of the young man, as if reading his life and
searching his character. He loved him, and He hungered to give him that
peace and grace and joy which would materially change his character. "One
thing thou lackest," He said; "go thy way, sell whatsoever thou hast, and
give to the poor, and thou shalt have treasure in heaven: and come, take up
the cross, and follow Me."

Christ was drawn to this young man. He knew him to be sincere in his
assertion, "All these things have I kept from my youth." The Redeemer longed
to create in him that discernment which would enable him to see the
necessity of heart devotion and Christian goodness. He longed to see in him
a humble and contrite heart, conscious of the supreme love to be given to
God, and hiding its lack in the perfection of Christ.

Jesus saw in this ruler just the help He needed if the young man would
become a colaborer with Him in the work of salvation. If he would place
himself under Christ's guidance, he would be a power for good. In a marked
degree the ruler could have represented Christ; for he possessed
qualifications, which, if he were united with the Saviour, would enable him
to become a divine force among men. Christ, seeing into his character, loved
him. Love for Christ was awakening in the ruler's heart; for love begets
love. Jesus longed to see him a co-worker with Him. He longed to make him
like Himself, a mirror in which the likeness of God would be reflected. He
longed to develop the excellence of his character, and sanctify it to the
Master's use. If the ruler had then given himself to Christ, he would have
grown in the atmosphere of His presence. If he had made this choice, how
different would have been his future!

"One thing thou lackest," Jesus said. "If thou wilt be perfect, go and sell
that thou hast, and give to the poor, and thou shalt have treasure in
heaven: and come and follow Me." Christ read the ruler's heart. Only one
thing he lacked, but that was a vital principle. He needed the love of God
in the soul. This lack, unless supplied, would prove fatal to him; his whole
nature would become corrupted. By indulgence, selfishness would strengthen.
That he might receive the love of God, his supreme love of self must be
surrendered.

Christ gave this man a test. He called upon him to choose between the
heavenly treasure and worldly greatness. The heavenly treasure was assured
him if he would follow Christ. But self must yield; his will must be given
into Christ's control. The very holiness of God was

520

offered to the young ruler. He had the privilege of becoming a son of God,
and a coheir with Christ to the heavenly treasure. But he must take up the
cross, and follow the Saviour in the path of self-denial.

Christ's words were verily to the ruler the invitation, "Choose you this day
whom ye will serve." Joshua 24:15. The choice was left with him. Jesus was
yearning for his conversion. He had shown him the plague spot in his
character, and with what deep interest He watched the issue as the young man
weighed the question! If he decided to follow Christ, he must obey His words
in everything. He must turn from his ambitious projects. With what earnest,
anxious longing, what soul hunger, did the Saviour look at the young man,
hoping that he would yield to the invitation of the Spirit of God!

Christ made the only terms which could place the ruler where he would
perfect a Christian character. His words were words of wisdom, though they
appeared severe and exacting. In accepting and obeying them was the ruler's
only hope of salvation. His exalted position and his possessions were
exerting a subtle influence for evil upon his character. If cherished, they
would supplant God in his affections. To keep back little or much from God
was to retain that which would lessen his moral strength and efficiency; for
if the things of this world are cherished, however uncertain and unworthy
they may be, they will become all-absorbing.

The ruler was quick to discern all that Christ's words involved, and he
became sad. If he had realized the value of the offered gift, quickly would
he have enrolled himself as one of Christ's followers. He was a member of
the honored council of the Jews, and Satan was tempting him with flattering
prospects of the future. He wanted the heavenly treasure, but he wanted also
the temporal advantages his riches would bring him. He was sorry that such
conditions existed; he desired eternal life, but he was not willing to make
the sacrifice. The cost of eternal life seemed too great, and he went away
sorrowful; "for he had great possessions."

His claim that he had kept the law of God was a deception. He showed that
riches were his idol. He could not keep the commandments of God while the
world was first in his affections. He loved the gifts of God more than he
loved the Giver. Christ had offered the young man fellowship with Himself.
"Follow Me," He said. But the Saviour was not so much to him as his own name
among men or his possessions. To give up his earthly treasure, that was
seen, for the heavenly treasure, that was unseen, was too great a risk. He
refused the offer of eternal life, and went away, and ever after the world
was to receive his worship.

                                                                     523

Thousands are passing through this ordeal, weighing Christ against the
world; and many choose the world. Like the young ruler, they turn from the
Saviour, saying in their hearts, I will not have this Man as my leader.

Christ's dealing with the young man is presented as an object lesson. God
has given us the rule of conduct which every one of His servants must
follow. It is obedience to His law, not merely a legal obedience, but an
obedience which enters into the life, and is exemplified in the character.
God has set His own standard of character for all who would become subjects
of His kingdom. Only those who will become co-workers with Christ, only
those who will say, Lord, all I have and all I am is Thine, will be
acknowledged as sons and daughters of God. All should consider what it means
to desire heaven, and yet to turn away because of the conditions laid down.
Think of what it means to say "No" to Christ. The ruler said, No, I cannot
give You all. Do we say the same? The Saviour offers to share with us the
work God has given us to do. He offers to use the means God has given us, to
carry forward His work in the world. Only in this way can He save us.

The ruler's possessions were entrusted to him that he might prove himself a
faithful steward; he was to dispense these goods for the blessing of those
in need. So God now entrusts men with means, with talents and opportunities,
that they may be His agents in helping the poor and the suffering. He who
uses his entrusted gifts as God designs becomes a co-worker with the
Saviour. He wins souls to Christ, because he is a representative of His
character.

To those who, like the young ruler, are in high positions of trust and have
great possessions, it may seem too great a sacrifice to give up all in order
to follow Christ. But this is the rule of conduct for all who would become
His disciples. Nothing short of obedience can be accepted. Self-surrender is
the substance of the teachings of Christ. Often it is presented and enjoined
in language that seems authoritative, because there is no other way to save
man than to cut away those things which, if entertained, will demoralize the
whole being.

When Christ's followers give back to the Lord His own, they are accumulating
treasure which will be given to them when they shall hear the words, "Well
done, good and faithful servant; . . . enter thou into the joy of thy Lord."
"Who for the joy that was set before Him endured the cross, despising the
shame, and is set down at the right hand of the throne of God." Matt. 25:23;
Heb. 12:2. The joy of seeing souls redeemed, souls eternally saved, is the
reward of all that put their feet in the footprints of Him who said, "Follow
Me."




(524)

                             Chapter 58

                             "Lazarus, Come Forth"


Among the most steadfast of Christ's disciples was Lazarus of Bethany. From
their first meeting his faith in Christ had been strong; his love for Him
was deep, and he was greatly beloved by the Saviour. It was for Lazarus that
the greatest of Christ's miracles was performed. The Saviour blessed all who
sought His help; He loves all the human family, but to some He is bound by
peculiarly tender associations. His heart was knit by a strong bond of
affection to the family at Bethany, and for one of them His most wonderful
work was wrought.

At the home of Lazarus, Jesus had often found rest. The Saviour had no home
of His own; He was dependent on the hospitality of His friends and
disciples, and often, when weary, thirsting for human fellowship, He had
been glad to escape to this peaceful household, away from the suspicion and
jealousy of the angry Pharisees. Here He found a sincere welcome, and pure,
holy friendship. Here He could speak with simplicity and perfect freedom,
knowing that His words would be understood and treasured.

Our Saviour appreciated a quiet home and interested listeners. He longed for
human tenderness, courtesy, and affection. Those who received the heavenly
instruction He was always ready to impart were greatly blessed. As the
multitudes followed Christ through the open

                                                                     525

fields, He unfolded to them the beauties of the natural world. He sought to
open the eyes of their understanding, that they might see how the hand of
God upholds the world. In order to call out an appreciation of God's
goodness and benevolence, He called the attention of His hearers to the
gently falling dew, to the soft showers of rain and the bright sunshine,
given alike to good and evil. He desired men to realize more fully the
regard that God bestows on the human instrumentalities He has created. But
the multitudes were slow of hearing, and in the home at Bethany Christ found
rest from the weary conflict of public life. Here He opened to an
appreciative audience the volume of Providence. In these private interviews
He unfolded to His hearers that which He did not attempt to tell to the
mixed multitude. He needed not to speak to His friends in parables.

As Christ gave His wonderful lessons, Mary sat at His feet, a reverent and
devoted listener. On one occasion, Martha, perplexed with the care of
preparing the meal, went to Christ, saying, "Lord, dost Thou not care that
my sister hath left me to serve alone? bid her therefore that she help me."
This was the time of Christ's first visit to Bethany. The Saviour and His
disciples had just made the toilsome journey on foot from Jericho. Martha
was anxious to provide for their comfort, and in her anxiety she forgot the
courtesy due to her Guest. Jesus answered her with mild and patient words,
"Martha, Martha, thou art careful and troubled about many things: but one
thing is needful: and Mary hath chosen that good part, which shall not be
taken away from her." Mary was storing her mind with the precious words
falling from the Saviour's lips, words that were more precious to her than
earth's most costly jewels.

The "one thing" that Martha needed was a calm, devotional spirit, a deeper
anxiety for knowledge concerning the future, immortal life, and the graces
necessary for spiritual advancement. She needed less anxiety for the things
which pass away, and more for those things which endure forever. Jesus would
teach His children to seize every opportunity of gaining that knowledge
which will make them wise unto salvation. The cause of Christ needs careful,
energetic workers. There is a wide field for the Marthas, with their zeal in
active religious work. But let them first sit with Mary at the feet of
Jesus. Let diligence, promptness, and energy be sanctified by the grace of
Christ; then the life will be an unconquerable power for good.

Sorrow entered the peaceful home where Jesus had rested. Lazarus was
stricken with sudden illness, and his sisters sent to the Saviour,

526

saying, "Lord, behold, he whom Thou lovest is sick." They saw the violence
of the disease that had seized their brother, but they knew that Christ had
shown Himself able to heal all manner of diseases. They believed that He
would sympathize with them in their distress; therefore they made no urgent
demand for His immediate presence, but sent only the confiding message, "He
whom Thou lovest is sick." They thought that He would immediately respond to
their message, and be with them as soon as He could reach Bethany.

Anxiously they waited for a word from Jesus. As long as the spark of life
was yet alive in their brother, they prayed and watched for Jesus to come.
But the messenger returned without Him. Yet he brought the message, "This
sickness is not unto death," and they clung to the hope that Lazarus would
live. Tenderly they tried to speak words of hope and encouragement to the
almost unconscious sufferer. When Lazarus died, they were bitterly
disappointed; but they felt the sustaining grace of Christ, and this kept
them from reflecting any blame on the Saviour.

When Christ heard the message, the disciples thought He received it coldly.
He did not manifest the sorrow they expected Him to show. Looking up to
them, He said, "This sickness is not unto death, but for the glory of God,
that the Son of God might be glorified thereby." For two days He remained in
the place where He was. This delay was a mystery to the disciples. What a
comfort His presence would be to the afflicted household! they thought. His
strong affection for the family at Bethany was well known to the disciples,
and they were surprised that He did not respond to the sad message, "He whom
Thou lovest is sick."

During the two days Christ seemed to have dismissed the message from His
mind; for He did not speak of Lazarus. The disciples thought of John the
Baptist, the forerunner of Jesus. They had wondered why Jesus, with the
power to perform wonderful miracles, had permitted John to languish in
prison, and to die a violent death. Possessing such power, why did not
Christ save John's life? This question had often been asked by the
Pharisees, who presented it as an unanswerable argument against Christ's
claim to be the Son of God. The Saviour had warned His disciples of trials,
losses, and persecution. Would He forsake them in trial? Some questioned if
they had mistaken His mission. All were deeply troubled.

After waiting for two days, Jesus said to the disciples, "Let us go into
Judea again." The disciples questioned why, if Jesus were going to Judea, He
had waited two days. But anxiety for Christ and for themselves

                                                                     527

was now uppermost in their minds. They could see nothing but danger in the
course He was about to pursue. "Master," they said, "the Jews of late sought
to stone Thee; and goest Thou thither again? Jesus answered, Are there not
twelve hours in the day?" I am under the guidance of My Father; as long as I
do His will, My life is safe. My twelve hours of day are not yet ended. I
have entered upon the last remnant of My day; but while any of this remains,
I am safe.

"If any man walk in the day," He continued, "he stumbleth not, because he
seeth the light of this world." He who does the will of God, who walks in
the path that God has marked out, cannot stumble and fall. The light of
God's guiding Spirit gives him a clear perception of his duty, and leads him
aright till the close of his work. "But if a man walk in the night, he
stumbleth, because there is no light in him." He who walks in a path of his
own choosing, where God has not called him, will stumble. For him day is
turned into night, and wherever he may be, he is not secure.

"These things said He: and after that He saith unto them, Our friend Lazarus
sleepeth; but I go that I may awake him out of sleep." "Our friend Lazarus
sleepeth." How touching the words! how full of sympathy! In the thought of
the peril their Master was about to incur by going to Jerusalem, the
disciples had almost forgotten the bereaved family at Bethany. But not so
Christ. The disciples felt rebuked. They had been disappointed because
Christ did not respond more promptly to the message. They had been tempted
to think that He had not the tender love for Lazarus and his sisters that
they had thought He had, or He would have hastened back with the messenger.
But the words, "Our friend Lazarus sleepeth," awakened right feelings in
their minds. They were convinced that Christ had not forgotten His suffering
friends.

"Then said His disciples, Lord, if he sleep, he shall do well. Howbeit Jesus
spake of his death: but they thought that He had spoken of taking of rest in
sleep." Christ represents death as a sleep to His believing children. Their
life is hid with Christ in God, and until the last trump shall sound those
who die will sleep in Him.

"Then said Jesus unto them plainly, Lazarus is dead. And I am glad for your
sakes that I was not there, to the intent ye may believe; nevertheless let
us go unto him." Thomas could see nothing but death in store for his Master
if he went to Judea; but he girded up his spirit, and said to the other
disciples, "Let us also go, that we may die with Him." He knew the hatred of
the Jews toward Christ. It was their

528

purpose to compass His death, but this purpose had not succeeded, because
some of His allotted time still remained. During this time Jesus had the
guardianship of heavenly angels; and even in the regions of Judea, where the
rabbis were plotting how they might take Him and put Him to death, no harm
could come to Him.

The disciples marveled at Christ's words when He said, "Lazarus is dead. And
I am glad . . . that I was not there." Did the Saviour by His own choice
avoid the home of His suffering friends? Apparently Mary and Martha and the
dying Lazarus were left alone. But they were not alone. Christ beheld the
whole scene, and after the death of Lazarus the bereaved sisters were upheld
by His grace. Jesus witnessed the sorrow of their rent hearts, as their
brother wrestled with his strong foe, death. He felt every pang of anguish,
as He said to His disciples, "Lazarus is dead." But Christ had not only the
loved ones at Bethany to think of; He had the training of His disciples to
consider. They were to be His representatives to the world, that the
Father's blessing might embrace all. For their sake He permitted Lazarus to
die. Had He restored him from illness to health, the miracle that is the
most positive evidence of His divine character, would not have been
performed.

Had Christ been in the sickroom, Lazarus would not have died; for Satan
would have had no power over him. Death could not have aimed his dart at
Lazarus in the presence of the Life-giver. Therefore Christ remained away.
He suffered the enemy to exercise his power, that He might drive him back, a
conquered foe. He permitted Lazarus to pass under the dominion of death; and
the suffering sisters saw their brother laid in the grave. Christ knew that
as they looked on the dead face of their brother their faith in their
Redeemer would be severely tried. But He knew that because of the struggle
through which they were now passing their faith would shine forth with far
greater power. He suffered every pang of sorrow that they endured. He loved
them no less because He tarried; but He knew that for them, for Lazarus, for
Himself, and for His disciples, a victory was to be gained.

"For your sakes," "to the intent ye may believe." To all who are reaching
out to feel the guiding hand of God, the moment of greatest discouragement
is the time when divine help is nearest. They will look back with
thankfulness upon the darkest part of their way. "The Lord knoweth how to
deliver the godly," 2 Peter 2:9. From every temptation and every trial He
will bring them forth with firmer faith and a richer experience.

                                                                     529


In delaying to come to Lazarus, Christ had a purpose of mercy toward those
who had not received Him. He tarried, that by raising Lazarus from the dead
He might give to His stubborn, unbelieving people another evidence that He
was indeed "the resurrection, and the life." He was loath to give up all
hope of the people, the poor, wandering sheep of the house of Israel. His
heart was breaking because of their impenitence. In His mercy He purposed to
give them one more evidence that He was the Restorer, the One who alone
could bring life and immortality to light. This was to be an evidence that
the priests could not misinterpret. This was the reason of His delay in
going to Bethany. This crowning miracle, the raising of Lazarus, was to set
the seal of God on His work and on His claim to divinity.

On His journey to Bethany, Jesus, according to His custom, ministered to the
sick and the needy. Upon reaching the town He sent a messenger to the
sisters with the tidings of His arrival. Christ did not at once enter the
house, but remained in a quiet place by the wayside. The great outward
display observed by the Jews at the death of friends or relatives was not in
harmony with the spirit of Christ. He heard the sound of wailing from the
hired mourners, and He did not wish to meet the sisters in the scene of
confusion. Among the mourning friends were relatives of the family, some of
whom held high positions of responsibility in Jerusalem. Among these were
some of Christ's bitterest enemies. Christ knew their purposes, and
therefore He did not at once make Himself known.

The message was given to Martha so quietly that others in the room did not
hear. Absorbed in her grief, Mary did not hear the words. Rising at once,
Martha went out to meet her Lord, but thinking that she had gone to the
place where Lazarus was buried, Mary sat still in her sorrow, making no
outcry.

Martha hastened to meet Jesus, her heart agitated by conflicting emotions.
In His expressive face she read the same tenderness and love that had always
been there. Her confidence in Him was unbroken, but she thought of her
dearly loved brother, whom Jesus also had loved. With grief surging in her
heart because Christ had not come before, yet with hope that even now He
would do something to comfort them, she said, "Lord, if Thou hadst been
here, my brother had not died." Over and over again, amid the tumult made by
the mourners, the sisters had repeated these words.

With human and divine pity Jesus looked into her sorrowful, careworn

530

face. Martha had no inclination to recount the past; all was expressed by
the pathetic words, "Lord, if Thou hadst been here, my brother had not
died." But looking into that face of love, she added, "I know, that even
now, whatsoever Thou wilt ask of God, God will give it Thee."

Jesus encouraged her faith, saying, "Thy brother shall rise again." His
answer was not intended to inspire hope of an immediate change. He carried
Martha's thoughts beyond the present restoration of her brother, and fixed
them upon the resurrection of the just. This He did that she might see in
the resurrection of Lazarus a pledge of the resurrection of all the
righteous dead, and an assurance that it would be accomplished by the
Saviour's power.

Martha answered, "I know that he shall rise again in the resurrection at the
last day."

Still seeking to give a true direction to her faith, Jesus declared, "I am
the resurrection, and the life." In Christ is life, original, unborrowed,
underived. "He that hath the Son hath life." 1 John 5:12. The divinity of
Christ is the believer's assurance of eternal life. "He that believeth in
Me," said Jesus, "though he were dead, yet shall he live: and whosoever
liveth and believeth in Me shall never die. Believest thou this?" Christ
here looks forward to the time of His second coming. Then the righteous dead
shall be raised incorruptible, and the living righteous shall be translated
to heaven without seeing death. The miracle which Christ was about to
perform, in raising Lazarus from the dead, would represent the resurrection
of all the righteous dead. By His word and His works He declared Himself the
Author of the resurrection. He who Himself was soon to die upon the cross
stood with the keys of death, a conqueror of the grave, and asserted His
right and power to give eternal life.

To the Saviour's words, "Believest thou?" Martha responded, "Yea, Lord: I
believe that Thou art the Christ, the Son of God, which should come into the
world." She did not comprehend in all their significance the words spoken by
Christ, but she confessed her faith in His divinity, and her confidence that
He was able to perform whatever it pleased Him to do.

"And when she had so said, she went her way, and called Mary her sister
secretly, saying, The Master is come, and calleth for thee." She delivered
her message as quietly as possible; for the priests and rulers were prepared
to arrest Jesus when opportunity offered. The cries of the mourners
prevented her words from being heard.

                                                                     533


On hearing the message, Mary rose hastily, and with an eager look on her
face left the room. Thinking that she had gone to the grave to weep, the
mourners followed her. When she reached the place where Jesus was waiting,
she knelt at His feet, and said with quivering lips, "Lord, if Thou hadst
been here, my brother had not died." The cries of the mourners were painful
to her; for she longed for a few quiet words alone with Jesus. But she knew
of the envy and jealousy cherished in the hearts of some present against
Christ, and she was restrained from fully expressing her grief.

"When Jesus therefore saw her weeping, and the Jews also weeping which came
with her, He groaned in the spirit, and was troubled." He read the hearts of
all assembled. He saw that with many, what passed as a demonstration of
grief was only pretense. He knew that some in the company, now manifesting
hypocritical sorrow, would erelong be planning the death, not only of the
mighty miracle worker, but of the one to be raised from the dead. Christ
could have stripped from them their robe of pretended sorrow. But He
restrained His righteous indignation. The words He could in all truth have
spoken, He did not speak, because of the loved one kneeling at His feet in
sorrow, who truly believed in Him.

"Where have ye laid him?" He asked, "They said unto Him, Lord, come and
see." Together they proceeded to the grave. It was a mournful scene. Lazarus
had been much beloved, and his sisters wept for him with breaking hearts,
while those who had been his friends mingled their tears with those of the
bereaved sisters. In view of this human distress, and of the fact that the
afflicted friends could mourn over the dead while the Saviour of the world
stood by,--"Jesus wept." Though He was the Son of God, yet He had taken
human nature upon Him, and He was moved by human sorrow. His tender, pitying
heart is ever awakened to sympathy by suffering. He weeps with those that
weep, and rejoices with those that rejoice.

But it was not only because of His human sympathy with Mary and Martha that
Jesus wept. In His tears there was a sorrow as high above human sorrow as
the heavens are higher than the earth. Christ did not weep for Lazarus; for
He was about to call him from the grave. He wept because many of those now
mourning for Lazarus would soon plan the death of Him who was the
resurrection and the life. But how unable were the unbelieving Jews rightly
to interpret His tears! Some, who

534

could see nothing more than the outward circumstances of the scene before
Him as a cause for His grief, said softly, "Behold how He loved him!"
Others, seeking to drop the seed of unbelief into the hearts of those
present, said derisively, "Could not this Man, which opened the eyes of the
blind, have caused that even this man should not have died?" If it were in
Christ's power to save Lazarus, why then did He suffer him to die?

With prophetic eye Christ saw the enmity of the Pharisees and the Sadducees.
He knew that they were premeditating His death. He knew that some of those
now apparently so sympathetic would soon close against themselves the door
of hope and the gates of the city of God. A scene was about to take place,
in His humiliation and crucifixion, that would result in the destruction of
Jerusalem, and at that time none would make lamentation for the dead. The
retribution that was coming upon Jerusalem was plainly portrayed before Him.
He saw Jerusalem compassed by the Roman legions. He knew that many now
weeping for Lazarus would die in the siege of the city, and in their death
there would be no hope.

It was not only because of the scene before Him that Christ wept. The weight
of the grief of ages was upon Him. He saw the terrible effects of the
transgression of God's law. He saw that in the history of the world,
beginning with the death of Abel, the conflict between good and evil had
been unceasing. Looking down the years to come, He saw the suffering and
sorrow, tears and death, that were to be the lot of men. His heart was
pierced with the pain of the human family of all ages and in all lands. The
woes of the sinful race were heavy upon His soul, and the fountain of His
tears was broken up as He longed to relieve all their distress.

"Jesus therefore again groaning in Himself cometh to the grave." Lazarus had
been laid in a cave in a rock, and a massive stone had been placed before
the entrance. "Take ye away the stone," Christ said. Thinking that He only
wished to look upon the dead, Martha objected, saying that the body had been
buried four days, and corruption had already begun its work. This statement,
made before the raising of Lazarus, left no room for Christ's enemies to say
that a deception had been practiced. In the past the Pharisees had
circulated false statements regarding the most wonderful manifestations of
the power of God. When Christ raised to life the daughter of Jairus, He had
said, "The damsel is not dead, but sleepeth." Mark 5:39. As she had been
sick only

                                                                     535

a short time, and was raised immediately after death, the Pharisees declared
that the child had not been dead; that Christ Himself had said she was only
asleep. They had tried to make it appear that Christ could not cure disease,
that there was foul play about His miracles. But in this case, none could
deny that Lazarus was dead.

When the Lord is about to do a work, Satan moves upon someone to object.
"Take ye away the stone," Christ said. As far as possible, prepare the way
for My work. But Martha's positive and ambitious nature asserted itself. She
was unwilling that the decomposing body should be brought to view. The human
heart is slow to understand Christ's words, and Martha's faith had not
grasped the true meaning of His promise.

Christ reproved Martha, but His words were spoken with the utmost
gentleness. "Said I not unto thee, that, if thou wouldest believe, thou
shouldest see the glory of God?" Why should you doubt in regard to My power?
Why reason in opposition to My requirements? You have My word. If you will
believe, you shall see the glory of God. Natural impossibilities cannot
prevent the work of the Omnipotent One. Skepticism and unbelief are not
humility. Implicit belief in Christ's word is true humility, true
self-surrender.

"Take ye away the stone." Christ could have commanded the stone to remove,
and it would have obeyed His voice. He could have bidden the angels who were
close by His side to do this. At His bidding, invisible hands would have
removed the stone. But it was to be taken away by human hands. Thus Christ
would show that humanity is to co-operate with divinity. What human power
can do divine power is not summoned to do. God does not dispense with man's
aid. He strengthens him, co-operating with him as he uses the powers and
capabilities given him.

The command is obeyed. The stone is rolled away. Everything is done openly
and deliberately. All are given a chance to see that no deception is
practiced. There lies the body of Lazarus in its rocky grave, cold and
silent in death. The cries of the mourners are hushed. Surprised and
expectant, the company stand around the sepulcher, waiting to see what is to
follow.

Calmly Christ stands before the tomb. A sacred solemnity rests upon all
present. Christ steps closer to the sepulcher. Lifting His eyes to heaven,
He says, "Father, I thank Thee that Thou hast heard Me." Not long before
this, Christ's enemies had accused Him of blasphemy, and had taken up stones
to cast at Him because He claimed to be the Son of

536

God. They accused Him of performing miracles by the power of Satan. But here
Christ claims God as His Father, and with perfect confidence declares that
He is the Son of God.

In all that He did, Christ was co-operating with His Father. Ever He had
been careful to make it evident that He did not work independently; it was
by faith and prayer that He wrought His miracles. Christ desired all to know
His relationship with His Father. "Father," He said, "I thank Thee that Thou
hast heard Me. And I knew that Thou hearest Me always: but because of the
people which stand by I said it, that they may believe that Thou hast sent
Me." Here the disciples and the people were to be given the most convincing
evidence in regard to the relationship existing between Christ and God. They
were to be shown that Christ's claim was not a deception.

"And when He thus had spoken, He cried with a loud voice, Lazarus, come
forth." His voice, clear and penetrating, pierces the ear of the dead. As He
speaks, divinity flashes through humanity. In His face, which is lighted up
by the glory of God, the people see the assurance of His power. Every eye is
fastened on the entrance to the cave. Every ear is bent to catch the
slightest sound. With intense and painful interest all wait for the test of
Christ's divinity, the evidence that is to substantiate His claim to be the
Son of God, or to extinguish the hope forever.

There is a stir in the silent tomb, and he who was dead stands at the door
of the sepulcher. His movements are impeded by the graveclothes in which he
was laid away, and Christ says to the astonished spectators, "Loose him, and
let him go." Again they are shown that the human worker is to co-operate
with God. Humanity is to work for humanity. Lazarus is set free, and stands
before the company, not as one emaciated from disease, and with feeble,
tottering limbs, but as a man in the prime of life, and in the vigor of a
noble manhood. His eyes beam with intelligence and with love for his
Saviour. He casts himself in adoration at the feet of Jesus.

The beholders are at first speechless with amazement. Then there follows an
inexpressible scene of rejoicing and thanksgiving. The sisters receive their
brother back to life as the gift of God, and with joyful tears they brokenly
express their thanks to the Saviour. But while brother, sisters, and friends
are rejoicing in this reunion, Jesus withdraws from the scene. When they
look for the Life-giver, He is not to be found.




                                                                     (537)

                             Chapter 59

                             Priestly Plottings


Bethany was so near Jerusalem that the news of the raising of Lazarus was
soon carried to the city. Through spies who had witnessed the miracle the
Jewish rulers were speedily in possession of the facts. A meeting of the
Sanhedrin was at once called to decide as to what should be done. Christ had
now fully made manifest His control of death and the grave. That mighty
miracle was the crowning evidence offered by God to men that He had sent His
Son into the world for their salvation. It was a demonstration of divine
power sufficient to convince every mind that was under the control of reason
and enlightened conscience. Many who witnessed the resurrection of Lazarus
were led to believe on Jesus. But the hatred of the priests against Him was
intensified. They had rejected all lesser evidence of His divinity, and they
were only enraged at this new miracle. The dead had been raised in the full
light of day, and before a crowd of witnesses. No artifice could explain
away such evidence. For this very reason the enmity of the priests grew
deadlier. They were more than ever determined to put a stop to Christ's
work.

The Sadducees, though not favorable to Christ, had not been so full of
malignity toward Him as were the Pharisees. Their hatred had not been so
bitter. But they were now thoroughly alarmed. They did not

538

believe in a resurrection of the dead. Producing so-called science, they had
reasoned that it would be an impossibility for a dead body to be brought to
life. But by a few words from Christ their theory had been overthrown. They
were shown to be ignorant both of the Scriptures and of the power of God.
They could see no possibility of removing the impression made on the people
by the miracle. How could men be turned away from Him who had prevailed to
rob the grave of its dead? Lying reports were put in circulation, but the
miracle could not be denied, and how to counteract its effect they knew not.
Thus far the Sadducees had not encouraged the plan of putting Christ to
death. But after the resurrection of Lazarus they decided that only by His
death could His fearless denunciations against them be stopped.

The Pharisees believed in the resurrection, and they could not but see that
this miracle was an evidence that the Messiah was among them. But they had
ever opposed Christ's work. From the first they had hated Him because He had
exposed their hypocritical pretensions. He had torn aside the cloak of
rigorous rites under which their moral deformity was hidden. The pure
religion that He taught had condemned their hollow professions of piety.
They thirsted to be revenged upon Him for His pointed rebukes. They had
tried to provoke Him to say or do something that would give them occasion to
condemn Him. Several times they had attempted to stone Him, but He had
quietly withdrawn, and they had lost sight of Him.

The miracles He performed on the Sabbath were all for the relief of the
afflicted, but the Pharisees had sought to condemn Him as a Sabbathbreaker.
They had tried to arouse the Herodians against Him. They represented that He
was seeking to set up a rival kingdom, and consulted with them how to
destroy Him. To excite the Romans against Him, they had represented Him as
trying to subvert their authority. They had tried every pretext to cut Him
off from influencing the people. But so far their attempts had been foiled.
The multitudes who witnessed His works of mercy and heard His pure and holy
teachings knew that these were not the deeds and words of a Sabbathbreaker
or blasphemer. Even the officers sent by the Pharisees had been so
influenced by His words that they could not lay hands on Him. In desperation
the Jews had finally passed an edict that any man who professed faith in
Jesus should be cast out of the synagogue.

So, as the priests, the rulers, and the elders gathered for consultation, it
was their fixed determination to silence Him who did such marvelous

                                                                     539

works that all men wondered. Pharisees and Sadducees were more nearly united
than ever before. Divided hitherto, they became one in their opposition to
Christ. Nicodemus and Joseph had, in former councils, prevented the
condemnation of Jesus, and for this reason they were not now summoned. There
were present at the council other influential men who believed on Jesus, but
their influence prevailed nothing against that of the malignant Pharisees.

Yet the members of the council were not all agreed. The Sanhedrin was not at
this time a legal assembly. It existed only by tolerance. Some of its number
questioned the wisdom of putting Christ to death. They feared that this
would excite an insurrection among the people, causing the Romans to
withhold further favors from the priesthood, and to take from them the power
they still held. The Sadducees were united in their hatred of Christ, yet
they were inclined to be cautious in their movements, fearing that the
Romans would deprive them of their high standing.

In this council, assembled to plan the death of Christ, the Witness was
present who heard the boastful words of Nebuchadnezzar, who witnessed the
idolatrous feast of Belshazzar, who was present when Christ in Nazareth
announced Himself the Anointed One. This Witness was now impressing the
rulers with the work they were doing. Events in the life of Christ rose up
before them with a distinctness that alarmed them. They remembered the scene
in the temple, when Jesus, then a child of twelve, stood before the learned
doctors of the law, asking them questions at which they wondered. The
miracle just performed bore witness that Jesus was none other than the Son
of God. In their true significance, the Old Testament Scriptures regarding
Christ flashed before their minds. Perplexed and troubled, the rulers asked,
"What do we?" There was a division in the council. Under the impression of
the Holy Spirit, the priests and rulers could not banish the conviction that
they were fighting against God.

While the council was at the height of its perplexity, Caiaphas the high
priest arose. Caiaphas was a proud and cruel man, overbearing and
intolerant. Among his family connections were Sadducees, proud, bold,
reckless, full of ambition and cruelty, which they hid under a cloak of
pretended righteousness. Caiaphas had studied the prophecies, and although
ignorant of their true meaning, he spoke with great authority and assurance:
"Ye know nothing at all, nor consider that it is expedient for us, that one
man should die for the people, and that the whole nation

540

perish not." Even if Jesus were innocent, urged the high priest, He must be
put out of the way. He was troublesome, drawing the people to Himself, and
lessening the authority of the rulers. He was only one; it was better that
He should die than that the authority of the rulers should be weakened. If
the people were to lose confidence in their rulers, the national power would
be destroyed. Caiaphas urged that after this miracle the followers of Jesus
would likely rise in revolt. The Romans will then come, he said, and will
close our temple, and abolish our laws, destroying us as a nation. What is
the life of this Galilean worth in comparison with the life of the nation?
If He stands in the way of Israel's well-being, is it not doing God a
service to remove Him? Better that one man perish than that the whole nation
be destroyed.

In declaring that one man should die for the nation, Caiaphas indicated that
he had some knowledge of the prophecies, although it was very limited. But
John, in his account of this scene, takes up the prophecy, and shows its
broad and deep significance. He says, "And not for that nation only, but
that also He should gather together in one the children of God that were
scattered abroad." How blindly did the haughty Caiaphas acknowledge the
Saviour's mission!

On the lips of Caiaphas this most precious truth was turned into a lie. The
policy he advocated was based on a principle borrowed from heathenism. Among
the heathen, the dim consciousness that one was to die for the human race
had led to the offering of human sacrifices. So Caiaphas proposed by the
sacrifice of Jesus to save the guilty nation, not from transgression, but in
transgression, that they might continue in sin. And by his reasoning he
thought to silence the remonstrances of those who might dare to say that as
yet nothing worthy of death had been found in Jesus.

At this council Christ's enemies had been deeply convicted. The Holy Spirit
had impressed their minds. But Satan strove to gain control of them. He
urged upon their notice the grievances they had suffered on account of
Christ. How little He had honored their righteousness. He presented a
righteousness far greater, which all who would be children of God must
possess. Taking no notice of their forms and ceremonies, He had encouraged
sinners to go directly to God as a merciful Father, and make known their
wants. Thus, in their opinion, He had set aside the priesthood. He had
refused to acknowledge the theology of the rabbinical schools. He had
exposed the evil practices of the priests,

                                                                     541

and had irreparably hurt their influence. He had injured the effect of their
maxims and traditions, declaring that though they strictly enforced the
ritual law, they made void the law of God. All this Satan now brought to
their minds.

Satan told them that in order to maintain their authority, they must put
Jesus to death. This counsel they followed. The fact that they might lose
the power they then exercised, was, they thought, sufficient reason for
coming to some decision. With the exception of a few who dared not speak
their minds, the Sanhedrin received the words of Caiaphas as the words of
God. Relief came to the council; the discord ceased. They resolved to put
Christ to death at the first favorable opportunity. In rejecting the proof
of the divinity of Jesus, these priests and rulers had locked themselves in
impenetrable darkness. They had come wholly under the sway of Satan, to be
hurried by him over the brink of eternal ruin. Yet such was their deception
that they were well pleased with themselves. They regarded themselves as
patriots, who were seeking the nation's salvation.

The Sanhedrin feared, however, to take rash measures against Jesus, lest the
people should become incensed, and the violence meditated toward Him should
fall upon themselves. On this account the council delayed to execute the
sentence they had pronounced. The Saviour understood the plotting of the
priests. He knew that they longed to remove Him, and that their purpose
would soon be accomplished. But it was not His place to hasten the crisis,
and He withdrew from that region, taking the disciples with Him. Thus by His
own example Jesus again enforced the instruction He had given to the
disciples, "When they persecute you in this city, flee ye into another."
Matt. 10:23. There was a wide field in which to work for the salvation of
souls; and unless loyalty to Him required it, the Lord's servants were not
to imperil their lives.

Jesus had now given three years of public labor to the world. His example of
self-denial and disinterested benevolence was before them. His life of
purity, of suffering and devotion, was known to all. Yet this short period
of three years was as long as the world could endure the presence of its
Redeemer.

His life had been one of persecution and insult. Driven from Bethlehem by a
jealous king, rejected by His own people at Nazareth, condemned to death
without a cause at Jerusalem, Jesus, with His few faithful followers, found
a temporary asylum in a strange city. He who

542

was ever touched by human woe, who healed the sick, restored sight to the
blind, hearing to the deaf, and speech to the dumb, who fed the hungry and
comforted the sorrowful, was driven from the people He had labored to save.
He who walked upon the heaving billows, and by a word silenced their angry
roaring, who cast out devils that in departing acknowledged Him to be the
Son of God, who broke the slumbers of the dead, who held thousands entranced
by His words of wisdom, was unable to reach the hearts of those who were
blinded by prejudice and hatred, and who stubbornly rejected the light.




                                                                     (547)

                             Chapter 60

                             The Law of the New Kingdom


The time of the Passover was drawing near, and again Jesus turned toward
Jerusalem. In His heart was the peace of perfect oneness with the Father's
will, and with eager steps He pressed on toward the place of sacrifice. But
a sense of mystery, of doubt and fear, fell upon the disciples. The Saviour
"went before them: and they were amazed; and as they followed, they were
afraid."

Again Christ called the twelve about Him, and with greater definiteness than
ever before, He opened to them His betrayal and sufferings. "Behold," He
said, "we go up to Jerusalem, and all things that are written by the
prophets concerning the Son of man shall be accomplished. For He shall be
delivered unto the Gentiles, and shall be mocked, and spitefully entreated,
and spitted on: and they shall scourge Him, and put Him to death: and the
third day He shall rise again. And they understood none of these things: and
this saying was hid from them, neither knew they the things which were
spoken."

Had they not just before proclaimed everywhere, "The kingdom of heaven is at
hand"? Had not Christ Himself promised that many should sit down with
Abraham and Isaac and Jacob in the kingdom of God? Had He not promised to
all who had left aught for His sake a hundredfold in this life, and a part
in His kingdom? And had He not given to the twelve the special promise of
positions of high honor in His kingdom,--to sit on thrones judging the
twelve tribes of Israel? Even

548

now He had said that all things written in the prophets concerning Him
should be fulfilled. And had not the prophets foretold the glory of the
Messiah's reign? In the light of these thoughts, His words in regard to
betrayal, persecution, and death seemed vague and shadowy. Whatever
difficulties might intervene, they believed that the kingdom was soon to be
established.

John, the son of Zebedee, had been one of the first two disciples who had
followed Jesus. He and his brother James had been among the first group who
had left all for His service. Gladly they had forsaken home and friends that
they might be with Him; they had walked and talked with Him; they had been
with Him in the privacy of the home, and in the public assemblies. He had
quieted their fears, delivered them from danger, relieved their sufferings,
comforted their grief, and with patience and tenderness had taught them,
till their hearts seemed linked with His, and in the ardor of their love
they longed to be nearest to Him in His kingdom. At every possible
opportunity, John took his place next the Saviour, and James longed to be
honored with as close connection with Him.

Their mother was a follower of Christ, and had ministered to Him freely of
her substance. With a mother's love and ambition for her sons, she coveted
for them the most honored place in the new kingdom. For this she encouraged
them to make request.

Together the mother and her sons came to Jesus, asking that He would grant a
petition on which their hearts were set.

"What would ye that I should do for you?" He questioned.

The mother answered, "Grant that these my two sons may sit, the one on Thy
right hand, and the other on the left, in Thy kingdom."

Jesus bears tenderly with them, not rebuking their selfishness in seeking
preference above their brethren. He reads their hearts, He knows the depth
of their attachment to Him. Their love is not a mere human affection; though
defiled by the earthliness of its human channel, it is an outflowing from
the fountain of His own redeeming love. He will not rebuke, but deepen and
purify. He said, "Are ye able to drink of the cup that I shall drink of, and
to be baptized with the baptism that I am baptized with?" They recall His
mysterious words, pointing to trial and suffering, yet answer confidently,
"We are able." They would count it highest honor to prove their loyalty by
sharing all that is to befall their Lord.

"Ye shall drink indeed of My cup, and be baptized with the baptism that I am
baptized with," He said; before Him a cross instead of a

                                                                     549

throne, two malefactors His companions at His right hand and His left. John
and James were to share with their Master in suffering; the one, first of
the brethren to perish with the sword; the other, longest of all to endure
toil, and reproach, and persecution.

"But to sit on My right hand, and on My left," He continued, "is not Mine to
give, but it shall be given to them for whom it is prepared of My Father."
In the kingdom of God, position is not gained through favoritism. It is not
earned, nor is it received through an arbitrary bestowal. It is the result
of character. The crown and the throne are the tokens of a condition
attained; they are the tokens of self-conquest through our Lord Jesus
Christ.

Long afterward, when the disciple had been brought into sympathy with Christ
through the fellowship of His sufferings, the Lord revealed to John what is
the condition of nearness in His kingdom. "To him that overcometh," Christ
said, "will I grant to sit with Me in My throne, even as I also overcame,
and am set down with My Father in His throne." "Him that overcometh will I
make a pillar in the temple of My God, and he shall go no more out: and I
will write upon him the name of My God, . . . and I will write upon him My
new name." Rev. 3:21, 12. So Paul the apostle wrote, "I am now ready to be
offered, and the time of my departure is at hand. I have fought a good
fight, I have finished my course, I have kept the faith: henceforth there is
laid up for me a crown of righteousness, which the Lord, the righteous
Judge, shall give me at that day." 2 Tim. 4:6-8.

The one who stands nearest to Christ will be he who on earth has drunk most
deeply of the spirit of His self-sacrificing love,--love that "vaunteth not
itself, is not puffed up, . . . seeketh not her own, is not easily provoked,
thinketh no evil" (1 Cor. 13:4, 5),--love that moves the disciple, as it
moved our Lord, to give all, to live and labor and sacrifice, even unto
death, for the saving of humanity. This spirit was made manifest in the life
of Paul. He said, "For to me to live is Christ;" for his life revealed
Christ to men; "and to die is gain,"--gain to Christ; death itself would
make manifest the power of His grace, and gather souls to Him. "Christ shall
be magnified in my body," he said, "whether it be by life or by death."
Phil. 1:21, 20.

When the ten heard of the request of James and John, they were much
displeased. The highest place in the kingdom was just what every one of them
was seeking for himself, and they were angry that the two disciples had
gained a seeming advantage over them.

550


Again the strife as to which should be greatest seemed about to be renewed,
when Jesus, calling them to Him, said to the indignant disciples, "Ye know
that they which are accounted to rule over the Gentiles exercise lordship
over them; and their great ones exercise authority upon them. But so shall
it not be among you."

In the kingdoms of the world, position meant self-aggrandizement. The people
were supposed to exist for the benefit of the ruling classes. Influence,
wealth, education, were so many means of gaining control of the masses for
the use of the leaders. The higher classes were to think, decide, enjoy, and
rule; the lower were to obey and serve. Religion, like all things else, was
a matter of authority. The people were expected to believe and practice as
their superiors directed. The right of man as man, to think and act for
himself, was wholly unrecognized.

Christ was establishing a kingdom on different principles. He called men,
not to authority, but to service, the strong to bear the infirmities of the
weak. Power, position, talent, education, placed their possessor under the
greater obligation to serve his fellows. To even the lowliest of Christ's
disciples it is said, "All things are for your sakes." 2 Cor. 4:15.

"The Son of man came not to be ministered unto, but to minister, and to give
His life a ransom for many." Among His disciples Christ was in every sense a
caretaker, a burden bearer. He shared their poverty, He practiced
self-denial on their account, He went before them to smooth the more
difficult places, and soon He would consummate His work on earth by laying
down His life. The principle on which Christ acted is to actuate the members
of the church which is His body. The plan and ground of salvation is love.
In the kingdom of Christ those are greatest who follow the example He has
given, and act as shepherds of His flock.

The words of Paul reveal the true dignity and honor of the Christian life:
"Though I be free from all men, yet have I made myself servant unto all,"
"not seeking mine own profit, but the profit of many, that they may be
saved." 1 Cor. 9:19; 10:33.

In matters of conscience the soul must be left untrammeled. No one is to
control another's mind, to judge for another, or to prescribe his duty. God
gives to every soul freedom to think, and to follow his own convictions.
"Every one of us shall give account of himself to God." No one has a right
to merge his own individuality in that of another. In all matters where
principle is involved, "let every man be fully persuaded in his own mind."
Rom. 14:12, 5. In Christ's kingdom there is no lordly

                                                                     551

oppression, no compulsion of manner. The angels of heaven do not come to the
earth to rule, and to exact homage, but as messengers of mercy, to
co-operate with men in uplifting humanity.

The principles and the very words of the Saviour's teaching, in their divine
beauty, dwelt in the memory of the beloved disciple. To his latest days the
burden of John's testimony to the churches was, "This is the message that ye
heard from the beginning, that we should love one another." "Hereby perceive
we the love of God, because He laid down His life for us: and we ought to
lay down our lives for the brethren."
1 John 3:11, 16.

This was the spirit that pervaded the early church. After the outpouring of
the Holy Spirit, "the multitude of them that believed were of one heart and
of one soul: neither said any of them that aught of the things which he
possessed was his own." "Neither was there any among them that lacked." "And
with great power gave the apostles witness of the resurrection of the Lord
Jesus: and great grace was upon them all." Acts 4:32, 34, 33.




(552)

                             Chapter 61

                             Zacchaeus


On the way to Jerusalem "Jesus entered and passed through Jericho." A few
miles from the Jordan, on the western edge of the valley that here spread
out into a plain, the city lay in the midst of tropic verdure and luxuriance
of beauty. With its palm trees and rich gardens watered by living springs,
it gleamed like an emerald in the setting of limestone hills and desolate
ravines that interposed between Jerusalem and the city of the plain.

Many caravans on their way to the feast passed through Jericho. Their
arrival was always a festive season, but now a deeper interest stirred the
people. It was known that the Galilean Rabbi who had so lately brought
Lazarus to life was in the throng; and though whispers were rife as to the
plottings of the priests, the multitudes were eager to do Him homage.

Jericho was one of the cities anciently set apart for the priests, and at
this time large numbers of priests had their residence there. But the city
had also a population of a widely different character. It was a great center
of traffic, and Roman officials and soldiers, with strangers from different
quarters, were found there, while the collection of customs made it the home
of many publicans.

"The chief among the publicans," Zacchaeus, was a Jew, and detested by his
countrymen. His rank and wealth were the reward of a calling

                                                                     553

they abhorred, and which was regarded as another name for injustice and
extortion. Yet the wealthy customs officer was not altogether the hardened
man of the world that he seemed. Beneath the appearance of worldliness and
pride was a heart susceptible to divine influences. Zacchaeus had heard of
Jesus. The report of One who had borne Himself with kindness and courtesy
toward the proscribed classes had spread far and wide. In this chief of the
publicans was awakened a longing for a better life. Only a few miles from
Jericho, John the Baptist had preached at the Jordan, and Zacchaeus had
heard of the call to repentance. The instruction to the publicans, "Exact no
more than that which is appointed you" (Luke 3:13), though outwardly
disregarded, had impressed his mind. He knew the Scriptures, and was
convicted that his practice was wrong. Now, hearing the words reported to
have come from the Great Teacher, he felt that he was a sinner in the sight
of God. Yet what he had heard of Jesus kindled hope in his heart.
Repentance, reformation of life, was possible, even to him; was not one of
the new Teacher's most trusted disciples a publican? Zacchaeus began at once
to follow the conviction that had taken hold upon him, and to make
restitution to those whom he had wronged.

Already he had begun thus to retrace his steps, when the news sounded
through Jericho that Jesus was entering the town. Zacchaeus determined to
see Him. He was beginning to realize how bitter are the fruits of sin, and
how difficult the path of him who tries to return from a course of wrong. To
be misunderstood, to be met with suspicion and distrust in the effort to
correct his errors, was hard to bear. The chief publican longed to look upon
the face of Him whose words had brought hope to his heart.

The streets were crowded, and Zacchaeus, who was small of stature, could see
nothing over the heads of the people. None would give way for him; so,
running a little in advance of the multitude, to where a wide-branching fig
tree hung over the way, the rich tax collector climbed to a seat among the
boughs, whence he could survey the procession as it passed below. The crowd
comes near, it is going by, and Zacchaeus scans with eager eyes to discern
the one figure he longs to see.

Above the clamor of priests and rabbis and the shouts of welcome from the
multitude, that unuttered desire of the chief publican spoke to the heart of
Jesus. Suddenly, just beneath the fig tree, a group halts, the company
before and behind come to a standstill, and One looks upward whose glance
seems to read the soul. Almost doubting his senses,

554

the man in the tree hears the words, "Zacchaeus, make haste, and come down;
for today I must abide at thy house."

The multitude give way, and Zacchaeus, walking as in a dream, leads the way
toward his own home. But the rabbis look on with scowling faces, and murmur
in discontent and scorn, "that He was gone to be guest with a man that is a
sinner."

Zacchaeus had been overwhelmed, amazed, and silenced at the love and
condescension of Christ in stooping to him, so unworthy. Now love and
loyalty to his new-found Master unseal his lips. He will make public his
confession and his repentance.

                                                                     555


In the presence of the multitude, "Zacchaeus stood, and said unto the Lord;
Behold, Lord, the half of my goods I give to the poor; and if I have taken
anything from any man by false accusation, I restore him fourfold.

"And Jesus said unto him, This day is salvation come to this house,
forsomuch as he also is a son of Abraham."

When the rich young ruler had turned away from Jesus, the disciples had
marveled at their Master's saying, "How hard is it for them that trust in
riches to enter into the kingdom of God!" They had exclaimed one to another,
"Who then can be saved?" Now they had a demonstration of the truth of
Christ's words, "The things which are impossible with men are possible with
God." Mark 10:24, 26; Luke 18:27. They say how, through the grace of God, a
rich man could enter into the kingdom.

Before Zacchaeus had looked upon the face of Christ, he had begun the work
that made him manifest as a true penitent. Before being accused by man, he
had confessed his sin. He had yielded to the conviction of the Holy Spirit,
and had begun to carry out the teaching of the words written for ancient
Israel as well as for ourselves. The Lord had said long before, "If thy
brother be waxen poor, and fallen in decay with thee; then thou shalt
relieve him: yea, though he be a stranger, or a sojourner; that he may live
with thee. Take thou no usury of him, or increase: but fear thy God; that
thy brother may live with thee. Thou shalt not give him thy money upon
usury, nor lend him thy victuals for increase." "Ye shall not therefore
oppress one another; but thou shalt fear thy God." Lev. 25:35-37, 17. These
words had been spoken by Christ Himself when He was enshrouded in the pillar
of cloud, and the very first response of Zacchaeus to the love of Christ was
in manifesting compassion toward the poor and suffering.

Among the publicans there was a confederacy, so that they could oppress the
people, and sustain one another in their fraudulent practices. In their
extortion they were but carrying out what had become an almost universal
custom. Even the priests and rabbis who despised them were guilty of
enriching themselves by dishonest practices under cover of their sacred
calling. But no sooner did Zacchaeus yield to the influence of the Holy
Spirit than he cast aside every practice contrary to integrity.

No repentance is genuine that does not work reformation. The righteousness
of Christ is not a cloak to cover unconfessed and unforsaken

556

sin; it is a principle of life that transforms the character and controls
the conduct. Holiness is wholeness for God; it is the entire surrender of
heart and life to the indwelling of the principles of heaven.

The Christian in his business life is to represent to the world the manner
in which our Lord would conduct business enterprises. In every transaction
he is to make it manifest that God is his teacher. "Holiness unto the Lord"
is to be written upon daybooks and ledgers, on deeds, receipts, and bills of
exchange. Those who profess to be followers of Christ, and who deal in an
unrighteous manner, are bearing false witness against the character of a
holy, just, and merciful God. Every converted soul will, like Zacchaeus,
signalize the entrance of Christ into his heart by an abandonment of the
unrighteous practices that have marked his life. Like the chief publican, he
will give proof of his sincerity by making restitution. The Lord says, "If
the wicked restore the pledge, give again that he had robbed, walk in the
statutes of life, without committing iniquity; . . . none of his sins that
he hath committed shall be mentioned unto him: . . . He shall surely live."
Ezek. 33:15, 16.

If we have injured others through any unjust business transaction, if we
have overreached in trade, or defrauded any man, even though it be within
the pale of the law, we should confess our wrong, and make restitution as
far as lies in our power. It is right for us to restore not only that which
we have taken, but all that it would have accumulated if put to a right and
wise use during the time it has been in our possession.

To Zacchaeus the Saviour said, "This day is salvation come to this house."
Not only was Zacchaeus himself blessed, but all his household with him.
Christ went to his home to give him lessons of truth, and to instruct his
household in the things of the kingdom. They had been shut out from the
synagogues by the contempt of rabbis and worshipers; but now, the most
favored household in all Jericho, they gathered in their own home about the
divine Teacher, and heard for themselves the words of life.

It is when Christ is received as a personal Saviour that salvation comes to
the soul. Zacchaeus had received Jesus, not merely as a passing guest in his
home, but as One to abide in the soul temple. The scribes and Pharisees
accused him as a sinner, they murmured against Christ for becoming his
guest, but the Lord recognized him as a son of Abraham. For "they which are
of faith, the same are the children of Abraham." Gal. 3:7.




                                                                     (557)

                             Chapter 62

                             The Feast at Simon's House


Simon of Bethany was accounted a disciple of Jesus. He was one of the few
Pharisees who had openly joined Christ's followers. He acknowledged Jesus as
a teacher, and hoped that He might be the Messiah, but he had not accepted
Him as a Saviour. His character was not transformed; his principles were
unchanged.

Simon had been healed of the leprosy, and it was this that had drawn him to
Jesus. He desired to show his gratitude, and at Christ's last visit to
Bethany he made a feast for the Saviour and His disciples. This feast
brought together many of the Jews. There was at this time much excitement at
Jerusalem. Christ and His mission were attracting greater attention than
ever before. Those who had come to the feast closely watched His movements,
and some of them with unfriendly eyes.

The Saviour had reached Bethany only six days before the Passover, and
according to His custom had sought rest at the home of Lazarus. The crowds
of travelers who passed on to the city spread the tidings that He was on His
way to Jerusalem, and that He would rest over the Sabbath at Bethany. Among
the people there was great enthusiasm. Many flocked to Bethany, some out of
sympathy with Jesus, and others from curiosity to see one who had been
raised from the dead.

Many expected to hear from Lazarus a wonderful account of scenes witnessed
after death. They were surprised that he told them nothing.

558

He had nothing of this kind to tell. Inspiration declares, "The dead know
not anything. . . . Their love, and their hatred, and their envy, is now
perished." Eccl. 9:5, 6. But Lazarus did have a wonderful testimony to bear
in regard to the work of Christ. He had been raised from the dead for this
purpose. With assurance and power he declared that Jesus was the Son of God.

The reports carried back to Jerusalem by the visitors to Bethany increased
the excitement. The people were eager to see and hear Jesus. There was a
general inquiry as to whether Lazarus would accompany Him to Jerusalem, and
if the prophet would be crowned king at the Passover. The priests and rulers
saw that their hold upon the people was still weakening, and their rage
against Jesus grew more bitter. They could hardly wait for the opportunity
of removing Him forever from their way. As time passed, they began to fear
that after all He might not come to Jerusalem. They remembered how often He
had baffled their murderous designs, and they were fearful that He had now
read their purposes against Him, and would remain away. They could ill
conceal their anxiety, and questioned among themselves, "What think ye, that
He will not come to the feast?"

A council of the priests and Pharisees was called. Since the raising of
Lazarus the sympathies of the people were so fully with Christ that it would
be dangerous to seize upon Him openly. So the authorities determined to take
Him secretly, and carry on the trial as quietly as possible. They hoped that
when His condemnation became known, the fickle tide of public opinion would
set in their favor.

Thus they proposed to destroy Jesus. But so long as Lazarus lived, the
priests and rabbis knew that they were not secure. The very existence of a
man who had been four days in the grave, and who had been restored by a word
from Jesus, would sooner or later cause a reaction. The people would be
avenged on their leaders for taking the life of One who could perform such a
miracle. The Sanhedrin therefore decided that Lazarus also must die. To such
lengths do envy and prejudice lead their slaves. The hatred and unbelief of
the Jewish leaders had increased until they would even take the life of one
whom infinite power had rescued from the grave.

While this plotting was going on at Jerusalem, Jesus and His friends were
invited to Simon's feast. At the table the Saviour sat with Simon, whom He
had cured of a loathsome disease, on one side, and Lazarus, whom He had
raised from the dead, on the other. Martha served at the table, but Mary was
earnestly listening to every word from the lips of

                                                                     559

Jesus. In His mercy, Jesus had pardoned her sins, He had called forth her
beloved brother from the grave, and Mary's heart was filled with gratitude.
She had heard Jesus speak of His approaching death, and in her deep love and
sorrow she had longed to show Him honor. At great personal sacrifice she had
purchased an alabaster box of "ointment of spikenard, very costly," with
which to anoint His body. But now many were declaring that He was about to
be crowned king. Her grief was turned to joy, and she was eager to be first
in honoring her Lord. Breaking her box of ointment, she poured its contents
upon the head and feet of Jesus; then, as she knelt weeping, moistening them
with her tears, she wiped His feet with her long, flowing hair.

She had sought to avoid observation, and her movements might have passed
unnoticed, but the ointment filled the room with its fragrance, and
published her act to all present. Judas looked upon this act with great
displeasure. Instead of waiting to hear what Christ would say of the matter,
he began to whisper his complaints to those near him, throwing reproach upon
Christ for suffering such waste. Craftily he made suggestions that would be
likely to cause disaffection.

Judas was treasurer for the disciples, and from their little store he had
secretly drawn for his own use, thus narrowing down their resources to a
meager pittance. He was eager to put into the bag all that he could obtain.
The treasure in the bag was often drawn upon to relieve the poor; and when
something that Judas did not think essential was bought, he would say, Why
is this waste? why was not the cost of this put into the bag that I carry
for the poor? Now the act of Mary was in such marked contrast to his
selfishness that he was put to shame; and according to his custom, he sought
to assign a worthy motive for his objection to her gift. Turning to the
disciples, he asked, "Why was not this ointment sold for three hundred
pence, and given to the poor? This he said, not that he cared for the poor;
but because he was a thief, and had the bag, and bare what was put therein."
Judas had no heart for the poor. Had Mary's ointment been sold, and the
proceeds fallen into his possession, the poor would have received no
benefit.

Judas had a high opinion of his own executive ability. As a financier he
thought himself greatly superior to his fellow disciples, and he had led
them to regard him in the same light. He had gained their confidence, and
had a strong influence over them. His professed sympathy for the poor
deceived them, and his artful insinuation caused them to look

560

distrustfully upon Mary's devotion. The murmur passed round the table, "To
what purpose is this waste? For this ointment might have been sold for much,
and given to the poor."

Mary heard the words of criticism. Her heart trembled within her. She feared
that her sister would reproach her for extravagance. The Master, too, might
think her improvident. Without apology or excuse she was about to shrink
away, when the voice of her Lord was heard, "Let her alone; why trouble ye
her?" He saw that she was embarrassed and distressed. He knew that in this
act of service she had expressed her gratitude for the forgiveness of her
sins, and He brought relief to her mind. Lifting His voice above the murmur
of criticism, He said, "She hath wrought a good work on Me. For ye have the
poor with you always, and whensoever ye will ye may do them good: but Me ye
have not always. She hath done what she could: she is come aforehand to
anoint My body to the burying."

The fragrant gift which Mary had thought to lavish upon the dead body of the
Saviour she poured upon His living form. At the burial its sweetness could
only have pervaded the tomb; now it gladdened His heart with the assurance
of her faith and love. Joseph of Arimathaea and Nicodemus offered not their
gift of love to Jesus in His life. With bitter tears they brought their
costly spices for His cold, unconscious form. The women who bore spices to
the tomb found their errand in vain, for He had risen. But Mary, pouring out
her love upon the Saviour while He was conscious of her devotion, was
anointing Him for the burial. And as He went down into the darkness of His
great trial, He carried with Him the memory of that deed, an earnest of the
love that would be His from His redeemed ones forever.

Many there are who bring their precious gifts for the dead. As they stand
about the cold, silent form, words of love are freely spoken. Tenderness,
appreciation, devotion, all are lavished upon one who sees not nor hears.
Had these words been spoken when the weary spirit needed them so much, when
the ear could hear and the heart could feel, how precious would have been
their fragrance!

Mary knew not the full significance of her deed of love. She could not
answer her accusers. She could not explain why she had chosen that occasion
for anointing Jesus. The Holy Spirit had planned for her, and she had obeyed
His promptings. Inspiration stoops to give no reason. An unseen presence, it
speaks to mind and soul, and moves the heart to action. It is its own
justification.

Christ told Mary the meaning of her act, and in this He gave her

                                                                     563

more than He had received. "In that she hath poured this ointment on My
body," He said, "she did it for My burial." As the alabaster box was broken,
and filled the whole house with its fragrance, so Christ was to die, His
body was to be broken; but He was to rise from the tomb, and the fragrance
of His life was to fill the earth. Christ "hath loved us, and hath given
Himself for us an offering and a sacrifice to God for a sweet-smelling
savor." Eph. 5:2.

"Verily I say unto you," Christ declared, "Wheresoever this gospel shall be
preached throughout the whole world, this also that she hath done shall be
spoken of for a memorial of her." Looking into the future, the Saviour spoke
with certainty concerning His gospel. It was to be preached throughout the
world. And as far as the gospel extended, Mary's gift would shed its
fragrance, and hearts would be blessed through her unstudied act. Kingdoms
would rise and fall; the names of monarchs and conquerors would be
forgotten; but this woman's deed would be immortalized upon the pages of
sacred history. Until time should be no more, that broken alabaster box
would tell the story of the abundant love of God for a fallen race.

Mary's act was in marked contrast with that which Judas was about to do.
What a sharp lesson Christ might have given him who had dropped the seed of
criticism and evil thinking into the minds of the disciples! How justly the
accuser might have been accused! He who reads the motives of every heart,
and understands every action, might have opened before those at the feast
dark chapters in the experience of Judas. The hollow pretense on which the
traitor based his words might have been laid bare; for, instead of
sympathizing with the poor, he was robbing them of the money intended for
their relief. Indignation might have been excited against him for his
oppression of the widow, the orphan, and the hireling. But had Christ
unmasked Judas, this would have been urged as a reason for the betrayal. And
though charged with being a thief, Judas would have gained sympathy, even
among the disciples. The Saviour reproached him not, and thus avoided giving
him an excuse for his treachery.

But the look which Jesus cast upon Judas convinced him that the Saviour
penetrated his hypocrisy, and read his base, contemptible character. And in
commending Mary's action, which had been so severely condemned, Christ had
rebuked Judas. Prior to this, the Saviour had never given him a direct
rebuke. Now the reproof rankled in his heart. He determined to be revenged.
From the supper he went directly to

564

the palace of the high priest, where he found the council assembled, and he
offered to betray Jesus into their hands.

The priests were greatly rejoiced. These leaders of Israel had been given
the privilege of receiving Christ as their Saviour, without money and
without price. But they refused the precious gift offered them in the most
tender spirit of constraining love. They refused to accept that salvation
which is of more value than gold, and bought their Lord for thirty pieces of
silver.

Judas had indulged avarice until it overpowered every good trait of his
character. He grudged the offering made to Jesus. His heart burned with envy
that the Saviour should be the recipient of a gift suitable for the monarchs
of the earth. For a sum far less than the box of ointment cost, he betrayed
his Lord.

The disciples were not like Judas. They loved the Saviour. But they did not
rightly appreciate His exalted character. Had they realized what He had done
for them, they would have felt that nothing bestowed upon Him was wasted.
The wise men from the East, who knew so little of Jesus, had shown a truer
appreciation of the honor due Him. They brought precious gifts to the
Saviour, and bowed in homage before Him when He was but a babe, and cradled
in a manger.

Christ values acts of heartfelt courtesy. When anyone did Him a favor, with
heavenly politeness He blessed the actor. He did not refuse the simplest
flower plucked by the hand of a child, and offered to Him in love. He
accepted the offerings of children, and blessed the givers, inscribing their
names in the book of life. In the Scriptures, Mary's anointing of Jesus is
mentioned as distinguishing her from the other Marys. Acts of love and
reverence for Jesus are an evidence of faith in Him as the Son of God. And
the Holy Spirit mentions, as evidences of woman's loyalty to Christ: "If she
have washed the saints' feet, if she have relieved the afflicted, if she
have diligently followed every good work." 1 Tim. 5:10.

Christ delighted in the earnest desire of Mary to do the will of her Lord.
He accepted the wealth of pure affection which His disciples did not, would
not, understand. The desire that Mary had to do this service for her Lord
was of more value to Christ than all the precious ointment in the world,
because it expressed her appreciation of the world's Redeemer. It was the
love of Christ that constrained her. The matchless excellence of the
character of Christ filled her soul. That ointment was a symbol of the heart
of the giver. It was the outward demonstration of a love fed by heavenly
streams until it overflowed.

                                                                     565


The work of Mary was just the lesson the disciples needed to show them that
the expression of their love for Him would be pleasing to Christ. He had
been everything to them, and they did not realize that soon they would be
deprived of His presence, that soon they could offer Him no token of their
gratitude for His great love. The loneliness of Christ, separated from the
heavenly courts, living the life of humanity, was never understood or
appreciated by the disciples as it should have been. He was often grieved
because His disciples did not give Him that which He should have received
from them. He knew that if they were under the influence of the heavenly
angels that accompanied Him, they too would think no offering of sufficient
value to declare the heart's spiritual affection.

Their afterknowledge gave them a true sense of the many things they might
have done for Jesus expressive of the love and gratitude of their hearts,
while they were near Him. When Jesus was no longer with them, and they felt
indeed as sheep without a shepherd, they began to see how they might have
shown Him attentions that would have brought gladness to His heart. They no
longer cast blame upon Mary, but upon themselves. Oh, if they could have
taken back their censuring, their presenting the poor as more worthy of the
gift than was Christ! They felt the reproof keenly as they took from the
cross the bruised body of their Lord.

The same want is evident in our world today. But few appreciate all that
Christ is to them. If they did, the great love of Mary would be expressed,
the anointing would be freely bestowed. The expensive ointment would not be
called a waste. Nothing would be thought too costly to give for Christ, no
self-denial or self-sacrifice too great to be endured for His sake.

The words spoken in indignation, "To what purpose is this waste?" brought
vividly before Christ the greatest sacrifice ever made,--the gift of Himself
as the propitiation for a lost world. The Lord would be so bountiful to His
human family that it could not be said of Him that He could do more. In the
gift of Jesus, God gave all heaven. From a human point of view, such a
sacrifice was a wanton waste. To human reasoning the whole plan of salvation
is a waste of mercies and resources. Self-denial and wholehearted sacrifice
meet us everywhere. Well may the heavenly host look with amazement upon the
human family who refuse to be uplifted and enriched with the boundless love
expressed in Christ. Well may they exclaim, Why this great waste?

But the atonement for a lost world was to be full, abundant, and

566

complete. Christ's offering was exceedingly abundant to reach every soul
that God had created. It could not be restricted so as not to exceed the
number who would accept the great Gift. All men are not saved; yet the plan
of redemption is not a waste because it does not accomplish all that its
liberality has provided for. There must be enough and to spare.

Simon the host had been influenced by the criticism of Judas upon Mary's
gift, and he was surprised at the conduct of Jesus. His Pharisaic pride was
offended. He knew that many of his guests were looking upon Christ with
distrust and displeasure. Simon said in his heart, "This Man, if He were a
prophet, would have known who and what manner of woman this is that toucheth
Him: for she is a sinner."

By curing Simon of leprosy, Christ had saved him from a living death. But
now Simon questioned whether the Saviour were a prophet. Because Christ
allowed this woman to approach Him, because He did not indignantly spurn her
as one whose sins were too great to be forgiven, because He did not show
that He realized she had fallen, Simon was tempted to think that He was not
a prophet. Jesus knows nothing of this woman who is so free in her
demonstrations, he thought, or He would not allow her to touch Him.

But it was Simon's ignorance of God and of Christ that led him to think as
he did. He did not realize that God's Son must act in God's way, with
compassion, tenderness, and mercy. Simon's way was to take no notice of
Mary's penitent service. Her act of kissing Christ's feet and anointing them
with ointment was exasperating to his hardheartedness. He thought that if
Christ were a prophet, He would recognize sinners and rebuke them.

To this unspoken thought the Saviour answered: "Simon, I have somewhat to
say unto thee. . . . There was a certain creditor which had two debtors: the
one owed five hundred pence, and the other fifty. And when they had nothing
to pay, he frankly forgave them both. Tell Me therefore, which of them will
love him most? Simon answered and said, I suppose that he, to whom he
forgave most. And He said unto him, Thou hast rightly judged."

As did Nathan with David, Christ concealed His home thrust under the veil of
a parable. He threw upon His host the burden of pronouncing sentence upon
himself. Simon had led into sin the woman he now despised. She had been
deeply wronged by him. By the two debtors of the parable, Simon and the
woman were represented. Jesus did not design to teach that different degrees
of obligation should be felt by the

                                                                     567

two persons, for each owed a debt of gratitude that never could be repaid.
But Simon felt himself more righteous than Mary, and Jesus desired him to
see how great his guilt really was. He would show him that his sin was
greater than hers, as much greater as a debt of five hundred pence exceeds a
debt of fifty pence.

Simon now began to see himself in a new light. He saw how Mary was regarded
by One who was more than a prophet. He saw that with keen prophetic eye
Christ read her heart of love and devotion. Shame seized upon him, and he
realized that he was in the presence of One superior to himself.

"I entered into thine house," Christ continued, "thou gavest Me no water for
My feet;" but with tears of repentance, prompted by love, Mary hath washed
My feet, and wiped them with the hair of her head. "Thou gavest Me no kiss:
but this woman," whom you despise, "since the time I came in hath not ceased
to kiss My feet." Christ recounted the opportunities Simon had had to show
his love for his Lord, and his appreciation of what had been done for him.
Plainly, yet with delicate politeness, the Saviour assured His disciples
that His heart is grieved when His children neglect to show their gratitude
to Him by words and deeds of love.

The Heart Searcher read the motive that led to Mary's action, and He saw
also the spirit that prompted Simon's words. "Seest thou this woman?" He
said to him. She is a sinner. "I say unto thee, Her sins, which are many,
are forgiven; for she loved much: but to whom little is forgiven, the same
loveth little."

Simon's coldness and neglect toward the Saviour showed how little he
appreciated the mercy he had received. He had thought he honored Jesus by
inviting Him to his house. But he now saw himself as he really was. While he
thought himself reading his Guest, his Guest had been reading him. He saw
how true Christ's judgment of him was. His religion had been a robe of
Pharisaism. He had despised the compassion of Jesus. He had not recognized
Him as the representative of God. While Mary was a sinner pardoned, he was a
sinner unpardoned. The rigid rule of justice he had desired to enforce
against her condemned him.

Simon was touched by the kindness of Jesus in not openly rebuking him before
the guests. He had not been treated as he desired Mary to be treated. He saw
that Jesus did not wish to expose his guilt to others, but sought by a true
statement of the case to convince his mind, and by pitying kindness to
subdue his heart. Stern denunciation would have hardened Simon against
repentance, but patient admonition convinced

568

him of his error. He saw the magnitude of the debt which he owed his Lord.
His pride was humbled, he repented, and the proud Pharisee became a lowly,
self-sacrificing disciple.

Mary had been looked upon as a great sinner, but Christ knew the
circumstances that had shaped her life. He might have extinguished every
spark of hope in her soul, but He did not. It was He who had lifted her from
despair and ruin. Seven times she had heard His rebuke of the demons that
controlled her heart and mind. She had heard His strong cries to the Father
in her behalf. She knew how offensive is sin to His unsullied purity, and in
His strength she had overcome.

When to human eyes her case appeared hopeless, Christ saw in Mary
capabilities for good. He saw the better traits of her character. The plan
of redemption has invested humanity with great possibilities, and in Mary
these possibilities were to be realized. Through His grace she became a
partaker of the divine nature. The one who had fallen, and whose mind had
been a habitation of demons, was brought very near to the Saviour in
fellowship and ministry. It was Mary who sat at His feet and learned of Him.
It was Mary who poured upon His head the precious anointing oil, and bathed
His feet with her tears. Mary stood beside the cross, and followed Him to
the sepulcher. Mary was first at the tomb after His resurrection. It was
Mary who first proclaimed a risen Saviour.

Jesus knows the circumstances of every soul. You may say, I am sinful, very
sinful. You may be; but the worse you are, the more you need Jesus. He turns
no weeping, contrite one away. He does not tell to any all that He might
reveal, but He bids every trembling soul take courage. Freely will He pardon
all who come to Him for forgiveness and restoration.

Christ might commission the angels of heaven to pour out the vials of His
wrath on our world, to destroy those who are filled with hatred of God. He
might wipe this dark spot from His universe. But He does not do this. He is
today standing at the altar of incense, presenting before God the prayers of
those who desire His help.

The souls that turn to Him for refuge, Jesus lifts above the accusing and
the strife of tongues. No man or evil angel can impeach these souls. Christ
unites them to His own divine-human nature. They stand beside the great Sin
Bearer, in the light proceeding from the throne of God. "Who shall lay
anything to the charge of God's elect? It is God that justifieth. Who is he
that condemneth? It is Christ that died, yea rather, that is risen again,
who is even at the right hand of God, who also maketh intercession for us."
Rom. 8:33, 34.




                                                                     (569)

                             Chapter 63

                             "Thy King Cometh"


"Rejoice greatly, O daughter of Zion; shout, O daughter of Jerusalem:
behold, thy King cometh unto thee: He is just, and having salvation; lowly,
and riding upon an ass, and upon a colt the foal of an ass." Zech. 9:9.

Five hundred years before the birth of Christ, the prophet Zechariah thus
foretold the coming of the King to Israel. This prophecy is now to be
fulfilled. He who has so long refused royal honors now comes to Jerusalem as
the promised heir to David's throne.

It was on the first day of the week that Christ made His triumphal entry
into Jerusalem. Multitudes who had flocked to see Him at Bethany now
accompanied Him, eager to witness His reception. Many people were on their
way to the city to keep the Passover, and these joined the multitude
attending Jesus. All nature seemed to rejoice. The trees were clothed with
verdure, and their blossoms shed a delicate fragrance on the air. A new life
and joy animated the people. The hope of the new kingdom was again springing
up.

Purposing to ride into Jerusalem, Jesus had sent two of His disciples to
bring to Him an ass and its colt. At His birth the Saviour was dependent
upon the hospitality of strangers. The manger in which He lay was a borrowed
resting place. Now, although the cattle on a thousand hills are His, He is
dependent on a stranger's kindness for an animal on

570

which to enter Jerusalem as its King. But again His divinity is revealed,
even in the minute directions given His disciples for this errand. As He
foretold, the plea, "The Lord hath need of them," was readily granted. Jesus
chose for His use the colt on which never man had sat. The disciples, with
glad enthusiasm, spread their garments on the beast, and seated their Master
upon it. Heretofore Jesus had always traveled on foot, and the disciples had
at first wondered that He should now choose to ride. But hope brightened in
their hearts with the joyous thought that He was about to enter the capital,
proclaim Himself King, and assert His royal power. While on their errand
they communicated their glowing expectations to the friends of Jesus, and
the excitement spread far and near, raising the expectations of the people
to the highest pitch.

Christ was following the Jewish custom for a royal entry. The animal on
which He rode was that ridden by the kings of Israel, and prophecy had
foretold that thus the Messiah should come to His kingdom. No sooner was He
seated upon the colt than a loud shout of triumph rent the air. The
multitude hailed Him as Messiah, their King. Jesus now accepted the homage
which He had never before permitted, and the disciples received this as
proof that their glad hopes were to be realized by seeing Him established on
the throne. The multitude were convinced that the hour of their emancipation
was at hand. In imagination they saw the Roman armies driven from Jerusalem,
and Israel once more an independent nation. All were happy and excited; the
people vied with one another in paying Him homage. They could not display
outward pomp and splendor, but they gave Him the worship of happy hearts.
They were unable to present Him with costly gifts, but they spread their
outer garments as a carpet in His path, and they also strewed the leafy
branches of the olive and the palm in the way. They could lead the triumphal
procession with no royal standards, but they cut down the spreading palm
boughs, Nature's emblem of victory, and waved them aloft with loud
acclamations and hosannas.

As they proceeded, the multitude was continually increased by those who had
heard of the coming of Jesus and hastened to join the procession. Spectators
were constantly mingling with the throng, and asking, Who is this? What does
all this commotion signify? They had all heard of Jesus, and expected Him to
go to Jerusalem; but they knew that He had heretofore discouraged all effort
to place Him on the throne, and they were greatly astonished to learn that
this was He. They wondered what could have wrought this change in Him who
had declared that His kingdom was not of this world.

                                                                     571


Their questionings are silenced by a shout of triumph. Again and again it is
repeated by the eager throng; it is taken up by the people afar off, and
echoed from the surrounding hills and valleys. And now the procession is
joined by crowds from Jerusalem. From the multitudes gathered to attend the
Passover, thousands go forth to welcome Jesus. They greet Him with the
waving of palm branches and a burst of sacred song. The priests at the
temple sound the trumpet for evening service, but there are few to respond,
and the rulers say to one another in alarm. "The world is gone after Him."

Never before in His earthly life had Jesus permitted such a demonstration.
He clearly foresaw the result. It would bring Him to the cross. But it was
His purpose thus publicly to present Himself as the Redeemer. He desired to
call attention to the sacrifice that was to crown His mission to a fallen
world. While the people were assembling at Jerusalem to celebrate the
Passover, He, the antitypical Lamb, by a voluntary act set Himself apart as
an oblation. It would be needful for His church in all succeeding ages to
make His death for the sins of the world a subject of deep thought and
study. Every fact connected with it should be verified beyond a doubt. It
was necessary, then, that the eyes of all people should now be directed to
Him; the events which preceded His great sacrifice must be such as to call
attention to the sacrifice itself. After such a demonstration as that
attending His entry into Jerusalem, all eyes would follow His rapid progress
to the final scene.

The events connected with this triumphal ride would be the talk of every
tongue, and would bring Jesus before every mind. After His crucifixion, many
would recall these events in their connection with His trial and death. They
would be led to search the prophecies, and would be convinced that Jesus was
the Messiah; and in all lands converts to the faith would be multiplied.

In this one triumphant scene of His earthly life, the Saviour might have
appeared escorted by heavenly angels, and heralded by the trump of God; but
such a demonstration would have been contrary to the purpose of His mission,
contrary to the law which had governed His life. He remained true to the
humble lot He had accepted. The burden of humanity He must bear until His
life was given for the life of the world.

This day, which seemed to the disciples the crowning day of their lives,
would have been shadowed with gloomy clouds had they known that this scene
of rejoicing was but a prelude to the suffering and death of their Master.
Although He had repeatedly told them of His certain

572

sacrifice, yet in the glad triumph of the present they forgot His sorrowful
words, and looked forward to His prosperous reign on David's throne.

New accessions were made continually to the procession, and, with few
exceptions, all who joined it caught the inspiration of the hour, and helped
to swell the hosannas that echoed and re-echoed from hill to hill and from
valley to valley. The shouts went up continually, "Hosanna to the Son of
David: Blessed is He that cometh in the name of the Lord! Hosanna in the
highest."

Never before had the world seen such a triumphal procession. It was not like
that of the earth's famous conquerors. No train of mourning captives, as
trophies of kingly valor, made a feature of that scene. But about the
Saviour were the glorious trophies of His labors of love for sinful man.
There were the captives whom He had rescued from Satan's power, praising God
for their deliverance. The blind whom He had restored to sight were leading
the way. The dumb whose tongues He had loosed shouted the loudest hosannas.
The cripples whom He had healed bounded with joy, and were the most active
in breaking the palm branches and waving them before the Saviour. Widows and
orphans were exalting the name of Jesus for His works of mercy to them. The
lepers whom He had cleansed spread their untainted garments in His path, and
hailed Him as the King of glory. Those whom His voice had awakened from the
sleep of death were in that throng. Lazarus, whose body had seen corruption
in the grave, but who now rejoiced in the strength of glorious manhood, led
the beast on which the Saviour rode.

Many Pharisees witnessed the scene, and, burning with envy and malice,
sought to turn the current of popular feeling. With all their authority they
tried to silence the people; but their appeals and threats only increased
the enthusiasm. They feared that this multitude, in the strength of their
numbers, would make Jesus king. As a last resort they pressed through the
crowd to where the Saviour was, and accosted Him with reproving and
threatening words: "Master, rebuke Thy disciples." They declared that such
noisy demonstrations were unlawful, and would not be permitted by the
authorities. But they were silenced by the reply of Jesus, "I tell you that,
if these should hold their peace, the stones would immediately cry out."
That scene of triumph was of God's own appointing. It had been foretold by
the prophet, and man was powerless to turn aside God's purpose. Had men
failed to carry out His plan, He would have given a voice to the inanimate
stones, and they would have hailed His Son with acclamations of praise. As
the silenced Pharisees

                                                                     575

drew back, the words of Zechariah were taken up by hundreds of voices:
"Rejoice greatly, O daughter of Zion; shout, O daughter of Jerusalem:
behold, thy King cometh unto thee: He is just, and having salvation; lowly,
and riding upon an ass, and upon a colt the foal of an ass."

When the procession reached the brow of the hill, and was about to descend
into the city, Jesus halted, and all the multitude with Him. Before them lay
Jerusalem in its glory, now bathed in the light of the declining sun. The
temple attracted all eyes. In stately grandeur it towered above all else,
seeming to point toward heaven as if directing the people to the only true
and living God. The temple had long been the pride and glory of the Jewish
nation. The Romans also prided themselves in its magnificence. A king
appointed by the Romans had united with the Jews to rebuild and embellish
it, and the emperor of Rome had enriched it with his gifts. Its strength,
richness, and magnificence had made it one of the wonders of the world.

While the westering sun was tinting and gilding the heavens, its resplendent
glory lighted up the pure white marble of the temple walls, and sparkled on
its gold-capped pillars. From the crest of the hill where Jesus and His
followers stood, it had the appearance of a massive structure of snow, set
with golden pinnacles. At the entrance to the temple was a vine of gold and
silver, with green leaves and massive clusters of grapes executed by the
most skillful artists. This design represented Israel as a prosperous vine.
The gold, silver, and living green were combined with rare taste and
exquisite workmanship; as it twined gracefully about the white and
glistening pillars, clinging with shining tendrils to their golden
ornaments, it caught the splendor of the setting sun, shining as if with a
glory borrowed from heaven.

Jesus gazes upon the scene, and the vast multitude hush their shouts,
spellbound by the sudden vision of beauty. All eyes turn upon the Saviour,
expecting to see in His countenance the admiration they themselves feel. But
instead of this they behold a cloud of sorrow. They are surprised and
disappointed to see His eyes fill with tears, and His body rock to and fro
like a tree before the tempest, while a wail of anguish bursts from His
quivering lips, as if from the depths of a broken heart. What a sight was
this for angels to behold! their loved Commander in an agony of tears! What
a sight was this for the glad throng that with shouts of triumph and the
waving of palm branches were escorting Him to the glorious city, where they
fondly hoped He was about to reign! Jesus had wept at the grave of Lazarus,
but it was in a

576

godlike grief in sympathy with human woe. But this sudden sorrow was like a
note of wailing in a grand triumphal chorus. In the midst of a scene of
rejoicing, where all were paying Him homage, Israel's King was in tears; not
silent tears of gladness, but tears and groans of insuppressible agony. The
multitude were struck with a sudden gloom. Their acclamations were silenced.
Many wept in sympathy with a grief they could not comprehend.

The tears of Jesus were not in anticipation of His own suffering. Just
before Him was Gethsemane, where soon the horror of a great darkness would
overshadow Him. The sheepgate also was in sight, through which for centuries
the beasts for sacrificial offerings had been led. This gate was soon to
open for Him, the great Antitype, toward whose sacrifice for the sins of the
world all these offerings had pointed. Near by was Calvary, the scene of His
approaching agony. Yet it was not because of these reminders of His cruel
death that the Redeemer wept and groaned in anguish of spirit. His was no
selfish sorrow. The thought of His own agony did not intimidate that noble,
self-sacrificing soul. It was the sight of Jerusalem that pierced the heart
of Jesus--Jerusalem that had rejected the Son of God and scorned His love,
that refused to be convinced by His mighty miracles, and was about to take
His life. He saw what she was in her guilt of rejecting her Redeemer, and
what she might have been had she accepted Him who alone could heal her
wound. He had come to save her; how could He give her up?

Israel had been a favored people; God had made their temple His habitation;
it was "beautiful for situation, the joy of the whole earth." Ps. 48:2. The
record of more than a thousand years of Christ's guardian care and tender
love, such as a father bears his only child, was there. In that temple the
prophets had uttered their solemn warnings. There had the burning censers
waved, while incense, mingled with the prayers of the worshipers, had
ascended to God. There the blood of beasts had flowed, typical of the blood
of Christ. There Jehovah had manifested His glory above the mercy seat.
There the priests had officiated, and the pomp of symbol and ceremony had
gone on for ages. But all this must have an end.

Jesus raised His hand,--that had so often blessed the sick and
suffering,--and waving it toward the doomed city, in broken utterances of
grief exclaimed: "If thou hadst known, even thou, at least in this thy day,
the things which belong unto thy peace!--" Here the Saviour paused, and left
unsaid what might have been the condition of Jerusalem

                                                                     577

had she accepted the help that God desired to give her,--the gift of His
beloved Son. If Jerusalem had known what it was her privilege to know, and
had heeded the light which Heaven had sent her, she might have stood forth
in the pride of prosperity, the queen of kingdoms, free in the strength of
her God-given power. There would have been no armed soldiers standing at her
gates, no Roman banners waving from her walls. The glorious destiny that
might have blessed Jerusalem had she accepted her Redeemer rose before the
Son of God. He saw that she might through Him have been healed of her
grievous malady, liberated from bondage, and established as the mighty
metropolis of the earth. From her walls the dove of peace would have gone
forth to all nations. She would have been the world's diadem of glory.

But the bright picture of what Jerusalem might have been fades from the
Saviour's sight. He realizes what she now is under the Roman yoke, bearing
the frown of God, doomed to His retributive judgment. He takes up the broken
thread of His lamentation: "But now they are hid from thine eyes. For the
days shall come upon thee, that thine enemies shall cast a trench about
thee, and compass thee round, and keep thee in on every side, and shall lay
thee even with the ground, and thy children within thee; and they shall not
leave in thee one stone upon another; because thou knewest not the time of
thy visitation."

Christ came to save Jerusalem with her children; but Pharisaical pride,
hypocrisy, jealousy, and malice had prevented Him from accomplishing His
purpose. Jesus knew the terrible retribution which would be visited upon the
doomed city. He saw Jerusalem encompassed with armies, the besieged
inhabitants driven to starvation and death, mothers feeding upon the dead
bodies of their own children, and both parents and children snatching the
last morsel of food from one another, natural affection being destroyed by
the gnawing pangs of hunger. He saw that the stubbornness of the Jews, as
evinced in their rejection of His salvation, would also lead them to refuse
submission to the invading armies. He beheld Calvary, on which He was to be
lifted up, set with crosses as thickly as forest trees. He saw the wretched
inhabitants suffering torture on the rack and by crucifixion, the beautiful
palaces destroyed, the temple in ruins, and of its massive walls not one
stone left upon another, while the city was plowed like a field. Well might
the Saviour weep in agony in view of that fearful scene.

Jerusalem had been the child of His care, and as a tender father mourns over
a wayward son, so Jesus wept over the beloved city. How

578

can I give thee up? How can I see thee devoted to destruction? Must I let
thee go to fill up the cup of thine iniquity? One soul is of such value
that, in comparison with it, worlds sink into insignificance; but here was a
whole nation to be lost. When the fast westering sun should pass from sight
in the heavens, Jerusalem's day of grace would be ended. While the
procession was halting on the brow of Olivet, it was not yet too late for
Jerusalem to repent. The angel of mercy was then folding her wings to step
down from the golden throne to give place to justice and swift-coming
judgment. But Christ's great heart of love still pleaded for Jerusalem, that
had scorned His mercies, despised His warnings, and was about to imbrue her
hands in His blood. If Jerusalem would but repent, it was not yet too late.
While the last rays of the setting sun were lingering on temple, tower, and
pinnacle, would not some good angel lead her to the Saviour's love, and
avert her doom? Beautiful and unholy city, that had stoned the prophets,
that had rejected the Son of God, that was locking herself by her
impenitence in fetters of bondage,--her day of mercy was almost spent!

Yet again the Spirit of God speaks to Jerusalem. Before the day is done,
another testimony is borne to Christ. The voice of witness is lifted up,
responding to the call from a prophetic past. If Jerusalem will hear the
call, if she will receive the Saviour who is entering her gates, she may yet
be saved.

Reports have reached the rulers in Jerusalem that Jesus is approaching the
city with a great concourse of people. But they have no welcome for the Son
of God. In fear they go out to meet Him, hoping to disperse the throng. As
the procession is about to descend the Mount of Olives, it is intercepted by
the rulers. They inquire the cause of the tumultuous rejoicing. As they
question, "Who is this?" the disciples, filled with the spirit of
inspiration, answer this question. In eloquent strains they repeat the
prophecies concerning Christ:

Adam will tell you, It is the seed of the woman that shall bruise the
serpent's head.

Ask Abraham, he will tell you, It is "Melchizedek King of Salem," King of
Peace. Gen. 14:18.

Jacob will tell you, He is Shiloh of the tribe of Judah.

Isaiah will tell you, "Immanuel," "Wonderful, Counselor, The mighty God, The
everlasting Father, The Prince of Peace." Isa. 7:14; 9:6.

Jeremiah will tell you, The Branch of David, "the Lord our Righteousness."
Jer. 23:6.

                                                                     579


Daniel will tell you, He is the Messiah.

Hosea will tell you, He is "the Lord God of hosts; the Lord is His
memorial." Hosea 12:5.

John the Baptist will tell you, He is "the Lamb of God, which taketh away
the sin of the world." John 1:29.

The great Jehovah has proclaimed from His throne, "This is My beloved Son."
Matt. 3:17.

We, His disciples, declare, This is Jesus, the Messiah, the Prince of life,
the Redeemer of the world.

And the prince of the powers of darkness acknowledges Him, saying, "I know
Thee who Thou art, the Holy One of God." Mark 1:24.




(580)

                             Chapter 64

                             A Doomed People


The triumphal ride of Christ into Jerusalem was the dim foreshadowing of His
coming in the clouds of heaven with power and glory, amid the triumph of
angels and the rejoicing of the saints. Then will be fulfilled the words of
Christ to the priests and Pharisees: "Ye shall not see Me henceforth, till
ye shall say, Blessed is He that cometh in the name of the Lord." Matt.
23:39. In prophetic vision Zechariah was shown that day of final triumph;
and he beheld also the doom of those who at the first advent had rejected
Christ: "They shall look upon Me whom they have pierced, and they shall
mourn for Him, as one mourneth for his only son, and shall be in bitterness
for Him, as one that is in bitterness for his first-born." Zech. 12:10. This
scene Christ foresaw when He beheld the city and wept over it. In the
temporal ruin of Jerusalem He saw the final destruction of that people who
were guilty of the blood of the Son of God.

The disciples saw the hatred of the Jews to Christ, but they did not yet see
to what it would lead. They did not yet understand the true condition of
Israel, nor comprehend the retribution that was to fall upon Jerusalem. This
Christ opened to them by a significant object lesson.

The last appeal to Jerusalem had been in vain. The priests and rulers had
heard the prophetic voice of the past echoed by the multitude, in answer to
the question, "Who is this?" but they did not accept it as

                                                                     581

the voice of Inspiration. In anger and amazement they tried to silence the
people. There were Roman officers in the throng, and to them His enemies
denounced Jesus as the leader of a rebellion. They represented that He was
about to take possession of the temple, and reign as king in Jerusalem.

But the calm voice of Jesus hushed for a moment the clamorous throng as He
again declared that He had not come to establish a temporal rule; He should
soon ascend to His Father, and His accusers would see Him no more until He
should come again in glory. Then, too late for their salvation, they would
acknowledge Him. These words Jesus spoke with sadness and with singular
power. The Roman officers were silenced and subdued. Their hearts, though
strangers to divine influence, were moved as they had never been moved
before. In the calm, solemn face of Jesus they read love, benevolence, and
quiet dignity. They were stirred by a sympathy they could not understand.
Instead of arresting Jesus, they were more inclined to pay Him homage.
Turning upon the priests and rulers, they charged them with creating the
disturbance. These leaders, chagrined and defeated, turned to the people
with their complaints, and disputed angrily among themselves.

Meanwhile Jesus passed unnoticed to the temple. All was quiet there, for the
scene upon Olivet had called away the people. For a short time Jesus
remained at the temple, looking upon it with sorrowful eyes. Then He
withdrew with His disciples, and returned to Bethany. When the people sought
for Him to place Him on the throne, He was not to be found.

The entire night Jesus spent in prayer, and in the morning He came again to
the temple. On the way He passed a fig orchard. He was hungry, "and seeing a
fig tree afar off having leaves, He came, if haply He might find anything
thereon: and when He came to it, He found nothing but leaves; for the time
of figs was not yet."

It was not the season for ripe figs, except in certain localities; and on
the highlands about Jerusalem it might truly be said, "The time of figs was
not yet." But in the orchard to which Jesus came, one tree appeared to be in
advance of all the others. It was already covered with leaves. It is the
nature of the fig tree that before the leaves open, the growing fruit
appears. Therefore this tree in full leaf gave promise of well-developed
fruit. But its appearance was deceptive. Upon searching its branches, from
the lowest bough to the topmost twig, Jesus found "nothing but leaves." It
was a mass of pretentious foliage, nothing more.

582


Christ uttered against it a withering curse. "No man eat fruit of thee
hereafter forever," He said. The next morning, as the Saviour and His
disciples were again on their way to the city, the blasted branches and
drooping leaves attracted their attention. "Master," said Peter, "behold,
the fig tree which Thou cursedst is withered away."

Christ's act in cursing the fig tree had astonished the disciples. It seemed
to them unlike His ways and works. Often they had heard Him declare that He
came not to condemn the world, but that the world through Him might be
saved. They remembered His words, "The Son of man is not come to destroy
men's lives, but to save them." Luke 9:56. His wonderful works had been done
to restore, never to destroy. The disciples had known Him only as the
Restorer, the Healer. This act stood alone. What was its purpose? they
questioned.

God "delighteth in mercy." "As I live, saith the Lord God, I have no
pleasure in the death of the wicked." Micah 7:18; Ezek. 33:11. To Him the
work of destruction and the denunciation of judgment is a "strange work."
Isa. 28:21. But it is in mercy and love that He lifts the veil from the
future, and reveals to men the results of a course of sin.

The cursing of the fig tree was an acted parable. That barren tree,
flaunting its pretentious foliage in the very face of Christ, was a symbol
of the Jewish nation. The Saviour desired to make plain to His disciples the
cause and the certainty of Israel's doom. For this purpose He invested the
tree with moral qualities, and made it the expositor of divine truth. The
Jews stood forth distinct from all other nations, professing

                                                                     583

allegiance to God. They had been specially favored by Him, and they laid
claim to righteousness above every other people. But they were corrupted by
the love of the world and the greed of gain. They boasted of their
knowledge, but they were ignorant of the requirements of God, and were full
of hypocrisy. Like the barren tree, they spread their pretentious branches
aloft, luxuriant in appearance, and beautiful to the eye, but they yielded
"nothing but leaves." The Jewish religion, with its magnificent temple, its
sacred altars, its mitered priests and impressive ceremonies, was indeed
fair in outward appearance, but humility, love, and benevolence were
lacking.

All the trees in the fig orchard were destitute of fruit; but the leafless
trees raised no expectation, and caused no disappointment. By these trees
the Gentiles were represented. They were as destitute as were the Jews of
godliness; but they had not professed to serve God. They made no boastful
pretensions to goodness. They were blind to the works and ways of God. With
them the time of figs was not yet. They were still waiting for a day which
would bring them light and hope. The Jews, who had received greater
blessings from God, were held accountable for their abuse of these gifts.
The privileges of which they boasted only increased their guilt.

Jesus had come to the fig tree hungry, to find food. So He had come to
Israel, hungering to find in them the fruits of righteousness. He had
lavished on them His gifts, that they might bear fruit for the blessing of
the world. Every opportunity and privilege had been granted them, and in
return He sought their sympathy and co-operation in His work of grace. He
longed to see in them self-sacrifice and compassion, zeal for God, and a
deep yearning of soul for the salvation of their fellow men. Had they kept
the law of God, they would have done the same unselfish work that Christ
did. But love to God and man was eclipsed by pride and self-sufficiency.
They brought ruin upon themselves by refusing to minister to others. The
treasures of truth which God had committed to them, they did not give to the
world. In the barren tree they might read both their sin and its punishment.
Withered beneath the Saviour's curse, standing forth sere and blasted, dried
up by the roots, the fig tree showed what the Jewish people would be when
the grace of God was removed from them. Refusing to impart blessing, they
would no longer receive it. "O Israel," the Lord says, "thou hast destroyed
thyself." Hosea 13:9.

584


The warning is for all time. Christ's act in cursing the tree which His own
power had created stands as a warning to all churches and to all Christians.
No one can live the law of God without ministering to others. But there are
many who do not live out Christ's merciful, unselfish life. Some who think
themselves excellent Christians do not understand what constitutes service
for God. They plan and study to please themselves. They act only in
reference to self. Time is of value to them only as they can gather for
themselves. In all the affairs of life this is their object. Not for others
but for themselves do they minister. God created them to live in a world
where unselfish service must be performed. He designed them to help their
fellow men in every possible way. But self is so large that they cannot see
anything else. They are not in touch with humanity. Those who thus live for
self are like the fig tree, which made every pretension but was fruitless.
They observe the forms of worship, but without repentance or faith. In
profession they honor the law of God, but obedience is lacking. They say,
but do not. In the sentence pronounced on the fig tree Christ demonstrates
how hateful in His eyes is this vain pretense. He declares that the open
sinner is less guilty than is he who professes to serve God, but who bears
no fruit to His glory.

The parable of the fig tree, spoken before Christ's visit to Jerusalem, had
a direct connection with the lesson He taught in cursing the fruitless tree.
For the barren tree of the parable the gardener pleaded, Let it alone this
year, until I shall dig about it and dress it; and if it bear fruit, well;
but if not, then after that thou shalt cut it down. Increased care was to be
given the unfruitful tree. It was to have every advantage. But if it
remained fruitless, nothing could save it from destruction. In the parable
the result of the gardener's work was not foretold. It depended upon that
people to whom Christ's words were spoken. They were represented by the
fruitless tree, and it rested with them to decide their own destiny. Every
advantage that Heaven could bestow was given them, but they did not profit
by their increased blessings. By Christ's act in cursing the barren fig
tree, the result was shown. They had determined their own destruction.

For more than a thousand years the Jewish nation had abused God's mercy and
invited His judgments. They had rejected His warnings and slain His
prophets. For these sins the people of Christ's day made themselves
responsible by following the same course. In the rejection

                                                                     587

of their present mercies and warnings lay the guilt of that generation. The
fetters which the nation had for centuries been forging, the people of
Christ's day were fastening upon themselves.

In every age there is given to men their day of light and privilege, a
probationary time in which they may become reconciled to God. But there is a
limit to this grace. Mercy may plead for years and be slighted and rejected;
but there comes a time when mercy makes her last plea. The heart becomes so
hardened that it ceases to respond to the Spirit of God. Then the sweet,
winning voice entreats the sinner no longer, and reproofs and warnings
cease.

That day had come to Jerusalem. Jesus wept in anguish over the doomed city,
but He could not deliver her. He had exhausted every resource. In rejecting
the warnings of God's Spirit, Israel had rejected the only means of help.
There was no other power by which they could be delivered.

The Jewish nation was a symbol of the people of all ages who scorn the
pleadings of Infinite Love. The tears of Christ when He wept over Jerusalem
were for the sins of all time. In the judgments pronounced upon Israel,
those who reject the reproofs and warnings of God's Holy Spirit, may read
their own condemnation.

In this generation there are many who are treading on the same ground as
were the unbelieving Jews. They have witnessed the manifestation of the
power of God; the Holy Spirit has spoken to their hearts; but they cling to
their unbelief and resistance. God sends them warnings and reproof, but they
are not willing to confess their errors, and they reject His message and His
messenger. The very means He uses for their recovery becomes to them a stone
of stumbling.

The prophets of God were hated by apostate Israel because through them their
hidden sins were brought to light. Ahab regarded Elijah as his enemy because
the prophet was faithful to rebuke the king's secret iniquities. So today
the servant of Christ,the reprover of sin, meets with scorn and rebuffs.
Bible truth, the religion of Christ, struggles against a strong current of
moral impurity. Prejudice is even stronger in the hearts of men now than in
Christ's day. Christ did not fulfill men's expectations; His life was a
rebuke to their sins, and they rejected Him. So now the truth of God's word
does not harmonize with men's practices and their natural inclination, and
thousands reject its light. Men prompted by Satan cast doubt upon God's
word, and choose to exercise

588

their independent judgment. They choose darkness rather than light, but they
do it at the peril of their souls. Those who caviled at the words of Christ,
found ever-increased cause for cavil, until they turned from the Truth and
the Life. So it is now. God does not propose to remove every objection which
the carnal heart may bring against His truth. To those who refuse the
precious rays of light which would illuminate the darkness, the mysteries of
God's word remain such forever. From them the truth is hidden. They walk
blindly, and know not the ruin before them.

Christ overlooked the world and all ages from the height of Olivet; and His
words are applicable to every soul who slights the pleadings of divine
mercy. Scorner of His love, He addresses you today. It is "thou, even thou,"
who shouldest know the things that belong to thy peace. Christ is shedding
bitter tears for you, who have no tears to shed for yourself. Already that
fatal hardness of heart which destroyed the Pharisees is manifest in you.
And every evidence of the grace of God, every ray of divine light, is either
melting and subduing the soul, or confirming it in hopeless impenitence.

Christ foresaw that Jerusalem would remain obdurate and impenitent; yet all
the guilt, all the consequences of rejected mercy, lay at her own door. Thus
it will be with every soul who is following the same course. The Lord
declares, "O Israel, thou hast destroyed thyself." "Hear, O earth: behold, I
will bring evil upon this people, even the fruit of their thoughts, because
they have not hearkened unto My words, nor to My law, but rejected it."
Hosea 13:9; Jer. 6:19.




                                                                     (589)

                             Chapter 65

                             The Temple Cleansed Again


At the beginning of His ministry, Christ had driven from the temple those
who defiled it by their unholy traffic; and His stern and godlike demeanor
had struck terror to the hearts of the scheming traders. At the close of His
mission He came again to the temple, and found it still desecrated as
before. The condition of things was even worse than before. The outer court
of the temple was like a vast cattle yard. With the cries of the animals and
the sharp chinking of coin was mingled the sound of angry altercation
between traffickers, and among them were heard the voices of men in sacred
office. The dignitaries of the temple were themselves engaged in buying and
selling and the exchange of money. So completely were they controlled by
their greed of gain that in the sight of God they were no better than
thieves.

Little did the priests and rulers realize the solemnity of the work which it
was theirs to perform. At every Passover and Feast of Tabernacles, thousands
of animals were slain, and their blood was caught by the priests and poured
upon the altar. The Jews had become familiar with the offering of blood, and
had almost lost sight of the fact that it was sin which made necessary all
this shedding of the blood of beasts. They did not discern that it
prefigured the blood of God's dear Son,

590

which was to be shed for the life of the world, and that by the offering of
sacrifices men were to be directed to a crucified Redeemer.

Jesus looked upon the innocent victims of sacrifice, and saw how the Jews
had made these great convocations scenes of bloodshed and cruelty. In place
of humble repentance of sin, they had multiplied the sacrifice of beasts, as
if God could be honored by a heartless service. The priests and rulers had
hardened their hearts through selfishness and avarice. The very symbols
pointing to the Lamb of God they had made a means of getting gain. Thus in
the eyes of the people the sacredness of the sacrificial service had been in
a great measure destroyed. The indignation of Jesus was stirred; He knew
that His blood, so soon to be shed for the sins of the world, would be as
little appreciated by the priests and elders as was the blood of beasts
which they kept incessantly flowing.

Against these practices Christ had spoken through the prophets. Samuel had
said, "Hath the Lord as great delight in burnt offerings and sacrifices, as
in obeying the voice of the Lord? Behold, to obey is better than sacrifice,
and to hearken than the fat of rams." And Isaiah, seeing in prophetic vision
the apostasy of the Jews, addressed them as rulers of Sodom and Gomorrah:
"Hear the word of the Lord, ye rulers of Sodom; give ear unto the law of our
God, ye people of Gomorrah. To what purpose is the multitude of your
sacrifices unto Me? saith the Lord: I am full of the burnt offerings of
rams, and the fat of fed beasts; and I delight not in the blood of bullocks,
or of lambs, or of he-goats. When ye come to appear before Me, who hath
required this at your hand, to tread My courts?" "Wash you, make you clean;
put away the evil of your doings from before Mine eyes; cease to do evil;
learn to do well; seek judgment, relieve the oppressed, judge the
fatherless, plead for the widow." 1 Sam. 15:22; Isa. 1:10-12, 16,17.

He who had Himself given these prophecies now for the last time repeated the
warning. In fulfillment of prophecy the people had proclaimed Jesus king of
Israel. He had received their homage, and accepted the office of king. In
this character He must act. He knew that His efforts to reform a corrupt
priesthood would be in vain; nevertheless His work must be done; to an
unbelieving people the evidence of His divine mission must be given.

Again the piercing look of Jesus swept over the desecrated court of the
temple. All eyes were turned toward Him. Priest and ruler, Pharisee

                                                                     591

and Gentile, looked with astonishment and awe upon Him who stood before them
with the majesty of heaven's King. Divinity flashed through humanity,
investing Christ with a dignity and glory He had never manifested before.
Those standing nearest Him drew as far away as the crowd would permit.
Except for a few of His disciples, the Saviour stood alone. Every sound was
hushed. The deep silence seemed unbearable. Christ spoke with a power that
swayed the people like a mighty tempest: "It is written, My house shall be
called the house of prayer; but ye have made it a den of thieves." His voice
sounded like a trumpet through the temple. The displeasure of His
countenance seemed like consuming fire. With authority He commanded, "Take
these things hence." John 2:16.

Three years before, the rulers of the temple had been ashamed of their
flight before the command of Jesus. They had since wondered at their own
fears, and their unquestioning obedience to a single humble

592

Man. They had felt that it was impossible for their undignified surrender to
be repeated. Yet they were now more terrified than before, and in greater
haste to obey His command. There were none who dared question His authority.
Priests and traders fled from His presence, driving their cattle before
them.

On the way from the temple they were met by a throng who came with their
sick inquiring for the Great Healer. The report given by the fleeing people
caused some of these to turn back. They feared to meet One so powerful,
whose very look had driven the priests and rulers from His presence. But a
large number pressed through the hurrying crowd, eager to reach Him who was
their only hope. When the multitude fled from the temple, many had remained
behind. These were now joined by the newcomers. Again the temple court was
filled by the sick and the dying, and once more Jesus ministered to them.

After a season the priests and rulers ventured back to the temple. When the
panic had abated, they were seized with anxiety to know what would be the
next movement of Jesus. They expected Him to take the throne of David.
Quietly returning to the temple, they heard the voices of men, women, and
children praising God. Upon entering, they stood transfixed before the
wonderful scene. They saw the sick healed, the blind restored to sight, and
deaf receive their hearing, and the crippled leap for joy. The children were
foremost in the rejoicing. Jesus had healed their maladies; He had clasped
them in His arms, received their kisses of grateful affection, and some of
them had fallen asleep upon His breast as He was teaching the people. Now
with glad voices the children sounded His praise. They repeated the hosannas
of the day before, and waved palm branches triumphantly before the Saviour.
The temple echoed and re-echoed with their acclamations, "Blessed be He that
cometh in the name of the Lord!" "Behold, thy King cometh unto thee; He is
just, and having salvation!" Ps. 118:26; Zech. 9:9. "Hosanna to the Son of
David!"

The sound of these happy, unrestrained voices was an offense to the rulers
of the temple. They set about putting a stop to such demonstrations. They
represented to the people that the house of God was desecrated by the feet
of the children and the shouts of rejoicing. Finding that their words made
no impression on the people, the rulers appealed to Christ: "Hearest Thou
what these say? And Jesus saith unto them, Yea; have ye never read, Out of
the mouth of babes and sucklings

                                                                     593

Thou hast perfected praise?" Prophecy had foretold that Christ should be
proclaimed as king, and that word must be fulfilled. The priests and rulers
of Israel refused to herald His glory, and God moved upon the children to be
His witnesses. Had the voices of the children been silent, the very pillars
of the temple would have sounded the Saviour's praise.

The Pharisees were utterly perplexed and disconcerted. One whom they could
not intimidate was in command. Jesus had taken His position as guardian of
the temple. Never before had He assumed such kingly authority. Never before
had His words and works possessed so great power. He had done marvelous
works throughout Jerusalem, but never before in a manner so solemn and
impressive. In presence of the people who had witnessed His wonderful works,
the priests and rulers dared not show Him open hostility. Though enraged and
confounded by His answer, they were unable to accomplish anything further
that day.

The next morning the Sanhedrin again considered what course to pursue toward
Jesus. Three years before, they had demanded a sign of His Messiahship.
Since that time He had wrought mighty works throughout the land. He had
healed the sick, miraculously fed thousands of people, walked upon the
waves, and spoken peace to the troubled sea. He had repeatedly read the
hearts of men as an open book; He had cast out demons, and raised the dead.
The rulers had before them the evidences of His Messiahship. They now
decided to demand no sign of His authority, but to draw out some admission
or declaration by which He might be condemned.

Repairing to the temple where He was teaching, they proceeded to question
Him: "By what authority doest Thou these things? and who gave Thee this
authority?" They expected Him to claim that His authority was from God. Such
an assertion they intended to deny. But Jesus met them with a question
apparently pertaining to another subject, and He made His reply to them
conditional on their answering this question. "The baptism of John," He
said, "whence was it? from heaven, or of men?"

The priests saw that they were in a dilemma from which no sophistry could
extricate them. If they said that John's baptism was from heaven, their
inconsistency would be made apparent. Christ would say, Why have ye not then
believed on him? John had testified of Christ, "Behold

594

the Lamb of God, which taketh away the sin of the world." John 1:29. If the
priests believed John's testimony, how could they deny the Messiahship of
Christ? If they declared their real belief, that John's ministry was of men,
they would bring upon themselves a storm of indignation; for the people
believed John to be a prophet.

With intense interest the multitude awaited the decision. They knew that the
priests had professed to accept the ministry of John, and they expected them
to acknowledge without a question that he was sent from God. But after
conferring secretly together, the priests decided not to commit themselves.
Hypocritically professing ignorance, they said, "We cannot tell." "Neither
tell I you," said Christ, "by what authority I do these things."

Scribes, priests, and rulers were all silenced. Baffled and disappointed,
they stood with lowering brows, not daring to press further questions upon
Christ. By their cowardice and indecision they had in a great measure
forfeited the respect of the people, who now stood by, amused to see these
proud, self-righteous men defeated.

All these sayings and doings of Christ were important, and their influence
was to be felt in an ever-increasing degree after His crucifixion and
ascension. Many of those who had anxiously awaited the result of the
questioning of Jesus were finally to become His disciples, first drawn
toward Him by His words on that eventful day. The scene in the temple court
was never to fade from their minds. The contrast between Jesus and the high
priest as they talked together was marked. The proud dignitary of the temple
was clothed in rich and costly garments. Upon his head was a glittering
tiara. His bearing was majestic, his hair and his long flowing beard were
silvered by age. His appearance awed the beholders. Before this august
personage stood the Majesty of heaven, without adornment or display. His
garments were travel stained; His face was pale, and expressed a patient
sadness; yet written there were dignity and benevolence that contrasted
strangely with the proud, self-confident, and angry air of the high priest.
Many of those who witnessed the words and deeds of Jesus in the temple from
that time enshrined Him in their hearts as a prophet of God. But as the
popular feeling turned in His favor, the hatred of the priests toward Jesus
increased. The wisdom by which He escaped the snares set for His feet, being
a new evidence of His divinity, added fuel to their wrath.

In His contest with the rabbis, it was not Christ's purpose to humiliate His
opponents. He was not glad to see them in a hard place. He had

                                                                     595

an important lesson to teach. He had mortified His enemies by allowing them
to be entangled in the net they had spread for Him. Their acknowledged
ignorance in regard to the character of John's baptism gave Him an
opportunity to speak, and He improved the opportunity by presenting before
them their real position, adding another warning to the many already given.

"What think ye?" He said. "A certain man had two sons; and he came to the
first, and said, Son, go work today in my vineyard. He answered and said, I
will not: but afterward he repented, and went. And he came to the second,
and said likewise. And he answered and said, I go, sir: and went not.
Whether of them twain did the will of his father?"

This abrupt question threw His hearers off their guard. They had followed
the parable closely, and now immediately answered, "The first." Fixing His
steady eye upon them, Jesus responded in stern and solemn tones: "Verily I
say unto you, That the publicans and the harlots go into the kingdom of God
before you. For John came unto you in the way of righteousness, and ye
believed him not: but the publicans and the harlots believed him: and ye,
when ye had seen it, repented not afterward, that ye might believe him."

The priests and rulers could not but give a correct answer to Christ's
question, and thus He obtained their opinion in favor of the first son. This
son represented the publicans, those who were despised and hated by the
Pharisees. The publicans had been grossly immoral. They had indeed been
transgressors of the law of God, showing in their lives an absolute
resistance to His requirements. They had been unthankful and unholy; when
told to go and work in the Lord's vineyard, they had given a contemptuous
refusal. But when John came, preaching repentance and baptism, the publicans
received his message and were baptized.

The second son represented the leading men of the Jewish nation. Some of the
Pharisees had repented and received the baptism of John; but the leaders
would not acknowledge that he came from God. His warnings and denunciations
did not lead them to reformation. They "rejected the counsel of God against
themselves, being not baptized of him." Luke 7:30. They treated his message
with disdain. Like the second son, who, when called, said, "I go, sir," but
went not, the priests and rulers professed obedience, but acted
disobedience. They made great professions of piety, they claimed to be
obeying the law of God, but they rendered only a false obedience. The
publicans were denounced and cursed by the Pharisees as infidels; but they
showed by their faith and works that

596

they were going into the kingdom of heaven before those self-righteous men
who had been given great light, but whose works did not correspond to their
profession of godliness.

The priests and rulers were unwilling to bear these searching truths; they
remained silent, however, hoping that Jesus would say something which they
could turn against Him; but they had still more to bear.

"Hear another parable," Christ said: "There was a certain householder, which
planted a vineyard, and hedged it round about, and digged a wine press in
it, and built a tower, and let it out to husbandmen, and went into a far
country: and when the time of the fruit drew near, he sent his servants to
the husbandmen, that they might receive the fruits of it. And the husbandmen
took his servants, and beat one, and killed another, and stoned another.
Again, he sent other servants more than the first: and they did unto them
likewise. But last of all he sent unto them his son, saying, They will
reverence my son. But when the husbandmen saw the son, they said among
themselves, This is the heir; come, let us kill him, and let us seize on his
inheritance. And they caught him, and cast him out of the vineyard, and slew
him. When the lord therefore of the vineyard cometh, what will he do unto
those husbandmen?"

Jesus addressed all the people present; but the priests and rulers answered.
"He will miserably destroy those wicked men," they said, "and will let out
his vineyard unto other husbandmen, which shall render him the fruits in
their seasons." The speakers had not at first perceived the application of
the parable, but they now saw that they had pronounced their own
condemnation. In the parable the householder represented God, the vineyard
the Jewish nation, and the hedge the divine law which was their protection.
The tower was a symbol of the temple. The lord of the vineyard had done
everything needful for its prosperity. "What could have been done more to my
vineyard," he says, "that I have not done in it." Isa. 5:4. Thus was
represented God's unwearied care for Israel. And as the husbandmen were to
return to the lord a due proportion of the fruits of the vineyard, so God's
people were to honor Him by a life corresponding to their sacred privileges.
But as the husbandmen had killed the servants whom the master sent to them
for fruit, so the Jews had put to death the prophets whom God sent to call
them to repentance. Messenger after messenger had been slain. Thus far the
application of the parable could not be questioned, and in what followed it
was not less evident. In the beloved son whom the lord of the vineyard
finally sent to his disobedient servants, and whom they

                                                                     597

seized and slew, the priests and rulers saw a distinct picture of Jesus and
His impending fate. Already they were planning to slay Him whom the Father
had sent to them as a last appeal. In the retribution inflicted upon the
ungrateful husbandmen was portrayed the doom of those who should put Christ
to death.

Looking with pity upon them, the Saviour continued, "Did ye never read in
the Scriptures, The stone which the builders rejected, the same is become
the head of the corner: this is the Lord's doing, and it is marvelous in our
eyes? Therefore say I unto you, The kingdom of God shall be taken from you,
and given to a nation bringing forth the fruits thereof. And whosoever shall
fall on this stone shall be broken: but on whomsoever it shall fall, it will
grind him to powder."

This prophecy the Jews had often repeated in the synagogues, applying it to
the coming Messiah. Christ was the cornerstone of the Jewish economy, and of
the whole plan of salvation. This foundation stone the Jewish builders, the
priests and rulers of Israel, were now rejecting. The Saviour called their
attention to the prophecies that would show them their danger. By every
means in His power He sought to make plain to them the nature of the deed
they were about to do.

And His words had another purpose. In asking the question, "When the lord
therefore of the vineyard cometh, what will he do unto those husbandmen?"
Christ designed that the Pharisees should answer as they did. He designed
that they should condemn themselves. His warnings, failing to arouse them to
repentance, would seal their doom, and He wished them to see that they had
brought ruin on themselves. He designed to show them the justice of God in
the withdrawal of their national privileges, which had already begun, and
which would end, not only in the destruction of their temple and their city,
but in the dispersion of the nation.

The hearers recognized the warning. But notwithstanding the sentence they
themselves had pronounced, the priests and rulers were ready to fill out the
picture by saying, "This is the heir; come, let us kill him." "But when they
sought to lay hands on Him, they feared the multitude," for the public
sentiment was in Christ's favor.

In quoting the prophecy of the rejected stone, Christ referred to an actual
occurrence in the history of Israel. The incident was connected with the
building of the first temple. While it had a special application at the time
of Christ's first advent, and should have appealed with special force to the
Jews, it has also a lesson for us. When the temple of Solomon

598

was erected, the immense stones for the walls and the foundation were
entirely prepared at the quarry; after they were brought to the place of
building, not an instrument was to be used upon them; the workmen had only
to place them in position. For use in the foundation, one stone of unusual
size and peculiar shape had been brought; but the workmen could find no
place for it, and would not accept it. It was an annoyance to them as it lay
unused in their way. Long it remained a rejected stone. But when the
builders came to the laying of the corner, they searched for a long time to
find a stone of sufficient size and strength, and of the proper shape, to
take that particular place, and bear the great weight which would rest upon
it. Should they make an unwise choice for this important place, the safety
of the entire building would be endangered. They must find a stone capable
of resisting the influence of the sun, of frost, and of tempest. Several
stones had at different times been chosen, but under the pressure of immense
weights they had crumbled to pieces. Others could not bear the test of the
sudden atmospheric changes. But at last attention was called to the stone so
long rejected. It had been exposed to the air, to sun and storm, without
revealing the slightest crack. The builders examined this stone. It had
borne every test but one. If it could bear the test of severe pressure, they
decided to accept it for the cornerstone. The trial was made. The stone was
accepted, brought to its assigned position, and found to be an exact fit. In
prophetic vision, Isaiah was shown that this stone was a symbol of Christ.
He says:

"Sanctify the Lord of hosts Himself; and let Him be your fear, and let Him
be your dread. And He shall be for a sanctuary; but for a stone of stumbling
and for a rock of offense to both the houses of Israel, for a gin and for a
snare to the inhabitants of Jerusalem. And many among them shall stumble,
and fall, and be broken, and be snared, and be taken." Carried down in
prophetic vision to the first advent, the prophet is shown that Christ is to
bear trials and tests of which the treatment of the chief cornerstone in the
temple of Solomon was symbolic. "Therefore thus saith the Lord God, Behold,
I lay in Zion for a foundation a stone, a tried stone, a precious
cornerstone, a sure foundation: he that believeth shall not make haste."
Isa. 8:13-15; 28:16.

In infinite wisdom, God chose the foundation stone, and laid it Himself. He
called it "a sure foundation." The entire world may lay upon it their
burdens and griefs; it can endure them all. With perfect safety they may
build upon it. Christ is a "tried stone." Those who trust in Him, He never
disappoints. He has borne every test. He has endured the pressure

                                                                     599

of Adam's guilt, and the guilt of his posterity, and has come off more than
conqueror of the powers of evil. He has borne the burdens cast upon Him by
every repenting sinner. In Christ the guilty heart has found relief. He is
the sure foundation. All who make Him their dependence rest in perfect
security.

In Isaiah's prophecy, Christ is declared to be both a sure foundation and a
stone of stumbling. The apostle Peter, writing by inspiration of the Holy
Spirit, clearly shows to whom Christ is a foundation stone, and to whom a
rock of offense:

"If so be ye have tasted that the Lord is gracious. To whom coming, as unto
a living stone, disallowed indeed of men, but chosen of God, and precious,
ye also, as lively stones, are built up a spiritual house, an holy
priesthood, to offer up spiritual sacrifices, acceptable to God by Jesus
Christ. Wherefore also it is contained in the Scripture, Behold, I lay in
Sion a chief cornerstone, elect, precious: and he that believeth on Him
shall not be confounded. Unto you therefore which believe He is precious:
but unto them which be disobedient, the stone which the builders disallowed,
the same is made the head of the corner, and a stone of stumbling, and a
rock of offense, even to them which stumble at the word, being disobedient."
1 Peter 2:3-8.

To those who believe, Christ is the sure foundation. These are they who fall
upon the Rock and are broken. Submission to Christ and faith in Him are here
represented. To fall upon the Rock and be broken is to give up our
self-righteousness and to go to Christ with the humility of a child,
repenting of our transgressions, and believing in His forgiving love. And so
also it is by faith and obedience that we build on Christ as our foundation.

Upon this living stone, Jews and Gentiles alike may build. This is the only
foundation upon which we may securely build. It is broad enough for all, and
strong enough to sustain the weight and burden of the whole world. And by
connection with Christ, the living stone, all who build upon this foundation
become living stones. Many persons are by their own endeavors hewn,
polished, and beautified; but they cannot become "living stones," because
they are not connected with Christ. Without this connection, no man can be
saved. Without the life of Christ in us, we cannot withstand the storms of
temptation. Our eternal safety depends upon our building upon the sure
foundation. Multitudes are today building upon foundations that have not
been tested. When the rain falls, and the tempest rages, and the floods
come,

600

their house will fall, because it is not founded upon the eternal Rock, the
chief cornerstone Christ Jesus.

"To them which stumble at the word, being disobedient," Christ is a rock of
offense. But "the stone which the builders disallowed, the same is made the
head of the corner." Like the rejected stone, Christ in His earthly mission
had borne neglect and abuse. He was "despised and rejected of men; a man of
sorrows, and acquainted with grief: . . . He was despised, and we esteemed
Him not." Isa. 53:3. But the time was near when He would be glorified. By
the resurrection from the dead He would be declared "the Son of God with
power." Rom. 1:4. At His second coming He would be revealed as Lord of
heaven and earth. Those who were now about to crucify Him would recognize
His greatness. Before the universe the rejected stone would become the head
of the corner.

And on "whomsoever it shall fall, it will grind him to powder." The people
who rejected Christ were soon to see their city and their nation destroyed.
Their glory would be broken, and scattered as the dust before the wind. And
what was it that destroyed the Jews? It was the rock which, had they built
upon it, would have been their security. It was the goodness of God
despised, the righteousness spurned, the mercy slighted. Men set themselves
in opposition to God, and all that would have been their salvation was
turned to their destruction. All that God ordained unto life they found to
be unto death. In the Jews' crucifixion of Christ was involved the
destruction of Jerusalem. The blood shed upon Calvary was the weight that
sank them to ruin for this world and for the world to come. So it will be in
the great final day, when judgment shall fall upon the rejecters of God's
grace. Christ, their rock of offense, will then appear to them as an
avenging mountain. The glory of His countenance, which to the righteous is
life, will be to the wicked a consuming fire. Because of love rejected,
grace despised, the sinner will be destroyed.

By many illustrations and repeated warnings, Jesus showed what would be the
result to the Jews of rejecting the Son of God. In these words He was
addressing all in every age who refuse to receive Him as their Redeemer.
Every warning is for them. The desecrated temple, the disobedient son, the
false husbandmen, the contemptuous builders, have their counterpart in the
experience of every sinner. Unless he repent, the doom which they
foreshadowed will be his.




                                                                     (601)

                             Chapter 66

                             Controversy


The priests and rulers had listened in silence to Christ's pointed rebukes.
They could not refute His charges. But they were only the more determined to
entrap Him, and with this object they sent to Him spies, "which should feign
themselves just men, that they might take hold of His words, that so they
might deliver Him unto the power and authority of the governor." They did
not send the old Pharisees whom Jesus had often met, but young men, who were
ardent and zealous, and whom, they thought, Christ did not know. These were
accompanied by certain of the Herodians, who were to hear Christ's words,
that they might testify against Him at His trial. The Pharisees and
Herodians had been bitter enemies, but they were now one in enmity to
Christ.

The Pharisees had ever chafed under the exaction of tribute by the Romans.
The payment of tribute they held to be contrary to the law of God. Now they
saw opportunity to lay a snare for Jesus. The spies came to Him, and with
apparent sincerity, as though desiring to know their duty, said, "Master, we
know that Thou sayest and teachest rightly, neither acceptest Thou the
person of any, but teachest the way of God truly: is it lawful for us to
give tribute unto Caesar, or no?"

602


The words, "We know that Thou sayest and teachest rightly," had they been
sincere, would have been a wonderful admission. But they were spoken to
deceive; nevertheless their testimony was true. The Pharisees did know that
Christ said and taught rightly, and by their own testimony will they be
judged.

Those who put the question to Jesus thought that they had sufficiently
disguised their purpose; but Jesus read their hearts as an open book, and
sounded their hypocrisy. "Why tempt ye Me?" He said; thus giving them a sign
they had not asked, by showing that He read their hidden purpose. They were
still more confused when He added, "Show Me a penny." They brought it, and
He asked them, "Whose image and superscription hath it? They answered and
said, Caesar's." Pointing to the inscription on the coin, Jesus said,
"Render therefore unto Caesar the things which are Caesar's; and unto God
the things that are God's."

The spies had expected Jesus to answer their question directly, in one way
or the other. If He should say, It is unlawful to give tribute to Caesar, He
would be reported to the Roman authorities and arrested for inciting
rebellion. But in case He should pronounce it lawful to pay the tribute,
they designed to accuse Him to the people as opposing the law of God. Now
they felt themselves baffled and defeated. Their plans were disarranged. The
summary manner in which their question had been settled left them nothing
further to say.

Christ's reply was no evasion, but a candid answer to the question. Holding
in His hand the Roman coin, upon which were stamped the name and image of
Caesar, He declared that since they were living under the protection of the
Roman power, they should render to that power the support it claimed, so
long as this did not conflict with a higher duty. But while peaceably
subject to the laws of the land, they should at all times give their first
allegiance to God.

The Saviour's words, "Render . . . unto God the things that are God's," were
a severe rebuke to the intriguing Jews. Had they faithfully fulfilled their
obligations to God, they would not have become a broken nation, subject to a
foreign power. No Roman ensign would have waved over Jerusalem, no Roman
sentinel would have stood at her gates, no Roman governor would have ruled
within her walls. The Jewish nation was then paying the penalty of its
apostasy from God.

When the Pharisees heard Christ's answer, "they marveled, and left Him, and
went their way." He had rebuked their hypocrisy and presumption,

                                                                     603

and in doing this He had stated a great principle, a principle that clearly
defines the limits of man's duty to the civil government and his duty to
God. In many minds a vexed question had been settled. Ever after they held
to the right principle. And although many went away dissatisfied, they saw
that the principle underlying the question had been clearly set forth, and
they marveled at Christ's far-seeing discernment.

No sooner were the Pharisees silenced than the Sadducees came forward with
their artful questions. The two parties stood in bitter opposition to each
other. The Pharisees were rigid adherents to tradition. They were exact in
outward ceremonies, diligent in washings, fastings, and long prayers, and
ostentatious in almsgiving. But Christ declared that they made void the law
of God by teaching for doctrines the commandments of men. As a class they
were bigoted and hypocritical; yet among them were persons of genuine piety,
who accepted Christ's teachings and became His disciples. The Sadducees
rejected the traditions of the Pharisees. They professed to believe the
greater portion of the Scriptures, and to regard them as the rule of action;
but practically they were skeptics and materialists.

The Sadducees denied the existence of angels, the resurrection of the dead,
and the doctrine of a future life, with its rewards and punishments. On all
these points they differed with the Pharisees. Between the two parties the
resurrection was especially a subject of controversy. The Pharisees had been
firm believers in the resurrection, but in these discussions

604

their views in regard to the future state became confused. Death became to
them an inexplicable mystery. Their inability to meet the arguments of the
Sadducees gave rise to continual irritation. The discussions between the two
parties usually resulted in angry disputes, leaving them farther apart than
before.

In numbers the Sadducees fell far below their opponents, and they had not so
strong a hold upon the common people; but many of them were wealthy, and
they had the influence which wealth imparts. In their ranks were included
most of the priests, and from among them the high priest was usually chosen.
This was, however, with the express stipulation that their skeptical
opinions should not be made prominent. On account of the numbers and
popularity of the Pharisees, it was necessary for the Sadducees to concede
outwardly to their doctrines when holding any priestly office; but the very
fact that they were eligible to such office gave influence to their errors.

The Sadducees rejected the teaching of Jesus; He was animated by a spirit
which they would not acknowledge as manifesting itself thus; and His
teaching in regard to God and the future life contradicted their theories.
They believed in God as the only being superior to man; but they argued that
an overruling providence and a divine foresight would deprive man of free
moral agency, and degrade him to the position of a slave. It was their
belief, that, having created man, God had left him to himself, independent
of a higher influence. They held that man was free to control his own life
and to shape the events of the world; that his destiny was in his own hands.
They denied that the Spirit of God works through human efforts or natural
means. Yet they still held that, through the proper employment of his
natural powers, man could become elevated and enlightened; that by rigorous
and austere exactions his life could be purified.

Their ideas of God molded their own character. As in their view He had no
interest in man, so they had little regard for one another; there was little
union among them. Refusing to acknowledge the influence of the Holy Spirit
upon human action, they lacked His power in their lives. Like the rest of
the Jews, they boasted much of their birthright as children of Abraham, and
of their strict adherence to the requirements of the law; but of the true
spirit of the law and the faith and benevolence of Abraham, they were
destitute. Their natural sympathies were brought within a narrow compass.
They believed it possible for all men to secure

                                                                     605

the comforts and blessings of life; and their hearts were not touched by the
wants and sufferings of others. They lived for themselves.

By His words and His works, Christ testified to a divine power that produces
supernatural results, to a future life beyond the present, to God as a
Father of the children of men, ever watchful of their true interests. He
revealed the working of divine power in benevolence and compassion that
rebuked the selfish exclusiveness of the Sadducees. He taught that both for
man's temporal and for his eternal good, God moves upon the heart by the
Holy Spirit. He showed the error of trusting to human power for that
transformation of character which can be wrought only by the Spirit of God.

This teaching the Sadducees were determined to discredit. In seeking a
controversy with Jesus, they felt confident of bringing Him into disrepute,
even if they could not secure His condemnation. The resurrection was the
subject on which they chose to question Him. Should He agree with them, He
would give still further offense to the Pharisees. Should He differ with
them, they designed to hold His teaching up to ridicule.

The Sadducees reasoned that if the body is to be composed of the same
particles of matter in its immortal as in its mortal state, then when raised
from the dead it must have flesh and blood, and must resume in the eternal
world the life interrupted on earth. In that case they concluded that
earthly relationships would be resumed, husband and wife would be reunited,
marriages consummated, and all things go on the same as before death, the
frailties and passions of this life being perpetuated in the life beyond.

In answer to their questions, Jesus lifted the veil from the future life.
"In the resurrection," He said, "they neither marry, nor are given in
marriage, but are as the angels of God in heaven." He showed that the
Sadducees were wrong in their belief. Their premises were false. "Ye do
err," He added, "not knowing the Scriptures, nor the power of God." He did
not charge them, as He had charged the Pharisees, with hypocrisy, but with
error of belief.

The Sadducees had flattered themselves that they of all men adhered most
strictly to the Scriptures. But Jesus showed that they had not known their
true meaning. That knowledge must be brought home to the heart by the
enlightenment of the Holy Spirit. Their ignorance of the Scriptures and the
power of God He declared to be the cause of their

606

confusion of faith and darkness of mind. They were seeking to bring the
mysteries of God within the compass of their finite reasoning. Christ called
upon them to open their minds to those sacred truths that would broaden and
strengthen the understanding. Thousands become infidels because their finite
minds cannot comprehend the mysteries of God. They cannot explain the
wonderful exhibition of divine power in His providences, therefore they
reject the evidences of such power, attributing them to natural agencies
which they can comprehend still less. The only key to the mysteries that
surround us is to acknowledge in them all the presence and power of God. Men
need to recognize God as the Creator of the universe, One who commands and
executes all things. They need a broader view of His character, and of the
mystery of His agencies.

Christ declared to His hearers that if there were no resurrection of the
dead, the Scriptures which they professed to believe would be of no avail.
He said, "But as touching the resurrection of the dead, have ye not read
that which was spoken unto you by God, saying, I am the God of Abraham, and
the God of Isaac, and the God of Jacob? God is not the God of the dead, but
of the living." God counts the things that are not as though they were. He
sees the end from the beginning, and beholds the result of His work as
though it were now accomplished. The precious dead, from Adam down to the
last saint who dies, will hear the voice of the Son of God, and will come
forth from the grave to immortal life. God will be their God, and they shall
be His people. There will be a close and tender relationship between God and
the risen saints. This condition, which is anticipated in His purpose, He
beholds as if it were already existing. The dead live unto Him.

By the words of Christ the Sadducees were put to silence. They could not
answer Him. Not a word had been spoken of which the least advantage could be
taken for His condemnation. His adversaries had gained nothing but the
contempt of the people.

The Pharisees, however, did not yet despair of driving Him to speak that
which they could use against Him. They prevailed upon a certain learned
scribe to question Jesus as to which of the ten precepts of the law was of
the greatest importance.

The Pharisees had exalted the first four commandments, which point out the
duty of man to his Maker, as of far greater consequence than the other six,
which define man's duty to his fellow man. As the result,

                                                                     607

they greatly failed of practical godliness. Jesus had shown the people their
great deficiency, and had taught the necessity of good works, declaring that
the tree is known by its fruits. For this reason He had been charged with
exalting the last six commandments above the first four.

The lawyer approached Jesus with a direct question, "Which is the first
commandment of all?" The answer of Christ is direct and forcible: "The first
of all the commandments is, Hear, O Israel; The Lord our God is one Lord:
and thou shalt love the Lord thy God with all thy heart, and with all thy
soul, and with all thy mind, and with all thy strength: this is the first
commandment." The second is like the first, said Christ; for it flows out of
it, "Thou shalt love thy neighbor as thyself. There is none other
commandment greater than these." "On these two commandments hang all the law
and the prophets."

The first four of the Ten Commandments are summed up in the one great
precept, "Thou shalt love the Lord thy God with all thy heart." The last six
are included in the other, "Thou shalt love thy neighbor as thyself." Both
these commandments are an expression of the principle of love. The first
cannot be kept and the second broken, nor can the second be kept while the
first is broken. When God has His rightful place on the throne of the heart,
the right place will be given to our neighbor. We shall love him as
ourselves. And only as we love God supremely is it possible to love our
neighbor impartially.

And since all the commandments are summed up in love to God and man, it
follows that not one precept can be broken without violating this principle.
Thus Christ taught His hearers that the law of God is not so many separate
precepts, some of which are of great importance, while others are of small
importance and may with impunity be ignored. Our Lord presents the first
four and the last six commandments as a divine whole, and teaches that love
to God will be shown by obedience to all His commandments.

The scribe who had questioned Jesus was well read in the law, and he was
astonished at His words. He did not expect Him to manifest so deep and
thorough a knowledge of the Scriptures. He had gained a broader view of the
principles underlying the sacred precepts. Before the assembled priests and
rulers he honestly acknowledged that Christ had given the right
interpretation to the law, saying:

"Well, Master, Thou hast said the truth: for there is one God; and there is
none other but He: and to love Him with all the heart, and

608

with all the understanding, and with all the soul, and with all the
strength, and to love his neighbor as himself, is more than all whole burnt
offerings and sacrifices."

The wisdom of Christ's answer had convicted the scribe. He knew that the
Jewish religion consisted in outward ceremonies rather than inward piety. He
had some sense of the worthlessness of mere ceremonial offerings, and the
faithless shedding of blood for expiation of sin. Love and obedience to God,
and unselfish regard for man, appeared to him of more value than all these
rites. The readiness of this man to acknowledge the correctness of Christ's
reasoning, and his decided and prompt response before the people, manifested
a spirit entirely different from that of the priests and rulers. The heart
of Jesus went out in pity to the honest scribe who had dared to face the
frowns of the priests and the threats of the rulers to speak the convictions
of his heart. "And when Jesus saw that he answered discreetly, He said unto
him, Thou art not far from the kingdom of God."

The scribe was near to the kingdom of God, in that he recognized deeds of
righteousness as more acceptable to God than burnt offerings and sacrifices.
But he needed to recognize the divine character of Christ, and through faith
in Him receive power to do the works of righteousness. The ritual service
was of no value, unless connected with Christ by living faith. Even the
moral law fails of its purpose, unless it is understood in its relation to
the Saviour. Christ had repeatedly shown that His Father's law contained
something deeper than mere authoritative commands. In the law is embodied
the same principle that is revealed in the gospel. The law points out man's
duty and shows him his guilt. To Christ he must look for pardon and for
power to do what the law enjoins.

The Pharisees had gathered close about Jesus as He answered the question of
the scribe. Now turning He put a question to them: "What think ye of Christ?
whose son is He?" This question was designed to test their belief concerning
the Messiah,--to show whether they regarded Him simply as a man or as the
Son of God. A chorus of voices answered, "The Son of David." This was the
title which prophecy had given to the Messiah. When Jesus revealed His
divinity by His mighty miracles, when He healed the sick and raised the
dead, the people had inquired among themselves, "Is not this the Son of
David?" The Syrophoenician woman, blind Bartimaeus, and many others had
cried to Him for help, "Have mercy on me, O Lord, Thou Son of David." Matt.
15:22. While riding into Jerusalem He had been hailed with the

                                                                     609

joyful shout, "Hosanna to the Son of David: Blessed is He that cometh in the
name of the Lord." Matt. 21:9. And the little children in the temple had
that day echoed the glad ascription. But many who called Jesus the Son of
David did not recognize His divinity. They did not understand that the Son
of David was also the Son of God.

In reply to the statement that Christ was the Son of David, Jesus said, "How
then doth David in Spirit [the Spirit of Inspiration from God] call Him
Lord, saying, The Lord said unto my Lord, Sit Thou on My right hand, till I
make Thine enemies Thy footstool? If David then call Him Lord, how is He his
son? And no man was able to answer Him a word, neither durst any man from
that day forth ask Him any more questions."




(610)

                             Chapter 67

                             Woes on the Pharisees


It was the last day of Christ's teaching in the temple. Of the vast throngs
that were gathered at Jerusalem, the attention of all had been attracted to
Him; the people had crowded the temple courts, watching the contest that had
been in progress, and they eagerly caught every word that fell from His
lips. Never before had such a scene been witnessed. There stood the young
Galilean, bearing no earthly honor or royal badge. Surrounding Him were
priests in their rich apparel, rulers with robes and badges significant of
their exalted station, and scribes with scrolls in their hands, to which
they made frequent reference. Jesus stood calmly before them, with the
dignity of a king. As one invested with the authority of heaven, He looked
unflinchingly upon His adversaries, who had rejected and despised His
teachings, and who thirsted for His life. They had assailed Him in great
numbers, but their schemes to ensnare and condemn Him had been in vain.
Challenge after challenge He had met, presenting the pure, bright truth in
contrast to the darkness and errors of the priests and Pharisees. He had set
before these leaders their real condition, and the retribution sure to
follow persistence in their evil deeds. The warning had been faithfully
given. Yet another

                                                                     611

work remained for Christ to do. Another purpose was still to be
accomplished.

The interest of the people in Christ and His work had steadily increased.
They were charmed with His teaching, but they were also greatly perplexed.
They had respected the priests and rabbis for their intelligence and
apparent piety. In all religious matters they had ever yielded implicit
obedience to their authority. Yet they now saw these men trying to cast
discredit upon Jesus, a teacher whose virtue and knowledge shone forth the
brighter from every assault. They looked upon the lowering countenances of
the priests and elders, and there saw discomfiture and confusion. They
marveled that the rulers would not believe on Jesus, when His teachings were
so plain and simple. They themselves knew not what course to take. With
eager anxiety they watched the movements of those whose counsel they had
always followed.

In the parables which Christ had spoken, it was His purpose both to warn the
rulers and to instruct the people who were willing to be taught. But there
was need to speak yet more plainly. Through their reverence for tradition
and their blind faith in a corrupt priesthood, the people were

612

enslaved. These chains Christ must break. The character of the priests,
rulers, and Pharisees must be more fully exposed.

"The scribes and the Pharisees," He said, "sit in Moses' seat: all therefore
whatsoever they bid you observe, that observe and do; but do not ye after
their works: for they say, and do not." The scribes and Pharisees claimed to
be invested with divine authority similar to that of Moses. They assumed to
take his place as expounders of the law and judges of the people. As such
they claimed from the people the utmost deference and obedience. Jesus bade
His hearers do that which the rabbis taught according to the law, but not to
follow their example. They themselves did not practice their own teaching.

And they taught much that was contrary to the Scriptures. Jesus said, "They
bind heavy burdens and grievous to be borne, and lay them on men's
shoulders; but they themselves will not move them with one of their
fingers." The Pharisees enjoined a multitude of regulations, having their
foundation in tradition, and unreasonably restricting personal liberty. And
certain portions of the law they so explained as to impose upon the people
observances which they themselves secretly ignored, and from which, when it
served their purpose, they actually claimed exemption.

To make a show of their piety was their constant aim. Nothing was held too
sacred to serve this end. To Moses God had said concerning His commandments,
"Thou shalt bind them for a sign upon thine hand, and they shall be as
frontlets between thine eyes." Deut. 6:8. These words have a deep meaning.
As the word of God is meditated upon and practiced, the whole man will be
ennobled. In righteous and merciful dealing, the hands will reveal, as a
signet, the principles of God's law. They will be kept clean from bribes,
and from all that is corrupt and deceptive. They will be active in works of
love and compassion. The eyes, directed toward a noble purpose, will be
clear and true. The expressive countenance, the speaking eye, will testify
to the blameless character of him who loves and honors the word of God. But
by the Jews of Christ's day all this was undiscerned. The command given to
Moses was construed into a direction that the precepts of Scripture should
be worn upon the person. They were accordingly written upon strips of
parchment, and bound in a conspicuous manner about the head and wrists. But
this did not cause the law of God to take a firmer hold of the mind and
heart. These parchments were worn merely as badges,

                                                                     613

to attract attention. They were thought to give the wearers an air of
devotion which would command the reverence of the people. Jesus struck a
blow at this vain pretense:

"But all their works they do for to be seen of men: they make broad their
phylacteries, and enlarge the borders of their garments, and love the
uppermost rooms at feasts, and the chief seats in the synagogues, and
greetings in the markets, and to be called of men, Rabbi, Rabbi. But be not
ye called Rabbi: for one is your Master, even Christ; and all ye are
brethren. And call no man your father upon the earth: for One is your
Father, which is in heaven. Neither be ye called master: for One is your
Master, even Christ." In such plain words the Saviour revealed the selfish
ambition that was ever reaching for place and power, displaying a mock
humility, while the heart was filled with avarice and envy. When persons
were invited to a feast, the guests were seated according to their rank, and
those who were given the most honorable place received the first attention
and special favors. The Pharisees were ever scheming to secure these honors.
This practice Jesus rebuked.

He also reproved the vanity shown in coveting the title of rabbi, or master.
Such a title, He declared, belonged not to men, but to Christ. Priests,
scribes, and rulers, expounders and administrators of the law, were all
brethren, children of one Father. Jesus impressed upon the people that they
were to give no man a title of honor indicating his control of their
conscience or their faith.

If Christ were on earth today, surrounded by those who bear the title of
"Reverend" or "Right Reverend," would He not repeat His saying, "Neither be
ye called masters: for One is your Master, even Christ"? The Scripture
declares of God, "Holy and reverend is His name." Ps. 111:9. To what human
being is such a title befitting? How little does man reveal of the wisdom
and righteousness it indicates! How many of those who assume this title are
misrepresenting the name and character of God! Alas, how often have worldly
ambition, despotism, and the basest sins been hidden under the broidered
garments of a high and holy office! The Saviour continued:

"But he that is greatest among you shall be your servant. And whosoever
shall exalt himself shall be abased; and he that shall humble himself shall
be exalted." Again and again Christ had taught that true greatness is
measured by moral worth. In the estimation of heaven, greatness of character
consists in living for the welfare of our fellow men, in

614

doing works of love and mercy. Christ the King of glory was a servant to
fallen man.

"Woe unto you, scribes and Pharisees, hypocrites," said Jesus; "for ye shut
up the kingdom of heaven against men: for ye neither go in yourselves,
neither suffer ye them that are entering to go in." By perverting the
Scriptures, the priests and lawyers blinded the minds of those who would
otherwise have received a knowledge of Christ's kingdom, and that inward,
divine life which is essential to true holiness.

"Woe unto you, scribes and Pharisees, hypocrites! for ye devour widows'
houses, and for a pretense make long prayer: therefore ye shall receive the
greater damnation." The Pharisees had great influence with the people, and
of this they took advantage to serve their own interests. They gained the
confidence of pious widows, and then represented it as a duty for them to
devote their property to religious purposes. Having secured control of their
money, the wily schemers used it for their own benefit. To cover their
dishonesty, they offered long prayers in public, and made a great show of
piety. This hypocrisy Christ declared would bring them the greater
damnation. The same rebuke falls upon many in our day who make a high
profession of piety. Their lives are stained by selfishness and avarice, yet
they throw over it all a garment of seeming purity, and thus for a time
deceive their fellow men. But they cannot deceive God. He reads every
purpose of the heart, and will judge every man according to his deeds.

Christ unsparingly condemned abuses, but He was careful not to lessen
obligation. He rebuked the selfishness that extorted and misapplied the
widow's gifts. At the same time He commended the widow who brought her
offering for God's treasury. Man's abuse of the gift could not turn God's
blessing from the giver.

Jesus was in the court where were the treasure chests, and He watched those
who came to deposit their gifts. Many of the rich brought large sums, which
they presented with great ostentation. Jesus looked upon them sadly, but
made no comment on their liberal offerings. Presently His countenance
lighted as He saw a poor widow approach hesitatingly, as though fearful of
being observed. As the rich and haughty swept by, to deposit their
offerings, she shrank back as if hardly daring to venture farther. And yet
she longed to do something, little though it might be, for the cause she
loved. She looked at the gift in her hand. It was very small in comparison
with the gifts of those around her, yet it was her all.

                                                                     615

Watching her opportunity, she hurriedly threw in her two mites, and turned
to hasten away. But in doing this she caught the eye of Jesus, which was
fastened earnestly upon her.

The Saviour called His disciples to Him, and bade them mark the widow's
poverty. Then His words of commendation fell upon her ear: "Of a truth I say
unto you, that this poor widow hath cast in more than they all." Tears of
joy filled her eyes as she felt that her act was understood and appreciated.
Many would have advised her to keep her pittance for her own use; given into
the hands of the well-fed priests, it would be lost sight of among the many
costly gifts brought to the treasury. But Jesus understood her motive. She
believed the service of the temple to be of God's appointment, and she was
anxious to do her utmost to sustain it. She did what she could, and her act
was to be a monument to her memory through all time, and her joy in
eternity. Her heart went with her gift; its value was estimated, not by the
worth of the coin, but by the love to God and the interest in His work that
had prompted the deed.

Jesus said of the poor widow, She "hath cast in more than they all." The
rich had bestowed from their abundance, many of them to be seen and honored
by men. Their large donations had deprived them of no comfort, or even
luxury; they had required no sacrifice, and could not be compared in value
with the widow's mite.

It is the motive that gives character to our acts, stamping them with
ignominy or with high moral worth. Not the great things which every eye sees
and every tongue praises does God account most precious. The little duties
cheerfully done, the little gifts which make no show, and which to human
eyes may appear worthless, often stand highest in His sight. A heart of
faith and love is dearer to God than the most costly gift. The poor widow
gave her living to do the little that she did. She deprived herself of food
in order to give those two mites to the cause she loved. And she did it in
faith, believing that her heavenly Father would not overlook her great need.
It was this unselfish spirit and childlike faith that won the Saviour's
commendation.

Among the poor there are many who long to show their gratitude to God for
His grace and truth. They greatly desire to share with their more prosperous
brethren in sustaining His service. These souls should not be repulsed. Let
them lay up their mites in the bank of heaven. If given from a heart filled
with love for God, these seeming trifles become consecrated gifts, priceless
offerings, which God smiles upon and blesses.

616


When Jesus said of the widow, She "hath cast in more than they all," His
words were true, not only of the motive, but of the results of her gift. The
"two mites which make a farthing" have brought to God's treasury an amount
of money far greater than the contributions of those rich Jews. The
influence of that little gift has been like a stream, small in its
beginning, but widening and deepening as it flowed down through the ages. In
a thousand ways it has contributed to the relief of the poor and the spread
of the gospel. Her example of self-sacrifice has acted and reacted upon
thousands of hearts in every land and in every age. It has appealed to both
the rich and the poor, and their offerings have swelled the value of her
gift. God's blessing upon the widow's mite has made it the source of great
results. So with every gift bestowed and every act performed with a sincere
desire for God's glory. It is linked with the purposes of Omnipotence. Its
results for good no man can measure.

The Saviour continued His denunciations of the scribes and Pharisees: "Woe
unto you, ye blind guides, which say, Whosoever shall swear by the temple,
it is nothing; but whosoever shall swear by the gold of the temple, he is a
debtor! Ye fools and blind: for whether is greater, the gold, or the temple
that sanctifieth the gold? and, Whosoever shall swear by the altar, it is
nothing; but whosoever sweareth by the gift that is upon it, he is guilty.
Ye fools and blind: for whether is greater, the gift, or the altar that
sanctifieth the gift?" The priests interpreted God's requirements according
to their own false and narrow standard. They presumed to make nice
distinctions as to the comparative guilt of various sins, passing over some
lightly, and treating others of perhaps less consequence as unpardonable.
For a money consideration they excused persons from their vows. And for
large sums of money they sometimes passed over aggravated crimes. At the
same time these priests and rulers would in other cases pronounce severe
judgment for trivial offenses.

"Woe unto you, scribes and Pharisees, hypocrites! for ye pay tithe of mint
and anise and cummin, and have omitted the weightier matters of the law,
judgment, mercy, and faith: these ought ye to have done, and not to leave
the other undone." In these words Christ again condemns the abuse of sacred
obligation. The obligation itself He does not set aside. The tithing system
was ordained by God, and it had been observed from the earliest times.
Abraham, the father of the faithful, paid tithes of all that he possessed.
The Jewish rulers recognized the obligation of tithing, and this was right;
but they did not leave the people to carry

                                                                     617

out their own convictions of duty. Arbitrary rules were laid down for every
case. The requirements had become so complicated that it was impossible for
them to be fulfilled. None knew when their obligations were met. As God gave
it, the system was just and reasonable; but the priests and rabbis had made
it a wearisome burden.

All that God commands is of consequence. Christ recognized the payment of
tithes as a duty; but He showed that this could not excuse the neglect of
other duties. The Pharisees were very exact in tithing garden herbs, such as
mint, anise, and rue; this cost them little, and it gave them a reputation
for exactness and sanctity. At the same time their useless restrictions
oppressed the people and destroyed respect for the sacred system of God's
own appointing. They occupied men's minds with trifling distinctions, and
turned their attention from essential truths. The weightier matters of the
law, justice, mercy, and truth, were neglected. "These," Christ said, "ought
ye to have done, and not to leave the other undone."

Other laws had been perverted by the rabbis in like manner. In the
directions given through Moses it was forbidden to eat any unclean thing.
The use of swine's flesh, and the flesh of certain other animals, was
prohibited, as likely to fill the blood with impurities, and to shorten
life. But the Pharisees did not leave these restrictions as God had given
them. They went to unwarranted extremes. Among other things the people were
required to strain all the water used, lest it should contain the smallest
insect, which might be classed with the unclean animals. Jesus, contrasting
these trivial exactions with the magnitude of their actual sins, said to the
Pharisees, "Ye blind guides, which strain at a gnat, and swallow a camel."

"Woe unto you, scribes and Pharisees, hypocrites! for ye are like unto
whited sepulchers, which indeed appear beautiful outward, but are within
full of dead men's bones, and of all uncleanness." As the whited and
beautifully decorated tomb concealed the putrefying remains within, so the
outward holiness of the priests and rulers concealed iniquity. Jesus
continued:

"Woe unto you, scribes and Pharisees, hypocrites! because ye build the tombs
of the prophets, and garnish the sepulchers of the righteous, and say, If we
had been in the days of our fathers, we would not have been partakers with
them in the blood of the prophets. Wherefore ye be witnesses unto
yourselves, that ye are the children of them which

618

killed the prophets." To show their esteem for the dead prophets, the Jews
were very zealous in beautifying their tombs; but they did not profit by
their teachings, nor give heed to their reproofs.

In the days of Christ a superstitious regard was cherished for the resting
places of the dead, and vast sums of money were lavished upon their
decoration. In the sight of God this was idolatry. In their undue regard for
the dead, men showed that they did not love God supremely, nor their
neighbor as themselves. The same idolatry is carried to great lengths today.
Many are guilty of neglecting the widow and the fatherless, the sick and the
poor, in order to build expensive monuments for the dead. Time, money, and
labor are freely spent for this purpose, while duties to the living--duties
which Christ has plainly enjoined--are left undone.

The Pharisees built the tombs of the prophets, and adorned their sepulchers,
and said one to another, If we had lived in the days of our fathers, we
would not have united with them in shedding the blood of God's servants. At
the same time they were planning to take the life of His Son. This should be
a lesson to us. It should open our eyes to the power of Satan to deceive the
mind that turns from the light of truth. Many follow in the track of the
Pharisees. They revere those who have died for their faith. They wonder at
the blindness of the Jews in rejecting Christ. Had we lived in His day, they
declare, we would gladly have received His teaching; we would never have
been partakers in the guilt of those who rejected the Saviour. But when
obedience to God requires self-denial and humiliation, these very persons
stifle their convictions, and refuse obedience. Thus they manifest the same
spirit as did the Pharisees whom Christ condemned.

Little did the Jews realize the terrible responsibility involved in
rejecting Christ. From the time when the first innocent blood was shed, when
righteous Abel fell by the hand of Cain, the same history had been repeated,
with increasing guilt. In every age prophets had lifted up their voices
against the sins of kings, rulers, and people, speaking the words which God
gave them, and obeying His will at the peril of their lives. From generation
to generation there had been heaping up a terrible punishment for the
rejecters of light and truth. This the enemies of Christ were now drawing
down upon their own heads. The sin of the priests and rulers was greater
than that of any preceding generation. By their rejection of the Saviour,
they were making themselves responsible

                                                                     619

for the blood of all the righteous men slain from Abel to Christ. They were
about to fill to overflowing their cup of iniquity. And soon it was to be
poured upon their heads in retributive justice. Of this, Jesus warned them:

"That upon you may come all the righteous blood shed upon the earth, from
the blood of righteous Abel unto the blood of Zacharias son of Barachias,
whom ye slew between the temple and the altar. Verily I say unto you, All
these things shall come upon this generation."

The scribes and Pharisees who listened to Jesus knew that His words were
true. They knew how the prophet Zacharias had been slain. While the words of
warning from God were upon his lips, a satanic fury seized the apostate
king, and at his command the prophet was put to death. His blood had
imprinted itself upon the very stones of the temple court, and could not be
erased; it remained to bear testimony against apostate Israel. As long as
the temple should stand, there would be the stain of that righteous blood,
crying to God to be avenged. As Jesus referred to these fearful sins, a
thrill of horror ran through the multitude.

Looking forward, Jesus declared that the impenitence of the Jews and their
intolerance of God's servants would be the same in the future as it had been
in the past:

"Wherefore, behold, I send unto you prophets, and wise men, and scribes: and
some of them ye shall kill and crucify; and some of them shall ye scourge in
your synagogues, and persecute them from city to city." Prophets and wise
men, full of faith and the Holy Ghost,--Stephen, James, and many
others,--would be condemned and slain. With hand uplifted to heaven, and a
divine light enshrouding His person, Christ spoke as a judge to those before
Him. His voice, that had so often been heard in gentleness and entreaty, was
now heard in rebuke and condemnation. The listeners shuddered. Never was the
impression made by His words and His look to be effaced.

Christ's indignation was directed against the hypocrisy, the gross sins, by
which men were destroying their own souls, deceiving the people and
dishonoring God. In the specious deceptive reasoning of the priests and
rulers He discerned the working of satanic agencies. Keen and searching had
been His denunciation of sin; but He spoke no words of retaliation. He had a
holy wrath against the prince of darkness; but He manifested no irritated
temper. So the Christian who lives in harmony with God, possessing the sweet
attributes of love and mercy, will feel a righteous

620

indignation against sin; but he will not be roused by passion to revile
those who revile him. Even in meeting those who are moved by a power from
beneath to maintain falsehood, in Christ he will still preserve calmness and
self-possession.

Divine pity marked the countenance of the Son of God as He cast one
lingering look upon the temple and then upon His hearers. In a voice choked
by deep anguish of heart and bitter tears He exclaimed, "O Jerusalem,
Jerusalem, thou that killest the prophets, and stonest them which are sent
unto thee, how often would I have gathered thy children together, even as a
hen gathereth her chickens under her wings, and ye would not!" This is the
separation struggle. In the lamentation of Christ the very heart of God is
pouring itself forth. It is the mysterious farewell of the long-suffering
love of the Deity.

Pharisees and Sadducees were alike silenced. Jesus summoned His disciples,
and prepared to leave the temple, not as one defeated and forced from the
presence of his adversaries, but as one whose work was accomplished. He
retired a victor from the contest.

The gems of truth that fell from Christ's lips on that eventful day were
treasured in many hearts. For them new thoughts started into life, new
aspirations were awakened, and a new history began. After the crucifixion
and resurrection of Christ, these persons came to the front, and fulfilled
their divine commission with a wisdom and zeal corresponding to the
greatness of the work. They bore a message that appealed to the hearts of
men, weakening the old superstitions that had long dwarfed the lives of
thousands. Before their testimony human theories and philosophies became as
idle fables. Mighty were the results flowing from the words of the Saviour
to that wondering, awestruck crowd in the temple at Jerusalem.

But Israel as a nation had divorced herself from God. The natural branches
of the olive tree were broken off. Looking for the last time upon the
interior of the temple, Jesus said with mournful pathos, "Behold, your house
is left unto you desolate. For I say unto you, Ye shall not see Me
henceforth, till ye shall say, Blessed is He that cometh in the name of the
Lord." Hitherto He had called the temple His Father's house; but now, as the
Son of God should pass out from those walls, God's presence would be
withdrawn forever from the temple built to His glory. Henceforth its
ceremonies would be meaningless, its services a mockery.




                                                                     (621)

                             Chapter 68

                             In the Outer Court


And there were certain Greeks among them that came up to worship at the
feast: the same came therefore to Philip, which was of Bethsaida of Galilee,
and desired him, saying, Sir, we would see Jesus. Philip cometh and telleth
Andrew: and again Andrew and Philip tell Jesus."

At this time Christ's work bore the appearance of cruel defeat. He had been
victor in the controversy with the priests and Pharisees, but it was evident
that He would never be received by them as the Messiah. The final separation
had come. To His disciples the case seemed hopeless. But Christ was
approaching the consummation of His work. The great event which concerned
not only the Jewish nation, but the whole world, was about to take place.
When Christ heard the eager request, "We would see Jesus," echoing the
hungering cry of the world, His countenance lighted up, and He said, "The
hour is come, that the Son of man should be glorified." In the request of
the Greeks He saw an earnest of the results of His great sacrifice.

These men came from the West to find the Saviour at the close of His life,
as the wise men had come from the East at the beginning. At the time of
Christ's birth the Jewish people were so engrossed with their own ambitious
plans that they knew not of His advent. The magi

622

from a heathen land came to the manger with their gifts, to worship the
Saviour. So these Greeks, representing the nations, tribes, and peoples of
the world, came to see Jesus. So the people of all lands and all ages would
be drawn by the Saviour's cross. So shall many "come from the east and west,
and shall sit down with Abraham, and Isaac, and Jacob, in the kingdom of
heaven." Matt. 8:11.

The Greeks had heard of Christ's triumphal entry into Jerusalem. Some
supposed, and had circulated the report, that He had driven the priests and
rulers from the temple, and that He was to take possession of David's
throne, and reign as king of Israel. The Greeks longed to know the truth in
regard to His mission. "We would see Jesus," they said. Their desire was
granted. When the request was brought to Jesus, He was in that part of the
temple from which all except Jews were excluded, but He went out to the
Greeks in the outer court, and had a personal interview with them.

The hour of Christ's glorification had come. He was standing in the shadow
of the cross, and the inquiry of the Greeks showed Him that the sacrifice He
was about to make would bring many sons and daughters to God. He knew that
the Greeks would soon see Him in a position they did not then dream of. They
would see Him placed beside Barabbas, a robber and murderer, who would be
chosen for release before the Son of God. They would hear the people,
inspired by the priests and rulers, making their choice. And to the
question, "What shall I do then with Jesus which is called Christ?" the
answer would be given, "Let Him be crucified." Matt. 27:22. By making this
propitiation for the sins of men, Christ knew that His kingdom would be
perfected, and would extend throughout the world. He would work as the
Restorer, and His Spirit would prevail. For a moment He looked into
futurity, and heard the voices proclaiming in all parts of the earth,
"Behold the Lamb of God, which taketh away the sin of the world." John 1:29.
In these strangers He saw the pledge of a great harvest, when the partition
wall between Jew and Gentile should be broken down, and all nations,
tongues, and peoples should hear the message of salvation. The anticipation
of this, the consummation of His hopes, is expressed in the words, "The hour
is come, that the Son of man should be glorified." But the way in which this
glorification must take place was never absent from Christ's mind. The
gathering in of the Gentiles was to follow His approaching death. Only by
His death could the world be saved. Like a grain of wheat, the

                                                                     623

Son of man must be cast into the ground and die, and be buried out of sight;
but He was to live again.

Christ presented His future, illustrating it by the things of nature, that
the disciples might understand. The true result of His mission was to be
reached by His death. "Verily, verily, I say unto you," He said, "Except a
corn of wheat fall into the ground and die, it abideth alone: but if it die,
it bringeth forth much fruit." When the grain of wheat falls into the ground
and dies, it springs up, and bears fruit. So the death of Christ would
result in fruit for the kingdom of God. In accordance with the law of the
vegetable kingdom, life was to be the result of His death.

Those who till the soil have the illustration ever before them. Year by year
man preserves his supply of grain by apparently throwing away the choicest
part. For a time it must be hidden under the furrow, to be watched over by
the Lord. Then appears the blade, then the ear, and then the corn in the
ear. But this development cannot take place unless the grain is buried out
of sight, hidden, and to all appearance, lost.

The seed buried in the ground produces fruit, and in turn this is planted.
Thus the harvest is multiplied. So the death of Christ on the cross of
Calvary will bear fruit unto eternal life. The contemplation of this
sacrifice will be the glory of those who, as the fruit of it, will live
through the eternal ages.

The grain of wheat that preserves its own life can produce no fruit. It
abides alone. Christ could, if He chose, save Himself from death. But should
He do this, He must abide alone. He could bring no sons and daughters to
God. Only by yielding up His life could He impart life to humanity. Only by
falling into the ground to die could He become the seed of that vast
harvest,--the great multitude that out of every nation, and kindred, and
tongue, and people, are redeemed to God.

With this truth Christ connects the lesson of self-sacrifice that all should
learn: "He that loveth his life shall lose it; and he that hateth his life
in this world shall keep it unto life eternal." All who would bring forth
fruit as workers together with Christ must first fall into the ground and
die. The life must be cast into the furrow of the world's need. Self-love,
self-interest, must perish. And the law of self-sacrifice is the law of
self-preservation. The husbandman preserves his grain by casting it away. So
in human life. To give is to live. The life that will be preserved is the
life that is freely given in service to God and man. Those who for

624

Christ's sake sacrifice their life in this world will keep it unto life
eternal.

The life spent on self is like the grain that is eaten. It disappears, but
there is no increase. A man may gather all he can for self; he may live and
think and plan for self; but his life passes away, and he has nothing. The
law of self-serving is the law of self-destruction.

"If any man serve Me," said Jesus, "let him follow Me; and where I am, there
shall also My servant be: if any man serve Me, him will My Father honor."
All who have borne with Jesus the cross of sacrifice will be sharers with
Him of His glory. It was the joy of Christ in His humiliation and pain that
His disciples should be glorified with Him. They are the fruit of His
self-sacrifice. The outworking in them of His own character and spirit is
His reward, and will be His joy throughout eternity. This joy they share
with Him as the fruit of their labor and sacrifice is seen in other hearts
and lives. They are workers together with Christ, and the Father will honor
them as He honors His Son.

The message of the Greeks, foreshadowing as it did the gathering in of the
Gentiles, brought to the mind of Jesus His entire mission. The work of
redemption passed before Him, from the time when in heaven the plan was
laid, to the death that was now so near at hand. A mysterious cloud seemed
to enshroud the Son of God. Its gloom was felt by those near Him. He sat
rapt in thought. At last the silence was broken by His mournful voice, "Now
is My soul troubled; and what shall I say? Father, save Me from this hour?"
In anticipation Christ was already drinking the cup of bitterness. His
humanity shrank from the hour of abandonment, when to all appearance He
would be deserted even by God, when all would see Him stricken, smitten of
God, and afflicted. He shrank from public exposure, from being treated as
the worst of criminals, from a shameful and dishonored death. A foreboding
of His conflict with the powers of darkness, a sense of the awful burden of
human transgression, and the Father's wrath because of sin caused the spirit
of Jesus to faint, and the pallor of death to overspread His countenance.

Then came divine submission to His Father's will. "For this cause," He said,
"came I unto this hour. Father, glorify Thy name." Only through the death of
Christ could Satan's kingdom be overthrown. Only thus could man be redeemed,
and God be glorified. Jesus consented to the agony, He accepted the
sacrifice. The Majesty of heaven consented to suffer as the Sin Bearer.
"Father, glorify Thy name," He said. As

                                                                     625

Christ spoke these words, a response came from the cloud which hovered above
His head: "I have both glorified it, and will glorify it again." Christ's
whole life, from the manger to the time when these words were spoken, had
glorified God; and in the coming trial His divine-human sufferings would
indeed glorify His Father's name.

As the voice was heard, a light darted from the cloud, and encircled Christ,
as if the arms of Infinite Power were thrown about Him like a wall of fire.
The people beheld this scene with terror and amazement. No one dared to
speak. With silent lips and bated breath all stood with eyes fixed upon
Jesus. The testimony of the Father having been given, the cloud lifted, and
scattered in the heavens. For the time the visible communion between the
Father and the Son was ended.

"The people therefore, that stood by, and heard it, said that it thundered:
others said, An angel spake to Him." But the inquiring Greeks saw the cloud,
heard the voice, comprehended its meaning, and discerned Christ indeed; to
them He was revealed as the Sent of God.

The voice of God had been heard at the baptism of Jesus at the beginning of
His ministry, and again at His transfiguration on the mount. Now at the
close of His ministry it was heard for the third time, by a larger number of
persons, and under peculiar circumstances. Jesus had just spoken the most
solemn truth regarding the condition of the Jews. He had made His last
appeal, and pronounced their doom. Now God again set His seal to the mission
of His Son. He recognized the One whom Israel had rejected. "This voice came
not because of Me," said Jesus, "but for your sakes." It was the crowning
evidence of His Messiahship, the signal from the Father that Jesus had
spoken the truth, and was the Son of God.

"Now is the judgment of this world," Christ continued; "now shall the prince
of this world be cast out. And I, if I be lifted up from the earth, will
draw all unto Me. This He said, signifying what death He should die." This
is the crisis of the world. If I become the propitiation for the sins of
men, the world will be lighted up. Satan's hold upon the souls of men will
be broken. The defaced image of God will be restored in humanity, and a
family of believing saints will finally inherit the heavenly home. This is
the result of Christ's death. The Saviour is lost in contemplation of the
scene of triumph called up before Him. He sees the cross, the cruel,
ignominious cross, with all its attending horrors, blazing with glory.

626


But the work of human redemption is not all that is accomplished by the
cross. The love of God is manifested to the universe. The prince of this
world is cast out. The accusations which Satan has brought against God are
refuted. The reproach which he has cast upon heaven is forever removed.
Angels as well as men are drawn to the Redeemer. "I, if I be lifted up from
the earth," He said, "will draw all unto Me."

Many people were round about Christ as He spoke these words, and one said,
"We have heard out of the law that Christ abideth forever: and how sayest
Thou, The Son of man must be lifted up? who is this Son of man? Then Jesus
said unto them, Yet a little while is the light with you. Walk while ye have
the light, lest darkness come upon you: for he that walketh in darkness
knoweth not whither he goeth. While ye have light, believe in the light,
that ye may be the children of light."

"But though He had done so many miracles before them, yet they believed not
on Him." They had once asked the Saviour, "What sign showest Thou then, that
we may see, and believe Thee?" John 6:30. Innumerable signs had been given;
but they had closed their eyes and hardened their hearts. Now that the
Father Himself had spoken, and they could ask for no further sign, they
still refused to believe.

"Nevertheless among the chief rulers also many believed on Him; but because
of the Pharisees they did not confess Him, lest they should be put out of
the synagogue." They loved the praise of men rather than the approval of
God. To save themselves from reproach and shame, they denied Christ, and
rejected the offer of eternal life. And how many through all the centuries
since have been doing the same thing! To them all the Saviour's warning
words apply: "He that loveth his life shall lose it." "He that rejecteth
Me," said Jesus, "and receiveth not My words, hath one that judgeth him: the
word that I have spoken, the same shall judge him in the last day." John
12:48.

Alas for those who knew not the time of their visitation! Slowly and
regretfully Christ left forever the precincts of the temple.




                                                                     (627)

                             Chapter 69

                             On the Mount of Olives


Christ's words to the priests and rulers, "Behold, your house is left unto
you desolate" (Matt. 23:38), had struck terror to their hearts. They
affected indifference, but the question kept rising in their minds as to the
import of these words. An unseen danger seemed to threaten them. Could it be
that the magnificent temple, which was the nation's glory, was soon to be a
heap of ruins? The foreboding of evil was shared by the disciples, and they
anxiously waited for some more definite statement from Jesus. As they passed
with Him out of the temple, they called His attention to its strength and
beauty. The stones of the temple were of the purest marble, of perfect
whiteness, and some of them of almost fabulous size. A portion of the wall
had withstood the siege by Nebuchadnezzar's army. In its perfect masonry it
appeared like one solid stone dug entire from the quarry. How those mighty
walls could be overthrown the disciples could not comprehend.

As Christ's attention was attracted to the magnificence of the temple, what
must have been the unuttered thoughts of that Rejected One! The view before
Him was indeed beautiful, but He said with sadness, I see it all. The
buildings are indeed wonderful. You point to these walls as apparently
indestructible; but listen to My words: The day will come when "there shall
not be left one stone upon another, that shall not be thrown down."

628


Christ's words had been spoken in the hearing of a large number of people;
but when He was alone, Peter, John, James, and Andrew came to Him as He sat
upon the Mount of Olives. "Tell us," they said, "when shall these things be?
and what shall be the sign of Thy coming, and of the end of the world?"
Jesus did not answer His disciples by taking up separately the destruction
of Jerusalem and the great day of His coming. He mingled the description of
these two events. Had He opened to His disciples future events as He beheld
them, they would have been unable to endure the sight. In mercy to them He
blended the description of the two great crises, leaving the disciples to
study out the meaning for themselves. When He referred to the destruction of
Jerusalem, His prophetic words reached beyond that event to the final
conflagration in that day when the Lord shall rise out of His place to
punish the world for their iniquity, when the earth shall disclose her
blood, and shall no more cover her slain. This entire discourse was given,
not for the disciples only, but for those who should live in the last scenes
of this earth's history.

Turning to the disciples, Christ said, "Take heed that no man deceive you.
For many shall come in My name, saying, I am Christ; and shall deceive
many." Many false messiahs will appear, claiming to work miracles, and
declaring that the time of the deliverance of the Jewish nation has come.
These will mislead many. Christ's words were fulfilled. Between His death
and the siege of Jerusalem many false messiahs appeared. But this warning
was given also to those who live in this age of the world. The same
deceptions practiced prior to the destruction of Jerusalem have been
practiced through the ages, and will be practiced again.

"And ye shall hear of wars and rumors of wars: see that ye be not troubled:
for all these things must come to pass, but the end is not yet." Prior to
the destruction of Jerusalem, men wrestled for the supremacy. Emperors were
murdered. Those supposed to be standing next the throne were slain. There
were wars and rumors of wars. "All these things must come to pass," said
Christ, "but the end [of the Jewish nation as a nation] is not yet. For
nation shall rise against nation, and kingdom against kingdom: and there
shall be famines, and pestilences, and earthquakes, in divers places. All
these are the beginning of sorrows." Christ said, As the rabbis see these
signs, they will declare them to be God's judgments upon the nations for
holding in bondage His chosen people. They will declare that these signs are
the token of the advent of

                                                                     629

the Messiah. Be not deceived; they are the beginning of His judgments. The
people have looked to themselves. They have not repented and been converted
that I should heal them. The signs that they represent as tokens of their
release from bondage are signs of their destruction.

"Then shall they deliver you up to be afflicted, and shall kill you: and ye
shall be hated of all nations for My name's sake. And then shall many be
offended, and shall betray one another, and shall hate one another." All
this the Christians suffered. Fathers and mothers betrayed their children.
Children betrayed their parents. Friends delivered their friends up to the
Sanhedrin. The persecutors wrought out their purpose by killing Stephen,
James, and other Christians.

630


Through His servants, God gave the Jewish people a last opportunity to
repent. He manifested Himself through His witnesses in their arrest, in
their trial, and in their imprisonment. Yet their judges pronounced on them
the death sentence. They were men of whom the world was not worthy, and by
killing them the Jews crucified afresh the Son of God. So it will be again.
The authorities will make laws to restrict religious liberty. They will
assume the right that is God's alone. They will think they can force the
conscience, which God alone should control. Even now they are making a
beginning; this work they will continue to carry forward till they reach a
boundary over which they cannot step. God will interpose in behalf of His
loyal, commandment-keeping people.

On every occasion when persecution takes place, those who witness it make
decisions either for Christ or against Him. Those who manifest sympathy for
the ones wrongly condemned show their attachment for Christ. Others are
offended because the principles of truth cut directly across their practice.
Many stumble and fall, apostatizing from the faith they once advocated.
Those who apostatize in time of trial will, to secure their own safety, bear
false witness, and betray their brethren. Christ has warned us of this, that
we may not be surprised at the unnatural, cruel course of those who reject
the light.

Christ gave His disciples a sign of the ruin to come on Jerusalem, and He
told them how to escape: "When ye shall see Jerusalem compassed with armies,
then know that the desolation thereof is nigh. Then let them which are in
Judea flee to the mountains; and let them which are in the midst of it
depart out; and let not them that are in the countries enter thereinto. For
these be the days of vengeance, that all things which are written may be
fulfilled." This warning was given to be heeded forty years after, at the
destruction of Jerusalem. The Christians obeyed the warning, and not a
Christian perished in the fall of the city.

"Pray ye that your flight be not in the winter; neither on the Sabbath day,"
Christ said. He who made the Sabbath did not abolish it, nailing it to His
cross. The Sabbath was not rendered null and void by His death. Forty years
after His crucifixion it was still to be held sacred. For forty years the
disciples were to pray that their flight might not be on the Sabbath day.

From the destruction of Jerusalem, Christ passed on rapidly to the greater
event, the last link in the chain of this earth's history,--the coming of
the Son of God in majesty and glory. Between these two events, there lay
open to Christ's view long centuries of darkness, centuries for His

                                                                     631

church marked with blood and tears and agony. Upon these scenes His
disciples could not then endure to look, and Jesus passed them by with a
brief mention. "Then shall be great tribulation," He said, "such as was not
since the beginning of the world to this time, no, nor ever shall be. And
except those days should be shortened, there should no flesh be saved: but
for the elect's sake those days shall be shortened." For more than a
thousand years such persecution as the world had never before known was to
come upon Christ's followers. Millions upon millions of His faithful
witnesses were to be slain. Had not God's hand been stretched out to
preserve His people, all would have perished. "But for the elect's sake," He
said, "those days shall be shortened."

Now, in unmistakable language, our Lord speaks of His second coming, and He
gives warning of dangers to precede His advent to the world. "If any man
shall say unto you, Lo, here is Christ, or there; believe it not. For there
shall arise false christs, and false prophets, and shall show great signs
and wonders; insomuch that, if it were possible, they shall deceive the very
elect. Behold, I have told you before. Wherefore if they shall say unto you,
Behold, He is in the desert; go not forth: behold, He is in the secret
chambers; believe it not. For as the lightning cometh out of the east, and
shineth even unto the west; so shall also the coming of the Son of man be."
As one of the signs of Jerusalem's destruction, Christ had said, "Many false
prophets shall rise, and shall deceive many." False prophets did rise,
deceiving the people, and leading great numbers into the desert. Magicians
and sorcerers, claiming miraculous power, drew the people after them into
the mountain solitudes. But this prophecy was spoken also for the last days.
This sign is given as a sign of the second advent. Even now false christs
and false prophets are showing signs and wonders to seduce His disciples. Do
we not hear the cry, "Behold, He is in the desert"? Have not thousands gone
forth into the desert, hoping to find Christ? And from thousands of
gatherings where men profess to hold communion with departed spirits is not
the call now heard, "Behold, He is in the secret chambers"? This is the very
claim that spiritism puts forth. But what says Christ? "Believe it not. For
as the lightning cometh out of the east, and shineth even unto the west; so
shall also the coming of the Son of man be."

The Saviour gives signs of His coming, and more than this, He fixes the time
when the first of these signs shall appear: "Immediately after the
tribulation of those days shall the sun be darkened, and the moon

632

shall not give her light, and the stars shall fall from heaven, and the
powers of the heavens shall be shaken: and then shall appear the sign of the
Son of man in heaven: and then shall all the tribes of the earth mourn, and
they shall see the Son of man coming in the clouds of heaven with power and
great glory. And He shall send His angels with a great sound of a trumpet,
and they shall gather together His elect from the four winds, from one end
of heaven to the other."

At the close of the great papal persecution, Christ declared, the sun should
be darkened, and the moon should not give her light. Next, the stars should
fall from heaven. And He says, "Learn a parable of the fig tree; When his
branch is yet tender, and putteth forth leaves, ye know that summer is nigh:
so likewise ye, when ye shall see all these things, know that He is near,
even at the doors." Matt. 24:32, 33, margin.

Christ has given signs of His coming. He declares that we may know when He
is near, even at the doors. He says of those who see these signs, "This
generation shall not pass, till all these things be fulfilled." These signs
have appeared. Now we know of a surety that the Lord's coming is at hand.
"Heaven and earth shall pass away," He says, "but My words shall not pass
away."

Christ is coming with clouds and with great glory. A multitude of shining
angels will attend Him. He will come to raise the dead, and to change the
living saints from glory to glory. He will come to honor those who have
loved Him, and kept His commandments, and to take them to Himself. He has
not forgotten them nor His promise. There will be a relinking of the family
chain. When we look upon our dead, we may think of the morning when the
trump of God shall sound, when "the dead shall be raised incorruptible, and
we shall be changed." 1 Cor. 15:52. A little longer, and we shall see the
King in His beauty. A little longer, and He will wipe all tears from our
eyes. A little longer, and He will present us "faultless before the presence
of His glory with exceeding joy." Jude 24. Wherefore, when He gave the signs
of His coming He said, "When these things begin to come to pass, then look
up, and lift up your heads; for your redemption draweth nigh."

But the day and the hour of His coming Christ has not revealed. He stated
plainly to His disciples that He Himself could not make known the day or the
hour of His second appearing. Had He been at liberty to reveal this, why
need He have exhorted them to maintain an attitude of constant expectancy?
There are those who claim to know the very day and hour of our Lord's
appearing. Very earnest are they in mapping out

                                                                     633

the future. But the Lord has warned them off the ground they occupy. The
exact time of the second coming of the Son of man is God's mystery.

Christ continues, pointing out the condition of the world at His coming: "As
the days of Noah were, so shall also the coming of the Son of man be. For as
in the days that were before the Flood they were eating and drinking,
marrying and giving in marriage, until the day that Noah entered into the
ark, and knew not until the Flood came, and took them all away; so shall
also the coming of the Son of man be." Christ does not here bring to view a
temporal millennium, a thousand years in which all are to prepare for
eternity. He tells us that as it was in Noah's day, so will it be when the
Son of man comes again.

How was it in Noah's day? "God saw that the wickedness of man was great in
the earth, and that every imagination of the thoughts of his heart was only
evil continually." Gen. 6:5. The inhabitants of the antediluvian world
turned from Jehovah, refusing to do His holy will. They followed their own
unholy imagination and perverted ideas. It was because of their wickedness
that they were destroyed; and today the world is following the same way. It
presents no flattering signs of millennial glory. The transgressors of God's
law are filling the earth with wickedness. Their betting, their horse
racing, their gambling, their dissipation, their lustful practices, their
untamable passions, are fast filling the world with violence.

In the prophecy of Jerusalem's destruction Christ said, "Because iniquity
shall abound, the love of many shall wax cold. But he that shall endure unto
the end, the same shall be saved. And this gospel of the kingdom shall be
preached in all the world for a witness unto all nations; and then shall the
end come." This prophecy will again be fulfilled. The abounding iniquity of
that day finds its counterpart in this generation. So with the prediction in
regard to the preaching of the gospel. Before the fall of Jerusalem, Paul,
writing by the Holy Spirit, declared that the gospel was preached to "every
creature which is under heaven." Col. 1:23. So now, before the coming of the
Son of man, the everlasting gospel is to be preached "to every nation, and
kindred, and tongue, and people." Rev. 14:6, 14. God "hath appointed a day,
in the which He will judge the world." Acts 17:31. Christ tells us when that
day shall be ushered in. He does not say that all the world will be
converted, but that "this gospel of the kingdom shall be preached in all the
world for a witness unto all nations; and then shall the end come." By
giving the gospel to the world it is in our power to hasten our Lord's
return. We are not only to look for but to hasten the coming of the day of
God. 2 Peter 3:12, margin. Had

634

the church of Christ done her appointed work as the Lord ordained, the whole
world would before this have been warned, and the Lord Jesus would have come
to our earth in power and great glory.

After He had given the signs of His coming, Christ said, "When ye see these
things come to pass, know ye that the kingdom of God is nigh at hand." "Take
ye heed, watch and pray." God has always given men warning of coming
judgments. Those who had faith in His message for their time, and who acted
out their faith, in obedience to His commandments, escaped the judgments
that fell upon the disobedient and unbelieving. The word came to Noah, "Come
thou and all thy house into the ark; for thee have I seen righteous before
Me." Noah obeyed and was saved. The message came to Lot, "Up, get you out of
this place; for the Lord will destroy this city." Gen. 7:1; 19:14. Lot
placed himself under the guardianship of the heavenly messengers, and was
saved. So Christ's disciples were given warning of the destruction of
Jerusalem. Those who watched for the sign of the coming ruin, and fled from
the city, escaped the destruction. So now we are given warning of Christ's
second coming and of the destruction to fall upon the world. Those who heed
the warning will be saved.

Because we know not the exact time of His coming, we are commanded to watch.
"Blessed are those servants, whom the Lord when He cometh shall find
watching." Luke 12:37. Those who watch for the Lord's coming are not waiting
in idle expectancy. The expectation of Christ's coming is to make men fear
the Lord, and fear His judgments upon transgression. It is to awaken them to
the great sin of rejecting His offers of mercy. Those who are watching for
the Lord are purifying their souls by obedience to the truth. With vigilant
watching they combine earnest working. Because they know that the Lord is at
the door, their zeal is quickened to co-operate with the divine
intelligences in working for the salvation of souls. These are the faithful
and wise servants who give to the Lord's household "their portion of meat in
due season." Luke 12:42. They are declaring the truth that is now specially
applicable. As Enoch, Noah, Abraham, and Moses each declared the truth for
his time, so will Christ's servants now give the special warning for their
generation.

But Christ brings to view another class: "If that evil servant shall say in
his heart, My lord delayeth his coming; and shall begin to smite his fellow
servants, and to eat and drink with the drunken; the lord of that servant
shall come in a day when he looketh not for him."

                                                                     635


The evil servant says in his heart, "My lord delayeth his coming." He does
not say that Christ will not come. He does not scoff at the idea of His
second coming. But in his heart and by his actions and words he declares
that the Lord's coming is delayed. He banishes from the minds of others the
conviction that the Lord is coming quickly. His influence leads men to
presumptuous, careless delay. They are confirmed in their worldliness and
stupor. Earthly passions, corrupt thoughts, take possession of the mind. The
evil servant eats and drinks with the drunken, unites with the world in
pleasure seeking. He smites his fellow servants, accusing and condemning
those who are faithful to their Master. He mingles with the world. Like
grows with like in transgression. It is a fearful assimilation. With the
world he is taken in the snare. "The lord of that servant shall come . . .
in an hour that he is not aware of, and shall cut him asunder, and appoint
him his portion with the hypocrites."

"If therefore thou shalt not watch, I will come on thee as a thief, and thou
shalt not know what hour I will come upon thee." Rev. 3:3. The advent of
Christ will surprise the false teachers. They are saying, "Peace and
safety." Like the priests and teachers before the fall of Jerusalem, they
look for the church to enjoy earthly prosperity and glory. The signs of the
times they interpret as foreshadowing this. But what saith the word of
Inspiration? "Sudden destruction cometh upon them." 1 Thess. 5:3. Upon all
who dwell on the face of the whole earth, upon all who make this world their
home, the day of God will come as a snare. It comes to them as a prowling
thief.

The world, full of rioting, full of godless pleasure, is asleep, asleep in
carnal security. Men are putting afar off the coming of the Lord. They laugh
at warnings. The proud boast is made, "All things continue as they were from
the beginning." "Tomorrow shall be as this day, and much more abundant." 2
Peter 3:4; Isa. 56:12. We will go deeper into pleasure loving. But Christ
says, "Behold, I come as a thief." Rev. 16:15. At the very time when the
world is asking in scorn, "Where is the promise of His coming?" the signs
are fulfilling. While they cry, "Peace and safety," sudden destruction is
coming. When the scorner, the rejecter of truth, has become presumptuous;
when the routine of work in the various money-making lines is carried on
without regard to principle; when the student is eagerly seeking knowledge
of everything but his Bible, Christ comes as a thief.

636


Everything in the world is in agitation. The signs of the times are ominous.
Coming events cast their shadows before. The Spirit of God is withdrawing
from the earth, and calamity follows calamity by sea and by land. There are
tempests, earthquakes, fires, floods, murders of every grade. Who can read
the future? Where is security? There is assurance in nothing that is human
or earthly. Rapidly are men ranging themselves under the banner they have
chosen. Restlessly are they waiting and watching the movements of their
leaders. There are those who are waiting and watching and working for our
Lord's appearing. Another class are falling into line under the generalship
of the first great apostate. Few believe with heart and soul that we have a
hell to shun and a heaven to win.

The crisis is stealing gradually upon us. The sun shines in the heavens,
passing over its usual round, and the heavens still declare the glory of
God. Men are still eating and drinking, planting and building, marrying, and
giving in marriage. Merchants are still buying and selling. Men are jostling
one against another, contending for the highest place. Pleasure lovers are
still crowding to theaters, horse races, gambling hells. The highest
excitement prevails, yet probation's hour is fast closing, and every case is
about to be eternally decided. Satan sees that his time is short. He has set
all his agencies at work that men may be deceived, deluded, occupied and
entranced, until the day of probation shall be ended, and the door of mercy
be forever shut.

Solemnly there come to us down through the centuries the warning words of
our Lord from the Mount of Olives: "Take heed to yourselves, lest at any
time your hearts be overcharged with surfeiting, and drunkenness, and cares
of this life, and so that day come upon you unawares." "Watch ye therefore,
and pray always, that ye may be accounted worthy to escape all these things
that shall come to pass, and to stand before the Son of man."




                                                                     (637)

                             Chapter 70

                             "The Least of These My Brethren"


When the Son of man shall come in His glory, and all the holy angels with
Him, then shall He sit upon the throne of His glory: and before Him shall be
gathered all nations: and He shall separate them one from another." Thus
Christ on the Mount of Olives pictured to His disciples the scene of the
great judgment day. And He represented its decision as turning upon one
point. When the nations are gathered before Him, there will be but two
classes, and their eternal destiny will be determined by what they have done
or have neglected to do for Him in the person of the poor and the suffering.

In that day Christ does not present before men the great work He has done
for them in giving His life for their redemption. He presents the faithful
work they have done for Him. To those whom He sets upon His right hand He
will say, "Come, ye blessed of My Father, inherit the kingdom prepared for
you from the foundation of the world: for I was an hungered, and ye gave Me
meat: I was thirsty, and ye gave Me drink: I was a stranger, and ye took Me
in: naked, and ye clothed Me: I was sick, and ye visited Me: I was in
prison, and ye came unto Me." But those whom Christ commends know not that
they have been ministering unto Him. To their perplexed inquiries He
answers, "Inasmuch as ye have done it unto one of the least of these My
brethren, ye have done it unto Me."

Jesus had told His disciples that they were to be hated of all men, to be
persecuted and afflicted. Many would be driven from their homes, and brought
to poverty. Many would be in distress through disease and

638

privation. Many would be cast into prison. To all who forsook friends or
home for His sake He had promised in this life a hundredfold. Now He assured
a special blessing to all who should minister to their brethren. In all who
suffer for My name, said Jesus, you are to recognize Me. As you would
minister to Me, so you are to minister to them. This is the evidence that
you are My disciples.

All who have been born into the heavenly family are in a special sense the
brethren of our Lord. The love of Christ binds together the members of His
family, and wherever that love is made manifest there the divine
relationship is revealed. "Everyone that loveth is born of God, and knoweth
God." 1 John 4:7.

Those whom Christ commends in the judgment may have known little of
theology, but they have cherished His principles. Through the influence of
the divine Spirit they have been a blessing to those about them. Even among
the heathen are those who have cherished the spirit of kindness; before the
words of life had fallen upon their ears, they have befriended the
missionaries, even ministering to them at the peril of their own lives.
Among the heathen are those who worship God ignorantly, those to whom the
light is never brought by human instrumentality, yet they will not perish.
Though ignorant of the written law of God, they have heard His voice
speaking to them in nature, and have done the things that the law required.
Their works are evidence that the Holy Spirit has touched their hearts, and
they are recognized as the children of God.

How surprised and gladdened will be the lowly among the nations, and among
the heathen, to hear from the lips of the Saviour, "Inasmuch as ye have done
it unto one of the least of these My brethren, ye have done it unto Me"! How
glad will be the heart of Infinite Love as His followers look up with
surprise and joy at His words of approval!

But not to any class is Christ's love restricted. He identifies Himself with
every child of humanity. That we might become members of the heavenly
family, He became a member of the earthly family. He is the Son of man, and
thus a brother to every son and daughter of Adam. His followers are not to
feel themselves detached from the perishing world around them. They are a
part of the great web of humanity; and Heaven looks upon them as brothers to
sinners as well as to saints. The fallen, the erring, and the sinful,
Christ's love embraces; and every deed of kindness done to uplift a fallen
soul, every act of mercy, is accepted as done to Him.

                                                                     639


The angels of heaven are sent forth to minister to those who shall be heirs
of salvation. We know not now who they are; it is not yet made manifest who
shall overcome, and share the inheritance of the saints in light; but angels
of heaven are passing throughout the length and breadth of the earth,
seeking to comfort the sorrowing, to protect the imperiled, to win the
hearts of men to Christ. Not one is neglected or passed by. God is no
respecter of persons, and He has an equal care for all the souls He has
created.

As you open your door to Christ's needy and suffering ones, you are
welcoming unseen angels. You invite the companionship of heavenly beings.
They bring a sacred atmosphere of joy and peace. They come with praises upon
their lips, and an answering strain is heard in heaven. Every deed of mercy
makes music there. The Father from His throne numbers the unselfish workers
among His most precious treasures.

Those on the left hand of Christ, those who had neglected Him in the person
of the poor and the suffering, were unconscious of their guilt. Satan had
blinded them; they had not perceived what they owed to their brethren. They
had been self-absorbed, and cared not for others' needs.

To the rich, God has given wealth that they may relieve and comfort His
suffering children; but too often they are indifferent to the wants of
others. They feel themselves superior to their poor brethren. They do not
put themselves in the poor man's place. They do not understand the
temptations and struggles of the poor, and mercy dies out of their hearts.
In costly dwellings and splendid churches, the rich shut themselves away
from the poor; the means that God has given to bless the needy is spent in
pampering pride and selfishness. The poor are robbed daily of the education
they should have concerning the tender mercies of God; for He has made ample
provision that they should be comforted with the necessities of life. They
are compelled to feel the poverty that narrows life, and are often tempted
to become envious, jealous, and full of evil surmisings. Those who
themselves have not endured the pressure of want too often treat the poor in
a contemptuous way, and make them feel that they are looked upon as paupers.

But Christ beholds it all, and He says, It was I who was hungry and thirsty.
It was I who was a stranger. It was I who was sick. It was I who was in
prison. While you were feasting at your bountifully spread table, I was
famishing in the hovel or the empty street. While you were at ease in your
luxurious home, I had not where to lay My head. While

640

you crowded your wardrobe with rich apparel, I was destitute. While you
pursued your pleasures, I languished in prison.

When you doled out the pittance of bread to the starving poor, when you gave
those flimsy garments to shield them from the biting frost, did you remember
that you were giving to the Lord of glory? All the days of your life I was
near you in the person of these afflicted ones, but you did not seek Me. You
would not enter into fellowship with Me. I know you not.

Many feel that it would be a great privilege to visit the scenes of Christ's
life on earth, to walk where He trod, to look upon the lake beside which He
loved to teach, and the hills and valleys on which His eyes so often rested.
But we need not go to Nazareth, to Capernaum, or to Bethany, in order to
walk in the steps of Jesus. We shall find His footprints beside the sickbed,
in the hovels of poverty, in the crowded alleys of the great city, and in
every place where there are human hearts in need of consolation. In doing as
Jesus did when on earth, we shall walk in His steps.

All may find something to do. "The poor always ye have with you," (John
12:8), Jesus said, and none need feel that there is no place where they can
labor for Him. Millions upon millions of human souls ready to perish, bound
in chains of ignorance and sin, have never so much as heard of Christ's love
for them. Were our condition and theirs to be reversed, what would we desire
them to do for us? All this, so far as lies in our power, we are under the
most solemn obligation to do for them. Christ's rule of life, by which every
one of us must stand or fall in the judgment, is, "Whatsoever ye would that
men should do to you, do ye even so to them." Matt. 7:12.

The Saviour has given His precious life in order to establish a church
capable of caring for sorrowful, tempted souls. A company of believers may
be poor, uneducated, and unknown; yet in Christ they may do a work in the
home, the neighborhood, the church, and even in "the regions beyond," whose
results shall be as far-reaching as eternity.

It is because this work is neglected that so many young disciples never
advance beyond the mere alphabet of Christian experience. The light which
was glowing in their own hearts when Jesus spoke to them, "Thy sins be
forgiven thee," they might have kept alive by helping those in need. The
restless energy that is so often a source of danger to the young might be
directed into channels through which it would

                                                                     641

flow out in streams of blessing. Self would be forgotten in earnest work to
do others good.

Those who minister to others will be ministered unto by the Chief Shepherd.
They themselves will drink of the living water, and will be satisfied. They
will not be longing for exciting amusements, or for some change in their
lives. The great topic of interest will be, how to save the souls that are
ready to perish. Social intercourse will be profitable. The love of the
Redeemer will draw hearts together in unity.

When we realize that we are workers together with God, His promises will not
be spoken with indifference. They will burn in our hearts, and kindle upon
our lips. To Moses, when called to minister to an ignorant, undisciplined,
and rebellious people, God gave the promise, "My presence shall go with
thee, and I will give thee rest." And He said, "Certainly I will be with
thee." Ex. 33:14; 3:12. This promise is to all who labor in Christ's stead
for His afflicted and suffering ones.

Love to man is the earthward manifestation of the love of God. It was to
implant this love, to make us children of one family, that the King of glory
became one with us. And when His parting words are fulfilled, "Love one
another, as I have loved you" (John 15:12); when we love the world as He has
loved it, then for us His mission is accomplished. We are fitted for heaven;
for we have heaven in our hearts.

But "if thou forbear to deliver them that are drawn unto death, and those
that are ready to be slain; if thou sayest, Behold, we knew it not; doth not
He that pondereth the heart consider it? and He that keepeth thy soul, doth
not He know it? and shall not He render to every man according to his
works?" Prov. 24:11, 12. In the great Judgment day, those who have not
worked for Christ, who have drifted along thinking of themselves, caring for
themselves, will be placed by the Judge of the whole earth with those who
did evil. They receive the same condemnation.

To every soul a trust is given. Of everyone the Chief Shepherd will demand,
"Where is the flock that was given thee, thy beautiful flock?" And "what
wilt thou say when He shall punish thee?" Jer. 13:20, 21.




(642)

                             Chapter 71

                             A Servant of Servants


In the upper chamber of a dwelling at Jerusalem, Christ was sitting at table
with His disciples. They had gathered to celebrate the Passover. The Saviour
desired to keep this feast alone with the twelve. He knew that His hour was
come; He Himself was the true paschal lamb, and on the day the Passover was
eaten He was to be sacrificed. He was about to drink the cup of wrath; He
must soon receive the final baptism of suffering. But a few quiet hours yet
remained to Him, and these were to be spent for the benefit of His beloved
disciples.

The whole life of Christ had been a life of unselfish service. "Not to be
ministered unto, but to minister," (Matt. 20:28), had been the lesson of His
every act. But not yet had the disciples learned the lesson. At this last
Passover supper, Jesus repeated His teaching by an illustration that
impressed it forever on their minds and hearts.

The interviews between Jesus and His disciples were usually seasons of calm
joy, highly prized by them all. The Passover suppers had been scenes of
special interest; but upon this occasion Jesus was troubled. His heart was
burdened, and a shadow rested upon His countenance.

                                                                     643

As He met the disciples in the upper chamber, they perceived that something
weighed heavily upon His mind, and although they knew not its cause, they
sympathized with His grief.

As they were gathered about the table, He said in tones of touching sadness,
"With desire I have desired to eat this Passover with you before I suffer:
for I say unto you, I will not any more eat thereof, until it be fulfilled
in the kingdom of God. And He took the cup, and gave thanks, and said, Take
this, and divide it among yourselves: for I say unto you, I will not drink
of the fruit of the vine, until the kingdom of God shall come."

Christ knew that the time had come for Him to depart out of the world, and
go to His Father. And having loved His own that were in the world, He loved
them unto the end. He was now in the shadow of the cross, and the pain was
torturing His heart. He knew that He would be deserted in the hour of His
betrayal. He knew that by the most humiliating process to which criminals
were subjected He would be put to death. He knew the ingratitude and cruelty
of those He had come to save. He knew how great the sacrifice that He must
make, and for how many it would be in vain. Knowing all that was before Him,
He might naturally have been overwhelmed with the thought of His own
humiliation and suffering. But He looked upon the twelve, who had been with
Him as His own, and who, after His shame and sorrow and painful usage were
over, would be left to struggle in the world. His thoughts of what He
Himself must suffer were ever connected with His disciples. He did not think
of Himself. His care for them was uppermost in His mind.

On this last evening with His disciples, Jesus had much to tell them. If
they had been prepared to receive what He longed to impart, they would have
been saved from heartbreaking anguish, from disappointment and unbelief. But
Jesus saw that they could not bear what He had to say. As He looked into
their faces, the words of warning and comfort were stayed upon His lips.
Moments passed in silence. Jesus appeared to be waiting. The disciples were
ill at ease. The sympathy and tenderness awakened by Christ's grief seemed
to have passed away. His sorrowful words, pointing to His own suffering, had
made little impression. The glances they cast upon each other told of
jealousy and contention.

There was "a strife among them, which of them should be accounted the
greatest." This contention, carried on in the presence of Christ, grieved
and wounded Him. The disciples clung to their favorite idea that Christ
would assert His power, and take His position on the throne of David. And in
heart each still longed for the highest place in the

644

kingdom. They had placed their own estimate upon themselves and upon one
another, and, instead of regarding their brethren as more worthy, they had
placed themselves first. The request of James and John to sit on the right
and left of Christ's throne had excited the indignation of the others. That
the two brothers should presume to ask for the highest position so stirred
the ten that alienation threatened. They felt that they were misjudged, that
their fidelity and talents were not appreciated. Judas was the most severe
upon James and John.

When the disciples entered the supper room, their hearts were full of
resentful feelings. Judas pressed next to Christ on the left side; John was
on the right. If there was a highest place, Judas was determined to have it,
and that place was thought to be next to Christ. And Judas was a traitor.

Another cause of dissension had arisen. At a feast it was customary for a
servant to wash the feet of the guests, and on this occasion preparation had
been made for the service. The pitcher, the basin, and the towel were there,
in readiness for the feet washing; but no servant was present, and it was
the disciples' part to perform it. But each of the disciples, yielding to
wounded pride, determined not to act the part of a servant. All manifested a
stoical unconcern, seeming unconscious that there was anything for them to
do. By their silence they refused to humble themselves.

How was Christ to bring these poor souls where Satan would not gain over
them a decided victory? How could He show that a mere profession of
discipleship did not make them disciples, or insure them a place in His
kingdom? How could He show that it is loving service, true humility, which
constitutes real greatness? How was He to kindle love in their hearts, and
enable them to comprehend what He longed to tell them?

The disciples made no move toward serving one another. Jesus waited for a
time to see what they would do. Then He, the divine Teacher, rose from the
table. Laying aside the outer garment that would have impeded His movements,
He took a towel, and girded Himself. With surprised interest the disciples
looked on, and in silence waited to see what was to follow. "After that He
poureth water into a basin, and began to wash the disciples' feet, and to
wipe them with the towel wherewith He was girded." This action opened the
eyes of the disciples. Bitter shame and humiliation filled their hearts.
They understood the unspoken rebuke, and saw themselves in altogether a new
light.

So Christ expressed His love for His disciples. Their selfish spirit filled
Him with sorrow, but He entered into no controversy with them

                                                                     645

regarding their difficulty. Instead He gave them an example they would never
forget. His love for them was not easily disturbed or quenched. He knew that
the Father had given all things into His hands, and that He came from God,
and went to God. He had a full consciousness of His divinity; but He had
laid aside His royal crown and kingly robes, and had taken the form of a
servant. One of the last acts of His life on earth was to gird Himself as a
servant, and perform a servant's part.

Before the Passover Judas had met a second time with the priests and
scribes, and had closed the contract to deliver Jesus into their hands. Yet
he afterward mingled with the disciples as though innocent of any wrong, and
interested in the work of preparing for the feast. The disciples knew
nothing of the purpose of Judas. Jesus alone could read his secret. Yet He
did not expose him. Jesus hungered for his soul. He felt for him such a
burden as for Jerusalem when He wept over the doomed city. His heart was
crying, How can I give thee up? The constraining power of that love was felt
by Judas. When the Saviour's hands were bathing those soiled feet, and
wiping them with the towel, the heart of Judas thrilled through and through
with the impulse then and there to confess his sin. But he would not humble
himself. He hardened his heart against repentance; and the old impulses, for
the moment put aside, again controlled him. Judas was now offended at
Christ's act in washing the feet of His disciples. If Jesus could so humble
Himself, he thought, He could not be Israel's king. All hope of worldly
honor in a temporal kingdom was destroyed. Judas was satisfied that there
was nothing to be gained by following Christ. After seeing Him degrade
Himself, as he thought, he was confirmed in his purpose to disown Him, and
confess himself deceived. He was possessed by a demon, and he resolved to
complete the work he had agreed to do in betraying his Lord.

Judas, in choosing his position at table, had tried to place himself first,
and Christ as a servant served him first. John, toward whom Judas had felt
so much bitterness, was left till the last. But John did not take this as a
rebuke or slight. As the disciples watched Christ's action, they were
greatly moved. When Peter's turn came, he exclaimed with astonishment,
"Lord, dost Thou wash my feet?" Christ's condescension broke his heart. He
was filled with shame to think that one of the disciples was not performing
this service. "What I do," Christ said, "thou knowest not now; but thou
shalt know hereafter." Peter could not bear to see his Lord, whom he
believed to be the Son of God, acting the part of a servant. His whole soul
rose up against this humiliation.

646

He did not realize that for this Christ came into the world. With great
emphasis he exclaimed, "Thou shalt never wash my feet."

Solemnly Christ said to Peter, "If I wash thee not, thou hast no part with
Me." The service which Peter refused was the type of a higher cleansing.
Christ had come to wash the heart from the stain of sin. In refusing to
allow Christ to wash his feet, Peter was refusing the higher cleansing
included in the lower. He was really rejecting his Lord. It is not
humiliating to the Master to allow Him to work for our purification. The
truest humility is to receive with thankful heart any provision made in our
behalf, and with earnestness do service for Christ.

At the words, "If I wash thee not, thou hast no part with Me," Peter
surrendered his pride and self-will. He could not endure the thought of
separation from Christ; that would have been death to him. "Not my feet
only," he said, "but also my hands and my head. Jesus saith to him, He that
is washed needeth not save to wash his feet, but is clean every whit."

These words mean more than bodily cleanliness. Christ is still speaking of
the higher cleansing as illustrated by the lower. He who came from the bath
was clean, but the sandaled feet soon became dusty, and again needed to be
washed. So Peter and his brethren had been washed in the great fountain
opened for sin and uncleanness. Christ acknowledged them as His. But
temptation had led them into evil, and they still needed His cleansing
grace. When Jesus girded Himself with a towel to wash the dust from their
feet, He desired by that very act to wash the alienation, jealousy, and
pride from their hearts. This was of far more consequence than the washing
of their dusty feet. With the spirit they then had, not one of them was
prepared for communion with Christ. Until brought into a state of humility
and love, they were not prepared to partake of the paschal supper, or to
share in the memorial service which Christ was about to institute. Their
hearts must be cleansed. Pride and self-seeking create dissension and
hatred, but all this Jesus washed away in washing their feet. A change of
feeling was brought about. Looking upon them, Jesus could say, "Ye are
clean." Now there was union of heart, love for one another. They had become
humble and teachable. Except Judas, each was ready to concede to another the
highest place. Now with subdued and grateful hearts hey could receive
Christ's words.

Like Peter and his brethren, we too have been washed in the blood of Christ,
yet often through contact with evil the heart's purity is soiled. We must
come to Christ for His cleansing grace. Peter shrank from bringing his
soiled feet in contact with the hands of his Lord and Master;

                                                                     649

but how often we bring our sinful, polluted hearts in contact with the heart
of Christ! How grievous to Him is our evil temper, our vanity and pride! Yet
all our infirmity and defilement we must bring to Him. He alone can wash us
clean. We are not prepared for communion with Him unless cleansed by His
efficacy.

Jesus said to the disciples, "Ye are clean, but not all." He had washed the
feet of Judas, but the heart had not been yielded to Him. It was not
purified. Judas had not submitted himself to Christ.

After Christ had washed the disciples' feet, and had taken His garments and
sat down again, He said to them, "Know ye what I have done to you? Ye call
Me Master and Lord: and ye say well; for so I am. If I then, your Lord and
Master, have washed your feet; ye also ought to wash one another's feet. For
I have given you an example, that ye should do as I have done to you.
Verily, verily, I say unto you, The servant is not greater than his lord;
neither he that is sent greater than he that sent him."

Christ would have His disciples understand that although He had washed their
feet, this did not in the least detract from His dignity. "Ye call Me Master
and Lord: and ye say well; for so I am." And being so infinitely superior,
He imparted grace and significance to the service. No one was so exalted as
Christ, and yet He stooped to the humblest duty. That His people might not
be misled by the selfishness which dwells in the natural heart, and which
strengthens by self-serving, Christ Himself set the example of humility. He
would not leave this great subject in man's charge. Of so much consequence
did He regard it, that He Himself, One equal with God, acted as servant to
His disciples. While they were contending for the highest place, He to whom
every knee shall bow, He whom the angels of glory count it honor to serve,
bowed down to wash the feet of those who called Him Lord. He washed the feet
of His betrayer.

In His life and lessons, Christ has given a perfect exemplification of the
unselfish ministry which has its origin in God. God does not live for
Himself. By creating the world, and by upholding all things, He is
constantly ministering for others. "He maketh His sun to rise on the evil
and on the good, and sendeth rain on the just and on the unjust." Matt.
5:45. This ideal of ministry God has committed to His Son. Jesus was given
to stand at the head of humanity, that by His example He might teach what it
means to minister. His whole life was under a law of service. He served all,
ministered to all. Thus He lived the law of God, and by His example showed
how we are to obey it.

650


Again and again Jesus had tried to establish this principle among His
disciples. When James and John made their request for pre-eminence, He had
said, "Whosoever will be great among you, let him be your minister." Matt.
20:26. In My kingdom the principle of preference and supremacy has no place.
The only greatness is the greatness of humility. The only distinction is
found in devotion to the service of others.

Now, having washed the disciples' feet, He said, "I have given you an
example, that ye should do as I have done to you." In these words Christ was
not merely enjoining the practice of hospitality. More was meant than the
washing of the feet of guests to remove the dust of travel. Christ was here
instituting a religious service. By the act of our Lord this humiliating
ceremony was made a consecrated ordinance. It was to be observed by the
disciples, that they might ever keep in mind His lessons of humility and
service.

This ordinance is Christ's appointed preparation for the sacramental
service. While pride, variance, and strife for supremacy are cherished, the
heart cannot enter into fellowship with Christ. We are not prepared to
receive the communion of His body and His blood. Therefore it was that Jesus
appointed the memorial of His humiliation to be first observed.

As they come to this ordinance, the children of God should bring to
remembrance the words of the Lord of life and glory: "Know ye what I have
done to you? Ye call Me Master and Lord: and ye say well; for so I am. If I
then, your Lord and Master, have washed your feet; ye also ought to wash one
another's feet. For I have given you an example, that ye should do as I have
done to you. Verily, verily, I say unto you, The servant is not greater than
his lord; neither he that is sent greater than he that sent him. If ye know
these things, happy are ye if ye do them." There is in man a disposition to
esteem himself more highly than his brother, to work for self, to seek the
highest place; and often this results in evil surmisings and bitterness of
spirit. The ordinance preceding the Lord's Supper is to clear away these
misunderstandings, to bring man out of his selfishness, down from his stilts
of self-exaltation, to the humility of heart that will lead him to serve his
brother.

The holy Watcher from heaven is present at this season to make it one of
soul searching, of conviction of sin, and of the blessed assurance of sins
forgiven. Christ in the fullness of His grace is there to change the current
of the thoughts that have been running in selfish channels. The Holy Spirit
quickens the sensibilities of those who follow the example of their Lord. As
the Saviour's humiliation for us is remembered, thought

                                                                     651

links with thought; a chain of memories is called up, memories of God's
great goodness and of the favor and tenderness of earthly friends. Blessings
forgotten, mercies abused, kindnesses slighted, are called to mind. Roots of
bitterness that have crowded out the precious plant of love are made
manifest. Defects of character, neglect of duties, ingratitude to God,
coldness toward our brethren, are called to remembrance. Sin is seen in the
light in which God views it. Our thoughts are not thoughts of
self-complacency, but of severe self-censure and humiliation. The mind is
energized to break down every barrier that has caused alienation. Evil
thinking and evilspeaking are put away. Sins are confessed, they are
forgiven. The subduing grace of Christ comes into the soul, and the love of
Christ draws hearts together in a blessed unity.

As the lesson of the preparatory service is thus learned, the desire is
kindled for a higher spiritual life. To this desire the divine Witness will
respond. The soul will be uplifted. We can partake of the Communion with a
consciousness of sins forgiven. The sunshine of Christ's righteousness will
fill the chambers of the mind and the soul temple. We "behold the Lamb of
God, which taketh away the sin of the world." John 1:29.

To those who receive the spirit of this service, it can never become a mere
ceremonial. Its constant lesson will be, "By love serve one another." Gal.
5:13. In washing the feet of His disciples, Christ gave evidence that He
would do any service, however humble, that would make them heirs with Him of
the eternal wealth of heaven's treasure. His disciples, in performing the
same rite, pledge themselves in like manner to serve their brethren.
Whenever this ordinance is rightly celebrated, the children of God are
brought into a holy relationship, to help and bless each other. They
covenant that the life shall be given to unselfish ministry. And this, not
only for one another. Their field of labor is as wide as their Master's was.
The world is full of those who need our ministry. The poor, the helpless,
the ignorant, are on every hand. Those who have communed with Christ in the
upper chamber will go forth to minister as He did.

Jesus, the served of all, came to be the servant of all. And because He
ministered to all, He will again be served and honored by all. And those who
would partake of His divine attributes, and share with Him the joy of seeing
souls redeemed, must follow His example of unselfish ministry.

All this was comprehended in the words of Jesus, "I have given you an
example, that ye should do as I have done to you." This was the intent of
the service He established. And He says, "If ye know these things," if you
know the purpose of His lessons, "happy are ye if ye do them."




(652)

                             Chapter 72

                             "In Remembrance of Me"


"The Lord Jesus the same night in which He was betrayed took bread: and when
He had given thanks, He brake it, and said, Take, eat: this is My body,
which is broken for you: this do in remembrance of Me. After the same manner
also He took the cup, when He had supped, saying, This cup is the new
testament in My blood: this do ye, as oft as ye drink it, in remembrance of
Me. For as often as ye eat this bread, and drink this cup, ye do show the
Lord's death till He come."
1 Cor. 11:23-26.

Christ was standing at the point of transition between two economies and
their two great festivals. He, the spotless Lamb of God, was about to
present Himself as a sin offering, that He would thus bring to an end the
system of types and ceremonies that for four thousand years had pointed to
His death. As He ate the Passover with His disciples, He instituted in its
place the service that was to be the memorial of His great sacrifice. The
national festival of the Jews was to pass away forever. The service which
Christ established was to be observed by His followers in all lands and
through all ages.

The Passover was ordained as a commemoration of the deliverance of Israel
from Egyptian bondage. God had directed that, year by year, as the children
should ask the meaning of this ordinance, the history should be repeated.
Thus the wonderful deliverance was to be kept fresh in the minds of all. The
ordinance of the Lord's Supper was given

                                                                     653

to commemorate the great deliverance wrought out as the result of the death
of Christ. Till He shall come the second time in power and glory, this
ordinance is to be celebrated. It is the means by which His great work for
us is to be kept fresh in our minds.

At the time of their deliverance from Egypt, the children of Israel ate the
Passover supper standing, with their loins girded, and with their staves in
their hands, ready for their journey. The manner in which they celebrated
this ordinance harmonized with their condition; for they were about to be
thrust out of the land of Egypt, and were to begin a painful and difficult
journey through the wilderness. But in Christ's time the condition of things
had changed. They were not now about to be thrust out of a strange country,
but were dwellers in their own land. In harmony with the rest that had been
given them, the people then partook of the Passover supper in a reclining
position. Couches were placed about the table, and the guests lay upon them,
resting upon the left arm, and having the right hand free for use in eating.
In this position a guest could lay his head upon the breast of the one who
sat next above him. And the feet, being at the outer edge of the couch,
could be washed by one passing around the outside of the circle.

Christ is still at the table on which the paschal supper has been spread.
The unleavened cakes used at the Passover season are before Him. The
Passover wine, untouched by fermentation, is on the table. These emblems
Christ employs to represent His own unblemished sacrifice. Nothing corrupted
by fermentation, the symbol of sin and death, could represent the "Lamb
without blemish and without spot." 1 Peter 1:19.

"And as they were eating, Jesus took bread, and blessed it, and brake it,
and gave it to the disciples, and said, Take, eat; this is My body. And He
took the cup, and gave thanks, and gave it to them, saying, Drink ye all of
it; for this is My blood of the new testament, which is shed for many for
the remission of sins. But I say unto you, I will not drink henceforth of
this fruit of the vine, until that day when I drink it new with you in My
Father's kingdom."

Judas the betrayer was present at the sacramental service. He received from
Jesus the emblems of His broken body and His spilled blood. He heard the
words, "This do in remembrance of Me." And sitting there in the very
presence of the Lamb of God, the betrayer brooded upon his own dark
purposes, and cherished his sullen, revengeful thoughts.

At the feet washing, Christ had given convincing proof that He understood
the character of Judas. "Ye are not all clean" (John 13:11),

654

He said. These words convinced the false disciple that Christ read his
secret purpose. Now Christ spoke out more plainly. As they were seated at
the table He said, looking upon His disciples, "I speak not of you all: I
know whom I have chosen: but that the scripture may be fulfilled, He that
eateth bread with Me hath lifted up his heel against Me."

Even now the disciples did not suspect Judas. But they saw that Christ
appeared greatly troubled. A cloud settled over them all, a premonition of
some dreadful calamity, the nature of which they did not understand. As they
ate in silence, Jesus said, "Verily I say unto you, that one of you shall
betray Me." At these words amazement and consternation seized them. They
could not comprehend how any one of them could deal treacherously with their
divine Teacher. For what cause could they betray Him? and to whom? Whose
heart could give birth to such a design? Surely not one of the favored
twelve, who had been privileged above all others to hear His teachings, who
had shared His wonderful love, and for whom He had shown such great regard
by bringing them into close communion with Himself!

As they realized the import of His words, and remembered how true His
sayings were, fear and self-distrust seized them. They began to search their
own hearts to see if one thought against their Master were harbored there.
With the most painful emotion, one after another inquired, "Lord, is it I?"
But Judas sat silent. John in deep distress at last inquired, "Lord, who is
it?" And Jesus answered, "He that dippeth his hand with Me in the dish, the
same shall betray Me. The Son of man goeth as it is written of Him: but woe
unto that man by whom the Son of man is betrayed! it had been good for that
man if he had not been born." The disciples had searched one another's faces
closely as they asked, "Lord, is it I?" And now the silence of Judas drew
all eyes to him. Amid the confusion of questions and expressions of
astonishment, Judas had not heard the words of Jesus in answer to John's
question. But now, to escape the scrutiny of the disciples, he asked as they
had done, "Master, is it I?" Jesus solemnly replied, "Thou hast said."

In surprise and confusion at the exposure of his purpose, Judas rose hastily
to leave the room. "Then said Jesus unto him, That thou doest, do quickly. .
. He then having received the sop went immediately out: and it was night."
Night it was to the traitor as he turned away from Christ into the outer
darkness.

Until this step was taken, Judas had not passed beyond the possibility of
repentance. But when he left the presence of his Lord and his

                                                                     655

fellow disciples, the final decision had been made. He had passed the
boundary line.

Wonderful had been the long-suffering of Jesus in His dealing with this
tempted soul. Nothing that could be done to save Judas had been left undone.
After he had twice covenanted to betray his Lord, Jesus still gave him
opportunity for repentance. By reading the secret purpose of the traitor's
heart, Christ gave to Judas the final, convincing evidence of His divinity.
This was to the false disciple the last call to repentance. No appeal that
the divine-human heart of Christ could make had been spared. The waves of
mercy, beaten back by stubborn pride, returned in a stronger tide of
subduing love. But although surprised and alarmed at the discovery of his
guilt, Judas became only the more determined. From the sacramental supper he
went out to complete the work of betrayal.

In pronouncing the woe upon Judas, Christ also had a purpose of mercy toward
His disciples. He thus gave them the crowning evidence of His Messiahship.
"I tell you before it come," He said, "that, when it is come to pass, ye may
believe that I AM." Had Jesus remained silent, in apparent ignorance of what
was to come upon Him, the disciples might have thought that their Master had
not divine foresight, and had been surprised and betrayed into the hands of
the murderous mob. A year before, Jesus had told the disciples that He had
chosen twelve, and that one was a devil. Now His words to Judas, showing
that his treachery was fully known to his Master, would strengthen the faith
of Christ's true followers during His humiliation. And when Judas should
have come to his dreadful end, they would remember the woe that Jesus had
pronounced upon the betrayer.

And the Saviour had still another purpose. He had not withheld His ministry
from him whom He knew to be a traitor. The disciples did not understand His
words when He said at the feet washing, "Ye are not all clean," nor yet when
at the table He declared, "He that eateth bread with Me hath lifted up his
heel against Me." John 13:11, 18. But afterward, when His meaning was made
plain, they had something to consider as to the patience and mercy of God
toward the most grievously erring.

Though Jesus knew Judas from the beginning, He washed his feet. And the
betrayer was privileged to unite with Christ in partaking of the sacrament.
A long-suffering Saviour held out every inducement for the sinner to receive
Him, to repent, and to be cleansed from the defilement of sin. This example
is for us. When we suppose one to be in error and sin, we are not to divorce
ourselves from him. By no careless

656

separation are we to leave him a prey to temptation, or drive him upon
Satan's battleground. This is not Christ's method. It was because the
disciples were erring and faulty that He washed their feet, and all but one
of the twelve were thus brought to repentance.

Christ's example forbids exclusiveness at the Lord's Supper. It is true that
open sin excludes the guilty. This the Holy Spirit plainly teaches.
1 Cor. 5:11. But beyond this none are to pass judgment. God has not left
it with men to say who shall present themselves on these occasions. For who
can read the heart? Who can distinguish the tares from the wheat? "Let a man
examine himself, and so let him eat of that bread, and drink of that cup."
For "whosoever shall eat this bread, and drink this cup of the Lord,
unworthily, shall be guilty of the body and blood of the Lord." "He that
eateth and drinketh unworthily, eateth and drinketh damnation to himself,
not discerning the Lord's body." 1 Cor. 11:28, 27, 29.

When believers assemble to celebrate the ordinances, there are present
messengers unseen by human eyes. There may be a Judas in the company, and if
so, messengers from the prince of darkness are there, for they attend all
who refuse to be controlled by the Holy Spirit. Heavenly angels also are
present. These unseen visitants are present on every such occasion. There
may come into the company persons who are not in heart servants of truth and
holiness, but who may wish to take part in the service. They should not be
forbidden. There are witnesses present who were present when Jesus washed
the feet of the disciples and of Judas. More than human eyes beheld the
scene.

Christ by the Holy Spirit is there to set the seal to His own ordinance. He
is there to convict and soften the heart. Not a look, not a thought of
contrition, escapes His notice. For the repentant, brokenhearted one He is
waiting. All things are ready for that soul's reception. He who washed the
feet of Judas longs to wash every heart from the stain of sin.

None should exclude themselves from the Communion because some who are
unworthy may be present. Every disciple is called upon to participate
publicly, and thus bear witness that he accepts Christ as a personal
Saviour. It is at these, His own appointments, that Christ meets His people,
and energizes them by His presence. Hearts and hands that are unworthy may
even administer the ordinance, yet Christ is there to minister to His
children. All who come with their faith fixed upon Him will be greatly
blessed. All who neglect these seasons of divine privilege will suffer loss.
Of them it may appropriately be said, "Ye are not all clean."

In partaking with His disciples of the bread and wine, Christ pledged

                                                                     659

Himself to them as their Redeemer. He committed to them the new covenant, by
which all who receive Him become children of God, and joint heirs with
Christ. By this covenant every blessing that heaven could bestow for this
life and the life to come was theirs. This covenant deed was to be ratified
with the blood of Christ. And the administration of the Sacrament was to
keep before the disciples the infinite sacrifice made for each of them
individually as a part of the great whole of fallen humanity.

But the Communion service was not to be a season of sorrowing. This was not
its purpose. As the Lord's disciples gather about His table, they are not to
remember and lament their shortcomings. They are not to dwell upon their
past religious experience, whether that experience has been elevating or
depressing. They are not to recall the differences between them and their
brethren. The preparatory service has embraced all this. The
self-examination, the confession of sin, the reconciling of differences, has
all been done. Now they come to meet with Christ. They are not to stand in
the shadow of the cross, but in its saving light. They are to open the soul
to the bright beams of the Sun of Righteousness. With hearts cleansed by
Christ's most precious blood, in full consciousness of His presence,
although unseen, they are to hear His words, "Peace I leave with you, My
peace I give unto you: not as the world giveth, give I unto you." John
14:27.

Our Lord says, Under conviction of sin, remember that I died for you. When
oppressed and persecuted and afflicted for My sake and the gospel's,
remember My love, so great that for you I gave My life. When your duties
appear stern and severe, and your burdens too heavy to bear, remember that
for your sake I endured the cross, despising the shame. When your heart
shrinks from the trying ordeal, remember that your Redeemer liveth to make
intercession for you.

The Communion service points to Christ's second coming. It was designed to
keep this hope vivid in the minds of the disciples. Whenever they met
together to commemorate His death, they recounted how "He took the cup, and
gave thanks, and gave it to them, saying, Drink ye all of it; for this is My
blood of the new testament, which is shed for many for the remission of
sins. But I say unto you, I will not drink henceforth of this fruit of the
vine, until that day when I drink it new with you in My Father's kingdom."
In their tribulation they found comfort in the hope of their Lord's return.
Unspeakably precious to them was the thought, "As often as ye eat this
bread, and drink this cup, ye do show the Lord's death till He come." 1 Cor.
11:26.

660


These are the things we are never to forget. The love of Jesus, with its
constraining power, is to be kept fresh in our memory. Christ has instituted
this service that it may speak to our senses of the love of God that has
been expressed in our behalf. There can be no union between our souls and
God except through Christ. The union and love between brother and brother
must be cemented and rendered eternal by the love of Jesus. And nothing less
than the death of Christ could make His love efficacious for us. It is only
because of His death that we can look with joy to His second coming. His
sacrifice is the center of our hope. Upon this we must fix our faith.

The ordinances that point to our Lord's humiliation and suffering are
regarded too much as a form. They were instituted for a purpose. Our senses
need to be quickened to lay hold of the mystery of godliness. It is the
privilege of all to comprehend, far more than we do, the expiatory
sufferings of Christ. "As Moses lifted up the serpent in the wilderness,"
even so has the Son of man been lifted up, "that whosoever believeth in Him
should not perish, but have eternal life." John 3:14, 15. To the cross of
Calvary, bearing a dying Saviour, we must look. Our eternal interests demand
that we show faith in Christ.

Our Lord has said, "Except ye eat the flesh of the Son of man, and drink His
blood, ye have no life in you. . . . For My flesh is meat indeed, and My
blood is drink indeed." John 6:53-55. This is true of our physical nature.
To the death of Christ we owe even this earthly life. The bread we eat is
the purchase of His broken body. The water we drink is bought by His spilled
blood. Never one, saint or sinner, eats his daily food, but he is nourished
by the body and the blood of Christ. The cross of Calvary is stamped on
every loaf. It is reflected in every water spring. All this Christ has
taught in appointing the emblems of His great sacrifice. The light shining
from that Communion service in the upper chamber makes sacred the provisions
for our daily life. The family board becomes as the table of the Lord, and
every meal a sacrament.

And how much more are Christ's words true of our spiritual nature. He
declares, "Whoso eateth My flesh, and drinketh My blood, hath eternal life."
It is by receiving the life for us poured out on Calvary's cross, that we
can live the life of holiness. And this life we receive by receiving His
word, by doing those things which He has commanded. Thus we become one with
Him. "He that eateth My flesh," He says, "and drinketh My blood, dwelleth in
Me, and I in him. As the living

                                                                     661

Father hath sent Me, and I live by the Father: so he that eateth Me, even he
shall live by Me." John 6:54, 56, 57. To the holy Communion this scripture
in a special sense applies. As faith contemplates our Lord's great
sacrifice, the soul assimilates the spiritual life of Christ. That soul will
receive spiritual strength from every Communion. The service forms a living
connection by which the believer is bound up with Christ, and thus bound up
with the Father. In a special sense it forms a connection between dependent
human beings and God.

As we receive the bread and wine symbolizing Christ's broken body and
spilled blood, we in imagination join in the scene of Communion in the upper
chamber. We seem to be passing through the garden consecrated by the agony
of Him who bore the sins of the world. We witness the struggle by which our
reconciliation with God was obtained. Christ is set forth crucified among
us.

Looking upon the crucified Redeemer, we more fully comprehend the magnitude
and meaning of the sacrifice made by the Majesty of heaven. The plan of
salvation is glorified before us, and the thought of Calvary awakens living
and sacred emotions in our hearts. Praise to God and the Lamb will be in our
hearts and on our lips; for pride and self-worship cannot flourish in the
soul that keeps fresh in memory the scenes of Calvary.

He who beholds the Saviour's matchless love will be elevated in thought,
purified in heart, transformed in character. He will go forth to be a light
to the world, to reflect in some degree this mysterious love. The more we
contemplate the cross of Christ, the more fully shall we adopt the language
of the apostle when he said, "God forbid that I should glory, save in the
cross of our Lord Jesus Christ, by whom the world is crucified unto me, and
I unto the world." Gal. 6:14.




(662)

                             Chapter 73

                             "Let Not Your Heart Be Troubled"


Looking upon His disciples with divine love and with the tenderest sympathy,
Christ said, "Now is the Son of man glorified, and God is glorified in Him."
Judas had left the upper chamber, and Christ was alone with the eleven. He
was about to speak of His approaching separation from them; but before doing
this He pointed to the great object of His mission. It was this that He kept
ever before Him. It was His joy that all His humiliation and suffering would
glorify the Father's name. To this He first directs the thoughts of His
disciples.

Then addressing them by the endearing term, "Little children," He said, "Yet
a little while I am with you. Ye shall seek Me: and as I said unto the Jews,
Whither I go, ye cannot come; so now I say to you."

The disciples could not rejoice when they heard this. Fear fell upon them.
They pressed close about the Saviour. Their Master and Lord, their beloved
Teacher and Friend, He was dearer to them than life. To Him they had looked
for help in all their difficulties, for comfort in their sorrows and
disappointments. Now He was to leave them, a lonely, dependent company. Dark
were the forebodings that filled their hearts.

But the Saviour's words to them were full of hope. He knew that they were to
be assailed by the enemy, and that Satan's craft is most successful against
those who are depressed by difficulties. Therefore He pointed them away from
"the things which are seen," to "the things which are not seen." 2 Cor.
4:18. From earthly exile He turned their thoughts to the heavenly home.

                                                                     663


"Let not your heart be troubled," He said; "ye believe in God, believe also
in Me. In My Father's house are many mansions: if it were not so, I would
have told you. I go to prepare a place for you. And if I go and prepare a
place for you, I will come again, and receive you unto Myself; that were I
am, there ye may be also. And whither I go ye know, and the way ye know."
For your sake I came into the world. I am working in your behalf. When I go
away, I shall still work earnestly for you. I came into the world to reveal
Myself to you, that you might believe. I go to the Father to co-operate with
Him in your behalf. The object of Christ's departure was the opposite of
what the disciples feared. It did not mean a final separation. He was going
to prepare a place for them, that He might come again, and receive them unto
Himself. While He was building mansions for them, they were to build
characters after the divine similitude.

Still the disciples were perplexed. Thomas, always troubled by doubts, said,
"Lord, we know not whither Thou goest; and how can we know the way? Jesus
saith unto him, I am the way, the truth, and the life; no man cometh unto
the Father, but by Me. If ye had known Me, ye should have known My Father
also: and from henceforth ye know Him, and have seen Him."

There are not many ways to heaven. Each one may not choose his own way.
Christ says, "I am the way: . . . no man cometh unto the Father, but by Me."
Since the first gospel sermon was preached, when in Eden it was declared
that the seed of the woman should bruise the serpent's head, Christ had been
uplifted as the way, the truth, and the life. He was the way when Adam
lived, when Abel presented to God the blood of the slain lamb, representing
the blood of the Redeemer. Christ was the way by which patriarchs and
prophets were saved. He is the way by which alone we can have access to God.

"If ye had known Me," Christ said, "ye should have known My Father also: and
from henceforth ye know Him, and have seen Him." But not yet did the
disciples understand. "Lord, show us the Father," exclaimed Philip, "and it
sufficeth us."

Amazed at his dullness of comprehension, Christ asked with pained surprise,
"Have I been so long time with you, and yet hast thou not known Me, Philip?"
Is it possible that you do not see the Father in the works He does through
Me? Do you not believe that I came to testify of the Father? "How sayest
thou then, Show us the Father?" "He that hath seen Me hath seen the Father."
Christ had not ceased to be

664

God when He became man. Though He had humbled Himself to humanity, the
Godhead was still His own. Christ alone could represent the Father to
humanity, and this representation the disciples had been privileged to
behold for over three years.

"Believe Me that I am in the Father, and the Father in Me: or else believe
Me for the very works' sake." Their faith might safely rest on the evidence
given in Christ's works, works that no man, of himself, ever had done, or
ever could do. Christ's work testified to His divinity. Through Him the
Father had been revealed.

If the disciples believed this vital connection between the Father and the
Son, their faith would not forsake them when they saw Christ's suffering and
death to save a perishing world. Christ was seeking to lead them from their
low condition of faith to the experience they might receive if they truly
realized what He was,--God in human flesh. He desired them to see that their
faith must lead up to God, and be anchored there. How earnestly and
perseveringly our compassionate Saviour sought to prepare His disciples for
the storm of temptation that was soon to beat upon them. He would have them
hid with Him in God.

As Christ was speaking these words, the glory of God was shining from His
countenance, and all present felt a sacred awe as they listened with rapt
attention to His words. Their hearts were more decidedly drawn to Him; and
as they were drawn to Christ in greater love, they were drawn to one
another. They felt that heaven was very near, and that the words to which
they listened were a message to them from their heavenly Father.

"Verily, verily, I say unto you," Christ continued, "He that believeth on
Me, the works that I do shall he do also." The Saviour was deeply anxious
for His disciples to understand for what purpose His divinity was united to
humanity. He came to the world to display the glory of God, that man might
be uplifted by its restoring power. God was manifested in Him that He might
be manifested in them. Jesus revealed no qualities, and exercised no powers,
that men may not have through faith in Him. His perfect humanity is that
which all His followers may possess, if they will be in subjection to God as
He was.

"And greater works than these shall he do; because I go unto My Father." By
this Christ did not mean that the disciples' work would be of a more exalted
character than His, but that it would have greater extent. He did not refer
merely to miracle working, but to all that would take place under the
working of the Holy Spirit.

                                                                     667


After the Lord's ascension, the disciples realized the fulfillment of His
promise. The scenes of the crucifixion, resurrection, and ascension of
Christ were a living reality to them. They saw that the prophecies had been
literally fulfilled. They searched the Scriptures, and accepted their
teaching with a faith and assurance unknown before. They knew that the
divine Teacher was all that He had claimed to be. As they told their
experience, and exalted the love of God, men's hearts were melted and
subdued, and multitudes believed on Jesus.

The Saviour's promise to His disciples is a promise to His church to the end
of time. God did not design that His wonderful plan to redeem men should
achieve only insignificant results. All who will go to work, trusting not in
what they themselves can do, but in what God can do for and through them,
will certainly realize the fulfillment of His promise. "Greater works than
these shall ye do," He declares; "because I go unto My Father."

As yet the disciples were unacquainted with the Saviour's unlimited
resources and power. He said to them, "Hitherto have ye asked nothing in My
name." John 16:24. He explained that the secret of their success would be in
asking for strength and grace in His name. He would be present before the
Father to make request for them. The prayer of the humble suppliant He
presents as His own desire in that soul's behalf. Every sincere prayer is
heard in heaven. It may not be fluently expressed; but if the heart is in
it, it will ascend to the sanctuary where Jesus ministers, and He will
present it to the Father without one awkward, stammering word, beautiful and
fragrant with the incense of His own perfection.

The path of sincerity and integrity is not a path free from obstruction, but
in every difficulty we are to see a call to prayer. There is no one living
who has any power that he has not received from God, and the source whence
it comes is open to the weakest human being. "Whatsoever ye shall ask in My
name," said Jesus, "that will I do, that the Father may be glorified in the
Son. If ye shall ask anything in My name, I will do it."

"In My name," Christ bade His disciples pray. In Christ's name His followers
are to stand before God. Through the value of the sacrifice made for them,
they are of value in the Lord's sight. Because of the imputed righteousness
of Christ they are accounted precious. For Christ's sake the Lord pardons
those that fear Him. He does not see in them the vileness of the sinner. He
recognizes in them the likeness of His Son, in whom they believe.

668


The Lord is disappointed when His people place a low estimate upon
themselves. He desires His chosen heritage to value themselves according to
the price He has placed upon them. God wanted them, else He would not have
sent His Son on such an expensive errand to redeem them. He has a use for
them, and He is well pleased when they make the very highest demands upon
Him, that they may glorify His name. They may expect large things if they
have faith in His promises.

But to pray in Christ's name means much. It means that we are to accept His
character, manifest His spirit, and work His works. The Saviour's promise is
given on condition. "If ye love Me," He says, "keep My commandments." He
saves men, not in sin, but from sin; and those who love Him will show their
love by obedience.

All true obedience comes from the heart. It was heart work with Christ. And
if we consent, He will so identify Himself with our thoughts and aims, so
blend our hearts and minds into conformity to His will, that when obeying
Him we shall be but carrying out our own impulses. The will, refined and
sanctified, will find its highest delight in doing His service. When we know
God as it is our privilege to know Him, our life will be a life of continual
obedience. Through an appreciation of the character of Christ, through
communion with God, sin will become hateful to us.

As Christ lived the law in humanity, so we may do if we will take hold of
the Strong for strength. But we are not to place the responsibility of our
duty upon others, and wait for them to tell us what to do. We cannot depend
for counsel upon humanity. The Lord will teach us our duty just as willingly
as He will teach somebody else. If we come to Him in faith, He will speak
His mysteries to us personally. Our hearts will often burn within us as One
draws nigh to commune with us as He did with Enoch. Those who decide to do
nothing in any line that will displease God, will know, after presenting
their case before Him, just what course to pursue. And they will receive not
only wisdom, but strength. Power for obedience, for service, will be
imparted to them, as Christ has promised. Whatever was given to Christ--the
"all things" to supply the need of fallen men--was given to Him as the head
and representative of humanity. And "whatsoever we ask, we receive of Him,
because we keep His commandments, and do those things that are pleasing in
His sight." 1 John 3:22.

Before offering Himself as the sacrificial victim, Christ sought for the
most essential and complete gift to bestow upon His followers, a gift that

                                                                     669

would bring within their reach the boundless resources of grace. "I will
pray the Father," He said, "and He shall give you another Comforter, that He
may abide with you forever; even the Spirit of truth; whom the world cannot
receive, because it seeth Him not, neither knoweth Him: but ye know Him; for
He dwelleth with you, and shall be in you. I will not leave you orphans: I
will come to you." John 14:16-18, margin.

Before this the Spirit had been in the world; from the very beginning of the
work of redemption He had been moving upon men's hearts. But while Christ
was on earth, the disciples had desired no other helper. Not until they were
deprived of His presence would they feel their need of the Spirit, and then
He would come.

The Holy Spirit is Christ's representative, but divested of the personality
of humanity, and independent thereof. Cumbered with humanity, Christ could
not be in every place personally. Therefore it was for their interest that
He should go to the Father, and send the Spirit to be His successor on
earth. No one could then have any advantage because of his location or his
personal contact with Christ. By the Spirit the Saviour would be accessible
to all. In this sense He would be nearer to them than if He had not ascended
on high.

"He that loveth Me shall be loved of My Father, and I will love him, and
will manifest Myself to him." Jesus read the future of His disciples. He saw
one brought to the scaffold, one to the cross, one to exile among the lonely
rocks of the sea, others to persecution and death. He encouraged them with
the promise that in every trial He would be with them. That promise has lost
none of its force. The Lord knows all about His faithful servants who for
His sake are lying in prison or who are banished to lonely islands. He
comforts them with His own presence. When for the truth's sake the believer
stands at the bar of unrighteous tribunals, Christ stands by his side. All
the reproaches that fall upon him, fall upon Christ. Christ is condemned
over again in the person of His disciple. When one is incarcerated in prison
walls, Christ ravishes the heart with His love. When one suffers death for
His sake, Christ says, "I am He that liveth, and was dead; and, behold, I am
alive forevermore, . . . and have the keys of hell and of death." Rev. 1:18.
The life that is sacrificed for Me is preserved unto eternal glory.

At all times and in all places, in all sorrows and in all afflictions, when
the outlook seems dark and the future perplexing, and we feel helpless and
alone, the Comforter will be sent in answer to the prayer of

670

faith. Circumstances may separate us from every earthly friend; but no
circumstance, no distance, can separate us from the heavenly Comforter.
Wherever we are, wherever we may go, He is always at our right hand to
support, sustain, uphold, and cheer.

The disciples still failed to understand Christ's words in their spiritual
sense, and again He explained His meaning. By the Spirit, He said, He would
manifest Himself to them. "The Comforter, which is the Holy Ghost, whom the
Father will send in My name, He shall teach you all things." No more will
you say, I cannot comprehend. No longer will you see through a glass,
darkly. You shall "be able to comprehend with all saints what is the
breadth, and length, and depth, and height; and to know the love of Christ,
which passeth knowledge." Eph. 3:18, 19.

The disciples were to bear witness to the life and work of Christ. Through
their word He was to speak to all the people on the face of the earth. But
in the humiliation and death of Christ they were to suffer great trial and
disappointment. That after this experience their word might be accurate,
Jesus promised that the Comforter should "bring all things to your
remembrance, whatsoever I have said unto you."

"I have yet many things to say unto you," He continued, "but ye cannot bear
them now. Howbeit when He, the Spirit of truth, is come, He will guide you
into all truth: for He shall not speak of Himself; but whatsoever He shall
hear, that shall He speak: and He will show you things to come. He shall
glorify Me: for He shall receive of Mine, and shall show it unto you." Jesus
had opened before His disciples a vast tract of truth. But it was most
difficult for them to keep His lessons distinct from the traditions and
maxims of the scribes and Pharisees. They had been educated to accept the
teaching of the rabbis as the voice of God, and it still held a power over
their minds, and molded their sentiments. Earthly ideas, temporal things,
still had a large place in their thoughts. They did not understand the
spiritual nature of Christ's kingdom, though He had so often explained it to
them. Their minds had become confused. They did not comprehend the value of
the scriptures Christ presented. Many of His lessons seemed almost lost upon
them. Jesus saw that they did not lay hold of the real meaning of His words.
He compassionately promised that the Holy Spirit should recall these sayings
to their minds. And He had left unsaid many things that could not be
comprehended by the disciples. These also would be opened to them by the
Spirit. The Spirit was to quicken their

                                                                     671

understanding, that they might have an appreciation of heavenly things.
"When He, the Spirit of truth, is come," said Jesus, "He will guide you into
all truth."

The Comforter is called "the Spirit of truth." His work is to define and
maintain the truth. He first dwells in the heart as the Spirit of truth, and
thus He becomes the Comforter. There is comfort and peace in the truth, but
no real peace or comfort can be found in falsehood. It is through false
theories and traditions that Satan gains his power over the mind. By
directing men to false standards, he misshapes the character. Through the
Scriptures the Holy Spirit speaks to the mind, and impresses truth upon the
heart. Thus He exposes error, and expels it from the soul. It is by the
Spirit of truth, working through the word of God, that Christ subdues His
chosen people to Himself.

In describing to His disciples the office work of the Holy Spirit, Jesus
sought to inspire them with the joy and hope that inspired His own heart. He
rejoiced because of the abundant help He had provided for His church. The
Holy Spirit was the highest of all gifts that He could solicit from His
Father for the exaltation of His people. The Spirit was to be given as a
regenerating agent, and without this the sacrifice of Christ would have been
of no avail. The power of evil had been strengthening for centuries, and the
submission of men to this satanic captivity was amazing. Sin could be
resisted and overcome only through the mighty agency of the Third Person of
the Godhead, who would come with no modified energy, but in the fullness of
divine power. It is the Spirit that makes effectual what has been wrought
out by the world's Redeemer. It is by the Spirit that the heart is made
pure. Through the Spirit the believer becomes a partaker of the divine
nature. Christ has given His Spirit as a divine power to overcome all
hereditary and cultivated tendencies to evil, and to impress His own
character upon His church.

Of the Spirit Jesus said, "He shall glorify Me." The Saviour came to glorify
the Father by the demonstration of His love; so the Spirit was to glorify
Christ by revealing His grace to the world. The very image of God is to be
reproduced in humanity. The honor of God, the honor of Christ, is involved
in the perfection of the character of His people.

"When He [the Spirit of truth] is come, He will reprove the world of sin,
and of righteousness, and of judgment." The preaching of the word will be of
no avail without the continual presence and aid of the Holy Spirit. This is
the only effectual teacher of divine truth. Only

672

when the truth is accompanied to the heart by the Spirit will it quicken the
conscience or transform the life. One might be able to present the letter of
the word of God, he might be familiar with all its commands and promises;
but unless the Holy Spirit sets home the truth, no souls will fall on the
Rock and be broken. No amount of education, no advantages, however great,
can make one a channel of light without the co-operation of the Spirit of
God. The sowing of the gospel seed will not be a success unless the seed is
quickened into life by the dew of heaven. Before one book of the New
Testament was written, before one gospel sermon had been preached after
Christ's ascension, the Holy Spirit came upon the praying apostles. Then the
testimony of their enemies was, "Ye have filled Jerusalem with your
doctrine." Acts 5:28.

Christ has promised the gift of the Holy Spirit to His church, and the
promise belongs to us as much as to the first disciples. But like every
other promise, it is given on conditions. There are many who believe and
profess to claim the Lord's promise; they talk about Christ and about the
Holy Spirit, yet receive no benefit. They do not surrender the soul to be
guided and controlled by the divine agencies. We cannot use the Holy Spirit.
The Spirit is to use us. Through the Spirit God works in His people "to will
and to do of His good pleasure." Phil. 2:13. But many will not submit to
this. They want to manage themselves. This is why they do not receive the
heavenly gift. Only to those who wait humbly upon God, who watch for His
guidance and grace, is the Spirit given. The power of God awaits their
demand and reception. This promised blessing, claimed by faith, brings all
other blessings in its train. It is given according to the riches of the
grace of Christ, and He is ready to supply every soul according to the
capacity to receive.

In His discourse to the disciples, Jesus made no mournful allusion to His
own sufferings and death. His last legacy to them was a legacy of peace. He
said, "Peace I leave with you, My peace I give unto you: not as the world
giveth, give I unto you. Let not your heart be troubled, neither let it be
afraid."

Before leaving the upper chamber, the Saviour led His disciples in a song of
praise. His voice was heard, not in the strains of some mournful lament, but
in the joyful notes of the Passover hallel:


"O praise the Lord, all ye nations:

Praise Him, all ye people.

For His merciful kindness is great toward us:

And the truth of the Lord endureth forever.

Praise ye the Lord." Psalm 117.

                                                                     673


After the hymn, they went out. Through the crowded streets they made their
way, passing out of the city gate toward the Mount of Olives. Slowly they
proceeded, each busy with his own thoughts. As they began to descend toward
the mount, Jesus said, in a tone of deepest sadness, "All ye shall be
offended because of Me this night: for it is written, I will smite the
shepherd, and the sheep of the flock shall be scattered abroad." Matt.
26:31. The disciples listened in sorrow and amazement. They remembered how
in the synagogue at Capernaum, when Christ spoke of Himself as the bread of
life, many had been offended, and had turned away from Him. But the twelve
had not shown themselves unfaithful. Peter, speaking for his brethren, had
then declared his loyalty to Christ. Then the Saviour had said, "Have not I
chosen you twelve, and one of you is a devil?" John 6:70. In the upper
chamber Jesus said that one of the twelve would betray Him, and that Peter
would deny Him. But now His words include them all.

Now Peter's voice is heard vehemently protesting, "Although all shall be
offended, yet will not I." In the upper chamber he had declared, "I will lay
down my life for Thy sake." Jesus had warned him that he would that very
night deny his Saviour. Now Christ repeats the warning: "Verily I say unto
thee, That this day, even in this night, before the cock crow twice, thou
shalt deny Me thrice." But Peter only "spake the more vehemently, If I
should die with Thee, I will not deny Thee in anywise. Likewise also said
they all." Mark 14:29, 30, 31. In their self-confidence they denied the
repeated statement of Him who knew. They were unprepared for the test; when
temptation should overtake them, they would understand their own weakness.

When Peter said he would follow his Lord to prison and to death, he meant
it, every word of it; but he did not know himself. Hidden in his heart were
elements of evil that circumstances would fan into life. Unless he was made
conscious of his danger, these would prove his eternal ruin. The Saviour saw
in him a self-love and assurance that would overbear even his love for
Christ. Much of infirmity, of unmortified sin, carelessness of spirit,
unsanctified temper, heedlessness in entering into temptation, had been
revealed in his experience. Christ's solemn warning was a call to heart
searching. Peter needed to distrust himself, and to have a deeper faith in
Christ. Had he in humility received the warning, he would have appealed to
the Shepherd of the flock to keep His sheep. When on the Sea of Galilee he
was about to sink, he cried, "Lord, save me." Matt. 14:30. Then the hand of
Christ was outstretched

674

to grasp his hand. So now if he had cried to Jesus, Save me from myself, he
would have been kept. But Peter felt that he was distrusted, and he thought
it cruel. He was already offended, and he became more persistent in his
self-confidence.

Jesus looks with compassion on His disciples. He cannot save them from the
trial, but He does not leave them comfortless. He assures them that He is to
break the fetters of the tomb, and that His love for them will not fail.
"After I am risen again," He says, "I will go before you into Galilee."
Matt. 26:32. Before the denial, they have the assurance of forgiveness.
After His death and resurrection, they knew that they were forgiven, and
were dear to the heart of Christ.

Jesus and the disciples were on the way to Gethsemane, at the foot of Mount
Olivet, a retired spot which He had often visited for meditation and prayer.
The Saviour had been explaining to His disciples His mission to the world,
and the spiritual relation to Him which they were to sustain. Now He
illustrates the lesson. The moon is shining bright, and reveals to Him a
flourishing grapevine. Drawing the attention of the disciples to it, He
employs it as a symbol.

"I am the true Vine," He says. Instead of choosing the graceful palm, the
lofty cedar, or the strong oak, Jesus takes the vine with its clinging
tendrils to represent Himself. The palm tree, the cedar, and the oak stand
alone. They require no support. But the vine entwines about the trellis, and
thus climbs heavenward. So Christ in His humanity was

                                                                     675

dependent upon divine power. "I can of Mine own self do nothing," He
declared. John 5:30.

"I am the true Vine." The Jews had always regarded the vine as the most
noble of plants, and a type of all that was powerful, excellent, and
fruitful. Israel had been represented as a vine which God had planted in the
Promised Land. The Jews based their hope of salvation on the fact of their
connection with Israel. But Jesus says, I am the real Vine. Think not that
through a connection with Israel you may become partakers of the life of
God, and inheritors of His promise. Through Me alone is spiritual life
received.

"I am the true Vine, and My Father is the husbandman." On the hills of
Palestine our heavenly Father had planted this goodly Vine, and He Himself
was the husbandman. Many were attracted by the beauty of this Vine, and
declared its heavenly origin. But to the leaders in Israel it appeared as a
root out of a dry ground. They took the plant, and bruised it, and trampled
it under their unholy feet. Their thought was to destroy it forever. But the
heavenly Husbandman never lost sight of His plant. After men thought they
had killed it, He took it, and replanted it on the other side of the wall.
The vine stock was to be no longer visible. It was hidden from the rude
assaults of men. But the branches of the Vine hung over the wall. They were
to represent the Vine. Through them grafts might still be united to the
Vine. From them fruit has been obtained. There has been a harvest which the
passers-by have plucked.

"I am the Vine, ye are the branches," Christ said to His disciples. Though
He was about to be removed from them, their spiritual union with Him was to
be unchanged. The connection of the branch with the vine, He said,
represents the relation you are to sustain to Me. The scion is engrafted
into the living vine, and fiber by fiber, vein by vein, it grows into the
vine stock. The life of the vine becomes the life of the branch. So the soul
dead in trespasses and sins receives life through connection with Christ. By
faith in Him as a personal Saviour the union is formed. The sinner unites
his weakness to Christ's strength, his emptiness to Christ's fullness, his
frailty to Christ's enduring might. Then he has the mind of Christ. The
humanity of Christ has touched our humanity, and our humanity has touched
divinity. Thus through the agency of the Holy Spirit man becomes a partaker
of the divine nature. He is accepted in the Beloved.

676


This union with Christ, once formed, must be maintained. Christ said, "Abide
in Me, and I in you. As the branch cannot bear fruit of itself, except it
abide in the vine; no more can ye, except ye abide in Me." This is no casual
touch, no off-and-on connection. The branch becomes a part of the living
vine. The communication of life, strength, and fruitfulness from the root to
the branches is unobstructed and constant. Separated from the vine, the
branch cannot live. No more, said Jesus, can you live apart from Me. The
life you have received from Me can be preserved only by continual communion.
Without Me you cannot overcome one sin, or resist one temptation.

"Abide in Me, and I in you." Abiding in Christ means a constant receiving of
His Spirit, a life of unreserved surrender to His service. The channel of
communication must be open continually between man and his God. As the vine
branch constantly draws the sap from the living vine, so are we to cling to
Jesus, and receive from Him by faith the strength and perfection of His own
character.

The root sends its nourishment through the branch to the outermost twig. So
Christ communicates the current of spiritual strength to every believer. So
long as the soul is united to Christ, there is no danger that it will wither
or decay.

The life of the vine will be manifest in fragrant fruit on the branches. "He
that abideth in Me," said Jesus, "and I in him, the same bringeth forth much
fruit: for without Me ye can do nothing." When we live by faith on the Son
of God, the fruits of the Spirit will be seen in our lives; not one will be
missing.

"My Father is the husbandman. Every branch in Me that beareth not fruit He
taketh away." While the graft is outwardly united with the vine, there may
be no vital connection. Then there will be no growth or fruitfulness. So
there may be an apparent connection with Christ without a real union with
Him by faith. A profession of religion places men in the church, but the
character and conduct show whether they are in connection with Christ. If
they bear no fruit, they are false branches. Their separation from Christ
involves a ruin as complete as that represented by the dead branch. "If a
man abide not in Me," said Christ, "he is cast forth as a branch, and is
withered; and men gather them, and cast them into the fire, and they are
burned."

"And every branch that beareth fruit, He purgeth [pruneth] it, that it may
bring forth more fruit." From the chosen twelve who had followed

                                                                     677

Jesus, one as a withered branch was about to be taken away; the rest were to
pass under the pruning knife of bitter trial. Jesus with solemn tenderness
explained the purpose of the husbandman. The pruning will cause pain, but it
is the Father who applies the knife. He works with no wanton hand or
indifferent heart. There are branches trailing upon the ground; these must
be cut loose from the earthly supports to which their tendrils are
fastening. They are to reach heavenward, and find their support in God. The
excessive foliage that draws away the life current from the fruit must be
pruned off. The overgrowth must be cut out, to give room for the healing
beams of the Sun of Righteousness. The husbandman prunes away the harmful
growth, that the fruit may be richer and more abundant.

"Herein is My Father glorified," said Jesus, "that ye bear much fruit." God
desires to manifest through you the holiness, the benevolence, the
compassion, of His own character. Yet the Saviour does not bid the disciples
labor to bear fruit. He tells them to abide in Him. "If ye abide in Me," He
says, "and My words abide in you, ye shall ask what ye will, and it shall be
done unto you." It is through the word that Christ abides in His followers.
This is the same vital union that is represented by eating His flesh and
drinking His blood. The words of Christ are spirit and life. Receiving them,
you receive the life of the Vine. You live "by every word that proceedeth
out of the mouth of God." Matt. 4:4. The life of Christ in you produces the
same fruits as in Him. Living in Christ, adhering to Christ, supported by
Christ, drawing nourishment from Christ, you bear fruit after the similitude
of Christ.

In this last meeting with His disciples, the great desire which Christ
expressed for them was that they might love one another as He had loved
them. Again and again He spoke of this. "These things I command you," He
said repeatedly, "that ye love one another." His very first injunction when
alone with them in the upper chamber was, "A new commandment I give unto
you, That ye love one another; as I have loved you, that ye also love one
another." To the disciples this commandment was new; for they had not loved
one another as Christ had loved them. He saw that new ideas and impulses
must control them; that new principles must be practiced by them; through
His life and death they were to receive a new conception of love. The
command to love one another had a new meaning in the light of His
self-sacrifice. The whole

678

work of grace is one continual service of love, of self-denying,
self-sacrificing effort. During every hour of Christ's sojourn upon the
earth, the love of God was flowing from Him in irrepressible streams. All
who are imbued with His Spirit will love as He loved. The very principle
that actuated Christ will actuate them in all their dealing one with
another.

This love is the evidence of their discipleship. "By this shall all men know
that ye are My disciples," said Jesus, "if ye have love one to another."
When men are bound together, not by force or self-interest, but by love,
they show the working of an influence that is above every human influence.
Where this oneness exists, it is evidence that the image of God is being
restored in humanity, that a new principle of life has been implanted. It
shows that there is power in the divine nature to withstand the supernatural
agencies of evil, and that the grace of God subdues the selfishness inherent
in the natural heart.

This love, manifested in the church, will surely stir the wrath of Satan.
Christ did not mark out for His disciples an easy path. "If the world hate
you," He said, "ye know that it hated Me before it hated you. If ye were of
the world, the world would love his own: but because ye are not of the
world, but I have chosen you out of the world, therefore the world hateth
you. Remember the word that I said unto you, The servant is not greater than
his lord. If they have persecuted Me, they will also persecute you; if they
have kept My saying, they will keep yours also. But all these things will
they do unto you for My name's sake, because they know not Him that sent
Me." The gospel is to be carried forward by aggressive warfare, in the midst
of opposition, peril, loss, and suffering. But those who do this work are
only following in their Master's steps.

As the world's Redeemer, Christ was constantly confronted with apparent
failure. He, the messenger of mercy to our world, seemed to do little of the
work He longed to do in uplifting and saving. Satanic influences were
constantly working to oppose His way. But He would not be discouraged.
Through the prophecy of Isaiah He declares, "I have labored in vain, I have
spent My strength for nought, and in vain: yet surely My judgment is with
the Lord, and My work with My God. . . . Though Israel be not gathered, yet
shall I be glorious in the eyes of the Lord, and My God shall be My
strength." It is to Christ that the promise is given, "Thus saith the Lord,
the Redeemer of Israel, and His Holy One, to Him whom man despiseth, to Him
whom the nation

                                                                     679

abhorreth; . . . thus saith the Lord: . . . I will preserve Thee, and give
Thee for a covenant of the people, to establish the earth, to cause to
inherit the desolate heritages; that Thou mayest say to the prisoners, Go
forth; to them that are in darkness, Show yourselves. . . . They shall not
hunger nor thirst; neither shall the heat nor sun smite them: for He that
hath mercy on them shall lead them, even by the springs of water shall He
guide them." Isa. 49:4, 5, 7-10.

Upon this word Jesus rested, and He gave Satan no advantage. When the last
steps of Christ's humiliation were to be taken, when the deepest sorrow was
closing about His soul, He said to His disciples, "The prince of this world
cometh, and hath nothing in Me." "The prince of this world is judged." Now
shall he be cast out. John 14:30; 16:11; 12:31. With prophetic eye Christ
traced the scenes to take place in His last great conflict. He knew that
when He should exclaim, "It is finished," all heaven would triumph. His ear
caught the distant music and the shouts of victory in the heavenly courts.
He knew that the knell of Satan's empire would then be sounded, and the name
of Christ would be heralded from world to world throughout the universe.

Christ rejoiced that He could do more for His followers than they could ask
or think. He spoke with assurance, knowing that an almighty decree had been
given before the world was made. He knew that truth, armed with the
omnipotence of the Holy Spirit, would conquer in the contest with evil; and
that the bloodstained banner would wave triumphantly over His followers. He
knew that the life of His trusting disciples would be like His, a series of
uninterrupted victories, not seen to be such here, but recognized as such in
the great hereafter.

"These things I have spoken unto you," He said, "that in Me ye might have
peace. In the world ye shall have tribulation: but be of good cheer; I have
overcome the world." Christ did not fail, neither was He discouraged, and
His followers are to manifest a faith of the same enduring nature. They are
to live as He lived, and work as He worked, because they depend on Him as
the great Master Worker. Courage, energy, and perseverance they must
possess. Though apparent impossibilities obstruct their way, by His grace
they are to go forward. Instead of deploring difficulties, they are called
upon to surmount them. They are to despair of nothing, and to hope for
everything. With the golden chain of His matchless love Christ has bound
them to the throne of God. It is His purpose that the highest influence in
the universe, emanating from the source of all power, shall be theirs. They
are to have power

680

to resist evil, power that neither earth, nor death, nor hell can master,
power that will enable them to overcome as Christ overcame.

Christ designs that heaven's order, heaven's plan of government, heaven's
divine harmony, shall be represented in His church on earth. Thus in His
people He is glorified. Through them the Sun of Righteousness will shine in
undimmed luster to the world. Christ has given to His church ample
facilities, that He may receive a large revenue of glory from His redeemed,
purchased possession. He has bestowed upon His people capabilities and
blessings that they may represent His own sufficiency. The church, endowed
with the righteousness of Christ, is His depositary, in which the riches of
His mercy, His grace, and His love, are to appear in full and final display.
Christ looks upon His people in their purity and perfection, as the reward
of His humiliation, and the supplement of His glory,--Christ, the great
Center, from whom radiates all glory.

With strong, hopeful words the Saviour ended His instruction. Then He poured
out the burden of His soul in prayer for His disciples. Lifting His eyes to
heaven, He said, "Father, the hour is come; glorify Thy Son, that Thy Son
also may glorify Thee: as Thou hast given Him power over all flesh, that He
should give eternal life to as many as Thou hast given Him. And this is life
eternal, that they might know Thee the only true God, and Jesus Christ, whom
Thou hast sent."

Christ had finished the work that was given Him to do. He had glorified God
on the earth. He had manifested the Father's name. He had gathered out those
who were to continue His work among men. And He said, "I am glorified in
them. And now I am no more in the world, but these are in the world, and I
come to Thee. Holy Father, keep through Thine own name those whom Thou hast
given Me, that they may be one, as We are." "Neither pray I for these alone,
but for them also which shall believe on Me through their word; that they
all may be one; . . . I in them, and Thou in Me, that they may be made
perfect in one; and that the world may know that Thou hast sent Me, and hast
loved them, as Thou hast loved Me."

Thus in the language of one who has divine authority, Christ gives His elect
church into the Father's arms. As a consecrated high priest He intercedes
for His people. As a faithful shepherd He gathers His flock under the shadow
of the Almighty, in the strong and sure refuge. For Him there waits the last
battle with Satan, and He goes forth to meet it.




                                                                     (685)

                             Chapter 74

                             Gethsemane


In company with His disciples, the Saviour slowly made His way to the garden
of Gethsemane. The Passover moon, broad and full, shone from a cloudless
sky. The city of pilgrims' tents was hushed into silence.

Jesus had been earnestly conversing with His disciples and instructing them;
but as He neared Gethsemane, He became strangely silent. He had often
visited this spot for meditation and prayer; but never with a heart so full
of sorrow as upon this night of His last agony. Throughout His life on earth
He had walked in the light of God's presence. When in conflict with men who
were inspired by the very spirit of Satan, He could say, "He that sent Me is
with Me: the Father hath not left Me alone; for I do always those things
that please Him." John 8:29. But now He seemed to be shut out from the light
of God's sustaining presence. Now He was numbered with the transgressors.
The guilt of fallen humanity He must bear. Upon Him who knew no sin must be
laid the iniquity of us all. So dreadful does sin appear to Him, so great is
the weight of guilt which He must bear, that He is tempted to fear it will
shut Him out forever from His Father's love. Feeling how terrible is the
wrath of God against transgression, He exclaims, "My soul is exceeding
sorrowful, even unto death."

As they approached the garden, the disciples had marked the change that came
over their Master. Never before had they seen Him so utterly

686

sad and silent. As He proceeded, this strange sadness deepened; yet they
dared not question Him as to the cause. His form swayed as if He were about
to fall. Upon reaching the garden, the disciples looked anxiously for His
usual place of retirement, that their Master might rest. Every step that He
now took was with labored effort. He groaned aloud, as if suffering under
the pressure of a terrible burden. Twice His companions supported Him, or He
would have fallen to the earth.

Near the entrance to the garden, Jesus left all but three of the disciples,
bidding them pray for themselves and for Him. With Peter, James, and John,
He entered its secluded recesses. These three disciples were Christ's
closest companions. They had beheld His glory on the mount of
transfiguration; they had seen Moses and Elijah talking with Him; they had
heard the voice from heaven; now in His great struggle, Christ desired their
presence near Him. Often they had passed the night with Him in this retreat.
On these occasions, after a season of watching and prayer, they would sleep
undisturbed at a little distance from their Master, until He awoke them in
the morning to go forth anew to labor. But now He desired them to spend the
night with Him in prayer. Yet He could not bear that even they should
witness the agony He was to endure.

"Tarry ye here," He said, "and watch with Me."

He went a little distance from them--not so far but that they could both see
and hear Him--and fell prostrate upon the ground. He felt that by sin He was
being separated from His Father. The gulf was so broad, so black, so deep,
that His spirit shuddered before it. This agony He must not exert His divine
power to escape. As man He must suffer the consequences of man's sin. As man
He must endure the wrath of God against transgression.

Christ was now standing in a different attitude from that in which He had
ever stood before. His suffering can best be described in the words of the
prophet, "Awake, O sword, against My shepherd, and against the man that is
My fellow, saith the Lord of hosts." Zech. 13:7. As the substitute and
surety for sinful man, Christ was suffering under divine justice. He saw
what justice meant. Hitherto He had been as an intercessor for others; now
He longed to have an intercessor for Himself.

As Christ felt His unity with the Father broken up, He feared that in His
human nature He would be unable to endure the coming conflict with the
powers of darkness. In the wilderness of temptation the destiny of the human
race had been at stake. Christ was then conqueror. Now

                                                                     687

the tempter had come for the last fearful struggle. For this he had been
preparing during the three years of Christ's ministry. Everything was at
stake with him. If he failed here, his hope of mastery was lost; the
kingdoms of the world would finally become Christ's; he himself would be
overthrown and cast out. But if Christ could be overcome, the earth would
become Satan's kingdom, and the human race would be forever in his power.
With the issues of the conflict before Him, Christ's soul was filled with
dread of separation from God. Satan told Him that if He became the surety
for a sinful world, the separation would be eternal. He would be identified
with Satan's kingdom, and would nevermore be one with God.

And what was to be gained by this sacrifice? How hopeless appeared the guilt
and ingratitude of men! In its hardest features Satan pressed the situation
upon the Redeemer: The people who claim to be above all others in temporal
and spiritual advantages have rejected You. They are seeking to destroy You,
the foundation, the center and seal of the promises made to them as a
peculiar people. One of Your own disciples, who has listened to Your
instruction, and has been among the foremost in church activities, will
betray You. One of Your most zealous followers will deny You. All will
forsake You. Christ's whole being abhorred the thought. That those whom He
had undertaken to save, those whom He loved so much, should unite in the
plots of Satan, this pierced His soul. The conflict was terrible. Its
measure was the guilt of His nation, of His accusers and betrayer, the guilt
of a world lying in wickedness. The sins of men weighed heavily upon Christ,
and the sense of God's wrath against sin was crushing out His life.

Behold Him contemplating the price to be paid for the human soul. In His
agony He clings to the cold ground, as if to prevent Himself from being
drawn farther from God. The chilling dew of night falls upon His prostrate
form, but He heeds it not. From His pale lips comes the bitter cry, "O My
Father, if it be possible, let this cup pass from Me." Yet even now He adds,
"Nevertheless not as I will, but as Thou wilt."

The human heart longs for sympathy in suffering. This longing Christ felt to
the very depths of His being. In the supreme agony of His soul He came to
His disciples with a yearning desire to hear some words of comfort from
those whom He had so often blessed and comforted, and shielded in sorrow and
distress. The One who had always had words of sympathy for them was now
suffering superhuman agony, and He longed to know that they were praying for
Him and for themselves.

688

How dark seemed the malignity of sin! Terrible was the temptation to let the
human race bear the consequences of its own guilt, while He stood innocent
before God. If He could only know that His disciples understood and
appreciated this, He would be strengthened.

Rising with painful effort, He staggered to the place where He had left His
companions. But He "findeth them asleep." Had He found them praying, He
would have been relieved. Had they been seeking refuge in God, that satanic
agencies might not prevail over them, He would have been comforted by their
steadfast faith. But they had not heeded the repeated warning, "Watch and
pray." At first they had been much troubled to see their Master, usually so
calm and dignified, wrestling with a sorrow that was beyond comprehension.
They had prayed as they heard the strong cries of the sufferer. They did not
intend to forsake their Lord, but they seemed paralyzed by a stupor which
they might have shaken off if they had continued pleading with God. They did
not realize the necessity of watchfulness and earnest prayer in order to
withstand temptation.

Just before He bent His footsteps to the garden, Jesus had said to the
disciples, "All ye shall be offended because of Me this night." They had
given Him the strongest assurance that they would go with Him to prison and
to death. And poor, self-sufficient Peter had added, "Although all shall be
offended, yet will not I." Mark 14:27, 29. But the

                                                                     689

disciples trusted to themselves. They did not look to the mighty Helper as
Christ had counseled them to do. Thus when the Saviour was most in need of
their sympathy and prayers, they were found asleep. Even Peter was sleeping.

And John, the loving disciple who had leaned upon the breast of Jesus, was
asleep. Surely, the love of John for his Master should have kept him awake.
His earnest prayers should have mingled with those of his loved Saviour in
the time of His supreme sorrow. The Redeemer had spent entire nights praying
for His disciples, that their faith might not fail. Should Jesus now put to
James and John the question He had once asked them, "Are ye able to drink of
the cup that I shall drink of, and to be baptized with the baptism that I am
baptized with?" they would not have ventured to answer, "We are able." Matt.
20:22.

The disciples awakened at the voice of Jesus, but they hardly knew Him, His
face was so changed by anguish. Addressing Peter, Jesus said, "Simon,
sleepest thou? couldest not thou watch one hour? Watch ye and pray, lest ye
enter into temptation. The spirit truly is ready, but the flesh is weak."
The weakness of His disciples awakened the sympathy of Jesus. He feared that
they would not be able to endure the test which would come upon them in His
betrayal and death. He did not reprove them, but said, "Watch ye and pray,
lest ye enter into temptation." Even in His great agony, He was seeking to
excuse their weakness. "The spirit truly is ready," He said, "but the flesh
is weak."

Again the Son of God was seized with superhuman agony, and fainting and
exhausted, He staggered back to the place of His former struggle. His
suffering was even greater than before. As the agony of soul came upon Him,
"His sweat was as it were great drops of blood falling down to the ground."
The cypress and palm trees were the silent witnesses of His anguish. From
their leafy branches dropped heavy dew upon His stricken form, as if nature
wept over its Author wrestling alone with the powers of darkness.

A short time before, Jesus had stood like a mighty cedar, withstanding the
storm of opposition that spent its fury upon Him. Stubborn wills, and hearts
filled with malice and subtlety, had striven in vain to confuse and
overpower Him. He stood forth in divine majesty as the Son of God. Now He
was like a reed beaten and bent by the angry storm. He had approached the
consummation of His work a conqueror, having at each step gained the victory
over the powers of darkness. As

690

one already glorified, He had claimed oneness with God. In unfaltering
accents He had poured out His songs of praise. He had spoken to His
disciples in words of courage and tenderness. Now had come the hour of the
power of darkness. Now His voice was heard on the still evening air, not in
tones of triumph, but full of human anguish. The words of the Saviour were
borne to the ears of the drowsy disciples, "O My Father, if this cup may not
pass away from Me, except I drink it, Thy will be done."

The first impulse of the disciples was to go to Him; but He had bidden them
tarry there, watching unto prayer. When Jesus came to them, He found them
still sleeping. Again He had felt a longing for companionship, for some
words from His disciples which would bring relief, and break the spell of
darkness that well-nigh overpowered Him. But their eyes were heavy; "neither
wist they what to answer Him." His presence aroused them. They saw His face
marked with the bloody sweat of agony, and they were filled with fear. His
anguish of mind they could not understand. "His visage was so marred more
than any man, and His form more than the sons of men." Isa. 52:14.

Turning away, Jesus sought again His retreat, and fell prostrate, overcome
by the horror of a great darkness. The humanity of the Son of God trembled
in that trying hour. He prayed not now for His disciples that their faith
might not fail, but for His own tempted, agonized soul. The awful moment had
come--that moment which was to decide the destiny of the world. The fate of
humanity trembled in the balance. Christ might even now refuse to drink the
cup apportioned to guilty man. It was not yet too late. He might wipe the
bloody sweat from His brow, and leave man to perish in his iniquity. He
might say, Let the transgressor receive the penalty of his sin, and I will
go back to My Father. Will the Son of God drink the bitter cup of
humiliation and agony? Will the innocent suffer the consequences of the
curse of sin, to save the guilty? The words fall tremblingly from the pale
lips of Jesus, "O My Father, if this cup may not pass away from Me, except I
drink it, Thy will be done."

Three times has He uttered that prayer. Three times has humanity shrunk from
the last, crowning sacrifice. But now the history of the human race comes up
before the world's Redeemer. He sees that the transgressors of the law, if
left to themselves, must perish. He sees the helplessness of man. He sees
the power of sin. The woes and lamentations of a doomed world rise before
Him. He beholds its impending

                                                                     693

fate, and His decision is made. He will save man at any cost to Himself. He
accepts His baptism of blood, that through Him perishing millions may gain
everlasting life. He has left the courts of heaven, where all is purity,
happiness, and glory, to save the one lost sheep, the one world that has
fallen by transgression. And He will not turn from His mission. He will
become the propitiation of a race that has willed to sin. His prayer now
breathes only submission: "If this cup may not pass away from Me, except I
drink it, Thy will be done."

Having made the decision, He fell dying to the ground from which He had
partially risen. Where now were His disciples, to place their hands tenderly
beneath the head of their fainting Master, and bathe that brow, marred
indeed more than the sons of men? The Saviour trod the wine press alone, and
of the people there was none with Him.

But God suffered with His Son. Angels beheld the Saviour's agony. They saw
their Lord enclosed by legions of satanic forces, His nature weighed down
with a shuddering, mysterious dread. There was silence in heaven. No harp
was touched. Could mortals have viewed the amazement of the angelic host as
in silent grief they watched the Father separating His beams of light, love,
and glory from His beloved Son, they would better understand how offensive
in His sight is sin.

The worlds unfallen and the heavenly angels had watched with intense
interest as the conflict drew to its close. Satan and his confederacy of
evil, the legions of apostasy, watched intently this great crisis in the
work of redemption. The powers of good and evil waited to see what answer
would come to Christ's thrice-repeated prayer. Angels had longed to bring
relief to the divine sufferer, but this might not be. No way of escape was
found for the Son of God. In this awful crisis, when everything was at
stake, when the mysterious cup trembled in the hand of the sufferer, the
heavens opened, a light shone forth amid the stormy darkness of the crisis
hour, and the mighty angel who stands in God's presence, occupying the
position from which Satan fell, came to the side of Christ. The angel came
not to take the cup from Christ's hand, but to strengthen Him to drink it,
with the assurance of the Father's love. He came to give power to the
divine-human suppliant. He pointed Him to the open heavens, telling Him of
the souls that would be saved as the result of His sufferings. He assured
Him that His Father is greater and more powerful than Satan, that His death
would result in the utter discomfiture of Satan, and that the kingdom of
this world would be given to the saints of the Most High. He told Him that
He

694

would see of the travail of His soul, and be satisfied, for He would see a
multitude of the human race saved, eternally saved.

Christ's agony did not cease, but His depression and discouragement left
Him. The storm had in nowise abated, but He who was its object was
strengthened to meet its fury. He came forth calm and serene. A heavenly
peace rested upon His bloodstained face. He had borne that which no human
being could ever bear; for He had tasted the sufferings of death for every
man.

The sleeping disciples had been suddenly awakened by the light surrounding
the Saviour. They saw the angel bending over their prostrate Master. They
saw him lift the Saviour's head upon his bosom, and point toward heaven.
They heard his voice, like sweetest music, speaking words of comfort and
hope. The disciples recalled the scene upon the mount of transfiguration.
They remembered the glory that in the temple had encircled Jesus, and the
voice of God that spoke from the cloud. Now that same glory was again
revealed, and they had no further fear for their Master. He was under the
care of God; a mighty angel had been sent to protect Him. Again the
disciples in their weariness yield to the strange stupor that overpowers
them. Again Jesus finds them sleeping.

Looking sorrowfully upon them He says, "Sleep on now, and take your rest:
behold, the hour is at hand, and the Son of man is betrayed into the hands
of sinners."

Even as He spoke these words, He heard the footsteps of the mob in search of
Him, and said, "Rise, let us be going: behold, he is at hand that doth
betray Me."

No traces of His recent agony were visible as Jesus stepped forth to meet
His betrayer. Standing in advance of His disciples He said, "Whom seek ye?"
They answered, "Jesus of Nazareth." Jesus replied, "I am He." As these words
were spoken, the angel who had lately ministered to Jesus moved between Him
and the mob. A divine light illuminated the Saviour's face, and a dovelike
form overshadowed Him. In the presence of this divine glory, the murderous
throng could not stand for a moment. They staggered back. Priests, elders,
soldiers, and even Judas, fell as dead men to the ground.

The angel withdrew, and the light faded away. Jesus had opportunity to
escape, but He remained, calm and self-possessed. As one glorified He stood
in the midst of that hardened band, now prostrate and helpless at His feet.
The disciples looked on, silent with wonder and awe.

                                                                     695


But quickly the scene changed. The mob started up. The Roman soldiers, the
priests and Judas, gathered about Christ. They seemed ashamed of their
weakness, and fearful that He would yet escape. Again the question was asked
by the Redeemer, "Whom seek ye?" They had had evidence that He who stood
before them was the Son of God, but they would not be convinced. To the
question, "Whom seek ye?" again they answered, "Jesus of Nazareth." The
Saviour then said, "I have told you that I am He: if therefore ye seek Me,
let these go their way"--pointing to the disciples. He knew how weak was
their faith, and He sought to shield them from temptation and trial. For
them He was ready to sacrifice Himself.

Judas the betrayer did not forget the part he was to act. When the mob
entered the garden, he had led the way, closely followed by the high priest.
To the pursuers of Jesus he had given a sign, saying, "Whomsoever I shall
kiss, that same is He: hold Him fast." Matt. 26:48. Now he pretends to have
no part with them. Coming close to

696

Jesus, he takes His hand as a familiar friend. With the words, "Hail,
Master," he kisses Him repeatedly, and appears to weep as if in sympathy
with Him in His peril.

Jesus said to him, "Friend, wherefore art thou come?" His voice trembled
with sorrow as He added, "Judas, betrayest thou the Son of man with a kiss?"
This appeal should have aroused the conscience of the betrayer, and touched
his stubborn heart; but honor, fidelity, and human tenderness had forsaken
him. He stood bold and defiant, showing no disposition to relent. He had
given himself up to Satan, and he had no power to resist him. Jesus did not
refuse the traitor's kiss.

The mob grew bold as they saw Judas touch the person of Him who had so
recently been glorified before their eyes. They now laid hold of Jesus, and
proceeded to bind those precious hands that had ever been employed in doing
good.

The disciples had thought that their Master would not suffer Himself to be
taken. For the same power that had caused the mob to fall as dead men could
keep them helpless, until Jesus and His companions should escape. They were
disappointed and indignant as they saw the cords brought forward to bind the
hands of Him whom they loved. Peter in his anger rashly drew his sword and
tried to defend his Master, but he only cut off an ear of the high priest's
servant. When Jesus saw what was done, He released His hands, though held
firmly by the Roman soldiers, and saying, "Suffer ye thus far," He touched
the wounded ear, and it was instantly made whole. He then said to Peter,
"Put up again thy sword into his place: for all they that take the sword
shall perish with the sword. Thinkest thou that I cannot now pray to My
Father, and He shall presently give Me more than twelve legions of
angels?"--a legion in place of each one of the disciples. Oh, why, the
disciples thought, does He not save Himself and us? Answering their unspoken
thought, He added, "But how then shall the scriptures be fulfilled, that
thus it must be?" "The cup which My Father hath given Me, shall I not drink
it?"

The official dignity of the Jewish leaders had not prevented them from
joining in the pursuit of Jesus. His arrest was too important a matter to be
trusted to subordinates; the wily priests and elders had joined the temple
police and the rabble in following Judas to Gethsemane. What a company for
those dignitaries to unite with--a mob that was eager for excitement, and
armed with all kinds of implements, as if in pursuit of a wild beast!

                                                                     697


Turning to the priests and elders, Christ fixed upon them His searching
glance. The words He spoke they would never forget as long as life should
last. They were as the sharp arrows of the Almighty. With dignity He said:
You come out against Me with swords and staves as you would against a thief
or a robber. Day by day I sat teaching in the temple. You had every
opportunity of laying hands upon Me, and you did nothing. The night is
better suited to your work. "This is your hour, and the power of darkness."

The disciples were terrified as they saw Jesus permit Himself to be taken
and bound. They were offended that He should suffer this humiliation to
Himself and them. They could not understand His conduct, and they blamed Him
for submitting to the mob. In their indignation and fear, Peter proposed
that they save themselves. Following this suggestion, "they all forsook Him,
and fled." But Christ had foretold this desertion, "Behold," He had said,
"the hour cometh, yea, is now come, that ye shall be scattered, every man to
his own, and shall leave Me alone: and yet I am not alone, because the
Father is with Me." John 16:32.




(698)

                             Chapter 75

                             Before Annas and the Court of Caiaphas


Over the brook Kedron, past gardens and olive groves, and through the hushed
streets of the sleeping city, they hurried Jesus. It was past midnight, and
the cries of the hooting mob that followed Him broke sharply upon the still
air. The Saviour was bound and closely guarded, and He moved painfully. But
in eager haste His captors made their way with Him to the palace of Annas,
the ex-high priest.

Annas was the head of the officiating priestly family, and in deference to
his age he was recognized by the people as high priest. His counsel was
sought and carried out as the voice of God. He must first see Jesus a
captive to priestly power. He must be present at the examination of the
prisoner, for fear that the less-experienced Caiaphas might fail of securing
the object for which they were working. His artifice, cunning, and subtlety
must be used on this occasion; for, at all events, Christ's condemnation
must be secured.

Christ was to be tried formally before the Sanhedrin; but before Annas He
was subjected to a preliminary trial. Under the Roman rule the Sanhedrin
could not execute the sentence of death. They could only examine a prisoner,
and pass judgment, to be ratified by the Roman authorities. It was therefore
necessary to bring against Christ charges

                                                                     699

that would be regarded as criminal by the Romans. An accusation must also be
found which would condemn Him in the eyes of the Jews. Not a few among the
priests and rulers had been convicted by Christ's teaching, and only fear of
excommunication prevented them from confessing Him. The priests well
remembered the question of Nicodemus, "Doth our law judge any man, before it
hear him, and know what he doeth?" John 7:51. This question had for the time
broken up the council, and thwarted their plans. Joseph of Arimathaea and
Nicodemus were not now to be summoned, but there were others who might dare
to speak in favor of justice. The trial must be so conducted as to unite the
members of the Sanhedrin against Christ. There were two charges which the
priests desired to maintain. If Jesus could be proved a blasphemer, He would
be condemned by the Jews. If convicted of sedition, it would secure His
condemnation by the Romans. The second charge Annas tried first to
establish. He questioned Jesus concerning His disciples and His doctrines,
hoping the prisoner would say something that would give him material upon
which to work. He thought to draw out some statement to prove that He was
seeking to establish a secret society, with the purpose of setting up a new
kingdom. Then the priests could deliver Him to the Romans as a disturber of
the peace and a creator of insurrection.

Christ read the priest's purpose as an open book. As if reading the inmost
soul of His questioner, He denied that there was between Him and His
followers any secret bond of union, or that He gathered them secretly and in
the darkness to conceal His designs. He had no secrets in regard to His
purposes or doctrines. "I spake openly to the world," He answered; "I ever
taught in the synagogue, and in the temple, whither the Jews always resort;
and in secret have I said nothing."

The Saviour contrasted His own manner of work with the methods of His
accusers. For months they had hunted Him, striving to entrap Him and bring
Him before a secret tribunal, where they might obtain by perjury what it was
impossible to gain by fair means. Now they were carrying out their purpose.
The midnight seizure by a mob, the mockery and abuse before He was
condemned, or even accused, was their manner of work, not His. Their action
was in violation of the law. Their own rules declared that every man should
be treated as innocent until proved guilty. By their own rules the priests
stood condemned.

Turning upon His questioner, Jesus said, "Why askest thou Me?" Had not the
priests and rulers sent spies to watch His movements, and report His every
word? Had not these been present at every gathering

700

of the people, and carried to the priests information of all His sayings and
doings? "Ask them which heard Me, what I have said unto them," replied
Jesus; "behold, they know what I said."

Annas was silenced by the decision of the answer. Fearing that Christ would
say something regarding his course of action that he would prefer to keep
covered up, he said nothing more to Him at this time. One of his officers,
filled with wrath as he saw Annas silenced, struck Jesus on the face,
saying, "Answerest Thou the high priest so?"

Christ calmly replied, "If I have spoken evil, bear witness of the evil: but
if well, why smitest thou Me?" He spoke no burning words of retaliation. His
calm answer came from a heart sinless, patient, and gentle, that would not
be provoked.

Christ suffered keenly under abuse and insult. At the hands of the beings
whom He had created, and for whom He was making an infinite sacrifice, He
received every indignity. And He suffered in proportion to the perfection of
His holiness and His hatred of sin. His trial by men who acted as fiends was
to Him a perpetual sacrifice. To be surrounded by human beings under the
control of Satan was revolting to Him. And He knew that in a moment, by the
flashing forth of His divine power, He could lay His cruel tormentors in the
dust. This made the trial the harder to bear.

The Jews were looking for a Messiah to be revealed in outward show. They
expected Him, by one flash of overmastering will, to change the current of
men's thoughts, and force from them an acknowledgment of His supremacy.
Thus, they believed, He was to secure His own exaltation, and gratify their
ambitious hopes. Thus when Christ was treated with contempt, there came to
Him a strong temptation to manifest His divine character. By a word, by a
look, He could compel His persecutors to confess that He was Lord above
kings and rulers, priests and temple. But it was His difficult task to keep
to the position He had chosen as one with humanity.

The angels of heaven witnessed every movement made against their loved
Commander. They longed to deliver Christ. Under God the angels are
all-powerful. On one occasion, in obedience to the command of Christ, they
slew of the Assyrian army in one night one hundred and eighty-five thousand
men. How easily could the angels, beholding the shameful scene of the trial
of Christ, have testified their indignation by consuming the adversaries of
God! But they were not commanded to do this. He who could have doomed His
enemies to death bore with

                                                                     703

their cruelty. His love for His Father, and His pledge, made from the
foundation of the world, to become the Sin Bearer, led Him to endure
uncomplainingly the coarse treatment of those He came to save. It was a part
of His mission to bear, in His humanity, all the taunts and abuse that men
could heap upon Him. The only hope of humanity was in this submission of
Christ to all that He could endure from the hands and hearts of men.

Christ had said nothing that could give His accusers an advantage; yet He
was bound, to signify that He was condemned. There must, however, be a
pretense of justice. It was necessary that there should be the form of a
legal trial. This the authorities were determined to hasten. They knew the
regard in which Jesus was held by the people, and feared that if the arrest
were noised abroad, a rescue would be attempted. Again, if the trial and
execution were not brought about at once, there would be a week's delay on
account of the celebration of the Passover. This might defeat their plans.
In securing the condemnation of Jesus they depended largely upon the clamor
of the mob, many of them the rabble of Jerusalem. Should there be a week's
delay, the excitement would abate, and a reaction would be likely to set in.
The better part of the people would be aroused in Christ's favor; many would
come forward with testimony in His vindication, bringing to light the mighty
works He had done. This would excite popular indignation against the
Sanhedrin. Their proceedings would be condemned, and Jesus would be set
free, to receive new homage from the multitudes. The priests and rulers
therefore determined that before their purpose could become known, Jesus
should be delivered into the hands of the Romans.

But first of all, an accusation was to be found. They had gained nothing as
yet. Annas ordered Jesus to be taken to Caiaphas. Caiaphas belonged to the
Sadducees, some of whom were now the most desperate enemies of Jesus. He
himself, though wanting in force of character, was fully as severe,
heartless, and unscrupulous as was Annas. He would leave no means untried to
destroy Jesus. It was now early morning, and very dark; by the light of
torches and lanterns the armed band with their prisoner proceeded to the
high priest's palace. Here, while the members of the Sanhedrin were coming
together, Annas and Caiaphas again questioned Jesus, but without success.

When the council had assembled in the judgment hall, Caiaphas took his seat
as presiding officer. On either side were the judges, and those specially
interested in the trial. The Roman soldiers were stationed on

704

the platform below the throne. At the foot of the throne stood Jesus. Upon
Him the gaze of the whole multitude was fixed. The excitement was intense.
Of all the throng He alone was calm and serene. The very atmosphere
surrounding Him seemed pervaded by a holy influence.

Caiaphas had regarded Jesus as his rival. The eagerness of the people to
hear the Saviour, and their apparent readiness to accept His teachings, had
aroused the bitter jealousy of the high priest. But as Caiaphas now looked
upon the prisoner, he was struck with admiration for His noble and dignified
bearing. A conviction came over him that this Man was akin to God. The next
instant he scornfully banished the thought. Immediately

                                                                     705

his voice was heard in sneering, haughty tones demanding that Jesus work one
of His mighty miracles before them. But his words fell upon the Saviour's
ears as though He heard them not. The people compared the excited and
malignant deportment of Annas and Caiaphas with the calm, majestic bearing
of Jesus. Even in the minds of that hardened multitude arose the question,
Is this man of godlike presence to be condemned as a criminal?

Caiaphas, perceiving the influence that was obtaining, hastened the trial.
The enemies of Jesus were in great perplexity. They were bent on securing
His condemnation, but how to accomplish this they knew not. The members of
the council were divided between the Pharisees and the Sadducees. There was
bitter animosity and controversy between them; certain disputed points they
dared not approach for fear of a quarrel. With a few words Jesus could have
excited their prejudices against each other, and thus have averted their
wrath from Himself. Caiaphas knew this, and he wished to avoid stirring up a
contention. There were plenty of witnesses to prove that Christ had
denounced the priests and scribes, that He had called them hypocrites and
murderers; but this testimony it was not expedient to bring forward. The
Sadducees in their sharp contentions with the Pharisees had used to them
similar language. And such testimony would have no weight with the Romans,
who were themselves disgusted with the pretensions of the Pharisees. There
was abundant evidence that Jesus had disregarded the traditions of the Jews,
and had spoken irreverently of many of their ordinances; but in regard to
tradition the Pharisees and Sadducees were at swords' points; and this
evidence also would have no weight with the Romans. Christ's enemies dared
not accuse Him of Sabbathbreaking, lest an examination should reveal the
character of His work. If His miracles of healing were brought to light, the
very object of the priests would be defeated.

False witnesses had been bribed to accuse Jesus of inciting rebellion and
seeking to establish a separate government. But their testimony proved to be
vague and contradictory. Under examination they falsified their own
statements.

Early in His ministry Christ had said, "Destroy this temple, and in three
days I will raise it up." In the figurative language of prophecy, He had
thus foretold His own death and resurrection. "He spake of the temple of His
body." John 2:19, 21. These words the Jews had understood in a literal
sense, as referring to the temple at Jerusalem. Of all that Christ had said,
the priests could find nothing to use against Him

706

save this. By misstating these words they hoped to gain an advantage. The
Romans had engaged in rebuilding and embellishing the temple, and they took
great pride in it; any contempt shown to it would be sure to excite their
indignation. Here Romans and Jews, Pharisees and Sadducees, could meet; for
all held the temple in great veneration. On this point two witnesses were
found whose testimony was not so contradictory as that of the others had
been. One of them, who had been bribed to accuse Jesus, declared, "This
fellow said, I am able to destroy the temple of God, and to build it in
three days." Thus Christ's words were misstated. If they had been reported
exactly as He spoke them, they would not have secured His condemnation even
by the Sanhedrin. Had Jesus been a mere man, as the Jews claimed, His
declaration would only have indicated an unreasonable, boastful spirit, but
could not have been construed into blasphemy. Even as misrepresented by the
false witnesses, His words contained nothing which would be regarded by the
Romans as a crime worthy of death.

Patiently Jesus listened to the conflicting testimonies. No word did He
utter in self-defense. At last His accusers were entangled, confused, and
maddened. The trial was making no headway; it seemed that their plottings
were to fail. Caiaphas was desperate. One last resort remained; Christ must
be forced to condemn Himself. The high priest started from the judgment
seat, his face contorted with passion, his voice and demeanor plainly
indicating that were it in his power he would strike down the prisoner
before him. "Answerest Thou nothing?" he exclaimed; "what is it which these
witness against Thee?"

Jesus held His peace. "He was oppressed, and He was afflicted, yet He opened
not His mouth: He is brought as a lamb to the slaughter, and as a sheep
before her shearers is dumb, so He openeth not His mouth." Isaiah 53:7.

At last, Caiaphas, raising his right hand toward heaven, addressed Jesus in
the form of a solemn oath: "I adjure Thee by the living God, that Thou tell
us whether Thou be the Christ, the Son of God."

To this appeal Christ could not remain silent. There was a time to be
silent, and a time to speak. He had not spoken until directly questioned. He
knew that to answer now would make His death certain. But the appeal was
made by the highest acknowledged authority of the nation, and in the name of
the Most High. Christ would not fail to show proper respect for the law.
More than this, His own relation to the Father was called in question. He
must plainly declare His character and mission.

                                                                     707

Jesus had said to His disciples, "Whosoever therefore shall confess Me
before men, him will I confess also before My Father which is in heaven."
Matt. 10:32. Now by His own example He repeated the lesson.

Every ear was bent to listen, and every eye was fixed on His face as He
answered, "Thou hast said." A heavenly light seemed to illuminate His pale
countenance as He added, "Nevertheless I say unto you, Hereafter shall ye
see the Son of man sitting on the right hand of power, and coming in the
clouds of heaven."

For a moment the divinity of Christ flashed through His guise of humanity.
The high priest quailed before the penetrating eyes of the Saviour. That
look seemed to read his hidden thoughts, and burn into his heart. Never in
afterlife did he forget that searching glance of the persecuted Son of God.

"Hereafter," said Jesus, "shall ye see the Son of man sitting on the

708

right hand of power, and coming in the clouds of heaven." In these words
Christ presented the reverse of the scene then taking place. He, the Lord of
life and glory, would be seated at God's right hand. He would be the judge
of all the earth, and from His decision there could be no appeal. Then every
secret thing would be set in the light of God's countenance, and judgment be
passed upon every man according to his deeds.

The words of Christ startled the high priest. The thought that there was to
be a resurrection of the dead, when all would stand at the bar of God, to be
rewarded according to their works, was a thought of terror to Caiaphas. He
did not wish to believe that in future he would receive sentence according
to his works. There rushed before his mind as a panorama the scenes of the
final judgment. For a moment he saw the fearful spectacle of the graves
giving up their dead, with the secrets he had hoped were forever hidden. For
a moment he felt as if standing before the eternal Judge, whose eye, which
sees all things, was reading his soul, bringing to light mysteries supposed
to be hidden with the dead.

The scene passed from the priest's vision. Christ's words cut him, the
Sadducee, to the quick. Caiaphas had denied the doctrine of the
resurrection, the judgment, and a future life. Now he was maddened by
satanic fury. Was this man, a prisoner before him, to assail his most
cherished theories? Rending his robe, that the people might see his
pretended horror, he demanded that without further preliminaries the
prisoner be condemned for blasphemy. "What further need have we of
witnesses?" he said; "behold, now ye have heard His blasphemy. What think
ye?" And they all condemned Him.

Conviction mingled with passion led Caiaphas to do as he did. He was furious
with himself for believing Christ's words, and instead of rending his heart
under a deep sense of truth, and confessing that Jesus was the Messiah, he
rent his priestly robes in determined resistance. This act was deeply
significant. Little did Caiaphas realize its meaning. In this act, done to
influence the judges and secure Christ's condemnation, the high priest had
condemned himself. By the law of God he was disqualified for the priesthood.
He had pronounced upon himself the death sentence.

A high priest was not to rend his garments. By the Levitical law, this was
prohibited under sentence of death. Under no circumstances, on no occasion,
was the priest to rend his robe. It was the custom among the Jews for the
garments to be rent at the death of friends, but this

                                                                     709

custom the priests were not to observe. Express command had been given by
Christ to Moses concerning this. Lev. 10:6.

Everything worn by the priest was to be whole and without blemish. By those
beautiful official garments was represented the character of the great
antitype, Jesus Christ. Nothing but perfection, in dress and attitude, in
word and spirit, could be acceptable to God. He is holy, and His glory and
perfection must be represented by the earthly service. Nothing but
perfection could properly represent the sacredness of the heavenly service.
Finite man might rend his own heart by showing a contrite and humble spirit.
This God would discern. But no rent must be made in the priestly robes, for
this would mar the representation of heavenly things. The high priest who
dared to appear in holy office, and engage in the service of the sanctuary,
with a rent robe, was looked upon as having severed himself from God. By
rending his garment he cut himself off from being a representative
character. He was no longer accepted by God as an officiating priest. This
course of action, as exhibited by Caiaphas, showed human passion, human
imperfection.

By rending his garments, Caiaphas made of no effect the law of God, to
follow the tradition of men. A man-made law provided that in case of
blasphemy a priest might rend his garments in horror at the sin, and be
guiltless. Thus the law of God was made void by the laws of men.

Each action of the high priest was watched with interest by the people; and
Caiaphas thought for effect to display his piety. But in this act, designed
as an accusation against Christ, he was reviling the One of whom God had
said, "My name is in Him." Ex. 23:21. He himself was committing blasphemy.
Standing under the condemnation of God, he pronounced sentence upon Christ
as a blasphemer.

When Caiaphas rent his garment, his act was significant of the place that
the Jewish nation as a nation would thereafter occupy toward God. The once
favored people of God were separating themselves from Him, and were fast
becoming a people disowned by Jehovah. When Christ upon the cross cried out,
"It is finished" (John 19:30), and the veil of the temple was rent in twain,
the Holy Watcher declared that the Jewish people had rejected Him who was
the antitype of all their types, the substance of all their shadows. Israel
was divorced from God. Well might Caiaphas then rend his official robes,
which signified that he claimed to be a representative of the great High
Priest; for no longer had they any meaning for him or for the people. Well
might the high priest rend his robes in horror for himself and for the
nation.

710


The Sanhedrin had pronounced Jesus worthy of death; but it was contrary to
the Jewish law to try a prisoner by night. In legal condemnation nothing
could be done except in the light of day and before a full session of the
council. Notwithstanding this, the Saviour was now treated as a condemned
criminal, and given up to be abused by the lowest and vilest of humankind.
The palace of the high priest surrounded an open court in which the soldiers
and the multitude had gathered. Through this court, Jesus was taken to the
guardroom, on every side meeting with mockery of His claim to be the Son of
God. His own words, "sitting on the right hand of power," and, "coming in
the clouds of heaven," were jeeringly repeated. While in the guardroom,
awaiting His legal trial, He was not protected. The ignorant rabble had seen
the cruelty with which He was treated before the council, and from this they
took license to manifest all the satanic elements of their nature. Christ's
very nobility and godlike bearing goaded them to madness. His meekness, His
innocence, His majestic patience, filled them with hatred born of Satan.
Mercy and justice were trampled upon. Never was criminal treated in so
inhuman a manner as was the Son of God.

But a keener anguish rent the heart of Jesus; the blow that inflicted the
deepest pain no enemy's hand could have dealt. While He was undergoing the
mockery of an examination before Caiaphas, Christ had been denied by one of
His own disciples.

After deserting their Master in the garden, two of the disciples had
ventured to follow, at a distance, the mob that had Jesus in charge. These
disciples were Peter and John. The priests recognized John as a well-known
disciple of Jesus, and admitted him to the hall, hoping that as he witnessed
the humiliation of his Leader, he would scorn the idea of such a one being
the Son of God. John spoke in favor of Peter, and gained an entrance for him
also.

In the court a fire had been kindled; for it was the coldest hour of the
night, being just before the dawn. A company drew about the fire, and Peter
presumptuously took his place with them. He did not wish to be recognized as
a disciple of Jesus. By mingling carelessly with the crowd, he hoped to be
taken for one of those who had brought Jesus to the hall.

But as the light flashed upon Peter's face, the woman who kept the door cast
a searching glance upon him. She had noticed that he came in with John, she
marked the look of dejection on his face, and thought

                                                                     711

that he might be a disciple of Jesus. She was one of the servants of
Caiaphas' household, and was curious to know. She said to Peter, "Art not
thou also one of this Man's disciples?" Peter was startled and confused; the
eyes of the company instantly fastened upon him. He pretended not to
understand her; but she was persistent, and said to those around her that
this man was with Jesus. Peter felt compelled to answer, and said angrily,
"Woman, I know Him not." This was the first denial, and immediately the cock
crew. O Peter, so soon ashamed of thy Master! so soon to deny thy Lord!

The disciple John, upon entering the judgment hall, did not try to conceal
the fact that he was a follower of Jesus. He did not mingle with the rough
company who were reviling his Master. He was not questioned, for he did not
assume a false character, and thus lay himself liable to suspicion. He
sought a retired corner secure from the notice

712

of the mob, but as near Jesus as it was possible for him to be. Here he
could see and hear all that took place at the trial of his Lord.

Peter had not designed that his real character should be known. In assuming
an air of indifference he had placed himself on the enemy's ground, and he
became an easy prey to temptation. If he had been called to fight for his
Master, he would have been a courageous soldier; but when the finger of
scorn was pointed at him, he proved himself a coward. Many who do not shrink
from active warfare for their Lord are driven by ridicule to deny their
faith. By associating with those whom they should avoid, they place
themselves in the way of temptation. They invite the enemy to tempt them,
and are led to say and do that of which under other circumstances they would
never have been guilty. The disciple of Christ who in our day disguises his
faith through dread of suffering or reproach denies his Lord as really as
did Peter in the judgment hall.

Peter tried to show no interest in the trial of his Master, but his heart
was wrung with sorrow as he heard the cruel taunts, and saw the abuse He was
suffering. More than this, he was surprised and angry that Jesus should
humiliate Himself and His followers by submitting to such treatment. In
order to conceal his true feelings, he endeavored to join with the
persecutors of Jesus in their untimely jests. But his appearance was
unnatural. He was acting a lie, and while seeking to talk unconcernedly he
could not restrain expressions of indignation at the abuse heaped upon his
Master.

Attention was called to him the second time, and he was again charged with
being a follower of Jesus. He now declared with an oath, "I do not know the
Man." Still another opportunity was given him. An hour had passed, when one
of the servants of the high priest, being a near kinsman of the man whose
ear Peter had cut off, asked him, "Did not I see thee in the garden with
Him?" "Surely thou art one of them: for thou art a Galilean, and thy speech
agreeth thereto." At this Peter flew into a rage. The disciples of Jesus
were noted for the purity of their language, and in order fully to deceive
his questioners, and justify his assumed character, Peter now denied his
Master with cursing and swearing. Again the cock crew. Peter heard it then,
and he remembered the words of Jesus, "Before the cock crow twice, thou
shalt deny Me thrice." Mark 14:30.

While the degrading oaths were fresh upon Peter's lips, and the shrill

                                                                     713

crowing of the cock was still ringing in his ears, the Saviour turned from
the frowning judges, and looked full upon His poor disciple. At the same
time Peter's eyes were drawn to his Master. In that gentle countenance he
read deep pity and sorrow, but there was no anger there.

The sight of that pale, suffering face, those quivering lips, that look of
compassion and forgiveness, pierced his heart like an arrow. Conscience was
aroused. Memory was active. Peter called to mind his promise of a few short
hours before that he would go with his Lord to prison and to death. He
remembered his grief when the Saviour told him in the upper chamber that he
would deny his Lord thrice that same night. Peter had just declared that he
knew not Jesus, but he now realized with bitter grief how well his Lord knew
him, and how accurately He had read his heart, the falseness of which was
unknown even to himself.

A tide of memories rushed over him. The Saviour's tender mercy, His kindness
and long-suffering, His gentleness and patience toward His erring
disciples,--all was remembered. He recalled the caution, "Simon, behold,
Satan hath desired to have you, that he may sift you as wheat: but I have
prayed for thee, that thy faith fail not." Luke 22:31, 32. He reflected with
horror upon his own ingratitude, his falsehood, his perjury. Once more he
looked at his Master, and saw a sacrilegious hand raised to smite Him in the
face. Unable longer to endure the scene, he rushed, heartbroken, from the
hall.

He pressed on in solitude and darkness, he knew not and cared not whither.
At last he found himself in Gethsemane. The scene of a few hours before came
vividly to his mind. The suffering face of his Lord, stained with bloody
sweat and convulsed with anguish, rose before him. He remembered with bitter
remorse that Jesus had wept and agonized in prayer alone, while those who
should have united with Him in that trying hour were sleeping. He remembered
His solemn charge, "Watch and pray, that ye enter not into temptation."
Matt. 26:41. He witnessed again the scene in the judgment hall. It was
torture to his bleeding heart to know that he had added the heaviest burden
to the Saviour's humiliation and grief. On the very spot where Jesus had
poured out His soul in agony to His Father, Peter fell upon his face, and
wished that he might die.

It was in sleeping when Jesus bade him watch and pray that Peter had
prepared the way for his great sin. All the disciples, by sleeping

714

in that critical hour, sustained a great loss. Christ knew the fiery ordeal
through which they were to pass. He knew how Satan would work to paralyze
their senses that they might be unready for the trial. Therefore it was that
He gave them warning. Had those hours in the garden been spent in watching
and prayer, Peter would not have been left to depend upon his own feeble
strength. He would not have denied his Lord. Had the disciples watched with
Christ in His agony, they would have been prepared to behold His suffering
upon the cross. They would have understood in some degree the nature of His
overpowering anguish. They would have been able to recall His words that
foretold His sufferings, His death, and His resurrection. Amid the gloom of
the most trying hour, some rays of hope would have lighted up the darkness
and sustained their faith.

As soon as it was day, the Sanhedrin again assembled, and again Jesus was
brought into the council room. He had declared Himself the Son of God, and
they had construed His words into a charge against Him. But they could not
condemn Him on this, for many of them had not been present at the night
session, and they had not heard His words. And they knew that the Roman
tribunal would find in them nothing worthy of death. But if from His own
lips they could all hear those words repeated, their object might be gained.
His claim to the Messiahship they might construe into a seditious political
claim.

"Art Thou the Christ?" they said, "tell us." But Christ remained silent.
They continued to ply Him with questions. At last in tones of mournful
pathos He answered, "If I tell you, ye will not believe; and if I also ask
you, ye will not answer Me, nor let Me go." But that they might be left
without excuse He added the solemn warning, "Hereafter shall the Son of man
sit on the right hand of the power of God."

"Art Thou then the Son of God?" they asked with one voice. He said unto
them, "Ye say that I am." They cried out, "What need we any further witness?
for we ourselves have heard of His own mouth."

And so by the third condemnation of the Jewish authorities, Jesus was to
die. All that was now necessary, they thought, was for the Romans to ratify
this condemnation, and deliver Him into their hands.

Then came the third scene of abuse and mockery, worse even than that
received from the ignorant rabble. In the very presence of the priests and
rulers, and with their sanction, this took place. Every feeling of sympathy
or humanity had gone out of their hearts. If their arguments

                                                                     715

were weak, and failed to silence His voice, they had other weapons, such as
in all ages have been used to silence heretics,--suffering, and violence,
and death.

When the condemnation of Jesus was pronounced by the judges, a satanic fury
took possession of the people. The roar of voices was like that of wild
beasts. The crowd made a rush toward Jesus, crying, He is guilty, put Him to
death! Had it not been for the Roman soldiers, Jesus would not have lived to
be nailed to the cross of Calvary. He would have been torn in pieces before
His judges, had not Roman authority interfered, and by force of arms
restrained the violence of the mob.

Heathen men were angry at the brutal treatment of one against whom nothing
had been proved. The Roman officers declared that the Jews in pronouncing
condemnation upon Jesus were infringing upon the Roman power, and that it
was even against the Jewish law to condemn a man to death upon his own
testimony. This intervention brought a momentary lull in the proceedings;
but the Jewish leaders were dead alike to pity and to shame.

Priests and rulers forgot the dignity of their office, and abused the Son of
God with foul epithets. They taunted Him with His parentage. They declared
that His presumption in proclaiming Himself the Messiah made Him deserving
of the most ignominious death. The most dissolute men engaged in infamous
abuse of the Saviour. An old garment was thrown over His head, and His
persecutors struck Him in the face, saying, "Prophesy unto us, Thou Christ,
Who is he that smote Thee?" When the garment was removed, one poor wretch
spat in His face.

The angels of God faithfully recorded every insulting look, word, and act
against their beloved Commander. One day the base men who scorned and spat
upon the calm, pale face of Christ will look upon it in its glory, shining
brighter than the sun.




(716)

                             Chapter 76

                             Judas


The history of Judas presents the sad ending of a life that might have been
honored of God. Had Judas died before his last journey to Jerusalem he would
have been regarded as a man worthy of a place among the twelve, and one who
would be greatly missed. The abhorrence which has followed him through the
centuries would not have existed but for the attributes revealed at the
close of his history. But it was for a purpose that his character was laid
open to the world. It was to be a warning to all who, like him, should
betray sacred trusts.

A little before the Passover, Judas had renewed his contract with the
priests to deliver Jesus into their hands. Then it was arranged that the
Saviour should be taken at one of His resorts for meditation and prayer.
Since the feast at the house of Simon, Judas had had opportunity to reflect
upon the deed which he had covenanted to perform, but his purpose was
unchanged. For thirty pieces of silver--the price of a slave--he sold the
Lord of glory to ignominy and death.

Judas had naturally a strong love for money; but he had not always been
corrupt enough to do such a deed as this. He had fostered the evil spirit of
avarice until it had become the ruling motive of his life. The love of
mammon overbalanced his love for Christ. Through becoming the slave of one
vice he gave himself to Satan, to be driven to any lengths in sin.

Judas had joined the disciples when multitudes were following Christ. The
Saviour's teaching moved their hearts as they hung entranced upon His words,
spoken in the synagogue, by the seaside, upon the mount.

                                                                     717

Judas saw the sick, the lame, the blind, flock to Jesus from the towns and
cities. He saw the dying laid at His feet. He witnessed the Saviour's mighty
works in healing the sick, casting out devils, and raising the dead. He felt
in his own person the evidence of Christ's power. He recognized the teaching
of Christ as superior to all that he had ever heard. He loved the Great
Teacher, and desired to be with Him. He felt a desire to be changed in
character and life, and he hoped to experience this through connecting
himself with Jesus. The Saviour did not repulse Judas. He gave him a place
among the twelve. He trusted him to do the work of an evangelist. He endowed
him with power to heal the sick and to cast out devils. But Judas did not
come to the point of surrendering himself fully to Christ. He did not give
up his worldly ambition or his love of money. While he accepted the position
of a minister of Christ, he did not bring himself under the divine molding.
He felt that he could retain his own judgment and opinions, and he
cultivated a disposition to criticize and accuse.

Judas was highly regarded by the disciples, and had great influence over
them. He himself had a high opinion of his own qualifications, and looked
upon his brethren as greatly inferior to him in judgment and ability. They
did not see their opportunities, he thought, and take advantage of
circumstances. The church would never prosper with such shortsighted men as
leaders. Peter was impetuous; he would move without consideration. John, who
was treasuring up the truths that fell from Christ's lips, was looked upon
by Judas as a poor financier. Matthew, whose training had taught him
accuracy in all things, was very particular in regard to honesty, and he was
ever contemplating the words of Christ, and became so absorbed in them that,
as Judas thought, he could not be trusted to do sharp, far-seeing business.
Thus Judas summed up all the disciples, and flattered himself that the
church would often be brought into perplexity and embarrassment if it were
not for his ability as a manager. Judas regarded himself as the capable one,
who could not be overreached. In his own estimation he was an honor to the
cause, and as such he always represented himself.

Judas was blinded to his own weakness of character, and Christ placed him
where he would have an opportunity to see and correct this. As treasurer for
the disciples, he was called upon to provide for the needs of the little
company, and to relieve the necessities of the poor. When in the Passover
chamber Jesus said to him, "That thou doest, do quickly" (John 13:27), the
disciples thought He had bidden him

718

buy what was needed for the feast, or give something to the poor. In
ministering to others, Judas might have developed an unselfish spirit. But
while listening daily to the lessons of Christ and witnessing His unselfish
life, Judas indulged his covetous disposition. The small sums that came into
his hands were a continual temptation. Often when he did a little service
for Christ, or devoted time to religious purposes, he paid himself out of
this meager fund. In his own eyes these pretexts served to excuse his
action; but in God's sight he was a thief.

Christ's oft-repeated statement that His kingdom was not of this world
offended Judas. He had marked out a line upon which he expected Christ to
work. He had planned that John the Baptist should be delivered from prison.
But lo, John was left to be beheaded. And Jesus, instead of asserting His
royal right and avenging the death of John, retired with His disciples into
a country place. Judas wanted more aggressive warfare. He thought that if
Jesus would not prevent the disciples from carrying out their schemes, the
work would be more successful. He marked the increasing enmity of the Jewish
leaders, and saw their challenge unheeded when they demanded from Christ a
sign from heaven. His heart was open to unbelief, and the enemy supplied
thoughts of questioning and rebellion. Why did Jesus dwell so much upon that
which was discouraging? Why did He predict trial and persecution for Himself
and for His disciples? The prospect of having a high place in the new
kingdom had led Judas to espouse the cause of Christ. Were his hopes to be
disappointed? Judas had not decided that Jesus was not the Son of God; but
he was questioning, and seeking to find some explanation of His mighty
works.

Notwithstanding the Saviour's own teaching, Judas was continually advancing
the idea that Christ would reign as king in Jerusalem. At the feeding of the
five thousand he tried to bring this about. On this occasion Judas assisted
in distributing the food to the hungry multitude. He had an opportunity to
see the benefit which it was in his power to impart to others. He felt the
satisfaction that always comes in service to God. He helped to bring the
sick and suffering from among the multitude to Christ. He saw what relief,
what joy and gladness, come to human hearts through the healing power of the
Restorer. He might have comprehended the methods of Christ. But he was
blinded by his own selfish desires. Judas was first to take advantage of the
enthusiasm excited by the miracle of the loaves. It was he who set on foot
the

                                                                     719

project to take Christ by force and make Him king. His hopes were high. His
disappointment was bitter.

Christ's discourse in the synagogue concerning the bread of life was the
turning point in the history of Judas. He heard the words, "Except ye eat
the flesh of the Son of man, and drink His blood, ye have no life in you."
John 6:53. He saw that Christ was offering spiritual rather than worldly
good. He regarded himself as farsighted, and thought he could see that Jesus
would have no honor, and that He could bestow no high position upon His
followers. He determined not to unite himself so closely to Christ but that
he could draw away. He would watch. And he did watch.

From that time he expressed doubts that confused the disciples. He
introduced controversies and misleading sentiments, repeating the arguments
urged by the scribes and Pharisees against the claims of Christ. All the
little and large troubles and crosses, the difficulties and the apparent
hindrances to the advancement of the gospel, Judas interpreted as evidences
against its truthfulness. He would introduce texts of Scripture that had no
connection with the truths Christ was presenting. These texts, separated
from their connection, perplexed the disciples, and increased the
discouragement that was constantly pressing upon them. Yet all this was done
by Judas in such a way as to make it appear that he was conscientious. And
while the disciples were searching for evidence to confirm the words of the
Great Teacher, Judas would lead them almost imperceptibly on another track.
Thus in a very religious, and apparently wise, way he was presenting matters
in a different light from that in which Jesus had given them, and attaching
to His words a meaning that He had not conveyed. His suggestions were
constantly exciting an ambitious desire for temporal preferment, and thus
turning the disciples from the important things they should have considered.
The dissension as to which of them should be greatest was generally excited
by Judas.

When Jesus presented to the rich young ruler the condition of discipleship,
Judas was displeased. He thought that a mistake had been made. If such men
as this ruler could be connected with the believers, they would help sustain
Christ's cause. If Judas were only received as a counselor, he thought, he
could suggest many plans for the advantage of the little church. His
principles and methods would differ somewhat from Christ's, but in these
things he thought himself wiser than Christ.

720


In all that Christ said to His disciples, there was something with which, in
heart, Judas disagreed. Under his influence the leaven of disaffection was
fast doing its work. The disciples did not see the real agency in all this;
but Jesus saw that Satan was communicating his attributes to Judas, and thus
opening up a channel through which to influence the other disciples. This, a
year before the betrayal, Christ declared. "Have not I chosen you twelve,"
He said, "and one of you is a devil?" John 6:70.

Yet Judas made no open opposition, nor seemed to question the Saviour's
lessons. He made no outward murmur until the time of the feast in Simon's
house. When Mary anointed the Saviour's feet, Judas manifested his covetous
disposition. At the reproof from Jesus his very spirit seemed turned to
gall. Wounded pride and desire for revenge broke down the barriers, and the
greed so long indulged held him in control. This will be the experience of
everyone who persists in tampering with sin. The elements of depravity that
are not resisted and overcome, respond to Satan's temptation, and the soul
is led captive at his will.

But Judas was not yet wholly hardened. Even after he had twice pledged
himself to betray the Saviour, there was opportunity for repentance. At the
Passover supper Jesus proved His divinity by revealing the traitor's
purpose. He tenderly included Judas in the ministry to the disciples. But
the last appeal of love was unheeded. Then the case of Judas was decided,
and the feet that Jesus had washed went forth to the betrayer's work.

Judas reasoned that if Jesus was to be crucified, the event must come to
pass. His own act in betraying the Saviour would not change the result. If
Jesus was not to die, it would only force Him to deliver Himself. At all
events, Judas would gain something by his treachery. He counted that he had
made a sharp bargain in betraying his Lord.

Judas did not, however, believe that Christ would permit Himself to be
arrested. In betraying Him, it was his purpose to teach Him a lesson. He
intended to play a part that would make the Saviour careful thenceforth to
treat him with due respect. But Judas knew not that he was giving Christ up
to death. How often, as the Saviour taught in parables, the scribes and
Pharisees had been carried away with His striking illustrations! How often
they had pronounced judgment against themselves! Often when the truth was
brought home to their hearts, they had been filled with rage, and had taken
up stones to cast at Him;

                                                                     721

but again and again He had made His escape. Since He had escaped so many
snares, thought Judas, He certainly would not now allow Himself to be taken.

Judas decided to put the matter to the test. If Jesus really was the
Messiah, the people, for whom He had done so much, would rally about Him,
and would proclaim Him king. This would forever settle many minds that were
now in uncertainty. Judas would have the credit of having placed the king on
David's throne. And this act would secure to him the first position, next to
Christ, in the new kingdom.

The false disciple acted his part in betraying Jesus. In the garden, when he
said to the leaders of the mob, "Whomsoever I shall kiss, that same is He:
hold Him fast" (Matt. 26:48), he fully believed that Christ would escape out
of their hands. Then if they should blame him, he could say, Did I not tell
you to hold Him fast?

Judas beheld the captors of Christ, acting upon his words, bind Him firmly.
In amazement he saw that the Saviour suffered Himself to be led away.
Anxiously he followed Him from the garden to the trial before the Jewish
rulers. At every movement he looked for Him to surprise His enemies, by
appearing before them as the Son of God, and setting at nought all their
plots and power. But as hour after hour went by, and Jesus submitted to all
the abuse heaped upon Him, a terrible fear came to the traitor that he had
sold his Master to His death.

As the trial drew to a close, Judas could endure the torture of his guilty
conscience no longer. Suddenly a hoarse voice rang through the hall, sending
a thrill of terror to all hearts: He is innocent; spare Him, O Caiaphas!

The tall form of Judas was now seen pressing through the startled throng.
His face was pale and haggard, and great drops of sweat stood on his
forehead. Rushing to the throne of judgment, he threw down

722

before the high priest the pieces of silver that had been the price of his
Lord's betrayal. Eagerly grasping the robe of Caiaphas, he implored him to
release Jesus, declaring that He had done nothing worthy of death. Caiaphas
angrily shook him off, but was confused, and knew not what to say. The
perfidy of the priests was revealed. It was evident that they had bribed the
disciple to betray his Master.

"I have sinned," again cried Judas, "in that I have betrayed the innocent
blood." But the high priest, regaining his self-possession, answered with
scorn, "What is that to us? see thou to that." Matt. 27:4. The priests had
been willing to make Judas their tool; but they despised his baseness. When
he turned to them with confession, they spurned him.

Judas now cast himself at the feet of Jesus, acknowledging Him to be the Son
of God, and entreating Him to deliver Himself. The Saviour did not reproach
His betrayer. He knew that Judas did not repent; his confession was forced
from his guilty soul by an awful sense of condemnation and a looking for of
judgment, but he felt no deep, heartbreaking grief that he had betrayed the
spotless Son of God, and denied the Holy One of Israel. Yet Jesus spoke no
word of condemnation. He looked pityingly upon Judas, and said, For this
hour came I into the world.

A murmur of surprise ran through the assembly. With amazement they beheld
the forbearance of Christ toward His betrayer. Again there swept over them
the conviction that this Man was more than mortal. But if He was the Son of
God, they questioned, why did He not free Himself from His bonds and triumph
over His accusers?

Judas saw that his entreaties were in vain, and he rushed from the hall
exclaiming, It is too late! It is too late! He felt that he could not live
to see Jesus crucified, and in despair went out and hanged himself.

Later that same day, on the road from Pilate's hall to Calvary, there came
an interruption to the shouts and jeers of the wicked throng who were
leading Jesus to the place of crucifixion. As they passed a retired spot,
they saw at the foot of a lifeless tree, the body of Judas. It was a most
revolting sight. His weight had broken the cord by which he had hanged
himself to the tree. In falling, his body had been horribly mangled, and
dogs were now devouring it. His remains were immediately buried out of
sight; but there was less mockery among the throng, and many a pale face
revealed the thoughts within. Retribution seemed already visiting those who
were guilty of the blood of Jesus.




                                                                     (723)

                             Chapter 77

                             In Pilate's Judgment Hall


In the judgment hall of Pilate, the Roman governor, Christ stands bound as a
prisoner. About Him are the guard of soldiers, and the hall is fast filling
with spectators. Just outside the entrance are the judges of the Sanhedrin,
priests, rulers, elders, and the mob.

After condemning Jesus, the council of the Sanhedrin had come to Pilate to
have the sentence confirmed and executed. But these Jewish officials would
not enter the Roman judgment hall. According to their ceremonial law they
would be defiled thereby, and thus prevented from taking part in the feast
of the Passover. In their blindness they did not see that murderous hatred
had defiled their hearts. They did not see that Christ was the real Passover
lamb, and that, since they had rejected Him, the great feast had for them
lost its significance.

When the Saviour was brought into the judgment hall, Pilate looked upon Him
with no friendly eyes. The Roman governor had been called from his
bedchamber in haste, and he determined to do his work as quickly as
possible. He was prepared to deal with the prisoner with

724

magisterial severity. Assuming his severest expression, he turned to see
what kind of man he had to examine, that he had been called from his repose
at so early an hour. He knew that it must be someone whom the Jewish
authorities were anxious to have tried and punished with haste.

Pilate looked at the men who had Jesus in charge, and then his gaze rested
searchingly on Jesus. He had had to deal with all kinds of criminals; but
never before had a man bearing marks of such goodness and nobility been
brought before him. On His face he saw no sign of guilt, no expression of
fear, no boldness or defiance. He saw a man of calm and dignified bearing,
whose countenance bore not the marks of a criminal, but the signature of
heaven.

Christ's appearance made a favorable impression upon Pilate. His better
nature was roused. He had heard of Jesus and His works. His wife had told
him something of the wonderful deeds performed by the Galilean prophet, who
cured the sick and raised the dead. Now this revived as a dream in Pilate's
mind. He recalled rumors that he had heard from several sources. He resolved
to demand of the Jews their charges against the prisoner.

Who is this Man, and wherefore have ye brought Him? he said. What accusation
bring ye against Him? The Jews were disconcerted. Knowing that they could
not substantiate their charges against Christ, they did not desire a public
examination. They answered that He was a deceiver called Jesus of Nazareth.

Again Pilate asked, "What accusation bring ye against this Man?" The priests
did not answer his question, but in words that showed their irritation, they
said, "If He were not a malefactor, we would not have delivered Him up unto
thee." When those composing the Sanhedrin, the first men of the nation,
bring to you a man they deem worthy of death, is there need to ask for an
accusation against him? They hoped to impress Pilate with a sense of their
importance, and thus lead him to accede to their request without going
through many preliminaries. They were eager to have their sentence ratified;
for they knew that the people who had witnessed Christ's marvelous works
could tell a story very different from the fabrication they themselves were
now rehearsing.

The priests thought that with the weak and vacillating Pilate they could
carry through their plans without trouble. Before this he had signed the
death warrant hastily, condemning to death men they knew were not worthy of
death. In his estimation the life of a prisoner was

                                                                     725

of little account; whether he were innocent or guilty was of no special
consequence. The priests hoped that Pilate would now inflict the death
penalty on Jesus without giving Him a hearing. This they besought as a favor
on the occasion of their great national festival.

But there was something in the prisoner that held Pilate back from this. He
dared not do it. He read the purposes of the priests. He remembered how, not
long before, Jesus had raised Lazarus, a man that had been dead four days;
and he determined to know, before signing the sentence of condemnation, what
were the charges against Him, and whether they could be proved.

If your judgment is sufficient, he said, why bring the prisoner to me? "Take
ye Him, and judge Him according to your law." Thus pressed, the priests said
that they had already passed sentence upon Him, but that they must have
Pilate's sentence to render their condemnation valid. What is your sentence?
Pilate asked. The death sentence, they answered; but it is not lawful for us
to put any man to death. They asked Pilate to take their word as to Christ's
guilt, and enforce their sentence. They would take the responsibility of the
result.

Pilate was not a just or a conscientious judge; but weak though he was in
moral power, he refused to grant this request. He would not condemn Jesus
until a charge had been brought against Him.

The priests were in a dilemma. They saw that they must cloak their hypocrisy
under the thickest concealment. They must not allow it to appear that Christ
had been arrested on religious grounds. Were this put forward as a reason,
their proceedings would have no weight with Pilate. They must make it appear
that Jesus was working against the common law; then He could be punished as
a political offender. Tumults and insurrection against the Roman government
were constantly arising among the Jews. With these revolts the Romans had
dealt very rigorously, and they were constantly on the watch to repress
everything that could lead to an outbreak.

Only a few days before this the Pharisees had tried to entrap Christ with
the question, "Is it lawful for us to give tribute unto Caesar?" But Christ
had unveiled their hypocrisy. The Romans who were present had seen the utter
failure of the plotters, and their discomfiture at His answer, "Render
therefore unto Caesar the things which be Caesar's." Luke 20:22-25.

Now the priests thought to make it appear that on this occasion Christ

726

had taught what they hoped He would teach. In their extremity they called
false witnesses to their aid, "and they began to accuse Him, saying, We
found this fellow perverting the nation, and forbidding to give tribute to
Caesar, saying that He Himself is Christ a King." Three charges, each
without foundation. The priests knew this, but they were willing to commit
perjury could they but secure their end.

Pilate saw through their purpose. He did not believe that the prisoner had
plotted against the government. His meek and humble appearance was
altogether out of harmony with the charge. Pilate was convinced that a deep
plot had been laid to destroy an innocent man who stood in the way of the
Jewish dignitaries. Turning to Jesus he asked, "Art Thou the King of the
Jews?" The Saviour answered, "Thou sayest it." And as He spoke, His
countenance lighted up as if a sunbeam were shining upon it.

When they heard His answer, Caiaphas and those that were with him called
Pilate to witness that Jesus had admitted the crime with which He was
charged. With noisy cries, priests, scribes, and rulers demanded that He be
sentenced to death. The cries were taken up by the mob, and the uproar was
deafening. Pilate was confused. Seeing that Jesus made no answer to His
accusers, Pilate said to Him, "Answerest Thou nothing? behold how many
things they witness against Thee. But Jesus yet answered nothing."

Standing behind Pilate, in view of all in the court, Christ heard the abuse;
but to all the false charges against Him He answered not a word. His whole
bearing gave evidence of conscious innocence. He stood unmoved by the fury
of the waves that beat about Him. It was as if the heavy surges of wrath,
rising higher and higher, like the waves of the boisterous ocean, broke
about Him, but did not touch Him. He stood silent, but His silence was
eloquence. It was as a light shining from the inner to the outer man.

Pilate was astonished at His bearing. Does this Man disregard the
proceedings because He does not care to save His life? he asked himself. As
he looked at Jesus, bearing insult and mockery without retaliation, he felt
that He could not be as unrighteous and unjust as were the clamoring
priests. Hoping to gain the truth from Him and to escape the tumult of the
crowd, Pilate took Jesus aside with him, and again questioned, "Art Thou the
King of the Jews?"

Jesus did not directly answer this question. He knew that the Holy

                                                                     727

Spirit was striving with Pilate, and He gave him opportunity to acknowledge
his conviction. "Sayest thou this thing of thyself," He asked, "or did
others tell it thee of Me?" That is, was it the accusations of the priests,
or a desire to receive light from Christ, that prompted Pilate's question?
Pilate understood Christ's meaning; but pride arose in his heart. He would
not acknowledge the conviction that pressed upon him. "Am I a Jew?" he said.
"Thine own nation and the chief priests have delivered Thee unto me: what
hast Thou done?"

Pilate's golden opportunity had passed. Yet Jesus did not leave him without
further light. While He did not directly answer Pilate's question, He
plainly stated His own mission. He gave Pilate to understand that He was not
seeking an earthly throne.

"My kingdom is not of this world," He said; "if My kingdom were of this
world, then would My servants fight, that I should not be delivered to the
Jews: but now is My kingdom not from hence. Pilate therefore said unto Him,
Art Thou a king then? Jesus answered, Thou sayest that I am a king. To this
end was I born, and for this cause came I into the world, that I should bear
witness unto the truth. Everyone that is of the truth heareth My voice."

Christ affirmed that His word was in itself a key which would unlock the
mystery to those who were prepared to receive it. It had a self-commending
power, and this was the secret of the spread of His kingdom of truth. He
desired Pilate to understand that only by receiving and appropriating truth
could his ruined nature be reconstructed.

Pilate had a desire to know the truth. His mind was confused. He eagerly
grasped the words of the Saviour, and his heart was stirred with a great
longing to know what it really was, and how he could obtain it. "What is
truth?" he inquired. But he did not wait for an answer. The tumult outside
recalled him to the interests of the hour; for the priests were clamorous
for immediate action. Going out to the Jews, he declared emphatically, "I
find in Him no fault at all."

These words from a heathen judge were a scathing rebuke to the perfidy and
falsehood of the rulers of Israel who were accusing the Saviour. As the
priests and elders heard this from Pilate, their disappointment and rage
knew no bounds. They had long plotted and waited for this opportunity. As
they saw the prospect of the release of Jesus, they seemed ready to tear Him
in pieces. They loudly denounced Pilate, and threatened him with the censure
of the Roman government. They

728

accused him of refusing to condemn Jesus, who, they affirmed, had set
Himself up against Caesar.

Angry voices were now heard, declaring that the seditious influence of Jesus
was well known throughout the country. The priests said, "He stirreth up the
people, teaching throughout all Jewry, beginning from Galilee to this
place."

Pilate at this time had no thought of condemning Jesus. He knew that the
Jews had accused Him through hatred and prejudice. He knew what his duty
was. Justice demanded that Christ should be immediately released. But Pilate
dreaded the ill will of the people. Should he refuse to give Jesus into
their hands, a tumult would be raised, and this he feared to meet. When he
heard that Christ was from Galilee, he decided to send Him to Herod, the
ruler of that province, who was then in Jerusalem. By this course, Pilate
thought to shift the responsibility of the trial from himself to Herod. He
also thought this a good opportunity to heal an old quarrel between himself
and Herod. And so it proved. The two magistrates made friends over the trial
of the Saviour.

Pilate delivered Jesus again to the soldiers, and amid the jeers and insults
of the mob He was hurried to the judgment hall of Herod. "When Herod saw
Jesus, he was exceeding glad." He had never before met the Saviour, but "he
was desirous to see Him of a long season, because he had heard many things
of Him; and he hoped to have seen some miracle done by Him." This Herod was
he whose hands were stained with the blood of John the Baptist. When Herod
first heard of Jesus, he was terror-stricken, and said, "It is John, whom I
beheaded:

                                                                     729

he is risen from the dead;" "therefore mighty works do show forth themselves
in him." Mark 6:16; Matt. 14:2. Yet Herod desired to see Jesus. Now there
was opportunity to save the life of this prophet, and the king hoped to
banish forever from his mind the memory of that bloody head brought to him
in a charger. He also desired to have his curiosity gratified, and thought
that if Christ were given any prospect of release, He would do anything that
was asked of Him.

A large company of the priests and elders had accompanied Christ to Herod.
And when the Saviour was brought in, these dignitaries, all speaking
excitedly, urged their accusations against Him. But Herod paid little regard
to their charges. He commanded silence, desiring an opportunity to question
Christ. He ordered that the fetters of Christ should be unloosed, at the
same time charging His enemies with roughly treating Him. Looking with
compassion into the serene face of the world's Redeemer, he read in it only
wisdom and purity. He as well as Pilate was satisfied that Christ had been
accused through malice and envy.

Herod questioned Christ in many words, but throughout the Saviour maintained
a profound silence. At the command of the king, the decrepit and maimed were
then called in, and Christ was ordered to prove His claims by working a
miracle. Men say that Thou canst heal the sick, said Herod. I am anxious to
see that Thy widespread fame has not been belied. Jesus did not respond, and
Herod still continued to urge: If Thou canst work miracles for others, work
them now for Thine own good, and it will serve Thee a good purpose. Again he
commanded, Show us a sign that Thou hast the power with which rumor hath
accredited Thee. But Christ was as one who heard and saw not. The Son of God
had taken upon Himself man's nature. He must do as man must do in like
circumstances. Therefore He would not work a miracle to save Himself the
pain and humiliation that man must endure when placed in a similar position.

Herod promised that if Christ would perform some miracle in his presence, He
should be released. Christ's accusers had seen with their own eyes the
mighty works wrought by His power. They had heard Him command the grave to
give up its dead. They had seen the dead come forth obedient to His voice.
Fear seized them lest He should now work a miracle. Of all things they most
dreaded an exhibition of His power. Such a manifestation would prove a
deathblow to their

730

plans, and would perhaps cost them their lives. Again the priests and
rulers, in great anxiety, urged their accusations against Him. Raising their
voices, they declared, He is a traitor, a blasphemer. He works His miracles
through the power given Him by Beelzebub, the prince of the devils. The hall
became a scene of confusion, some crying one thing and some another.

Herod's conscience was now far less sensitive than when he had trembled with
horror at the request of Herodias for the head of John the Baptist. For a
time he had felt the keen stings of remorse for his terrible act; but his
moral perceptions had become more and more degraded by his licentious life.
Now his heart had become so hardened that he could even boast of the
punishment he had inflicted upon John for daring to reprove him. And he now
threatened Jesus, declaring repeatedly that he had power to release or to
condemn Him. But no sign from Jesus gave evidence that He heard a word.

Herod was irritated by this silence. It seemed to indicate utter
indifference to his authority. To the vain and pompous king, open rebuke
would have been less offensive than to be thus ignored. Again he angrily
threatened Jesus, who still remained unmoved and silent.

The mission of Christ in this world was not to gratify idle curiosity. He
came to heal the brokenhearted. Could He have spoken any word to heal the
bruises of sin-sick souls, He would not have kept silent. But He had no
words for those who would but trample the truth under their unholy feet.

Christ might have spoken words to Herod that would have pierced the ears of
the hardened king. He might have stricken him with fear and trembling by
laying before him the full iniquity of his life, and the horror of his
approaching doom. But Christ's silence was the severest rebuke that He could
have given. Herod had rejected the truth spoken to him by the greatest of
the prophets, and no other message was he to receive. Not a word had the
Majesty of heaven for him. That ear that had ever been open to human woe,
had no room for Herod's commands. Those eyes that had ever rested upon the
penitent sinner in pitying, forgiving love had no look to bestow upon Herod.
Those lips that had uttered the most impressive truth, that in tones of
tenderest entreaty had pleaded with the most sinful and the most degraded,
were closed to the haughty king who felt no need of a Saviour.

Herod's face grew dark with passion. Turning to the multitude, he

                                                                     731

angrily denounced Jesus as an impostor. Then to Christ he said, If You will
give no evidence of Your claim, I will deliver You up to the soldiers and
the people. They may succeed in making You speak. If You are an impostor,
death at their hands is only what You merit; if You are the Son of God, save
Yourself by working a miracle.

No sooner were these words spoken than a rush was made for Christ. Like wild
beasts, the crowd darted upon their prey. Jesus was dragged this way and
that, Herod joining the mob in seeking to humiliate the Son of God. Had not
the Roman soldiers interposed, and forced back the maddened throng, the
Saviour would have been torn in pieces.

"Herod with his men of war set Him at nought, and mocked Him, and arrayed
Him in a gorgeous robe." The Roman soldiers joined in this abuse. All that
these wicked, corrupt soldiers, helped on by Herod and the Jewish
dignitaries, could instigate was heaped upon the Saviour. Yet His divine
patience failed not.

Christ's persecutors had tried to measure His character by their own; they
had represented Him as vile as themselves. But back of all the present
appearance another scene intruded itself,--a scene which they will one day
see in all its glory. There were some who trembled in Christ's presence.
While the rude throng were bowing in mockery before Him, some who came
forward for that purpose turned back, afraid and silenced. Herod was
convicted. The last rays of merciful light were shining upon his
sin-hardened heart. He felt that this was no common man; for divinity had
flashed through humanity. At the very time when Christ was encompassed by
mockers, adulterers, and murderers, Herod felt that he was beholding a God
upon His throne.

Hardened as he was, Herod dared not ratify the condemnation of Christ. He
wished to relieve himself of the terrible responsibility, and he sent Jesus
back to the Roman judgment hall.

Pilate was disappointed and much displeased. When the Jews returned with
their prisoner, he asked impatiently what they would have him do. He
reminded them that he had already examined Jesus, and found no fault in Him;
he told them that they had brought complaints against Him, but they had not
been able to prove a single charge. He had sent Jesus to Herod, the tetrarch
of Galilee, and one of their own nation, but he also had found in Him
nothing worthy of death. "I will therefore chastise Him," Pilate said, "and
release Him."

Here Pilate showed his weakness. He had declared that Jesus was

732

innocent, yet he was willing for Him to be scourged to pacify His accusers.
He would sacrifice justice and principle in order to compromise with the
mob. This placed him at a disadvantage. The crowd presumed upon his
indecision, and clamored the more for the life of the prisoner. If at the
first Pilate had stood firm, refusing to condemn a man whom he found
guiltless, he would have broken the fatal chain that was to bind him in
remorse and guilt as long as he lived. Had he carried out his convictions of
right, the Jews would not have presumed to dictate to him. Christ would have
been put to death, but the guilt would not have rested upon Pilate. But
Pilate had taken step after step in the violation of his conscience. He had
excused himself from judging with justice and equity, and he now found
himself almost helpless in the hands of the priests and rulers. His wavering
and indecision proved his ruin.

Even now Pilate was not left to act blindly. A message from God warned him
from the deed he was about to commit. In answer to Christ's prayer, the wife
of Pilate had been visited by an angel from heaven, and in a dream she had
beheld the Saviour and conversed with Him. Pilate's wife was not a Jew, but
as she looked upon Jesus in her dream, she had no doubt of His character or
mission. She knew Him to be the Prince of God. She saw Him on trial in the
judgment hall. She saw the hands tightly bound as the hands of a criminal.
She saw Herod and his soldiers doing their dreadful work. She heard the
priests and rulers, filled with envy and malice, madly accusing. She heard
the words, "We have a law, and by our law He ought to die." She saw Pilate
give Jesus to the scourging, after he had declared, "I find no fault in
Him." She heard the condemnation pronounced by Pilate, and saw him give
Christ up to His murderers. She saw the cross uplifted on Calvary. She saw
the earth wrapped in darkness, and heard the mysterious cry, "It is
finished." Still another scene met her gaze. She saw Christ seated upon the
great white cloud, while the earth reeled in space, and His murderers fled
from the presence of His glory. With a cry of horror she awoke, and at once
wrote to Pilate words of warning.

While Pilate was hesitating as to what he should do, a messenger pressed
through the crowd, and handed him the letter from his wife, which read:

"Have thou nothing to do with that just Man: for I have suffered many things
this day in a dream because of Him."

                                                                     733


Pilate's face grew pale. He was confused by his own conflicting emotions.
But while he had been delaying to act, the priests and rulers were still
further inflaming the minds of the people. Pilate was forced to action. He
now bethought himself of a custom which might serve to secure Christ's
release. It was customary at this feast to release some one prisoner whom
the people might choose. This custom was of pagan invention; there was not a
shadow of justice in it, but it was greatly prized by the Jews. The Roman
authorities at this time held a prisoner named Barabbas, who was under
sentence of death. This man had claimed to be the Messiah. He claimed
authority to establish a different order of things, to set the world right.
Under satanic delusion he claimed that whatever he could obtain by theft and
robbery was his own. He had done wonderful things through satanic agencies,
he had gained a following among the people, and had excited sedition against
the Roman government. Under cover of religious enthusiasm he was a hardened
and desperate villain, bent on rebellion and cruelty. By giving the people a
choice between this man and the innocent Saviour, Pilate thought to arouse
them to a sense of justice. He hoped to gain their sympathy for Jesus in
opposition to the priests and rulers. So, turning to the crowd, he said with
great earnestness, "Whom will ye that I release unto you? Barabbas, or Jesus
which is called Christ?"

Like the bellowing of wild beasts came the answer of the mob, "Release unto
us Barabbas!" Louder and louder swelled the cry, Barabbas! Barabbas!
Thinking that the people had not understood his question, Pilate asked,
"Will ye that I release unto you the King of the Jews?" But they cried out
again, "Away with this Man, and release unto us Barabbas"! "What shall I do
then with Jesus which is called Christ?" Pilate asked. Again the surging
multitude roared like demons. Demons themselves, in human form, were in the
crowd, and what could be expected but the answer, "Let Him be crucified"?

Pilate was troubled. He had not thought it would come to that. He shrank
from delivering an innocent man to the most ignominious and cruel death that
could be inflicted. After the roar of voices had ceased, he turned to the
people, saying, "Why, what evil hath He done?" But the case had gone too far
for argument. It was not evidence of Christ's innocence that they wanted,
but His condemnation.

Still Pilate endeavored to save Him. "He said unto them the third time, Why,
what evil hath He done? I have found no cause of death

734

in Him: I will therefore chastise Him, and let Him go." But the very mention
of His release stirred the people to a tenfold frenzy. "Crucify Him, crucify
Him," they cried. Louder and louder swelled the storm that Pilate's
indecision had called forth.

Jesus was taken, faint with weariness and covered with wounds, and scourged
in the sight of the multitude. "And the soldiers led Him away into the hall,
called Praetorium, and they call together the whole band. And they clothed
Him with purple, and platted a crown of thorns, and put it about His head,
and began to salute Him, Hail, King of the Jews! And they . . . did spit
upon Him, and bowing their knees worshiped Him." Occasionally some wicked
hand snatched the reed that had been placed in His hand, and struck the
crown upon His brow, forcing the thorns into His temples, and sending the
blood trickling down His face and beard.

Wonder, O heavens! and be astonished, O earth! Behold the oppressor and the
oppressed. A maddened throng enclose the Saviour of the world. Mocking and
jeering are mingled with the coarse oaths of blasphemy. His lowly birth and
humble life are commented upon by the unfeeling mob. His claim to be the Son
of God is ridiculed, and the vulgar jest and insulting sneer are passed from
lip to lip.

Satan led the cruel mob in its abuse of the Saviour. It was his purpose to
provoke Him to retaliation if possible, or to drive Him to perform a miracle
to release Himself, and thus break up the plan of salvation. One stain upon
His human life, one failure of His humanity to endure the terrible test, and
the Lamb of God would have been an imperfect offering, and the redemption of
man a failure. But He who by a command could bring the heavenly host to His
aid--He who could have driven that mob in terror from His sight by the
flashing forth of His divine majesty--submitted with perfect calmness to the
coarsest insult and outrage.

Christ's enemies had demanded a miracle as evidence of His divinity. They
had evidence far greater than any they had sought. As their cruelty degraded
His torturers below humanity into the likeness of Satan, so did His meekness
and patience exalt Jesus above humanity, and prove His kinship to God. His
abasement was the pledge of His exaltation. The blood drops of agony that
from His wounded temples flowed down His face and beard were the pledge of
His anointing with "the oil of gladness" (Heb. 1:9.) as our great high
priest.

                                                                     735


Satan's rage was great as he saw that all the abuse inflicted upon the
Saviour had not forced the least murmur from His lips. Although He had taken
upon Him the nature of man, He was sustained by a godlike fortitude, and
departed in no particular from the will of His Father.

When Pilate gave Jesus up to be scourged and mocked, he thought to excite
the pity of the multitude. He hoped they would decide that this was
sufficient punishment. Even the malice of the priests, he thought, would now
be satisfied. But with keen perception the Jews saw the weakness of thus
punishing a man who had been declared innocent. They knew that Pilate was
trying to save the life of the prisoner, and they were determined that Jesus
should not be released. To please and satisfy us, Pilate has scourged Him,
they thought, and if we press the matter to a decided issue, we shall surely
gain our end.

Pilate now sent for Barabbas to be brought into the court. He then presented
the two prisoners side by side, and pointing to the Saviour he said in a
voice of solemn entreaty, "Behold the Man!" "I bring Him forth to you, that
ye may know that I find no fault in Him."

There stood the Son of God, wearing the robe of mockery and the crown of
thorns. Stripped to the waist, His back showed the long, cruel stripes, from
which the blood flowed freely. His face was stained with blood, and bore the
marks of exhaustion and pain; but never had it appeared more beautiful than
now. The Saviour's visage was not marred before His enemies. Every feature
expressed gentleness and resignation and the tenderest pity for His cruel
foes. In His manner there was no cowardly weakness, but the strength and
dignity of long-suffering. In striking contrast was the prisoner at His
side. Every line of the countenance of Barabbas proclaimed him the hardened
ruffian that he was. The contrast spoke to every beholder. Some of the
spectators were weeping. As they looked upon Jesus, their hearts were full
of sympathy. Even the priests and rulers were convicted that He was all that
He claimed to be.

The Roman soldiers that surrounded Christ were not all hardened; some were
looking earnestly into His face for one evidence that He was a criminal or
dangerous character. From time to time they would turn and cast a look of
contempt upon Barabbas. It needed no deep insight to read him through and
through. Again they would turn to the One upon trial. They looked at the
divine sufferer with feelings of deep pity. The silent submission of Christ
stamped upon their minds

736

the scene, never to be effaced until they either acknowledged Him as the
Christ, or by rejecting Him decided their own destiny.

Pilate was filled with amazement at the uncomplaining patience of the
Saviour. He did not doubt that the sight of this Man, in contrast with
Barabbas, would move the Jews to sympathy. But he did not understand the
fanatical hatred of the priests for Him, who, as the Light of the world, had
made manifest their darkness and error. They had moved the mob to a mad
fury, and again priests, rulers, and people raised that awful cry, "Crucify
Him, crucify Him." At last, losing all patience with their unreasoning
cruelty, Pilate cried out despairingly, "Take ye Him, and crucify Him: for I
find no fault in Him."

The Roman governor, though familiar with cruel scenes, was moved with
sympathy for the suffering prisoner, who, condemned and scourged, with
bleeding brow and lacerated back, still had the bearing of a king upon his
throne. But the priests declared, "We have a law, and by our law He ought to
die, because He made Himself the Son of God."

Pilate was startled. He had no correct idea of Christ and His mission; but
he had an indistinct faith in God and in beings superior to humanity. A
thought that had once before passed through his mind now took more definite
shape. He questioned whether it might not be a divine being that stood
before him, clad in the purple robe of mockery, and crowned with thorns.

Again he went into the judgment hall, and said to Jesus, "Whence art Thou?"
But Jesus gave him no answer. The Saviour had spoken freely to Pilate,
explaining His own mission as a witness to the truth. Pilate had disregarded
the light. He had abused the high office of judge by yielding his principles
and authority to the demands of the mob. Jesus had no further light for him.
Vexed at His silence, Pilate said haughtily:

"Speakest Thou not unto me? knowest Thou not that I have power to crucify
Thee, and have power to release Thee?"

Jesus answered, "Thou couldest have no power at all against Me, except it
were given thee from above: therefore he that delivered Me unto thee hath
the greater sin."

Thus the pitying Saviour, in the midst of His intense suffering and grief,
excused as far as possible the act of the Roman governor who gave Him up to
be crucified. What a scene was this to hand down to the world for all time!
What a light it sheds upon the character of Him who is the Judge of all the
earth!

                                                                     737


"He that delivered Me unto thee," said Jesus, "hath the greater sin." By
this Christ meant Caiaphas, who, as high priest, represented the Jewish
nation. They knew the principles that controlled the Roman authorities. They
had had light in the prophecies that testified of Christ, and in His own
teachings and miracles. The Jewish judges had received unmistakable evidence
of the divinity of Him whom they condemned to death. And according to their
light would they be judged.

The greatest guilt and heaviest responsibility belonged to those who stood
in the highest places in the nation, the depositaries of sacred trusts that
they were basely betraying. Pilate, Herod, and the Roman soldiers were
comparatively ignorant of Jesus. They thought to please the priests and
rulers by abusing Him. They had not the light which the Jewish nation had so
abundantly received. Had the light been given to the soldiers, they would
not have treated Christ as cruelly as they did.

Again Pilate proposed to release the Saviour. "But the Jews cried out,
saying, If thou let this man go, thou art not Caesar's friend." Thus these
hypocrites pretended to be jealous for the authority of Caesar. Of all the
opponents of the Roman rule, the Jews were most bitter. When it was safe for
them to do so, they were most tyrannical in enforcing their own national and
religious requirements; but when they desired to bring about some purpose of
cruelty, they exalted the power of Caesar. To accomplish the destruction of
Christ, they would profess loyalty to the foreign rule which they hated.

"Whosoever maketh himself a king," they continued, "speaketh against
Caesar." This was touching Pilate in a weak point. He was under suspicion by
the Roman government, and he knew that such a report would be ruin to him.
He knew that if the Jews were thwarted, their rage would be turned against
him. They would leave nothing undone to accomplish their revenge. He had
before him an example of the persistence with which they sought the life of
One whom they hated without reason.

Pilate then took his place on the judgment seat, and again presented Jesus
to the people, saying, "Behold your King!" Again the mad cry was heard,
"Away with Him, crucify Him." In a voice that was heard far and near, Pilate
asked, "Shall I crucify your King?" But from profane, blasphemous lips went
forth the words, "We have no king but Caesar."

Thus by choosing a heathen ruler, the Jewish nation had withdrawn

738

from the theocracy. They had rejected God as their king. Henceforth they had
no deliverer. They had no king but Caesar. To this the priests and teachers
had led the people. For this, with the fearful results that followed, they
were responsible. A nation's sin and a nation's ruin were due to the
religious leaders.

"When Pilate saw that he could prevail nothing, but that rather a tumult was
made, he took water, and washed his hands before the multitude, saying, I am
innocent of the blood of this just Person: see ye to it." In fear and
self-condemnation Pilate looked upon the Saviour. In the vast sea of
upturned faces, His alone was peaceful. About His head a soft light seemed
to shine. Pilate said in his heart, He is a God. Turning to the multitude he
declared, I am clear of His blood. Take ye Him, and crucify Him. But mark
ye, priests and rulers, I pronounce Him a just man. May He whom He claims as
His Father judge you and not me for this day's work. Then to Jesus he said,
Forgive me for this act; I cannot save You. And when he had again scourged
Jesus, he delivered Him to be crucified.

Pilate longed to deliver Jesus. But he saw that he could not do this, and
yet retain his own position and honor. Rather than lose his worldly power,
he chose to sacrifice an innocent life. How many, to escape loss or
suffering, in like manner sacrifice principle. Conscience and duty point one
way, and self-interest points another. The current sets strongly in the
wrong direction, and he who compromises with evil is swept away into the
thick darkness of guilt.

Pilate yielded to the demands of the mob. Rather than risk losing his
position, he delivered Jesus up to be crucified. But in spite of his
precautions, the very thing he dreaded afterward came upon him. His honors
were stripped from him, he was cast down from his high office, and, stung by
remorse and wounded pride, not long after the crucifixion he ended his own
life. So all who compromise with sin will gain only sorrow and ruin. "There
is a way which seemeth right unto a man, but the end thereof are the ways of
death." Prov. 14:12.

When Pilate declared himself innocent of the blood of Christ, Caiaphas
answered defiantly, "His blood be on us, and on our children." The awful
words were taken up by the priests and rulers, and echoed by the crowd in an
inhuman roar of voices. The whole multitude answered and said, "His blood be
on us, and on our children."

The people of Israel had made their choice. Pointing to Jesus they

                                                                     739

had said, "Not this man, but Barabbas." Barabbas, the robber and murderer,
was the representative of Satan. Christ was the representative of God.
Christ had been rejected; Barabbas had been chosen. Barabbas they were to
have. In making this choice they accepted him who from the beginning was a
liar and a murderer. Satan was their leader. As a nation they would act out
his dictation. His works they would do. His rule they must endure. That
people who chose Barabbas in the place of Christ were to feel the cruelty of
Barabbas as long as time should last.

Looking upon the smitten Lamb of God, the Jews had cried, "His blood be on
us, and on our children." That awful cry ascended to the throne of God. That
sentence, pronounced upon themselves, was written in heaven. That prayer was
heard. The blood of the Son of God was upon their children and their
children's children, a perpetual curse.

Terribly was it realized in the destruction of Jerusalem. Terribly has it
been manifested in the condition of the Jewish nation for eighteen hundred
years,--a branch severed from the vine, a dead, fruitless branch, to be
gathered up and burned. From land to land throughout the world, from century
to century, dead, dead in trespasses and sins!

Terribly will that prayer be fulfilled in the great judgment day. When
Christ shall come to the earth again, not as a prisoner surrounded by a
rabble will men see Him. They will see Him then as heaven's King. Christ
will come in His own glory, in the glory of His Father, and the glory of the
holy angels. Ten thousand times ten thousand, and thousands of thousands of
angels, the beautiful and triumphant sons of God, possessing surpassing
loveliness and glory, will escort Him on His way. Then shall He sit upon the
throne of His glory, and before Him shall be gathered all nations. Then
every eye shall see Him, and they also that pierced Him. In the place of a
crown of thorns, He will wear a crown of glory,--a crown within a crown. In
place of that old purple kingly robe, He will be clothed in raiment of
whitest white, "so as no fuller on earth can white them." Mark 9:3. And on
His vesture and on His thigh a name will be written, "King of kings, and
Lord of lords." Rev. 19:16. Those who mocked and smote Him will be there.
The priests and rulers will behold again the scene in the judgment hall.
Every circumstance will appear before them, as if written in letters of
fire. Then those who prayed, "His blood be on us, and on our children," will
receive the answer to their prayer. Then the whole world will know

740

and understand. They will realize who and what they, poor, feeble, finite
beings, have been warring against. In awful agony and horror they will cry
to the mountains and rocks, "Fall on us, and hide us from the face of Him
that sitteth on the throne, and from the wrath of the Lamb: for the great
day of His wrath is come; and who shall be able to stand?" Rev. 6:16, 17.




                                                                     (741)

                             Chapter 78

                             Calvary


"And when they were come to the place, which is called Calvary, there they
crucified Him."

"That He might sanctify the people with His own blood," Christ "suffered
without the gate." Heb. 13:12. For transgression of the law of God, Adam and
Eve were banished from Eden. Christ, our substitute, was to suffer without
the boundaries of Jerusalem. He died outside the gate, where felons and
murderers were executed. Full of significance are the words, "Christ hath
redeemed us from the curse of the law, being made a curse for us." Gal.
3:13.

A vast multitude followed Jesus from the judgment hall to Calvary. The news
of His condemnation had spread throughout Jerusalem, and people of all
classes and all ranks flocked toward the place of crucifixion. The priests
and rulers had been bound by a promise not to molest Christ's followers if
He Himself were delivered to them, and the disciples and believers from the
city and the surrounding region joined the throng that followed the Saviour.

As Jesus passed the gate of Pilate's court, the cross which had been
prepared for Barabbas was laid upon His bruised and bleeding shoulders. Two
companions of Barabbas were to suffer death at the same time with Jesus, and
upon them also crosses were placed. The Saviour's burden

742

was too heavy for Him in His weak and suffering condition. Since the
Passover supper with His disciples, He had taken neither food nor drink. He
had agonized in the garden of Gethsemane in conflict with satanic agencies.
He had endured the anguish of the betrayal, and had seen His disciples
forsake Him and flee. He had been taken to Annas, then to Caiaphas, and then
to Pilate. From Pilate He had been sent to Herod, then sent again to Pilate.
From insult to renewed insult, from mockery to mockery, twice tortured by
the scourge,--all that night there had been scene after scene of a character
to try the soul of man to the uttermost. Christ had not failed. He had
spoken no word but that tended to glorify God. All through the disgraceful
farce of a trial He had borne Himself with firmness and dignity. But when
after the second scourging the cross was laid upon Him, human nature could
bear no more. He fell fainting beneath the burden.

The crowd that followed the Saviour saw His weak and staggering steps, but
they manifested no compassion. They taunted and reviled Him because He could
not carry the heavy cross. Again the burden was laid upon Him, and again He
fell fainting to the ground. His persecutors saw that it was impossible for
Him to carry His burden farther. They were puzzled to find anyone who would
bear the humiliating load. The Jews themselves could not do this, because
the defilement would prevent them from keeping the Passover. None even of
the mob that followed Him would stoop to bear the cross.

At this time a stranger, Simon a Cyrenian, coming in from the country, meets
the throng. He hears the taunts and ribaldry of the crowd; he hears the
words contemptuously repeated, Make way for the King of the Jews! He stops
in astonishment at the scene; and as he expresses his compassion, they seize
him and place the cross upon his shoulders.

Simon had heard of Jesus. His sons were believers in the Saviour, but he
himself was not a disciple. The bearing of the cross to Calvary was a
blessing to Simon, and he was ever after grateful for this providence. It
led him to take upon himself the cross of Christ from choice, and ever
cheerfully stand beneath its burden.

Not a few women are in the crowd that follow the Uncondemned to His cruel
death. Their attention is fixed upon Jesus. Some of them have seen Him
before. Some have carried to Him their sick and suffering ones. Some have
themselves been healed. The story of the scenes that have taken place is
related. They wonder at the hatred of the crowd toward Him for whom their
own hearts are melting and ready to break.

                                                                     743

And notwithstanding the action of the maddened throng, and the angry words
of the priests and rulers, these women give expression to their sympathy. As
Jesus falls fainting beneath the cross, they break forth into mournful
wailing.

This was the only thing that attracted Christ's attention. Although full of
suffering, while bearing the sins of the world, He was not indifferent to
the expression of grief. He looked upon these women with tender compassion.
They were not believers in Him; He knew that they were not lamenting Him as
one sent from God, but were moved by feelings of human pity. He did not
despise their sympathy, but it awakened in His heart a deeper sympathy for
them. "Daughters of Jerusalem," He said, "weep not for Me, but weep for
yourselves, and for your children." From the scene before Him, Christ looked
forward to the time of Jerusalem's destruction. In that terrible scene, many
of those who were now weeping for Him were to perish with their children.

From the fall of Jerusalem the thoughts of Jesus passed to a wider judgment.
In the destruction of the impenitent city He saw a symbol of the final
destruction to come upon the world. He said, "Then shall they begin to say
to the mountains, Fall on us; and to the hills, Cover us. For if they do
these things in a green tree, what shall be done in the dry?" By the green
tree, Jesus represented Himself, the innocent Redeemer. God suffered His
wrath against transgression to fall on His beloved Son. Jesus was to be
crucified for the sins of men. What suffering, then, would the sinner bear
who continued in sin? All the impenitent and unbelieving would know a sorrow
and misery that language would fail to express.

Of the multitude that followed the Saviour to Calvary, many had attended Him
with joyful hosannas and the waving of palm branches as He rode triumphantly
into Jerusalem. But not a few who had then shouted His praise, because it
was popular to do so, now swelled the cry of "Crucify Him, crucify Him."
When Christ rode into Jerusalem, the hopes of the disciples had been raised
to the highest pitch. They had pressed close about their Master, feeling
that it was a high honor to be connected with Him. Now in His humiliation
they followed Him at a distance. They were filled with grief, and bowed down
with disappointed hopes. How were the words of Jesus verified: "All ye shall
be offended because of Me this night: for it is written, I will smite the
shepherd, and the sheep of the flock shall be scattered abroad." Matt.
26:31.

744


Arriving at the place of execution, the prisoners were bound to the
instruments of torture. The two thieves wrestled in the hands of those who
placed them on the cross; but Jesus made no resistance. The mother of Jesus,
supported by John the beloved disciple, had followed the steps of her Son to
Calvary. She had seen Him fainting under the burden of the cross, and had
longed to place a supporting hand beneath His wounded head, and to bathe
that brow which had once been pillowed upon her bosom. But she was not
permitted this mournful privilege. With the disciples she still cherished
the hope that Jesus would manifest His power, and deliver Himself from His
enemies. Again her heart would sink as she recalled the words in which He
had foretold the very scenes that were then taking place. As the thieves
were bound to the cross, she looked on with agonizing suspense. Would He who
had given life to the dead suffer Himself to be crucified? Would the Son of
God suffer Himself to be thus cruelly slain? Must she give up her faith that
Jesus was the Messiah? Must she witness His shame and sorrow, without even
the privilege of ministering to Him in His distress? She saw His hands
stretched upon the cross; the hammer and the nails were brought, and as the
spikes were driven through the tender flesh, the heart-stricken disciples
bore away from the cruel scene the fainting form of the mother of Jesus.

The Saviour made no murmur of complaint. His face remained calm and serene,
but great drops of sweat stood upon His brow. There was no pitying hand to
wipe the death dew from His face, nor words of sympathy and unchanging
fidelity to stay His human heart. While the soldiers were doing their
fearful work, Jesus prayed for His enemies, "Father, forgive them; for they
know not what they do." His mind passed from His own suffering to the sin of
His persecutors, and the terrible retribution that would be theirs. No
curses were called down upon the soldiers who were handling Him so roughly.
No vengeance was invoked upon the priests and rulers, who were gloating over
the accomplishment of their purpose. Christ pitied them in their ignorance
and guilt. He breathed only a plea for their forgiveness,--"for they know
not what they do."

Had they known that they were putting to torture One who had come to save
the sinful race from eternal ruin, they would have been seized with remorse
and horror. But their ignorance did not remove their guilt; for it was their
privilege to know and accept Jesus as their

                                                                     745

Saviour. Some of them would yet see their sin, and repent, and be converted.
Some by their impenitence would make it an impossibility for the prayer of
Christ to be answered for them. Yet, just the same, God's purpose was
reaching its fulfillment. Jesus was earning the right to become the advocate
of men in the Father's presence.

That prayer of Christ for His enemies embraced the world. It took in every
sinner that had lived or should live, from the beginning of the world to the
end of time. Upon all rests the guilt of crucifying the Son of God. To all,
forgiveness is freely offered. "Whosoever will" may have peace with God, and
inherit eternal life.

As soon as Jesus was nailed to the cross, it was lifted by strong men, and
with great violence thrust into the place prepared for it. This caused the
most intense agony to the Son of God. Pilate then wrote an inscription in
Hebrew, Greek, and Latin, and placed it upon the cross, above the head of
Jesus. It read, "Jesus of Nazareth the King of the Jews." This inscription
irritated the Jews. In Pilate's court they had cried, "Crucify Him." "We
have no king but Caesar." John 19:15. They had declared that whoever should
acknowledge any other king was a traitor. Pilate wrote out the sentiment
they had expressed. No offense was mentioned, except that Jesus was the King
of the Jews. The inscription was a virtual acknowledgment of the allegiance
of the Jews to the Roman power. It declared that whoever might claim to be
the King of Israel would be judged by them worthy of death. The priests had
overreached themselves. When they were plotting the death of Christ,
Caiaphas had declared it expedient that one man should die to save the
nation. Now their hypocrisy was revealed. In order to destroy Christ, they
had been ready to sacrifice even their national existence.

The priests saw what they had done, and asked Pilate to change the
inscription. They said, "Write not, The King of the Jews; but that He said,
I am King of the Jews." But Pilate was angry with himself because of his
former weakness, and he thoroughly despised the jealous and artful priests
and rulers. He replied coldly, "What I have written I have written."

A higher power than Pilate or the Jews had directed the placing of that
inscription above the head of Jesus. In the providence of God it was to
awaken thought, and investigation of the Scriptures. The place where Christ
was crucified was near to the city. Thousands of people from all lands were
then at Jerusalem, and the inscription declaring Jesus of

746

Nazareth the Messiah would come to their notice. It was a living truth,
transcribed by a hand that God had guided.

In the sufferings of Christ upon the cross prophecy was fulfilled. Centuries
before the crucifixion, the Saviour had foretold the treatment He was to
receive. He said, "Dogs have compassed Me: the assembly of the wicked have
enclosed Me: they pierced My hands and My feet. I may tell all My bones:
they look and stare upon Me. They part My garments among them, and cast lots
upon My vesture." Ps. 22:16-18. The prophecy concerning His garments was
carried out without counsel or interference from the friends or the enemies
of the Crucified One. To the soldiers who had placed Him upon the cross, His
clothing was given. Christ heard the men's contention as they parted the
garments among them. His tunic was woven throughout without seam, and they
said, "Let us not rend it, but cast lots for it, whose it shall be."

In another prophecy the Saviour declared, "Reproach hath broken My heart;
and I am full of heaviness: and I looked for some to take pity, but there
was none; and for comforters, but I found none. They gave Me also gall for
My meat; and in My thirst they gave Me vinegar to drink." Ps. 69:20, 21. To
those who suffered death by the cross, it was permitted to give a stupefying
potion, to deaden the sense of pain. This was offered to Jesus; but when He
had tasted it, He refused it. He would receive nothing that could becloud
His mind. His faith must keep fast hold upon God. This was His only
strength. To becloud His senses would give Satan an advantage.

The enemies of Jesus vented their rage upon Him as He hung upon the cross.
Priests, rulers, and scribes joined with the mob in mocking the dying
Saviour. At the baptism and at the transfiguration the voice of God had been
heard proclaiming Christ as His Son. Again, just before Christ's betrayal,
the Father had spoken, witnessing to His divinity. But now the voice from
heaven was silent. No testimony in Christ's favor was heard. Alone He
suffered abuse and mockery from wicked men.

"If Thou be the Son of God," they said, "come down from the cross." "Let Him
save Himself, if He be Christ, the chosen of God." In the wilderness of
temptation Satan had declared, "If Thou be the Son of God, command that
these stones be made bread." "If Thou be the Son of God, cast Thyself down"
from the pinnacle of the temple. Matt. 4:3, 6. And Satan with his angels, in
human form, was present at the

                                                                     749

cross. The archfiend and his hosts were co-operating with the priests and
rulers. The teachers of the people had stimulated the ignorant mob to
pronounce judgment against One upon whom many of them had never looked,
until urged to bear testimony against Him. Priests, rulers, Pharisees, and
the hardened rabble were confederated together in a satanic frenzy.
Religious rulers united with Satan and his angels. They were doing his
bidding.

Jesus, suffering and dying, heard every word as the priests declared, "He
saved others; Himself He cannot save. Let Christ the King of Israel descend
now from the cross, that we may see and believe." Christ could have come
down from the cross. But it is because He would not save Himself that the
sinner has hope of pardon and favor with God.

In their mockery of the Saviour, the men who professed to be the expounders
of prophecy were repeating the very words which Inspiration had foretold
they would utter upon this occasion. Yet in their blindness they did not see
that they were fulfilling the prophecy. Those who in derision uttered the
words, "He trusted in God; let Him deliver Him now, if He will have Him: for
He said, I am the Son of God," little thought that their testimony would
sound down the ages. But although spoken in mockery, these words led men to
search the Scriptures as they had never done before. Wise men heard,
searched, pondered, and prayed. There were those who never rested until, by
comparing scripture with scripture, they saw the meaning of Christ's
mission. Never before was there such a general knowledge of Jesus as when He
hung upon the cross. Into the hearts of many who beheld the crucifixion
scene, and who heard Christ's words, the light of truth was shining.

To Jesus in His agony on the cross there came one gleam of comfort. It was
the prayer of the penitent thief. Both the men who were crucified with Jesus
had at first railed upon Him; and one under his suffering only became more
desperate and defiant. But not so with his companion. This man was not a
hardened criminal; he had been led astray by evil associations, but he was
less guilty than many of those who stood beside the cross reviling the
Saviour. He had seen and heard Jesus, and had been convicted by His
teaching, but he had been turned away from Him by the priests and rulers.
Seeking to stifle conviction, he had plunged deeper and deeper into sin,
until he was arrested, tried as a criminal, and condemned to die on the
cross. In the judgment hall and on the way to Calvary he had been in company
with Jesus. He had heard Pilate declare, "I find no fault in Him." John
19:4. He had marked His

750

godlike bearing, and His pitying forgiveness of His tormentors. On the cross
he sees the many great religionists shoot out the tongue with scorn, and
ridicule the Lord Jesus. He sees the wagging heads. He hears the upbraiding
speeches taken up by his companion in guilt: "If Thou be Christ, save
Thyself and us." Among the passers-by he hears many defending Jesus. He
hears them repeat His words, and tell of His works. The conviction comes
back to him that this is the Christ. Turning to his fellow criminal he says,
"Dost not thou fear God, seeing thou art in the same condemnation?" The
dying thieves have no longer anything to fear from man. But upon one of them
presses the conviction that there is a God to fear, a future to cause him to
tremble. And now, all sin-polluted as it is, his life history is about to
close. "And we indeed justly," he moans; "for we receive the due reward of
our deeds: but this Man hath done nothing amiss."

There is no question now. There are no doubts, no reproaches. When condemned
for his crime, the thief had become hopeless and despairing; but strange,
tender thoughts now spring up. He calls to mind all he has heard of Jesus,
how He has healed the sick and pardoned sin. He has heard the words of those
who believed in Jesus and followed Him weeping. He has seen and read the
title above the Saviour's head. He has heard the passers-by repeat it, some
with grieved, quivering lips, others with jesting and mockery. The Holy
Spirit illuminates his mind, and little by little the chain of evidence is
joined together. In Jesus, bruised, mocked, and hanging upon the cross, he
sees the Lamb of God, that taketh away the sin of the world. Hope is mingled
with anguish in his voice as the helpless, dying soul casts himself upon a
dying Saviour. "Lord, remember me," he cries, "when Thou comest into Thy
kingdom."

Quickly the answer came. Soft and melodious the tone, full of love,
compassion, and power the words: Verily I say unto thee today, Thou shalt be
with Me in paradise.

For long hours of agony, reviling and mockery have fallen upon the ears of
Jesus. As He hangs upon the cross, there floats up to Him still the sound of
jeers and curses. With longing heart He has listened for some expression of
faith from His disciples. He has heard only the mournful words, "We trusted
that it had been He which should have redeemed Israel." How grateful then to
the Saviour was the utterance of faith and love from the dying thief! While
the leading Jews deny Him, and even the disciples doubt His divinity, the
poor thief, upon the

                                                                     751

brink of eternity, calls Jesus Lord. Many were ready to call Him Lord when
He wrought miracles, and after He had risen from the grave; but none
acknowledged Him as He hung dying upon the cross save the penitent thief who
was saved at the eleventh hour.

The bystanders caught the words as the thief called Jesus Lord. The tone of
the repentant man arrested their attention. Those who at the foot of the
cross had been quarreling over Christ's garments, and casting lots upon His
vesture, stopped to listen. Their angry tones were hushed. With bated breath
they looked upon Christ, and waited for the response from those dying lips.

As He spoke the words of promise, the dark cloud that seemed to enshroud the
cross was pierced by a bright and living light. To the penitent thief came
the perfect peace of acceptance with God. Christ in His humiliation was
glorified. He who in all other eyes appeared to be conquered was a
Conqueror. He was acknowledged as the Sin Bearer. Men may exercise power
over His human body. They may pierce the holy temples with the crown of
thorns. They may strip from Him His raiment, and quarrel over its division.
But they cannot rob Him of His power to forgive sins. In dying He bears
testimony to His own divinity and to the glory of the Father. His ear is not
heavy that it cannot hear, neither His arm shortened that it cannot save. It
is His royal right to save unto the uttermost all who come unto God by Him.

I say unto thee today, Thou shalt be with Me in Paradise. Christ did not
promise that the thief should be with Him in Paradise that day. He Himself
did not go that day to Paradise. He slept in the tomb, and on the morning of
the resurrection He said, "I am not yet ascended to My Father." John 20:17.
But on the day of the crucifixion, the day of apparent defeat and darkness,
the promise was given. "Today" while dying upon the cross as a malefactor,
Christ assures the poor sinner, Thou shalt be with Me in Paradise.

The thieves crucified with Jesus were placed "on either side one, and Jesus
in the midst." This was done by the direction of the priests and rulers.
Christ's position between the thieves was to indicate that He was the
greatest criminal of the three. Thus was fulfilled the scripture, "He was
numbered with the transgressors." Isa. 53:12. But the full meaning of their
act the priests did not see. As Jesus, crucified with the thieves, was
placed "in the midst," so His cross was placed in the midst of a world lying
in sin. And the words of pardon spoken to the penitent thief kindled a light
that will shine to the earth's remotest bounds.

752


With amazement the angels beheld the infinite love of Jesus, who, suffering
the most intense agony of mind and body, thought only of others, and
encouraged the penitent soul to believe. In His humiliation He as a prophet
had addressed the daughters of Jerusalem; as priest and advocate He had
pleaded with the Father to forgive His murderers; as a loving Saviour He had
forgiven the sins of the penitent thief.

As the eyes of Jesus wandered over the multitude about Him, one figure
arrested His attention. At the foot of the cross stood His mother, supported
by the disciple John. She could not endure to remain away from her Son; and
John, knowing that the end was near, had brought her again to the cross. In
His dying hour, Christ remembered His mother. Looking into her
grief-stricken face and then upon John, He said to her, "Woman, behold thy
son!" then to John, "Behold thy mother!" John understood Christ's words, and
accepted the trust. He at once took Mary to his home, and from that hour
cared for her tenderly. O pitiful, loving Saviour; amid all His physical
pain and mental anguish, He had a thoughtful care for His mother! He had no
money with which to provide for her comfort; but He was enshrined in the
heart of John, and He gave His mother to him as a precious legacy. Thus He
provided for her that which she most needed,--the tender sympathy of one who
loved her because she loved Jesus. And in receiving her as a sacred trust,
John was receiving a great blessing. She was a constant reminder of his
beloved Master.

The perfect example of Christ's filial love shines forth with undimmed
luster from the mist of ages. For nearly thirty years Jesus by His daily
toil had helped bear the burdens of the home. And now, even in His last
agony, He remembers to provide for His sorrowing, widowed mother. The same
spirit will be seen in every disciple of our Lord. Those who follow Christ
will feel that it is a part of their religion to respect and provide for
their parents. From the heart where His love is cherished, father and mother
will never fail of receiving thoughtful care and tender sympathy.

And now the Lord of glory was dying, a ransom for the race. In yielding up
His precious life, Christ was not upheld by triumphant joy. All was
oppressive gloom. It was not the dread of death that weighed upon Him. It
was not the pain and ignominy of the cross that caused His inexpressible
agony. Christ was the prince of sufferers; but His suffering was from a
sense of the malignity of sin, a knowledge that

                                                                     753

through familiarity with evil, man had become blinded to its enormity.
Christ saw how deep is the hold of sin upon the human heart, how few would
be willing to break from its power. He knew that without help from God,
humanity must perish, and He saw multitudes perishing within reach of
abundant help.

Upon Christ as our substitute and surety was laid the iniquity of us all. He
was counted a transgressor, that He might redeem us from the condemnation of
the law. The guilt of every descendant of Adam was pressing upon His heart.
The wrath of God against sin, the terrible manifestation of His displeasure
because of iniquity, filled the soul of His Son with consternation. All His
life Christ had been publishing to a fallen world the good news of the
Father's mercy and pardoning love. Salvation for the chief of sinners was
His theme. But now with the terrible weight of guilt He bears, He cannot see
the Father's reconciling face. The withdrawal of the divine countenance from
the Saviour in this hour of supreme anguish pierced His heart with a sorrow
that can never be fully understood by man. So great was this agony that His
physical pain was hardly felt.

Satan with his fierce temptations wrung the heart of Jesus. The Saviour
could not see through the portals of the tomb. Hope did not present to Him
His coming forth from the grave a conqueror, or tell Him of the Father's
acceptance of the sacrifice. He feared that sin was so offensive to God that
Their separation was to be eternal. Christ felt the anguish which the sinner
will feel when mercy shall no longer plead for the guilty race. It was the
sense of sin, bringing the Father's wrath upon Him as man's substitute, that
made the cup He drank so bitter, and broke the heart of the Son of God.

With amazement angels witnessed the Saviour's despairing agony. The hosts of
heaven veiled their faces from the fearful sight. Inanimate nature expressed
sympathy with its insulted and dying Author. The sun refused to look upon
the awful scene. Its full, bright rays were illuminating the earth at
midday, when suddenly it seemed to be blotted out. Complete darkness, like a
funeral pall, enveloped the cross. "There was darkness over all the land
unto the ninth hour." There was no eclipse or other natural cause for this
darkness, which was as deep as midnight without moon or stars. It was a
miraculous testimony given by God that the faith of after generations might
be confirmed.

In that thick darkness God's presence was hidden. He makes darkness His
pavilion, and conceals His glory from human eyes. God and

754

His holy angels were beside the cross. The Father was with His Son. Yet His
presence was not revealed. Had His glory flashed forth from the cloud, every
human beholder would have been destroyed. And in that dreadful hour Christ
was not to be comforted with the Father's presence. He trod the wine press
alone, and of the people there was none with Him.

In the thick darkness, God veiled the last human agony of His Son. All who
had seen Christ in His suffering had been convicted of His divinity. That
face, once beheld by humanity, was never forgotten. As the face of Cain
expressed his guilt as a murderer, so the face of Christ revealed innocence,
serenity, benevolence,--the image of God. But His accusers would not give
heed to the signet of heaven. Through long hours of agony Christ had been
gazed upon by the jeering multitude. Now He was mercifully hidden by the
mantle of God.

The silence of the grave seemed to have fallen upon Calvary. A nameless
terror held the throng that was gathered about the cross. The cursing and
reviling ceased in the midst of half-uttered sentences. Men, women, and
children fell prostrate upon the earth. Vivid lightnings occasionally
flashed forth from the cloud, and revealed the cross and the crucified
Redeemer. Priests, rulers, scribes, executioners, and the mob, all thought
that their time of retribution had come. After a while some whispered that
Jesus would now come down from the cross. Some attempted to grope their way
back to the city, beating their breasts and wailing in fear.

At the ninth hour the darkness lifted from the people, but still enveloped
the Saviour. It was a symbol of the agony and horror that weighed upon His
heart. No eye could pierce the gloom that surrounded the cross, and none
could penetrate the deeper gloom that enshrouded the suffering soul of
Christ. The angry lightnings seemed to be hurled at Him as He hung upon the
cross. Then "Jesus cried with a loud voice, saying, Eloi, Eloi, lama
sabachthani?" "My God, My God, why hast Thou forsaken Me?" As the outer
gloom settled about the Saviour, many voices exclaimed: The vengeance of
heaven is upon Him. The bolts of God's wrath are hurled at Him, because He
claimed to be the Son of God. Many who believed on Him heard His despairing
cry. Hope left them. If God had forsaken Jesus, in what could His followers
trust?

When the darkness lifted from the oppressed spirit of Christ, He revived to
a sense of physical suffering, and said, "I thirst." One of the

                                                                     755

Roman soldiers, touched with pity as he looked at the parched lips, took a
sponge on a stalk of hyssop, and dipping it in a vessel of vinegar, offered
it to Jesus. But the priests mocked at His agony. When darkness covered the
earth, they had been filled with fear; as their terror abated, the dread
returned that Jesus would yet escape them. His words, "Eloi, Eloi, lama
sabachthani?" they had misinterpreted. With bitter contempt and scorn they
said, "This man calleth for Elias." The last opportunity to relieve His
sufferings they refused. "Let be," they said, "let us see whether Elias will
come to save Him."

The spotless Son of God hung upon the cross, His flesh lacerated with
stripes; those hands so often reached out in blessing, nailed to the wooden
bars; those feet so tireless on ministries of love, spiked to the tree; that
royal head pierced by the crown of thorns; those quivering lips shaped to
the cry of woe. And all that He endured--the blood drops that flowed from
His head, His hands, His feet, the agony that racked His frame, and the
unutterable anguish that filled His soul at the hiding of His Father's
face--speaks to each child of humanity, declaring, It is for thee that the
Son of God consents to bear this burden of guilt; for thee He spoils the
domain of death, and opens the gates of Paradise. He who stilled the angry
waves and walked the foam-capped billows, who made devils tremble and
disease flee, who opened blind eyes and called forth the dead to
life,--offers Himself upon the cross as a sacrifice, and this from love to
thee.

756

He, the Sin Bearer, endures the wrath of divine justice, and for thy sake
becomes sin itself.

In silence the beholders watched for the end of the fearful scene. The sun
shone forth; but the cross was still enveloped in darkness. Priests and
rulers looked toward Jerusalem; and lo, the dense cloud had settled over the
city and the plains of Judea. The Sun of Righteousness, the Light of the
world, was withdrawing His beams from the once favored city of Jerusalem.
The fierce lightnings of God's wrath were directed against the fated city.

Suddenly the gloom lifted from the cross, and in clear, trumpetlike tones,
that seemed to resound throughout creation, Jesus cried, "It is finished."
"Father, into Thy hands I commend My spirit." A light encircled the cross,
and the face of the Saviour shone with a glory like the sun. He then bowed
His head upon His breast, and died.

Amid the awful darkness, apparently forsaken of God, Christ had drained the
last dregs in the cup of human woe. In those dreadful hours He had relied
upon the evidence of His Father's acceptance heretofore given Him. He was
acquainted with the character of His Father; He understood His justice, His
mercy, and His great love. By faith He rested in Him whom it had ever been
His joy to obey. And as in submission He committed Himself to God, the sense
of the loss of His Father's favor was withdrawn. By faith, Christ was
victor.

Never before had the earth witnessed such a scene. The multitude stood
paralyzed, and with bated breath gazed upon the Saviour. Again darkness
settled upon the earth, and a hoarse rumbling, like heavy thunder, was
heard. There was a violent earthquake. The people were shaken together in
heaps. The wildest confusion and consternation ensued. In the surrounding
mountains, rocks were rent asunder, and went crashing down into the plains.
Sepulchers were broken open, and the dead were cast out of their tombs.
Creation seemed to be shivering to atoms. Priests, rulers, soldiers,
executioners, and people, mute with terror, lay prostrate upon the ground.

When the loud cry, "It is finished," came from the lips of Christ, the
priests were officiating in the temple. It was the hour of the evening
sacrifice. The lamb representing Christ had been brought to be slain.
Clothed in his significant and beautiful dress, the priest stood with lifted
knife, as did Abraham when he was about to slay his son. With intense
interest the people were looking on. But the earth trembles and quakes;

                                                                     757

for the Lord Himself draws near. With a rending noise the inner veil of the
temple is torn from top to bottom by an unseen hand, throwing open to the
gaze of the multitude a place once filled with the presence of God. In this
place the Shekinah had dwelt. Here God had manifested His glory above the
mercy seat. No one but the high priest ever lifted the veil separating this
apartment from the rest of the temple. He entered in once a year to make an
atonement for the sins of the people. But lo, this veil is rent in twain.
The most holy place of the earthly sanctuary is no longer sacred.

All is terror and confusion. The priest is about to slay the victim; but the
knife drops from his nerveless hand, and the lamb escapes. Type has met
antitype in the death of God's Son. The great sacrifice has been made. The
way into the holiest is laid open. A new and living way is prepared for all.
No longer need sinful, sorrowing humanity await the coming of the high
priest. Henceforth the Saviour was to officiate as priest and advocate in
the heaven of heavens. It was as if a living voice had spoken to the
worshipers: There is now an end to all sacrifices and offerings for sin. The
Son of God is come according to His word, "Lo, I come (in the volume of the
Book it is written of Me,) to do Thy will, O God." "By His own blood" He
entereth "in once into the holy place, having obtained eternal redemption
for us." Heb. 10:7; 9:12.




(758)

                             Chapter 79

                             "It is Finished"


Christ did not yield up His life till He had accomplished the work which He
came to do, and with His parting breath He exclaimed, "It is finished." John
19:30. The battle had been won. His right hand and His holy arm had gotten
Him the victory. As a Conqueror He planted His banner on the eternal
heights. Was there not joy among the angels? All heaven triumphed in the
Saviour's victory. Satan was defeated, and knew that his kingdom was lost.

To the angels and the unfallen worlds the cry, "It is finished," had a deep
significance. It was for them as well as for us that the great work of
redemption had been accomplished. They with us share the fruits of Christ's
victory.

Not until the death of Christ was the character of Satan clearly revealed to
the angels or to the unfallen worlds. The archapostate had so clothed
himself with deception that even holy beings had not understood his
principles. They had not clearly seen the nature of his rebellion.

It was a being of wonderful power and glory that had set himself against
God. Of Lucifer the Lord says, "Thou sealest up the sum, full of wisdom, and
perfect in beauty." Ezek. 28:12. Lucifer had been the covering cherub. He
had stood in the light of God's presence. He had been the highest of all
created beings, and had been foremost in revealing God's purposes to the
universe. After he had sinned, his power to deceive

                                                                     759

was the more deceptive, and the unveiling of his character was the more
difficult, because of the exalted position he had held with the Father.

God could have destroyed Satan and his sympathizers as easily as one can
cast a pebble to the earth; but He did not do this. Rebellion was not to be
overcome by force. Compelling power is found only under Satan's government.
The Lord's principles are not of this order. His authority rests upon
goodness, mercy, and love; and the presentation of these principles is the
means to be used. God's government is moral, and truth and love are to be
the prevailing power.

It was God's purpose to place things on an eternal basis of security, and in
the councils of heaven it was decided that time must be given for Satan to
develop the principles which were the foundation of his system of
government. He had claimed that these were superior to God's principles.
Time was given for the working of Satan's principles, that they might be
seen by the heavenly universe.

Satan led men into sin, and the plan of redemption was put in operation. For
four thousand years, Christ was working for man's uplifting, and Satan for
his ruin and degradation. And the heavenly universe beheld it all.

When Jesus came into the world, Satan's power was turned against Him. From
the time when He appeared as a babe in Bethlehem, the usurper worked to
bring about His destruction. In every possible way he sought to prevent
Jesus from developing a perfect childhood, a faultless manhood, a holy
ministry, and an unblemished sacrifice. But he was defeated. He could not
lead Jesus into sin. He could not discourage Him, or drive Him from a work
He had come on earth to do. From the desert to Calvary, the storm of Satan's
wrath beat upon Him, but the more mercilessly it fell, the more firmly did
the Son of God cling to the hand of His Father, and press on in the
bloodstained path. All the efforts of Satan to oppress and overcome Him only
brought out in a purer light His spotless character.

All heaven and the unfallen worlds had been witnesses to the controversy.
With what intense interest did they follow the closing scenes of the
conflict. They beheld the Saviour enter the garden of Gethsemane, His soul
bowed down with the horror of a great darkness. They heard His bitter cry,
"Father, if it be possible, let this cup pass from Me." Matt. 26:39. As the
Father's presence was withdrawn, they saw Him sorrowful with a bitterness of
sorrow exceeding that of the last great struggle with death. The bloody
sweat was forced from His pores, and

760

fell in drops upon the ground. Thrice the prayer for deliverance was wrung
from His lips. Heaven could no longer endure the sight, and a messenger of
comfort was sent to the Son of God.

Heaven beheld the Victim betrayed into the hands of the murderous mob, and
with mockery and violence hurried from one tribunal to another. It heard the
sneers of His persecutors because of His lowly birth. It heard the denial
with cursing and swearing by one of His best-loved disciples. It saw the
frenzied work of Satan, and his power over the hearts of men. Oh, fearful
scene! the Saviour seized at midnight in Gethsemane, dragged to and fro from
palace to judgment hall, arraigned twice before the priests, twice before
the Sanhedrin, twice before Pilate, and once before Herod, mocked, scourged,
condemned, and led out to be crucified, bearing the heavy burden of the
cross, amid the wailing of the daughters of Jerusalem and the jeering of the
rabble.

Heaven viewed with grief and amazement Christ hanging upon the cross, blood
flowing from His wounded temples, and sweat tinged with blood standing upon
His brow. From His hands and feet the blood fell, drop by drop, upon the
rock drilled for the foot of the cross. The wounds made by the nails gaped
as the weight of His body dragged upon His hands. His labored breath grew
quick and deep, as His soul panted under the burden of the sins of the
world. All heaven was filled with wonder when the prayer of Christ was
offered in the midst of His terrible suffering,--"Father, forgive them; for
they know not what they do." Luke 23:34. Yet there stood men, formed in the
image of God, joining to crush out the life of His only-begotten Son. What a
sight for the heavenly universe!

The principalities and powers of darkness were assembled around the cross,
casting the hellish shadow of unbelief into the hearts of men. When the Lord
created these beings to stand before His throne, they were beautiful and
glorious. Their loveliness and holiness were in accordance with their
exalted station. They were enriched with the wisdom of God, and girded with
the panoply of heaven. They were Jehovah's ministers. But who could
recognize in the fallen angels the glorious seraphim that once ministered in
the heavenly courts?

Satanic agencies confederated with evil men in leading the people to believe
Christ the chief of sinners, and to make Him the object of detestation.
Those who mocked Christ as He hung upon the cross were imbued with the
spirit of the first great rebel. He filled them with vile

                                                                     761

and loathsome speeches. He inspired their taunts. But by all this he gained
nothing.

Could one sin have been found in Christ, had He in one particular yielded to
Satan to escape the terrible torture, the enemy of God and man would have
triumphed. Christ bowed His head and died, but He held fast His faith and
His submission to God. "And I heard a loud voice saying in heaven, Now is
come salvation, and strength, and the kingdom of our God, and the power of
His Christ: for the accuser of our brethren is cast down, which accused them
before our God day and night." Rev. 12:10.

Satan saw that his disguise was torn away. His administration was laid open
before the unfallen angels and before the heavenly universe. He had revealed
himself as a murderer. By shedding the blood of the Son of God, he had
uprooted himself from the sympathies of the heavenly beings. Henceforth his
work was restricted. Whatever attitude he might assume, he could no longer
await the angels as they came from the heavenly courts, and before them
accuse Christ's brethren of being clothed with the garments of blackness and
the defilement of sin. The last link of sympathy between Satan and the
heavenly world was broken.

Yet Satan was not then destroyed. The angels did not even then understand
all that was involved in the great controversy. The principles at stake were
to be more fully revealed. And for the sake of man, Satan's existence must
be continued. Man as well as angels must see the contrast between the Prince
of light and the prince of darkness. He must choose whom he will serve.

In the opening of the great controversy, Satan had declared that the law of
God could not be obeyed, that justice was inconsistent with mercy, and that,
should the law be broken, it would be impossible for the sinner to be
pardoned. Every sin must meet its punishment, urged Satan; and if God should
remit the punishment of sin, He would not be a God of truth and justice.
When men broke the law of God, and defied His will, Satan exulted. It was
proved, he declared, that the law could not be obeyed; man could not be
forgiven. Because he, after his rebellion, had been banished from heaven,
Satan claimed that the human race must be forever shut out from God's favor.
God could not be just, he urged, and yet show mercy to the sinner.

But even as a sinner, man was in a different position from that of Satan.
Lucifer in heaven had sinned in the light of God's glory. To him as to no
other created being was given a revelation of God's love.

762

Understanding the character of God, knowing His goodness, Satan chose to
follow his own selfish, independent will. This choice was final. There was
no more that God could do to save him. But man was deceived; his mind was
darkened by Satan's sophistry. The height and depth of the love of God he
did not know. For him there was hope in a knowledge of God's love. By
beholding His character he might be drawn back to God.

Through Jesus, God's mercy was manifested to men; but mercy does not set
aside justice. The law reveals the attributes of God's character, and not a
jot or tittle of it could be changed to meet man in his fallen condition.
God did not change His law, but He sacrificed Himself, in Christ, for man's
redemption. "God was in Christ, reconciling the world unto Himself." 2 Cor.
5:19.

The law requires righteousness,--a righteous life, a perfect character; and
this man has not to give. He cannot meet the claims of God's holy law. But
Christ, coming to the earth as man, lived a holy life, and developed a
perfect character. These He offers as a free gift to all who will receive
them. His life stands for the life of men. Thus they have remission of sins
that are past, through the forbearance of God. More than this, Christ imbues
men with the attributes of God. He builds up the human character after the
similitude of the divine character, a goodly fabric of spiritual strength
and beauty. Thus the very righteousness of the law is fulfilled in the
believer in Christ. God can "be just, and the justifier of him which
believeth in Jesus." Rom. 3:26.

God's love has been expressed in His justice no less than in His mercy.
Justice is the foundation of His throne, and the fruit of His love. It had
been Satan's purpose to divorce mercy from truth and justice. He sought to
prove that the righteousness of God's law is an enemy to peace. But Christ
shows that in God's plan they are indissolubly joined together; the one
cannot exist without the other. "Mercy and truth are met together;
righteousness and peace have kissed each other." Ps. 85:10.

By His life and His death, Christ proved that God's justice did not destroy
His mercy, but that sin could be forgiven, and that the law is righteous,
and can be perfectly obeyed. Satan's charges were refuted. God had given man
unmistakable evidence of His love.

Another deception was now to be brought forward. Satan declared that mercy
destroyed justice, that the death of Christ abrogated the Father's law. Had
it been possible for the law to be changed or abrogated, then Christ need
not have died. But to abrogate the law would

                                                                     763

be to immortalize transgression, and place the world under Satan's control.
It was because the law was changeless, because man could be saved only
through obedience to its precepts, that Jesus was lifted up on the cross.
Yet the very means by which Christ established the law Satan represented as
destroying it. Here will come the last conflict of the great controversy
between Christ and Satan.

That the law which was spoken by God's own voice is faulty, that some
specification has been set aside, is the claim which Satan now puts forward.
It is the last great deception that he will bring upon the world. He needs
not to assail the whole law; if he can lead men to disregard one precept,
his purpose is gained. For "whosoever shall keep the whole law, and yet
offend in one point, he is guilty of all." James 2:10. By consenting to
break one precept, men are brought under Satan's power. By substituting
human law for God's law, Satan will seek to control the world. This work is
foretold in prophecy. Of the great apostate power which is the
representative of Satan, it is declared, "He shall speak great words against
the Most High, and shall wear out the saints of the Most High, and think to
change times and laws: and they shall be given into his hand." Dan. 7:25.

Men will surely set up their laws to counterwork the laws of God. They will
seek to compel the consciences of others, and in their zeal to enforce these
laws they will oppress their fellow men.

The warfare against God's law, which was begun in heaven, will be continued
until the end of time. Every man will be tested. Obedience or disobedience
is the question to be decided by the whole world. All will be called to
choose between the law of God and the laws of men. Here the dividing line
will be drawn. There will be but two classes. Every character will be fully
developed; and all will show whether they have chosen the side of loyalty or
that of rebellion.

Then the end will come. God will vindicate His law and deliver His people.
Satan and all who have joined him in rebellion will be cut off. Sin and
sinners will perish, root and branch, (Mal. 4:1),--Satan the root, and his
followers the branches. The word will be fulfilled to the prince of evil,
"Because thou hast set thine heart as the heart of God; . . . I will destroy
thee, O covering cherub, from the midst of the stones of fire. . . . Thou
shalt be a terror, and never shalt thou be any more." Then "the wicked shall
not be: yea, thou shalt diligently consider his place, and it shall not be;"
"they shall be as though they had not been." Ezek. 28:6-19; Ps. 37:10;
Obadiah 16.

764


This is not an act of arbitrary power on the part of God. The rejecters of
His mercy reap that which they have sown. God is the fountain of life; and
when one chooses the service of sin, he separates from God, and thus cuts
himself off from life. He is "alienated from the life of God." Christ says,
"All they that hate Me love death." Eph. 4:18; Prov. 8:36. God gives them
existence for a time that they may develop their character and reveal their
principles. This accomplished, they receive the results of their own choice.
By a life of rebellion, Satan and all who unite with him place themselves so
out of harmony with God that His very presence is to them a consuming fire.
The glory of Him who is love will destroy them.

At the beginning of the great controversy, the angels did not understand
this. Had Satan and his host then been left to reap the full result of their
sin, they would have perished; but it would not have been apparent to
heavenly beings that this was the inevitable result of sin. A doubt of God's
goodness would have remained in their minds as evil seed, to produce its
deadly fruit of sin and woe.

But not so when the great controversy shall be ended. Then, the plan of
redemption having been completed, the character of God is revealed to all
created intelligences. The precepts of His law are seen to be perfect and
immutable. Then sin has made manifest its nature, Satan his character. Then
the extermination of sin will vindicate God's love and establish His honor
before a universe of beings who delight to do His will, and in whose heart
is His law.

Well, then, might the angels rejoice as they looked upon the Saviour's
cross; for though they did not then understand all, they knew that the
destruction of sin and Satan was forever made certain, that the redemption
of man was assured, and that the universe was made eternally secure. Christ
Himself fully comprehended the results of the sacrifice made upon Calvary.
To all these He looked forward when upon the cross He cried out, "It is
finished."




                                                                     (769)

                             Chapter 80

                             In Joseph's Tomb


At last Jesus was at rest. The long day of shame and torture was ended. As
the last rays of the setting sun ushered in the Sabbath, the Son of God lay
in quietude in Joseph's tomb. His work completed, His hands folded in peace,
He rested through the sacred hours of the Sabbath day.

In the beginning the Father and the Son had rested upon the Sabbath after
Their work of creation. When "the heavens and the earth were finished, and
all the host of them" (Gen. 2:1), the Creator and all heavenly beings
rejoiced in contemplation of the glorious scene. "The morning stars sang
together, and all the sons of God shouted for joy." Job 38:7. Now Jesus
rested from the work of redemption; and though there was grief among those
who loved Him on earth, yet there was joy in heaven. Glorious to the eyes of
heavenly beings was the promise of the future. A restored creation, a
redeemed race, that having conquered sin could never fall,--this, the result
to flow from Christ's completed work, God and angels saw. With this scene
the day upon which Jesus rested is forever linked. For "His work is
perfect;" and "whatsoever God doeth, it shall be forever." Deut. 32:4; Eccl.
3:14. When there shall be a "restitution of all things, which God hath
spoken by the mouth of all His holy prophets since the world began" (Acts
3:21), the creation Sabbath, the

770

day on which Jesus lay at rest in Joseph's tomb, will still be a day of rest
and rejoicing. Heaven and earth will unite in praise, as "from one Sabbath
to another" (Isa. 66:23) the nations of the saved shall bow in joyful
worship to God and the Lamb.

In the closing events of the crucifixion day, fresh evidence was given of
the fulfillment of prophecy, and new witness borne to Christ's divinity.
When the darkness had lifted from the cross, and the Saviour's dying cry had
been uttered, immediately another voice was heard, saying, "Truly this was
the Son of God." Matt. 27:54.

These words were said in no whispered tones. All eyes were turned to see
whence they came. Who had spoken? It was the centurion, the Roman soldier.
The divine patience of the Saviour, and His sudden death, with the cry of
victory upon His lips, had impressed this heathen. In the bruised, broken
body hanging upon the cross, the centurion recognized the form of the Son of
God. He could not refrain from confessing his faith. Thus again evidence was
given that our Redeemer was to see of the travail of His soul. Upon the very
day of His death, three men, differing widely from one another, had declared
their faith,--he who commanded the Roman guard, he who bore the cross of the
Saviour, and he who died upon the cross at His side.

As evening drew on, an unearthly stillness hung over Calvary. The crowd
dispersed, and many returned to Jerusalem greatly changed in spirit from
what they had been in the morning. Many had flocked to the crucifixion from
curiosity, and not from hatred toward Christ. Still they believed the
accusations of the priests, and looked upon Christ as a malefactor. Under an
unnatural excitement they had united with the mob in railing against Him.
But when the earth was wrapped in blackness, and they stood accused by their
own consciences, they felt guilty of a great wrong. No jest or mocking
laughter was heard in the midst of that fearful gloom; and when it was
lifted, they made their way to their homes in solemn silence. They were
convinced that the charges of the priests were false, that Jesus was no
pretender; and a few weeks later, when Peter preached upon the day of
Pentecost, they were among the thousands who became converts to Christ.

But the Jewish leaders were unchanged by the events they had witnessed.
Their hatred of Jesus had not abated. The darkness that had mantled the
earth at the crucifixion was not more dense than that which still enveloped
the minds of the priests and rulers. At His birth the star

                                                                     771

had known Christ, and had guided the wise men to the manger where He lay.
The heavenly hosts had known Him, and had sung His praise over the plains of
Bethlehem. The sea had known His voice, and had obeyed His command. Disease
and death had recognized His authority, and had yielded to Him their prey.
The sun had known Him, and at the sight of His dying anguish, had hidden its
face of light. The rocks had known Him, and had shivered into fragments at
His cry. Inanimate nature had known Christ, and had borne witness to His
divinity. But the priests and rulers of Israel knew not the Son of God.

Yet the priests and rulers were not at rest. They had carried out their
purpose in putting Christ to death; but they did not feel the sense of
victory they had expected. Even in the hour of their apparent triumph, they
were harassed with doubts as to what would next take place. They had heard
the cry, "It is finished." "Father, into Thy hands I commend My spirit."
John 19:30; Luke 23:46. They had seen the rocks rent, and had felt the
mighty earthquake, and they were restless and uneasy.

They had been jealous of Christ's influence with the people when living;
they were jealous of Him even in death. They dreaded the dead Christ more,
far more, than they had ever feared the living Christ. They dreaded to have
the attention of the people directed any further to the events attending His
crucifixion. They feared the results of that day's work. Not on any account
would they have had His body remain on the cross during the Sabbath. The
Sabbath was now drawing on, and it would be a violation of its sanctity for
the bodies to hang upon the cross. So, using this as a pretext, the leading
Jews requested Pilate that the death of the victims might be hastened, and
their bodies be removed before the setting of the sun.

Pilate was as unwilling as they for the body of Jesus to remain upon the
cross. His consent having been obtained, the legs of the two thieves were
broken to hasten their death; but Jesus was found to be already dead. The
rude soldiers had been softened by what they had heard and seen of Christ,
and they were restrained from breaking His limbs. Thus in the offering of
the Lamb of God was fulfilled the law of the Passover, "They shall leave
none of it unto the morning, nor break any bone of it: according to all the
ordinances of the Passover they shall keep it." Num. 9:12

The priests and rulers were amazed to find that Christ was dead. Death by
the cross was a lingering process; it was difficult to determine

772

when life had ceased. It was an unheard-of thing for one to die within six
hours of crucifixion. The priests wished to make sure of the death of Jesus,
and at their suggestion a soldier thrust a spear into the Saviour's side.
From the wound thus made, there flowed two copious and distinct streams, one
of blood, the other of water. This was noted by all the beholders, and John
states the occurrence very definitely. He says, "One of the soldiers with a
spear pierced His side, and forthwith came there out blood and water. And he
that saw it bare record, and his record is true: and he knoweth that he
saith true, that ye might believe. For these things were done, that the
scripture should be fulfilled, A bone of Him shall not be broken. And again
another scripture saith, They shall look on Him whom they pierced." John
19:34-37.

After the resurrection the priests and rulers circulated the report that
Christ did not die upon the cross, that He merely fainted, and was afterward
revived. Another report affirmed that it was not a real body of flesh and
bone, but the likeness of a body, that was laid in the tomb. The action of
the Roman soldiers disproves these falsehoods. They broke not His legs,
because He was already dead. To satisfy the priests, they pierced His side.
Had not life been already extinct, this wound would have caused instant
death.

But it was not the spear thrust, it was not the pain of the cross, that
caused the death of Jesus. That cry, uttered "with a loud voice" (Matt.
27:50; Luke 23:46), at the moment of death, the stream of blood and water
that flowed from His side, declared that He died of a broken heart. His
heart was broken by mental anguish. He was slain by the sin of the world.

With the death of Christ the hopes of His disciples perished. They looked
upon His closed eyelids and drooping head, His hair matted with blood, His
pierced hands and feet, and their anguish was indescribable. Until the last
they had not believed that He would die; they could hardly believe that He
was really dead. Overwhelmed with sorrow, they did not recall His words
foretelling this very scene. Nothing that He had said now gave them comfort.
They saw only the cross and its bleeding Victim. The future seemed dark with
despair. Their faith in Jesus had perished; but never had they loved their
Lord as now. Never before had they so felt His worth, and their need of His
presence.

Even in death, Christ's body was very precious to His disciples. They longed
to give Him an honored burial, but knew not how to accomplish

                                                                     773

this. Treason against the Roman government was the crime for which Jesus was
condemned, and persons put to death for this offense were consigned to a
burial ground especially provided for such criminals. The disciple John with
the women from Galilee had remained at the cross. They could not leave the
body of their Lord to be handled by the unfeeling soldiers, and buried in a
dishonored grave. Yet they could not prevent it. They could obtain no favors
from the Jewish authorities, and they had no influence with Pilate.

In this emergency, Joseph of Arimathaea and Nicodemus came to the help of
the disciples. Both these men were members of the Sanhedrin, and were
acquainted with Pilate. Both were men of wealth and influence. They were
determined that the body of Jesus should have an honorable burial.

Joseph went boldly to Pilate, and begged from him the body of Jesus. For the
first time, Pilate learned that Jesus was really dead. Conflicting reports
had reached him in regard to the events attending the crucifixion, but the
knowledge of Christ's death had been purposely kept from him. Pilate had
been warned by the priests and rulers against deception by Christ's
disciples in regard to His body. Upon hearing Joseph's request, he therefore
sent for the centurion who had charge at the cross, and learned for a
certainty of the death of Jesus. He also drew from him an account of the
scenes of Calvary, confirming the testimony of Joseph.

The request of Joseph was granted. While John was troubled about the burial
of his Master, Joseph returned with Pilate's order for the body of Christ;
and Nicodemus came bringing a costly mixture of myrrh and aloes, of about a
hundred pounds' weight, for His embalming. The most honored in all Jerusalem
could not have been shown more respect in death. The disciples were
astonished to see these wealthy rulers as much interested as they themselves
in the burial of their Lord.

Neither Joseph nor Nicodemus had openly accepted the Saviour while He was
living. They knew that such a step would exclude them from the Sanhedrin,
and they hoped to protect Him by their influence in its councils. For a time
they had seemed to succeed; but the wily priests, seeing their favor to
Christ, had thwarted their plans. In their absence Jesus had been condemned
and delivered to be crucified. Now that He was dead, they no longer
concealed their attachment to Him. While the disciples feared to show
themselves openly as His followers,

774

Joseph and Nicodemus came boldly to their aid. The help of these rich and
honored men was greatly needed at this time. They could do for their dead
Master what it was impossible for the poor disciples to do; and their wealth
and influence protected them, in a great measure, from the malice of the
priests and rulers.

Gently and reverently they removed with their own hands the body of Jesus
from the cross. Their tears of sympathy fell fast as they looked upon His
bruised and lacerated form. Joseph owned a new tomb, hewn in a rock. This he
was reserving for himself; but it was near Calvary, and he now prepared it
for Jesus. The body, together with the spices brought by Nicodemus, was
carefully wrapped in a linen sheet, and the Redeemer was borne to the tomb.
There the three disciples straightened the mangled limbs, and folded the
bruised hands upon the pulseless breast. The Galilean women came to see that
all had been done that could be done for the lifeless form of their beloved
Teacher. Then they saw the heavy stone rolled against the entrance of the
tomb, and the Saviour was left at rest. The women were last at the cross,
and last at the tomb of Christ. While the evening shades were gathering,
Mary Magdalene and the other Marys lingered about the resting place of their
Lord, shedding tears of sorrow over the fate of Him whom they loved. "And
they returned, . . . and rested the Sabbath day according to the
commandment." Luke 23:56.

That was a never-to-be-forgotten Sabbath to the sorrowing disciples, and
also to the priests, rulers, scribes, and people. At the setting of the sun
on the evening of the preparation day the trumpets sounded, signifying that
the Sabbath had begun. The Passover was observed as it had been for
centuries, while He to whom it pointed had been slain by wicked hands, and
lay in Joseph's tomb. On the Sabbath the courts of the temple were filled
with worshipers. The high priest from Golgotha was there, splendidly robed
in his sacerdotal garments. White-turbaned priests, full of activity,
performed their duties. But some present were not at rest as the blood of
bulls and goats was offered for sin. They were not conscious that type had
met antitype, that an infinite sacrifice had been made for the sins of the
world. They knew not that there was no further value in the performance of
the ritual service. But never before had that service been witnessed with
such conflicting feelings. The trumpets and musical instruments and the
voices of the singers were as loud and clear as usual. But a sense of
strangeness pervaded everything.

                                                                     775

One after another inquired about a strange event that had taken place.
Hitherto the most holy place had been sacredly guarded from intrusion. But
now it was open to all eyes. The heavy veil of tapestry, made of pure linen,
and beautifully wrought with gold, scarlet, and purple, was rent from top to
bottom. The place where Jehovah had met with the high priest, to communicate
His glory, the place that had been God's sacred audience chamber, lay open
to every eye,--a place no longer recognized by the Lord. With gloomy
presentiments the priests ministered before the altar. The uncovering of the
sacred mystery of the most holy place filled them with dread of coming
calamity.

Many minds were busy with thoughts started by the scenes of Calvary. From
the crucifixion to the resurrection many sleepless eyes were constantly
searching the prophecies, some to learn the full meaning of the feast they
were then celebrating, some to find evidence that Jesus was not what He
claimed to be; and others with sorrowful hearts were searching for proofs
that He was the true Messiah. Though searching with different objects in
view, all were convicted of the same truth,--that prophecy had been
fulfilled in the events of the past few days, and that the Crucified One was
the world's Redeemer. Many who at that time united in the service never
again took part in the paschal rites. Many even of the priests were
convicted of the true character of Jesus. Their searching of the prophecies
had not been in vain, and after His resurrection they acknowledged Him as
the Son of God.

Nicodemus, when he saw Jesus lifted up on the cross, remembered His words
spoken by night in the Mount of Olives: "As Moses lifted up the serpent in
the wilderness, even so must the Son of man be lifted up: that whosoever
believeth in Him should not perish, but have eternal life." John 3:14, 15.
On that Sabbath, when Christ lay in the grave, Nicodemus had opportunity for
reflection. A clearer light now illuminated his mind, and the words which
Jesus had spoken to him were no longer mysterious. He felt that he had lost
much by not connecting himself with the Saviour during His life. Now he
recalled the events of Calvary. The prayer of Christ for His murderers and
His answer to the petition of the dying thief spoke to the heart of the
learned councilor. Again he looked upon the Saviour in His agony; again he
heard that last cry, "It is finished," spoken like the words of a conqueror.
Again he beheld the reeling earth, the darkened heavens, the rent veil, the
shivered rocks, and his faith was forever established. The very event that
destroyed

776

the hopes of the disciples convinced Joseph and Nicodemus of the divinity of
Jesus. Their fears were overcome by the courage of a firm and unwavering
faith.

Never had Christ attracted the attention of the multitude as now that He was
laid in the tomb. According to their practice, the people brought their sick
and suffering ones to the temple courts, inquiring, Who can tell us of Jesus
of Nazareth? Many had come from far to find Him who had healed the sick and
raised the dead. On every side was heard the cry, We want Christ the Healer!
Upon this occasion those who were thought to show indications of the leprosy
were examined by the priests. Many were forced to hear their husbands,
wives, or children pronounced leprous, and doomed to go forth from the
shelter of their homes and the care of their friends, to warn off the
stranger with the mournful cry, "Unclean, unclean!" The friendly hands of
Jesus of Nazareth, that never refused to touch with healing the loathsome
leper, were folded on His breast. The lips that had answered his petition
with the comforting words, "I will; be thou clean" (Matt. 8:3), were now
silent. Many appealed to the chief priests and rulers for sympathy and
relief, but in vain. Apparently they were determined to have the living
Christ among them again. With persistent earnestness they asked for Him.
They would not be turned away. But they were driven from the temple courts,
and soldiers were stationed at the gates to keep back the multitude that
came with their sick and dying, demanding entrance.

The sufferers who had come to be healed by the Saviour sank under their
disappointment. The streets were filled with mourning. The sick were dying
for want of the healing touch of Jesus. Physicians were consulted in vain;
there was no skill like that of Him who lay in Joseph's tomb.

The mourning cries of the suffering ones brought home to thousands of minds
the conviction that a great light had gone out of the world. Without Christ,
the earth was blackness and darkness. Many whose voices had swelled the cry
of "Crucify Him, crucify Him," now realized the calamity that had fallen
upon them, and would as eagerly have cried, Give us Jesus! had He still been
alive.

When the people learned that Jesus had been put to death by the priests,
inquiries were made regarding His death. The particulars of His trial were
kept as private as possible; but during the time when He was in the grave,
His name was on thousands of lips, and reports of

                                                                     777

His mock trial, and of the inhumanity of the priests and rulers, were
circulated everywhere. By men of intellect these priests and rulers were
called upon to explain the prophecies of the Old Testament concerning the
Messiah, and while trying to frame some falsehood in reply, they became like
men insane. The prophecies that pointed to Christ's sufferings and death
they could not explain, and many inquirers were convinced that the
Scriptures had been fulfilled.

The revenge which the priests had thought would be so sweet was already
bitterness to them. They knew that they were meeting the severe censure of
the people; they knew that the very ones whom they had influenced against
Jesus were now horrified by their own shameful work. These priests had tried
to believe Jesus a deceiver; but it was in vain. Some of them had stood by
the grave of Lazarus, and had seen the dead brought back to life. They
trembled for fear that Christ would Himself rise from the dead, and again
appear before them. They had heard Him declare that He had power to lay down
His life and to take it again. They remembered that He had said, "Destroy
this temple, and in three days I will raise it up." John 2:19. Judas had
told them the words spoken by Jesus to the disciples while on the last
journey to Jerusalem: "Behold, we go up to Jerusalem; and the Son of man
shall be betrayed unto the chief priests and unto the scribes, and they
shall condemn Him to death, and shall deliver Him to the Gentiles to mock,
and to scourge, and to crucify Him: and the third day He shall rise again."
Matt. 20:18, 19. When they heard these words, they had mocked and ridiculed.
But now they remembered that Christ's predictions had so far been fulfilled.
He had said that He would rise again the third day, and who could say that
this also would not come to pass? They longed to shut out these thoughts,
but they could not. Like their father, the devil, they believed and
trembled.

Now that the frenzy of excitement was past, the image of Christ would
intrude upon their minds. They beheld Him as He stood serene and
uncomplaining before His enemies, suffering without a murmur their taunts
and abuse. All the events of His trial and crucifixion came back to them
with an overpowering conviction that He was the Son of God. They felt that
He might at any time stand before them, the accused to become the accuser,
the condemned to condemn, the slain to demand justice in the death of His
murderers.

They could rest little upon the Sabbath. Though they would not step

778

over a Gentile's threshold for fear of defilement, yet they held a council
concerning the body of Christ. Death and the grave must hold Him whom they
had crucified. "The chief priests and Pharisees came together unto Pilate,
saying, Sir, we remember that that deceiver said, while He was yet alive,
After three days I will rise again. Command therefore that the sepulcher be
made sure until the third day, lest His disciples come by night, and steal
Him away, and say unto the people, He is risen from the dead: so the last
error shall be worse than the first. Pilate said unto them, Ye have a watch:
go your way, make it as sure as ye can." Matt. 27:62-65.

The priests gave directions for securing the sepulcher. A great stone had
been placed before the opening. Across this stone they placed cords,
securing the ends to the solid rock, and sealing them with the Roman seal.
The stone could not be moved without breaking the seal. A guard of one
hundred soldiers was then stationed around the sepulcher to prevent it from
being tampered with. The priests did all they could to keep Christ's body
where it had been laid. He was sealed as securely in His tomb as if He were
to remain there through all time.

So weak men counseled and planned. Little did these murderers realize the
uselessness of their efforts. But by their action God was glorified. The
very efforts made to prevent Christ's resurrection are the most convincing
arguments in its proof. The greater the number of soldiers placed around the
tomb, the stronger would be the testimony that He had risen. Hundreds of
years before the death of Christ, the Holy Spirit had declared through the
psalmist, "Why do the heathen rage, and the people imagine a vain thing? The
kings of the earth set themselves, and the rulers take counsel together,
against the Lord, and against His anointed. . . . He that sitteth in the
heavens shall laugh: the Lord shall have them in derision." Ps. 2:1-4. Roman
guards and Roman arms were powerless to confine the Lord of life within the
tomb. The hour of His release was near.




                                                                     (779)

                             Chapter 81

                             "The Lord Is Risen"


The night of the first day of the week had worn slowly away. The darkest
hour, just before daybreak, had come. Christ was still a prisoner in His
narrow tomb. The great stone was in its place; the Roman seal was unbroken;
the Roman guards were keeping their watch. And there were unseen watchers.
Hosts of evil angels were gathered about the place. Had it been possible,
the prince of darkness with his apostate army would have kept forever sealed
the tomb that held the Son of God. But a heavenly host surrounded the
sepulcher. Angels that excel in strength were guarding the tomb, and waiting
to welcome the Prince of life.

"And, behold, there was a great earthquake: for the angel of the Lord
descended from heaven." Clothed with the panoply of God, this angel left the
heavenly courts. The bright beams of God's glory went before him, and
illuminated his pathway. "His countenance was like lightning, and his
raiment white as snow: and for fear of him the keepers did shake, and became
as dead men."

Now, priests and rulers, where is the power of your guard? Brave soldiers
that have never been afraid of human power are now as captives taken without
sword or spear. The face they look upon is not the face

780

of mortal warrior; it is the face of the mightiest of the Lord's host. This
messenger is he who fills the position from which Satan fell. It is he who
on the hills of Bethlehem proclaimed Christ's birth. The earth trembles at
his approach, the hosts of darkness flee, and as he rolls away the stone,
heaven seems to come down to the earth. The soldiers see him removing the
stone as he would a pebble, and hear him cry, Son of God, come forth; Thy
Father calls Thee. They see Jesus come forth from the grave, and hear Him
proclaim over the rent sepulcher, "I am the resurrection, and the life." As
He comes forth in majesty and glory, the angel host bow low in adoration
before the Redeemer, and welcome Him with songs of praise.

An earthquake marked the hour when Christ laid down His life, and another
earthquake witnessed the moment when He took it up in triumph. He who had
vanquished death and the grave came forth from the tomb with the tread of a
conqueror, amid the reeling of the earth, the flashing of lightning, and the
roaring of thunder. When He shall come to the earth again, He will shake
"not the earth only, but also heaven." "The earth shall reel to and fro like
a drunkard, and shall be removed like a cottage." "The heavens shall be
rolled together as a scroll;" "the elements shall melt with fervent heat,
the earth also and the works that are therein shall be burned up." But "the
Lord will be the hope of His people, and the strength of the children of
Israel." Heb. 12:26; Isa. 24:20; 34:4; 2 Peter 3:10; Joel 3:16.

At the death of Jesus the soldiers had beheld the earth wrapped in darkness
at midday; but at the resurrection they saw the brightness of the angels
illuminate the night, and heard the inhabitants of heaven singing with great
joy and triumph: Thou hast vanquished Satan and the powers of darkness; Thou
hast swallowed up death in victory!

Christ came forth from the tomb glorified, and the Roman guard beheld Him.
Their eyes were riveted upon the face of Him whom they had so recently
mocked and derided. In this glorified Being they beheld the prisoner whom
they had seen in the judgment hall, the one for whom they had plaited a
crown of thorns. This was the One who had stood unresisting before Pilate
and Herod, His form lacerated by the cruel scourge. This was He who had been
nailed to the cross, at whom the priests and rulers, full of
self-satisfaction, had wagged their heads, saying, "He saved others; Himself
He cannot save." Matt. 27:42. This was He who had been laid in Joseph's new
tomb. The decree of heaven had

                                                                     781

loosed the captive. Mountains piled upon mountains over His sepulcher could
not have prevented Him from coming forth.

At sight of the angels and the glorified Saviour the Roman guard had fainted
and become as dead men. When the heavenly train was hidden from their view,
they arose to their feet, and as quickly as their trembling limbs could
carry them, made their way to the gate of the garden. Staggering like
drunken men, they hurried on to the city, telling those whom they met the
wonderful news. They were making their way to Pilate, but their report had
been carried to the Jewish authorities, and the chief priests and rulers
sent for them to be brought first into their presence. A strange appearance
those soldiers presented. Trembling with fear, their faces colorless, they
bore testimony to the resurrection of Christ. The soldiers told all, just as
they had seen it; they had not had time to think or speak anything but the
truth. With painful utterance they said, It was the Son of God who was
crucified; we have heard an angel proclaiming Him as the Majesty of heaven,
the King of glory.

The faces of the priests were as those of the dead. Caiaphas tried to speak.
His lips moved, but they uttered no sound. The soldiers were about to leave
the council room, when a voice stayed them. Caiaphas had at last found
speech. Wait, wait, he said. Tell no one the things you have seen.

A lying report was then given to the soldiers. "Say ye," said the priests,
"His disciples came by night, and stole Him away while we

782

slept." Here the priests overreached themselves. How could the soldiers say
that the disciples had stolen the body while they slept? If they were
asleep, how could they know? And if the disciples had been proved guilty of
stealing Christ's body, would not the priests have been first to condemn
them? Or if the sentinels had slept at the tomb, would not the priests have
been foremost in accusing them to Pilate?

The soldiers were horrified at the thought of bringing upon themselves the
charge of sleeping at their post. This was an offense punishable with death.
Should they bear false witness, deceiving the people, and placing their own
lives in peril? Had they not kept their weary watch with sleepless
vigilance? How could they stand the trial, even for the sake of money, if
they perjured themselves?

In order to silence the testimony they feared, the priests promised to
secure the safety of the guard, saying that Pilate would not desire to have
such a report circulated any more than they did. The Roman soldiers sold
their integrity to the Jews for money. They came in before the priests
burdened with a most startling message of truth; they went out with a burden
of money, and on their tongues a lying report which had been framed for them
by the priests.

Meanwhile the report of Christ's resurrection had been carried to Pilate.
Though Pilate was responsible for having given Christ up to die, he had been
comparatively unconcerned. While he had condemned the Saviour unwillingly,
and with a feeling of pity, he had felt no real compunction until now. In
terror he now shut himself within his house, determined to see no one. But
the priests made their way into his presence, told the story which they had
invented, and urged him to overlook the sentinels' neglect of duty. Before
consenting to this, he himself privately questioned the guard. They, fearing
for their own safety, dared not conceal anything, and Pilate drew from them
an account of all that had taken place. He did not prosecute the matter
further, but from that time there was no peace for him.

When Jesus was laid in the grave, Satan triumphed. He dared to hope that the
Saviour would not take up His life again. He claimed the Lord's body, and
set his guard about the tomb, seeking to hold Christ a prisoner. He was
bitterly angry when his angels fled at the approach of the heavenly
messenger. When he saw Christ come forth in triumph, he knew that his
kingdom would have an end, and that he must finally die.

                                                                     785


The priests, in putting Christ to death, had made themselves the tools of
Satan. Now they were entirely in his power. They were entangled in a snare
from which they saw no escape but in continuing their warfare against
Christ. When they heard the report of His resurrection, they feared the
wrath of the people. They felt that their own lives were in danger. The only
hope for them was to prove Christ an impostor by denying that He had risen.
They bribed the soldiers, and secured Pilate's silence. They spread their
lying reports far and near. But there were witnesses whom they could not
silence. Many had heard of the soldiers' testimony to Christ's resurrection.
And certain of the dead who came forth with Christ appeared to many, and
declared that He had risen. Reports were brought to the priests of persons
who had seen these risen ones, and heard their testimony. The priests and
rulers were in continual dread, lest in walking the streets, or within the
privacy of their own homes, they should come face to face with Christ. They
felt that there was no safety for them. Bolts and bars were but poor
protection against the Son of God. By day and by night that awful scene in
the judgment hall, when they had cried, "His blood be on us, and on our
children," was before them. Matt. 27:25. Nevermore would the memory of that
scene fade from their minds. Nevermore would peaceful sleep come to their
pillows.

When the voice of the mighty angel was heard at Christ's tomb, saying, Thy
Father calls Thee, the Saviour came forth from the grave by the life that
was in Himself. Now was proved the truth of His words, "I lay down My life,
that I might take it again. . . . I have power to lay it down, and I have
power to take it again." Now was fulfilled the prophecy He had spoken to the
priests and rulers, "Destroy this temple, and in three days I will raise it
up." John 10:17, 18; 2:19.

Over the rent sepulcher of Joseph, Christ had proclaimed in triumph, "I am
the resurrection, and the life." These words could be spoken only by the
Deity. All created beings live by the will and power of God. They are
dependent recipients of the life of God. From the highest seraph to the
humblest animate being, all are replenished from the Source of life. Only He
who is one with God could say, I have power to lay down My life, and I have
power to take it again. In His divinity, Christ possessed the power to break
the bonds of death.

Christ arose from the dead as the first fruits of those that slept. He was
the antitype of the wave sheaf, and His resurrection took place on

786

the very day when the wave sheaf was to be presented before the Lord. For
more than a thousand years this symbolic ceremony had been performed. From
the harvest fields the first heads of ripened grain were gathered, and when
the people went up to Jerusalem to the Passover, the sheaf of first fruits
was waved as a thank offering before the Lord. Not until this was presented
could the sickle be put to the grain, and it be gathered into sheaves. The
sheaf dedicated to God represented the harvest. So Christ the first fruits
represented the great spiritual harvest to be gathered for the kingdom of
God. His resurrection is the type and pledge of the resurrection of all the
righteous dead. "For if we believe that Jesus died and rose again, even so
them also which sleep in Jesus will God bring with Him." 1 Thess. 4:14.

As Christ arose, He brought from the grave a multitude of captives. The
earthquake at His death had rent open their graves, and when He arose, they
came forth with Him. They were those who had been co-laborers with God, and
who at the cost of their lives had borne testimony to the truth. Now they
were to be witnesses for Him who had raised them from the dead.

During His ministry, Jesus had raised the dead to life. He had raised the
son of the widow of Nain, and the ruler's daughter and Lazarus. But these
were not clothed with immortality. After they were raised, they were still
subject to death. But those who came forth from the grave at Christ's
resurrection were raised to everlasting life. They ascended with Him as
trophies of His victory over death and the grave. These, said Christ, are no
longer the captives of Satan; I have redeemed them. I have brought them from
the grave as the first fruits of My power, to be with Me where I am,
nevermore to see death or experience sorrow.

These went into the city, and appeared unto many, declaring, Christ has
risen from the dead, and we be risen with Him. Thus was immortalized the
sacred truth of the resurrection. The risen saints bore witness to the truth
of the words, "Thy dead men shall live, together with My dead body shall
they arise." Their resurrection was an illustration of the fulfillment of
the prophecy, "Awake and sing, ye that dwell in dust: for thy dew is as the
dew of herbs, and the earth shall cast out the dead." Isa. 26:19.

To the believer, Christ is the resurrection and the life. In our Saviour the
life that was lost through sin is restored; for He has life in Himself

                                                                     787

to quicken whom He will. He is invested with the right to give immortality.
The life that He laid down in humanity, He takes up again, and gives to
humanity. "I am come," He said, "that they might have life, and that they
might have it more abundantly." "Whosoever drinketh of the water that I
shall give him shall never thirst; but the water that I shall give him shall
be in him a well of water springing up into everlasting life." "Whoso eateth
My flesh, and drinketh My blood, hath eternal life; and I will raise him up
at the last day." John 10:10; 4:14; 6:54.

To the believer, death is but a small matter. Christ speaks of it as if it
were of little moment. "If a man keep My saying, he shall never see death,"
"he shall never taste of death." To the Christian, death is but a sleep, a
moment of silence and darkness. The life is hid with Christ in God, and
"when Christ, who is our life, shall appear, then shall ye also appear with
Him in glory." John 8:51, 52; Col. 3:4.

The voice that cried from the cross, "It is finished," was heard among the
dead. It pierced the walls of sepulchers, and summoned the sleepers to
arise. Thus will it be when the voice of Christ shall be heard from heaven.
That voice will penetrate the graves and unbar the tombs, and the dead in
Christ shall arise. At the Saviour's resurrection a few graves were opened,
but at His second coming all the precious dead shall hear His voice, and
shall come forth to glorious, immortal life. The same power that raised
Christ from the dead will raise His church, and glorify it with Him, above
all principalities, above all powers, above every name that is named, not
only in this world, but also in the world to come.




(788)

                             Chapter 82

                             "Why Weepest Thou?"


The women who had stood by the cross of Christ waited and watched for the
hours of the Sabbath to pass. On the first day of the week, very early, they
made their way to the tomb, taking with them precious spices to anoint the
Saviour's body. They did not think about His rising from the dead. The sun
of their hope had set, and night had settled down on their hearts. As they
walked, they recounted Christ's works of mercy and His words of comfort. But
they remembered not His words, "I will see you again." John 16:22.

Ignorant of what was even then taking place, they drew near the garden,
saying as they went, "Who shall roll us away the stone from the door of the
sepulcher?" They knew that they could not remove the stone, yet they kept on
their way. And lo, the heavens were suddenly alight with glory that came not
from the rising sun. The earth trembled. They saw that the great stone was
rolled away. The grave was empty.

The women had not all come to the tomb from the same direction. Mary
Magdalene was the first to reach the place; and upon seeing that the stone
was removed, she hurried away to tell the disciples. Meanwhile the other
women came up. A light was shining about the tomb, but the body of Jesus was
not there. As they lingered about the place, suddenly they saw that they
were not alone. A young man clothed in shining garments was sitting by the
tomb. It was the angel who had rolled away the stone. He had taken the guise
of humanity that he

                                                                     789

might not alarm these friends of Jesus. Yet about him the light of the
heavenly glory was still shining, and the women were afraid. They turned to
flee, but the angel's words stayed their steps. "Fear not ye," he said; "for
I know that ye seek Jesus, which was crucified. He is not here: for He is
risen, as He said. Come, see the place where the Lord lay. And go quickly,
and tell His disciples that He is risen from the dead." Again they look into
the tomb, and again they hear the wonderful news. Another angel in human
form is there, and he says, "Why seek ye the living among the dead? He is
not here, but is risen: remember how He spake unto you when He was yet in
Galilee, saying, The Son of man must be delivered into the hands of sinful
men, and be crucified, and the third day rise again."

He is risen, He is risen! The women repeat the words again and again. No
need now for the anointing spices. The Saviour is living, and not dead. They
remember now that when speaking of His death He said that He would rise
again. What a day is this to the world! Quickly the women departed from the
sepulcher "with fear and great joy; and did run to bring His disciples
word."

Mary had not heard the good news. She went to Peter and John with the
sorrowful message, "They have taken away the Lord out of the sepulcher, and
we know not where they have laid Him." The disciples hurried to the tomb,
and found it as Mary had said. They saw the shroud and the napkin, but they
did not find their Lord. Yet even here was testimony that He had risen. The
graveclothes were not thrown heedlessly aside, but carefully folded, each in
a place by itself. John "saw, and believed." He did not yet understand the
scripture that Christ must rise from the dead; but he now remembered the
Saviour's words foretelling His resurrection.

It was Christ Himself who had placed those graveclothes with such care. When
the mighty angel came down to the tomb, he was joined by another, who with
his company had been keeping guard over the Lord's body. As the angel from
heaven rolled away the stone, the other entered the tomb, and unbound the
wrappings from the body of Jesus. But it was the Saviour's hand that folded
each, and laid it in its place. In His sight who guides alike the star and
the atom, there is nothing unimportant. Order and perfection are seen in all
His work.

Mary had followed John and Peter to the tomb; when they returned to
Jerusalem, she remained. As she looked into the empty tomb, grief filled her
heart. Looking in, she saw the two angels, one at the head and

790

the other at the foot where Jesus had lain. "Woman, why weepest thou?" they
asked her. "Because they have taken away my Lord," she answered, "and I know
not where they have laid Him."

Then she turned away, even from the angels, thinking that she must find
someone who could tell her what had been done with the body of Jesus.
Another voice addressed her, "Woman, why weepest thou? whom seekest thou?"
Through her tear-dimmed eyes, Mary saw the form of a man, and thinking that
it was the gardener, she said, "Sir, if thou have borne Him hence, tell me
where thou hast laid Him, and I will take Him away." If this rich man's tomb
was thought too honorable a burial place for Jesus, she herself would
provide a place for Him. There was a grave that Christ's own voice had made
vacant, the grave where Lazarus had lain. Might she not there find a burial
place for her Lord? She felt that to care for His precious crucified body
would be a great consolation to her in her grief.

But now in His own familiar voice Jesus said to her, "Mary." Now she knew
that it was not a stranger who was addressing her, and turning she saw
before her the living Christ. In her joy she forgot that He had been
crucified. Springing toward Him, as if to embrace His feet, she said,
"Rabboni." But Christ raised His hand, saying, Detain Me not; "for I am not
yet ascended to My Father: but go to My brethren, and say unto them, I
ascend unto My Father, and your Father; and to My God, and your God." And
Mary went her way to the disciples with the joyful message.

Jesus refused to receive the homage of His people until He had the assurance
that His sacrifice was accepted by the Father. He ascended to the heavenly
courts, and from God Himself heard the assurance that His atonement for the
sins of men had been ample, that through His blood all might gain eternal
life. The Father ratified the covenant made with Christ, that He would
receive repentant and obedient men, and would love them even as He loves His
Son. Christ was to complete His work, and fulfill His pledge to "make a man
more precious than fine gold; even a man than the golden wedge of Ophir."
Isa. 13:12. All power in heaven and on earth was given to the Prince of
Life, and He returned to His followers in a world of sin, that He might
impart to them of His power and glory.

While the Saviour was in God's presence, receiving gifts for His church, the
disciples thought upon His empty tomb, and mourned and wept. The day that
was a day of rejoicing to all heaven was to the disciples a day of
uncertainty, confusion, and perplexity. Their unbelief

                                                                     793

in the testimony of the women gives evidence of how low their faith had
sunk. The news of Christ's resurrection was so different from what they had
anticipated that they could not believe it. It was too good to be true, they
thought. They had heard so much of the doctrines and the so-called
scientific theories of the Sadducees that the impression made on their minds
in regard to the resurrection was vague. They scarcely knew what the
resurrection from the dead could mean. They were unable to take in the great
subject.

"Go your way," the angels had said to the women, "tell His disciples and
Peter that He goeth before you into Galilee: there shall ye see Him, as He
said unto you." These angels had been with Christ as guardian angels
throughout His life on earth. They had witnessed His trial and crucifixion.
They had heard His words to His disciples. This was shown by their message
to the disciples, and should have convinced them of its truth. Such words
could have come only from the messengers of their risen Lord.

"Tell His disciples and Peter," the angels said. Since the death of Christ,
Peter had been bowed down with remorse. His shameful denial of the Lord, and
the Saviour's look of love and anguish, were ever before him. Of all the
disciples he had suffered most bitterly. To him the assurance is given that
his repentance is accepted and his sin forgiven. He is mentioned by name.

"Tell His disciples and Peter that He goeth before you into Galilee: there
shall ye see Him." All the disciples had forsaken Jesus, and the call to
meet Him again includes them all. He has not cast them off. When Mary
Magdalene told them she had seen the Lord, she repeated the call to the
meeting in Galilee. And a third time the message was sent to them. After He
had ascended to the Father, Jesus appeared to the other women, saying, "All
hail. And they came and held Him by the feet, and worshiped Him. Then said
Jesus unto them, Be not afraid: go tell My brethren that they go into
Galilee, and there shall they see Me."

Christ's first work on earth after His resurrection was to convince His
disciples of His undiminished love and tender regard for them. To give them
proof that He was their living Saviour, that He had broken the fetters of
the tomb, and could no longer be held by the enemy death; to reveal that He
had the same heart of love as when He was with them as their beloved
Teacher, He appeared to them again and again. He would draw the bonds of
love still closer around them. Go tell My brethren, He said, that they meet
Me in Galilee.

794


As they heard this appointment, so definitely given, the disciples began to
think of Christ's words to them foretelling His resurrection. But even now
they did not rejoice. They could not cast off their doubt and perplexity.
Even when the women declared that they had seen the Lord, the disciples
would not believe. They thought them under an illusion.

Trouble seemed crowding upon trouble. On the sixth day of the week they had
seen their Master die; on the first day of the next week they found
themselves deprived of His body, and they were accused of having stolen it
away for the sake of deceiving the people. They despaired of ever correcting
the false impressions that were gaining ground against them. They feared the
enmity of the priests and the wrath of the people. They longed for the
presence of Jesus, who had helped them in every perplexity.

Often they repeated the words, "We trusted that it had been He which should
have redeemed Israel." Lonely and sick at heart they remembered His words,
"If they do these things in a green tree, what shall be done in the dry?"
Luke 24:21; 23:31. They met together in the upper chamber, and closed and
fastened the doors, knowing that the fate of their beloved Teacher might at
any time be theirs.

And all the time they might have been rejoicing in the knowledge of a risen
Saviour. In the garden, Mary had stood weeping, when Jesus was close beside
her. Her eyes were so blinded by tears that she did not discern Him. And the
hearts of the disciples were so full of grief that they did not believe the
angels' message or the words of Christ Himself.

How many are still doing what these disciples did! How many echo Mary's
despairing cry, "They have taken away the Lord, . . . and we know not where
they have laid Him"! To how many might the Saviour's words be spoken, "Why
weepest thou? whom seekest thou?" He is close beside them, but their
tear-blinded eyes do not discern Him. He speaks to them, but they do not
understand.

Oh that the bowed head might be lifted, that the eyes might be opened to
behold Him, that the ears might listen to His voice! "Go quickly, and tell
His disciples that He is risen." Bid them look not to Joseph's new tomb,
that was closed with a great stone, and sealed with the Roman seal. Christ
is not there. Look not to the empty sepulcher. Mourn not as those who are
hopeless and helpless. Jesus lives, and because He lives, we shall live
also. From grateful hearts, from lips touched with holy fire, let the glad
song ring out, Christ is risen! He lives to make intercession for us. Grasp
this hope, and it will hold the soul like a sure, tried anchor. Believe, and
thou shalt see the glory of God.




                                                                     (795)

                             Chapter 83

                             The Walk to Emmaus


Late in the afternoon of the day of the resurrection, two of the disciples
were on their way to Emmaus, a little town eight miles from Jerusalem. These
disciples had had no prominent place in Christ's work, but they were earnest
believers in Him. They had come to the city to keep the Passover, and were
greatly perplexed by the events that had recently taken place. They had
heard the news of the morning in regard to the removal of Christ's body from
the tomb, and also the report of the women who had seen the angels and had
met Jesus. They were now returning to their homes to meditate and pray.
Sadly they pursued their evening walk, talking over the scenes of the trial
and the crucifixion. Never before had they been so utterly disheartened.
Hopeless and faithless, they were walking in the shadow of the cross.

They had not advanced far on their journey when they were joined by a
stranger, but they were so absorbed in their gloom and disappointment that
they did not observe him closely. They continued their conversation,
expressing the thoughts of their hearts. They were reasoning in regard to
the lessons that Christ had given, which they seemed unable to comprehend.
As they talked of the events that had taken place, Jesus longed to comfort
them. He had seen their grief; He understood the conflicting, perplexing
ideas that brought to their minds the thought,

796

Can this Man, who suffered Himself to be so humiliated, be the Christ? Their
grief could not be restrained, and they wept. Jesus knew that their hearts
were bound up with Him in love, and He longed to wipe away their tears, and
fill them with joy and gladness. But He must first give them lessons they
would never forget.

"He said unto them, What manner of communications are these that ye have one
to another, as ye walk, and are sad? And the one of them, whose name was
Cleopas, answering said unto Him, Art Thou only a stranger in Jerusalem, and
hast not known the things which are come to pass there in these days?" They
told Him of their disappointment in regard to their Master, "which was a
prophet mighty in deed and word before God and all the people;" but "the
chief priests and our rulers," they said, "delivered Him to be condemned to
death, and have crucified Him." With hearts sore with disappointment, and
with quivering lips, they added, "We trusted that it had been He which
should have redeemed Israel: and beside all this, today is the third day
since these things were done."

Strange that the disciples did not remember Christ's words, and realize that
He had foretold the events which had come to pass! They did not realize that
the last part of His disclosure would be just as verily fulfilled as the
first part, that the third day He would rise again. This was the part they
should have remembered. The priests and rulers did not forget this. On the
day "that followed the day of the preparation, the chief priests and
Pharisees came together unto Pilate, saying, Sir, we remember that that
deceiver said, while He was yet alive, After three days I will rise again."
Matt. 27:62, 63. But the disciples did not remember these words.

"Then He said unto them, O fools, and slow of heart to believe all that the
prophets have spoken: ought not Christ to have suffered these things, and to
enter into His glory?" The disciples wondered who this stranger could be,
that He should penetrate to their very souls, and speak with such
earnestness, tenderness, and sympathy, and with such hopefulness. For the
first time since Christ's betrayal, they began to feel hopeful. Often they
looked earnestly at their companion, and thought that His words were just
the words that Christ would have spoken. They were filled with amazement,
and their hearts began to throb with joyful expectation.

Beginning at Moses, the very Alpha of Bible history, Christ expounded in all
the Scriptures the things concerning Himself. Had He

                                                                     799

first made Himself known to them, their hearts would have been satisfied. In
the fullness of their joy they would have hungered for nothing more. But it
was necessary for them to understand the witness borne to Him by the types
and prophecies of the Old Testament. Upon these their faith must be
established. Christ performed no miracle to convince them, but it was His
first work to explain the Scriptures. They had looked upon His death as the
destruction of all their hopes. Now He showed from the prophets that this
was the very strongest evidence for their faith.

In teaching these disciples, Jesus showed the importance of the Old
Testament as a witness to His mission. Many professed Christians now discard
the Old Testament, claiming that it is no longer of any use. But such is not
Christ's teaching. So highly did He value it that at one time He said, "If
they hear not Moses and the prophets, neither will they be persuaded, though
one rose from the dead." Luke 16:31.

It is the voice of Christ that speaks through patriarchs and prophets, from
the days of Adam even to the closing scenes of time. The Saviour is revealed
in the Old Testament as clearly as in the New. It is the light from the
prophetic past that brings out the life of Christ and the teachings of the
New Testament with clearness and beauty. The miracles of Christ are a proof
of His divinity; but a stronger proof that He is the world's Redeemer is
found in comparing the prophecies of the Old Testament with the history of
the New.

Reasoning from prophecy, Christ gave His disciples a correct idea of what He
was to be in humanity. Their expectation of a Messiah who was to take His
throne and kingly power in accordance with the desires of men had been
misleading. It would interfere with a correct apprehension of His descent
from the highest to the lowest position that could be occupied. Christ
desired that the ideas of His disciples might be pure and true in every
specification. They must understand as far as possible in regard to the cup
of suffering that had been apportioned to Him. He showed them that the awful
conflict which they could not yet comprehend was the fulfillment of the
covenant made before the foundation of the world was laid. Christ must die,
as every transgressor of the law must die if he continues in sin. All this
was to be, but it was not to end in defeat, but in glorious, eternal
victory. Jesus told them that every effort must be made to save the world
from sin. His followers must live as He lived, and work as He worked, with
intense, persevering effort.

800


Thus Christ discoursed to His disciples, opening their minds that they might
understand the Scriptures. The disciples were weary, but the conversation
did not flag. Words of life and assurance fell from the Saviour's lips. But
still their eyes were holden. As He told them of the overthrow of Jerusalem,
they looked upon the doomed city with weeping. But little did they yet
suspect who their traveling companion was. They did not think that the
subject of their conversation was walking by their side; for Christ referred
to Himself as though He were another person. They thought that He was one of
those who had been in attendance at the great feast, and who was now
returning to his home. He walked as carefully as they over the rough stones,
now and then halting with them for a little rest. Thus they proceeded along
the mountainous road, while the One who was soon to take His position at
God's right hand, and who could say, "All power is given unto Me in heaven
and in earth," walked beside them. Matt. 28:18.

During the journey the sun had gone down, and before the travelers reached
their place of rest, the laborers in the fields had left their work. As the
disciples were about to enter their home, the stranger appeared as though He
would continue His journey. But the disciples felt drawn to Him. Their souls
hungered to hear more from Him. "Abide with us," they said. He did not seem
to accept the invitation, but they pressed it upon Him, urging, "It is
toward evening, and the day is far spent." Christ yielded to this entreaty
and "went in to tarry with them."

Had the disciples failed to press their invitation, they would not have
known that their traveling companion was the risen Lord. Christ never forces
His company upon anyone. He interests Himself in those who need Him. Gladly
will He enter the humblest home, and cheer the lowliest heart. But if men
are too indifferent to think of the heavenly Guest, or ask Him to abide with
them, He passes on. Thus many meet with great loss. They do not know Christ
any more than did the disciples as He walked with them by the way.

The simple evening meal of bread is soon prepared. It is placed before the
guest, who has taken His seat at the head of the table. Now He puts forth
His hands to bless the food. The disciples start back in astonishment. Their
companion spreads forth His hands in exactly the same way as their Master
used to do. They look again, and lo, they see in His hands the print of
nails. Both exclaim at once, It is the Lord Jesus! He has risen from the
dead!

                                                                     801


They rise to cast themselves at His feet and worship Him, but He has
vanished out of their sight. They look at the place which had been occupied
by One whose body had lately lain in the grave, and say to each other, "Did
not our heart burn within us, while He talked with us by the way, and while
He opened to us the Scriptures?"

But with this great news to communicate they cannot sit and talk. Their
weariness and hunger are gone. They leave their meal untasted, and full of
joy immediately set out again on the same path by which they came, hurrying
to tell the tidings to the disciples in the city. In some parts the road is
not safe, but they climb over the steep places, slipping on the smooth
rocks. They do not see, they do not know, that they have the protection of
Him who has traveled the road with them. With their pilgrim staff in hand,
they press on, desiring to go faster than they dare. They lose their track,
but find it again. Sometimes running, sometimes stumbling, they press
forward, their unseen Companion close beside them all the way.

The night is dark, but the Sun of Righteousness is shining upon them. Their
hearts leap for joy. They seem to be in a new world. Christ is a living
Saviour. They no longer mourn over Him as dead. Christ is risen--over and
over again they repeat it. This is the message they are carrying to the
sorrowing ones. They must tell them the wonderful story of the walk to
Emmaus. They must tell who joined them by the way. They carry the greatest
message ever given to the world, a message of glad tidings upon which the
hopes of the human family for time and for eternity depend.




(802)

                             Chapter 84

                             "Peace Be Unto You"


On reaching Jerusalem the two disciples enter at the eastern gate, which is
open at night on festal occasions. The houses are dark and silent, but the
travelers make their way through the narrow streets by the light of the
rising moon. They go to the upper chamber where Jesus spent the hours of the
last evening before His death. Here they know that their brethren are to be
found. Late as it is, they know that the disciples will not sleep till they
learn for a certainty what has become of the body of their Lord. They find
the door of the chamber securely barred. They knock for admission, but no
answer comes. All is still. Then they give their names. The door is
carefully unbarred, they enter, and Another, unseen, enters with them. Then
the door is again fastened, to keep out spies.

The travelers find all in surprised excitement. The voices of those in the
room break out into thanksgiving and praise, saying, "The Lord is risen
indeed, and hath appeared to Simon." Then the two travelers, panting with
the haste with which they have made their journey, tell the wondrous story
of how Jesus has appeared to them. They have just ended, and some are saying
that they cannot believe it, for it is too good to be true, when behold,
another Person stands before them. Every eye is fastened upon the stranger.
No one has knocked for entrance. No

                                                                     803

footstep has been heard. The disciples are startled, and wonder what it
means. Then they hear a voice which is no other than the voice of their
Master. Clear and distinct the words fall from His lips, "Peace be unto
you."

"But they were terrified and affrighted, and supposed that they had seen a
spirit. And He said unto them, Why are ye troubled? and why do thoughts
arise in your hearts? Behold My hands and My feet, that it is I Myself:
handle Me, and see; for a spirit hath not flesh and bones, as ye see Me
have. And when He had thus spoken, He showed them His hands and His feet."

They beheld the hands and feet marred by the cruel nails. They recognized
His voice, like no other they had ever heard. "And while they yet believed
not for joy, and wondered, He said unto them, Have ye here any meat? And
they gave Him a piece of a broiled fish, and of an honeycomb. And He took
it, and did eat before them." "Then were the disciples glad, when they saw
the Lord." Faith and joy took the place of unbelief, and with feelings which
no words could express they acknowledged their risen Saviour.

At the birth of Jesus the angel announced, Peace on earth, and good will to
men. And now at His first appearance to the disciples after His
resurrection, the Saviour addressed them with the blessed words, "Peace

804

be unto you." Jesus is ever ready to speak peace to souls that are burdened
with doubts and fears. He waits for us to open the door of the heart to Him,
and say, Abide with us. He says, "Behold, I stand at the door, and knock: if
any man hear My voice, and open the door, I will come in to him, and will
sup with him, and he with Me." Rev. 3:20.

The resurrection of Jesus was a type of the final resurrection of all who
sleep in Him. The countenance of the risen Saviour, His manner, His speech,
were all familiar to His disciples. As Jesus arose from the dead, so those
who sleep in Him are to rise again. We shall know our friends, even as the
disciples knew Jesus. They may have been deformed, diseased, or disfigured,
in this mortal life, and they rise in perfect health and symmetry; yet in
the glorified body their identity will be perfectly preserved. Then shall we
know even as also we are known. 1 Cor. 13:12. In the face radiant with the
light shining from the face of Jesus, we shall recognize the lineaments of
those we love.

When Jesus met with His disciples, He reminded them of the words He had
spoken to them before His death, that all things must be fulfilled which
were written in the law of Moses, and in the prophets, and in the Psalms
concerning Him. "Then opened He their understanding, that they might
understand the Scriptures, and said unto them, Thus it is

                                                                     805

written, and thus it behooved Christ to suffer, and to rise from the dead
the third day: and that repentance and remission of sins should be preached
in His name among all nations, beginning at Jerusalem. And ye are witnesses
of these things."

The disciples began to realize the nature and extent of their work. They
were to proclaim to the world the wonderful truths which Christ had
entrusted to them. The events of His life, His death and resurrection, the
prophecies that pointed to these events, the sacredness of the law of God,
the mysteries of the plan of salvation, the power of Jesus for the remission
of sins,--to all these things they were witnesses, and they were to make
them known to the world. They were to proclaim the gospel of peace and
salvation through repentance and the power of the Saviour.

"And when He had said this, He breathed on them, and saith unto them,
Receive ye the Holy Ghost: Whosesoever sins ye remit, they are remitted unto
them; and whosesoever sins ye retain, they are retained." The Holy Spirit
was not yet fully manifested; for Christ had not yet been glorified. The
more abundant impartation of the Spirit did not take place till after
Christ's ascension. Not until this was received could the disciples fulfill
the commission to preach the gospel to the world. But the Spirit was now
given for a special purpose. Before the disciples could fulfill their
official duties in connection with the church, Christ breathed His Spirit
upon them. He was committing to them a most sacred trust, and He desired to
impress them with the fact that without the Holy Spirit this work could not
be accomplished.

The Holy Spirit is the breath of spiritual life in the soul. The impartation
of the Spirit is the impartation of the life of Christ. It imbues the
receiver with the attributes of Christ. Only those who are thus taught of
God, those who possess the inward working of the Spirit, and in whose life
the Christ-life is manifested, are to stand as representative men, to
minister in behalf of the church.

"Whosesoever sins ye remit," said Christ, "they are remitted; . . . and
whosesoever sins ye retain, they are retained." Christ here gives no liberty
for any man to pass judgment upon others. In the Sermon on the Mount He
forbade this. It is the prerogative of God. But on the church in its
organized capacity He places a responsibility for the individual members.
Toward those who fall into sin, the church has a duty, to warn, to instruct,
and if possible to restore. "Reprove, rebuke, exhort," the Lord says, "with
all long-suffering and doctrine." 2 Tim. 4:2. Deal

806

faithfully with wrongdoing. Warn every soul that is in danger. Leave none to
deceive themselves. Call sin by its right name. Declare what God has said in
regard to lying, Sabbathbreaking, stealing, idolatry, and every other evil.
"They which do such things shall not inherit the kingdom of God." Gal. 5:21.
If they persist in sin, the judgment you have declared from God's word is
pronounced upon them in heaven. In choosing to sin, they disown Christ; the
church must show that she does not sanction their deeds, or she herself
dishonors her Lord. She must say about sin what God says about it. She must
deal with it as God directs, and her action is ratified in heaven. He who
despises the authority of the church despises the authority of Christ
Himself.

But there is a brighter side to the picture. "Whosesoever sins ye remit,
they are remitted." Let this thought be kept uppermost. In labor for the
erring, let every eye be directed to Christ. Let the shepherds have a tender
care for the flock of the Lord's pasture. Let them speak to the erring of
the forgiving mercy of the Saviour. Let them encourage the sinner to repent,
and believe in Him who can pardon. Let them declare, on the authority of
God's word, "If we confess our sins, He is faithful and just to forgive us
our sins, and to cleanse us from all unrighteousness."
1 John 1:9. All who repent have the assurance, "He will have compassion
upon us; He will subdue our iniquities; and Thou wilt cast all their sins
into the depths of the sea." Micah 7:19.

Let the repentance of the sinner be accepted by the church with grateful
hearts. Let the repenting one be led out from the darkness of unbelief into
the light of faith and righteousness. Let his trembling hand be placed in
the loving hand of Jesus. Such a remission is ratified in heaven.

Only in this sense has the church power to absolve the sinner. Remission of
sins can be obtained only through the merits of Christ. To no man, to no
body of men, is given power to free the soul from guilt. Christ charged His
disciples to preach the remission of sins in His name among all nations; but
they themselves were not empowered to remove one stain of sin. The name of
Jesus is the only "name under heaven given among men, whereby we must be
saved." Acts 4:12.

When Jesus first met the disciples in the upper chamber, Thomas was not with
them. He heard the reports of the others, and received abundant proof that
Jesus had risen; but gloom and unbelief filled his heart. As he heard the
disciples tell of the wonderful manifestations of the risen Saviour, it only
plunged him in deeper despair. If Jesus had

                                                                     807

really risen from the dead, there could be no further hope of a literal
earthly kingdom. And it wounded his vanity to think that his Master should
reveal Himself to all the disciples except him. He was determined not to
believe, and for a whole week he brooded over his wretchedness, which seemed
all the darker in contrast with the hope and faith of his brethren.

During this time he repeatedly declared, "Except I shall see in His hands
the print of the nails, and put my finger into the print of the nails, and
thrust my hand into His side, I will not believe." He would not see through
the eyes of his brethren, or exercise faith which was dependent upon their
testimony. He ardently loved his Lord, but he had allowed jealousy and
unbelief to take possession of his mind and heart.

A number of the disciples now made the familiar upper chamber their
temporary home, and at evening all except Thomas gathered here. One evening
Thomas determined to meet with the others. Notwithstanding his unbelief, he
had a faint hope that the good news was true. While the disciples were
taking their evening meal, they talked of the evidences which Christ had
given them in the prophecies. "Then came Jesus, the doors being shut, and
stood in the midst, and said, Peace be unto you."

Turning to Thomas He said, "Reach hither thy finger, and behold My hands;
and reach hither thy hand, and thrust it into My side: and be not faithless,
but believing." These words showed that He was acquainted with the thoughts
and words of Thomas. The doubting disciple knew that none of his companions
had seen Jesus for a week. They could not have told the Master of his
unbelief. He recognized the One before him as his Lord. He had no desire for
further proof. His heart leaped for joy, and he cast himself at the feet of
Jesus crying, "My Lord and my God."

Jesus accepted his acknowledgment, but gently reproved his unbelief:
"Thomas, because thou hast seen Me, thou hast believed: blessed are they
that have not seen, and yet have believed." The faith of Thomas would have
been more pleasing to Christ if he had been willing to believe upon the
testimony of his brethren. Should the world now follow the example of
Thomas, no one would believe unto salvation; for all who receive Christ must
do so through the testimony of others.

Many who are given to doubt excuse themselves by saying that if they had the
evidence which Thomas had from his companions, they would believe. They do
not realize that they have not only that evidence, but

808

much more. Many who, like Thomas, wait for all cause of doubt to be removed,
will never realize their desire. They gradually become confirmed in
unbelief. Those who educate themselves to look on the dark side, and murmur
and complain, know not what they do. They are sowing the seeds of doubt, and
they will have a harvest of doubt to reap. At a time when faith and
confidence are most essential, many will thus find themselves powerless to
hope and believe.

In His treatment of Thomas, Jesus gave a lesson for His followers. His
example shows how we should treat those whose faith is weak, and who make
their doubts prominent. Jesus did not overwhelm Thomas with reproach, nor
did He enter into controversy with him. He revealed Himself to the doubting
one. Thomas had been most unreasonable in dictating the conditions of his
faith, but Jesus, by His generous love and consideration, broke down all the
barriers. Unbelief is seldom overcome by controversy. It is rather put upon
self-defense, and finds new support and excuse. But let Jesus, in His love
and mercy, be revealed as the crucified Saviour, and from many once
unwilling lips will be heard the acknowledgment of Thomas, "My Lord and my
God."




                                                                     (809)

                             Chapter 85

                             By the Sea Once More


Jesus had appointed to meet His disciples in Galilee; and soon after the
Passover week was ended, they bent their steps thither. Their absence from
Jerusalem during the feast would have been interpreted as disaffection and
heresy, therefore they remained till its close; but this over, they gladly
turned homeward to meet the Saviour as He had directed.

Seven of the disciples were in company. They were clad in the humble garb of
fishermen; they were poor in worldly goods, but rich in the knowledge and
practice of the truth, which in the sight of Heaven gave them the highest
rank as teachers. They had not been students in the schools of the prophets,
but for three years they had been taught by the greatest Educator the world
has ever known. Under His instruction they had become elevated, intelligent,
and refined, agents through whom men might be led to a knowledge of the
truth.

Much of the time of Christ's ministry had been passed near the Sea of
Galilee. As the disciples gathered in a place where they were not likely to
be disturbed, they found themselves surrounded by reminders of Jesus and His
mighty works. On this sea, when their hearts were filled with terror, and
the fierce storm was hurrying them to destruction, Jesus had walked upon the
billows to their rescue. Here the tempest had been hushed by His word.
Within sight was the beach where above ten thousand persons had been fed
from a few small loaves and fishes. Not far distant was Capernaum, the scene
of so many miracles. As the disciples

810

looked upon the scene, their minds were full of the words and deeds of their
Saviour.

The evening was pleasant, and Peter, who still had much of his old love for
boats and fishing, proposed that they should go out upon the sea and cast
their nets. In this plan all were ready to join; they were in need of food
and clothing, which the proceeds of a successful night's fishing would
supply. So they went out in their boat, but they caught nothing. All night
they toiled, without success. Through the weary hours they talked of their
absent Lord, and recalled the wonderful events they had witnessed in His
ministry beside the sea. They questioned as to their own future, and grew
sad at the prospect before them.

All the while a lone watcher upon the shore followed them with His eye,
while He Himself was unseen. At length the morning dawned. The boat was but
a little way from the shore, and the disciples saw a stranger standing upon
the beach, who accosted them with the question, "Children, have ye any
meat?" When they answered, "No," "He said unto them, Cast the net on the
right side of the ship, and ye shall find. They cast therefore, and now they
were not able to draw it for the multitude of fishes."

John recognized the stranger, and exclaimed to Peter, "It is the Lord."
Peter was so elated and so glad that in his eagerness he cast himself into
the water and was soon standing by the side of his Master. The other
disciples came in their boat, dragging the net with fishes. "As soon then as
they were come to land, they saw a fire of coals there, and fish laid
thereon, and bread."

They were too much amazed to question whence came the fire and the food.
"Jesus saith unto them, Bring of the fish which ye have now caught." Peter
rushed for the net, which he had dropped, and helped his brethren drag it to
the shore. After the work was done, and the preparation made, Jesus bade the
disciples come and dine. He broke the food, and divided it among them, and
was known and acknowledged by all the seven. The miracle of feeding the five
thousand on the mountainside was now brought to their minds; but a
mysterious awe was upon them, and in silence they gazed upon the risen
Saviour.

Vividly they recalled the scene beside the sea when Jesus had bidden them
follow Him. They remembered how, at His command, they had launched out into
the deep, and had let down their net, and the catch had been so abundant as
to fill the net, even to breaking. Then Jesus had called them to leave their
fishing boats, and had promised to make them

                                                                     811

fishers of men. It was to bring this scene to their minds, and to deepen its
impression, that He had again performed the miracle. His act was a renewal
of the commission to the disciples. It showed them that the death of their
Master had not lessened their obligation to do the work He had assigned
them. Though they were to be deprived of His personal companionship, and of
the means of support by their former employment, the risen Saviour would
still have a care for them. While they were doing His work, He would provide
for their needs. And Jesus had a purpose in bidding them cast their net on
the right side of the ship. On that side He stood upon the shore. That was
the side of faith. If they labored in connection with Him,--His divine power
combining with their human effort,--they could not fail of success.

Another lesson Christ had to give, relating especially to Peter. Peter's
denial of his Lord had been in shameful contrast to his former professions
of loyalty. He had dishonored Christ, and had incurred the distrust of his
brethren. They thought he would not be allowed to take his former position
among them, and he himself felt that he had forfeited his trust. Before
being called to take up again his apostolic work, he must before them all
give evidence of his repentance. Without this, his sin, though repented of,
might have destroyed his influence as a minister of Christ. The Saviour gave
him opportunity to regain the confidence of his brethren, and, so far as
possible, to remove the reproach he had brought upon the gospel.

Here is given a lesson for all Christ's followers. The gospel makes no
compromise with evil. It cannot excuse sin. Secret sins are to be confessed
in secret to God; but, for open sin, open confession is required. The
reproach of the disciple's sin is cast upon Christ. It causes Satan to
triumph, and wavering souls to stumble. By giving proof of repentance, the
disciple, so far as lies in his power, is to remove this reproach.

While Christ and the disciples were eating together by the seaside, the
Saviour said to Peter, "Simon, son of Jonas, lovest thou Me more than
these?" referring to his brethren. Peter had once declared, "Though all men
shall be offended because of Thee, yet will I never be offended." Matt.
26:33. But he now put a truer estimate upon himself. "Yea, Lord," he said,
"Thou knowest that I love Thee." There is no vehement assurance that his
love is greater than that of his brethren. He does not express his own
opinion of his devotion. To Him who can read all the motives of the heart he
appeals to judge as to his sincerity,--"Thou knowest that I love Thee." And
Jesus bids him, "Feed My lambs."

812


Again Jesus applied the test to Peter, repeating His former words: "Simon,
son of Jonas, lovest thou Me?" This time He did not ask Peter whether he
loved Him better than did his brethren. The second response was like the
first, free from extravagant assurance: "Yea, Lord; Thou knowest that I love
Thee." Jesus said to him, "Feed My sheep." Once more the Saviour put the
trying question: "Simon, son of Jonas, lovest thou Me?" Peter was grieved;
he thought that Jesus doubted his love. He knew that his Lord had cause to
distrust him, and with an aching heart he answered, "Lord, Thou knowest all
things; Thou knowest that I love Thee." Again Jesus said to him, "Feed My
sheep."

Three times Peter had openly denied his Lord, and three times Jesus drew
from him the assurance of his love and loyalty, pressing home that pointed
question, like a barbed arrow to his wounded heart. Before the assembled
disciples Jesus revealed the depth of Peter's repentance, and showed how
thoroughly humbled was the once boasting disciple.

Peter was naturally forward and impulsive, and Satan had taken advantage of
these characteristics to overthrow him. Just before the fall of Peter, Jesus
had said to him, "Satan hath desired to have you, that he may sift you as
wheat: but I have prayed for thee, that thy faith fail not: and when thou
art converted, strengthen thy brethren." Luke 22:31, 32. That time had now
come, and the transformation in Peter was evident. The close, testing
questions of the Lord had not called out one forward, self-sufficient reply;
and because of his humiliation and repentance, Peter was better prepared
than ever before to act as shepherd to the flock.

The first work that Christ entrusted to Peter on restoring him to the
ministry was to feed the lambs. This was a work in which Peter had little
experience. It would require great care and tenderness, much patience and
perseverance. It called him to minister to those who were young in the
faith, to teach the ignorant, to open the Scriptures to them, and to educate
them for usefulness in Christ's service. Heretofore Peter had not been
fitted to do this, or even to understand its importance. But this was the
work which Jesus now called upon him to do. For this work his own experience
of suffering and repentance had prepared him.

Before his fall, Peter was always speaking unadvisedly, from the impulse of
the moment. He was always ready to correct others, and to express his mind,
before he had a clear comprehension of himself or of what he had to say. But
the converted Peter was very different. He retained his former fervor, but
the grace of Christ regulated his zeal. He was no longer impetuous,
self-confident, and self-exalted, but calm,

                                                                     815

self-possessed, and teachable. He could then feed the lambs as well as the
sheep of Christ's flock.

The Saviour's manner of dealing with Peter had a lesson for him and for his
brethren. It taught them to meet the transgressor with patience, sympathy,
and forgiving love. Although Peter had denied his Lord, the love which Jesus
bore him never faltered. Just such love should the undershepherd feel for
the sheep and lambs committed to his care. Remembering his own weakness and
failure, Peter was to deal with his flock as tenderly as Christ had dealt
with him.

The question that Christ had put to Peter was significant. He mentioned only
one condition of discipleship and service. "Lovest thou Me?" He said. This
is the essential qualification. Though Peter might possess every other, yet
without the love of Christ he could not be a faithful shepherd over the
Lord's flock. Knowledge, benevolence, eloquence, gratitude, and zeal are all
aids in the good work; but without the love of Jesus in the heart, the work
of the Christian minister is a failure.

Jesus walked alone with Peter, for there was something which He wished to
communicate to him only. Before His death, Jesus had said to him, "Whither I
go, thou canst not follow Me now; but thou shalt follow Me afterwards." To
this Peter had replied, "Lord, why cannot I follow Thee now? I will lay down
my life for Thy sake." John 13:36,
37. When he said this, he little knew to what heights and depths Christ's
feet would lead the way. Peter had failed when the test came, but again he
was to have opportunity to prove his love for Christ. That he might be
strengthened for the final test of his faith, the Saviour opened to him his
future. He told him that after living a life of usefulness, when age was
telling upon his strength, he would indeed follow his Lord. Jesus said,
"When thou wast young, thou girdedst thyself, and walkedst whither thou
wouldest: but when thou shalt be old, thou shalt stretch forth thy hands,
and another shall gird thee, and carry thee whither thou wouldest not. This
spake He, signifying by what death he should glorify God."

Jesus thus made known to Peter the very manner of his death; He even
foretold the stretching forth of his hands upon the cross. Again He bade His
disciple, "Follow Me." Peter was not disheartened by the revelation. He felt
willing to suffer any death for his Lord.

Heretofore Peter had known Christ after the flesh, as many know Him now; but
he was no more to be thus limited. He knew Him no more as he had known Him
in his association with Him in humanity.

816

He had loved Him as a man, as a heaven-sent teacher; he now loved Him as
God. He had been learning the lesson that to him Christ was all in all. Now
he was prepared to share in his Lord's mission of sacrifice. When at last
brought to the cross, he was, at his own request, crucified with his head
downward. He thought it too great an honor to suffer in the same way as his
Master did.

To Peter the words "Follow Me" were full of instruction. Not only for his
death, but for every step of his life, was the lesson given. Hitherto Peter
had been inclined to act independently. He had tried to plan for the work of
God, instead of waiting to follow out God's plan. But he could gain nothing
by rushing on before the Lord. Jesus bids him, "Follow Me." Do not run ahead
of Me. Then you will not have the hosts of Satan to meet alone. Let Me go
before you, and you will not be overcome by the enemy.

As Peter walked beside Jesus, he saw that John was following. A desire came
over him to know his future, and he "saith to Jesus, Lord, and what shall
this man do? Jesus saith unto him, If I will that he tarry till I come, what
is that to thee? follow thou Me." Peter should have considered that his Lord
would reveal to him all that it was best for him to know. It is the duty of
everyone to follow Christ, without undue anxiety as to the work assigned to
others. In saying of John, "If I will that he tarry till I come," Jesus gave
no assurance that this disciple should live until the Lord's second coming.
He merely asserted His own supreme power, and that even if He should will
this to be so, it would in no way affect Peter's work. The future of both
John and Peter was in the hands of their Lord. Obedience in following Him
was the duty required of each.

How many today are like Peter! They are interested in the affairs of others,
and anxious to know their duty, while they are in danger of neglecting their
own. It is our work to look to Christ and follow Him. We shall see mistakes
in the lives of others, and defects in their character. Humanity is
encompassed with infirmity. But in Christ we shall find perfection.
Beholding Him, we shall become transformed.

John lived to be very aged. He witnessed the destruction of Jerusalem, and
the ruin of the stately temple,--a symbol of the final ruin of the world. To
his latest days John closely followed his Lord. The burden of his testimony
to the churches was, "Beloved, let us love one another;" "he that dwelleth
in love, dwelleth in God, and God in him." 1 John 4:7, 16.

                                                                     817


Peter had been restored to his apostleship, but the honor and authority he
received from Christ had not given him supremacy over his brethren. This
Christ had made plain when in answer to Peter's question, "What shall this
man do?" He had said, "What is that to thee? follow thou Me." Peter was not
honored as the head of the church. The favor which Christ had shown him in
forgiving his apostasy, and entrusting him with the feeding of the flock,
and Peter's own faithfulness in following Christ, won for him the confidence
of his brethren. He had much influence in the church. But the lesson which
Christ had taught him by the Sea of Galilee Peter carried with him
throughout his life. Writing by the Holy Spirit to the churches, he said:

"The elders which are among you I exhort, who am also an elder, and a
witness of the sufferings of Christ, and also a partaker of the glory that
shall be revealed: Feed the flock of God which is among you, taking the
oversight thereof, not by constraint, but willingly; not for filthy lucre,
but of a ready mind; neither as being lords over God's heritage, but being
ensamples to the flock. And when the Chief Shepherd shall appear, ye shall
receive a crown of glory that fadeth not away." 1 Peter 5:1-4.




(818)

                             Chapter 86

                             Go Teach All Nations


Standing but a step from His heavenly throne, Christ gave the commission to
His disciples. "All power is given unto Me in heaven and in earth," He said.
"Go ye therefore, and teach all nations." "Go ye into all the world, and
preach the gospel to every creature." Mark 16:15. Again and again the words
were repeated, that the disciples might grasp their significance. Upon all
the inhabitants of the earth, high and low, rich and poor, was the light of
heaven to shine in clear, strong rays. The disciples were to be colaborers
with their Redeemer in the work of saving the world.

The commission had been given to the twelve when Christ met with them in the
upper chamber; but it was now to be given to a larger number. At the meeting
on a mountain in Galilee, all the believers who could be called together
were assembled. Of this meeting Christ Himself, before His death, had
designated the time and place. The angel at the tomb reminded the disciples
of His promise to meet them in Galilee. The promise was repeated to the
believers who were gathered at Jerusalem during the Passover week, and
through them it reached many lonely ones who were mourning the death of
their Lord. With intense interest all looked forward to the interview. They
made their way to the place of meeting by circuitous routes, coming in from
every direction, to avoid exciting the suspicion of the jealous Jews. With
wondering hearts they came, talking earnestly together of the news that had
reached them concerning Christ.

At the time appointed, about five hundred believers were collected in little
knots on the mountainside, eager to learn all that could be learned

                                                                     819

from those who had seen Christ since His resurrection. From group to group
the disciples passed, telling all they had seen and heard of Jesus, and
reasoning from the Scriptures as He had done with them. Thomas recounted the
story of his unbelief, and told how his doubts had been swept away. Suddenly
Jesus stood among them. No one could tell whence or how He came. Many who
were present had never before seen Him; but in His hands and feet they
beheld the marks of the crucifixion; His countenance was as the face of God,
and when they saw Him, they worshiped Him.

But some doubted. So it will always be. There are those who find it hard to
exercise faith, and they place themselves on the doubting side. These lose
much because of their unbelief.

This was the only interview that Jesus had with many of the believers after
His resurrection. He came and spoke to them saying, "All power is given unto
Me in heaven and in earth." The disciples had worshiped Him before He spoke,
but His words, falling from lips that had been closed in death, thrilled
them with peculiar power. He was now the risen Saviour. Many of them had
seen Him exercise His power in healing the sick and controlling satanic
agencies. They believed that He possessed power to set up His kingdom at
Jerusalem, power to quell all opposition, power over the elements of nature.
He had stilled the angry waters; He had walked upon the white-crested
billows; He had raised the dead to life. Now He declared that "all power"
was given to Him. His words carried the minds of His hearers above earthly
and temporal things to the heavenly and eternal. They were lifted to the
highest conception of His dignity and glory.

Christ's words on the mountainside were the announcement that His sacrifice
in behalf of man was full and complete. The conditions of the atonement had
been fulfilled; the work for which He came to this world had been
accomplished. He was on His way to the throne of God, to be honored by
angels, principalities, and powers. He had entered upon His mediatorial
work. Clothed with boundless authority, He gave His commission to the
disciples: "Go ye therefore, and teach all nations," "baptizing them into
the name of the Father and of the Son and of the Holy Spirit: teaching them
to observe all things whatsoever I commanded you: and lo, I am with you
always, even unto the end of the world." Matt. 28:19, 20, R. V.

The Jewish people had been made the depositaries of sacred truth; but
Pharisaism had made them the most exclusive, the most bigoted, of

820

all the human race. Everything about the priests and rulers--their dress,
customs, ceremonies, traditions--made them unfit to be the light of the
world. They looked upon themselves, the Jewish nation, as the world. But
Christ commissioned His disciples to proclaim a faith and worship that would
have in it nothing of caste or country, a faith that would be adapted to all
peoples, all nations, all classes of men.

Before leaving His disciples, Christ plainly stated the nature of His
kingdom. He called to their minds what He had previously told them
concerning it. He declared that it was not His purpose to establish in this
world a temporal, but a spiritual kingdom. He was not to reign as an earthly
king on David's throne. Again He opened to them the Scriptures, showing that
all He had passed through had been ordained in heaven, in the councils
between the Father and Himself. All had been foretold by men inspired by the
Holy Spirit. He said, You see that all I have revealed to you concerning My
rejection as the Messiah has come to pass. All I have said in regard to the
humiliation I should endure and the death I should die, has been verified.
On the third day I rose again. Search the Scriptures more diligently, and
you will see that in all these things the specifications of prophecy
concerning Me have been fulfilled.

Christ commissioned His disciples to do the work He had left in their hands,
beginning at Jerusalem. Jerusalem had been the scene of His amazing
condescension for the human race. There He had suffered, been rejected and
condemned. The land of Judea was His birthplace. There, clad in the garb of
humanity, He had walked with men, and few had discerned how near heaven came
to the earth when Jesus was among them. At Jerusalem the work of the
disciples must begin.

In view of all that Christ had suffered there, and the unappreciated labor
He had put forth, the disciples might have pleaded for a more promising
field; but they made no such plea. The very ground where He had scattered
the seed of truth was to be cultivated by the disciples, and the seed would
spring up and yield an abundant harvest. In their work the disciples would
have to meet persecution through the jealousy and hatred of the Jews; but
this had been endured by their Master, and they were not to flee from it.
The first offers of mercy must be made to the murderers of the Saviour.

And there were in Jerusalem many who had secretly believed on Jesus, and
many who had been deceived by the priests and rulers. To these also the
gospel was to be presented. They were to be called to

                                                                     821

repentance. The wonderful truth that through Christ alone could remission of
sins be obtained was to be made plain. While all Jerusalem was stirred by
the thrilling events of the past few weeks, the preaching of the gospel
would make the deepest impression.

But the work was not to stop here. It was to be extended to the earth's
remotest bounds. To His disciples Christ said, You have been witnesses of My
life of self-sacrifice in behalf of the world. You have witnessed My labors
for Israel. Although they would not come unto Me that they might have life,
although priests and rulers have done to Me as they listed, although they
have rejected Me as the Scriptures foretold, they shall have still another
opportunity of accepting the Son of God. You have seen that all who come to
Me, confessing their sins, I freely receive. Him that cometh to Me I will in
nowise cast out. All who will, may be reconciled to God, and receive
everlasting life. To you, My disciples, I commit this message of mercy. It
is to be given to Israel first, and then to all nations, tongues, and
peoples. It is to be given to Jews and Gentiles. All who believe are to be
gathered into one church.

Through the gift of the Holy Spirit the disciples were to receive a
marvelous power. Their testimony was to be confirmed by signs and wonders.
Miracles would be wrought, not only by the apostles, but by those who
received their message. Jesus said, "In My name shall they cast out devils;
they shall speak with new tongues; they shall take up serpents; and if they
drink any deadly thing, it shall not hurt them; they shall lay hands on the
sick, and they shall recover." Mark 16:17, 18.

At that time poisoning was often practiced. Unscrupulous men did not
hesitate to remove by this means those who stood in the way of their
ambition. Jesus knew that the life of His disciples would thus be imperiled.
Many would think it doing God service to put His witnesses to death. He
therefore promised them protection from this danger.

The disciples were to have the same power which Jesus had to heal "all
manner of sickness and all manner of disease among the people." By healing
in His name the diseases of the body, they would testify to His power for
the healing of the soul. Matt. 4:23; 9:6. And a new endowment was now
promised. The disciples were to preach among other nations, and they would
receive power to speak other tongues. The apostles and their associates were
unlettered men, yet through the outpouring of the Spirit on the day of
Pentecost, their speech, whether in their own or a foreign language, became
pure, simple, and accurate, both in word and in accent.

822


Thus Christ gave His disciples their commission. He made full provision for
the prosecution of the work, and took upon Himself the responsibility for
its success. So long as they obeyed His word, and worked in connection with
Him, they could not fail. Go to all nations, He bade them. Go to the
farthest part of the habitable globe, but know that My presence will be
there. Labor in faith and confidence, for the time will never come when I
will forsake you.

The Saviour's commission to the disciples included all the believers. It
includes all believers in Christ to the end of time. It is a fatal mistake
to suppose that the work of saving souls depends alone on the ordained
minister. All to whom the heavenly inspiration has come are put in trust
with the gospel. All who receive the life of Christ are ordained to work for
the salvation of their fellow men. For this work the church was established,
and all who take upon themselves its sacred vows are thereby pledged to be
co-workers with Christ.

"The Spirit and the bride say, Come. And let him that heareth say, Come."
Rev. 22:17. Everyone who hears is to repeat the invitation. Whatever one's
calling in life, his first interest should be to win souls for Christ. He
may not be able to speak to congregations, but he can work for individuals.
To them he can communicate the instruction received from his Lord. Ministry
does not consist alone in preaching. Those minister who relieve the sick and
suffering, helping the needy, speaking words of comfort to the desponding
and those of little faith. Nigh and afar off are souls weighed down by a
sense of guilt. It is not hardship, toil, or poverty that degrades humanity.
It is guilt, wrongdoing. This brings unrest and dissatisfaction. Christ
would have His servants minister to sin-sick souls.

The disciples were to begin their work where they were. The hardest and most
unpromising field was not to be passed by. So every one of Christ's workers
is to begin where he is. In our own families may be souls hungry for
sympathy, starving for the bread of life. There may be children to be
trained for Christ. There are heathen at our very doors. Let us do
faithfully the work that is nearest. Then let our efforts be extended as far
as God's hand may lead the way. The work of many may appear to be restricted
by circumstances; but, wherever it is, if performed with faith and diligence
it will be felt to the uttermost parts of the earth. Christ's work when upon
earth appeared to be confined to a narrow field, but multitudes from all
lands heard His message. God often uses the simplest means to accomplish the
greatest results. It is

                                                                     823

His plan that every part of His work shall depend on every other part, as a
wheel within a wheel, all acting in harmony. The humblest worker, moved by
the Holy Spirit, will touch invisible chords, whose vibrations will ring to
the ends of the earth, and make melody through eternal ages.

But the command, "Go ye into all the world," is not to be lost sight of. We
are called upon to lift our eyes to the "regions beyond." Christ tears away
the wall of partition, the dividing prejudice of nationality, and teaches a
love for all the human family. He lifts men from the narrow circle which
their selfishness prescribes; He abolishes all territorial lines and
artificial distinctions of society. He makes no difference between neighbors
and strangers, friends and enemies. He teaches us to look upon every needy
soul as our brother, and the world as our field.

When the Saviour said, "Go, . . . teach all nations," He said also, "These
signs shall follow them that believe; In My name shall they cast out devils;
they shall speak with new tongues; they shall take up serpents; and if they
drink any deadly thing, it shall not hurt them; they shall lay hands on the
sick, and they shall recover." The promise is as far-reaching as the
commission. Not that all the gifts are imparted to each believer. The Spirit
divides "to every man severally as He will." 1 Cor. 12:11. But the gifts of
the Spirit are promised to every believer according to his need for the
Lord's work. The promise is just as strong and trustworthy now as in the
days of the apostles. "These signs shall follow them that believe." This is
the privilege of God's children, and faith should lay hold on all that it is
possible to have as an indorsement of faith.

"They shall lay hands on the sick, and they shall recover." This world is a
vast lazar house, but Christ came to heal the sick, to proclaim deliverance
to the captives of Satan. He was in Himself health and strength. He imparted
His life to the sick, the afflicted, those possessed of demons. He turned
away none who came to receive His healing power. He knew that those who
petitioned Him for help had brought disease upon themselves; yet He did not
refuse to heal them. And when virtue from Christ entered into these poor
souls, they were convicted of sin, and many were healed of their spiritual
disease, as well as of their physical maladies. The gospel still possesses
the same power, and why should we not today witness the same results?

Christ feels the woes of every sufferer. When evil spirits rend a human
frame, Christ feels the curse. When fever is burning up the life current, He
feels the agony. And He is just as willing to heal the sick now as when He
was personally on earth. Christ's servants are His

824

representatives, the channels for His working. He desires through them to
exercise His healing power.

In the Saviour's manner of healing there were lessons for His disciples. On
one occasion He anointed the eyes of a blind man with clay, and bade him,
"Go, wash in the pool of Siloam. . . . He went his way therefore, and
washed, and came seeing." John 9:7. The cure could be wrought only by the
power of the Great Healer, yet Christ made use of the simple agencies of
nature. While He did not give countenance to drug medication, He sanctioned
the use of simple and natural remedies.

To many of the afflicted ones who received healing, Christ said, "Sin no
more, lest a worse thing come unto thee." John 5:14. Thus He taught that
disease is the result of violating God's laws, both natural and spiritual.
The great misery in the world would not exist did men but live in harmony
with the Creator's plan.

Christ had been the guide and teacher of ancient Israel, and He taught them
that health is the reward of obedience to the laws of God. The Great
Physician who healed the sick in Palestine had spoken to His people from the
pillar of cloud, telling them what they must do, and what God would do for
them. "If thou wilt diligently hearken to the voice of the Lord thy God," He
said, "and wilt do that which is right in His sight, and wilt give ear to
His commandments, and keep all His statutes, I will put none of these
diseases upon thee, which I have brought upon the Egyptians: for I am the
Lord that healeth thee." Ex. 15:26. Christ gave to Israel definite
instruction in regard to their habits of life, and He assured them, "The
Lord will take away from thee all sickness." Deut. 7:15. When they fulfilled
the conditions, the promise was verified to them. "There was not one feeble
person among their tribes." Ps. 105:37.

These lessons are for us. There are conditions to be observed by all who
would preserve health. All should learn what these conditions are. The Lord
is not pleased with ignorance in regard to His laws, either natural or
spiritual. We are to be workers together with God for the restoration of
health to the body as well as to the soul.

And we should teach others how to preserve and to recover health. For the
sick we should use the remedies which God has provided in nature, and we
should point them to Him who alone can restore. It is our work to present
the sick and suffering to Christ in the arms of our faith. We should teach
them to believe in the Great Healer. We should lay hold on His promise, and
pray for the manifestation of His power. The very essence of the gospel is
restoration, and the Saviour would have us bid

                                                                     825

the sick, the hopeless, and the afflicted take hold upon His strength.

The power of love was in all Christ's healing, and only by partaking of that
love, through faith, can we be instruments for His work. If we neglect to
link ourselves in divine connection with Christ, the current of life-giving
energy cannot flow in rich streams from us to the people. There were places
where the Saviour Himself could not do many mighty works because of their
unbelief. So now unbelief separates the church from her divine Helper. Her
hold upon eternal realities is weak. By her lack of faith, God is
disappointed, and robbed of His glory.

It is in doing Christ's work that the church has the promise of His
presence. Go teach all nations, He said; "and, lo, I am with you alway, even
unto the end of the world." To take His yoke is one of the first conditions
of receiving His power. The very life of the church depends upon her
faithfulness in fulfilling the Lord's commission. To neglect this work is
surely to invite spiritual feebleness and decay. Where there is no active
labor for others, love wanes, and faith grows dim.

Christ intends that His ministers shall be educators of the church in gospel
work. They are to teach the people how to seek and save the lost. But is
this the work they are doing? Alas, how many are toiling to fan the spark of
life in a church that is ready to die! How many churches are tended like
sick lambs by those who ought to be seeking for the lost sheep! And all the
time millions upon millions without Christ are perishing.

Divine love has been stirred to its unfathomable depths for the sake of men,
and angels marvel to behold in the recipients of so great love a mere
surface gratitude. Angels marvel at man's shallow appreciation of the love
of God. Heaven stands indignant at the neglect shown to the souls of men.
Would we know how Christ regards it? How would a father and mother feel, did
they know that their child, lost in the cold and the snow, had been passed
by, and left to perish, by those who might have saved it? Would they not be
terribly grieved, wildly indignant? Would they not denounce those murderers
with wrath hot as their tears, intense as their love? The sufferings of
every man are the sufferings of God's child, and those who reach out no
helping hand to their perishing fellow beings provoke His righteous anger.
This is the wrath of the Lamb. To those who claim fellowship with Christ,
yet have been indifferent to the needs of their fellow men, He will declare
in the great Judgment day, "I know you not whence ye are; depart from Me,
all ye workers of iniquity." Luke 13:27.

826


In the commission to His disciples, Christ not only outlined their work, but
gave them their message. Teach the people, He said, "to observe all things
whatsoever I have commanded you." The disciples were to teach what Christ
had taught. That which He had spoken, not only in person, but through all
the prophets and teachers of the Old Testament, is here included. Human
teaching is shut out. There is no place for tradition, for man's theories
and conclusions, or for church legislation. No laws ordained by
ecclesiastical authority are included in the commission. None of these are
Christ's servants to teach. "The law and the prophets," with the record of
His own words and deeds, are the treasure committed to the disciples to be
given to the world. Christ's name is their watchword, their badge of
distinction, their bond of union, the authority for their course of action,
and the source of their success. Nothing that does not bear His
superscription is to be recognized in His kingdom.

The gospel is to be presented, not as a lifeless theory, but as a living
force to change the life. God desires that the receivers of His grace shall
be witnesses to its power. Those whose course has been most offensive to Him
He freely accepts; when they repent, He imparts to them His divine Spirit,
places them in the highest positions of trust, and sends them forth into the
camp of the disloyal to proclaim His boundless mercy. He would have His
servants bear testimony to the fact that through His grace men may possess
Christlikeness of character, and may rejoice in the assurance of His great
love. He would have us bear testimony to the fact that He cannot be
satisfied until the human race are reclaimed and reinstated in their holy
privileges as His sons and daughters.

In Christ is the tenderness of the shepherd, the affection of the parent,
and the matchless grace of the compassionate Saviour. His blessings He
presents in the most alluring terms. He is not content merely to announce
these blessings; He presents them in the most attractive way, to excite a
desire to possess them. So His servants are to present the riches of the
glory of the unspeakable Gift. The wonderful love of Christ will melt and
subdue hearts, when the mere reiteration of doctrines would accomplish
nothing. "Comfort ye, comfort ye My people, saith your God." "O Zion, that
bringest good tidings, get thee up into the high mountain; O Jerusalem, that
bringest good tidings, lift up thy voice with strength; lift it up, be not
afraid; say unto the cities of Judah, Behold your God! . . . He shall feed
His flock like a shepherd: He shall gather the lambs with His arm, and carry
them in His bosom." Isa. 40:1, 9-11.

                                                                     827

Tell the people of Him who is "the Chiefest among ten thousand," and the One
"altogether lovely." The Song of Solomon 5:10, 16. Words alone cannot tell
it. Let it be reflected in the character and manifested in the life. Christ
is sitting for His portrait in every disciple. Every one God has
predestinated to be "conformed to the image of His Son." Rom. 8:29. In every
one Christ's long-suffering love, His holiness, meekness, mercy, and truth
are to be manifested to the world.

The first disciples went forth preaching the word. They revealed Christ in
their lives. And the Lord worked with them, "confirming the word with signs
following." Mark 16:20. These disciples prepared themselves for their work.
Before the day of Pentecost they met together, and put away all differences.
They were of one accord. They believed Christ's promise that the blessing
would be given, and they prayed in faith. They did not ask for a blessing
for themselves merely; they were weighted with the burden for the salvation
of souls. The gospel was to be carried to the uttermost parts of the earth,
and they claimed the endowment of power that Christ had promised. Then it
was that the Holy Spirit was poured out, and thousands were converted in a
day.

So it may be now. Instead of man's speculations, let the word of God be
preached. Let Christians put away their dissensions, and give themselves to
God for the saving of the lost. Let them in faith ask for the blessing, and
it will come. The outpouring of the Spirit in apostolic days was the "former
rain," and glorious was the result. But the "latter rain" will be more
abundant. Joel 2:23.

All who consecrate soul, body, and spirit to God will be constantly
receiving a new endowment of physical and mental power. The inexhaustible
supplies of heaven are at their command. Christ gives them the breath of His
own spirit, the life of His own life. The Holy Spirit puts forth its highest
energies to work in heart and mind. The grace of God enlarges and multiplies
their faculties, and every perfection of the divine nature comes to their
assistance in the work of saving souls. Through co-operation with Christ
they are complete in Him, and in their human weakness they are enabled to do
the deeds of Omnipotence.

The Saviour longs to manifest His grace and stamp His character on the whole
world. It is His purchased possession, and He desires to make men free, and
pure, and holy. Though Satan works to hinder this purpose, yet through the
blood shed for the world there are triumphs to be achieved that will bring
glory to God and the Lamb. Christ will not be satisfied till the victory is
complete, and "He shall see of the travail

828

of His soul, and shall be satisfied." Isa. 53:11. All the nations of the
earth shall hear the gospel of His grace. Not all will receive His grace;
but "a seed shall serve Him; it shall be accounted to the Lord for a
generation." Ps. 22:30. "The kingdom and dominion, and the greatness of the
kingdom under the whole heaven, shall be given to the people of the saints
of the Most High," and "the earth shall be full of the knowledge of the
Lord, as the waters cover the sea." "So shall they fear the name of the Lord
from the west, and His glory from the rising of the sun." Dan. 7:27; Isa.
11:9; 59:19.

"How beautiful upon the mountains are the feet of him that bringeth good
tidings, that publisheth peace; that bringeth good tidings of good, that
publisheth salvation; that saith unto Zion, Thy God reigneth! . . . Break
forth into joy, sing together, ye waste places: . . . for the Lord hath
comforted His people. . . . The Lord hath made bare His holy arm in the eyes
of all the nations; and all the ends of the earth shall see the salvation of
our God." Isa. 52:7-10.




                                                                     (829)

                             Chapter 87

                             "To My Father, and Your Father"


The time had come for Christ to ascend to His Father's throne. As a divine
conqueror He was about to return with the trophies of victory to the
heavenly courts. Before His death He had declared to His Father, "I have
finished the work which Thou gavest Me to do." John 17:4. After His
resurrection He tarried on earth for a season, that His disciples might
become familiar with Him in His risen and glorified body. Now He was ready
for the leave-taking. He had authenticated the fact that He was a living
Saviour. His disciples need no longer associate Him with the tomb. They
could think of Him as glorified before the heavenly universe.

As the place of His ascension, Jesus chose the spot so often hallowed by His
presence while He dwelt among men. Not Mount Zion, the place of David's
city, not Mount Moriah, the temple site, was to be thus honored. There
Christ had been mocked and rejected. There the waves of mercy, still
returning in a stronger tide of love, had been beaten back by hearts as hard
as rock. Thence Jesus, weary and heart-burdened, had gone forth to find rest
in the Mount of Olives. The holy Shekinah, in departing from the first
temple, had stood upon the eastern mountain, as if loath to forsake the
chosen city; so Christ stood upon Olivet, with yearning heart overlooking
Jerusalem. The groves and glens of the

830

mountain had been consecrated by His prayers and tears. Its steeps had
echoed the triumphant shouts of the multitude that proclaimed Him king. On
its sloping descent He had found a home with Lazarus at Bethany. In the
garden of Gethsemane at its foot He had prayed and agonized alone. From this
mountain He was to ascend to heaven. Upon its summit His feet will rest when
He shall come again. Not as a man of sorrows, but as a glorious and
triumphant king He will stand upon Olivet, while Hebrew hallelujahs mingle
with Gentile hosannas, and the voices of the redeemed as a mighty host shall
swell the acclamation, "Crown Him Lord of all!

Now with the eleven disciples Jesus made His way toward the mountain. As
they passed through the gate of Jerusalem, many wondering eyes looked upon
the little company, led by One whom a few weeks before the rulers had
condemned and crucified. The disciples knew not that this was to be their
last interview with their Master. Jesus spent the time in conversation with
them, repeating His former instruction. As they approached Gethsemane, He
paused, that they might call to mind the lessons He had given them on the
night of His great agony. Again He looked upon the vine by which He had then
represented the union of His church with Himself and His Father; again He
repeated the truths He had then unfolded. All around Him were reminders of
His unrequited love. Even the disciples who were so dear to His heart, had,
in the hour of His humiliation, reproached and forsaken Him.

Christ had sojourned in the world for thirty-three years; He had endured its
scorn, insult, and mockery; He had been rejected and crucified. Now, when
about to ascend to His throne of glory,--as He reviews the ingratitude of
the people He came to save,--will He not withdraw from them His sympathy and
love? Will not His affections be centered upon that realm where He is
appreciated, and where sinless angels wait to do His bidding? No; His
promise to those loved ones whom He leaves on earth is, "I am with you
alway, even unto the end of the world." Matt. 28:20.

Upon reaching the Mount of Olives, Jesus led the way across the summit, to
the vicinity of Bethany. Here He paused, and the disciples gathered about
Him. Beams of light seemed to radiate from His countenance as He looked
lovingly upon them. He upbraided them not for their faults and failures;
words of the deepest tenderness were the last that fell upon their ears from
the lips of their Lord. With hands outstretched

                                                                     831

in blessing, and as if in assurance of His protecting care, He slowly
ascended from among them, drawn heavenward by a power stronger than any
earthly attraction. As He passed upward, the awe-stricken disciples looked
with straining eyes for the last glimpse of their ascending Lord. A cloud of
glory hid Him from their sight; and the words came back to them as the
cloudy chariot of angels received Him, "Lo, I am with you alway, even unto
the end of the world." At the same time there floated down to them the
sweetest and most joyous music from the angel choir.

While the disciples were still gazing upward, voices addressed them which
sounded like richest music. They turned, and saw two angels in the form of
men, who spoke to them, saying, "Ye men of Galilee, why stand ye gazing up
into heaven? this same Jesus, which is taken up from

832

you into heaven, shall so come in like manner as ye have seen Him go into
heaven."

These angels were of the company that had been waiting in a shining cloud to
escort Jesus to His heavenly home. The most exalted of the angel throng,
they were the two who had come to the tomb at Christ's resurrection, and
they had been with Him throughout His life on earth. With eager desire all
heaven had waited for the end of His tarrying in a world marred by the curse
of sin. The time had now come for the heavenly universe to receive their
King. Did not the two angels long to join the throng that welcomed Jesus?
But in sympathy and love for those whom He had left, they waited to give
them comfort. "Are they not all ministering spirits, sent forth to minister
for them who shall be heirs of salvation?" Heb. 1:14.

Christ had ascended to heaven in the form of humanity. The disciples had
beheld the cloud receive Him. The same Jesus who had walked and talked and
prayed with them; who had broken bread with them; who had been with them in
their boats on the lake; and who had that very day toiled with them up the
ascent of Olivet,--the same Jesus had now gone to share His Father's throne.
And the angels had assured them that the very One whom they had seen go up
into heaven, would come again even as He had ascended. He will come "with
clouds; and every eye shall see Him." "The Lord Himself shall descend from
heaven with a shout, with the voice of the Archangel, and with the trump of
God: and the dead in Christ shall rise." "The Son of man shall come in His
glory, and all the holy angels with Him, then shall He sit upon the throne
of His glory." Rev. 1:7; 1 Thess. 4:16; Matt. 25:31. Thus will be fulfilled
the Lord's own promise to His disciples: "If I go and prepare a place for
you, I will come again, and receive you unto Myself; that where I am, there
ye may be also." John 14:3. Well might the disciples rejoice in the hope of
their Lord's return.

When the disciples went back to Jerusalem, the people looked upon them with
amazement. After the trial and crucifixion of Christ, it had been thought
that they would appear downcast and ashamed. Their enemies expected to see
upon their faces an expression of sorrow and defeat. Instead of this there
was only gladness and triumph. Their faces were aglow with a happiness not
born of earth. They did not mourn over disappointed hopes, but were full of
praise and thanksgiving to God. With rejoicing they told the wonderful story
of Christ's resurrection and His ascension to heaven, and their testimony
was received by many.

                                                                     833


The disciples no longer had any distrust of the future. They knew that Jesus
was in heaven, and that His sympathies were with them still. They knew that
they had a friend at the throne of God, and they were eager to present their
requests to the Father in the name of Jesus. In solemn awe they bowed in
prayer, repeating the assurance, "Whatsoever ye shall ask the Father in My
name, He will give it you. Hitherto have ye asked nothing in My name: ask,
and ye shall receive, that your joy may be full." John 16:23, 24. They
extended the hand of faith higher and higher, with the mighty argument, "It
is Christ that died, yea rather, that is risen again, who is even at the
right hand of God, who also maketh intercession for us." Rom. 8:34. And
Pentecost brought them fullness of joy in the presence of the Comforter,
even as Christ had promised.

All heaven was waiting to welcome the Saviour to the celestial courts. As He
ascended, He led the way, and the multitude of captives set free at His
resurrection followed. The heavenly host, with shouts and acclamations of
praise and celestial song, attended the joyous train.

As they drew near to the city of God, the challenge is given by the
escorting angels,--

                "Lift up your heads, O ye gates;
                 And be ye lift up, ye everlasting doors;
                 And the King of glory shall come in."

Joyfully the waiting sentinels respond,--

         "Who is this King of glory?"

This they say, not because they know not who He is, but because they would
hear the answer of exalted praise,--

               "The Lord strong and mighty,
                The Lord mighty in battle!
                Lift up your heads, O ye gates;
                Even lift them up, ye everlasting doors;
                And the King of glory shall come in."

Again is heard the challenge, "Who is this King of glory?" for the angels
never weary of hearing His name exalted. The escorting angels make reply,--

                "The Lord of hosts;
                 He is the King of glory." Ps. 24:7-10.

Then the portals of the city of God are opened wide, and the angelic throng
sweep through the gates amid a burst of rapturous music.

834


There is the throne, and around it the rainbow of promise. There are
cherubim and seraphim. The commanders of the angel hosts, the sons of God,
the representatives of the unfallen worlds, are assembled. The heavenly
council before which Lucifer had accused God and His Son, the
representatives of those sinless realms over which Satan had thought to
establish his dominion,--all are there to welcome the Redeemer. They are
eager to celebrate His triumph and to glorify their King.

But He waves them back. Not yet; He cannot now receive the coronet of glory
and the royal robe. He enters into the presence of His Father. He points to
His wounded head, the pierced side, the marred feet; He lifts His hands,
bearing the print of nails. He points to the tokens of His triumph; He
presents to God the wave sheaf, those raised with Him as representatives of
that great multitude who shall come forth from the grave at His second
coming. He approaches the Father, with whom there is joy over one sinner
that repents; who rejoices over one with singing. Before the foundations of
the earth were laid, the Father and the Son had united in a covenant to
redeem man if he should be overcome by Satan. They had clasped Their hands
in a solemn pledge that Christ should become the surety for the human race.
This pledge Christ has fulfilled. When upon the cross He cried out, "It is
finished," He addressed the Father. The compact had been fully carried out.
Now He declares: Father, it is finished. I have done Thy will, O My God. I
have completed the work of redemption. If Thy justice is satisfied, "I will
that they also, whom Thou hast given Me, be with Me where I am." John 19:30;
17:24.

The voice of God is heard proclaiming that justice is satisfied. Satan is
vanquished. Christ's toiling, struggling ones on earth are "accepted in the
Beloved." Eph. 1:6. Before the heavenly angels and the representatives of
unfallen worlds, they are declared justified. Where He is, there His church
shall be. "Mercy and truth are met together; righteousness and peace have
kissed each other." Ps. 85:10. The Father's arms encircle His Son, and the
word is given, "Let all the angels of God worship Him." Heb. 1:6.

With joy unutterable, rulers and principalities and powers acknowledge the
supremacy of the Prince of life. The angel host prostrate themselves before
Him, while the glad shout fills all the courts of heaven, "Worthy is the
Lamb that was slain to receive power, and riches, and wisdom, and strength,
and honor, and glory, and blessing." Rev. 5:12.

                                                                     835


Songs of triumph mingle with the music from angel harps, till heaven seems
to overflow with joy and praise. Love has conquered. The lost is found.
Heaven rings with voices in lofty strains proclaiming, "Blessing, and honor,
and glory, and power, be unto Him that sitteth upon the throne, and unto the
Lamb forever and ever." Rev. 5:13.

                                  ----------

From that scene of heavenly joy, there comes back to us on earth the echo of
Christ's own wonderful words, "I ascend unto My Father, and your Father; and
to My God, and your God." John 20:17. The family of heaven and the family of
earth are one. For us our Lord ascended, and for us He lives. "Wherefore He
is able also to save them to the uttermost that come unto God by Him, seeing
He ever liveth to make intercession for them." Heb. 7:25.